Skip to main content

Full text of "The church under Queen Elizabeth : an historical sketch"

See other formats


}  i 


.:zsx.-;aiat-it.'fi'3~rr.r::f^- 


i  t 
I  I 


h 


11 


I      I 

1       I 


i      t 


\      I 


*W!  Hf'liSHtW^'fcftEfc^ 


FROM  THE  LIBRARY  OF 
REV.   LOUIS    FITZGERALD    BENSON.  D.  D. 

BEQUEATHED    BY  HIM  TO 

THE   LIBRARY  OF 

PRINCETON  THEOLOGICAL  SEMINARY 


fOOCa  I 


THE     CHURCH 


QUEEN      ELIZABETH 


Beati  pacifici. 
•^ 

"  In  the  whole  carriage  of  this  work  I  have  assumed  unto 
myself  the  freedom  of  a  just  historian  ;  concealing  nothing  out 
of  fear,  nor  speaking  anything  for  favour  ;  delivering  nothing 
for  a  truth  without  good  authority  ;  but  so  delivering  that 
truth  as  to  witness  for  me  that  I  am  neither  biassed  by  love 
or  hatred,  nor  overswayed  by  partiality  and  corrupt  affections." 
— Peter  Heylyn,  D.D. 

•f 
3fi&e  et  constantia. 


^  FEB  16  1932 


THE    CHURCH 


UNDER 


QUEEN  ELIZABETH 

AN     HISTORICAL     SKETCH. 
By    FREDERICK    GEORGE    LEE,     D.D. 

Vicar  of    All    Saints,    Lamueth. 
3t    Itftw    anl»    0ll|e(xv«v    (DJiition. 


WITH     AX     IXTRODUCTION     ON 
THE     PRESENT     POSITION     OF    THE     ESTABLISHED    CHURCH. 


LONDON  :  PHILADELPHIA  : 

THOMAS    BAKER.  JOHN    J.    McVEY. 

1897. 


TO    ALL 

WHO    ARE    PREPARED    TO    LOOK    OUR    DIFFICULTIES 
AS   ENGLISH    CHURCHMEN    FAIRLY   IN   THE   FACE 

AND     WHO 

HAVING    REALISED    THEM,    ARE    ENDEAVOURING 

IN    A   CONSERVATIVE   SPIRIT    AND    BY   A    REASONABLE    METHOD 

TO   OVERCOME   THEM 

THE    GENEROUS,  THE   SELF-SACRIFICING,  THE   ZEALOUS 

FRIENDS,    KNOWN    AND    UNKNOWN 

ABROAD    AND   AT    HOME 

LABOURING 

IN    THE    FAITH   AND    FEAR   OF   GOD,    AND    ON 

NO   SANDY    FOUNDATION 

FOR  •  , 

CORPORATE    REUNION 

THIS    VOLUME 

IS    RESPECTFULLY   DEDICATED 

IN    THE    HOPE,    WITH    A   BLESSING    FROM   ON    HIGH, 

OF 

RESTORED    PEACE   AND    VISIBLE    UNITY 

UNDER    THE    PATERNAL    RULE   OF 

THE    CHIEF    BISHOP   OF    CHRISTENDOM 


"  The  Reformation,  no  doubt,  cost  much.  It  broke  up  the  visible 
unity  so  dear  to  Christians  who  believe  our  Lord's  universal  prayer 
in  St.  John  and  the  Epistle  to  the  Ephesians  to  be  part  of  the  Word 
of  God.  It  bred  a  race  of  violent  experimentalists,  who  were  in 
their  time  enemies  of  faith,  of  charity,  and  of  order." — Canon 
Liddon's  Sermon  at  St.  Mary's,  Oxford,  reported  in  the  Guardian 
of  25th  June  1S79. 

"  I  know  of  no  law,  human  or  divine,  which  forbids  me,  or  any 
other  free-born  Englishman,  whilst  submitting  to  every  existing 
ordinance  of  man  for  the  Lord's  sake,  to  use  all  constitutional 
means  for  the  repeal  and  abrogation  of  all  such  laws  as  I  believe 
to  be  mischievous  and  contrary  to  the  revealed  and  declared  will  of 
God.  What  I,  for  one,  mean,  when  I  say  that  I  will  do  my  utmost 
to  undo  the  work  of  the  Reformation,  is  this : — I  believe  that  the 
chief  and  most  important  work  which  was  done  at  the  Reformation 
was  to  render  the  things  of  God  unto  Coesar.  I  shall  always  strive, 
to  the  best  of  my  humble  ability,  to  give  back  to  God  the  things 
of  God.  And  the  cuckoo-cry  of  '  the  principles  of  the  Reformation 
are  in  danger '  certainly  will  not  scare  me  from  my  purpose.  If  the 
Reformation  gentlemen  considered  themselves  justified,  as  I  suppose 
they  did,  in  upsetting  the  Settlement  of  Magna  Charta,  a  settlement 
brought  about  and  cemented  by  the  martyrdom  of  our  most  glorious 
saint  and  patron,  St.  Thomas,  why  should  I  have  a  moment's 
hesitation  in  doing  my  best  to  strive  to  alter  the  Reformation 
Settlement  and  go  back  to  that  of  Magna  Charta  and  St.  Thomas  ? 
I  wait  for  an  answer." — "  The  Keys  of  the  Kingdom  of  Heaven  : " 
a  Sermon  by  the  Rev.  Dr.  T.  W.  Mossman,  O.C.R.,  pp.  14,  15. 
(London,   1879.) 


Sntrobuction, 


THE  PRESENT  POSITION  OF  THE  ESTABLISHED 
CHURCH. 

When,  in  1833,  the  Tractarian  movement  first  arose  at  Oxford, 
it  is  remarkable  that  its  leaders,  in  their  important  work  of 
restoration  and  reparation,  commenced  with  explaining  and 
maintaining  the  doctrine  of  the  Sacraments,  and  not  that  of  the 
true  nature  and  character  of  the  Universal  Church.  This  was 
like  carving  the  pinnacle  before  securing  the  foundation.  They 
assumed,  but  never  once  attempted  to  prove,  that  the  established 
communion  in  England  was  identical,  in  all  essential  particulars, 
with  the  Old  Church  of  the  country,  and  in  communion  with  the 
Church  throughout  the  world.  They  started  with  the  assump- 
tion that  none  of  the  changes  at  the  "  Reformation  "  had  altered 
its  organic  life,  though  the  then  disorganised  religious  state  of 
England  stared  them  in  the  face.  Of  course  this  easier  method 
saved  them  a  world  of  investigation  and  trouble.  Having  a  solid 
foundation,  as  they  so  obviously  believed  themselves  to  possess, 
they  could  proceed  to  build  up  a  superstructure.  This,  as  we 
know,  they  did  both  with  system  and  spirit.  In  so  doing  they 
took  for  granted  that  the  ordinary  historical  theories  concernmg 
the  changes  under  Henry  VIII.,  Edward  VI.,  and  Elizabeth 
were,  in  the  main,  true  and  to  be  depended  on.  But  these 
theories  have  turned  out  to  be  only  theories ;  and,  though 
bolstered  up  for  some  years  under  Burnet's  tuition,  in  the  face 
of  historical  documents  which  have  been  brought  to  light  of  late, 
they  now  no  longer  hold  their  ground.  They  are  exploded ;  for 
they  were  founded  only  on  fraud,  fiction,  and  romance.  It  is  hard 
to  entertain  the  conviction  that,  during  Queen  Elizabeth's  reign, 
the  persecutors  of  the  Catholics,  men  like  Grindal,  Sandys,  Cecil, 
and  Walsingham  belonged  to  the  same  religious  communion  as 


Vlii  INTRODUCTION. 

did  those  poor  souls  who,  on  rehgious  grounds,  endured  such 
virulent  persecution  at  their  hands — the  Rack,  the  Scavenger's 
Daughter,  and  the  Little  Ease.  The  idea  of  "  the  Catholic 
Church,"  as  set  forth  in  the  Three  Creeds,  was  wholly  different, 
therefore,  in  the  minds  of  the  persecutors  and  the  persecuted. 
With  the  former  "  the  Church  was  a  local  or  national  institu- 
tion recently  made  by  themselves  and  Parliament,  of  which  the 
Queen  was  the  source  of  all  jurisdiction  and  authority,  the  lawful 
bestower  of  the  chief  dignities,  the  final  arbiter  of  all  theological 
and  ecclesiastical  disputes;  in  fact,  the  supreme  head  or 
governess.  With  the  latter,  as  with  St.  Gregory  the  Great,  it 
was  "  evident  to  all  who  knew  the  gospel,  that  by  the  Voice  of 
the  Lord  the  care  of  the  whole  Church  was  committed  to  holy 
Peter,  the  prince  of  all  the  apostles.  .  .  .  For  to  him  it  is  said, 
'Thou  art  Peter,  and  upon  this  rock  I  will  build  My  Church, 
and  I  will  give  unto  thee  the  keys  of  the  kingdom  of  heaven.' 
Behold,  he  receives  the  keys  of  the  heavenly  kingdom  ;  the 
power  of  binding  and  of  loosing  is  given  to  him.  To  him  the 
care  atid  governntefii  of  the  ivhole  Church  is  committed.''''  ^ 

The  Tractarian  movement,  nevertheless,  has  done  much  for 
England ;  for  it  has  given  a  new  phase  of  character  to,  and 
created  a  fresh  interest  in,  the  Established  Church.  In  external 
questions — decency,  order,  and  ornaments — it  has  brought  about 
a  silent  revolution.  The  slovenly  and  idle  of  a  previous  genera- 
tion, who  moved  in  a  well-defined  groove,  have  given  place  to 
quite  another  race,  much  more  active  no  doubt,  owning  several 
meritorious  virtues,  but  distinguished  at  the  same  time  by  greater 
narrowness,  less  solid  learning  and  zeal,  and  a  remarkable  tend- 
ency on  the  part  of  some  of  its  members  to  rest  satisfied  with 
ephemeral  and  shallow  literature.  Art,  poetry,  and  architecture, 
however,  discreetly  made  use  of,  have  at  the  same  time  each 
lent  a  helping  hand  in  securing  the  far  better  reformation  than 
that  which  was  completed  under  Queen  P^lizabeth.  Even  in 
deeper  and  more  important  questions  much  has  been  likewise 
done  by  the  Tractarians.  So  that  if  the  main  bulk  of  the  nation, 
the  people  generally,  have  only  been  slightly  touched  by  that 
movement ;  if  the  Establii^hment  itself  has  become  more  com- 
l)rehensive,  a  considerable  and  respectable  minority — perhaps  a 
third  of  the  clergy,  their  dependents,  and  their  immediate  friends 

'  "  Cunctis  cvangelium  scientibus  liquet,  quod  voce  Dominica  santto  et 
omnium  Apostolorum  principi  Petro  Apostolo  totius  Ecclesi.-v  cura  commissa 
est.  .  .  .  Ecce  claves  Rej^ni  Gvlestis  accipit,  potestas  ci  liy;an(li  ac  solvondi 
tribuitur,  cura  ei  tolius  Ecclosiii;  et  principatus  committitur. " — S.  Gregor. 
Mag.  Epist.  ad  Maiirit.  August.,  lib.  iv.  Epist.  32. 


INTRODUCTION.  IX 

and  allies  ;  certain  laymen  with  ecclesiastical  tastes,  and  many 
single  women  of  the  upper  and  middle  classes— have  been  largely 
influenced.^  Thus,  as  every  one  may  see,  a  minority  has,  both  in 
principle  and  taste,  become  more  Catholic  ;  while  the  Church  of 
England  itself,  in  its  corporate  capacity,  has  distinctly  grown 
more  latitudinarian  and  human. 

Out  of  this  movement  another  has  recently  developed,  harm- 
less enough  and  even  beneficial  so  long  as  the  energies  of  its 
more  active  members  were  confined  to  restoring  churches  intro- 
ducing Gregorian  music  and  surpliced  choirs,  putting  up  stained 
glass  windows,  wearing  albs  and  chasubles,  and  repairing  the 
universal  ruin  and  desolation  which  the  Reformation,  the  Great 
Rebellion,  and  the  Revolution  of  William  of  Orange — separate 
acts  in  one  doleful  drama — have  in  turn  so  efficiently  wrought. 
But  anything  but  harmless,  when  it  inconsistently  began  to 
advocate  laxity  of  doctrine,  and  tolerate  "  schools  of  thought  " 
in  which  Catholicism  finds  no  place ;  to  enlarge  the  breach 
between  England  and  Rome ;  to  discountenance  corporate 
reunion ;  to  disparage  the  English  Roman  Catholics,'-^  who 
through  so  long  a  night  of  moral  darkness  have  kept  the  lamp 
of  divine  truth  burning.  These,  though  persecuted  with 
demoniacal  fury,  have  come  forth  again  to  proclaim,  without 
change  or  variation,  the  very  same  faith  which  Bede  and  St. 
Wilfred,  St.  Thomas  the  Martyr,  Warham,  More,  Watson,  and 
Cardinal  Pole  held  and  taught.  They  have  an  admirable  organ- 
isation ;  they  cannot  be  ignored,  and  on  every  reasonable  Anglican 
theory,  being  brethren  in  Christ,  surely  should  not  be  abused. 

It  is,  of  course,  disappointing  and  melancholy  to  note  that 
some  of  the  more  recent  exhibitions  of  "  Ritualism,"  as  it  is 
called,  display  all  the  narrowness,  virulence,  and  pettiness  of  the 

^  In  this  movement  it  is  remarkable,  as  showing  its  exceptional  character- 
istics, that  individual  effort  and  not  corporate  action  secures  success.  The 
Church  of  England  itself,  as  a  corporation,  does  little  or  nothing.  Even  if 
the  ordinary  work  of  Christianity  has  to  be  done,  a  special  organisation,  like 
the  S.  P.  G. ,  the  Teetotal  Society,  or  the  Home  Mission  Order,  has  to  be 
started  to  do  it.  Moreover,  so  much  depends  on  the  lives  of  individuals.  A 
certain  work  may  flourish  so  long  as  some  gifted  parson  carries  it  on  ;  but,  if 
change  or  death  should  happen,  the  work  too  often  altogether  collapses. 

-  Mr.  Mackonochie,  the  noted  Ritualist,  is  reported  to  have  declared  in  a 
sermon  that  "  separation  from  the  Church  of  England  involved  separation 
from  Christ."  If  to  the  modern  English  Establishment  had  been  exclusively 
entrusted  the  office  of  custodian  of  the  faith,  it  is  no  exaggeration  to  say  that 
the  faith  in  England  must  long  ago  have  perished  ;  for  even  now  it  is  impos- 
sible for  any  one  to  declare  for  certainty  what  the  Establishment  teaches 
concerning  the  elementary  doctrine  of  baptism,  much  less,  in  regard  to 
others,  what  it  preserves,  affirms,  or  regards  with  indifference. 


X  INTRODUCTION. 

most  perverse  sects.^  From  fair  and  open  argument  with 
Roman  Catholics  their  self-elected  leaders  have  long  ago  retired  ; 
and  by  a  now  prolonged  silence  (except  the  hebdomadal  jabber - 
of  their  cheap  serials)  appear  to  indicate  that,  confuted  if  not 
discomfited,  they  have  given  up  the  contest  as  lost.  Their 
iniluence,  consequently,  is  very  much  less  than  they  assume  it  to 
be.  It  may  be,  and  possibly  is,  very  considerable  in  certain 
private  convents,  where  the  Superior,  without  legitimate  authority 
or  reasonable  check  of  visitor  or  diocesan,  can  exercise  a  moral 
tyranny  which  only  old  women  could  practise,  and  only  young 
ones  put  up  with. 

The  reiterated  boast,  again,  that  the  horny-handed  working- 
men  of  London  and  our  great  cities  care  for  the  ritualistic 
movement,  is  at  once  confident  and  loud ;  but  this  appears  to  be 
only  based  on  the  daring  assertions  of  unscrupulous  wire-pullers; 
who,  holding  the  strings  and  rings,  lie  concealed  in  the  back- 
ground, while  their  hired  puppets  caper  and  threaten,  brag  and 
posturise,  reading  out  what  has  been  written  for  them  to  maintain 

^  As  two  recent  examples  of  this,  the  cases  of  Mr.  E.  S.  Grindle,  the 
celebrated  "  Presbyter  Anglicanus,"  and  Mr.  Orby  Shipley,  who  disconnected 
themselves  from  the  Establishment,  will  be  familiar  to  all.  The  ungenerous, 
spiteful,  and  insolent  manner  in  which  some  of  their  old  allies  at  once  wrote 
of  them  was  pitiful  and  humiliating  to  read. 

'^  As  a  specimen  of  the  profane  scoffing  and  infidel-like  sneers  (worthy  of 
Voltaire  himself)  in  which  some  of  the  Ritualists  indulge,  the  following  ex- 
tract from  one  of  their  serials,  dated  April  19th,  1879,  edited  by  a  parson,  is 
given.  It  displays  a  vicious  spirit  so  thoroughly  repulsive  and  anti-Christian, 
that  no  wonder  can  arise  that  God  seems  to  have  forsaken  the  sect  it  repre- 
sents, now  given  up  to  frivolity,  intestine  squabbles,  and  despair  : — 

"The  Romans,  I  see,  have  imported  miracles  into  England.  France  has 
no  longer  a  monopoly  of  our  Lady  of  Lourdes.  She  has  condescended 
to  cure  the  paralytic  even  in  the  very  midst  of  'unorthodox  London.'  The 
event  came  off  a  fortnight  ago  at  a  home  for  poor  Roman  Catholic  boys  in  the 
Harrow  Road,  and  which  is  supported  by  sensational  advertisements  headed 
'save  the  boy.'  Lord  Archibald  Douglas  is  about  to  build  a  chapel  for  his 
lads,  dedicated,  of  course,  to  our  Lady  of  Lourdes,  and,  of  course  again,  some 
of  the  water  from  the  holy  fountain  was  brought  to  England  to  be  sprinkled 
round  the  foundation-stones.  Two  of  the  lads,  who  have  been  unable  for 
many  months  to  walk,  through  paralysis,  were  carried  to  see  the  ceremony, 
and  sprinkled  with  the  precious  water.  The  story  goes  that  on  the  morrow 
the  nurse  went  to  carry  the  boys  as  usual,  but,  viiriihile  dictii,  they  with  one 
consent  began  to  walk.  The  doctor  will,  of  course,  be  ready  to  disclaim  all 
merit  in  the  earthly  drugs  which  he  was  giving  to  them,  and  the  people  who 
set  down  the  awe  to  excitement  and  overwrought  expectation  will  lie  regartled 
as  little  better  than  infidels.  And  as  a  miracle  is  born,  if  I  may  so  say,  at 
one's  very  door,  what  the  miracle  will  be  like  when  it  is  full-grown,  after  all 
the  witnesses  have  been  scattered  and  investigation  is  rendered  difticult,  those 
may  guess  who  have  traced  the  effect  of  their  own  imagination  in  dealing  with 
the  wonderful."     See  Appendix,  No.  III.,  p.  364. 


INTRODUCTION.  xi 

or  assert  on  some  public  stage.  Disorder  and  topsy-turvyism 
must  certainly  have  risen  to  a  perfect  climax,  and  all  authority 
have  been  repudiated,  when  compositors,  basket-makers,  and  the 
owners  of  cheap  newspapers  can  unblushingly  stand  forward, 
without  any  commission  whatsoever  from  their  fellow-workmen, 
to  browbeat,  bully,  and  pretend  to  instruct  the  various  bishops  of 
the  Established  Church  in  their  official  duties. 

But  amongst  the  great  mass  of  Englishmen  the  general 
policy  of  these  Ritualists  (besides  being  taken  up  so  much  with 
(juestions  of  externals)  is  altogether  too  wayward  and  weak  ever 
to  command  any  but  an  occasional,  and  then  very  often  only  a 
contemptuous,  consideration. 

The  old  High  Church  party,  or  what  now  remains  of  it,  has 
still,  as  is  well  known,  a  few  great  and  influential  leaders  with  a 
small  following  in  the  nation,  and  smaller  influence.  Unable  to 
resist  the  Divorce  Bill,i  the  infidel  School  Board  system,  and 
Lord  Penzance,  its  members  still  make  weighty  speeches  and  put 
forth  disregarded  protests.  For  promoting  union  and  defending 
the  principles  of  the  Church  of  England  (vvhatever  they  may  be), 
they  form  grand  organisations  like  the  English  Church  Union, 
which,  it  is  to  be  feared,  only  make  old  separations  more  patent 
and  fresh  divisions  more  painful.  Rome,  and  all  that  belongs 
thereto,  they  appear  fanatically  to  hate — the  language  of  some 
being  at  once  ridiculous  and  profane ;  while  they  somewhat 
ostentatiously  profess  to  be  in  love  with  what  they  call  "  the  tme 
principles  of  the  Reformation."  Secret  societies  for  special 
prayer,  and  for  enabling  ministerial  neophytes  to  lead  a  less 
worldly  life  than  many  Church  of  England  parsons  live,  like  the 
Society  of  the  Holy  Cross,  are  blown  down  and  fall  to  pieces  like 
a  child's  card-house,  when  the  breath  of  public  opinion,  bearing 
their  condemnation,  meets  them  all  of  a  sudden.  Sacred 
members,  forgetting  their  official  dignity,  scream  at  being  dis- 
covered ;  and,  in  fear  and  trembling  which  seems  perfectly 
sincere,  are  soon  scattered  as  sheep  without  either  fold  or 
shepherd. 

Archdeacon  Palmer  of  Oxford,  in  his  recent  charge  (a.d.  1879), 
has  described  the  position  of  the  Established  Church,  and  stated 
the  case  concerning  the  supreme  jurisdiction  of  the  Crown,  with 

1  "  The  Divorce  Act,  so  far  as  it  went,  rcaj-  an  act  of  national  apostasy,  and 
in  a  marvellously  brief  space  it  has  succeeded  in  breaking  down  the  Christian 
instincts  of  the  community.  It  gives  us  a  startling  view  of  the  degradation 
of  the  public  morals  which  has  already  taken  place,  to  learn  from  Sir  James 
Hannen  that  the  motive  of  the  suitors  who  go  before  him  is,  in  ninety-nine 
cases  out  of  a  hundred,  simply  to  obtain  a  licence  to  marry  again."— C7^wr/i 
Times,  September  19th,  1879. 


Xll  INTRODUCTION. 

great  accuracy  and  singular  calmness.  Temperate,  unambiguous, 
and  plain,  he  is  at  the  same  time  frankly  and  perfectly  Erastian  ; 
though  apparently  ready  to  sacrifice  something,  if  it  can  be  shown 
to  him  that  the  principle  of  Erastianism  is  fatal,  as  it  certainly  is, 
to  any  efficient  Christian  work.  Moreover,  he  quite  admits  the 
right  and  reasonableness  of  endeavouring  to  remedy  the  evil  in  a 
constitutional  method.     Here  are  his  words  : — 

"In  my  judgment,  the  cardinal  fact  is  that  the  final  determination  of  all 
ecclesiastical  causes  is  vested  in  the  Crown,  and  is  confided  to  a  Court  which 
the  Crown  has  established  with  the  consent  of  Parliament,  and  of  Parliament 
alone,  and  that  all  other  courts  ecclesiastical  are  bound  to  echo  its  decisions. 
This,  as  I  have  reminded  you,  has  been  the  law  and  use  of  England  for 
nearly  three  centures  and  a  half,  if  we  neglect  the  short  reign  of  Philip  and 
Mary.  It  has  been,  in  principle,  more  than  once  formally  recognised,  never 
formally  repudiated,  by  the  synods  of  the  Church  of  England.^ 

"  It  is  our  right,  as  Englishmen,  to  use  all  lawful  and  constitutional  means, 
in  order  to  procure  the  repeal  of  the  statutes  on  which  this  special  jurisdiction 
of  the  Crown  rests,  if  we  think  such  repeal  desirable — as  it  is  our  right  to  use 
like  means  in  order  to  procure  the  repeal  of  any  other  statutes  now  in  force. 
But  it  is  also,  I  venture  to  think,  our  duty,  both  as  Englishmen  and  as  Church- 
men, to  obey  these  statutes  while  they  are  unrepealed,  and  to  submit  to  the 
decisions  of  the  court  which  derives  its  authority  from  them.  I  need  not 
attempt  to  prove  our  duty  as  Englishmen  to  obey  any  law  of  the  land  ;  but  I 
may  be  asked  what  furtiier  obligation  to  obedience  in  this  particular  lies  on 
us  as  Churchmen.  My  answer  is  twofold.  First,  we  are  bound  to  obey,  on 
the  principle  of  deference  to  Church  authority.  Our  Church,  as  I  have  said 
already,  has  more  than  once  synodically  affirmed  the  supreme  jurisdiction  of 
the  Crown  in  causes  ecclesiastical;  she  has  never  synodically  rejected  it. 
Secondly,  we  are  bound  to  obey,  on  the  principle  of  regard  to  the  highest 
interests  of  the  Church.  I  do  not  speak  of  lands,  or  money,  or  any  civil 
privileges  whatever.  I  value  these  things  highly.  I  value  highly  what  men 
call  the  establishment  of  religion  in  this  country.  But  I  value  it  only  as 
means  to  an  end  ;  I  value  it  only  as  a  gigantic  Home  Mission  Eund,  which 
enables  the  Church  to  carry  the  message  of  salvation  to  the  poorest  districts  of 
our  great  towns,  and  the  most  secluded  nooks  in  England.  Let  it  all  go 
to-morrow,  if  it  can  be  shown  to  be  the  price  of  its  retention  that  the  Church 
must  deny  her  Lord,  or  cease  to  do  His  work  effectively." 

As  showing  the  actual  working  of  this  system  before  our  eyes, 
the  following  advice  by  Bishop  Moberly,  in  his  recent  charge  to 
the  clergy  of  his   diocese  (a.d.  1879)  regarding  the  use  of  the 

^  This  statement  of  fact  and  law  is  mainly  identical  with  that  of  the  Arch- 
deacon's brother,  Lord  Selborne,  who  in  his  controversies  both  with  "  A 
.Sussex  Priest,"  Mr.  E.  S.  Grindle,  as  to  principle,  and  with  Mr.  James 
Parker  of  Oxford  as  Xofact,  retired  in  both  cases  from  any  attempt  to  main- 
tain the  two  untenable  positions  which  his  lordship  had  assumed,  and  on 
which,  it  is  to  be  feared,  a  Privy  Council  judgment  was  in  part  founded.  See 
Canon  or  Statute:  A  Correspondence  on  the  P.  W.  R.  Act  betiveen  Lord 
Selborne  and  a  Sussex  Priest.  London,  1875.  Did  Qiieen  Elizabeth  take 
Other  Order  in  the  Advertisements  ^^1566?  A  Letter  to  Lord  Selborne, 
with  a  Postscript.     By  James  Parker,  M.  A.     London,  1879. 


INTRODUCTION.  xiii 

mixed  chalice  and  the  duty  of  obedience  to    Lord    Penzance, 
appears  astounding : — 

His  lordship  "was  ready  to  admit,  in  the  abstract,  that  a  secular  authority 
ought  not  to  interpose  in  matters  of  sacred  doctrine  ;  but  still  he  thought  the 
wisest  course  would  be  to  submit  to  decisions  when  they  had  once  been 
pronounced  (even  when  they  pressed  unduly  upon  the  clergy),  instead  of  per- 
mitting them  to  be  pointed  at  as  signs  of  disunion.  The  bishop  referred  to 
the  'mixed  chalice'  question,  and  quoted  various  authorities  to  show  that  the 
mixed  chalice,  probably  made  use  of  by  our  Lord  Himself  at  the  institution 
of  the  Eucharist,  was  certainly  in  use  in  the  primitive  Church,  and  that  there 
was  nothing  to  show  that  it  ever  gave  rise  to  superstition  in  the  Roman 
Church  before  the  Reformation.  He  considered  it  had  never  been  prohibited 
by  Act  of  Parliament  or  canon,  but  he  counselled  the  clergy,  as  an  adverse 
judgment  had  been  given,  to  refrain  from  the  practice  in  question." 

On  which  it  is  sufficient  to  remark  that  if,  in  the  first  stages  of 
the  Church,  the  bishops  had  shown  themselves  to  have  been  as 
amiable,  peace-loving,  and  impressible  as  Dr  Moberly,  there 
would  certainly  have  been  no  Christianity  of  any  sort  or  kind 
left  to  be  squabbled  over  in  the  present  faithless  age.  It  must 
surely  be  rather  a  stretch  of  faith — not  to  write  "an  act  of 
credulity" — to  believe  that  men  like  this  are  divinely-appointed 
custodians  of  the  Christian  deposit  of  faith. 

The  key  to  the  spiritual  position,  as  both  archdeacon  and 
bishop  conclusively  show,  and  as  all  can  now  see,  was  long  ago 
given  up,  when  England  was  duped  into  practically  repudiating 
her  relations  with  the  universal  Christian  kingdom,  its  laws,  and 
its  ruler.  Cranmer  first  betrayed  the  local  flock  which  he  was 
to  govern ;  and  so  made  a  similar  work  easier  for  those  who 
came  after  him — INIatthew  Parker  and  his  immediate  allies. 
The  New  Church,  as  finally  arranged,  formed,  and  moulded 
under  Queen  Elizabeth,  was  a  purely  local  and  national  body, 
neither  more  nor  less  ;  and  has  so  remained,  under  a  variety  of 
theological  and  ecclesiastical  changes,^  unto  the  present  day. 
For  no  national  Parliament  can  possibly  create  a  divine  institu- 
tion, and  the  missionary  work  of  a  human  society  ever  fails. 
Parliament  may  properly  give  a  charter  to  a  gas  company,  or 

^  Mr.  F.  H.  Dickenson,  a  frequent  correspondent  of  the  Guardian,  in  a 
letter  which  appeared  in  the  number  for  September  loth,  1S79,  writes  most 
truly  and  accurately  thus: — "Any  one  who  has  watched  the  Church  of 
England  during  the  past  forty  years  must  see  that  our  faith  and  doctrine  have 
largely  altered ;  and  there  is  no  reason  to  think  that  alteration  has  ceased," — 
one  fresh  proof,  were  it  needed,  of  the  changeable  and  human  character  of  the 
institution  in  question.  Did  the  Guardians  correspondent  regard  it  as  divine, 
he  would  no  doubt  instinctively  shrink  from  making  proposals  to  patch,  mend, 
or  further  "reform  "  it.  As  it  stands,  he  merely  exercises,  with  regard  to  it, 
the  inherent  and  indisputable  right  of  every  free-born  Englishman. 


xiv  INTRODUCTION. 

authorise  a  railway  board  to  use  a  corporate  seal ;  but  as  for 
making  a  "  Church "  which  is  not  inherently  and  essentially 
national  and  local  —  this  is  altogether  beyond  its  great  and 
acknowledged  powers. 

The  sooner,  therefore,  that  members  of  the  established  com- 
munion admit  this,  and  begin  to  realise  the  most  primary  and 
elementary  detail  of  (iod's  revelation  —  and  so,  by  precise 
thought,  recognise  respectively  the  true  nature  of  the  Church  of 
Pentecost  and  the  actual  character  of  the  Church  of  England  ; 
regarding  each  of  which  many  have  the  most  confused  and 
inexact  ideas) — the  better  will  it  be  for  all  of  us.  By  a  series  of 
tortuous  arguments  and  historical  misrepresentations,  confusion 
has  been  made  worse  confounded.  For  loose  expressions,  words 
like  "  the  Church  "  used  in  half  a  dozen  different  senses,  and  a 
mis-bestowal  of  the  marks  of  the  one  Catholic  body — the  ark  of 
salvation, — upon  mere  local  communions,  cannot  be  sufficiently 
reprehended.^  Such  dialectical  ambiguities  perplex,  confuse, 
and  mislead.  The  one  Church  of  God  is  alone  divine,  all  local 
and  national  Churches  being  essentially  human. 

As  a  consequence  of  such  unfortunate  confusion  of  thought 
and  expression,  certain  persons  have  acted  in  late  years  as 
though  the  actual  laws  of  the  national  Church  of  England  ought 
to  be  practically  revised  or  modified  from  time  to  time  by  some 
other  external  and  independent  law — some  fanciful  ideal,  some 
statute  of  Utopia  ; — and  in  so  acting  have  brought  much  trouble 
upon  themselves  and  little  advantage  to  their  neighbours.  How 
can  the  Catholic  Church  —  which  concerns  all  nations  and 
])eoples,  but  belongs  exclusively  to  none — which  is  infallible, 
for  it  was  created  by  the  Holy  Spirit, — how  can  this  divine 
corporation  either  revise  or  reverse  the  sentences  of  any  parlia- 
mentary communion  ?  What  actual  machinery  can  be  brought 
into  operation  to  effect  such  a  process?  Which  of  the  ancient 
canons,  moreover,  ever  recognised  a  woman  as  capable  of  being 
supreme  head  of  a  parish — -putting  aside  a  diocese  or  a  group 

^  I  take  the  following  from  the  current  newspapers  and  serials  of  September 
l87() : — "  Our  mother,  the  Church  of  England." — "  Our  Church  is  far  more 
favoured  of  God  than  any  other  Church." — "Not  true  members  of  Our 
Church  at  all;  their  hearts  are  elsewhere,  with  another  Church,"  etc. — 
"Our  beloved  Church  is  founded  on  the  Bible,  whereas,"  etc. — "Where 
other  Churches  have  secured  a  vantage-ground  Our  Church  should  certainly 
do  the  same." — "They  remain  in  Our  Church  in  order  to  revile  her,"  etc. 
etc.  etc.  ad  nauseam :  all  most  conclusively  proving  that  in  the  minds  of  the 
loose-thinking  scribblers  who  use  such  phrases  "Our  Church"  is  (as  without 
a  doubt  it  most  certainly  is)  something  quite  difierent  from  the  Church  of  ihe 
Creeds — the  one  divine  and  world-wide  corporation  set  up  at  Pentecost. 


INTRODUCTION.  XV 

of  dioceses?  The  Catholic  Church  throughout  the  whole 
world  is,  as  we  all  know,  guided  by  canon  law,  administered  by- 
living  and  lawful  ecclesiastical  judges,  independent  of  kings, 
queens,  and  all  secular  rulers,  and  not  amenable  to  civil  courts ; 
while  the  Church  of  England  is  now  notoriously  governed  by 
Lord  Penzance.  Thomas  Cromwell  first  ruled  it  under  Henry 
VIII.,  Somerset  under  Edward  VI.,  Cecil  under  Elizabeth.  Ever 
since  its  foundation  it  has  been  similarly  governed,  either  by 
commissioners  api)ointed  by  the  monarch,  or  some  local  court  : 
and  as  long  as  it  retains  its  present  position,  isolated  and  local, 
it  will  continue  to  be  so  governed. 

People  complain  of  the  English  Court  of  Appeal  in  spiritual 
causes,!  which  consists  of  certain  Privy  Councillors;  but  if  they 
are  content  to  remain  visibly  separated  from  the  rest  of  Chris- 
tendom, and  not  amenable  to  the  great  and  universal  Court  of 
Appeal  of  the  one  Catholic  Church, — and  to  this  they  are 
certainly  not  amenable,  for  some  positively  glory  in  their  isola- 
tion,— they  must  put  up  with  the  inconvenience  and  make  the 
best  of  it. 

The  law  which  this  local  and  peculiar  court  professes  to 
administer  is  not  the  law  of  God;  of  that  it  knows  nothing, 
and  cares  nothing.  Its  business  is  to  regulate  the  public 
preaching  and  teaching  of  the  ministers  of  "the  Establishment, 
not  according  to  God's  revelation  or  the  canon  law  of  the  Church 
Universal, — with  these  it  has  nothing  whatsoever  to  do,— but,  as 
the  Reformers  first  determined,  in  strict  and  literal  accordance 
with  the  statutes  of  the  realm,  with  the  enactments  of  the  British 
Parliament. 

As  regards  religion,  every  doctrine  of  God's  revelation  is  sub- 
jected to  the  decisions  of  purely  State  tribunals.  Our  Blessed 
Lord  is  now  only  permitted  to  occupy  that  place  which  a  re- 
presentation of  Him  obtained  under  Alexander  Severus,  in  the 

^  "What,  I  ask,"  wrote  Mr.  ex-Chancellor  Wagner,  "would  St.  Ambrose 
have  said  to  the  recent  trial  of  '  Jenkins  versus  Cooke  '  ?  This  unseemly  trial 
proves,  beyond  all  possibility  of  cavil,  that  the  civil  power  in  England  claims 
to  decide,  in  the  last  resort,  not  merely  '  the  temporal  accidents  of  spiritual 
things,'  but  even  who  shall,  or  who  shall  not,'  be  admitted  to  the  Holy 
Communion,  and,  what  is  infinitely  more  serious  still,  that  the  Primate  of  all 
England  is  quite  willing  personally  to  acquiesce  in  this  most  fatal  claim,  else 
he  would  have  refused,  with  horror,  to  sit  in  the  court  at  all.  It  is  sadly 
significant  and  noteworthy  that  not  one  single  bishop  of  the  province  of 
Canterbury  has,  as  yet,  publicly  protested  against  a  claim  which,  if  granted, 
would  wholly  efface  the  spiritual  authority  of  a  '  bishop  in  the  Church  of 
God,'  and  make  him  the  mere  creature  or  tool  of  the  civil  power,  powerless 
to  exert  the  authority  entrusted  to  him  by  our  Lord  Jesus  Christ."— C/^r/f^ 
or  Casar?  part  ii.  p.  40.     London,  1877. 


XVI  INTRODUCTION. 

temple  of  the  gods.  All  religions,  it  is  maintained,  are  at  last 
alike.  l"he  Church  is  now  a  "denomination."  The  crimes  of 
blasphemy,  infidelity,  sacrilege,  and  atheism,  moreover,  are  at 
length  no  crimes  at  all.  Civil  and  religious  liberty  has  efficiently 
changed  all  that.  Images  of  atheists  are  set  u[)  in  the  public 
thoroughfares,  and  pointed  at  with  pride  as  representations  of 
great  public  benefactors.  Blasphemers  are  honoured,  and 
people  are  thus  indirectly  enjoined  to  go  and  do  likewise. 
Parental  rights,  moreover,  having  their  roots  in  natural  religion, 
are,  as  regards  education  in  England,  on  the  high  road  to  being 
altogether  wiped  out  and  lost.  Of  this  the  mob  approves.  The 
source  of  all  authority,  whether  that  of  kings  or  priests,  is  God 
Almighty ;  but  when  legitimate  Authority  is  laughed  to  scorn 
and  trampled  under  foot  by  those  who  in  its  place  have  set 
up  a  rival  human  authority, — always  wayward,  weak,  uncertain, 
vacillating,  and  liable  to  all  kinds  of  error, — those  who  refuse  to 
believe,  fear,  and  serve  their  Maker,  find  that  they  too  soon 
become  slaves,  tyrannised  over  cruelly,  and  whose  backs  are  in 
the  long  run  well  scourged  by  scorpions  of  their  own  nurturing. 

People  sometimes  remark  that  our  Catholic  ancestors  must 
have  been  very  indifferent  or  greatly  wanting  in  zeal  to  have 
allowed  such  changes  as  those  effected  by  a  few  "  Reformers ''' 
to  have  been  made  without  resistance.  But  in  answer  to  this  it 
should  be  remembered  that  they  did  resist  to  the  best  of  their 
ability.  In  Yorkshire,  Durham,  Norfolk,  Devonshire,  Oxford- 
shire, and  Lincolnshire,  at  various  times,  a  most  noble  resistance 
-ii'as  made  by  force,  as  well  by  poor  as  by  rich.  But  it  failed  ; 
and  the  heavy  hand  of  vengeance,  with  a  sanguinary  and  cruel 
grip,^  came  down  upon  all  engaged  in  that  resistance. 

But  to  judge  this  question  more  equitably.  Let  us  consider 
how  tamely  and  quietly  the  changes  effected  by  the  Divorce 
Court,  infidel  education,  and  Lord  Penzance's  parliamentary 
authority — certain  steps  in  our  downward  descent  as  a  nation — 
are  being  actually  submitted  to,  before  our  very  eyes,  ere  we 

'  The  Catholic  Relief  Act  of  1778,  and  for  Ireland  in  1782,  which  relaxed 
some  of  the  more  ferocious  parts  of  the  penal  laws  and  their  most  cruel  grip, 
was  only  passed  at  a  tim6  when  P'rance  and  America  were  in  confederation 
against  England,  and  union  at  home  was  sorely  needed.  Down  to  that 
period  the  penal  statutes  of  Elizabeth,  James  I.,  and  William  of  Orange  had 
disgraced  our  statute-book.  In  addition  to  persecution,  riols,  and  violence 
for  Roman  Catholics  were  known  under  Lord  George  Gordon  ;  again  in 
1807,  in  1829,  and  in  1846;  and  again  when  the  new  Roman  Catholic 
Hierarchy  was  set  up.  It  is  highly  improbable  that  this  volcano  is  (juile 
extinct ;  for,  as  most  of  the  legal  relaxations  of  late  years  have  been  made 
at  times  of  national  trial  and  political  strain,  when  fears  abounded,  the  real 
sentiments  of  the  populace  may  be  unknown  or  inadequately  forecast. 


INTRODUCTION.  xvii 

judge  our  ancestors  too  severely.  The  disastrous  divisions  of 
the  Reformation  have  finally  resulted  in  the  anti-Christian 
system  of  education  now  completely  in  the  ascendant.  At  the 
universities,  in  our  ancient  grammar  schools,  as  well  as  in  the 
recent  national  plan  for  instructing  the  lower  classes — supported 
by  public  rates  ^ — the  Christian  religion  is  quietly  and  con- 
temptuously set  aside, — with  evil  results  which  will  soon  enough 
be  painfully  discovered.  Such  a  system  of  public  schools 
may  probably  soon  result  in  a  corresponding  system  of  public 
churches,  where  every  sect  may  perform  its  orgies  ;  and  where, 
moreover,  every  individual  may  worship  whatsoever  god  or  gods 
may  have  been  set  up,  or  may  be  tolerated,  by  the  State ;  or 
where  the  more  advanced  "philosophers"  may  worship  each 
other  or  themselves.  Now,  it  is  only  a  very  small  minority  of 
the  English  people  who  can  heartily  approve  of  either  of  these 
three  dangerous  measures,  yet  they  have  been  each  duly  carried, 
and  are  now  the  law  of  the  land ;  while  few,  possibly,  would 
dream  of  agitating  for  their  abolition.  The  evil  is  seen,  but  not 
the  remedy.  Patriotism,  zeal,  and  self-sacrifice  are  all  given  up 
in  favour  of  self-seeking,  wicked  principles,  and  a  false  peace — ■ 
that  peace  which  only  too  surely  heralds  national  corruption  and 
certain  decay. 

In  our  cities  and  large  towns — which  are  quietly  reverting  to 

paganism ;    for,    of    late   years,   since   the   infamous    "  Gorham 

Judgment,"  not  more  than  fifteen  per  cent,  of  the  people  are 

'  baptized  at  all  ^ — what  do  we  behold  ?     The  churches  of  the 

1  Dr.  James  Fraser,  who  once  occupied  the  position  of  a  Christian  bishop  at 
Manchester,  is  reported  to  have  quite  recently  remarked  that  he  looked  upon 
the  gradual  extinction  of  all  schools  save  Board  schools  with  calm  satisfaction 
and  without  any  fear.  The  vicar-general  of  the  diocese  of  Salford,  however, 
recently  pointed  out  that  "  the  Church  of  England  was  gradually  surrendering 
the  great  principles  of  religious  education  and  handing  her  schools  over  to  the 
School  Boards.  After  a  while  the  Church  of  Enijland  schools  would  cease 
altogether  to  be  public  elementary  schools.  When  that  time  came  there 
would  remain  only  the  Board  schools  and  the  Catholic  schools.  How  long  it 
would  be  before  this  change  would  take  place  he  could  not  say,  but  the  course 
followed  by  the  clergy  of  the  National  Church  left  little  doubt  that  a  change 
would  one  day  take  place.  As  for  Catholics,  they  could  never  surrender 
their  schools  to  the  School  Boards  or  any  other  authority.  With  the  godless 
education  of  the  Board  schools  they  could  never  have  anything  to  do." 

-  At  the  Swansea  Congress,  the  Rev.  G.  A.  Seymour  of  Winchester 
maintained  that  "there  is  amongst  our  people  a  lamentable  neglect  of  the 
Sacrament  of  Baptism,  and  stated  that  hardly  more  than  ten  per  cent,  of  our 
people  in  our  large  towns  are  baptized  in  the  Church  of  England.  He  con- 
sidered that  amongst  Christian  nations  England  was  in  this  particular  the 
lowest  in  the  scale,  except  perhaps  America." — Guardian,  October  8th, 
1879.  In  the  same  number,  but  on  another  page,  of  the  newspaper  from 
which  the  above  is  taken,  there  appeared  a  letter  signed  "A  Country  Clergy- 

b 


xviii  INTRODUCTION. 

Establishment  too  ill-attended,  and  in  some  parts  practically 
empty.  Violent  changes,  from  services  of  a  Catholic  character 
to  those  of  a  Puritan,  and  vice  versa,  have  often  led  to 
indifference.  Zeal  in  a  Catholic  direction,  having  been  con- 
sistently frowned  upon  by  State  authorities,  has  too  often  been 
clean  stamped  out.  The  churches  on  Sundays  arc  thus  empty 
and  the  streets  crowded.  What  there  may  we  see.?  A  poor, 
down-looking,  stunted  race,  with  hard  features  and  anxious, 
care-worn  faces ;  out  of  the  effeminate  mouths  of  nine  out  of  every 
ten  stumpy  men  a  burnt  and  smoking  pipe  sticking  out  like  a 
spout  or  drain — the  smouldering  narcotic  of  which  is  supposed, 
in  some  manner,  to  stimulate  their  enfeebled  and  flagging 
energies.  These  pitiable  forms  seem,  all  of  them,  at  once  so 
self-engrossed  and  restless,  eagerly  hurrying  on  to  growl  over  or 
gnaw  the  world's  meat  which  perisheth,  that  no  ray,  even  the 
faintest,  of  the  beautiful  life  to  come  ever  seems  to  fall  upon 
their  thronged  and  darkened  pathway.  For  faith  is  dead. 
They  believe  only  in  that  which  they  can  handle  and  clutch. 
Of  the  angel-world  and  the  supernatural,  of  times  when  the  veil 
around  this  earth  is  drawn  aside,  and  glimpses  of  another 
world  are  in  mercy  momentarily  bestowed,  they  neither  know 
nor  care.  Their  gods  and  guides  are  the  men  of  science,  falsely 
so  called,  or,  to  rise  to   a  somewhat  higher  level,   it  may  be 

man,"  which  ran  thus.  The  words  in  italics  and  within  brackets  are  my  own 
comments: — "Sir, — An  unbaptized  child  died  in  my  parish  the  other  day. 
Immediately  I  heard  of  it  I  went  to  the  house  and  otTered  to  show  my  respect 
[for  ils  parents  -uha  had  shtdiously  despised  our  Lord's  com7nand\  and  sympathy 
Wor  them  under  the  stupid  charges  which  belirc'crs  in  the  Christian  religion 
mi^ht  j/ia/ce]  by  officiating  at  the  funeral  [contrary'  to  the  rules  of  the  Prayer- 
Book  and  the  law  of  the  land].  I  explained  that  I  would  put  on  my  surplice 
and  say  the  Lord's  Prayer  at  the  grave.  My  offer  was  most  gratefully 
accepted.  I  used  the  following  short  service,  compiled  from  Bishop  How's 
"  Pastor  in  parochia,"  and  from  our  own  services  [and  so  proved  to  the  parents 
and  the  public  that  baptism  is  a  mere  ceremony,  and  that  the  U7ibaptized  have 
quite  as  mtich  right  to  Christian  burial  by  the  parson  as  the  baptized.  Atn  I 
7iot  liberal  luith  the  trust  lohich  has  been  reposed  in  me  ?]  I  gave  the  relatives 
a  copy  of  the  prayer,  with  which  they  were  much  pleased." — In  the  Reunion 
jlfao-azinc,  vol.  i.  pp.  51-73,  is  an  article  on  "  Baptism  in  the  Church  of 
England,"  from  the  pen  of  a  layman  (as  is  said),  in  which  some  carefully- 
arranged  statistics  show  that  in  some  parishes  just  four  per  cent,  of  the 
children  born,  and  no  more,  are  baptized  ;  in  others,  on  an  average  about 
nine  per  cent.  On  pp.  494-498  are  letters  which  show  that  Bishop  Alford, 
who  has  "  warned  people  to  be  on  their  guard  against  the  fashionable  doctrine 
of  Baptismal  Regeneration,"  openly  baptized  fourteen  adults  by  once  flicking 
his  wetted  fmgers  in  the  air  over  all  of  them,  and  that  in  a  large  Oxfordshire 
town  the  font  has  never  been  filled  for  forty  years.  Cardinal  Newman  and 
Mr.  Robert  Brett  long  ago  pointed  out  the  neglect  of  baptism,  as  also  did 
the  Rev.  W.  J.  E.  Bennett  of  Frome. 


INTRODUCTION.  xix 

their  own  bellies.  Their  dismal  gospel  is  summed  up  in  the 
popular  but  dread  resolution— "Let  us  eat  and  drink,  for  to- 
morrow we  die."  Therefore  they  all  make  our  nation  now 
stand  out  as  a  striking  contrast  to  "  Merry  England  of  the  olden 
time." 

As  to  many  rural  districts,  the  spirit  of  indifference,  like  a 
dark  cloud,  has  settled  on  the  once  happy  homes  of  our  country 
poor.     The  State  religion,  on  which  the  Reformation  impress  is 
still  indelibly  stamped,^  influences  them  but  feebly,  if  at  all.     In 
Lincolnshire,  Norfolk,  Buckinghamshire,  and  South  Wales  many 
of  the  village  churches,  week  by  week,  are  practically  empty.     In 
towns,  dissent  still  breeds ;  while  unbelief,  chilling  its  thousands 
to  the  heart's  core,  leaves  them  desolate  and  sad  ;  restless  in  the 
present,   hopeless   for   the   future,   or  quietly  indifferent.     For, 
beginning  with  the  elementary  doctrine  of  Baptism,  every  detail 
of  sacred   revelation    has    long   been    a    topic   of  controversy, 
wrangled  over  by  the  misbelieving  and  profane.     Faith  has  at 
length  so  melted  into  opinion  or  mere  sentiment,  that  even  the 
home  of  opinion,  now  swept  and  garnished,  is  found  to  be  cold, 
empty,  and  desolate.     There  is  neither  voice  nor  language,  nor 
any  to  answer,  nor  any  to  regard.     Some  few  by  custom  still 
superstitiously  expose  their  phylactery  and  quote  their  favourite 
texts— like  the  ancient  dame,  who,  as  she  asserted,  found  such 
personal  comfort  from  mumbling  over  and  over  again  the  con- 
soling word  "Mesopotamia";   but  a  supernatural  law  (as  it  is 
assumed  to  be)  without  a  lawful  interpreter,  a  religion  without 
a  divine  guide,  or  a  so-called  "spiritual  body"  without  a  spiritual 
head,  can  only  first  lose  the  confidence,  and  then  deservedly 
meritthe  contempt,  of  those  who  for  generations  can  trace  the 
dire  influence  of  "reform,"  and  long  for  a  divine  peace,  for- 
feited and  lost  in  past  centuries;  gone  perhaps,  for  those  few 
who  most  keenly  miss  it,  never  to  return. 

The  only  persons  who  have  duly  surveyed  and  accurately 
measured  the  situation  as  to  profit  by  it  are  the  modern 
Latitudinarians  or  Liberals — the  legitimate  successors  of  Socinus, 

^  "  I  have  known  the  Communion  Table  used  as  a  writing-desk  for  Sunday- 
school  children  and  at  vestry  meetings."— Kev.  W.  H.  Kelke,  Records  of 
Bucks,  vol.  iii.  p.  127.— In  a  small  but  curious  volume,  Odds  and  Ends 
(London,  1872),  Mr.  William  Maskell  gives  an  account  of  an  unique  atrocity 
—the  dissection,  in  the  year  1839,  of  a  corpse  that  had  been  exhumed,  upon 
the  Communion  Table  of  the  church  of  Powderstock,  in  Dorsetshire.  "The 
church,"  he  writes,  "was  shut  up  for  three  weeks  after,  on  account  of  the 
stench  ^^'hich  had  penetrated  through  and  saturated  the  entire  building.  I 
believe,"  he  continues,  "that  the  Communion  Table  was  then  restored  to 
its  former  sacred  purpose." — Pp.  54-73. 


XX  INTRODUCTION. 

Cranmer,  Erastus,  Tillotson,  Hoadley,  and  Balguy.  And,  since 
the  rise  of  the  Oxford  movement,  the  leaders  of  it,  in  their 
conflicts  with  Latitiuhnarians,  have,  by  reason  of  their  losses  and 
disasters,  been  again  and  again  compelled  to  shift  their  position, 
modify  their  ])rinciples,^  and  change  their  tactics.  Persons 
professing  the  Catholic  faith,  out  of  communion  with  the  rest 
of  Christendom,  inevitably  maintain  tiieir  difficult  position  under 
the  greatest  disadvantages.  No  one  could  have  fought  the 
battle  of  Catholic  dogma  in  the  Church  of  England  with  greater 
foresight,  discretion,  and  ability,  than  did  Dr.  Newman  when  at 
Oxford.  But  with  all  his  consummate  tact  and  immense  learn- 
ing, with  all  his  high  generosity  and  notorious  zeal,  he  frankly 
and  truly  confessed  himself  defeated.^  The  Liberals  or  Latitudin- 
arians  won  in  almost  every  conflict.  With  what  result  is  well 
known.  Dr.  Newman  and  his  friends  were  driven  out ;  while 
Dr.  Tait,  one  of  the  four  tutors  who  persecuted  him,  is  at 
Canterbury,  and  is  still  bent  on  getting  rid  of  the  Athanasian 
Creed,  in  which  he  frankly  avows  neither  he  himself  nor  his 

^  E.g.  the  late  Rev.  John  Keble  in  the  poem  on  "Gunpowder  Treason," 
having  relinquished  the  inexact  belief  of  the  Reformers  for  the  teaching  of 
the  Catholic  Church,  somewhat  awkwardly  altered  his  verse.  See  p.  40, 
where  the  original  poem  is  quoted. — Still  more  recently,  Archdeacon 
Denison,  who  took  so  prominent  a  part  in  the  restoration  of  Convocation, 
deplored  his  mistake  in  having  done  so  ;  believing,  because  of  later  events, 
that  Convocation  had  done  more  harm  than  good.  The  truth  is,  that  until 
the  question  of  the  relations  of  England  to  the  rest  of  Christendom  is  faced 
and  settled  little  can  or  will  be  done. 

^  "The  most  oppressive  thought  in  the  whole  process  of  my  change  of 
opinion  was  the  clear  anticipation,  verified  by  the  event,  that  it  would  issue 
in  the  triumph  of  Liberalism.  Against  the  anti-dogmatic  principle  I  had 
thrown  my  whole  mind  ;  yet  now  I  was  doing  more  than  any  one  else  could 
do  to  proniote  it.  I  was  one  of  those  who  liad  kept  it  at  bay  in  Oxford  for 
so  many  years  ;  and  thus  my  very  retirement  was  its  triumph.  'llic  men  zv/io 
Jiad  driven  mefrorn  Oxford  were  distinctly  the  Liberals :  it  was  they  'mIw  had 
opened  the  attack  upon  Tract  90,  and  it  7vas  they  who  would  gain  a  second 
benefit  if  I  tvcnt  on  to  retire  from  the  Anglican  Church.  But  this  was  not  all. 
As  I  have  already  said,  there  are  but  two  alternatives,  the  way  to  Rome  and 
the  way  to  atheism  ;  Anglicanism  is  the  half-way  house  on  the  other.  How 
many  men  were  there,  as  I  knew  full  well,  who  would  not  follow  me  now  in 
my  advance  from  Anglicanism  to  Rome,  but  would  at  once  leave  Anglicanism 
and  me  for  the  Liberal  camp.  It  is  not  at  all  easy  (humanly  speaking)  to 
wind  up  an  Englishman  to  a  dogmatic  level.  I  had  done  so  in  a  good 
measure  in  the  case  both  of  young  men  and  of  laymen,  the  Anglican  J'ia 
Media  being  the  representative  of  dogma.  The  dogmatic  and  the  Anglican 
principle  were  one,  as  I  had  taught  tliem  ;  but  I  was  breaking  the  Jla  Media 
to  pieces,  and  would  not  dogmatic  faith  altogether  be  broken  up,  in  the  minds 
of  a  great  number,  by  the  demolition  of  the  Via  Mtdia?  (Jh  I  how  unliappy 
this  made  me  !  "  -History  of  my  Kcli_!iioiis  Opinions,  by  J.  M.  Newman,  D.  U. 
(original  edition),  pp.  329,  330.     London,  1S64. 


INTRODUCTION.  XXl 

brother-prelates  believe,^  it  being  too  dogmatic  in  itself,  and  too 
distasteful  to  the  public.  Dr.  Hampden  died  Bishop  of  Here- 
ford. The  editor  of  Essays  and  Reviews  is  now  Bishop  of 
Exeter,  welcomed  by  High  Churchmen  for  his  zeal  and  energy. 
The  present  Bishop  of  Salisbury,  who  so  disliked  Dr.  Newman's 
Essay  on  Development  that  he  formerly  replied  to  it,  has  himself 
so  developed  in  the  Latitudinarian  direction  that  he  actually 
administered  the  Lord's  Supper  at  Westminster  to  a  Unitarian 
preacher.  Thus  the  Liberals — aided,  of  course,  by  their  own 
political  party,  and  bribed  and  promoted  by  the  Conservatives 
• — triumph  all  along  the  line.  And  so-called  "  High  Churchmen  " 
have  at  length  condescended  to  be  their  faithful  armour-bearers 
and  trumpeters. 

The  spring  of  these  Liberals  or  Erastians  is  elastic,  and  their 
grasp  firm,  as  when,  rising  to  shake  themselves  from  the 
temporary  dust  of  any  conflict  with  High  Churchmen,  they 
sufficiently  realise  their  own  strength,  and,  with  disdain  for  their 
discomfited  opponents  and  with  considerable  self-confidence, 
march  forward  to  greater  victories.  They  know  too  well  that  the 
power  of  the  English  Establishment  either  to  maintain  or  to 
enforce  the  dogmatic  principle  is  as  the  power  of  a  lifeless  and 
rain-sodden  scarecrow,  neither  more  nor  less.  They  perceive 
most  accurately  that  the  authority  which  first  created  the 
Establishment,  and,  as  is  reasonable  enough,  still  effectually 
dominates  it,  intends  to  dominate  it.  This  every  bishop  sees 
and  knows.-  That  power  was  Parliament ;  it  is  now  Parliament, 
modified,,  reformed,  and  extended, — ever  influenced  in  the  present 
enlightened  age  by  public  opinion ;  but,  at  best.  Parliament. 

^  "We  [the  archbishop  and  bishops]  do  not — there  is  not  a  soul  in  this 
room  who  does — take  the  concluding  clauses  of  the  Athanasian  Creed  in 
their  plain  and  literal  sense." — Speech  of  Archbishop  Tail  in  Convocation, 
Guardian,  February  14th,  1S72. 

"  Quite  recently  the  Bishop  of  Oxford,  somewhat  misconceiving  his 
position,  went  in  person  as  a  suppliant  to  the  Court  of  Queen's  Bench,  asking 
that  he  might  be  allowed  to  act  as  a  true  bishop  in  his  own  diocese.  But  the 
Court,  which  of  course  represents  Her  Majesty  the  Queen, — the  Supreme 
Governess  of  the  Church  of  England,  from  whom  (as  Dr.  jNIackarness  on  his 
knees  before  her  duly  acknowledged)  he  received  both  spiritualties  as  well  as 
temporalties, — declined  to  allow  him  to  do  anything  of  the  sort.  Lord 
Penzance  is  now  the  Chief  Ecclesiastical  Judge  for  Iler  Majesty  in  every 
diocese  ;  in  Oxford  as  elsewhere.  He  was  set  up  by  a  recent  and  special 
Act,  which  either  all  the  bishops  helped  to  pass,  or  now  willingly  administer; 
and  therefore  Bishop  Mackarness'  demand  was  obviously  unreasonable.  The 
Act  in  question,  though  with  art  and  cunning  made  specially  for  the  inferior 
parsons,  is  thus  found  to  have  included  the  bishops.  The  Bishop  of  London 
has  recently  admitted,  in  his  "Charge"  (1879),  that  it  was  both  a  mistake 
and  a  failure. 


xxii  INTRODUCTION. 

However,  the  very  boldness  of  these  triumphant  Erastians  in 
high  places,  their  sharply-defined  and  sweeping  policy,  carried 
out  with  no  regard  to  the  convictions  of  their  opponents,  and 
with  an  inconsiderate  roughness  and  rudeness  worthy  of  Thomas 
Cromwell  or  Hugh  Latimer,  has  done  more  than  anything  else 
to  throw  many  Christian  people  back  on  first  principles.  So 
long  as  some  moderation  and  impartiality  were  shown  at  Lam- 
beth ;  so  long  as  it  was  possible  to  believe  by  a  kind  of  traditional 
fiction  that  the  so-called  "  Church  Courts  "  were  Church  Courts, 
people,  without  inquiring,  were  content  to  regard  them  as  such, 
and  quietly  to  acquiesce.  But  the  Public  Worship  Regulation 
Act  1  has  successfully  destroyed  all  such  notions ;  while  the 
appointment  by  the  two  Primates  of  an  ex-judge  of  the  Divorce 
Court  to  work  the  Act  was  a  deliberate  insult  to  the  Christian 
clergy,  and  an  outrage  disgraceful  to  all  concerned.-  It  has,  at 
all  events,  shown  conclusively  the  true  character  of  the  Establish- 
ment and  its  rulers — a  singular  advantage  to  those  who,  like  the 
late  Mr.  Keble,  have  been  long  doubtful  whether  it  was  from 
heaven   or   of  men.^     As   long,    of  course,    as    people   cannot 

1  "  It  is,  in  point  of  fact— at  least,  so  it  seems  to  me — a  thoroughly  revolu- 
tionary measure  in  its  principle,  having  for  its  main  end  or  consequence  the 
abolition  of  all  the  ancient  courts  Christian  ;  courts  which,  however  fallen 
from  their  first  estate  and  unsatisfactory  in  their  present  condition,  have 
existed  from  the  very  earliest  times  in  this  country,  and  were  an  integral  part 
of  its  Christianity  ;  and  the  substitution  in  their  stead  of  a  new  secular  court, 
with  no  Christian  instincts  or  traditions  whatever  to  guide  it,  and  deriving  its 
authority  and  jurisdiction  in  no  way  whatever  from  the  Church,  but  entirely 
fiom  the  new  Act  of  Parliament  which  created  it.  Regarded  in  this  light, 
which  I  believe  to  be  the  true  light,  and  one,  I  fear,  which  the  verdict  of 
posterity  will  only  too  fully  endorse,  the  Public  Worship  Regulation  Act  of 
last  year  is  one  of  the  most  mischievous  and  indefensible  measures  ever  yet 
concocted.  For  it  is  the  virtual  triumph  of  the  anti-Christian  principle  of 
Erastianism  over  ecclesiastical  authority  and  independence  ;  the  acknowledg- 
ment, in  practical  effect,  by  the  voice  of  the  nation,  that  the  Established 
Church  of  England  is  to  be  regarded  from  hencefurth  as  little  belter  than  a 
mere  State  function  or  department  of  the  earthly  State,  instead  of  (as  it  must 
be  if  it  be  Christ's  representative)  its  spiritual  ruler  and  teacher."— C/^m/ 
or  Casar^  part  ii.  pp.  6,  7.     London,  1877. 

-  "  I  do  not  suppose  a  more  galling  insult  to  a  body  of  educated  gentlemen, 
such  as  the  clergy  of  England  a\e,  is  recorded  in  history  than  that  which  has 
been  practically  offered  to  us  by  the  two  archbishops  (Tail  and  Thomson)  in 
the  peculiar  character  of  the  appointment  they  have  thought  fit  to  make." — 
CliriU  or  Cccsar?  by  A.  I).  Wagner,  Chancellor  of  Chichester  Cathedral, 
part  ii.  p.  10.      London,  1877. 

3  "  I  suppose,  from  some  part  of  your  letter,  that  you  have  been  told  I  am 
speaking  to  friends  occasionally  as  if  I  was  perplexed  about  continuing  where 
I  am.  My  perplexity  is  rather  what  to  say  to  others  who  ask  my  advice, 
than  how  to  act  myself.  Few  persons  have  a  stronger  feeling  than  I  of  the 
duty  of  continuing  where  one's  lot  is  cast,  except  where  the  call  to  go  else- 


INTRODUCTION,  XXlll 

perceive  the  evils  which  exist,  so  long  no  remedy  can  possibly 
be  forthcoming. 

In  the  sixteenth  century  breach  with  Rome,  i\\e  first  point  and 
position  repudiated  was  that  the  Pope,  either  by  divine  right  or 
of  ecclesiastical  necessity,  had  any  reason,  duty,  or  call  to  inter- 
fere with  the  concerns  of  the  Church  of  England.  The  English 
Church  was  affirmed  to  be,  of  itself,  a  perfect  and  complete 
spiritual  kingdom,  wanting  neither  advice,  assistance,  nor  inter- 
ference from  without.  On  this  point  the  new  Statute  of  Appeals  ^ 
was  very  clear.  Having  thus  deliberately  removed  the  key-stone 
to  the  perfect  arch  of  truth  and  unity,  other  stones,  one  after 
the  other,  some  large,  some  small,  were  more  easily  taken  out 
and  thrown  aside ;  with  what  eventual  result  to  that  divinely- 
built  arch  every  one  can  now  too  plainly  perceive.  Many  of 
these  stones  (to  carry  on  the  simile),  long  lost  or  lying  neglected 
amongst  surrounding  rubbish,  have  been  painfully  discovered 
and  carefully  replaced.  For  this  no  Christian  patriot  can  be  too 
heartily  grateful.  Newman,  Pusey,  Manning,  Keble,  Marriott, 
and  Robert  Wilberforce,  amongst  others,  did  the  work.  But  the 
last  stone  to  be  secured  and  put  up  again  in  the  order  of  time, 
though  the  chiefest  in  importance  and  most  needed  (because 
without  it  the  others  are  unbonded  together,  and  the  spiritual 
construction  remains  inherently  imperfect),  is  the  key-stone  of 
the  completed  arch, — the  primacy  of  the  father  of  the  faithful, 
— of  him  who,  in  Christ's  Name,  guides  both  pastors  and  sheep, 
as  patriarch  of  the  Church  Universal.  A  visible  ruler  for  a 
diocese,  and  a  primate  for  a  province,  reasonably  imply  the  need 
of  one  visible  head  for  the  whole  family.  The  day  has  not  yet 
dawned  for  this  crowning  work  of  the  Tractarian  movement  to 
be  undertaken.  But  though  some  for  politic  reasons,  timorous 
or  crotchety,  may  deny  its  importance,  everything  points  silently 

where  is  very  plain.  It  may  be  that  I  do  not  see  my  way  clearly  in  the 
controversy  between  us  a- id  Rome;  but  as  long  as  I  was  in  doubt,  and 
perhaps  a  good  deal  longer  than  I  might  seem  to  myself  in  speculation  to  be 
so,  I  should  think  it  my  duty  to  stay  where  I  am." — Memoir  of  Kev.  John 
Keble,  by  Sir  J.  T.  Coleridge,  p.  230.      London,  1869. 

1  The  words  of  this  innovating  statute  are  : — "  The  body  spiritual  whereof 
having  power,  when  any  cause  of  the  law  divine  happened  to  come  in 
question,  or  of  spiritual  learning,  then  it  was  declared,  interpreted,  and 
showed  by  that  part  of  the  body  politic  called  the  spiritualty,  now  being 
usually  called  the  English  Church,  which  always  hath  been  reputed  and  also 
found  of  that  sort,  that  both  for  knowledge,  integrity,  and  sufficiency  of 
number,  it  hath  been  always  thought,  and  is  also  at  this  hour  sufficient  and 
meet  of  itself  without  the  intermeddling  of  any  exterior  person  or  persons,  to 
declare  and  determine  all  such  doubts,  and  to  administer  all  such  duties  as  to 
their  rooms  spiritual  doth  appertain." 


XXIV  INTRODUCTION. 

to  the  certain  issue  indicated.  In  the  ^fstructive  Reformation  of 
the  sixteenth  century  the  Pope  wasjirs/  repudiated,  then  certain 
doctrines  and  practices  ;  in  the  better  and  r^^structive  move- 
ment of  the  present  day,  the  lost  doctrines  have  already  been 
recovered ;  an  acknowledgment  of  the  traditional  and  reasonable 
rights  of  the  See  of  St.  Peter  ^  will  naturally  come  /asf ;  at  all 
events  with  those  Christians  in  the  Establishment  who,  by 
co-operation  and  reunion,  are  prepared  to  resist  latitudinarianism, 
false  science,  Erastianism,  and  blank  infidelity,  so  dangerous  in 
these  latter  days,  so  potent,  so  diabolical. 

The  labour  may  be  painful,  the  cost  considerable,  some  may 
be  even  working  against  their  will,  the  sacrifices  may  be  great ; 
but  for  all  these  the  work  will  be  surely  and  efficiently  com- 
pleted.2 

And  it  will  be  completed  from  within.^  Beneficent  and 
practical  reformers  from  all  sides,  and  of  all  sorts,  mainly  Liberals, 
are  still  at  work  upon  its  further  "  reform " ;  ever  mending, 
tinkering,  and  changing  it.     There  is   surely   room,  therefore, 

^  The  statement  that  "the  Bishop  of  Rome  hath  no  jurisdiction  in  this 
reahn  of  England  "  (Art.  xxvii.)  has  long  ceased  to  be  an  accurate  proposition. 
In  the  present  day  it  is  plainly  contrary  to  obvious  facts.  Under  altered 
circumstances,  Parliament  ought  now  to  construct  another  Article,  harmonis- 
ing with  parliamentary  changes.  Again  :  the  2Sth  Article  pronounces  a 
certain  doctrine  concerning  the  Sacrament  of  the  Altar  to  be  "  rejuignant  to 
the  plain  words  of  Scripture. "  Now  the  plain  words  are  these  : — "This  is 
my  Body."  Consequently  when  our  Lord  said,  "This  is  My  Body,"  the 
plain  meaning  of  these  words  was  "  This  is  ;/<>/  My  Body."  By  parity  of 
reasoning,  had  our  Lord  said,  "  This  is  )io(  My  Body,"  the  plain  meaning  of 
His  words  would  have  been — transubstantiation.  On  the  same  principle, 
when  there  came  a  voice  from  heaven — "  This  is  My  beloved  Son,"  it  is 
"repugnant  to  the  plain  words  of  Scripture"  to  suppose  that  the  Eternal 
Father  revealed  the  hypostatic  union  ;  but  if  the  Eternal  Father  had  affirmed, 
"  This  is  «(;/  My  beloved  Son,"  the  plain  meaning  would  have  been  what  in 
short  every  good  Christian  believes— erroneously  as  it  would  seem  on  such 
"  Elizabethan  "  principles  of  interpretation — to  be  true. 

-  About  a  century  and  a  half  ago,  this  was  prophesied  as  sure  to  come  to 
pass.  Our  Blessed  Saviour  appeared  in  a  vision  to  a  humble  Catholic,  who 
was  constantly  asking  at  the  throne  of  grace  for  the  restoration  of  the  ancient 
faith,  and  He  said  :  "  My  son,  I  have  heard  your  prayer  so  often  poured  out 
before  Me;  I  will  have  mercy  upon  England."  "When,  Lord;  oh! 
when?"  "Not  now,"  rejilied  our  Blessed  .Saviour,  "but  when  England 
shall  build  as  many  churches  as  she  destroyed  at  the  cliange  of  religion  ;  and 
when  she  shall  restore  and  beautify  the  remainder." — .See,  for  this  account  at 
length,  T/w  Future  Unity  of  Christendovi,  by  A.  L.  I*,  de  Lisle,  p.  68. 
London,  1857. 

•*  The  Church  of  England  points  out  with  great  clearness  how  this  may  be 
done,  by  its  very  distinct  directions  concerning  conditional  baptism.  What 
is  ajiplicable  to  the  Sacrament  of  Regeneration  is,  of  course,  of  equal 
applicability  to  confirmation,  orders,  etc. 


INTRODUCTION.  XXV 

within  its  wide- embracing  fold  and  comprehensive  boundaries, 
for  those  few  -who,  having  reached  a  somewhat  higher  and  clearer 
altitude  than  that  ordinarily  attained  by  their  fellows  in  the  fog 
and  mist  below,  can  plainly  see  that  all  such  destructive 
"  reforms  "  (judging  by  past  experience)  are  likely  to  turn  out 
as  profitless  and  worthless  as  those  of  previous  centuries ;  and 
who  long  for  the  religious  oneness  of  old.  The  English  people 
were  promised  national  unity  in  religion,  but  this  was  never 
secured  to  them — poor  dupes  !  even  though  gibbet  and  butcher's 
knife,  rack  and  torture,  were  enlisted  in  the  enterprising  work  ; 
and  now,  instead  of  the  unity  of  bygone  centuries,  they  are 
cursed  with  the  active  dissensions  and  noisy  screams  of  a  hundred 
and  fifty  discordant  and  repulsive  sects. 

Who  will  say,  then,  that  it  would  be  unwise  and  unreasonable 
for  the  National  Church,  or  at  all  events  for  those  within  its 
broad  borders  who  still  believe  in  the  Christian  revelation,  to 
admit  its  failure,  and  by  combination  strive  to  cause  its  acknow- 
ledged isolation  and  impotence  to  come  to  an  end  ? 

There  are  very  few  members  of  the  Church  of  England  who 
do  not  now  admit  that,  whatever  its  deserts,  disestablishment, 
disendowment,  and  disruption  are  not  unlikely  to  be  its  eventual 
fate.  They  only  differ  as  to  when  these  final  "reforms,"  as  they 
term  them,  are  likely  to  take  place.  For  since  the  Primate  of 
Christendom  has  been  robbed  and  disendowed  at  Rome, — 
England  having  stood  admiringly  by,— local  institutions  of  a 
similar  kind  are  not  likely  to  survive  for  long.  Why,  then, 
should  not  such  a  disastrous  issue  for  our  beloved  country  be 
duly  looked  in  the  face  and  prepared  for  ?  Those  who  in  the 
National  Church  still  believe  in  God  the  Trinity,  in  the  Incarna- 
tion of  the  Eternal  Word,  and  in  that  divine  corporation 
(baptism  being  the  gate  of  entrance  to-  it)  the  One  Catholic 
Church,  should  on  every  ground  visibly  unite,  not  only  amongst 
themselves,  but  v/ith  all  other  parts  of  God's  one  family  (by 
regeneration).  The  various  recent  movements  for  corporate 
reunion  ^  prove  that  men's  hearts  are  now,  thank  God  !  being, 
to  some  extent,  turned  away  from  strife  and  contention  towards 
peace,  co-operation,  and  unity. 

Furthermore,  as  a  practical  consideration,  in  the  Church  of 
England,  the  universal  liberty  which  is  granted  to  all  cannot 
be   denied  only  to  those  who  hold  the  Catholic  faith -^  in    its 

^  See  Appendix,  No.  II.,  p.  358. 

2  "  Far  was  it  from  the  purpose  of  the  Church  of  England  to  forsake  and 
reject  the  Churches  of  Italy,  France,  Spain,  Germany,  or  any  such-like 
Churches." — Canon,  No.  xxx.  of  1603. 


XXVI  INTRODUCTION. 

integrity ;  and  who,  witnessing  the  miserable  divisions  around 
and  about,  aim  at  removing  them  and  healing  the  breaches.  As 
citizens  they  have  a  perfect  and  unchallenged  right,  through 
their  natural  birth,  to  all  the  privileges  of  membership  of  the 
Established  Church,  just  as  baptized  persons  (if  baptized)  they 
have  an  equal  right  to  all  the  privileges  of  the  Church  Universal. 
These  latter  privileges,  if  refused  or  denied  to  them  in  the  public 
edifices  of  the  national  communion  (in  which  the  national  will 
is  dominant),  they  not  only  have  a  similar  right,  but  own  a 
positive  duty  to  secure  for  themselves  in  some  other  way. 
Furthermore,  by  argument  and  reasoning  they  are  free  to  promote 
change,  so  as,  without  destruction  or  revolution,  to  seek  out  the 
old  ways  and  return  to  the  ancient  paths. 

To  the  few— they  are  sure  to  be  "Liberals" — who  may  un- 
fairly deny  to  others  that  liberty  which  they  so  constantly  claim 
for  themselves,  and  who  may  urge  "patience,"  love  for  our 
stepmother,  and  "loyalty";  to  those  likewise  who  may  prate 
about  disloyalty  to  the  Church  of  England,  the  author  may 
reply  in  the  forcible  words  of  another  : — 

"  What  and  where  is  the  Church  of  England  to  which  I  am  disloyal?  So 
far  as  the  Church  of  England  is  identified  with  Christian  doctrine,  Christian 
worship,  Christian  discipline,  and  upholds  and  maintains  these,  I  am  as 
loyal  and  as  devoted  to  her  now  as  I  ever  was,  or  as  any  one  else  can  be. 
But  what  is  meant  by  the  Church  of  England  in  connection  with  the  idea 
of  loyalty  to  the  Church  of  England?  Is  it  the  Church  of  England  of  the 
High  Church  party,  or  of  the  Low  Church  party,  or  of  the  Broad  Church 
party?  for  the  members  of  these  three  parties  seem  to  me  to  mean  quite 
different  things  by  the  phrase  'Church  of  England.'  Is  it  a  book  two 
hundred  years  old  ?  or  a  tradition?  or  a  sentiment  ?  or  the  will  of  the  nation  ? 
or  a  body  corporate — a  living  organisation?  If  it  be  a  living  organisation, 
how  does  it  make  its  voice  heard?  for  a  society  in  which  there  is  '  no  voice 
nor  any  that  answereth'  is  not  the  Church  of  God.  As  an  individual  clergy- 
man, I  have  long  been  asking  myself,  '  What  is  my  authority  for  what  I  teach 
and  do?'  To  my  mind  the  responsibility  of  teaching  others  in  matters 
affecting  their  salvation— a  responsibility  at  all  times  great  and  overwhelming 
— becomes  absolutely  insupportable  when  there  is  no  living  authority  to  which 
the  individual  teacher  can  refer,  and  by  which  he  can  be  guided  and  forti- 
fied."^ 

'J'he  author  of  this  volume  docs  not  profess  that  it  is  a  history 
of  the  reign  of  the  successful  but  miserable  woman  who  ruled 
the  nation's  destinies  for  nearly  forty-five  years,  and  regarding 
whom  the  common  herd  entertain  such  loose  but  glowing  ideas. 
It  is  only  intended  to  be  a  sketch  of  the  state  of  the  Church 
during  that  period.     To  write  the  history  of  the  years  between 

'  Do  they  ivell  to  be  Aitgiy?  by  Presbyter  Anglicanus,  p.  26.  London, 
1876. 


INTRODUCTION.  XXVU 

Elizabeth's  accession  and  her  death  would  involve  the  production 
of  many  large  volumes.  Here  the  author's  aim  has  been  to  pro- 
vide a  plain  and  readable  account  of  what  actually  occurred,  as 
far  as  it  practically  bears  on  the  new  ecclesiastical  position,  upon 
which  recent  events  have  thrown  so  clear  and  powerful  a  light ; 
and,  in  so  doing,  neither  to  keep  in  the  background  unpleasant 
and  unwelcome  facts — a  policy  successfully  adopted  by  so  many 
Church  of  England  writers — nor  so  to  lay  on  heavily  the  dull 
colours  of  a  somewhat  dark  picture  as,  by  finishing-touches,  to 
make  it  at  all  darker  than  it  need  be.  For  this  there  is  no 
necessity  whatsoever.  The  naked  acts  of  certain  of  those  who 
had  secured  the  upper  hand,  plainly  and  faithfully  recorded, 
either  from  their  own  words  or  from  authentic  documents,  are 
decidedly  not  pleasant  reading  for  simple-minded  folks  who 
reverently  believe  that  what  some  persons  term  "the  Reforma- 
tion "  was  another  sacred  Pentecost,  and  had  for  its  Divine 
Author  (may  God  pardon  their  delusion  ! )  the  Holy  Spirit  of 
Truth. 

As  this  book  is  passing  through  the  press,  a  friend,  who  has 
efficiently  aided  me,  calls  my  attention  to  a  statement  of  fact 
extracted  from  one  of  the  ritualistic  newspapers,  concerning 
the  so-called  "  Reformers,"  which  is  here  appended  : — 

"They  began  by  making  the  Holy  Eucharist  contemptible  in  the  eyes  of 
the  nation,  and  went  on  to  make  it  unusual  as  well  as  slovenly.  The  com- 
plaint of  the  people  under  Edward  VI.  that  the  altars  had  been  in  many 
places  turned  into  '  oyster-boards '  was  not,  as  has  been  falsely  alleged,  a 
coarsely  ribald  perversion  of  facts.  It  was  the  literal  truth.  Wherever  the 
more  Zwinglian  bishops  and  clergy  had  their  way,  it  was  no  such  structure 
as  that  which  we  see  to-day  in  every  fairly  decent  English  church,  in  shape, 
size,  position,  and  covering — in  short,  every  way  except  being  of  wood  instead 
of  stone — like  the  old  altars,  which  served  for  the  celebration  of  the  Sacra- 
ment. Common  trestles  and  boards  (just  like  those  on  which  even  still 
street  vendors  of  shell-fish  exhibit  their  wares)  carried  in  and  out  of  church 
with  exactly  the  same  care  and  quietness  as  they  are  now  used  for  a  school- 
room tea,  were  what  the  astonished  people  saw ;  and  the  Sacrament  dis- 
pensed with  as  much  studious  irreverence  as  if  the  minister  had  intended 
nothing  save  to  make  it  contemptible.  Then,  besides,  M'hereas  up  to  1549 
there  was  not  a  corner  of  England  where  there  was  not  at  least  a  weekly 
mass  accessible,  and  very  few  where  there  was  not  a  daily  one  within  easy 
reach,  the  first  result  of  the  Zwinglian  action  in  1552  was  to  sweep  away  the 
daily  mass^  everywhere,  and  the  t)unday  mass,  as  it  would  seem,  in  a  number 

^  The  person  who  could  deliberately  write  of  the  Elizabethan  Reformers' 
Supper  as  a  "mass"  must  be  either  a  profound  ignoramus  or  as  daring  as 
he  is  impudent  and  dishonest.  For  the  celebration  of  mass  was  distinctly 
abolished  by  Act  of  Parliament;  while  those  priests  who  were  fci-'  vrele- 
brating  it  were  drawn,  hung,  and  quartered.  Grindal,  Pilkington,  a\.l 
Sandys  had  no  more  intentions  of  "  saying  mass  "  than  they  had  of  restoring 
circumcision. 


xxviii  INTRODUCTION. 

of  places,  at  once  considerable,  and  rapidly  becoming  the  great  majority. 
And  in  the  third  place,  whereas  the  mass  had  been  from  the  earliest  days  of 
Christendom  the  chief,  and  for  more  than  a  thousand  years  the  most  public, 
rite  of  the  Church,  it  was  not  now  merely  made  infrequent,  but  was  hustled, 
as  it  were,  into  a  corner,  just  as  if  a  thing  to  be  ashamed  of;  and  the  evil 
custom  sprang  up,  albeit  not  justified  then  or  since  by  any  rubric  or  canon, 
of  restricting  all  knowledge  of  it  to  the  small  and  steadily  dwindling  band  of 
actual  communicants  on  each  occasion.  "■— C/«/;r/i  Times,  September  26th, 
1879. 

As  regards  English  ordinations,  concerning  which  some  new 
facts  are  brought  to  light  in  the  following  pages, — putting  aside 
both  historical  and  theological  dissertations,  which  might  appa- 
rently be  carried  on  without  profit  or  conviction  to  either 
pharanx  of  disputants,  until  the  day  of  doom, — it  is  self-evident 
that  the  moral  argument  in  favour  of  their  validity  is  certainly 
very  strong,  perhaps  stronger  than  either  the  theological  or 
historical  argument.  ^Vhen  the  frightful  state  of  degradation 
into  which  the  National  Church  during  Elizabeth's  reign  had 
been  brought  is  honestly  contemplated  ;  and  when  the  striking 
contrast  between  its  position  then  and  its  altered  state  now  is 
duly  realised, — the  manner  in  which  so  much  that  had  been 
then  cast  away  as  valueless  is  now  sought  after  and  has  been 
once  more  secured;  the  beautiful  restoration  of  cathedrals, 
abbeys,  and  parish  churches ;  the  rebuilding  of  new  ones  after 
Catholic  models;  the  renewed  interest  in  all  ecclesiastical 
subjects  by  an  earnest  and  self-denying  minority;  the  restored 
worship,  the  living  zeal,  the  obvious  results, — we  may  reasonably 
infer  (though  there  be  no  exact  precedent  nor  perfect  parallel 
in  past  history  for  the  complex  character  and  unique^  position 
of  the  Established  Church  of  England)  that,  as  divine  grace 
has  never  been  withdrawn  from  her  crippled  rulers,  so  an  in- 
herent and  essential  distinction  between  clergy  and  laity  has 
been,  in  the  main,  consistently  and  continually  remarked  and 
admitted. 

If  the  author's  intention  had  been  to  rake  up  old  scandals, 
the  materials  for  which  are  at  hand  and  in  abundance,  it  might 
have  been  done  with  ease.  But  this,  in  the  main,  has  been 
carefully  and  charitably  avoided.  For  such  work  would  have 
been  in  every  way  distasteful  to  him.  It  is  only  where  dis- 
agreeable features  serve  to  give  an  accurate  impression  of  the 

'  "The  results  of  the  religious  movement  of  the  time  had  taken  shape 
under  the  resolute  but  cautious  hand  of  the  (^ueen  [Elizabeth]  in  a  church 
polity  7i<hich  ivas  ihoiiq/it  at  the  time,  and  has  proTcd  to  he,  unique;  but 
which  has  also  proved  singularly  suited  to  the  character  of  the  English 
nation."— Zfw/v;-,  edited  byK.  W.  Church,  p.  5,  Introduction.    Oxford,  1S68. 


INTRODUCTION.  XXIX 

period  under  description  that  he  has  not  shrunk  from  recording 
bare  and  obvious  facts.  This  was  absolutely  necessary  in  some 
few  cases,  for  so  many  historical  romancers  have  shovelled 
aside  all  distasteful  incidents  and  events,  and  have  only  told 
their  story, — a  story  in  more  senses  than  one,  from  its  sunshiny 
side,  —  suppressing,  perverting,  and  misleading, —  that  it  was 
consequently  essential  rather  ,  to  be  fair,  honest,  and  faithful 
than  one-sided,  over-picturesque,  and  false.  For  until  the  true 
nature  and  virulence  of  a  disease  is  seen,  no  adequate  remedy 
can  be  applied  and  no  cure  looked  for. 

There  are  a  considerable  number  of  footnotes  in  the  following 
pages,  because  many  of  the  statements  made  in  the  narrative 
needed  to  be  maintained  by  careful  and  exact  quotations. 
These  footnotes  might  have  been  largely  increased  from  various 
sources,  more  especially  from  the  State  papers,  recent  Catholic 
publications,  and  private  MSS. ;  but  though  the  author  has 
abundant  authority  for  each  and  every  assertion  made  by  him, 
he  has  thought  it  wise  to  avoid  over-weighting  what  only  pro- 
fesses to  be  an  "Historical  Sketch"  with  too  many  of  such 
quotations. 

The  author  is  considerably  indebted  to  the  researches  and 
labours  of  Brother  Henry  Foley,  S.J.,  whose  Records  of  the 
English  Province,  in  five  handsome  volumes,  full  of  authentic 
and  out-of-the-way  information,  will  remain  as  a  monument  of 
his  most  patient  and  painstaking  labours,  and  of  the  noble  and 
charitable  deeds  of  so  many  eminent  and  illustrious  English 
members  of  his  great  society.  The  profound  treatise  by  Harps- 
field,  Archdeacon  of  Canterbury,  on  The  Pretc7ided  Divorce  of 
Henry  VIII.,  so  ably  edited  by  the  Rev.  Nicholas  Pocock  of 
Queen's  College,  Oxford,  has  been  carefully  and  profitably 
studied.  He  has  likewise  read  with  interest,  and  made  use  of, 
the  three  series,  entitled  The  Troubles  of  our  Catholic  Forefathers, 
edited  by  the  Rev.  John  Morris — publications  of  equal  value 
and  interest.  Dr.  Jessopp's  Otie  Generation  of  a  Norfolk  House, 
and  the  Douay  Diary,  have  been  also  studied  with  interest  and 
profit ;  for  all  these  recent  volumes  throw  a  strong  light  on  the 
darkened  pages  of  English  history  in  Queen  Elizabeth's  reign, 
and  are  of  considerable  value. 

F.  G.  L. 

All  Saints'  Vicarage,  Lambeth, 
November  15//^,  1879. 


Contents. 


CHAPTER  I. 

Death  of  Henry  VIH. — Edward  VI.— Queen  Mary's  work  of  Restora- 
tion.— Reconciliation  under  Mary. — Death  of  Cardinal  Pole. — ■ 
Punishment  of  perjurers  and  heretics. — Elizabeth  and  Lord 
Seymour  of  Sudeley. — Her  familiarities  with  Lord  Seymour. — - 
Cecil's  birth  and  origin. — His  rise,  arts,  and  influence. — His  selfish 
and  tortuous  policy. — Character  of  Sir  Francis  Walsingham. — 
How  free  nations  lose  their  liberties. — Proclamation  of  the  Supreme 
p[ead. — Arrival  of  Protestant  exiles. — Various  outrages  of  the 
Gospellers.— John  Knox  on  the  Rule  of  a  Woman. — He  flatters 
Elizabeth's  vanity. — The  Queen  consults  Dr.  Dee  the  astrologer. 
— The  Procession  of  Recognition. — City  Decorations. — Her  recep- 
tion by  the  citizens.  —  The  Liber  Regalis.  —  Her  coronation  by 
Oglethorpe. — Old  ceremonies  observed. — She  takes  the  customary 
oaths. — The  unction  disliked. — Due  observance  of  ancient  rites. 
— The  imprisoned  Evangelists. — Parliament  recommends  mar- 
riage.— Elizabeth  legitimised  by  Act  of  Parliament. — Invested 
with  spiritual  jurisdiction. — Existing  traditions  of  the  Supremacy. — ■ 
Feckenham  condemns  revolution.  —  The  Supremacy  a  special 
grant. — New  punishments  appointed. — Archbishop  Heath's  de- 
claration.— The  warnings  of  Bishop  Scott. — "  Questions  and 
advices." — The  Second  Prayer-Book  restored. — The  Mass  muti- 
lated.— Character  of  the  New  Prayer-Book. — Changes  in  the 
Service-Book.  —  "Communion  boards"  introduced. — Massing- 
cups  aboHshed  in  the  Supper. — Occasional  services  mutilated.— 
Rites,  services,  and  ceremonies  abolished.  —  Opposition  of  the 
Lords  Spiritual. — The  Bishops'  Profession  of  Faith. — Disputation 
at  Westminster. — The  various  theologians  engaged. — White  and 
Watson  committed  to  prison. — Act  of  Uniformity. — The  celebra- 
tion of  Mass  ceases. — Opposition  of  the  bishops. — Character  of 
Bishops  Heath  and  Bonner. — Bonner  unfairly  maligned. — Cha- 
racter of  Bishops  Tonstall  and  White. — Baynes,  Scott,  Oglethorpe, 
and  Watson. — Matthew  Parker  elected  Archbishop. — Letters 
Patent. — Old  suffragan  bishops  then  living. — -No  legal  consecra- 
tion service  existing. — No  archbishop  nor  four  bishops  to  be  had. 
— Commission  to  consecrate  Parker. — The  Nag's  Head  fable. — 
Parker  consecrated  at  Lambeth. — Details  of  the  rite. — Importance 
of  Barlow's  consecration.  — Parker  confirms  the  elections  of  Barlow 
and  Scory,  .  .  •      .       •  •  •  P^S^^  1-35 


xxxii  CONTENTS. 


CHAPTER  II. 

Grindal  writes  to  Hubert.— Proclamation  concerning  Religion.— Gross 
tactics  of  the  Innovators.— The  Sacraments  disparaged.— Revolt- 
ing sacrilege  at  Canterbury.  — Punishments  for  the  same. — The 
Reformation  and  great  Rebellion.— The  new  Oath  of  Homage. 

Foreign  Protestants  provided  for.— French  preachers  imported. 

Foreign  Protestants  banished. — Denunciation  of  this  act. — Pope 

Pius  IV. 's  Letter  to  the  Queen. — Consecration  of  new  bishops. — 
Caution  of  Cecil.— Deplorable  condition  of  the  churches. — The 
old  clergy  scattered.— The  new  method  of  preaching.— New  and 
"godly"  Homilies.— Celebration  of  "  The  Lord's  Supper."— The 
communicants  helped  themselves.— Further  innovations  recom- 
mended.—The  changes  unpopular.— The  New  Oath  tendered  to 
the  Clergy.— The  Supreme  Governess  unrecognised  as  such. — 
Catholics  persecuted  and  scattered.— Exiles  in  Flanders  and  Italy. 

Resistance  to  the  innovations. — The  new  orders  suspected. — 

Difficulties  concerning  ordinations. — The  fact  of  Parker's  consecra- 
tion.—His  archiepiscopal  Register.— Difficulties  in  the  same. — 
Original  documents  contradictory.  —  The  charge  of  forgery.— 
iSIarried  prelates  disliked.— The  Queen's  Injunctions.— Matri- 
monial inquisitions.  —Her  Majesty's  edict  about  marriage.— 
Deplorable  state  of  Ely  Cathedral.— Mass  still  said  in  secret.— 
The  Queen  visits  Canterbury. — The  Geneva  Bible.— Laxity  in 
faith  and  morals. — The  Queen  and  her  nobility  consult  the  astro- 
logers.— Necromancers  and  conjurors  become  popular. — Fond 
anil  fantastical  prophecies. — Deplorable  state  of  the  country. — 
The  Bishops'  Visitation  Articles.— Powerlessness  of  the  new  pre- 
lates.— Ignorance  of  the  hysterical  preachers. — Lax  notions  con- 
cerning ordination. — The  "call"  held  to  be  essential— Character 
of  the  newly-arranged  service.— The  Cross  a  stumbling-block. — 
The  Queen's  birthday  made  a  festival.— Erastianism,  Irreligion, 
and  Indifference.— Rivalry  between  Church  and  alehouse.— No 
consecration  in  "  the  Supper." — Current  heresies  and  blasphemy. 
—Bishop  Pilkington's  profanity.  —  The  new  "Service  of  the 
Supper."— The  Bible  and  Prayer-Book  translated  into  Welsh. — 
State  of  the  Church  in  Wales.— The  Establishment  of  to-day.— 
Work  of  the  General  Councils.— The  Council  of  Trent.— Import- 
ance of  that  Council.— Its  direct  effects,  .  .  pages  2,6-"] I 


CHAPTER  III. 

Decision  at  the  Council  of  Trent.  — Division  between  Catholics  and 
Erastians.— Sir  William  Cecil's  Report.— Divergencies  in  the  New 
Service. — Protestant  Maxim. — Great  destitution  of  the  poor. — 
The  Queen's  visit  to  Cambridge.— A  play  in  King's  College 
Chapel.— Her  Majesty's  love  affairs.— Sir  William  Pickering  and 
the  Earl  of  Arundel.— The  latter  resigns  his  office.— The  Lord 
Robert  Dudley.— The  Queen  tickles  him.— Coolness  between  the 


CONTENTS.  xxxiii 

Queen  and  Leicester. — Her  true  affection  for  him. — Leicester's 
new  sleeping  apartment. — Her  treatment  of  Archbishop  Heath. — 
Ordered  to  be  "less  straitened." — Suspicions  regardmg  him. — 
Controversy  concerning  ministers'  apparel. — The  surplice  disused 
by  many. — Fierce  and  furious  controver.-ies. — Printers  and  book- 
sellers restrained. — Rise  and  progress  of  Nonconformity.  —  Rigid 
uniformity  enforced. — The  case  of  Home  against  Bonner. — The 
new  ordinations  condemned.  —  Parliament  confirms  the  new 
orders. — Impotence  of  Parliament  in  the  question. — Special  Act 
concerning  ordination. — The  new  supremacy  unprecedented. — 
Apologies  for  her  office  of  Supreme  Governess. — A  plea  for  the 
Old  Churchmen. — Dr.  William  Allen. — He  describes  the  situa- 
tion.— The  Catholics  driven  to  desperation. — Further  persecutions 
and  imprisonments. — Dissatisfaction  in  Yorkshire,  Durham,  and 
Northumberland. — Rising  under  the  Northern  Earls. — The  nobility 
advocate  open  resistance. — High  Mass  restored  at  Durham. — 
Rejoicing  of  the  people. — Defeat  of  the  Pilgrims  of  Grace.- — The 
poor  severely  punished. — Hangings,  butcheries,  and  tortures. — 
Lord  Sussex  is  too  humane. — Chivalry  of  the  Northern  nobility. 
— Pope  Pius  V.  issues  his  Bull  of  Excommunication. — Jurisdiction 
of  the  Roman  Pontiff. — St.  Austin's  relation  to  Rome. — Exact 
terms  of  the  Bull. — Fresh  raid  upon  the  beggars.  — The  poor  kept 
out  of  the  Queen's  sight. — Sufferings  and  privations  of  the  poor. 
— Contrast  of  the  Past  with  the  Present. — The  poor  hunted, 
stocked,  and  flogged,  ....  p^^g^s  72-101 


CHAPTER  IV. 

Beggars  flogged  and  branded. — The  Pope's  knowledge  of  affairs. — 
Queen  Elizabeth's  bishops  unprecedented.  — The  ancient  priests 
and  new  ministers.- — True  state  of  ecclesiastical  affairs. — The  new 
ministers  ignorant.  —  Sermon-hearers  moved  to  laughter  and 
ribaldry. — Laymen  appointed  to  benefices. — The  farmers  of  bene- 
fices and  their  hirelings. — Their  plans  and  policy. — The  case  of 
Thomas  Lancaster. — Appointed  Archbishop  of  Armagh. — True 
character  of  the  bishops. — Their  greediness,  self-seeking,  and  rob- 
beries.— Pilkinglon  amasses  great  riches.  —  Disagreement  between 
Sandys  and  Grindal. — Sandys  marries  two  wives. — Sir  John 
Bourne  and  Bishop  Sandys.  —  Mistress  Sandys  disparaged.  — 
Sandys  translated  to  London. — Then  translated  to  York.  —  Holds 
a  Visitation  at  Doncaster. — Sandys  and  the  innkeeper's  wife. — ■ 
Sir  Robert  Stapleton  imprisoned. — Character  of  Bishop  Bale. — 
Sometime  Bishop  of  Ossory. — Coarseness  of  his  language. — His 
opinions. — His  published  writings.  —  Scurrility  and  heresy  of  the 
same. — The  bishops  obedient  and  obsequious. — The  Queen  grants 
dispensations. — Instrument  of  Archbishop  Grindal's  resignation. 
— State  of  the  Northern  towns. — Condition  of  Norwich  Cathedral. 
— State  of  the  city  of  Norwich. — Bishop  John  Parkhurst. — State 
of  the  diocese  of  Norwich. — Sir  \V.  Cecil  blames  Parkhurst. — 
State  of  the  diocese  of  Carlisle. — Bishop  Rowland   Mtyrick. — 

C 


XXXIV  CONTENTS. 

State  of  the  diocese  of  Bangor. — State  of  the  diocese  of  Lichfield. 
— State  of  the  churches  in  general. — State  of  the  diocese  of 
Oxford. — Bishop  John  Underhill. — The  Cathedral  of  St.  Frides- 
wide. — Effects  of  the  Reformation. — State  of  the  diocese  of  St. 
David's.— Visitation  Articles. — Bishop  Middleton's  Injunctions. — 
Ancient  rites  and  reverence  forbidden. — Changes  in  funeral  cere- 
monies.— Old  burial  customs  abolished. — Representations  of  the 
Queen's  Coat  of  Arms  and  of  Moses  and  Aaron. — State  of  the 
diocese  of  Lincoln. — Its  extent  and  natural  characteristics. — The 
ancient  See  of  Dorchester. — Abbeys  and  hospitals  of  Lincolnshire. 
— The  old  nobility  found  wanting. — Risings  in  Berks,  Hants,  and 
Oxon.  —  Unlawful  assemblies  forbidden. — Justice  and  true  re- 
ligion dethroned. — Bullingham's  heresy  and  sacrilege. — Destruc- 
tion under  Archdeacon  Aylmer. — Inventory  of  monuments  of 
superstition. — Altar-slabs  grossly  profaned. — Reforms  at  Ashby, 
P)ardney,  and  Belton. — Revolting  desecration. — Desecration  at 
Croxbie  and  Durington. — The  Vicar  of  Ilaconbie's  sacrilege. — 
.Sacrilege  at  Ilorblinge  and  Langtoft. — Altar  linen  made  into 
shirts  and  smocks. — Such  destruction  very  general. — Entirely 
approved  of  by  the  bishops. — The  Present  and  Past  again  con- 
trasted.— Almost  miraculous  change  for  the  better. — Improve- 
ment in  the  Episcopate.  —  Improvements  in  the  Established 
Church,         ......  pagis  102-139 


CHAPTER  V. 

The  Pope's  Bull  affixed  to  the  gates  of  the  Bishop  of  London's  Palace. 
— John  Felton  is  tried  for  high  treason.— His  execution. — Elizabeth 
professes  to  despise  the  Pope's  action. — He  acts  as  Father  of  the 
Christian  Family.  —  Parker  and  others  suggest  contempt  for  the 
Bull. — Insurrection  of  John  Throckmorton. — Fresh  enactments 
against  supporters  of  the  Old  Religion. — Sanguinary  tyranny  of 
the  Queen. — The  Queen's  Government  a  despotism.- — The  Queen's 
New  Religion. — The  Court  of  High  Commission. — The  nation 
sick  at  heart. — Character  of  the  new  nobility. — Case  of  Dr.  John 
Storey. — Dismembered,  disembowelled,  and  beheaded. — Death 
and  burial  of  Bishop  Bonner. — Death  and  burial  of  Bishop  Thirlby. 
— The  Puritan  "Admonition  to  Parliament." — Publications  of 
the  Puritans. — The  bishops  and  Church  government  attacked. — 
Thomas  Cartvvright  and  his  policy.  —  Controversy  concerning 
rochets,  surplices,  and  chimeres. — -Secular  pomp  and  extravagance 
of  the  bishops. — Humiliating  position  of  Archbishop  Parker. — 
Evil  precedents  of  Cranmer. — His  cruelties  and  mode  of  punishing 
heretics. — A  local  Church  readily  dominated. ^ — Elizabeth  appoints 
Church  Commissioners. — Doings  of  Strickland  and  Snagg. — Diffi- 
culties of  the  English  Catholics.- — Increased  boldness  of  the 
innovators.^ — Abolition  of  the  Christian  Sacrifice. — Fresh  legisla- 
tion.— High  treason  to  say  Mass  :  felony  to  hear  Mass. — Conse- 
quences of  this  new  legislation.  —  Convocation  packed  and 
manipulated. — The  officers  and  furniture  of  the  churches. — Posi- 


CONTENTS.  XXXV 

tion  of  the  Parish  Clerk.— Old  rites  in  some  places  traditionally 
observed.— Funeral  customs  and  ceremonies  still  in  use.— Certain 
important  traditions  crushed  out.— Decency  and  order  attempted. 
—  Absentees  from  church  noted  down.  —  Bishop  Pilkington's 
opinions.— Confirmation  now  becomes  a  rite.— Consequent  disuse 
of  Confirmation.— State  and  dignity  of  Bishop  Whitgift.— New 
Injunctions  issued.  —  Disorganisation  and  disorder  rampant.— 
Many  of  the  beneficed  clergy  unordained.— Such  persons  tolerated. 
—Confusion  wrought  by  the  Puritans.— Each  bishop  assumes 
quasi-Papal  authority.— The  Bishops'  Courts  and  their  officers.— 
Concessions  to  the  Puritans.— Episcopal  ordination  not  then  held 
to  be  essential.— Neglect  of  the  warnings  of  the  old  and  faithful 
bishops.— England  visibly  separated  from  the  rest  of  Christendom. 
—The  True  source  of  Authority.— All  authority  weakened.— 
Consequences  of  the  Reformation.— False  principles  current  and 
dangerous.— Modern  progress  and  culture.— The  glad  tidin<Ts  of 
fire,  sword,  and  force,  ....  pages  140-165 


CHAPTER  VI. 


Effect  of  the  action  taken  at  Rome.— Various  policies  adopted  by  the 
Clergy,— Reasons  for  nonconformity. — New  crimes  defined.— 
Guiltless  persons  cruelly  punished.— Losses  of  the  nobility.— In- 
security of  the  Catholic  gently.— Plight  of  the  poorer  recusants, 
and  their  treatment.— Dr.  William  Allen.  — His  College  at  Douay. 
—Subsequent  arrival  of  priests.- Death  of  Archbishop  Parker.— 
His  policy  and  character. —Bishops  Grindal  and  Cocks.— The 
Queen  s  letter  to  Cocks.— Dutch  Anabaptists  burnt.— Archbishop 
Cranmer  had  burnt  heretics.— Catholic  nobility  and  gentry - 
bufferings  of  the  old  priests.— The  prisons  at  York  and  Hull  — 
Activity  of  persecuting  bishops.— Steadfastness  of  Sir  John  South- 
worth.— Action  taken  at  York.— Difference  between  the  New  and 
the  Old.— Women  persecuted.— The  poor  decline  to  conform.— 
Pines  and  confiscations.- Cottages  rifled  and  emotied.— Ho-^pi- 
tahty  unexercised.— The  Protomartyr  Cuthbert  Tklayne.- Seized 
in  Cornwall.— Indicted  for  five  offences.— Tried  bv  Judge  Man- 
wood.— Condemned  and  ordered  for  execution.— His  cruel  and 
sanguinary  death.— Sixteen  other  persons  condemned.— Frequent 
and  continual  executions.— Numerous  priests  and  laymen  executed. 
—London  in  Elizabeth's  reign.— Bermondsey,  Lambeth,  and 
Ivennington.- Selfishness  and  self-seeking  rampant.— The  Queen 
and  AValsingham  consult  Dr.  Dee.— Heads,  arms,  and  legs  of 
those  executed  exposed.— London  prisons  crowded.— Noblemen 
and  gentlemen  expatriated.— Novelties  and  blasphemies.— Dr. 
Allen  on  priests  and  ministers.— Puritanism  develops.— Religion 
at  Chester  and  Lichfield.— Arrival  of  Parsons  and  Campion.— 
Books  printed  at  Stonor  Park.- Eliot's  betrayal  of  Campion.— 
l-rightful  tortures  used.— He  denies  the  charge  of  treason.— 
Campion  and  the  minister,— Campion's  epitaph  by  Henry  Walpole. 


xxxvi  CONTENTS. 

The  Thimbleby  family.  — Further  imprisonments.  — Bishop  Cotton's 
large  family. — Bishop  Godwin  marries  again. — Death  of  Bishop 
Watson  of  Lincoln. — Wisbeach  Castle. — Patience  of  the  perse- 
cuted, ......  J>ages  166-199 


CHAPTER  VII. 

Abbot  John  Feckenham.  —  Bishop  Cocks'  ingenuity.  —  A  preacher 
for  the  recusants. — The  Worthingtons  of  Worthington. — Two 
youths  scandalously  ill-treated. — Flogged  and  imprisoned. — 
Richard  Topcliffe  the  torture-master. — Death  of  several  bishops. 
—  Importance  of  the  old  nobility. — Persecution  of  Thomas  and 
George  Fisher. — Stripped  and  Hogged. — Defence  by  the  boys. — ■ 
Laxness  of  discipline. — The  Queen  suffers  from  toothache. — 
Aylmer  sacrifices  himself. — -Elizabeth's  Progresses. — She  visits  the 
East  of  England. — Outrageous  treatment  of  Rookwood. — Beggars 
abound. — Character  of  the  parish  churches. — Beauty  and  power 
of  the  Old  Faith. — Charity  of  our  Catholic  ancestors. — Seventy- 
two  priests  banished. — The  "declining  in  religion." — Remedies 
for  the  same. — Sir  Francis  Walsingham's  cure. — Father  Sherwin's 
constancy. — Various  tortures  inflicted. — Father  Brian  tortured. — • 
Mysterious  and  supernatural  tokens. — Misbelief  and  unbelief. — - 
The  Cross  of  St.  Donat's. — Inquiry  concerning  it. — Prophecy  of 
the  Great  Rebellion. — Gaol-plague  at  Oxford. — Case  of  Roland 
Jenks  the  bookseller. — His  trial  and  unjust  condemnation. — 
Numbers  die  suddenly. — A  judge's  blooded  hand. — Education 
in  the  religious  houses.— Low  state  of  education. — Grammar 
schools  founded. — Placed  under  the  bishops. — Good  position  of 
the  schoolmasters. — The  case  of  William  Carter.— Hammond  and 
Kett  burnt  at  the  stake. — Dr.  Allen's  publications. — New  Acts  of 
Parliament  passed. — Whittingham,  Dean  of  Durham. —  Sandys 
and  Ilutton  disagree. — Foreign  Protestant  orders  recognised. — ■ 
The  case  of  Travers. — Richard  Hooker  at  the  Temple. ^ — Arch- 
bishop W'hitgift's  action. — State  of  morals  in  London. — The 
Bishops'  Visitation  Articles. — Frightful  state  of  the  New  Church. 
— Blasphemy  and  absurdity  rampant,  .  .  /''^'-'■^  200-230 


CHAPTER  VIII. 

Some  account  of  Edmund  Grindal.  —  He  declines  to  put  down  "pro- 
phesyings." — Case  of  Mrs.  Anne  Landers. — State  of  the  fabrics  of 
the  churches. — Churchyards  neglected  and  unenclosed. — Number 
of  churches  pulled  down. — The  case  of  Mary,  Queen  of  Scots. — 
Her  relation  to  the  English  crown. — Jealousy  of  foreign  inter- 
ference.—  Her  treatment  by  lilizabeth. — "  Babington's  plot." — ■ 
Spies,  counterfeiters,  and  forgers. — Seven  gentlemen  executed. — 


CONTENTS.  XXXvii 

Leicester  proposes  poison.— Trial  at  Fotheringhay.— A  twofold 
charge  made.— Trickery  and  forgery  adopted.— The  Queen  found 
guilty.— Elizabeth's  reluctance  to  act.  -Hesitates  to  commit 
murder.— But    suggests   assassination.— The    bishops   and    peers 

seek    Mary's    death.- Elizabeth's    insincerity    and    hypocrisy. 

Queen  Mary  learns  her  fate.— Her  dying  requests.— The  King"  of 
France  intervenes.— Poulet  declines  to  become  an  assassin.— Ihe 
Earl  of  Kent's  insolence.— Queen  Mary's  last  night  on  earth.— 
Affection  for  her  of  her  servants.  — Her  maids-of-waiting  denied 
her.— Preparations  for  her  death.— Sir  Amias  Poulet's  last  service. 
—Queen  Mary's  last  public  words.— The  Dean  of  Peterborough 
preaches.— Her  dying  prayer.— She  is  led  to  the  block  and 
murdered.— Her  burial  and  subsequent  removal- Indignation  of 
Catholic  Europe.  —Davison  sacrificed.  —Lord  Stourton  and  Father 
Cornelius. — Vision  of  Father  Cornelius.— The  case  of  Margaret 
Clitheroe.— Accusation  and  trial.— L-reverent  buffoons  in  court.— 
Her  firmness  and  fidelity.— Wigginton's  protest.— She  is  con- 
demned to  be  pressed  to  death.— Implored  to  renounce  the  Faith. 
—Day  of  her  martyrdom.— Her  inhuman  treatment.— Her  fearful 
and  final  sufferings.— Mistress  Ward  and  Mistress  Ann  Line  put 
to    death.— Walsingham    opposes     King    Philip.— Preparations 

agamst    the    Spanish    invasion.— Enthusiasm    of    the    people. 

Patriotism  of  the  Catholics.— Cardinal  Allen's  "Admonition."— 
The  Queen's  deeds  set  forth.— The  Pope  sanctions  King  Philip's 

scheme. — Failure  of  the   Armada.— Non-sacrament  ministers. 

Popularity  of  the  "  Prophesyings.  "—Their  consequences.— 
Evenmg  Communion  a  substantial  meal.  — Its  profanity. Con- 
trast between  Mass  and  the  "  Supper."— Richard  Hooker  and  his 
works.— Forms  a  new  party  in  the  Establishment.  — Lax  opinions 
concerning  ordination.— Whittingham,  King,  Alwood,  and  De 
Saravia. — De  Saravia  the  confessor  of  Hooker.— Influence  of 
Hooker's  writings,  .....  pages  231-272 
Correspondence  concerning  the   proposed  private  assassination  of 

Mary,  Queen  of  Scots,  ....  pages  272-275 


CHAPTER  IX. 

Excitement,  confusion,  and  disorder  rampant.— Insolence  of  the 
preachers.— Matrimonial  Inquisitions  objected  to.— External 
religious  rites  disused.  —  The  churches  empty.— Militant  dis- 
putation at  Breachfa.— Parishes  destitute.— Bishop  Nicholas 
Robmson.  — Churches  like  Jews'  synagogues.— Representations 
of  the  Queen  and  Her  Royal  Arms.— Her  Majesty  criticised  and 
prayed  for.— Further  "reforms"  desired.— Some  persons  Gallio- 
like  and  mdifferent.— The  gibbet  and  hangman  in  requisition.— 
Forgers,  fabricators,  and  skulks.— Nine  priests  and  ten  laymen 
executed.— Hackett,  Coppinger,  and  Arthington.— Dislike  of  the 
she-Supremacy.— More  hanging-posts  constructed.— Fresh  enact- 
ments made.— Fresh  acts  of  persecution  and  cruelty.— Absentees 
from   church   severely  punished.— The   case   of  Philip,    Earl  of 


XXXVIU  CONTENTS. 

Arundel. — His  trial. — His  cruel  treatment  by  the  Queen. — 
Subsequently  poisoned. — His  death  and  burial. — His  Countess  ill- 
treated. — Esciuire  Edward  Sulyard. — Many  gentlepeople  perse- 
cuted.— The  case  of  John  Towneley  of  Towneley,  Esquire. — The 
case  of  Esquire  Thomas  Pounde.  —  His  appearance  at  Court. — 
His  retirement  therefrom. — Complete  change  in  his  life. — Is 
charged,  imprisoned,  and  tortured. — Is  subsequently  released. — 
Again  imprisoned. — He  publishes  Campion's  "Challenge." — The 
places  of  his  imprisonment. — His  final  trial  in  the  Star  Chamber. 
• — His  life  of  devotion  and  self-denial. — The  Old  Church  and  the 
New. — Poonde  dies  at  his  old  house  of  Belmont. — Horsley 
starved,  and  eaten  by  rats. — Many  villages  depopulated. — ^John 
Ingram  suspended  by  his  wrists. — John  Pearson,  a  priest,  most 
infamously  treated. — Dickenson  and  Milner  executed. — Seven 
maiden  ladies  condemned. — Greenwood  and  Barrow  executed. — 
The  Marlin-Marprelate  Tracts. — Henry  Penry  executed. — The 
Royal  Supremacy  newly  defined. — The  Dean  of  Durham's  report. 
—  Fidelity  of  the  Catholics. — Adherents  of  the  Old  Religion. — 
Failure  and  unpopularity  of  the  New,  .  .  tages  276-306 


CHAPTER  X. 

Elizabeth's  personal  bloodthirstiness.  —  Seminary-hunting. — Heartless 
cruelty  of  the  Queen. — Fabrication  of  plots  and  false  rumours. — 
Spies,  agents,  and  falsehood-mongers. — Conjurors  and  spirit- 
seekers. — Loss  of  five  sacraments. — Vast  increase  of  superstition. 

—  Dr.  Dee's  invocations  and  conjuring. — Dee's  female  servant 
commits  suicide.  —  Popularity  of  the  occult  arts. — Lopez  the 
Queen's  physician.  —  Ferreira  and  Louis. — Three  Portuguese 
hung. — Frightful  exhibition  at  Tybourne. — Several  obscure  pre- 
lates.— Dr.  John  Whitgift. — His  boldness. — Protest  against 
further  sacrilege. — Bishop  Coldwell  of  Salisbury.  —  Neglect  of 
Confirmation. — The  question  of  Episcopacy. — Whitgift's  un- 
certain utterances. — Rebels  preaching  obedience. — The  case  of 
Robert  Southwell. — Tortured  thirteen  times. — Cruelly  used  in 
Bridewell. — Seized  and  confined  in  the  Tower.  —  His  father 
petitions  the  Queen  on  his  behalf. — Indicted  as  a  traitor. — 
Burghley's  brutality. — Southwell  denies  the  charges  made. — Con- 
demned, hung,  and  quartered. — His  devotion,  meekness,  and 
patience.  —  His  heroic  bearing  and  death. — "The  oflences  of  our 
forefathers." — The  case  of  Henry  Walpole. — Seized  in  the  North. 

—  Is  tortured  fourteen  times. — Ill-treated,  and  imprisoned.— 
Accused  of  denying  the  Supremacy. — Condemned  10  death. — 
Benedictines,  Franciscans,  and  Jesuits. — The  Queen's  general 
pardon. — Sir  John  Harington  and  the  State  bishops. — The 
"Bright  Occidental  Star." — Elizabeth's  learning. — Her  un- 
bounded vanity. — -Her  greed  of  admiration.— Her  remarkable 
indecision. — Rules  and  corrects  the  bisho])s  and  clergy. — Her 
personal  characteristics. — Peculiarity  of  her  portraits. — The 
churches   and   ministers    avoided. — "Greasing    and    patting  of 


CONTENTS.  xxxix 

pates"  despised. — Orsini,  Duke  of  Graciano. — She  is  prepared  to 
receive  him. — The  Queen  dances  before  him.— Shows  him  her 
private  chapel. — Weakness  and  paralysis  supervene. — Her  in- 
creasing ailments. — She  is  no  longer  "frolicksome." — Much 
perturbed  at  last. — Suspects  every  one  and  is  terrified. — Her 
ministers  await  her  death. — Abject  condition  of  the  wretched 
woman. — Her  confession  to  Lord  Nottingham.  —  She  dies  in  a 
state  of  insensibility. — The  world's  judgment  of  her. — Her  un- 
principled policy. — How  the  changes  under  her  were  effected. — 
Scandals  passed  over. — The  Establishment  dominated  by  Parlia- 
ment.— The  Royal  Supremacy. — The  Church  of  the  Living  God. 
— What  the  "  Homilies  "  maintained. — The  Reformation  either 
a  dire  necessity  or  a  dreadful  crime. — History  most  artfully  per- 
verted.— Destruction  of  Unity,  Order,  and  Peace. — Weakening 
of  Authority,  both  civil  and  religious. — Present  confusion. — 
Value  of  the  National  Church. — Its  position  and  importance. — ■ 
Modern  clerical  reformers.  —  The  Church  of  England's  past 
trials  and  enemies. — Changes  which  are  improvements. — Need 
of  Change.- — Corporate  Reunion  the  greatest  need  of  all. — 
Influence  of  Erastianism.  ■ —  Importance  of  discretion,  zeal,  and 
charity,     .......    pages  2,0-] -ZAS 


Appendix  No.  I.,  .  .  .  .  .  .  .  347 

Appendix  No.  II.,  ......  358 

Appendix  No.  III.,  ......  364 

Index,         ........  365 


THE    CHURCH 


QUEEN    ELIZABETH. 


CHAPTER  I. 

Henry  VIH.  had  died,  in  despair,  a  dreadful  death,  terrible  to 
have  looked  upon,  on  January  28,  1547  ;  was  buried  with  pomp 
and  ceremony  at  Windsor,  and  then  speedily  forgotten.  The 
prayers  and  masses  which,  by  his  long  and  elaborate  will,  he 
had  so  earnestly  desired  might  be  said  for  his  soul  in  perpetuity, 
were  never  said  at  all.  The  desolator  of  other  men's  graves, 
and,  worse  than  this,  of  God's  sanctuaries,  was  thus  himself  left 
desolate  and  unremembered  in  a  deserted  sanctuary  where  the 
lamps  had  been  put  out,  and  from  which  the  Adorable  Presence 
had  departed. 

Then  as  to  his  children.  Edward  VI.,  a  sickly,  fanatical,  and 
debilitated  youth,  —  bred  in  heresy,  brought  up  in  schism, 
flattered  by  those  who  ought  to  have  known  better,^  and 
pampered  with  cant ;  until,  under  such  tuition,  he  had  become 
an  offensive  and  unbearable  prig,^ — ^was  happily  removed  by  Pro- 

^  Roger  Ascham,  when  writing  to  the  Duke  of  Somerset,  in  1547,  spoke  of 
the  king  as  a  juvenile  Josiah,  a  virginal  youth,  so  pure  in  himself,  and  so 
perfect  in  the  new  gospel,  that  he  could  not  be  suspected  even  of  the  smallest 
inclination  towards,  or  attachment  for,  the  whore  of  Babylon.  On  another 
occasion  (a. D. 1550),  Cranmer  made  himself  ridiculous  by  the  following  out- 
rageous flattery,  which  he  personally  put  forth  to  Cheke,  the  young  king's 
tutor  : — "  Ah,  Master  Cheke,  you  may  be  glad  all  the  days  of  your  life  that 
you  have  such  a  scholar;  for  he  hath  more  divinity  in  his  little  finger  than 
all  we  {the  bishops)  have  in  our  bodies." — Preface  to  Foreign  Kalendar,  by  J. 
Stevenson,  p.  47. 

A 


2  THE   CHURCH    UNDER   QUEEN    ELIZABETH. 

vidence  to  another  world,  in  the  midst  of  his  Protestant  uncle's 
disreputable  and  disastrous  rule,  and  before  further  and  greater 
evils  for  the  nation  had  been  sealed. 

Queen  Mary,  King  Henry's  lawful  daughter,  did  a  noble  work 
in  restoring  to  the  Church  tithes  and  first-fruits  ;  in  bringing  back 
certain  of  the  religious  orders,  such  as  the  Benedictines  and 
Bridgetines,  to  their  old  homes ;  and  in  vainly  endeavouring  to 
stem  the  tide  of  innovation,  error,  and  profanity.  She  duly 
deposed  some  of  the  bishops,  who,  having  been  monks,  had 
broken  their  vows  of  celibacy  and  chastity— amongst  whom  were 
John  Bird  and  Robert  Holgate.^  More  especially  does  she 
merit  the  sincerest  admiration  from  all  who  believe  in  one  Body, 
one  Spirit,  and  one  Hope  of  the  Christian  calling,  for  having, 
under  lawful  authority,  visibly  reunited  desolate  England  to  the 
rest  of  Christendom  once  again.  The  service  of  reconciliation 
in  Westminster  Abbey  on  November  30th,  1554,  when  the 
Cardinal-Archbishop  of  Canterbury  solemnly  absolved  the  nation 
from  its  sin  of  schism,  was  the  public  ratification  of  a  grand  deed 
of  Christian  charity  done  in  her  reign,  which,  in  the  great  and 
terrible  day  when  all  works  are  to  be  tested,  shall  surely  be 
found  to  cover  a  multitude  of  sins ;  and  which,  even  in  our  own 
national  life  and  history,  may  yet  render  her  pleasant  name — 
"  the  sweetest  name  that  ever  woman  bore," — so  much  and  so 
unjustly  maligned,  sweet  to  the  memory  of  all  who,  notwith- 
standing divisions  in  the  sad  origin  of  which  they  had  no  share, 
still  claim  the  sacred  and  honoured  appellation  of  Catholic,  and 
are  constantly  labouring  and  praying  for  the  gift  of  visible  unity 
once  more  upon  earth. 

Queen  Mary  at  length  found  that  peace  which,  by  experience, 

^  "  We  need  not  delay  long  over  these  two  names.  Jlolgate  of  York  and 
Bird  of  Chester  were  respectively  a  Gilbertine  monk  and  a  Carmelite  friar, 
and  as  .'■uch  had,  amongst  other  vows,  taken  tlie  vow  of  celibacy.  Holgate 
married  after  he  was  ajipointed  to  \'ork,  as  he  himself  alleges,  to  please  the 
Duke  of  Somerset.  Protestants  give  him  the  character  of  being  covetous  and 
worklly-mindctl  ;  and  Burnet  admits  that  though  ho  went  along  with  Cranmer, 
who  got  him  promoted  from  Llandaff  to  York,  yet  he  was  no  credit  to  the 
Reformation.  He  has  left  little  or  nothing  by  which  his  opinions  may  be 
ascertained,  and  the  principal  thing  known  to  his  discredit  was  the  claim 
preferred  against  him  at  the  council-hoard  of  Edward  VI.,  by  one,  Norman, 
that  he  had  carried  off  his  wife.  The  Council  that  could  wink  at  Poynel's 
peccadilloes  was  not  likely  to  be  hard  upon  Holgate.  Tlicy  contented 
themsohes  with  forbiiUling  him  to  come  to  Parliament,  and  then  never 
trou tiled  their  heads  any  more  about  the  matter.  He  lived  just  long  enough 
to  be  deprived  (March  i6th,  1554)  by  Mary,  on  the  same  plea  with  Bird  of 
Ciiester  and  the  Bishops  of  .St.  David's  and  Ijristol,  viz.  that  they  had 
married." — The  Reformers  of  the  Reigns  of  Henry  VIII.  and  Edward  VI., 
Union  Rcinc-o,  vol.  viii.  p.  526.      London,  1S70. 


CHARACTER   OF   THE   LATE   QUEEN    MARY.  3 

so  many  discover  for  themselves  the  world  cannot  give,  for  she 
died  on  Thursday,  November  17,  1558,  on  which  day  Cardinal 
Reginald  Pole  went  likewise  to  his  blessed  and  well-earned 
reward.^  Of  his  Eminence,  Edwin  Sandys,  in  a  letter  to  Bullin- 
ger,  dated  20th  December  of  the  same  year,  thus  sneeringly 
wrote: — "  That  good  cardinal,  that  he  might  not  raise  any  dis- 
turbance or  impede  the  progress  of  the  gospel,  departed  this  life 
after  his  friend  Mary,  '  Maria  sua.'  Such  was  the  love  and 
harmony  between  them,  that  not  even  death  itself  could  separate 
them.  We  have  nothing,  therefore,  to  fear  from  Pole,  for  '  dead 
men  do  not  bite.'"  ^ 

This  pious  queen  has  been  often  severely  blamed  for  her 
punishment  of  heretics  ;  and  this,  not  because  she  caused  to  be 
made  new  and  exceptional  laws  to  meet  exceptional  and  unusual 
difficulties  (never  the  case),  but  because  she  could  not  and  did 
not  hinder  the  lawful  authorities  from  putting  into  execution 
very  severe  laws,  long  in  force  and  which  then  existed.  A  male- 
factor who,  in  cold  blood,  poisons  a  man  or  cuts  off  his  head  is 
even  now  righteously  hung.  Those  decreasing  few,  who  still 
believe  that  the  spirit  of  a  man  is  of  more  importance  than  his 
flesh — that  the  life  to  come  is  of  more  value  than  the  life  that 
now  is ;  that  to  poison  the  soul  is  at  least  as  heinous  a  crime  as 
to  poison  the  body — may  not,  after  all,  be  so  irrational  or 
eccentric  as  they  are  unjustly  assumed  to  be ;  if,  while  murder, 
rebellion,  and  rapine  are  still  severely  punished  by  modern  law, 
they  hold  that  treason,  heresy,  and  perjury  deservedly  received, 
under  Queen  Mary,  equally  severe  punishments. 

When  Elizabeth,  the  king's  natural  daughter  by  Anne  Boleyn, 
was  in  her  teens,  her  bearing  towards  the  other  sex  had  been, 
to  say  the  least,  unusual  and  remarkable.  Various  queer  and 
perhaps  questionable  stories  had  been  afloat  regarding  her,  some 
of  which  were  possibly  false,  and  others  probably  exaggerated. 
But  in  one  notable  case  this  was  not  so.  Her  conduct  in 
relation  to  Lord  Seymour  of  Sudeley,  the  Lord  Admiral,  a 
married  man,  in  the  highest  degree  reprehensible,  caused  very 
grave  scandal.  But  perhaps  the  chief  fault  lay  with  his  lordship, 
and  not  mainly  with  the  young  princess.  Seymour  is  believed  by 
many  to  have  contracted  a  marriage  with  Katherine  Parr,  Henry 
Vni.'s  widow,  for  convenience'  sake,  and  in  order  to  be  near 

^  There  remains  an  interesting  and  well-paintcd  portrait  of  the  cardinal,  in 
his  official  robes,  in  the  dining-hall  of  Lambeth  Palace,  with  an  older  and 
quainter  picture  in  the  State  drawing-room,  evidently  a  faithful  and  excellent 
likeness. 

-  Zitriih  Letters,  .vol.  i.  No.  2. 


4  Till'.    ("IIURCII    UNDKR    (^)UKEN    EI.IZAHKTI  I. 

Eli/,abclh,  who  resided  with,  and  was  under  tlie  care  of,  her  step- 
mother. At  the  period  in  question,  though  Ehzabeth  was  barely 
fifteen  years  of  age,  she  was  as  forward  and  precocious  in  know- 
ledge as  she  appears  to  have  been  altogether  lacking  in  feminine 
delicacy  and  maidenly  modesty.  The  familiarities  of  Lord 
Seymour  which  she  tolerated  were  simply  disgusting.  Elizabeth 
actually  allowed  him  to  enter  her  sleeping-chamber  in  his  bed- 
gown and  slippers  only,  before  she  was  out  of  bed  in  the  morning, 
and  there  to  indulge  in  acts  and  actions  gross  in  the  extreme. 
He  struck  her  with  his  palms  on  the  back  and  other  parts  of  her 
undraped  body,  and  when  she  roUickingly  rolled  about  under 
the  disordered  sheets ;  or,  hastily  slipping  out  of  bed,  laughingly 
hid  herself  behind  the  damask  curtains,  he  toyed  with  her  anew 
both  by  word  and  deed,  by  gross  innuendos,  scandalous  questions 
of  double  meaning,  and  other  indelicate  words  and  acts.  ()ueen 
Katherine  Parr,  aroused  by  jealousy,  coming  upon  them  suddenly 
one  day  at  Seymour  Place,  found  the  princess  on  her  husband's 
knees,  with  his  left  arm  round  her  waist.  On  this  she  sent  the 
])rincess  away  towards  the  close  of  the  month  of  May  1548;  but 
what  she  had  seen  and  knew,  affecting  her  mind  and  health, 
so  harassed  her,  poor  lady !  that  she  soon  afterwards  died  in 
childbirth.  This  death  happened  so  opportunely  for  the  Lord 
Admiral's  obvious  purpose  as  regards  the  princess,  that  the 
malice  of  his  enemies  at  once  attributed  the  timely  but  sudden 
decea.se  of  his  wife,  the  Lady  Katherine,  to  poison. 

During  the  latter  years  of  Mary's  reign  several  needy  and  ad- 
venturous politicians,  who,  under  Edward  VL,  had  already  risen 
by  self-assertion,  knavery,  and  craft  to  positions  of  some  influence, 
secretly  offered  their  services  to  Elizabeth.  Most  of  them  were 
of  low  birth  and  origin.  One,  Sir  William  Cecil,^  was  the  son  of 
a  well-to-do  Lincolnsliire  yeoman,  subsequently  an  inn-holder  at 
Stamford,  who,  because  of  his  youthful  good  looks,  had  been 
made  page  to  Henry  YHL  This  page's  only  son,  a  shrewd, 
cold,  and  calculating  person,  knighted  in  155 1,  but  better 
known  as  Lord  Purghley,  a  title  which  he  subsequently  received 
on  February  25,  157 1,  together  with  the  Order  of  the  Garter, 
saw  e.xactly  how  the  land  lay,  and  discovered,  as  he  imagined, 
a  fair  chance  of  further  temporal  advancement.  Educated  at 
(iray's  Inn,  he  had  been  sometime  private  secretary  to  the  Duke 
of  Somerset,  and  was  afterwards  made  that  nobleman's  "  master 

'  One  writer,  the  learned  ami  anonynums  author  of  A'cs/>o/tsio  aJ  Edicttiin 
Eliz.  Keg.,  published  at  Augsbursj  in  1592,  asserts  that  Cecil's  father  held  an 
inferior  situation  in  the  oftice  of  the  Royal  Wardrobe  ;  that  hi:;  grandfather 
kept  an  inn  at  Stamford,  and  was  afterwards  one  of  the  Royal  (uiards. 


SIR   WILLIAM    CECIL. 


of  requests."  At  that  period  he  masqueraded  as  a  zealous 
Reformer,  was  in  confidential  communication  with  the  Zwinglian 
heretics,  and  ostentatiously  declared  that  he  thirsted  for  what 
they  called  "the  pure  milk  of  the  Word,"  meaning  thereby  the 
blasphemous  glosses  and  odious  caricatures  of  Christianity  in 
which  these  repulsive  and  dangerous  people  delighted.  In  154S 
he  had  held  a  secretaryship  of  State.  On  the  timely  death  of 
Edward,  however,  like  many  others,  Cecil  at  once  changed  his 
tactics  when  Mary  became  queen.  Then,  dropping  the  heretics, 
and  having  avoided  Lady  Jane  Grey,  he  appeared  as  a  devout 
and  zealous  Catholic.  In  the  silver  and  velvet  gypcyre  at  his 
side  he  carried,  and  frequently  produced,  the  "Hours  of  Our 
Lady,"  and  muttering  his  devotions,  ostentatiously  used  his 
large-beaded  rosary.  But  Mary  was  not  to  be  taken  in  or  duped. 
Knowing  Cecil's  antecedents,  she  never  trusted  him.  To  Eliza- 
beth, however,  he  proved  to  be  welcome.  For,  passing  over  her 
natural  and  proper  advisers,  the  old  nobility  of  blood  and  good 
repute,  she  at  once  appointed  him  Lord  Treasurer  of  her  House- 
hold and  Chief  Minister  of  State.  On  the  very  day  of  her 
accession,  before  she  started  for  London,  he  had  presented  to 
her  twelve  "Minutes  of  Subjects,"  needing,  as  he  asserted,  Her 
(trace's  instant  consideration  ;  while,  four  days  afterwards,  he  was 
sworn  of  her  Privy  Council.  He  was  thus  taken  into  her  con- 
fidence. At  once  he  urged  her  to  put  away  without  delay  all 
those  who  had  occupied  places  of  influence  under  the  late  queen, 
some  of  whom  he  feared  ;  suggesting  that  their  ]jlaces  be  supplied 
by  "men  meaner  in  substance  and  younger  in  years "^ — advice 
which  she  certainly  took.  In  order  to  overawe  and  compass 
efficiently  the  degradation  of  the  Catholic  clergy,  he  suggested 
that  Her  Majesty,  striking  boldly  and  sharply,  should  promptly 
involve  them  in  the  disagreeable  meshes  of  a  pnemunire ;  while, 
on  the  other  hand,  in  order  to  terrify  the  more  rampant  and 
unscrupulous  innovators — the  communistic  Protestants  and  "  Hot 
Gospellers  " — who  threatened  to  become  a  nuisance  and  a  danger, 
he  recommended  the  immediate  enactment  of  a  sharp  law  against 
])ublic  assemblies. 

Under  his  advice  the  kingdom  was  brought  into  sore  troubles 
and  great  straits.  Under  the  plea  of  serving  his  royal  mistress 
and  benefiting  the  State,  he  pursued  with  art  so  tortuous  a 
Ijolicy  that  bribes  to  secure  supporters  of  it,  and  acts  of  cor- 
ruption and  venality  were  again  and  again  repeated.  He  care- 
fully enriched   himself,  1  ruined   his   enemies,  and   rewarded  his 

'  He  contrived  to  secure  for  himself  the  greater  part  of  the  endowments  of 
the  Abbey  of  Peterborouj;h.  which  formed  an  adequate  estate  \Nith  which  to 


6  THE   CHURCH    UNDKR   queen    ELIZABETH. 

friends.  By  his  instrumentality  true  liberty  was  banished. 
'J'here  was  no  fear  of  God  before  his  eyes;  for,  more  than  any 
other  man  then  Hving,  he  deHberately  sealed  the  irreligious 
division  between  England  and  the  rest  of  Christendom,  and  left 
our  distracted  nation  a  prey  to  every  kind  of  ambitious  and 
crooked-minded  adventurer  who  thought  fit  to  set  up  as  a 
reformer  of  religion  or  a  self-appointed  concocter  of  new  phases 
of  mischief.  In  fine,  he  was  one  of  those  keen-sighted  worthies, 
condemned  rather  than  commended  by  an  apostle,  who  think 
that  gain  is  godliness.^ 

Another  State  official  of  almost  equal  influence  to  that  wielded 
by  Cecil  was  his  fellow  Secretary  of  State,  Sir  Francis  Walsingham. 
J'or  art  in  corrupting  others,  and  skill  in  elevating  treachery  to 
the  dignity  of  a  science;  for  ability  in  planning  and  carrying  out 
forgery,  as  well  as  in  arranging  for  the  assassination  of  incon- 
venient allies  or  open  enemies,  he  was  vastly  superior  to  Cecil, 
as  will  ere  long  be  discovered ;  for  while  his  hypocrisy  was 
consummate,  his  ability  and  dexterity  were  obviously  greater, 
and  his  general  success  consequently  very  considerable.  He 
was  of  an  exceedingly  savage  nature.  It  was  evidently  a  pleasure 
to  him,  however  strange,  to  inflict  personal  cruelty  upon  any 
supposed  enemy  who  might  chance  to  be  in  his  power.  When 
l)risoners  of  the  old  faith,  later  on,  were  brought  before  him  in 
his  judicial  capacity,  or  for  due  and  careful  examination,  he 
would  sometimes  kick  and  cuff  them  in  a  passion,  or  strike  them 
heavily  with  his  staff;  while,  if  they  hesitated  to  convict  them- 
selves, the  numerous  rude  epithets  he  made  use  of  were  frequently 
disgusting,  and  his  oaths  equalled  in  coarseness,  though  in 
repulsiveness  rarely  surpassed,  those  which  so  frequently  glided 
glibly  off  the  compressed  and  pursed-up  lips  of  his  royal  mistress. 

Such  tools,  tactics,  and  events  served  once  more  and  anew  to 
j)oint  out  to  the  educated  and  more  thoughtful  how  true  was 
Plato's  expressive  saying  of  old,-  that  free  nations  have  seldom 
lost  their  liberties  by  concjuest,  but  chiefly  at  the  hands  of  low- 
born and  unscrupulous  men  who  have  ridden  into  i)ower  upon 
the  tumultuous  waves  of  pojjular  ])assion. 

The  queen,  being  present  at  the   Bishop  of  Carlisle's  mass, 

support  his  new  dignity  of  a  peer,  wliicli  later  on  he  received.  But  lie  was 
not  content  with  these,  for,  as  Dr.  I'eter  Heylyn  wrote — "During  the 
vacancy  of  the  .See  of  Norwich,  and  during  his  (Dr.  Scamhler's)  incumbency, 
Sir  William  Cecil,  Principal  Secretary  of  State,  possessed  himself  of  the  best 
manors  in  the  Soke,  which  belonged  to  it ;  and  for  his  (the  bishop's^  readi- 
ness to  confirm  them  to  him,  he  preferred  him  to  the  See  of  Norwich." 

'  I  Tim.  vi.  5. 

-  Blato's  Rcpid'lic,  viii.  562  ;  sec.  99. 


HER   OFFICE   OF   SPIRITUAL    HEAD.  7 

soon  after  her  accession, — on  Christmas  morning,  as  some  assert, 
and  while  the  cantors  of  her  chapel  were  singing  the  Gloiia  in 
excelsis  at  their  lectern, — sent  a  messenger  to  his  lordship  within 
the  sanctuary  peremptorily  forbidding  him  to  elevate  the 
Host.^  Eut  Oglethorpe  replied  that,  as  it  was  the  unvarying 
rule  of  the  Catholic  Church  for  all  priests  to  do  so,  he  must 
ask  Her  Majesty's  permission  to  allow  him  to  conform.  Upon 
this,  before  the  gospel,  and  at  once,  without  further  parley,  she 
rose  from  her  fald-stool,  biting  her  thin  lips  in  anger,  and,  motion- 
ing her  attendants  to  follow,  re-clasped  her  book  of  devotions, 
stamped  vigorously  on  the  floor,  and  thus  hastily  departed. 
This  incident,  obviously  pre-arranged,  was  much  discussed  and 
commented  upon  by  many.     The  bishops  duly  noted  it. 

On  the  27th  of  December,  at  Cecils  instigation,  exercising 
her  assumed  office  of  Supreme  Spiritual  Head  of  the  Church 
of  England,  she  issued  a  proclamation  througliout  both  the 
jirovinces  of  Canterbury  and  York,  formally  and  distinctly 
forbidding  any  elevation  of  the  Blessed  Sacrament  by  any  of 
her  priests.  Her  chaplain,  Minter,  saying  mass  in  her  presence 
on  the  morning  of  the  same  day,  duly  and  dutifully  observed  his 
sovereign's  commands.-  In  the  same  proclamation — as  a 
temporary  makeshift,  until  the  old  and  sacred  rites  brought 
l)ack  under  Queen  Mary  were  again  abolished  by  parliamentary 
authority— the  Supreme  Governess  graciously  permitted  the 
Creed,  the  Lord's  Prayer,  and  the  Ten  Commandments,  as  well 
as  the  Litany,  to  be  said  or  sung  in  the  vulgar  tongue. 

At  Sandwich,  Dover,  and  Canterbury  the  Protestant  exiles, 
having  realised  the  new  situation,  arrived  in  force  and  high 
spirits,  and  were  noisy  and  triumphant  in  their  bearing.  If 
Jewell  may  be  trusted,  the  queen  was  extremely  gratified  by 
their  return,  and  expressed  her  satisfaction.^  Afterwards,  how- 
ever. Her  Highness    had  some  reason    for  somewhat  changing 

'  "  Nothing,  however,  has  yet  been  publicly  determined  with  respect  to  the 
abolishing  popish  superstition,  and  the  re-establiahment  of  the  Christian 
religion.  Ihere  is,  however,  a  general  expectation  that  all  rites  and  cere- 
monies will  shortly  be  reformed  by  our  faithful  citizens  and  other  godly  men 
in  the  afore-mentioned  Parliament,  either  after  the  pattern  which  was  lately 
in  use  in  the  time  of  King  Edward  the  .Sixth,  or  which  is  set  forth  by  the 
Protestant  princes  of  Germany  in  the  above-named  Confession  of  Augsburg." 
— Richard  Hilles  to  Bullinger,  dated  Februaiy  28,  1559,  Zurich  Letters,  2nd 
series,  No.  7. 

-  LaJerchiiis,  iii.  p.  204,  and  Tierney's  edition  of  Dod's  Chiurh  History, 
vol.  ii.  p.  124. 

^  *' We  hear  that  their  return  was  very  acceptable  to  the  queen,  and  that 
she  openly  declared  her  satisfaction."— Letter  from  John  Jewell  to  Peter 
Martyr,  dated  January  26,  1559,  Zurich  Letters,  vol.  i.  No.  3. 


8  THK   CHURCH    UNDER   QUKEX    ELIZABETH. 

lier  mind  concerning  the  value  of  their  presence  and  labours. 
Some  of  them,  in  their  enthusiasm  at  her  accession,  made  a 
disturbance  during  mass  in  the  parish  church  of  Dover,  hurling 
a  missal  ^  during  the  elevation  at  the  head  of  the  celebrant, 
whom  they  termed  "a  cursed  popish  dog,"  "a  shaveling,"  "an 
antichrist,"  and  an  "  idol-smacker." - 

Without  authority,  the  Zwinglian  service-book  of  Edward  VI. 
was  again  brought  into  requisition  in  several  places.  Legally- 
instituted  clergy  were  hooted  at,  spat  upon,  and  persecuted  : 
so  that  in  some  places  they  were  unable  to  minister  in  public. 
Several  images  of  our  Divine  Dord,  His  Blessed  Mother,  and 
the  Saints  were  violently  wrenched  down  from  the  rood  screens 
and  treated  with  obscene  indignities.  At  Canterbury,  as  a 
deliberate  act  of  contempt,  a  holy-oil  stock  was  emjitied  of  its 
sacred  contents,  in  order  to  grease  the  creaking  wheels  of  a 
wainman's  cart,  which  had  come  in  from  the  adjacent  village  of 
Harbledown.  At  Brentford,  at  the  same  time,  an  indignity  too 
disgusting  for  words  was  perpetrated  in  the  font  of  the  parish 
church  by  one  of  the  new  gospellers,  as  a  practical  protest  against 
the  religion  of  Bede,  St.  Anselm,  and  Sir  Thomas  More.  The 
Babel  voices  of  noisy  controversialists,'^  young  as  well  as  old, 
everywhere  rose  anew ;  while  furious  preachers,  with  screaming 
voices  and  deep  maledictions  for  their  opponents,  went  so  far 
in  creating  serious  riots,'*  at  Oxford,  Newark,  and  Chichester,  as 
that  the  existing  authorities  of  those  places  had  to  step  in  and 
keep  the  peace  by  armed  force,  amongst  these  energetic  evangelists 
of  "another  gospel  which  is  not  another." 

During  Edward's  reign,  or  possibly  later,  Jonn  Knox,  the  so- 

'  .Some  writers  say  it  was  a  breviary.  But  as  it  was  taken  off  the  cushion 
iin  a  side  altar,  it  was  most  probably  a  missal. 

-"Ape  of  antichrist,"  "mass-monger,"  "Balaamite,"  "abbey-lubber," 
were  some  of  the  other  choice  names  given  to  those  who  clung  to  the  ancient 
faith.  I  have  gatheretl  both  these  and  those  in  the  text  above  from  the  MS. 
correspondence  and  Protestant  literature  of  the  day. 

•*  "  They  held  arguments  also  among  themselves  about  the  meaning  of 
various  Scripture  texts,  all  of  them,  men  and  women,  girls  and  boys,  labourers, 
workmen,  and  simpletons  ;  and  these  discussions  were  often  wont,  as  it  was 
said,  to  produce  quarrels  and  fights." — Life  of  IVil/iam  ll'istoit,"  p.  241. 
London,  1875. 

*  "On  the  other  (the  Protestant)  side  many  were  raised  to  great  prefer- 
ments, who,  having  spent  their  time  of  exile  in  such  foreign  Churches  as 
followed  the  platform  of  Geneva,  returned  so  disaffected  to  episcopal 
government  with  the  rites  and  ceremonies  here  by  law  established,  as  not 
long  after  filled  the  Church  with  most  sad  disorders  ;  not  only  to  the 
breaking  of  the  bond  of  peace,  but  to  the  grieving  and  extinguishing  the 
spirit  of  unity." — T/ie  History  of  Queen  Elizabeth,  by  Peter  Heylyn,  p.  115. 
J-ondon,  1671. 


JOHN  KNOX  ON  QUEEN  MARY  TUDOR.        9 

called  "Reformer,"  had  written  a  treatise  ^  in  his  vigorous  but 
coarse  and  illogical  style,  indirectly  aimed  at  Mary  Tudor, 
directly  at  Mary  Stuart,  maintaining  that  the  rule  of  a  woman 
was  "repugnant  to  nature,  a  contumely  to  God,  a  thing  most 
contrarious  to  His  revealed  will  and  approved  ordinances,  and 
finally  the  subversion  of  all  equity  and  justice."  Elizabeth,  of 
course,  knew  of  this  treatise,  which  is  a  wonderful  production 
for  its  sanctimonious  language,  but  did  not  at  all  appreciate 
either  its  logic  or  rhetoric.  John  Knox,  when  brought  into 
communication  with  her,  overcame  the  difficulty  not  by  giving 
up  his  principle,  but  by  boldly  maintaining  that  the  queen  was 
a  remarkable  and  obvious  exception  to  the  general  rule.  Her 
whole  life,  he  pointed  out  in  writing,  had  been  so  blessed  and 
favoured  by  God  Almighty,  she  was  so  overflowing  with  grace, 
she  had  been  so  evidently  elected  by  Him,  and  specially  pre- 
served for  His  chosen  people,  that  what  was  unlawful  and 
unnatural  in  all  other  women  was  perfectly  lawful  and  even 
desirable  in  her.  This  appeared  to  satisfy  her  temporarily, 
though  it  is  more  than  prolDable,  as  Sir  William  Throckmorton 
pointed  out,  that  the  political  services  of  Knox  were  still  required, 
and  therefore  that  his  printed  insults  should  be  overlooked  : — 
"Considering  what  Knockes  is  hable  to  doo  in  Scotlande, 
which  is  verie  muche,  all  this  turmoil  there  being  stirred  up  as 
it  is,  it  shuld  stande  your  Majestic  instead  (if)  his  former  faultes 
were  forgotten." 

Before  determining  the  exact  day  for  her  coronation,  the 
queen  sent  her  favourite,  Robert  Dudley,  to  consult  the  well- 
known  and  notorious  necromancer  and  astrologer.  Dr.  Dee,'^  to 

^  A  First  Blaste  of  the  Trmnpett  against  llie  Mojistroits  Kegmen  of  ivomcii, 
by  John  Knox. 

^  Vide  Godwin's  Life  of  Dr.  Dee,  in  loco.  This  also  is  clear  from  the 
actual  entries  in  Dr.  Dee's  Diary  and  writings,  from  which  the  following  is 
taken  :  — "  Her  Majestie  refused  to  come  in  ;  but  willed  to  fetch  my  glass 
so  famous,  and  to  show  her  some  of  the  properties  of  it,  which  I  did :  her 
Majestie  being  taken  down  from  her  horse  by  the  Earle  of  Leicester,  Master 
of  the  Horse,  at  the  church  wall  of  Mortlake,  did  see  some  of  the  properties 
of  that  glas-e,  to  Her  Majestie's  great  contentment  and  delight." — Dr.  Dee's 
Co)npe7idioits  Memorial,  p.  516.  When  Lord  Leicester  and  Lord  Laskey 
dined  with  Dee  (a.D.  1583),  he  was  not  sufficiently  well  off  to  provide  a 
suitable  repast,  so  the  queen,  who  was  at  Sion  House,  hearing  of  it,  sent 
him  "forty  angels  of  gold."  Li  1592  Mr.  Thomas  George  brought  him  "an 
hundred  marks  from  Her  Majestie."  "  1577.  Nov.  22nd,  I  rod  to  Windsor 
to  the  Q.  Majestie.  Nov.  25th,  I  spake  with  the  Queue  liora  qidnta.  Nov. 
28th,  I  spake  with  the  Quene  iiora  qiiinta.  I  spake  with  Mr.  Secretary 
Walsingham  "  (Ashmole  asserts  that  this  person  was  one  of  Dee's  greatest 
patrons).  .  .  ,  "1578.  Oct.  8th,  the  Quene's  Majesty  had  conference  with 
meat  Richemond  inter  g  et  11.   .   .   .    1580.     The  Quene's  Majestie,  to  my 


lO  THK    CHURCH    UNDKR    QUEKN    ELIZAHKTir. 

whom  Her  Majesty,  havinL,^  privately  renounced  the  sacrament 
of  penance  and  its  competent  ministers,  often  went  for  advice, 
and  with  whom  she  held  close  conversations, — a  notable  case  of 
degeneracy  ;  proving  that,  when  the  Christian  faith  in  its  integrity 
is  mutilated  by  choice  or  cast  aside,  gross  superstition  often  takes 
its  place.  Dr.  Dee  then  dwelt  at  a  small  house,  close  to  the 
water  side  and  no  great  distance  from  the  parish  church  of 
Mortlake.^  On  her  personal  application,  through  Dudley,  Dr. 
Dee  informed  her  that  Sunday,  the  15th  of  January,  was  un- 
doubtedly a  lucky  day ;  and  so,  with  the  sanction  of  her  Council, 
the  ceremony  was  appointed  to  be  then  performed. 

On  Thursday,  the  12th,  Her  Majesty  consequently  proceeded 
from  Westminster  to  the  Tower  preparatory  to  the  grand  and 
customary  "procession  of  recognition." 

On  the  14th  of  January,  leaving  the  Tower  about  two  o'clock 
in  the  afternoon,  the  queen  passed  through  the  city  back  to 
Westminster,  according  to  ancient  precedent.  Her  coach, 
covered  with  crimson  velvet,  and  richly  caparisoned  horses, 
was  surrounded  by  a  well-ordered  cavalcade  of  State  officers 
and  attendants,  all  magnificently  attired.  Eight  knights  bore  a 
broad  canopy  of  cloth  of  gold  over  her.  She  was  almost  every- 
where greeted  with  acclamations  by  the  curious  and  interested 
crowds  which  thronged  Cheapside  and  Fleet  Street,  or  ranged 
themselves  in  front  of  the  mansions  of  the  nobility  in  the  Strand. 
IJefore  she  started,  her  ladies-in-waiting  heard  her  piously  and 
complacently  compare  herself  to  Daniel  delivered  from  the  den 
of  lions,  and  thank  Cxod  out  loud  for  His  providential  care  of 
her.2 

The  rich  decorations  in  Fenchurch  and  Gracechurch  Streets 
were  continuous.  Triumphal  arches  w^ith  complimentary  alle- 
gorical representations,  which  were  supposed  to  be  explained  by 
the  recitation  of  wordy  verses,  were  the  scenes  of  much  applause 
from  dense  crowds.  In  Cheapside,  a  stage  had  been  erected 
and  adorned,  where  eight  little  children  personified  the  Beati- 
tudes, and  expressed  a  hope,  in  rugged  but  honest  verse,  that 
God  would  make  the  queen  strong  and  bestow  upon  her  His 
blessing. 

This  part  of  the  city  was  decorated  with  sumjjtuousness  and 
taste.     Here  the  rich  mercers  dwelt  in  quaint  and  picturescjue 

great  comfort  [horn  qninla),  came  with  her  trayn  from  the  court,  and  at  my 
(lore  graciously  callmg  me  to  her  on  horseback." — Dr.  John  Dees  Diary. 
Camden  Society.      London,  1842. 

'  MSS.  Ashmol.    No.  17S8.  fol.   149. 

*  Holinbhed's  C/iro nicks,  vol.  ii.  p.  17S7,  etc. 


HER   FORMAL   CORONATION.  II 

gabled  houses,  one  storey  overhanging  another  ;  all  the  walls 
and  windows  of  which  were  tastefully  adorned  with  carpets, 
costly  hangings,  streamers,  banners,  and  tapestries;  and  from 
which  crowds  in  holiday  attire  looked  down  with  smiles  and 
greetings  upon  the  moving  pageant.  Here,  too,  the  city 
authorities,  who  had  been  efficiently  stirred  up  to  do  their  duty 
by  Cecil,  had  gathered  in  their  picturesque  and  effective  official 
dresses — before  vulgarity  was  rampant  and  good  taste  had  quite 
decayed — headed  by  the  Recorder,  Sir  Ranulph  Cholmely,  who, 
in  the  name  of  the  Lord  Mayor  and  citizens,  offered  Her 
Majesty  as  their  gift  a  crimson  satin  purse  containing  a  thousand 
marks  in  gold.  This  was  graciously  accepted,  and  Elizabeth 
then  promised  to  be  a  good  queen  to  all  her  people — a  promise 
that  was  certainly  not  kept  for  any  length  of  time. 

A  halt  was  made,  by  previous  appointment,  at  a  triumphal 
arch  near  St.  Paul's,  where  in  the  cold  January  air  a  female 
child,  'half-draped,  in  accordance  with  the  revived  paganism  of 
that  day,  and  let  down  by  silken  cords  from  above,  came  forward 
with  rehearsed  grimaces  and  exaggerated  genuflections  to  present 
Her  Majesty  with  a  large  early  cojjy  of  the  mistranslated  Geneva 
Bible  with  its  wordy  preface  and  Calvinistic  notes. 

This  questionable  present  she  graciously  received  with  bows 
and  other  acknowledgments  ;  and  then,  ostentatiously  ])lacing 
it  to  her  heart,  acknowledged,  with  condescending  smiles,  the 
boisterous  applause  of  Cecil's  creatures — placed  there  to  close 
this  impressive  incident  in  a  prearranged  drama. 

As  the  procession  took  its  way  along  the  Strand  westwards, 
the  Tower  guns  were  heard  booming  in  the  distance.  Darkness 
soon  overspread  the  city,  and  the  stars  came  out.  Her  Majesty 
rested  that  night  in  the  palace  at  Whitehall,  and  prepared  herself 
for  the  solemnities  of  the  morrow. 

The  queen,  as  will  be  seen,  was  crowned  at  Westminster  by 
Oglethorpe,  Bishop  of  Carlisle.  It  seems  more  than  probable 
that  up  to  the  latest  hours  of  the  previous  Saturday  evening, 
though  several  prelates  had  been  tampered  with  and  tested,  no 
bishop  1  could  be  thoroughly  relied  upon  to  perform  the  act; 
for,  early  on  Sunday  morning,  it  became  necessary  to  hastily 
borrow  from  Bonner,  the  Bishop  of  London,  suitable  episcopal 
vestments  for  the  officiating  ])relate.  This  necessary  part  of  the 
solemnity,  therefore,  could    hardly  have   been    finally  arranged 

1  In  an  existing  record  of  the  coronation  in  the  Ashmolean  MSS.  now  in 
the  Bodleian  Library  at  Oxford,  other  bishops  are  mentioned  as  being  present. 
If  so,  these  were  no  doubt  those  guihy  of  treasonable  acts  and  heresy,  who 
had  gone  abroad  in  Mary's  reijn,  and  had  now  hastily  returned. 


12  THE   CHURCH    UNDER    QUEEN    ELIZABETH. 

until  the  small  hours  of  the  night.  Oglethorpe,  after  great 
])ersuasion,  had  consented  ;  but  he  stood  alone,  and  very  soon 
repented  him  of  his  act  and  deed.  In  the  Abbey  there  remained, 
as  there  still  remains,  an  old  literary  treasure,  the  Liber  Regalis^ 
possibly  used  at  the  coronation  of  Richard  II.  and  his  cjueen, 
containing  Ordo  cotisccrandi  /eginafn  solain^  which,  after  it  had 
been  inspected  by  Sir  William  Cecil, — five  of  whose  MS.  notes 
may  still  be  read  on  its  thick  vellum  folios — was  by  him  approved 
and  made  use  of  by  Oglethorpe  in  the  ceremony.^  This  book, 
the  copy  of  an  office  of  the  fourteenth  century,  with  special 
rubrics  applicable  to  the  coronation  of  kings  and  queens  in  the 
Benedictine  Abbey  of  Westminster,  was  no  doubt  prepared  for 
the  actual  use  of  the  officiating  prelate  on  such  occasions. 

The  Abbey  Church,  where  most  the  Catholic  ornamenta  re- 
mained, had  been  arranged  for  the  ceremony  in  accordance  with 
recognised  tradition  ;  though,  on  account  of  the  exhausted  state 
of  the  Treasury,  the  ceremonial  was  shorn  of  some  of  its  ancient 
splendour.  Early  in  the  morning  the  queen  came  in  the  royal 
barge  from  Whitehall  to  Westminster,  where  the  populace,  and 
specially  the  Protestant  and  Reforming  part  of  it,  had  gathered 
to  greet  her  with  acclamations  and  applause. 

She  was  met  in  Westminster  Hall  by  the  Bishop  of  Carlisle, 
vested  in  cope  and  mitre,  and  bearing  a  pastoral  staff;  while 
other  inferior  clergy,  in  surplices  and  copes,  were  in  attendance. 
But  none  of  the  diocesan  bishops,  who  were  in  canonical  and 
lawful  possession  of  their  Sees,  were  present.  One  and  all,  save 
Oglethorpe,  deliberately  and  intentionally  stayed  away.  The 
choristers  and  clerks  of  the  Royal  Chapel,  in  scarlet  cassocks  and 
lawn  rochets,  were  there  to  do  their  part,  and  a  large  cross  of 
silver-gilt  was  carried  at  the  head  of  the  procession.  All  the 
high  officers  of  State  were  in  attendance,  while  a  canopy  of  cloth 
of  gold  was  borne  over  the  queen  as  she  walked  with  state  and 
dignity  from  Westminster  Hall  to  the  Abbey,  along  an  appointed 
pathway  railed  in  and  spread  with  blue  cloth  powdered  with 
conventional  roses. 

Within  the  Abbey,  which  was  crowded,  some  of  the  Benedic- 
tine monks  looking  down  upon  the  gay  scene  from  the  southern 
triforium  of  the  choir,  as  Father  Seigebert  Bulkeley  mentioned, 
all  the  detailed  rites  of  the  Liber  Begalis  were  duly  observed — 
the  Recognition,  the  Proclamation,  the  customary  Offerings,  the 

1  "  Liber  Regalis,  sen  Ordo  consecrandi  Regem  solum  :  Oido  consecrandi 
reginam  cum  Rege  :  Ordo  consecrandi  rcginam  solam.  Rubrica  de  Regiis 
exequiis,  e  codice  West-monasteriensi  Editus."  — Printed  for  the  Roxburgh 
Club  (at  the  cost  of  Fredeiici<,  Earl  Beauchamp).      London,  1870. 


THE   OATH   AND   ANOINTING.  I  3 

Oalli,  and  the  Unction. ^  Every  step  was  duly  taken  in  accord- 
ance with  precedent,  as  Cecil  had  enjoined  should  be  the 
case,  and  nothing  essential  or  important  seems  to  have  been 
omitted. 

The  Oath,  the  Unction,  and  the  actual  rite  of  Consecration 
were,  of  course,  details  in  the  sacred  service  of  the  most  essential 
and  important  public  character — ^and  were  seen  and  acknow- 
ledged so  to  be,  as  well  by  those  who  favoured  the  old, 
as  by  those  who  were  secretly  promoting  the  advance  of  the  new, 
religion. 

On  this  occasion,  by  the  advice  of  Cecil  and  her  new  coun- 
cillors, and  in  order  to  secure  to  herself  the  crown  without 
danger  of  subsequent  question  or  dispute,  the  queen  had  been 
carefully  advised  to  dissemble  falsely,  in  God's  own  house  and 
presence,  to  swear  and  forswear,  to  appear  to  be  what  she 
certainly  was  not,  and  to  seem  to  believe  in  that  which  she  had 
privately  resolved  to  set  aside.  Within  a  few  feet  of  the  shrine 
and  sacred  relics  of  St.  Edward,  our  saintly  confessor,  she  openly 
took  the  usual  solemn  and  sacred  oath  of  Christian  kings,"  when 
it  was  tendered  her,  kissing  thereupon  the  precious  text  of  the 
Holy  Gospels,  and,  in  sight  of  peers  and  people,  promising 
thereby  to  defend  the  Catholic  religion,  and  to  guard  faithfully 
the  rights  and  immunities  of  God's  Holy  Church,  as  all  the 
previous  monarchs  from  the  days  of  St.  Edward  had  each  done. 
The  bystanding  peers  heard  her  repeat  the  solemn  words,  and 
saw  her  do  the  appointed  acts.  Any  honest  "  Reformers,"  so 
called — and  some  were  certainly  present — must  surely  have  been 
ashamed  of  the  oath  she  then  took,  for  they  well  enough  knew 
that  she  had  no  intention  of  keeping  it,  though  not  one  of  them 
is  known  to  have  publicly  protested  against  such  an  immoral 
method. 

At  the  appointed  time  Elizabeth  withdrew  with  her  ladies-in- 
waiting  to  be  prepared  for  the  act  of  anointing.  This  was  done 
on  forehead,  breast,   and  hands,   as  usual ;   though  the  queen 

^  "  In  Nomine  Patris,"  etc.  "  Prosit  tibi  ha?c  unctio  olei  in  honorem  et 
confirmationem  ceternam  in  scecula  sivcuiorum.  Amen." — Liher  Kegalis,  in 
loco. 

-  Miss  Strickland  thus  attempts  to  defend  this  act : — "  It  is  our  duty  to  our 
subject  to  suggest,  as  her  defence  from  the  horrid  appearance  of  wilful 
perjury,  that  it  is  possible  she  meant  at  that  time  to  model  the  Reformed 
Church  she  projected,  and  for  which  she  challenged  the  appellati(jn  of 
Catholic,  as  near  as  possible  to  the  Anglo-Saxon  Q\mxq}sx." —Lives  of  the 
Queens  of  England,  vol.  vi.  p.  164.  London,  1884.  Upon  which  defence 
the  only  remark  that  need  be  made  is,  that,  as  far  as  ordinary  research  has 
enlightened  us,  perjury  is  not  known  to  have  been  an  authorised  practice  of 
the  Anglo-Saxon  Church. 


14  T[IE   CHURCH    UNDER   QUEEN    ELIZABETH. 

does  not  appear  to  have  much  Hked  the  ceremony,  for,  on 
retiring  again  for  a  few  moments  afterwards,  she,  with  unpardon- 
able levity,  observed  to  one  of  her  personal  attendants  that  the 
oil  was  stinking,^  and  that  she  had  "  much  misHked  the  greasing." 

When  she  returned  to  the  space  before  the  high  altar,  she 
was  found  arrayed  in  a  mantle  of  cloth  of  gold  and  ermine  :  she 
was  then  ceremonially  girt  with  a  sword,  endued  with  the 
arinillinn  and  solemnly  crowned.  The  coronation  ring  was  put 
on  the  accustomed  finger :  -  in  her  right  hand  was  placed  the 
sceptre,  in  her  left  the  orb.  After  this  the  officiating  prelate 
first  did  homage,  followed  in  order  by  the  peers, ^  and  then 
solemn  high  mass  was  continued.  All  the  ancient  rites  of  the 
Salisbury  missal  were  scrupulously  observed,  save  that  the 
Epistle  and  Gospel  were  sung  in  English  as  well  as  in  Latin, 
and  there  was  no  elevation  of  the  Sacred  Host.'*  At  the 
offertory  the  three  State  swords  were  offered,  with  other  customary 
oblations.  Her  Majesty,  kneeling  at  her  fald-stool,  communicated 
under  one  kind,  received  the  pax  with  apparent  devotion  \  and 
so,  in  due  course,  the  sacrifice  was  ended,  and  the  coronation 
service  completed. 

It  had  long  been  a  custom  for  English  monarchs  on  the 
occasion  of  their  coronation  to  release  certain  prisoners. 
Elizabeth,  on  the  morning  afterwards,  making  no  exception  to 
the  rule,  did  the  same,  in  the  presence  of  her  Court.  At  the 
close  of  the  proceedings,  one  of  the  courtiers,  who  had  duly 
rehearsed  the  farce  beforehand,  came  forward,  with  the  accus- 
tomed genuflections  and  bows,  and  in  a  loud  voice,  but  keeping 
his  countenance  effectually,  implored  the  queen  that  four  or 
five  more  prisoners  might  be  graciously  released.  Her  Majesty 
inquired  their  names. 

'  "  She  was  also  anointed,  but  she  disliked  the  ceremony  and  ridiculed  it  ; 
for  when  she  withdrew,  accordinsj  to  the  custom,  to  put  on  the  royal  gar- 
ments, it  is  reported  that  she  said  to  the  noble  ladies  in  attendance  upon  her, 
'Away  with  you,  the  oil  is  stinking.'" — Edward  Rishton's  Conliniiaiion  of 
Sanders  History,  edited  by  David  Lewis,  M.A.,  p.  243.  London,  1S77. 
Good  Ne7vs  from  London,  pp.  65,  66.  Printed  at  the  Sign  of  the  Swan. 
London,  1675. 

-  Vide  diber  Kegalis,  pp.  33-35.     Ed.  London,  1S70. 

•*  Miss  .Strickland,  in  her  f.ife  of  Queen  Elizabeth  (vol.  vi.  p.  168),  remarks 
that  the  issue  of  the  Bull  of  Pope  P.aul  IV.,  dated  12th  January  1558-9, 
"  declaring  heretical  sovereigns  incapable  of  reigning  .  .  .  did  not  deprive 
her  of  the  allegiance  of  her  Catholic  peers,  all  of  whom  paiil  their  liege 
homage  to  her,"  failed  to  note  ihat  as  the  coronation  took  place  only  three 
days  after  the  time  of  its  promulgation,  the  Bull  could  not  possibly  have 
reached  England  or  become  known  to  the  peers  in  question. 

■*  Opinions  and  accounts  differ  on  this  point,  though  testimony  for  the 
statement  in  the  text  predominates. 


NEW   PEERS   ELECTED.  I  5 

"  Matthew,  Mark,  Luke,  and  John,  the  four  Evangelists,  and 
the  Apostle  Paul,"  was  the  immediate  retort.  "These  men, 
most  dread  sovereign,  have  been,  as  it  were,  so  closely  shut  up 
in  the  prison  of  an  unknown  tongue,  that  until  released  they 
cannot  converse  with  the  Lord's  people." 

As  Bacon  has  recorded,  the  queen  answeredgravely  :  "It  is 
first  best  to  inquire  of  them  whether  they  themselves  approve 
of  being  released  or  not." 

This  incident  was  spoken  of  in  public  and  commented  on  by 
the  preachers  from  the  Continent. 

On  the  13th  January  1558-1559,  five  new  peers  were  created, 
viz.  William  Parr,  a  Lancashire  nobleman,  restored  to  his  title 
of  Marquis  of  Northampton ;  Edward  Seymour,  made  Earl  of 
Hertford ;  Thomas  Howard,  son  of  the  late  Duke  of  Norfolk, 
made  Viscount  Howard  of  Bindon,  in  Dorsetshire  ;  Sir  Oliver  St. 
John,  made  Lord  St.  John  of  Bletsoe ;  and  the  Lady  Mary 
Boleyn's  son.  Sir  Henry  Carey,  created  Baron  Hunsdon.  All 
these  belonged  to  the  innovating,  or,  as  some  term  it,  the 
"  Reforming  "  party.  The  Court,  under  Cecil's  advice,  resolved 
at  the  same  time  to  influence  the  elections  to  the  House  of 
Commons ;  so  five  candidates  were  previously  named  for  each 
of  the  counties  and  three  for  each  of  the  boroughs,  from  amongst 
whom  the  members  were  chosen. 

Ten  days  after  the  coronation  the  Houses  of  Parliament  met. 
The  first  act  taken  by  the  Commons  was  to  vote  and  present  a 
"  humble  but  earnest  Address  to  the  Queen,  that  she  would 
vouchsafe  to  accept  some  match  capable  of  supplying  heirs  to 
Her  Majesty's  royal  virtues  and  dominions."  The  queen,  who 
evidently  did  not  like  interference  on  this  subject,  told  the 
Speaker  and  other  members  that  she  might  long  ago  have 
married  if  she  had  so  willed,  but  that  for  herself  she  should  be 
heartily  content  to  have  it  inscribed  on  her  tomb  after  death 
that  she  had  lived  and  died  a  virgin  queen.  She  added,  for 
their  future  guidance,  amongst  some  involved  sentences  of 
studied  ambiguity,  that  it  was  obviously  neither  their  duty  to 
prescribe  to  nor  to  bind  her,  but  to  petition,  if  they  so  willed, 
and  then  humbly  to  obey. 

Other  important  work  was  at  once  taken  in  hand.     Thus  : — - 

Queen  JNLary,  King  Henry's  lawful  daughter  by  his  queen  the 
Lady  Katherine,  and  Elizabeth,  the  illegitimate  daughter  of  the 
King  by  Anne  Boleyn,  had  both  been  expressly  declared  illegiti- 
mate by  statute  under  Henry  VHL^  When  Mary  succeeded  to 
the  throne,  however,  an  Act  had  been  at  once  passed-  declaring 
^  28  Henry  VIII.  c.  7.  '^  i  Mary,  Session  ii.  c.  i. 


l6  TIIK    CHURCH    UNDER   QUEEX    ELIZABETH. 

that  she  had  been  born  "in  a  most  just  and  lawful  matrimony," 
and  thus  the  unstained  honour  of  her  mother  was  dutifully  and 
properly  vindicated.  Elizabeth  at  the  present  time,  who,  of 
course,  stood  on  another  platform,  acted  in  quite  a  different 
manner ;  possibly  under  the  influence  of  her  advisers,  who  saw 
the  complex  and  complicated  difficulties  before  them,  and  who 
in  the  new  Act  passed  were  conseijuently  vague  and  ambiguous 
in  the  language  they  selected.  This  Act  at  once  claimed 
for  Elizabeth  regular  and  due  royal  descent,  and  at  the  same 
time  conferred  upon  her  the  right  to  reign  by  the  authority 
of  Parliament ;  two  features  obviously  inconsistent  and  self- 
destructive. 

In  due  course,  after  some  discussion,  but  at  no  long  interval 
after  assembling,  the  two  Houses  passed  some  most  momentous 
laws,  the  full  force  and  importance  of  which  upon  the  National 
Church  are  even  now  scarcely  realised. 

By  these  new  laws  what  was  not  over-exactly  termed  the 
"ancient  jurisdiction  of  the  Crown  over  the  estate  ecclesiastical 
and  spiritual "  was  said  to  be  "  restored,"  while  all  "  foreign 
jurisdiction  repugnant  to  the  same"  abolished.  By  this  Act,  the 
general  repeal  under  Queen  Mary  of  the  "reforming"  statutes 
of  Henry  VHI.  and  Edward  VI.  was  directly  abrogated : 
all  spiritual  and  ecclesiastical  jurisdiction  of  every  sort  and 
kind,  without  any  exception,  being  thus  vested  in  the  Crown, 
though  now  worn  by  a  woman,  in  virtue  of  which  enactment 
special  Royal  Commissions,  composed  of  clerks  and  laymen, 
were  at  once  appointed,  their  powers  from  time  to  time  being 
renewed  and  extended  ;  while  the  "Court  of  High  Commission," 
as  it  was  termed,  was  subsecjuently  established  on  the  same 
parliamentary  authority  in  1583. 

P'urthermore,  and  at  once,  all  ministers  and  officers  whatsoever, 
whether  temporal  or  spiritual,  whether  bisho])s  or  judges,  canons 
or  magistrates,  parish  clerks  or  pikcmen,  were  bound  to  take  an 
oath  acknowledging  the  queen  to  be  "  the  only  supreme  governor 
of  the  realm  as  well  in  spiritual  or  ecclesiastical  things  or  causes 
as  temporal  ";^  and  renouncing  "all  foreign  jurisdictions,  powers, 

^  That  this  tradition,  now  all  but  exploded,  has  come  down  to  the  present 
time  is  abundantly  evident  from  the  followintj  Protest  of  the  Dean  and 
Chapter  of  Westminster,  read,  prior  to  the  consecration  of  the  Bishop  of 
Durham  (a. I).  1879),  ^Y  the  Dean  in  the  Jerusalem  Chamber: — 

"  I,  the  Very  Reverend  Arlliur  Penrhyn  Stanley,  Doctor  in  Divinity,  Dean 
of  the  collegiate  church  of  St.  Peter,  Westminster,  iin mediately  subject  to  the 
Queen  s  Majesty  and  no  other,  do  hereby,  on  behalf  of  the  Dean  and  Chapter 
of  the  said  church,  declare  and  protest  that  by  compliance  with  licence  of  the 
Lord  Archbishop  of  Canterbury  to  the  Lord  Archbishop  of  York  to  conse- 


feckenham's  defence  of  the  faith.  17 

superiorities,  or  authorities,"  under  pain  of  forfeiture  of  present 
office,  and  disability  to  hold  any  other. 

It  was  further  enjoined  that  the  oath  in  question  should  be 
formally  and  duly  tendered  to  every  such  person  throughout  the 
realm  within  thirty  days  of  the  prorogation  of  Parliament  at 
the  end  of  its  session.^  All  persons  about  to  take  orders,  or  to 
receive  degrees  in  the  universities ;  all  clergymen  about  to  be 
promoted  to  any  spiritual  livings,  or  already  in  possession  of 
benefices;  as  well  as  all  laymen  in  office,  such  as  judges, 
magistrates,  or  persons  receiving  wages  of  the  Crown,  or  suing 
out  livery  of  their  lands,  were  to  take  the  oath.  It  was  specially 
enacted,  moreover,  as  a  leading  and  crucial  principle,  that  the 
authority  needful  for  the  visitation  of  all  spiritual  persons,  and 
the  correction  of  errors,  heresies,  and  abuses,  should  be  annexed 
to  the  Crown  ;  and  that  the  power  of  exercising  this  authority  by 
delegates  to  be  appointed  by  Letters  Patent  under  the  Great 
Seal  should  remain  with  the  queen  and  her  successors  for  ever. 

Against  this  revolutionary  and  ridiculous  act  John  Feckenham, 
Abbot  of  Westminster,  made  a  powerfully-argumentative  and 
even  brilliant  speech  in  the  House  of  Lords,  in  which  he  thus 
dwelt  on  the  deeds  of  disorder,  disobedience,  and  destruction 
then  being  perpetrated  : — 

"  In  her  late  Majesty's  reign,  your  lordships  may  remember 
how  quiet  and  governable  the  people  were.  It  was  not  then 
their  custom  to  prescribe  to  authority,  to  run  before  the  laws, 
nor  disobey  the  proclamations  of  their  sovereign.  There  was 
then  no  sacrilegious  rapine,  no  plundering  of  churches,  no 
blasphemous  outrage  and  trampling  the  holy  sacraments  under 
their  feet.  It  was  none  of  their  way  to  tear  down  the  pix,  and 
hang  up  the  knave  of  clubs  in  its  place.     They  did  not  hack  and 

crate  the  Rev.  Joseph  Barber  Lightfoot,  Doctor  in  Divinity,  to  be  Bishop 
and  Pastor  of  the  catliedral  church  of  Durham,  we  do  not  intend  to  acknow- 
ledge any  jurisdiction  or  authority  of  the  Lord  Archbishop  of  Canterbury 
over  us,  the  said  Dean  and  Chapter,  or  over  our  said  collegiate  church  ; 
but  do  claim  and  assert  that  we  are  irnmcdiately  subject  to  the  Queen's  Majesty 
and  no  other  ecclesiastical  authority  whatsoever ;  and  that  we  have  granted  the 
use  of  our  said  collegiate  church  to  the  Lord  Archbishop  of  York  for  the  said 
consecration,  in  pursuance  of  the  mandate  of  Her  iNLijesty  the  Queen,  dated 
at  Westminster  the  29th  day  of  March  last,  in  the  forty-second  year  of  Her 
Majesty's  reign. 

"  Dated  the  25th  day  of  April  1879. 

"(Signed)        Arthur  Fenrhyn  Stanley." 
^  In  this  enactment  Temporal  Peers- were  excepted  by  a  special  clause  : 
just  as  in  recent  times  the  English  bishops  succeeded  in  getting  the  Public 
Worship  Regulation  Act  passed  for  the  clergy  generally,  while  they  duly  and 
carefully  secured  themselves  from  either  or  any  of  its  operations. 

B       , 


1 8  THE   CHURCH    UNDER   QUEEN    ELIZABETH. 

hew  the  crucifix  in  those  times.  They  were  better  observers  of 
discipUne  than  to  eat  flesh  openly,  and  fill  their  shambles  with 
butchers'  meat  in  the  holy  solemnity  of  Lent.  In  the  late  reign 
the  generality  of  the  people,  and  particularly  the  nobility  and 
those  of  the  Privy  Council,  were  exemplary  for  their  public 
devotion  ;  it  being  the  custom  to  go  to  a  church  or  chapel,  to 
beg  the  protection  of  God,  before  they  entered  upon  the  business 
of  the  day.     But  now  the  face  of  things  is  quite  otherwise."  ^ 

This  supremacy  in  things  spiritual,  as  the  whole  tenor  of  the 
new  Act  most  clearly  shows,  was  not  held  to  be  inherent  in  the 
Crown, — such  an  idea  would  have  been  absurd, — but  was  regarded 
as  a  special  grant,-  expressly  made  by  the  power  and  authority 
of  Parliament.  Here,  then,  was  a  portentous  and  complete 
revolution. 

Those,  therefore,  who  should  be  found  to  maintain,  "by 
express  words,  deed,  or  act,"  the  authority  of  any  foreign  prince 
or  prelate,  were,  by  this  new  enactment,  to  forfeit  their  goods : 
or  if  these  did  not  amount  to  the  value  of  ^20,  such  persons 
were,  for  the  first  offence,  to  be  put  into  prison  for  twelve 
months  ;  to  incur  the  penalties  of  pneintinin  for  the  second  ; 
and  to  be  regarded  as  guilty  of  high  treason,  and  to  be  put  to 
death  as  traitors — i.e.  drawn,  hung,  dismembered,  disembowelled, 
beheaded,  and  quartered — for  the  third  offence. 

This  Act,  be  it  noted,  directly  revived  all  the  most  obnoxious 
and  atrocious  of  the  enactments  of  Henry  VHI.  and  Edward  VI., 
as  has  been  already  pointed  out.  The  substitution,  however,  of 
the  term  "Supreme  Governor"^  for  "Supreme  Head"  of  the 
English  Establishment  ■*  was  a  mere  distinction  without  a  differ- 
ence, as  subsequent  events  too  truly  proved. 

^  Abbot  Feckenham's  speech  against  the  Act  of  Uniformity. — Bid.  Cot(. 
Vcsp.  D.,  xviii.  fol.  8,  ef  seq. 

-  No  person  nor  assembly  of  persons  can  give  or  grant  that  which  he  him- 
self or  such  assembly  does  not  possess  nor  own.  80  was  it  in  the  case  of 
Elizabeth's  Parliament. 

■'  Calvin,  in  his  Commentary  on  the  Book  of  Amos  (ch.  vii.  v.  13'),  had 
written  thus  : — "  Erant  enim  blasphemi  qui  vocarent  eum  (Henricum  VHI.) 
Summum  Caput  Ecclesia^  sub  Christo"  ;  so  those  Protestant  theologians  who 
valued  this  heresiarch's  opinions  had  the  craft  and  wisdom  to  change  the  term 
witliout  changing  the  thing. 

■*  No  special  provision  was  made  in  case  the  monarch  became  a  Brownist,  a 
Lutheran,  or  Presbyterian,  an  omission  which  might  have  caused  difficulties 
in  recent  times  had  not  the  "supremacy  of  public  opinion"  been  gradually 
allowed  to  take  the  place  of  the  Tudor  supremacy,  which,  as  all  except  the 
modern  Erastians  admit,  has  long  lost  both  its  moral  and  political  value  and 
importance.  Originally  introduced  by  the  application  of  the  rack,  the  halter, 
and  irons,  it  is  now  bereft  of  its  power,  and  has  completely  collapsed.  Tlie 
"supremacy  of  public  opinion,"  however,  as  administered  and  enforced  in 


OTHER   DEFENDERS   OF   THE   OLD   FAITH.  19 

It  must  not  be  supposed  that  such  a  revolution  was  brought 
about  without  both  expostulation  and  protest  on  the  part  of 
some.  The  whole  of  the  Episcopate  to  a  man  voted  against  the 
third  reading  ;  while  two  bishops,  on  behalf  of  their  brethren  in 
spiritual  authority,  made  efficient  speeches  against  it.  These 
were  Archbishop  Heath  of  York,  and  Bishop  Scott  of  Chester. 

The  archbishop  most  forcibly  pointed  out  that,  as  the  queen's 
sovereignty  descended  by  hereditary  right,  the  grant  of  such 
special  supremacy  in  spiritual  matters  was  quite  beyond  the 
power  of  Parliament  to  bestow,  and  altogether  so  great  a  novelty, 
and  unprecedented,  as  to  be  both  dangerous  and  wrong.  His 
(kace  further  maintained  that  all  women,  of  what  sort  soever 
they  might  be,  were  entirely  unqualified  for  spiritual  functions. 
They  could  neither  preach  nor  administer  the  Sacraments  nor 
exercise  spiritual  censures — acts  which  belonged  exclusively  to 
the  clergy  and  the  hierarchy. 

Bishop  Scott  of  Chester  then  argued  that  without  a  chief 
pastor  the  visible  Church  would  be  weakened.  Such  a  guide 
was  practically  necessary  for  receiving  appeals  from,  and  deter- 
mining controversies  within,  the  boundaries  of  all  local  or  national 
churches.  Taking  notice  that  the  Pope's  authority  had  been 
disclaimed  by  an  English  provincial  council,  he  announced  that 
the  resolutions  of  such  an  assembly  were  of  no  force  whatso- 
ever against  the  decrees  of  the  Universal  Church. ^     England,  he 

]iaiiiamentary  law  courts,  has  efllciently  taken  its  place,  and,  of  course,  will 
remain  in  power  in  the  State  Establishment  so  long  as  it  is  the  will  of  the 
majority  of  the  electors  that  a  State  Establishment  shall  be  maintained. 

'  As  a  recent  author  has  so  forcibly  and  ably  written  : — "  When  England 
embraced  the  Christian  faith,  she  became  a  part  of  Christ's  spiritual  kingdom 
or  empire.  She  did  not  become  the  whole  of  that  kingdom.  It  was  an 
absolute  impossibility  for  her  to  do  so.  Until,  therefore,  one  part  of  anything 
can  be  equal  to  the  thing  itself,  so  long  is  it  impossible  that  a  part  of  Christ's 
kingdom  can  lie  His  whole  kingdom.  In  other  words,  England  is  not  an 
empire,  speaking  spiritually.  And  if  England  is  not  a  spiritual  empire,  but 
one  mere  province  of  a  spiritual  empire,  then  appeals  cannot  have  their  final 
determination  without  the  assent  and  consent  of  the  other  provinces  of  the 
universal  kingdom.  If  such  a  thing  were  possible,  then  might  one  province 
claim  to  decide  a  spiritual  question  in  one  way,  and  another  province  in 
another  way.  Thus  direct  conflict  would  arise.  There  would  be  instead  of 
one  spiritual  kingdom  or  empire  of  Christ,  as  many  spiritual  kingdoms  as 
there  are  Christian  nations  in  the  world,  all  absolutely  independent  one  of 
anoiher,  and  every  one  possibly  divided  against  every  other,  and  fighting 
against  every  other.  And  thus  the  Catholic  Church  would  have  long  since 
been  brought  to  desolation,  and  have  had  an  end.  This  was  not  the  way, 
beloved,  that  the  Divine  Wisdom  built  His  house,  and  hewed  out  His  seven 
mystic  pillars.  It  is  the  Statute  of  Appeals,  and  the  assertion  that  England 
is,  spiritually  speaking,  an  empire,  and  that  the  Church  of  England  as  a 
part  is  equal  to  the  whole  ;  and  that  this  part  of  the  one  kingdom  of  Christ 


20  THE   CHURCH    UNDER   QUEEN    ELIZABETH. 

maintained,  was  only  one  part  of  Christ's  universal  kingdom  ; 
and,  furthermore,  that  no  man  nor  body  of  men  can  bestow  that 
which  they  themselves  do  not  already  possess.  These  speeches 
were  carefully  heard  and  warmly  applauded. 

About  this  period  a  document  of  "  Questions  and  Advices," 
drawn  up,  no  doubt,  by  Sir  Thomas  Smith,  one  of  King  Edward's 
advisers,  was  submitted  to  Cecil,  as  a  guide  in  the  work  of  so- 
called  "  Reformation."  A  new  Service-Book  was  at  once  needed, 
so  the  queen  by  Letters  Patent  appointed  Drs.  Bill,  Parker, 
Cocks,  and  May,  together  with  Mr.  Grindal,  Mr.  Whitehead,  and 
Mr.  Pilkington,  to  prepare  it.  The  lawful  bishops  of  the  Church 
of  England  were  in  this  work  wholly  ignored  in  favour  of  men 
owning  no  spiritual  authority  whatsoever,  and  deeply  tainted, 
moreover,  with  dangerous  heresies.  Cecil,  desiring  moderation 
and  comprehensiveness,  gave  these  persons  very  express  orders 
both  what  to  do  and  what  to  avoid. ^  The  Lord  Keeper  Bacon, 
in  his  speech  at  the  opening  of  Parliament,  pointed  out  that 
"  nothing  should  be  advised  or  done  which  anyway  in  continu- 
ance of  time  was  likely  to  breed  or  nourish  any  kind  of  idolatry 
or  superstition."  In  these  particulars,  his  lordship's  timely  and 
valuable  advice  was  certainly  not  ignored. 

With  a  few  trifling  alterations,  what  is  known  as  the  "  Second 
Prayer-Book  of  Edward  VL"'^  was  now,  by  the  Act  of  Uniformity, 
restored  to  use,  having  been  thus  recommended.  That  devotional 
volume  was  the  baldest  and  barest  that  could  have  been  compiled. 
Its  scrappy  service  for  the  Holy  Communion,  into  which  the  Ten 
Commandments  had  been  introduced,^  for  the  sake  of  the  second 

is  competent  to  decide  spiritual  questions  apart  from  the  other  provinces  of 
Christ's  kingdom,  and  independently  of  them  ;  in  other  words,  without  the 
consent  of  the  rest  of  Christendom,  which  is  in  direct  and  irreconcilable 
antagonism  to  the  revealed  word  of  God,  and  a  bold  and  daring  contradiction 
to  the  express  will  of  the  Incarnate  Son  of  God." — The  Keys  of  the  R'iiigi/oin 
of  Heaven,  by  the  Rev.  Dr.  T.  W.  Mossman,  O.C.R.,  p.  8.     London,  1S79. 

^  A  frightful  passage  from  the  Litany,  which  harmonised  well  enough  with 
the  maniacal  notion  of  most  of  the  "  Reformers,"  that  the  Bishop  of  the  See 
of  St.  Peter  is  "///i?  antichrist  " — "  From  the  tyranny  of  the  Bishop  of  Rome 
and  all  his  detestable  enormities  " — was,  at  Cecil's  suggestion,  but  after  con- 
siderable opposition,  omitted. 

-On  July  19,  1559,  a  Commission  was  issued  by  the  queen,  constituting 
Parker,  Archbishop-elect  of  Canterbury,  Grindal,  Bishop-elect  of  London, 
and  others,  Commissioners  for  carrying  into  execution  the  Acts  for  the 
uniformity  of  Common  Prayer,  and  for  restoring  to  the  Crown  the  ancient 
jurisdiction  of  the  State  ecclesiastical. — Domestic  Papers,  Elizabeth,  vol.  v. 
No.  18. 

^  A  long  and  wearisome  dissertation  by  Pollanus,  delivered  at  Strasburg, 
pointing  out  how  the  Second  Commandment  forbids  the  worship  of  the  Host, 
and  how  desirable  it  is  that  this  "law  of  God"  should  be  kept  before  the 


MUTILATION    OF   ANCIENT   SERVICES.  21 

(believed  by  the  narrow-minded  fanatics  who  had  first  compiled 
the  new  production  to  be  a  protest  against  what  has  been  in 
recent  times  called  Eucharistic  Adoration  i),  was  supposed  to 
have  been  founded  on  an  English  version  of  the  Sarum  Mass ; 
hacked  about  and  mutilated,  however,  in  every  portion.  All  the 
old  introits,  many  of  the  proper  prefaces,  all  the  secret  prayers, 
and  collects  after  Communion,  were  abolished  by  a  few  rude 
strokes  of  the  pen.  Those  sacred  parts  of  the  ancient  Canon 
not  cast  aside  as  idolatrous,  or  rejected  because  the  venerated 
saints  of  Christendom  were  thereby  had  in  memory,  were  mis- 
translated, detached  from  their  contexts,  broken  up,  interpolated 
with  novel  phrases  of  ambiguous  meaning,  separated  either  from 
other ;  and  without  an  ancient  parallel  formed  into  a  new  service 
which  remains  as  a  monument  of  the  deliberate  craft,  skilful 
double-dealing,-  and  heretical  tendencies  of  those  who  com- 
piled it. 

At  what  is  known  as  the  "  Consecration  Prayer,"  no  directions 
whatsoever  were  given  to  the  presiding  minister  for  blessing  the 
bread  and  wine,  or  for  touching  either  of  those  elements  while 
the  prayer  was  being  said — a  crucial  omission.  For  church 
ministers  to  have  done  so  from  the  time  of  Elizabeth  to  the 
period  of  revision  under  Charles  II.  would  have  been  to  have 
broken  the  statute  law  of  the  land.  It  is  open  to  question, 
therefore,  if,  notwithstanding  the  profound  special  pleading  of 

eyes  of  the  populace,  was  no  doubt  the  origin  of  the  introduction  of  the  Ten 
Commandments  both  into  the  Liturgy  and  on  to  the  east  wall  of  our  English 
churches. 

1  The  doctrine  of  the  Reformers  concerning  what  they  called  "  the  Lord's 
Supper,"  was  truly  and  faithfully  taught  by  the  late  Rev.  John  Keble,  in  his 
well-known  unrevised  verse  in  The  Christian  Year: — 

"  O  come  to  our  Communion  Feast: 
There  present  in  the  heart. 
Not  in  the  hands,  th'  eternal  Priest 
Will  His  true  self  impart." 

"The  minister  gives  what  is  in  his  power,  namely,  the  bread  and  wine, 
and  not  the  Body  of  Christ ;  nor  is  it  exhibited  by  the  minister  and  eaten  by 
the  communicant,  otherwise  than  in  the  word  preached,  read,  or  meditated 
upon.  And  to  eat  the  Body  of  Christ  is  nothing  more  than  to  believe,  as  He 
Himself  teaches  in  the  sixth  (chapter)  of  John." — Letter  of  Hooper  to  Bucer, 
Original  Letters,  p.  47.      Parker  Society's  Works. 

-  The  saying  that  "  the  Church  of  England  owns  an  Arminian  Prayer-Book 
and  Calvinistic  Articles,"  though  perhaps  strictly  inexact,  is  a  testimony  to 
the  intentional  vagueness  and  studied  ambiguity  of  those  formularies.  At 
the  present  day,  none  of  her  authorities  can  declare  what  she  teaches  even 
with  regard  to  Baptism.  All  "views"  (as  they  are  called)  are  tolerated, 
from  the  doctrine  of  Catholics  to  the  heresy  of  Calvinists.  Anything  and 
everything  is  allowed,  little  is  forbidden,  but  nothing  definite  or  precise  is 
authoritatively  and  universally  taught. 


22  THE   CHURCH    UNDER   QUEEN    ELIZABETH. 

several  modern  writers  in  its  favour,  such  a  form  for  celebrating 
the  Holy  Eucharist  in  use  for  exactly  a  hundred  years,  could 
have  been  valid.  If  there  be  intentionally  no  act  of  blessing,  of 
course  no  benediction  is  given.  If  there  be  no  express  deed  of 
consecration  (as  both  theology  and  common  sense  declare),  no 
consecration  is  by  consequence  effected. 

The  well-known  "  rule  of  contraries  "  was  duly  applied  by  those 
who  made  these  changes.  For  example,  in  the  mass  there  was 
always  an  altar  of  stone  used  :  in  the  new  Service  of  the  Supper, 
a  table  of  wood.  At  the  former,  the  priest  was  enjoined  to  stand 
before  the  altar;  at  the  latter,  by  way  of  contrast,  the  minister 
was  directed  to  go  to  the  north  end  of  the  table.  In  the  mass 
the  priest  invariably  began  the  service  on  the  Epistle  side,  and 
the  Gloria  in  excelsis  was  said  or  sung  at  its  commencement ;  iii 
the  Supper  the  minister  began  on  the  Gospel  side,  while  in  this 
new  service  the  Gloria  in  excelsis  was  placed  at  its  close. 

Moreover,  the  mixed  chalice,  the  invocation  of  the  Holy 
Ghost,  and  the  sign  of  the  cross  were  all  omitted.  At  the 
delivery  of  the  bread  and  wine,  instead  of  the  old  form,  the 
offensive  words  "  Take  and  eat  this  in  remembrance  that  Christ 
died  for  thee,"  etc.,^  were  substituted.  A  table  consisting  of  a 
pair   of   rude    trestles   and   a   horizontal    wooden   board,-   now 

^  In  the  mass,  as  the  words  spoken  on  giving  communion  indicated,  the 
Body  and  Blood  of  Christ  were  bestowed  ;  whereas,  in  the  Supper,  the 
minister  distributed  "bread  and  wine "  to  a  seated  congregation  in  remem- 
brance of  our  Saviour's  death  upon  Calvary.  No  greater  contrast,  than  that 
so  manifest  between  the  new  and  the  old,  could  be  conceived. 

As  Jewell,  a  bishop  and  an  authority,  thus  wrote  : — "  Spiritually  and  with 
the  mouth  of  our  faith  we  eat  the  Body  of  Christ  and  drink  His  Blood.  .  .  . 
The  bread  that  we  receive  with  our  bodily  mouths  is  an  eartlily  thing,  and 
therefore  a  figure,  as  the  water  in  baptism  is  likewise  a  fignxQ.''  —John  Jcii'ell, 
Bishop  of  Sanini,  in  Controversy  unth  Harditi^,  p.  448. 

And  Bishop  Grindal — "Whoso  will  be  relieved  by  the  Body  of  Christ  must 
receive  Him  as  He  will  be  received,  with  the  instrument  of  faith  appointed 
thereunto,  not  with  his  teeth  or  mouth." — Grindal's  A'ciiiains,  p.  46. 

^  "Twain  trestlys  and  a  boord  of  joyner's  work  for  the  Supper." — Church- 
wardens' Accounts,  A.  D.  1559,  for  St.  Mary's,  Ipswich. 

"/Av«  (paid)  to  John  ye  carpenter  for  ye  mackyng  of  treystles  for  ye 
Communyon,  iijs.  4d." — Churchwardens'  Book,  Thame,  Oxon,  a.d.  1560. 

Mr.  J.  H.  Parker,  C.B.  (a.d.  1S79)  thus  kindly  w^ritcs  to  me  : — "Some 
thirty  years  ago  a  friend  of  mine,  who  was  a  brother  atchicologist,  published 
a  pamphlet  to  explain  that  all  the  Communion  Tables  of  the  time  of 
Elizabeth  and  James  I.  had  the  table  itself — that  is,  the  wooden  slab,  talntla, 
or  board — detached  from  the  framework,  on  which  it  is  placed,  but  many  of 
them  still  remained  uniletached.  He  printed  a  list  of  these,  and  I  verified 
many  of  them.  Others  had  been  attached  to  the  framework  in  quite  recent 
times  with  modern  iron  screws.  In  some  cases,  instead  of  a  framework, 
tressels  were  used,  and  this,  I  believe,  is  still  the  case  in  the  Isle  of  Jersey, 
at  least  when  I  was  there.     The  table,  or  wooden  slab,  was  brought  out  of  the 


OMISSIONS    IN    THE   ANCIENT   RITES.  23 

occupied  the  place  of  the  ancient  consecrated  stone  altar. 
Sometimes  it  was  placed  in  the  middle  of  the  choir,  and  occa- 
sionally in  the  nave.  Cross  and  candlesticks  were  swept  away. 
Instead  of  the  old  "massing  cups,"  the  "chalices  of  antichrist," 
"  cups  of  the  sorceress,"  as  they  were  profanely  called, — most  of 
which  had  disappeared,^  having  been  too  affectionately  grasped 
and  retained  by  the  Edwardian  "  Reformers  "  and  their  energetic 
agents, — newly-made  domestic  and  secular-looking  vessels  for  the 
Communion  Table,  of  quite  a  different  shape,  with  covers,  seem 
to  have  been  almost  universally  adopted.  Thus  a  Supper  of 
bread  and  wine,  given  once  a  quarter  at  mid-day,  in  remembrance 
of  an  act  done  long  ago,  Christ's  death,  was  once  again  inten- 
tionally substituted  for  the  adorable  sacrifice  of  the  Christian 
dispensation,  enjoined  by  our  Divine  Master  to  be  offered  con- 
tinually— a  sacrifice  true,  proper,  and  propitiatory,  as  well  for  the 
departed  as  for  the  living. 

Furthermore  in  our  Baptismal  Service  the  exorcisms,  the 
unction,  the  trine  immersion,  and  the  putting  on  of  the  chrisom- 
cloth  were  all  omitted.  The  Service  for  Confirmation  -  was  so 
altered  and  disfigured,  both  in  its  form  and  matter  (for  here  like- 
wise the  use  of  unction  and  the  sign  of  the  cross  were  dropped), 
that  many  doubt  whether  it  can  be  valid  ;  it  being  thus  reduced 
to  a  mere  episcopal  or  paternal  blessing  which  might  be  again 
and  again  repeated  without  any  danger  of  sacrilege.  In  the 
Service  for  the  Visitation  of  the  Sick,  all  mention  of  the  Sacra- 
ment of  Extreme  Unction  was  cast  out,  and  reservation  of  the 
Holy  Eucharist  omitted.  In  the  Burial  of  the  Dead,  all  the 
touching  and  beautiful  prayers  for  the  departed  were  dropped, 
while  the  Eucharist  at  funerals  was  disallowed.  Neither  alb,  vest- 
ment, nor  cope  was  henceforth  to  be  used  ;  but  only  a  surplice  for 
a  priest  or  deacon,  and  a  rochet  for  a  bishop. 

The  solemn  and  expressive  services  for  Holy  Week ;  the 
various  episcopal  rites  peculiar  to  Maundy  Thursday  and  Easter 

chancel  and  placed  in  the  nave  on  tressels  by  the  side  of  the  reading-desk  for 
the  Communion  Service.     I  was  told  this  was  always  the  case  in  that  island." 

^  It  seems  very  doubtful  if  so  many  as  twenty  old  English  chalices  and 
patens  remain  throughout  the  whole  of  the  two  provinces.  I  know  of  old 
examples  at  Trinity  and  Corpus  Christi  Colleges,  Oxford  ;  Wymondham, 
Norfolk ;  Nettlecombe  and  Pilton,  Somersetshire  ;  Brancaster,  Norfolk  ; 
M'^est  Drayton,  Middlesex ;  St.  Sampson's,  Guernsey ;  Great  Waltham, 
Essex  ;  Combe  Pyne,  Devonshire  ;  Cliffe,  Kent ;  Walmer,  Kent ;  Leo- 
minster, Herefordshire  ;  Shernbourne,  Norfolk  ;  and  a  few  in  private  keeping. 
The  Rev.  E.  J.  Phipps  owned  a  good  specimen. 

-  See  a  short,  but  learned  and  vigorous,  article  on  this  subject — "  Con- 
firmation in  the  Church  of  England" — on  p.  271  et  seq.  of  The  Reiinicn 
Magazine,  vol.  i.      London  :    Nutt,  1879. 


24  THE   CHURCH    UNDER   QUEEN    ELIZABETH. 

Even  ;  the  special  hallowing  and  beneficent  solemnities  of  Good 
Friday ;  as,  for  example,  the  consecration  of  the  holy  oils,  the 
service  of  the  Pra^-sanctified,  the  creeping  to  the  cross,  the 
benediction  of  new  fire,  of  the  Paschal  taper  and  of  the  font, — 
ancient  and  hallowed  rites  which  so  efficiently  taught  people 
through  the  eye, — were  all  swept  away.  So  that,  in  our  own 
day,  as  a  consequence  of  such  changes,  the  Christian  feasts 
having,  many  of  them,  been  long  disused,  Parliament  has  thought 
it  desirable  and  necessary  to  appoint  four  secular  days  of  recrea- 
tion ;  while  Good  Friday,  the  death-day  of  the  world's  Redeemer, 
has  been  practically  made  a  festival ;  and  Ascension  Day,  a  feast 
of  obligation,  has  been  almost  entirely  forgotten.^ 

The  magnificent  and  appropriate  services  common  to  days  on 
which  prelates,  martyrs,  confessors,  virgins,  and  holy  women  had 
been  for  centuries  commemorated  were  totally  and  completely 
abolished.  Portuaries,  manuals,  missals  of  the  various  national 
rites,  books  of  the  hours  of  our  Lady,  the  offices  for  the  dead, 
i:)ontificals,  ceremonials,  antiphonals  and  jewelled  books  of  the 
(lospels,  were  each  and  all  utterly  cast  out  and  burnt — save,  of 
course,  the  acceptable  gold  and  jewels  which  adorned  them. 
Severe  punishment  followed  even  the  possession  of  such  volumes. 
A  restless  desire  for  change,  combined  with  a  repulsive  fanaticism, 
thus  led  those  who  in  the  struggle  had  now  secured  the  whip- 
handle  of  usurped  power,  to  destroy  and  sweep  away  whatever 
seemed  to  be  at  variance  with  their  newly-formed  tastes  or 
personal  ambition. 

In  the  early  part  of  the  month  of  May,  a  Bill  for  annexing  to 
the  Crown  all  abbeys,  priories,  nunneries,  chantries,  and  hospitals 
passed  through  both  Houses  of  Parliament.  In  the  Upper 
House  every  one  of  the  Lords  Spiritual  voted  against  it,  and 
when  passed,  dissented  from  it  by  a  formal  act.  It  will  thus  be 
seen  that  the  legal  spiritual  autliorities  of  the  Church  of  England, 
as  bound  by  oath  and  office,  declined,  as  by  every  principle  of 
morality  they  were  bound,  to  take  any  part  in  this  fresh  act  of 
sacrilege  and  robbery. 

While  Parliament  sat  considering  the  new  propositions,  the 
clergy  as  of  old  were  assembled  in  Convocation.  To  these  the 
(jueen  sent  a  somewhat  arrogant  message  of  warning,  indicating 
with  sufficient  clearness  to  those  who  had  already  watched  the 
course  of  recent  events,  what  her  royal  will,  as  Supreme  Governess 

'  As  the  Church  of  England  in  its  corporate  capacity  takes  little  heed  for 
this  loss,  and  its  authorities  adopt  no  measures  to  restore  the  due  observance 
of  the  day,  a  new  and  special  society  has  been  set  up  to  compass  and  etVect 
this  object,  so  much  required,  and  so  excellent  in  itself. 


PUBLIC   DISPUTATIONS   AT   WESTMINSTER.  25 

of  the  Established  Church,  was  in  reference  to  those  proposi- 
tions. On  being  informed  of  the  opposition  of  all  the  prelates,^ 
she  had  stamped  her  foot  violently  and  sworn  her  usual  expres- 
sive oath.  But  the  fearless  bishops,  nobly  and  bravely  doing 
their  duty  as  guardians  of  the  faith  and  their  flocks, — neither 
hireUngs,  wolves,  nor  robbers  come  into  the  fold  "  some  other 
way," — drew  up  a  profession  of  faith,  and  presented  it  to  the 
House  of  Lords,^  asserting,  firstly,  the  true  and  undoubted 
doctrine  of  the  Holy  Sacrifice  and  the  Real  Presence,  in  opposi- 
tion to  a  sentimental  presence  in  the  heart  or  mind  of  the 
receiver,  which  the  innovators  maintained  ;  secondly,  the  lawful 
and  generally-recognised  power  and  privileges  of  the  Holy  See  ; 
and,  thirdly,  the  exclusive  right  of  the  spiritual  rulers  of  the 
Church  Universal,  and  not  of  the  laity  or  a  lay  assembly,  to 
define,  declare  and  decide  upon,  its  doctrine  and  discipline. 

In  consequence  of  this,  and  as  one  mode  of  blunting  the 
power  and  destroying  the  influence  of  the  bishops,  a  lawful  dis- 
putation was  appointed  to  be  held  in  Westminster  Abbey  on 
March  31st,  by  which  clever  expedient  the  critical  spirit  of  the 
period  was  fostered,  public  attention  aroused,  and  time  for  more 
consideration  of  the  grave  circumstances  which  had  arisen 
efficiently  secured.  The  Lord  Keeper  Bacon,  delegated  to 
represent  the  Supreme  Governess,  presided,  and  the  sittings  of 
the  Houses  of  Parliament  were  suspended,  in  order  that  idle, 
curious,  or  interested  members  might  attend  and  witness  the 
exciting  dialectical  contest  in  question.  Numerous  languid 
loungers,^  accustomed  to  the  fashionable  deliglits  of  the  rat-pit 

^  Bishop  Tunstall  wrote  to  Cecil  from  London  on  August  19,  1559, 
who  declared  that  he  could  not  consent  to  the  visitation  of  his  diocese,  if 
it  extended  to  the  pulling  down  of  altars,  the  defacing  of  churches,  and  the 
taking  away  crucifixes.  —  State  Papers,  Domestic,  Elizabeth,  vol.  vi.  p.  137. 

-  The  chief  points  of  their  profession  stand  thus  : — 

"  Primo,  quod  in  sacramento  altaris,  virtute  verbi  Christ!  a  sacerdote  debite 
prolati  existentis,  prcesens  est  realiter,  sub  speciebus  panis  et  vini,  naturale 
Corpus  Christi,  conceptum  de  Virgine  Maria  ;  item  naturalis  ejus  sanguis. 

"Item,  quod,  post  consecrationem,  non  remanet  substantia  panis  et  vini, 
neque  ulla  alia  substantia,  nisi  substantia  Dei  et  hominis. 

"Item,  quod  in  missa  offertur  verum  Christi  Corpus,  et  verus  ejusdem 
sanguis,  sacrificium  propitiatorium  pro  vivis  et  defunctis. 

"Item,  quod  Petro  apostolo,  et  ejus  legitimis  successoribus  in  Sede 
apostolica,  tanquam  Christi.  vicariis,  data  est  suprema  potestas  pascendi  et 
regendi  Ecclesiam  Christi  militantem,  et  fratres  suos  confirmandi. 

"  Item,  quod  authoritas  tractandi  et  definiendi  de  iis,  qua?  spectant  ad  fidem, 
sacramenta,  et  disciplinam  ecclesiasticam,  hactenus  semper  spectavit,  et 
spectare  debet,  tantum  ad  pastores  Ecclesia?,  quos  Spiiitus  Sanctus  ad  hoc  in 
Ecclesia  Dei  posuit,  et  non  ad  laicos." — Wilkins'  Concilia,  vol.  iv.  p.  179. 

^  Thomas  Cecil  wrote  to  his  father,  Sir  William,  on  July  25,  1561,  to  say 


26  THE   CHURCH    UNDER    QUEEN    ELIZABETH. 

and  bear-baiting,    gathered    for    the   anticipated    entertainment. 
Protestant  ballad-singers  and  buffoons,  stationed  near  the  west 
door  of  St.   Margaret's   Church,   amused  the  lower  classes  by 
caricaturing  religion.     Various  controversial   subjects  were  dis- 
cussed within  the  Abbey  ;  e.g.  whether  prayers  in  Latin  were  to 
be  henceforth  permitted  ;  whether  local  churches  have  the  right 
and  power  to  set  themselves  up  against  the  decisions  and  decrees 
of  the  whole  Church  of  God ;  and  whether  the  Eucharist  be  a 
propitiatory  sacrifice  for  the  quick  and  the  dead.     On  the  side  of 
the  ancient  faith  were  Archbishop  Heath,  Bishops  White,  Eayne, 
Scott,  and   Watson;  with    Dr.    Cole,    Dean    of  St.  Paul's;  Dr. 
Nicholas  Harpsfield,  Archdeacon  of  Canterbury  and  Judge  of 
the  Court  of  Arches  ;  and  Dr.  Langdale,  Archdeacon  of  Lewes. 
On  the  side  of  the  innovating  party   were  Bishop    Scory,   Dr. 
Cocks,  Mr.  Home,  Mr.  Aylmer,  Mr.  Whitehead,  Mr.  Grindal, 
Mr.  Ghest,  and  Mr.  Jewell.     The  prelates  in  rochets  and  violet 
mantles  assembled  in  the  choir,  where  a  long  and  narrow  table 
down  its  pathway  had  been  placed  for  their  use,  and  were  seated 
on  the  Gospel  side.     The  other  party,  in  gowns,  putting  their 
trust  in  the  cjueen's  delegate,  and  on  the  look-out  for  some  of 
the  good  things  of  this  world,i  took  their  places  on  the  south. 
The  monks'  stalls  were  filled   with   certain    peers   and    others 
interested  in  the  dispute.     A  gathering  of  exiled  preachers  and 
foreign  divines  in  black  cassocks  and  stiff  white  ruffs,  armed  with 
large  tomes,  from  which  to  prompt  and  aid  their  friends,  were 
grouped  near  the  choir  doors.     The  public,  wherever  a  sight 
and  hearing  could  be  had,  assembled  in  numbers.     The  whole 
dispute,  conducted    with    singular   one-sidedness,  but  anxiously 
listened  to,  was  so  unfair  to  the   legal    representatives  of  the 
Ancient  Church,  that  the  Catholic  party,  perceiving  this,  after 
vain  remonstrances,  and  being  wholly  in  the  hands  of  Bacon  who 
presided,  wisely  and  resolutely  retired  on  the  second  day.     U!)on 
this  Bishops  White  and  Watson  were  at  once,  without  notice, 
process,  or  trial,   committed  to  prison  in  the  Tower — a   gross 
piece  of  high-handed  tyranny.-     Nothing,  of  course,  could  have 

that  he  had  been  present  at  the  Court  at  Paris  at  a  fight  between  a  lion  and 
three  dogs,    in  which  the  dogs  were  victorious. — State  Papers,   Elizabeth, 

1547-1580- 

^  Edmund  Chest,  on  August  31,  1559,  wrote  to  inform  Cecil  that  "Mr. 
Seth  Holland  will  not  renounce  the  Pope,"  and  then  solicits  that  he  (Ghest) 
may  succeed  him   in  the  deanery. — Domestic  Papers,   Elizabeth,  vol.   vi.    p. 

'■^  Some  writers  assert  that  these  two  bishops'  true  ofTence  was  that  they  had 
already  privately  and  solemnly  threatened  tlie  queen  with  excommunication 
if  she  continued  to  intrude  in  matters  inherently  and  essentially  spiritual. 


TH£   BOOK    OF   COMMON    PRAYER,  2/ 

been  more  effective  in  overcoming  the  force  of  their  telling 
arguments,  or  in  preventing  their  incisive  logic  and  solemn 
appeals  from  having  reasonable  and  just  weight  with  the  listeners. 
It  was  asserted  in  justification  that  they  were  thus  punished  for 
disobedience  to  the  queen's  delegate,  who  sat  and  acted  in  Her 
Most  Sacred  Highness's  place,  and  who  had  enjoined  them  to 
proceed  and  not  to  retire  ;  but  the  real  object  of  this  bold  action 
was  to  overawe  others  and  overbear  all  legitimate  opposition  to 
the  proposed  parliamentary  legislation. 

The  Bill  enjoining  the  new  Prayer-Book  soon  afterwards 
became  law,  it  having  been  carried  in  the  Upper  House  by  a 
narrow  majority  of  three  in  a  large  assembly — a  tolerably  clear 
indication  of  the  feeling  against  innovation  and  change  which 
existed,  and  proving  that  such  an  act  of  tyranny  as  that  just 
recorded  was  absolutely  essential  for  the  success  of  the 
innovators. 

The  Act  of  Uniformity  enjoining  the  use  of  the  revised  Service 
Book,  indirectly  decreed  that  on  and  after  the  Feast  of  St.  John 
the  Baptist,  1559,  any  one  who  said  mass  according  to  those 
rites  of  the  Church  of  England  which  had  been  followed  essenti- 
ally for  nearly  a  thousand  years,  as  well  as  any  and  every  one 
who  heard  mass,  or  administered  baptism  or  any  of  the  sacra- 
ments according  to  the  old  directions  and  services,  or  who  used 
any  but  the  new,  should,  for  the  first  offence,  be  fined  one 
hundred  marks ;  for  the  second,  four  hundred  marks ;  and  if 
these  respective  fines  were  not  promptly  paid,  imprisonment  for 
twelve  months  followed ;  with  imprisonment  for  life  and  the 
forfeiture  of  all  goods  and  chattels  if  a  third  offence  were  proved. 
Jewell,  though  a  severe  and  sour  writer  of  bad  theology,  some- 
times became  witty,  and  occasionally  postured  as  a  buffoon  ;  as, 
for  instance,  when  he  wrote  to  Peter  Martyr,  some  months  later, 
telling  him  the  welcome  news  that  the  Catholics  had  no  right  to 
complain  of  the  queen,  for  that  mass  had  never  before  been  so 
highly  valued  or  expensive  as  then ;  for,  by  God's  gospel,  it  cost 
every  spectator  of  it  no  less  than  two  hundred  crowns. 

On  the  day  appointed,  therefore,  the  public  celebration  of 
mass  ceased.  Those  who  elected  to  range  themselves  in  opposi- 
tion to  the  innovators  soon  found  what  was  involved  in  such  a 
choice.^  As  the  records  of  this  reign  are  examined  step  by  step, 
and  the  harrowing  tale  of  persecution  is  told,  it  will  be  seen  with 

1  On  June  30,  1559,  the  Marquis  of  Winchester  wrote  to  Cecil  to  inform 
him  that  the  Dean  and  Canons  of  Winchester  Cathedral,  the  Warden  and 
Fellows  of  New  College,  and  the  Master  of  St.  Cross'  Hospital  "left  their 
services,  and  will  enter  no  new  service,  being  against  their  consciences." 


28  TlIK   cnUl>lCTT   UNDER   QUEEN    ELIZABETH. 

what  a,  high  hand  those  carried  affairs  who  by  the  use  of  might 
over  right  had  secured  influence,  authority,  and  power.  All  the 
varied  "  beggars-on-horseback  "  rode  a  random  and  rapid  race  to 
their  due  and  proper  goal. 

But  to  proceed  step  by  step,  and  with  due  care,  and  to  state 
exactly  only  that  which  can  be  surely  and  conclusively  proved  to 
be  true. 

With  the  single  exception  of  Anthony  Kitchin,  Bishop  of 
Llandaff,  who  had  been  consecrated  by  Cranmer  on  May  3,  1545, 
without  approval  by,  or  authorisation  from,  Rome,  the  whole 
body  of  bishops,  one  and  all,  firmly  resolved  to  refuse  assent  to 
this  new  legislation.  Involving  as  it  did  both  a  fresh  separation 
from  the  Chief  Bishop  of  Christendom,  whose  saintly  predecessor. 
Pope  St.  Gregory  the  Great,  had  sent  St.  Augustine  to  become 
a  light  to  our  country ;  and  being  likely,  as  they  believed,  to 
augment  all  the  complex  evils  of  new  and  needless  divisions, 
they  declined  to  be  participators  in  that  which  was  obviously 
wrong.  In  their  noble  opposition — being  unable  to  render  to  a 
woman,  a  female  Cassar,  the  things  of  God — they  were  all  firm 
and  determined.  They  could  not  in  conscience  maintain  that 
the  queen  was  the  Supreme  Governor  or  Governess  of  the 
Church  under  Christ,  and,  therefore,  repudiated  the  action  and 
legislation  of  the  civil  authority  as  beyond  its  due  and  proper 
powers,  and  by  the  law  of  God  altogether  illegal. 

Amongst  these  are  several  names  of  men  of  high  virtue  and 
repute,  names  which  because  of  their  action  at  the  crisis  in 
question  deserve  to  be  had  in  everlasting  remembrance.  The 
first  is  that  of  Nicholas  Heath.  He  had  been  consecrated 
Bishop  of  Rochester  by  Bonner  of  London,  and  others,  in  the 
chapel  of  London  House,  in  the  spring  of  1540.  Translated 
three  years  afterwards  by  Henry  VIII.  to  the  See  of  Worcester, 
he  was  thrown  into  prison  and  treated  with  great  harshness  under 
Edward  VI.  ;  but  on  Queen  Mary's  accession,  confessing  his 
])revious  failings,  and  the  aid  he  had  given  to  the  innovators,  he 
was  reconciled  to  the  Church  and  made  Archbishop  of  York  and 
Lord  High  Chancellor.  In  his  province  he  laboured  assiduously, 
and  was  venerated  and  respected  both  by  high  and  low. 

Edmund  Bonner  was  another.  A  Worcestershire  and  Oxford 
man,  he  had  for  some  years  been  one  of  Henry  VIII. 's  courtly 
chaplains,  and  had  certainly  made  himself  notorious  enough  by 
his  mistaken  zeal  in  promoting  that  king's  divorce.  When  in 
Rome,  in  so  doing  (as  he  himself  admits),  he  had  behaved  with 
great  personal  rudeness  and  insolence  to  the  Pope.  At  home 
he  had  gone  a  considerable  way  on  the  "  Reforming  "  road,  and 


BISHOPS   OF   THE   ANCIENT   LINEAGE.  29 

had  even  accepted  many  of  the  violent  changes  under  Edward 
VI. ;  but  the  fanaticism,  heresy,  and  blasphemies  then  in  favour 
at  Court — working  on  all  sides  so  many  evils — were  more  than, 
by  any  strain  of  conscience,  he  could  approve  of  or  adopt.  So 
the  civil  authorities  deprived  him  of  his  See,  which  was  given 
to  Nicholas  Ridley ;  and  Bonner  likewise  was  cast  into  prison. 
Under  Queen  Mary,  having  been  duly  restored  to  his  former 
episcopal  seat,  he  did  a  great  work  in  stemming  the  tide  of 
irreligious  revolution ;  in  restraining  misbelievers  ;  and  in  build- 
ing anew  the  waste  and  desolate  places  of  his  important  diocese. 
He  was  certainly  unpopular  with  some;  his  acts  in  administering 
a  harsh  and  cruel  law  have  been  considerably  misrepresented, 
while  his  name  has  been  cast  out  as  evil  by  certain  historical 
romancers  or  one-sided  partisans.  But  when,  after  experiencing 
the  evils  of  innovation,  a  man  of  resolute  and  settled  principles, 
owning  authority,  acts  with  decision  and  boldness  on  the  side 
of  truth,  he  must  expect  opposition,  and  scorn  the  unjust  con- 
demnation of  petty  and  misinformed  scribes,  too  often  the 
trumpeters  and  apologists  of  error  and  falsehood. 

Cuthbert  Tonstall,  Bishop  of  Durham,  old  and  afflicted,  and 
Thomas  Thirlby,  Bishop  of  Ely,  were  committed  to  the  care  of 
Matthew  Parker,  the  queen's  new  archbishop,  and  his  lady,  at 
Lambeth  Palace.  The  former,  Tonstall,  soon  died,  some  said 
of  a  broken  heart,  in  November  of  the  same  year,  and  was  buried 
in  the  parish  church  ;  ^  the  latter  lived  through  eleven  stirring 
years,  and  witnessed  more  changes  and  greater  violence,  passing 
to  his  rest  in  August  of  the  year  1570. 

John  White,  born  at  Farnham,  in  Surrey,  was  educated  at 
Winchester  and  New  College,  of  which  latter  he  was  made  a 
fellow  in  1527.  Successively  head  master  and  warden  of 
Winchester  College,  he  was  consecrated  Bishop  of  Lincoln 
by  Bonner  and  others  at  St.  Saviour's,  Southwark,  on  April  ist, 
1554.  Two  years  afterwards  he  was  translated  to  Winchester, 
where  his  reputation  for  sweetness  of  disposition  and  sanctity 
was  great.  He  preached  the  funeral  sermon  of  Queen  Mary, 
and  was  so  affected  at  the  loss  which  Her  Majesty's  death  had 
occasioned,^  that  for  some  time  he  stood  in  the  pulpit  over- 
whelmed with  sincere  grief,  and  speechless. 

Even  as  these  resisted  the  innovations,  so  did  others.  James 
Turberville,  Bishop  of  Exeter,  so  consecrated  on  the  Feast  of 

1  "November  (1570).  The  xxix  day  Cuthbret  Tunstall  a  popish  bishop  was 
buryed."— MS.  List  of  Baptisms,  Marriages,  and  Burials  at  St.  Mary's,Lambeth. 

-  He  "fell  into  such  an  unfeigned  weeping  that  for  a  long  space  he  could 
not  speak." — Brief  Vioi',  etc.,  by  Sir  John  Harington. 


30  THE   CHURCH    UNDER   QUEEN    ELIZABETH. 

the  Nativity  of  Our  Lady  in  1555,  was  faithful  and  true  even 
unto  death.  Gilbert  Browne,  sometime  Archdeacon  of  London, 
but  subsequently  Bishop  of  Bath  and  Wells,  deprived  by  Queen 
Elizabeth  for  disallowing  her  spiritual  supremacy,  was  then  con- 
signed to  the  custody  of  Gregory  Dodds,^  Dean  of  Exeter,  and 
so  died  in  1569.  David  Pole,  sometime  Dean  of  the  Arches 
Court,  and  subsequently  Bishop  of  Peterborough,  was  deprived, 
because  he  likewise  similarly  resisted,  and  departed  this  life  in 
June  1568.  Ralph  Baynes,  a  Yorkshireman  and  a  great  Hebrew- 
scholar,  consecrated  Bishop  of  Lichfield  in  1554,  was  deprived 
in  June  1559,  and  died  five  months  afterwards.  Queen  Elizabeth 
sent  Cuthbert  Scott,  Bishop  of  Chester,  having  first  deprived 
him,  to  the  Fleet  Prison ;  but  he  soon  afterwards  escaped,  and 
died  most  devoutly  at  Louvain.  Owen  Oglethorpe,  Bishop  of 
Carlisle,  was  also  deprived  in  1559 — on  the  last  day  of  which 
momentous  year  he  slept  his  last  sleep  in  peace.  Thomas 
Watson,  Bishop  of  Lincoln,^  was  likewise  turned  out  of  his 
bishopric  at  the  same  time,  as  were  also  Thomas  Goldwell, 
Bishop  of  St.  Asaph,  and  John  Feckenham,  Benedictine  Abbot 
of  Westminster.  Of  these  three,  the  first  and  the  last  were 
carefully  imprisoned,  first  in  the  Marshalsea,  and  subsequently 
in  the  unwholesome  dungeons  of  Wisbeach  Castle,  situated  in  the 
flat  and  unhealthy  fen  country  of  the  east,  and  after  much  suffering 
died  there  in  1585.  Goldwell  escaped  to  the  city  of  Rome,  living 
there  for  more  than  a  quarter  of  a  century  in  great  sanctity  and 
full  of  years,  when  he  too  slept  sweedy  in  Christ.  Richard  Pate, 
sometime  Bishop  of  Worcester,  who  had  been  officially  present 
at  the  Council  of  Trent  in  1552,  happily  escaped  to  the  Continent, 
and  there  died  in  peace. 

On  the  9th  of  September  1559,  Letters  Patent  were  issued 
appointing  a  Royal  Commission  to  confirm  the  election  of 
jVLatthew  Parker,  who  had  been  irregularly  elected  by  a  minority 
of  the  Chapter  of  Canterbury  on  the  ist  of  August,  and  to  give 
him  episcopal  consecration.  At  this  time,  ten  of  the  English 
Sees  were  vacant  by  death  •  for  many  of  the  bishoiis  had  been 
thus  called  away  from  a  scene  of  much  anxiety  and  trouble,  by 
a  strange  and  fatal  malady,  some  called  it  "  the  Plague,"  which 
wrought  great  havoc  amongst   all    classes.     Shortly  afterwards, 

'  Some  writers  give  another  name  to  this  dean  wiio  had  the  custody  of  this 
Bishop  of  Bath. 

-  For  a  most  interesting  account  of  Bishop  Watson,  the  reader  should 
consult  Sermons  on  the  Sacraments  by  that  prelate,  edited  by  the  Rev.  T.  E. 
Itridgctt,  who  has  prefixed  thereto  an  admirable  "Biographical  Notice"  of 
the  bishoji,  and  has  edited  the  book  with  conspicuous  care  and  ability. 
London:   liurns  &  Gates,  1876. 


THE   CONSECRATORS   OF    MATTHEW   PARKER.         3 1 

fifieen  other  bishops  either  resigned  voluntarily,  on  marking  what 
additional  changes  were  about  to  take  place,  or  were  formally 
deprived  by  certain  Royal  Commissioners,  to  whom,  for  this 
purpose,  Her  Majesty  had  duly  delegated  that  supreme  spiritual 
authority  which  had  been  vested  in  her  by  Parliament. 

The  Letters  Patent  concerning  Parker's  promotion  had  been 
addressed  to  Tonstall,  Bishop  of  Durham  ;  to  Bourne,  Bishop 
of  Bath  ;  to  Poole,  Bishop  of  Peterborough  ;  to  Kitchin,  Bishoji 
of  Llandaff,  all  occupying  Sees,  and  to  William  Barlow  and  John 
Scory,  bishops  without  Sees.  By  an  unusual  and  unexplained  in- 
advertence, however,  no  clause  enabling  a  bare  majority,  or  a 
certain  number  without  the  rest,  to  act,  was  inserted  in  the  docu- 
ment. So  that  if  any  individual,  or  more,  declined  the  honour, 
the  work  of  the  Royal  Commissioners  could  not  be  carried  out. 
This  Commission,  therefore,  remained  unfulfilled,  to  the  great 
vexation  of  the  queen,  and  to  the  deep  annoyance  of  Sir  William 
Cecil,  who  found  himself  in  a  considerable  difficulty. 

For,  as  it  soon  turned  out,  none  of  the  prelates  occupying 
the  old  Sees,  and  possessing  due  and  recognised  canonical  juris- 
diction, could  by  any  possible  means  be  induced  to  act.  Neither 
public  arguments  nor  private  threats  could  move  them  from 
their  resolution  of  abstention  from  participating  in  any  way 
in  what  they  believed  to  be  the  irregular  and  uncanonical  act 
resolved  on. 

Besides  the  prelates  who  thus  stood  aloof  (all,  in  truth, 
except  Anthony  Kitchin),  there  were  several  suffragan  bishops 
alive,  whose  orders  were  undoubted,  but  who  were,  of  course, 
without  jurisdiction,  some  of  whom  had  gone  into  retirement ; 
others  had  received  benefices  and  were  still  hale  and  strong, 
but  much  disinclined  for  further  change.  Amongst  these  were 
Thomas  Sparke,  Bishop  of  Berwick,  who  lived  until  157 1,  and 
Robert  Pursglove,^  Bishop  of  Hull,  who  only  died  in  1579. 
William  Finch,  Bishop  of  Taunton,  went  to  his  rest  in  the  very 
year  in  which  Parker  was  consecrated.  Of  Thomas  Morley, 
Bishop  of  Marlborough,  John  Bradley,  Bishop  of  Shaftesbury, 
and  Thomas  Manning,  Bishop  of  Ipswich,  all  most  probably 
alive  at  Elizabeth's  accession,  there  are  no  existing  records 
known.     None  of  these  suffragans,  however,  were  sought  out. 

^  At  Tideswell,  in  Derbyshire,  where  this  bishop,  Robert  Pursglove  was 
born,  and  educated  under  his  uncle,  William  Bradshawe,  Prior  of  Gisburne, 
in  Yorkshire,  he  was  also  buried  in  1575,  and  a  memorial  brass  representing 
him  in  full  pontifical  vestments,  with  a  series  of  verses  in  Latin  and  English 
still  remains.  He  was  Bishop-Suffragan  of  Hull,  Archdeacon  of  Nottingham 
and  Provost  of  the  College  of  Rotherham. — See  The  Gentleman'' s  Magazine, 
vol.  Ixiv.  part  ii.  p.  iioi.     London,  1794. 


32  •  THE   CHURCH    UNDER   QUEEN    ELIZABETH. 

In  conseciuence  of  the  fiasco  referred  to,  therefore,  several 
learned  clerks  and  canon  lawyers,  who  either  had  a  leaning  to 
the  Protestant  party  or  were  avowed  members  of  it,  viz.  Drs. 
May,  Weston,  Leeds,  Harvey,  Yale,  and  Bullingham,  were 
immediately  consulted  by  Cecil,  in  order  not  only  to  suggest 
some  remedy,  but  likewise  to  remove  two  very  practical  im- 
pediments to  legal  security  and  actual  success.  For  just  then 
Cecil  could  not  move.  His  existing  letters  and  ]\ISS.  show  that 
he  was  truly  and  completely  puzzled. i  These  two  leading 
practical  difficulties  stood  thus :  first,  the  law  of  the  land 
unquestionably  required  the  metropolitan  and  three  provincials, 
or  at  least  four  bishops  holding  Sees,  to  confirm  the  election  of 
a  new  Primate,  but,  as  Cecil  wrote,  "  There  is  ?io  Archb.  nor  iiij 
bishopps  now  to  be  had;"  and,  secondly,  the  revised  Ordinal, 
legalised  under  Edward  VI. ,"^  had  by  Act  of  Parliament  been 
formally  and  regularly  abolished  at  the  commencement  of  Queen 
Mary's  reign.  "  This  booke  is  not  established  by  Farle/nenf"  con- 
tinued the  Secretary  of  State;  while  the  ancient  Pontifical  of 
Salisbury, — Liber  Jiega/is, — used  then  once  again,  had  in  its  turn 
been  just  formally  set  aside  by  Ehzabeth.  There  was,  therefore, 
no  legal  form  for  consecration  in  existence,  or  available  at  all. 
Here,  then,  was  a  grave  dilemma. 

The  canon  lawyers  in  question,  however,  came  to  the  con- 
clusion that  under  the  difficult  and  pressing  circumstances— for 
necessity  notoriously  has  no  law — a  new  Commission  might  be 
issued  to  Anthony  Kitchin  of  Llandaff  and  to  certain  unattached 
I)relates,  bishops  without  Sees,  authorising  them  to  confirm  and 
consecrate"  Matthew  Parker.     This  advice  was  taken. 

Accordingly  on  December  6th,  1559,  a  fresh  Commission  by 
Letters  Patent  was  appointed  and  issued,  addressed  to  the 
occupant  of  the  See  of  Llandaff;  to  Barlow,  sometime  Bishop 
of  Bath,  a  prelate  of  very  fly-blown  character  ;  to  Hodgkins, 
sometime  Suffragan  of  Bedford;  to  Scory  and  Coverdale, 
bishops  ;  to  John  Salisbury,  Suffragan  Bishop  of  Thetford  ;  and 

1  Stale  Papers,  Domestic,  Queen  Elizabeth,  vol.  v.,  July  1559.  London, 
1856. 

-  "They  have  invented  a  new  way  to  make  bishops  and  priests  and  a 
manner  of  service  and  ministration  that  St.  Augustine  never  knew,  St. 
Edmund,  Lanfranc,  St.  Anselm,  nor  never  one  Bishop  of  Canterbury,  saving 
only  Cranmer,  who  forsook  his  profession  as  apostata ;  so  that  they  must 
needs  condemn  all  the  bishops  in  Canterbury,  but  Cranmer  and  he  that  now 
is." — "The  Addition  concerning  the  Burning  of  St.  Paul's"  (a  sixteenth 
century  flydeaf). 

^  It  should  be  particularly  noticed  that  this  course  of  action  would  only 
touch  the  regularity,  canonicity,  and  due  legality  of  the  consecration  in 
question  ;  not  its  validity. 


CHRONICLE   OF   THE   CONSECRATION.  33 

to  John  Bale,  Bishop,  by  Letters  Patent,  of  Ossory,  in  Ireland, 
a  boisterous  and  alarming  fanatic, — enjoining  them,  or  any  four 
of  them,  to  proceed  to  the  confirmation  of  the  election,  and  so 
to  the  consecration  of  the  archbishop-elect. 

Kitchin,  the  only  bishop  with  a  See,  save  Bale,  the  coarse 
and  foul-mouthed  Protestant  from  Ireland,  when  he  thus  found 
himself  utterly  isolated  from  the  rest  of  his  episcopal  brethren, 
deliberately  and  firmly  declined  to  act.  Reasoning  and  threats 
were  again  both  made  use  of,  but  to  no  avail.  He  would  not 
and  did  not  appear. 

Accordingly,  Parker's  election  was  confirmed  on  the  7th  of 
September  1559,  and  he  subsequently  received  episcopal  con- 
secration in  the  Chapel  of  Lambeth  Palace  on  Sunday  the  17th 
day  of  the  same  month  and  year,  very  early  in  the  morning,  at 
the  hands  of  Barlow,  Scory,  Hodgkins,  and  Coverdale.^ 

As  the  records  which  chronicle  this  important  act  inform  us, 
with  unusual  and  almost  unaccountable  minuteness,  the  east  end 
of  the  sanctuary  on  that  occasion  was  hung  with  tapestry,  and  its 
floor  laid  with  crimson  cloth.  In  lieu  of  the  abolished  altar,  a 
table  had  been  placed  at  the  east  end,  covered  with  a  carpet, 
and  having  on  it  a  cushion.  To  the  north  was  set  a  seat  for 
the  archbishop-elect ;  to  the  south,  fald-stools  for  the  consecrating 

^  An  able  writer  in  the  eighth  vohime  of  The  Union  Kt-viao  for  1S70,  pp. 
532,  533,  believed  to  be  one  of  our  leading  historical  critics,  thus  refers  to 
this  inauguration  of  the  new  rulers,  and  to  some  of  those  who  took  a  leadintr 
official  part  in  it: — "That  the  ceremony  was  gone  through  admits  of  no 
more  doubt  than  does  the  contempt  of  three  at  least  of  the  four  consecrators 
for  the  rite  which  they  were  called  upon  to  perform.  But  it  will  be  re- 
membered that  Scory  has  been  accused  of  performing  a  jesting  ceremony  in 
imitation  of  a  consecration  at  the  Nag's  Head  Tavern,  where  the  consecrators 
met  on  the  day  of  the  confirmation  of  the  new  Primate  after  the  work  of  ihe 
morning  was  done,  and  dined  together.  It  is  certain  that  Scory  was  quite 
capable  of  going  through  a  mock  ceremony  of  consecration,  and,  considering 
the  character  of  the  man,  we  think  it  is  very  likely  he  did.  Neither  of  his 
colleagues  would  have  been  at  all  shocked  at  such  a  piece  of  profaneness  ; 
and  probably  Parker  himself  would  have  made  light  of  it.  Parker  himself 
was  at  least  externally  a  decent  character,  but  we  do  not  find  that  he  at  all 
shrunk  from  intercourse  with  such  rascals  as  Barlow  and  Scory  were.  \\  e 
have  already  alluded  to  Barlow,  but  Scory  was  the  worst  of  the  two.  His 
course  very  much  resembled  Barlow's,  with  the  additional  scandal  that  he 
abjured  his  faith  and  dismissed  his  wife,  and  served  under  Bonner,  in  Queen 
Mary's  reign.  That  he  was  chaplain  to  Archbishop  Cranmer  can  add  no 
infamy  to  Cranmer's  name  ;  but  it  must  be  admitted  to  be  a  blot  on  Ridley's 
fair  fame,  that  he  also  made  Scory  his  chaplain.  When  we  have  added  to 
this,  that  he  preached  at  the  burning  of  Joan  Bocher  for  heresy,  and  that 
amongst  other  Protestant  notions  held  by  him,  he  was  notoriously  opposed  to 
the  consecration  of  churches,  we  have  said  all  that  is  necessary  to  secure 
him  from  being  quoted  with  approbation  by  Anglican  divines." 

C 


34  THE   CHURCH    UNDER   QUEEN    ELIZABETH. 

bishoi:)S  were  arranged,  'i'hese  persons,  as  already  pointed  out, 
were  Barlow,  Scory,  Hodgkins,  and  Coverdale.  They  came  in 
long  before  it  was  light,  accompanied  by  Parker,  and  preceded  by 
four  torchmen,  by  choir,  chaplains,  and  legal  officials.  Edmund 
Grindal,  Richard  Cocks,  and  Edwin  Sandys — all  subsequently 
bishops — were  also  present,  together  with  two  registrars  and  two 
public  notaries.  Morning  prayer  was  said  by  Pearson,  a  minister, 
and  a  sermon  was  preached  by  Scory;  after  which  the  archbishoj)- 
elect  and  the  other  bishops  went  out  into  the  vestry,  prepared 
themselves  for  the  actual  consecration,  and  again  returned. 
Barlow  took  the  chief  part  in  the  consecration,  and  with  his 
attendants,  Edmund  Ghest,  Archdeacon  of  Canterbury,  and 
Nicholas  Bullingham,  Archdeacon  of  Lincoln,  was  vested  in 
surplice  and  cope.  Scory  and  Hodgkins  appeared  simply  in 
surplices  or  rochets.  Coverdale,  who  shunned  what  he  termed 
such  "  heathen  and  Babylonish  garments,"  appeared  in  some- 
thing less  ornate,  a  simple  woollen  gown.  In  the  rite  the  new 
and  bald  Ordinal  of  1549  seems  to  have  been  almost  exactly 
followed  (though  it  had  been  legally  set  aside  under  Queen 
Mary,  and  never  restored),  save  that,  as  the  chief  consecrator  was 
not  an  archbishop,  all  the  four  bishops,  when  laying  their  hands 
upon  Parker's  head,  each  said  :  "Take  the  Holy  Ghost,  and  re- 
member that  thou  stir  up  the  grace  of  God  which  is  in  thee  by  the 
imposition  of  hands,  for  (iod  hath  not  given  us  the  spirit  of  fear,  but 
of  power  and  love  and  soberness."  In  these  words  there  was  no 
specification  whatsoever  of  the  office  proposed  to  be  conferred. 
There  was  no  unction  either,  nor  was  there  any  delivery  of  a 
pastoral  staff,  though  this  last-named  rite  was  formally  and  ex- 
pressly enjoined  in  the  Edwardian  service  presumed  to  have 
been  used. 

Here  then,  and  in  this  manner,  the  new  succession  began  ;  ^ 
and  some  persons  maintain  that  its  validity  depended  exclusively 

^  On  the  suljject  of  the  Nag's  Head  Fable,  out  of  which  uninformed 
controversialists  have  endeavoured  to  make  capital,  Dr.  Lingard  wrote  as 
follows: — "Of  this  tale  concerning  which  so  much  has  been  written,  I  can 
find  no  trace  in  any  aiithor  or  document  of  the  reign  of  Elizabetli.  It  is  not 
improbable  that  the  Commissioners,  having  confirmed  the  election,  dined 
together  at  the  Nag's  Head,  the  inn  chiefly  frequented  l)y  the  clergy  at  that 
period,  and  that  this  circumstance  may  have  given  rise  to  the  story." — History 
of  Em^iand,  by  John  Lingard,  D.D.,  p.  380,  vol.  vii.  London,  1838.  "It 
may  be  admitted  as  proved,"  writes  Canon  Estcourt,  in  his  learned,  able,  and 
temperate  treatise,  entitled  The  Question  of  Anglican  Ordinations  Discussed, 
^' that  the  Nag's  y/ead  story  is  a  legend 'ivithottt  foundation  in  fact,  s.nd  that 
the  charge  sometiTnes  made  of  Parker  and  the  first  Elizabethan  bishops 
assuming  their  place  and  discharging  their  functions  without  consecration 
of  any  kind  is  also  unfounded  " — p.  115.     London,  1873. 


WILLIAM    BARLOW   A   BISHOP.  35 

u[jon  William  Barlow.  Hodgkins,  however,  had  been  certainly 
consecrated  by  John  Stokesley,  Bishop  of  London,  and  two 
others,  as  early  as  1537,  and  Scory  and  Coverdale  by  Cranmer 
in  155 1  ;  so  there  is  something  of  importance  and  consideration 
to  be  said  in  favour  of  the  validity,  though  little  for  the  canonical 
regularity,  of  this  unprecedented  official  act. 

The  objection  to  Barlow  that  he  was  possibly  unconsecrated, 
because  the  actual  register  of  his  consecration  is  wanting,  seems 
unreasonable  and  groundless ;  for,  during  more  than  twenty 
years  he  publicly  and  continually  acted  as  a  bishop,  and  specially 
took  a  chief  part  in  the  mortuary  masses  for  the  soul  of  Henry 
VIII. ;  and  this  in  the  presence  of  other  prelates  who  notori- 
ously disliked  change  and  dreaded  innovation,  and  must  have 
known  well  enough  that,  as  regards  his  episcopal  character,  he 
was  truly  and  actually  what  he  was  generally  supposed  to  be. 

This  consecration  having  been  effected,  Parker  in  turn  con- 
firmed the  election  of  Barlow  to  Chichester,  and  of  Scory  to 
Hereford ;  and  then  with  their  aid  soon  afterwards,  in  due  course, 
proceeded  to  consecrate  the  other  persons  who  at  the  command 
of  the  Supreme  Head  had  been  elected  to  the  various  vacant 
bishopricks.  . 


CHAPTER  II. 

Prior  to  the  later  events  recorded  in  the  last  chapter,  a  pro- 
clamation had  been  issued  in  the  si)ring  of  the  year,  of  which 
(irindal,  writing  from  London  to  Hubert  the  Reformer,  about 
the  end  of  May,  thus  gave  his  opinion  : — 

"Now  at  last,  by  the  blessing  of  (iod,  during  the  prorogation 
of  Parliament,  there  has  been  published  a  proclamation  to 
banish  the  Pope  and  his  jurisdiction  altogether,  and  to  restore 
religion  to  that  form  which  we  had  in  the  time  of  Edward  VI. 
If  any  bishops  or  any  beneficed  persons  shall  decline  to  take 
the  oath  of  abjuration  of  the  authority  of  the  See  of  Rome, 
they  are  to  be  deprived  of  every  ecclesiastical  function  and 
deposed.  No  one  after  the  Feast  of  St.  John  the  Baptist  next 
ensuing  may  celebrate  mass  without  subjecting  himself  to  a 
most  heavy  penalty."  ' 

This  proclamation  produced  immediate  fruit.  The  inno- 
vators, who  had  been  expecting  it  for  some  weeks,  were,  upon 
its  receipt,  at  once  prepared  to  act  with  boldness  and  determina- 
tion. The  carrying  out  of  its  decrees  was,  of  course,  left  to 
local  authorities.  To  such,  considerable  latitude  was  given. 
These  authorities,  beforehand  and  from  headquarters,  had  been 
privately  but  duly  instructed.  There  was  to  be  an  immediate 
contemporaneous  raid  on  everything  valuable  in  the  churches, 
more  especially  on  all  ecclesiastical  articles  wrought  in  precious 
metal,  while  the  Church  lands  were  to  be  revalued  and  possibly, 
as  regards  ownership,  rearranged.^  Those  country  gentlemen, 
therefore,  who  were  at  once  doubtful  on  their  own  part  of  what 
to  do,  and  were  doubted  as  to  their  zeal  and  competence  by  the 
agents  of  Cecil  throughout  the  kingdom,  were  to  be  discreetly 
and  confidentially  sounded  as  to  whether  a  substantial  share  in 

^  Grindal  to  Conrad  Hubert,  Zurich  Letters  (Parker  Society),  vol.  ii. 
No.  8. 

-  An  information  made  to  Queen  Elizabeth  of  the  several  abuses  and 
frauds,  etc.,  done  unto  the  State,  etc.  —  liarl.  MSS.  quoted  in  p.  124  of 
\\'eaver's  Fimeral  Monuments. 

30 


ACTION    OF   THE   INNOVATORS.  l"] 

the  anticipated  pickings  and  stealings  might  not  probably 
quicken  their  interest  and  stir  up  their  dormant  energies  to 
accomplish  what  the  Council  so  earnestly  desired  should  be 
immediately  done. 

In  order  to  rouse  public  opinion,  therefore,  scurrilous  publica- 
tions from  the  pens  of  the  returned  exiles,  or  foreign  Protestants, 
had  been  simultaneously  circulated  by  thousands.  Some  of 
these  were  gross  in  their  language,  filthy  in  their  suggestions, 
revolutionary  in  their  proposals,  and,  though  garnished  with 
numerous  texts  of  Scripture,  blasphemous  in  their  teaching.^ 
Such  appear  to  have  been  sent  for  distribution  to  those  laymen 
and  apostate  clergy  who  were  known  to  be  favourable  to  the 
tactics  of  the  innovators.  They  were  likewise  freely  distributed 
throughout  the  various  Inns  of  Law,  and  especially  amongst  the 
students  of  Oxford  and  Cambridge.  The  authorised  Com- 
missioners for  continuing  and  completing  the  changes  resolved 
upon,  found  that  the  various  parishes  which  had  been  selected 
for  their  special  visitation  had  been  duly  prepared  for  their 
advent  by  the  receipt,  no  one  knew  how  or  from  what  quarter, 
of  the  inflammatory,  infamous,  and  obscene  literature  in 
ejuestion."  The  language  applied  therein  to  the  Pope  was 
frightful,  far  worse  than  that  which  had  recently  been  elimi- 
nated from  the  Litany  ;  but  it  will  be  found  more  than  equalled 
by  the  ribald  trash  and  rancorous  letters  and  homilies  which 
have  been  reprinted  and  issued  of  late  years  in  portly  volumes 
by  modern  Puritans.'^  In  the  afore-mentioned  literature,  the 
sacraments  were  disparaged,  the  priesthood  ridiculed,  the  act 
of  ordination  written  of  as  "  a  magical  incanting,"  extreme 
unction  styled  "a  corrupt  following  of  the  apostles"  and  the 
"dirty  greasing  of  antichrist";  while  the  Blessed  Sacrament 
of  the  Altar,  hitherto  reserved  in  a  silvern  or  golden  pix,  was 
profanely  called  "  Little  Jack-in-the-box,  "  John  in  captivity," 
and  treated  with  deliberate  and  artfully-designed  indignities  too 
fearful  to  describe. 

All  over  the  kingdom,  in  fact,  wherever  the  innovators  were 

1  In  the  51st  of  the  Injunctions  of  Queen  Elizabeth  in  1559,  this  crying  evil 
was  seen  and  acknowledged  thus  : — -"Because  there  is  a  great  abuse  in  the 
Printers  of  Books,  which  from  covetousness  chiefly  regard  not  what  they 
print,  so  they  may  have  gain,  whereby  ariseth  the  great  disorder  by  publica- 
tion of  unfruitful,  vain,  and  infamous  books  and  papers,"  etc. — Sparrow's 
Collections,  p.  So.      London,  1671. 

"  The  natural  descendants  of  these  unpleasant  scribes,  judging  by  modern 
literature  of  the  same  type,  may  possibly  be  found  amongst  the  modern 
Soupers  of  Connemara. 

^  Publications  of  the  Parker  Society. 


38  THE   CHURCH    UNDER   QUEEN    ELIZABETH. 

sufficiently  numerous,  daring,  and  profane,  this  kind  of  contro- 
versial blasphemy  was  current,  and  often  became  fashionable 
and  popular  •  while  some  of  the  deeds  done,  by  no  means  un- 
like in  character  to  that  about  to  be  recorded,  are  in  truth  too 
frightful  for  any  detailed  description  of  them  to  be  put  into  words. 

One  record  of  such,  with  the  swift  punishments  which 
followed,  will  for  the  present  suffice.  It  has  come  down  to  us 
on  good  and  sufficient  authority, — a  priest  of  the  Church  of  God, 
— and  affords,  it  is  to  be  feared,  too  graphic  and  accurate  a 
picture  of  similar  dark  deeds  then  perpetrated  : — 

"  After  that  the  Holy  Mass  was,  by  public  proclamation  of 
the  late  queen, ^  commanded  to  surcease  immediately  in  all 
places  of  England  by  Midsummer  Day  immediately  following, 
four  men  of  Dover,  in  the  county  of  Kent,  besides  others  which 
assisted  at  the  same  action,  went  into  the  church  of  the  same 
town  and  took  forth  the  copes,  vestments,  and  other  priestly 
ornaments  belonging  thereto,  giving  forth  and  boasting  abroad 
that  they  would  go  fetch  the  Pope  from  Canterbury ;  and  the 
very  next  day  after  Midsummer  Day,  these  companions  came  to 
Canterbury,  put  on  the  said  copes,  and  other  ornaments  upon 
their  backs,  and  in  a  pix,  made  to  reserve  the  Blessed  Sacrament 
of  the  Body  of  our  Saviour  Jesus,  they  put  a  dog's  [excrement] ; 
and  then  beginning  at  St.  George's  Gate,  rode  in  form  of  pro- 
cession quite  through  the  city,  till  they  came  to  Westgate, 
which  done,  the  very  same  night  they  posted  back  again  to 
Dover. 

"  One  of  these  four  was  Captain  Roberts,  who  presently  after 
carried  all  the  copes,  vestments,  and  other  ornaments  over  the 
seas  to  Dunkirk,  where  he  sold  them.  His  miserable  and 
wretched  end  was,  that  there  leaping  out  of  one  small  boat  into 
another,  to  go  to  his  ship,  the  boat  he  was  in  slipping  away,  he 
stepped  short  of  the  other,  and  so  falling  into  the  water,  pitched 
his  unhappy  head  upon  an  anchor,  where  he  beat  out  his  brains. 

"  The  second,  shortly  after  running  mad,  cast  himself  off  from 
Dover  Pier  into  the  sea,  and  so  was  drowned. 

"The  third  died  of  John  Calvin's  disease  ;  that  is  to  say,  he 
was  eaten  up  with  lice,  being  yet  alive. 

"  The  fourth,  who  afterwards  became  minister  of  Maidstone, 
falling  grievously  sick,  endured  God's  terrible  judgments,  for  he 
stunk  so  abominably  that  none,  no,  not  his  own  wife,  could 
endure  to  come  near  him  ;  so  that  when  they  gave  him  meat  to 
eat,  they  were  forced  to  put  it  upon  the  end  of  a  long  pole,  and 
so  to  reach  it  unto  him  through  a  window.     For  confirmation 

^  The  book  was  not  published  until  the  reign  of  King  James  the  First. 


THE   OATH   OF   HOMAGE.  39 

whereof  they  are  right  credible  and  worshipful  persons  yet  alive 
who  can  testify  the  same  for  a  certain  truth."  ^ 

It  is  sometimes  asserted,  by  interested  or  ignorant  writers, 
that  such  acts  as  these  never  took  place  at  all  until  the  frightful 
and  unhappy  period  of  the  Great  Rebellion.  Oliver  Cromwell 
and  Lord  Brooke  they  condemn ;  for  Thomas  Cromwell, 
Nicholas  Ridley,  Grindal,  and  Aylmer,  they  have  only  apologies 
or  praise.  The  picture  drawn  by  such  writers  of  the  days  of 
Queen  Elizabeth  is  consequently  rose-tinted,  peaceful,  and 
pleasant  to  look  upon.  But  it  is  a  picture  of  pastoral  beauty, 
peace,  and  repose,  drawn  rather  from  heated  imagination  than 
from  stern  facts.  Horrible,  in  truth,  as  were  the  deeds  of 
Dowsing  and  Prynne  sixty  years  later,  none  of  them  equalled 
in  atrocity  those  just  related  ;  while  these  last-named  unhappy 
Puritans,  who  had  sucked  in  the  principles  of  Protestantism 
and  the  rejection  of  all  authority  with  their  mothers  milk, 
must  have  well  known  by  tradition  hundreds  of  dismal  pre- 
cedents for  their  own  sacrilegious  iniquities  and  destructive 
acts,  which  may  have  spurred  them  on  to  overturn,  murder,  up- 
heave, commit  outrages,  and  destroy,  as  they  did  to  their  hearts' 
content. 

It  has  been  also  asserted  by  recent  writers,  some  evidently 
in  good  faith,  that  the  Oath  of  Homage  as  at  present  taken  by 
the  bishops  of  the  Church  of  England  is  a  modern  invention,- 
unknown  until  quite  recent  years,  or  at  all  events  of  no  earlier 
antiquity  than  the  disordered  days  of  the  revolutionary  William 
of  Orange,  and  of  no  formal  authority.  These  writers,  however, 
have  only  unintentionally  helped  to  darken  knowledge  by  bold 
assertions  which,  alas  !  most  efficiently  exemplify  their  own 
ignorance  and  blundering.  That  oath,  in  the  actual  terms  still 
made  use  of,  came  into  existence  when  the  new  Church  was 
originally  set  up,  and  it  was  certainly  and  dutifully  taken  by  the 
first  Protestant  Archbishop  of  Canterbury  on  his  knees  before 
the  queen.  Sir  William  Cecil,  no  doubt,  was  its  author,  and 
possibly  Dr.  Matthew  Parker  himself  had  a  hand  in  its  revision  ; 

'From  the  preface  to  A  Devout  Exposition  of  the  Holy  Mass,  by  John 
Heigham,  A.  D.  1622. 

-"Can  any  of  your  readers  tell  us  something  about  the  history  of  this 
secret  oath?  Who  was  the  first  bishop  who  ventured  to  swear  that  he  held 
his  spiritualties  from  the  Crown?  Has  any  bishop  denied  this,  or  protested 
against  its  apparent  meaning?  Or  will  anyone  give  an  explanation  of  the 
term  which  will  relieve  consciences,  and  effectually  meet  the  charges  our 
enemies  are  sure  to  bring  against  us— that  here  is  proof  positive  of  the  un- 
mitigated Erastianism  of  the  whole  English  Episcopate  ?"  — Rev.  Charles 
Gutch,  B.D.,  on  the  Oath  0/  Ho  wage. 


40  THE   CHURCH    UNDER   QUEEN    ELIZABETH. 

for  he  not  only  took  it  himself/  but  thus  created  a  precedent 
for  all  his  suffragans,  without  any  single  exception,  the  most 
remote  as  well  as  the  more  proximate. 

No  long  period  after  her  accession,  the  Lord  Treasurer  was 
directed  by  the  queen,  under  the  advice  of  Aylmer,  an  exile  for 
his  Protestantism,  to  assign  the  grand  and  effective  church  of  the 
Austin  Friars  in  the  city  of  London — a  church,  be  it  noted, 
which  in  Edward  the  Sixth's  time  had  already  been  thoroughly 
cleared  out  of  all  its  ancient  furniture  and  valuable  ornaments, 
and  left  as  bare  and  bald  as  possible — to  the  use  of  French, 
Flemish,  and  other  foreign  Protestants.  Upon  this  Grindal,  in 
full  communion  with  the  continental  sectaries,  applied  to  Calvin 
for  a  pastor,  who  in  response  despatched  Monsieur  Nicholas  de 
Gallars,  a  French  preacher,  to  undertake  the  office  of  superin- 
tendent there,  and  who  received  the  bishop's  "authority."  The 
service,  exactly  modelled  after  those  of  the  foreign  conventicle, 
consisted  of  long  prayers  and  longer  sermons.  But  the  disputes 
about   free  will   and  justification,^  original  sin  and  prevenient 

1  The  following  is  the  Oath  of  Homage,  taken  on  February  23,  1560  (See 
Donizstic  State  Papei-s,  Elizabeth,  vol.  xi.):  —  "I,  Matthew  Parker,  Doctor  of 
Divinity,  now  elect  Archbishop  of  Canterbury,  do  utterly  testify  and  declare 
in  my  conscience,  that  Your  Majesty  is  the  only  Supreme  Governor  of 
this  Realm,  and  of  all  other  Your  Highness's  dominions  and  countries,  as 
well  in  all  spiritual  or  ecclesiastical  things  or  causes,  as  temporal,  and  no 
foreign  prince,  person,  prelate,  power,  superiority,  pre-eminence,  or  authority, 
ecclesiastical  or  spiritual,  within  this  Realm  ;  and  therefore  I  do  utterly 
renounce  and  forsake  all  foreign  jurisdictions,  powers,  superiorities,  and 
authorities  ;  and  do  promise  that  from  henceforth  I  shall  bear  faith  and 
true  allegiance  unto  Your  Majesty,  Your  heirs  and  lawful  successors,  and  to 
my  power  shall  assist  and  defend  all  jurisdictions,  privileges,  pre-eminences, 
and  authorities  granted  or  belonging  to  Your  Highness,  Your  heirs  and  suc- 
cessors, or  united  and  annexed  to  the  Imperial  Crown  of  this  Realm.  And 
further,  /  knoivledgc  ami  confess  to  have  and  to  hold  the  said  archbishopric  of 
Canterbury,  and  the  possessions  of  the  same  entirely,  as  well  the  spiritualties 
as  temporalties  thereof,  only  of  Your  Majesty  and  the  Croivn  Royal  of  this 
Your  Realms.  And  as  for  the  said  possessions,  I  do  my  homage  presently 
unto  Your  Highness,  and  to  the  same,  and  Your  heirs  and  lawful  successors, 
shall  be  faithful  and  true.     So  help  me  God,  and  the  contents  of  this  book." 

"  We  also,  whose  names  be  underwritten,  being  bishops  of  the  several 
bishoprics  within  Your  Majesty's  Realm,  do  testify,  declare,  and  acknow- 
ledge all  and  every  part  of  the  premises  in  like  manner  as  the  right  reverend 
father  in  God,  the  Archbishop  of  Canterbury,  has  done." 

-  "If  any  preacher  or  parson,  vicar  or  curate,  so  licensed  shall  fortune  to 
preach  any  matter  tending  to  dissension,  or  to  the  derogation  of  the  religion 
and  doctrine  received,  that  the  hearers  denounce  the  same  to  the  Ordinaries, 
or  to  the  next  bishop  of  the  same  place  ;  but  no  man  openly  to  contrary  or  to 
impugne  the  same  speech  so  disorderly  uttered,  whereby  may  grow  oftence 
and  disquiet  of  the  people,  but  shall  be  convinced  and  reproved  by  the 
Ortiinary." — Articles  for  Doctrine  and  Preaching,  issued  by  Queen  Eliza- 
beth, 1564. 


NEW   DOCTRINES   DANGEROUS.  4 1 

grace,  became  so  fierce  and  furious — for  the  preacher  was  con- 
stantly answered  on  the  spot  by  his  hearers — that,  the  civil 
authorities  were  often  called  in  to  settle  biblical  controversies, 
which  had  ended  in  a  free  fight  and  a  riot,  by  turning  out  both 
preacher  and  hearers  by  force,  and  then  locking  the  doors. 

Moreover,  some  of  the  foreign  reformers  who  had  arrived  here, 
in  order  to  stir  up  the  sluggish  nature  of  English  Protestants, 
were  persons  who  had  so  offended  against  the  laws  of  their  own 
country,  that  their  presence  in  London  was  not  particularly 
desired.  We  all  know  that  justification  by  faith  rather  than  by 
good  works — for  "  good  works  are  but  filthy  rags,"  as  the  preachers 
of  this  new  gospel  maintained — was  their  chief  and  favourite 
dogma ;  a  dogma  not  conducive  either  to  sound  morals  or  sober 
conduct.  So  that  in  the  course  of  a  very  few  years,  i.e.  in  1568, 
the  queen  issued  a  proclamation, ^  requiring  all  such  intruding 
Protestants  to  be  examined,  as  many  of  them  were  credibly 
believed  to  have  been  guilty  of  "  rebellion,  murders,  robberies, 
or  such  like,"  and  to  have  only  come  over  here  to  preach  their 
blasphemous  gospel  in  order  to  avoid  the  reasonable  consequences 
of  notorious  transgressions  in  their  own  country. 

Eventually,  when  their  extravagances  became  dangerous  and 
unendurable,-  for  it  is  always  far  easier  to  open  the  flood-gates 
of  heresy  and  rebellion  than  to  close  them  again — these  foreign 
Protestants,  on  pain  of  imprisonment  and  loss  of  goods,  were 
ordered  to  leave  the  kingdom  within  twenty-one  days. 

Such  a  strong  measure,  of  course,  excited  them  greatly  ;  and 
their  preachers  were  fierce  in  its  denunciation  and  furious  with 
Cecil.  Many  of  these  openly  maintained,  as  Knox  and  Calvin 
had  done  long  ago,  that  the  rule  of  women  in  the  Lord's  fold 
was  a  monstrous  anomaly  and  a  sin  ;  and  dealt  out  covert 
maledictions  at  the  queen  and  her  secret  love  affairs  most 
unsparingly,  using  language  rather  forcible  than  either  choice  or 
clean. 

Soon  after  the  queen's  accession,  Giovanni  Angelo  de  Medicis, 
Pope  Pius  IV.,  wrote  a  beautiful  and  even  touchmg  letter  to  Her 

1  Wilkins'  Concilia,  vol.  iv.  pp.  204  and  254. 

-  "  Here  under  the  shelter  of  the  reformed  religion,  they  maintained  several 
gross  errors  and  heresies.  Some  of  these  were  German  Anabaptists  ;  and 
others  propagated  opinions  of  a  very  dangerous  tendency  ;  and  thus  misbelief 
gained  ground,  and  some  of  the  ignorant  natives  were  miserably  misled.  To 
stop  the  spreading  of  this  infection,  the  queen,  by  a  proclamation,  ordered 
these  hereticks,  both  aliens  and  natural-born  English,  to  depart  the  kingdom 
within  one-and-twenty  days.  The  penalty  of  staying  longer  was  imprison- 
ment and  forfeiting  their  goods." — An  Ecclesiastical  History  of  Great  Britain, 
by  Jeremy  Collier,  vol.  vi.  p.  322.     London,  1846. 


42  THE   CHURCH    UNDER   QUEEN    EEIZABETH. 

Majesty,  sending  it  by  a  nuncio,  the  Abbot  Vincent  Parpaglia,^ 
who  was  directed  to  travel  through  Lower  Germany  towards 
England.  But  the  queen,  learning  the  purport  of  his  coming, 
and  having  consulted  her  Council,  who  feared  any  change  of 
purpose  on  her  part,  declined  to  allow  him  to  land  in  her 
kingdom.  He  had  reached  Calais,  but  was  thus  compelled  to 
return. 

The  paternal  action  of  His  Holiness  has  been  so  often  mis- 
represented that  the  actual  words  of  this  fatherly  communication 
ought  to  be  carefully  studied  : — 

"Very  dear  daughter  in  Christ,  AVe  send  you  greeting,  health, 
and  the  apostolical  benediction.  How  greatly  We  desire  (Our 
pastoral  charge  so  requiring  it)  to  procure  the  salvation  of  your 
soul,  and  to  provide  likewise  for  your  honour,  and  the  security  of 
your  kingdom  withal,  God,  Who  is  the  Searcher  of  all  hearts, 
knoweth ;  and  you  yourself  may  understand  by  what  We  have 
given  in  charge  to  this  Our  beloved  son  Vincentius  Parpaglia, 
Abbot  of  St.  Saviour's,  a  man  well  known  to  you,  and  well 
approved  by  Us.  Wherefore,  We  do  again  and  again  exhort  and 
admonish  your  Highness,  most  dear  daughter,  that,  rejecting  evil 
counsellors,  which  love  not  you  but  themselves,  and  serve  their 
own  lusts,  you  would  take  the  fear  of  God  into  council  with  you, 
and,  acknowledging  the  time  of  your  visitation,  would  show  your- 
self obedient  to  Our  fatherly  persuasions  and  wholesome  counsels, 
and  promise  to  yourself  from  Us  all  things  that  may  make  not 
only  to  the  salvation  of  your  soul,  but  also  whatsoever  you  shall 
desire  from  Us,  for  the  establishing  and  confirming  of  your 
princely  dignity,  according  to  the  authority,  place,  and  office 
committed  unto  Us  by  God.  And  if  so  be  (as  We  desire  and 
hope),  that  you  shall  return  into  the  bosom  of  the  Church,  We 
shall  be  ready  to  receive  you  with  the  same  love,  honour,  and 
rejoicing,  that  the  father  in  the  gospel  did  his  son  returning  to 
him ;  although  Our  joy  is  like  to  be  the  greater,  in  that  he  was 

^  Some  writers  have  asserted,  but  with  Httle  or  no  evidence  of  the  fact,  that 
Parpaglia  bore  a  message  from  the  Pope  vokinteering  to  reverse  his  pre- 
decessor's sentence  against  the  so-called  "marriage"  of  Henry  VHP  with 
Anne  Roleyn,  and  to  sanction  the  revolutionary  changes  which  had  been 
made  anew  in  the  divine  office,  on  condition  that  the  queen  acknowledged 
His  Holiness's  supremacy  ;  but  from  the  days  of  Camden  down  to  those  of 
("hancellor  Harington  of  Exeter,  no  sufficient  and  conclusive  proofs  of  this 
pio;30sition  have  been  forthcoming.- — See  Camden's  Annals,  p.  46.  London, 
1688.  Tierney's  edition  oi  Dodifs  Church  History,  vol.  ii.  p.  147.  London, 
1839.  Collier  s  History,  vol.  vi.  p.  395.  London,  1840.  Ware's  Foxes  and 
Firebrands,  part  iii.  p.  15  ;  and  Pope  Fins  IV.  and  the  Book  of  Common 
Prayer,  by  E.  C.  Harrington.     London,  1856. 


THE  bishops'  lands.  43 

joyful  for  the  safety  of  one  son,  but  you,  drawing  along  with  you 
all  the  people  of  England,  shall  hear  Us  and  the  whole  company 
of  Our  brethren  (who  are  shortly,  God  willing,  to  be  assembled 
in  a  General  Council,  for  the  taking  away  of  heresies,  and  so  for 
the  salvation  of  yourself  and  your  whole  nation),  fill  the  Church 
Universal  with  rejoicing  and  gladness.  Yea,  you  shall  make 
glad  Heaven  itself  with  such  a  memorable  fact,  and  achieve  ad- 
mirable renown  to  your  name,  much  more  glorious  than  the 
crown  you  wear.  But  concerning  this  matter,  the  same  Vin- 
centius  shall  deal  with  you  more  largely,  and  shall  declare  Our 
fatherly  affection  toward  you  ;  and  We  entreat  your  Majesty  to 
receive  him  lovingly,  to  hear  him  diligently,  and  to  give  the  same 
credit  to  his  speeches,  which  you  would  to  Ourself 

"Given  at  Rome,  at  St.  Peter's,  under  the  Fisherman's  Ring, 
May  5th,  1560,  in  the  first  year  of  our  Pontificate."  ^ 

But  to  proceed.  Edmund  Grindal,  who,  after  a  fashion,  but 
with  considerable  canonical  irregularities,  had  been  elected  Bishop 
of  London,  was  by  Parker  and  others  consecrated  at  Lambeth  on 
St.  I'homas'  Day,  1559,  at  the  same  time  that  Richard  Cocks, 
Rowland  Meyrick,  and  Edwin  Sandys  were  likewise  consecrated 
for  the  Sees  of  Ely,  Bangor,  and  Worcester. 

The  first  and  most  striking  fact  which  was  brought  home  to 
the  new  bishops,  after  they  had  secured  possession  of  their 
temporalties,  was  the  extremely  small  amount  of  money  which 
the  episcopal  lands  and  manors  actually  produced.  Many  had 
been  already  sold  or  alienated ;  of  those  remaining,  long  leases 
had  already  been  granted  by  the  Crown  during  vacancies ;  while 
all  the  lands  had  sorely  deteriorated  by  want  of  due  attention 
and  proper  cultivation.  The  prelates,  therefore,  made  formal 
complaint  to  Sir  William  Cecil ;  but  on  the  part  of  the  Supreme 
Governess  he  delicately  rebuked  them  for  their  importunity,'^ 
])ointing  out  with  grim  satire  that  spiritual  persons  should  learn 
to  be  satisfied  with  spiritual  things,  and  not  look  too  anxiously 
after  things  temporal. 

Preparations  also  were  about  this  time  made  for  filling  up  the 
many  other  Sees  vacant,  a  work  in  which  Sir  William  Cecil  took 
a  leading  and  prominent  part.  Even  at  this  period  he  foresaw 
clearly  enough  that  the  "  foreign  gospel  "  and  its  strange  preachers 

1  MS.  "Vatican,"  2896,  n.  214.  MS.  "Titus,"  C.  vii.,  n.  11.  Brit. 
Museum. 

■^  "When  the  bishops  sued  to  the  Lord  Treasurer  for  revenue,  they  were 

merely  answered  that  spiritual  things  be  meetest  for  spiritual  men." — R ny 

to  Challoner,  Foreign  Papers,  Elizabeth,  p.  137,  No.  323,  Nov.  23,  1559. 


44  THE   CHURCH    UNDER   QUEEN    ELIZABETH. 

might  cause  him  considerable  inconvenience.  He  was  extremely 
careful,  therefore,  not  to  commit  himself  absolutely  to  their 
policy.  And  though  he  occasionally  condescended  to  employ 
them  and  secure  their  help,  he  was  shrewd  enough  to  keep  them 
all  at  arm's  length. 

The  new  bishops  found  themselves  likewise  terribly  embarrassed 
by  the  pressing  want  of  clergy,^  and  had  no  means  to  their  hands 
with  which  to  supply  it.  Many  of  the  parish  churches,  having 
lost  their  chief  endowments  and  been  completely  cleared  out  of 
everything  of  value  in  metal, — in  some  nothing  but  a  tin  or  latten 
vessel  remaining  for  the  Communion  board,-  the  windows  of  the 
choir  broken,  the  lead  from  the  roofs  stripped  off,  and  side 
chapels  or  chantries  often  destroyed  for  the  sake  of  the  stones  of 
which  they  had  been  built, — even  the  exiles  from  Geneva  and 
elsewhere  declined  to  serve  them.  Numerous  cures  w^ere  vacant, 
and  several  hundreds  of  chapelries  unserved ;  students  for  the 
ministry  at  Oxford  and  Cambridge  had  been  so  reduced  in 
numbers  that  they  might  be  now  counted  rather  by  tens  than,  as 
of  old,  by  hundreds  or  even  by  thousands.''  Those  of  the  cast- 
out  monies  who  were  in  any  way  competent  for  the  office  had 
been  duly  promoted  to  the  priesthood  six  years  previously  in 
Queen  INIary's  reign  ;  others,  however,  had  long  ago  taken  to 
secular  callings  and  married;^  some,  again,  had  become  parish 

^  "  Many  of  our  parishes  have  no  clergymen,  and  some  dioceses  are  without 
a  bishop.  And  out  of  that  very  small  number  who  administer  the  sacraments 
throughout  this  great  country,  there  is  hardly  one  in  a  hundred  who  is  both 
able  and  willing  to  preach  the  Word  of  God." — Zurich  Letters,  1st  series, 
No.  35,  From  Thomas  Lever  to  BuUinger,  dated  loth  July  1560.  "In  the 
diocese  of  Durham  the  ministry  is  destitute  of  a  sufficiency  of  worthy  men, 
there  and  in  other  places." — Robert  Home,  Dean  of  Durham,  to  Cecil,  Nov. 
13,  1500,  Foreign  Papers,  ElizahetJt.     London,  1865. 

"Where  is  there  any  learned  number  to  supply  their  rooms?  There  be 
few  schools  abroad  to  bring  up  youth  ;  but  so  many  benefices  so  small  that 
no  men  will  take  them  ;  and  so  the  parishes  he  unserved,  and  the  people  wax 
wiihout  fear  of  God.'' —Bishop  PHhi/igtoii's  Works  (Parker  Society),  p.  593. 
London,  1S42. 

-  "That  the  parish  provide  a  decent  table,  standing  on  a  frame,  for  the 
Communion  Table." — Queen  Elizabctli  s  Articles  for  Doctrine  and  Preacliing, 
1564. 

^  In  the  year  1561,  as  Anthony  a  Wood  has  put  on  record,  so  frightful  was 
the  emptiness  and  depression  at  Oxford,  that  throughout  the  whole  year  there 
were  no  degrees  given  "  in  Divinity,  and  but  one  in  the  Civil  Law,  three  in 
I'hysic,  and  eight  in  Arts,"  and,  in  the  Act  of  the  same  year,  "  not  one  in 
Divinity,  Law,  or  Physic."  The  students  also  were  so  poor  and  beggarly 
that  many  of  them  were  forced  this  and  the  year  following  to  obtain  licence 
under  the  Commissary  Seal,  to  require  the  alms  of  well-disposed  people. — 
Annals  of  the  University,  by  Anthony  a  Wood.     Snh  anno  1561. 

"^  E.g.   Hugh  Wren  (son  of  Gcoflrey  Wren,  Confessor   to    Henry  VIL), 


MUCH   PREACHING   IN    DEMAND.  45 

clerks  and  sextons ;  some  had  been  charged  on  suspicion,  cap- 
tured, and  allowed  to  rot  and  die  in  prison  ;  others  had  gone 
abroad  in  their  extremity;  a  few,  in  despair  of  securing  anything 
more  suitable,  had  undertaken  the  office  of  steward  to  noblemen 
and  gentlemen  who  had  obtained  possession  of  the  monastic 
lands ;  while  many  of  the  monks  had  found,  what  had  been 
denied  to  them  throughout  the  last  years  of  their  chequered 
lives,  peace  and  rest  in  death. 

Amongst  the  more  fanatical  innovators,  preaching,  and  the 
desire  to  attend  it,  had  at  this  time  become  such  a  rage — the 
Communion  Table,  as  well  actually  as  metaphorically,  being  now 
wholly  overshadowed  by  the  pulpit — that  unless  a  divine  could 
expound  a  crabbed  text  with  art,  skilfully  analyse  its  various  parts 
in  detail,  compare  it  with  twenty  other  texts  dealing  with  the 
same  or  a  somewhat  similar  subject,  and  then  adroitly  branch  off 
with  perplexing  dissertations  in  half-a-dozen  unexpected  directions, 
he  was  fearlessly  written  down  as  at  once  incompetent  and  godless, 
lacking  spiritual  gifts  and  free  grace,  a  mere  dumb  dog,  unworthy 
of  hire  or  notice. 

Such  human  treasures  as  those  who  could  thus  preach  popu- 
larly for  two  hours  or  so  without  any  break  or  mishap  were 
still  few  and  far  between.  Though  fully  appreciated,  they  could 
not  be  secured  every  day  or  anywhere.  Their  homiletic  gifts 
were  choice,  rare,  and  superfine.  The  demand  for  them,  conse- 
quently, was  very  greatly  in  excess  of  the  supply.  But  even 
these  when  handling  Scripture — often  casting  pearls  before  swine 
— were  properly  shunned,  with  a  shudder,  by  those  who  at  heart 
clung  to  the  ancient  faith. 

Inferior  officers  of  the  Establishment,  the  illiterate  and  ill- 
mannered,  the  "sundry  artificers"  and  those  of  "base  occupa- 
tion," to  whom  Parker  and  Grindal  had,  it  may  be  supposed, 
given  some  kind  of  new  ordination,  and  a  special  commission  to 
preach,^  were  required,  instead  of  "holding  forth  out  of  their 

chanting  priest  of  Hanslope,  Bucks,  at  the  dissolution  in  1547,  was  sixty  years 
of  age.  In  1549  a  pension  of  6s.  5d.  a  year,  together  with  the  Chanting 
Lands,  were  granted  to  him  for  twenty-one  years.  He  had  a  son  of  the  same 
name,  whose  wife  was  Margaret,  by  whom  he  had  four  daughters.  This  son 
was  buried  at  Hanslope,  29th  August  15S5.  He  belonged  to  the  race  of 
Matthew  Wren,  Bishop  of  Ely,  and  Sir  Christopher  Wren,  the  architect  of 
St.  Paul's  Cathedral  ;  and  his  will,  proved  at  Oxford,  was  dated  28th  August 
1585- 

^  "The  supply  of  clergy  was  insufficient,  and  even  the  withdrawal  or  re- 
moval of  what  but  for  this  would  have  been  so  considerable  a  portion  as  one 
in  fifty-three  of  the  beneficed  clergy  in  England,  seriously  embarrassed  the 
new  bishops.  As  in  other  times,  men  unqualified  by  learning,  and  by  the 
possession  of  clerical   gravity,    or   deficient    in    regard   to   our   ideal    moral 


46  THE   CHURCH    UNDER   QUEEN    ELIZABETH. 

own  heads  " — as  the  phrase  then  stood,  and  so  remained  almost 
to  our  own  day — were  required  to  dehver  over  and  over  again 
the  "godly"  but  somewhat  coarse-languaged  homilies  which  the 
innovators  had  authoritatively  put  forth  for  the  practical  use  of 
their  ill-instructed,^  ignorant,  and  vulgar  allies.  If  these  homilies 
in  question  were  those  which  satisfied  the  not  over-refined  tastes 
of  the  new  prelates,  we  need  not  stay  to  contemplate  what  was 
the  kind  of  taste  then  popular  with  these  new  and  too  truly 
"  inferior  "  clergy. 

The  dearth  of  spiritual  privileges  and  the  desolation  consequent 
thereupon  became  by  consequence  truly  awful.  Churches  were 
closed,  for  there  were  none  to  serve  them.  Infants  remained 
unbaptized,  women  were  not  churched,  children  were  unin- 
structed.  In  some  places  the  dead  were  buried,  like  dogs, 
without  either  rite  or  ceremony ;  save  that  poor  and  pious 
neighbours  gathered  near  to  tell  their  beads  and  recite  the  De 
profxindis^  and  this  often  at  the  risk  of  condign  punishment. 

Even  in  cathedrals  the  Communion  was  administered  but 
once  a  quarter,  though  ordered  once  a  month.  Sometimes  the 
authorities  tolerated  the  ministerial  acts  of  persons  who  had  not 
received  any  but  Presbyterian  ordination,  and  possibly  not  even 
that.  The  "  Lord's  board,"  as  it  was  called,  was  brought  down 
with  its  tressels  from  the  east  end  of  the  chancel,-  and  placed,  as 
for  a  domestic  meal,  with  benches  round,  in  the  middle  of  the  choir. 
It  was  covered  with  an  ample  table-napkin  of  Damascus  cloth.  A 
large  leathern  bottle  of  wine,^  some  loaves  of  bread,  and  a  knife, 
sometimes  a  pewter  plate  and  flagon,  or  occasionally  a  wooden 

standard,  however  truly  they  conformed  to  the  naturally  low  standard  of 
general  moraliiy,  were  ordained  and  beneficed  to  supply  the  deficiency  of  the 
first  years  of  the  reign  of  Elizabeth.  —  7/ie  English  Episco/a/c  at  the  Accession 
pf  Elizabeth,  p.  289.      Union  Revidv.      London,  1875. 

^  "We  are  only  wanting  in  preachers,  and  of  these  there  is  a  great  and 
alarming  scarcity.  The  schools  also  are  entirely  deserted." — Zurich  Letters, 
John  Jewell  to  I'eter  Martyr,  1st  series,  No.  38.      Parker  Society. 

-  The  table  is  ordered  to  be  "set  in  the  place  where  the  altar  stood  .  .  . 
savini^wlien  the  Couii/ninion  0/  the  Sacrament  is  to  be  diitribnteJ,  at  which 
time  the  same  shall  be  so  placed  in  good  sort  within  the  chancel.  .  .  .  A/ter 
the  Communion  is  done,  from  time  to  time,  the  same  holy  table  to  be  placed 
where  it  stood  before." — Queen  Elizabeth's  Injunctions,  1559. 

•*  "A  bottyl  of  leather  and  a  flagon  of  wh'te  met  all  for  wine  for  the 
Supper." — Churchwardens'  Accounts  of  St.  Mary  Magdalene's,  Oxford, 
1551-2.  "//<?w,  whether  you  have  a  faire  potte  or  two  of  pewter  for  the 
sweet  keeping  of  the  wine?" — William  Chaderton's  Visitation  Articles  for 
the  Diocese  of  Lincoln,  A.u.  1603.  "The  bread  delivered  to  the  communi- 
cants be  such  as  is  usual  to  be  eaten  at  the  table  with  other  meats.  .  .  .  No 
other  bread  to  be  used  by  the  minister." — William  Overton's  Visitation 
Articles,  15S4. 


THE  "  SUPPER     A  MEAL.  .  47 

platter  and  a  tin  cup,  were  by  the  sexton  then  placed  upon  it, 
A  cushion  and  a  Prayer-Book  of  the  latest  revision  completed  the 
ornanienta.  The  proceedings  began  by  the  singing  of  a  hymn.^ 
Round  the  table  the  people  sat  or  stood.  The  minister,  though 
ordered  to  go  to  its  north  end  by  the  direction  of  the  rubric, 
often  stood  at  the  eastern  -  part,  or  seated  himself  in  an  arm- 
chair, where  he  alternately  preached  and  prayed.  When  the 
service  was  over,  what  remained  of  the  bread  and  wine  -^  was 
passed  round  again  to  the  congregation,  who  helped  themselves, 
and  so  were  communicated,  after,  a  fashion,  twice  over.  The 
bottles  and  flagons  were  then  taken  away,  the  cloth  removed,  and 
the  table  often  lifted  back  again  to  its  place  under  the  east  wall. 

Such  was  the  ordinary  rule  and  custom  with  reference  to  what 
was  termed  "the  Supper." 

Some  of  the  more  fanatical  and  mad  of  the  innovating  party, 
however,  adopting  the  Protestant  method  of  interpretation  of 
Scripture,  maintained  that  even  such  practices  were  wrong  and 
v.'ithout  biblical  authority,  and  that  the  Lord's  Supper  ought  to 
be  something  very  different — a  well-prepared  and  substantial 
meal,  at  which  the  faithful  could  satisfy  the  cravings  of  hunger 
with  "a  variety  and  abundance  of  meat  and  drink."  ^  Ever 
since  the  days  of  St.  Paul,  the  Catholic  Church,  as  they  so 
modestly  maintained,  had  been  in  blind  error.  As  some  persons 
imagined,  it  was  thus  reserved  to  certain  infallible  innovators  of 
the  sixteenth  century,  madmen,  fanatics,  and  demon-possessed, 
to  redeliver  the  lost  truth.  One  fool  often  makes  many.  There 
were  several  who  enthusiastically  embraced  this  new  and  remark- 
able idea. 

^  "There  may  be  sung  a  hymn  or  such-like  song  to  the  praise  of  Ahnighty 
God  in  the  best  sort  of  melody  and  music  that  may  be  conveniently  devised, 
having  respect  that  the  sentence  [Qy.  sense]  of  the  hymn  may  be  under- 
standed  and  perceived." — Injunctions  of  Queen  Elizabeth,  1559. 

-  "The  minister,  when  there  is  no  communion,  useth  a  surplice  only, 
standing  on  the  east  side  of  the  table,  with  his  face  towards  the  people." — 
Strype's  Life  of  Parker,  vol.  i.  p.  365. 

"  No  less  than  ten  "  rundletts  of  wine"  were  used  at  Amersham,  Bucks, 
during  the  year  1603,  for  the  Lord's  Supper  ;  thus  showing  anew  that  "  the 
mystery  had  become  a  meal." — See  remains  of  a  AdS.  Volume  of  Church 
Accottnts  of  that  town,  A.D.  1541-16S4,  still  in  the  vestry-room. 

•*  Robert  Cooke,  one  of  the  gentlemen  of  the  Queen's  Chapel,  wrote : — 
"  My  remarks  relate  to  the  Last  Supper  of  Christ,  in  the  administration  of 
which  a  mistake  is  made  nowadays,  and  ever  has  been  almost  from  the 
time  of  St.  Paul  :  since  he  placed  before  the  Corinthians  a  supper  to  be 
eaten  ;  we  only  a  morsel  of  bread  in  mockery  of  a  supper.  They  used  a 
variety  and  abundance  of  meat  and  drink,  so  as  to  depart  satisfied  ;  we  return 
hungry."— Robert  Cooke  to  Rodolph  Cualter,  Zurich  Letters,  2nd  series. 
Letter  95. 


48  THE   CHURCH    UNDER   QUEEN    ELIZABETH. 

When  such  services  as  that  just  described  were  calmly  con- 
trasted with  the  ancient  and  familiar  mass,'  no  wonder  that  the 
dazed  and  staggered  people  felt  disposed  to  leave  the  despoiled 
and  empty  churches  to  the  owls  and  bats ;  no  wonder  that,  as 
was  so  often  the  case,  they  refused  under  any  circumstances  to 
enter  them.  Except  with  those  who  were  on  the  look-out  for 
their  own  advancement,  the  changes  effected  were  most  unpopular. 
Some  of  the  new  bishops,  in  their  exuberant  piety,  scolded  like 
angry  fishwomen,  or  swore  like  their  Royal  Mistress  ;  -  but  neidier 
bad  language  nor  coarse  oaths  served  the„  cause  of  the  new 
gospel,  which  in  many  parts  sorely  languished.  The  novel  title 
of  Supreme  Governess,  the  new-fangled  supremacy  itself,  with 
all  its  complex  consequences,  as  well  as  the  newly-revised  Prayer- 
Book,  were  each  and  all  disliked.  Nothing  in  the  recent  pro- 
clamation had  commended  itself  to  the  great  body  of  the  people, 
— whether  ancient  nobility,  lawful  clergy,  or  gentlemen  of  blood 
and  estate  be  comprehended  in  that  wide  but  ambiguous  term, — 
so  that  a  large  and  influential  majority  refused  to  acquiesce  in 
the  changes. 

What,  therefore,  the  upholders  of  might  against  right  were 
compelled  to  attempt  could  only  be  effected  by  a  tortuous  and 
astute  policy,  not  by  direct  but  by  crooked  courses ;  and  these 
were  taken  artfully  and  warily,  according  to  varying  circumstances 
and  by  the  aid  of  means  ready  to  hand.  The  work  was  done 
by  degrees,  and  in  the  manner  and  by  a  method  now  to  be 
described. 

The  Oath  of  Supremacy  was  duly  tendered  to  all  the  clergy 
in  accordance  with  the  recent  enactment.  Many  important 
offices  were  vacant.     By  almost  the  whole  of  the  leading  digni- 

^  "  For  their  continual  massinn;  afoie  noon,  we  praise  God  that  hath 
delivered  us  from  it,  as  a  thing  contrary  to  His  holy  will  and  ordinance.  St. 
Paul  says  that  when  they  came  together  to  eat  the  Lord's  Supper  they  should 
tarry  one  for  another;  but  these  shorn,  shaveling,  shameless  priests  would 
neither  remain  together  one  with  another,  nor  yet  let  the  people  have  any 
part  with  them.  Every  one  would  creep  into  a  corner  to  an  altar  alone, 
there  lift  up  on  high,  eat  and  drink  un  all  alone,  sell  good  pennyworths,  and 
bless  them  with  the  empty  chalice." — Bishop  Pilkiiii^/oiis  Works,  Parker 
Society,  p.  528.      London,  1842. 

-  "  The  cholerick  oaths  and  manifold  rare  upbraidings "  [of  my  Lord  of 
Hereford]  "  be  of  no  avail  with  the  bastards  of  Antichrist,  though  spoken  in 
the  Quene's  Majestie's  name."  —  Again  :  John  Best,  Bishop  of  Carlisle, 
writin"  to  Cecil,  reports  the  state  of  his  diocese.  "  The  priestes  are  wicked 
impes  of  Antichrist,  for  the  most  part  very  ignorant  and  stubborn  ;  past 
measure  false  and  subtle." — J>onu's/ic  S/atc  J\jf'crs,  Elizabelh,  vol.  xvii. 

For  a  due  account  of  Her  Majesty's  ability  and  proficiency  in  profane 
swearing,  the  reader  should  consult  her  godson  .Sir  John  Harington's  A-^wj^^ 
Anliqui:. 


ACTION   AGAINST   THE   OLD   CLERGY. 


49 


taries  of  the  Church  it  was  firmly  and  resolutely  refused.  More 
than  twelve  of  the  deans  of  cathedral  and  collegiate  churches 
deliberately  declined  to  take  it,  and,  as  some  avowed,  were  quite 
prepared  for  the  consequences  of  their  refusal.  Numbers  of  the 
archdeacons,  canons,  and  prebendaries  did  the  same,i  as  was 
the  case  also  with  numerous  heads  of  colleges  and  influential 
members  of  the  two  universities.  Amongst  the  parochial  clergy, 
an  important  rather  than  a  considerable  minority  were  likewise 
equally  true  to  the  faith  of  their  fathers;  declining  with  firmness 
and  resolution  to  acknowledge  an  illegitimate  woman  as,  in  any 
form  or  shape,  or  because  of  any  legislation,  the  Supreme 
(ioverness  of  the  Church  of  England.  In  this  they  were  some- 
times supported  by  the  public.^  Many  of  them,  however,  were 
passive  and  obedient,  waiting  for  another  change,  and  hoping 
earnestly  for  better  and  brighter  times.  One  reaction  had 
happily  taken  place;  others,  they  assumed,  might  possiblv 
toUow. 

As  a  consequence  of  their  refusal,  certain  of  the  dignitaries 
in  question  were  either  cast  into  prison  and  loaded  with  chains, 
or  promptly  banished  the  realm.  No  favour  was  shown  to  any 
who  resisted  the  enactment,  except,  for  personal  reasons,  to  a 
few  feeble  and  worn-out  clergy  who  were  cruelly  denied  the 
consolations  of  religion,  confined  to  special  localities,  and  not 
permitted  to  go  beyond  well-defined  limits.  But  the  old  priests  ■'• 
retained  their  well-deserved  popularity.  The  Friars  Observant 
at  Greenwich,  some  of  the  Benedictines  from  Westminster,  the 
Carthusian  Fathers  in  Richmond,  as  well  as  the  Bridgetine  Nuns 
of  Sion  House,  one  and  all,  marking  the  signs  of  the  times,  left 
their  desolated  countr}^,  and  for  ever  turned  their  backs  upon 
their  former  sacred  homes.  Persons  of  blood  and  rank,  noble- 
men and  gentlemen,  and  sometimes,  indeed,  noble  and  delicate 

^  "The  whole  of  the  clergy  deprived  at  this  time  stands  thus:  fourteen 
bishops,  already  mentioned  ;  three  bishops-elect,  one  abbot,  four  priors,  and 
one  abbess  ;  twelve  deans,  fourteen  archdeacons,  sixty  canons  or  prebendaries, 
one  hundred  priests,  well  preferred  ;  fifteen  heads  of  colleges  in  Oxford  and 
Cambridge,  to  which  may  be  added  about  twenty  doctors  in  several  faculties." 
— Ecclesiastical  History  of  Great  Britain,  by  Jeremy  Collier,  vol.  vi.  p.  242. 
London,  1846. 

-  Oil  the  inauguration  of  Dr.  Francis  as  the  new  Protestant  Provost  of 
Queen's  College,  Oxford,  there  was  a  serious  riot.  — Letter  of  Scholars  of 
Oxford  to  Cecil,  May  n,  1561,  Domestic  State  Papers,  Elizabeth,  No.  7, 
vol.  xvii. 

'^  Some  old  priests,  Brigg,  Blaxton,  Arden,  Gregory,  and  others,  though 
driven  out  of  Exeter,  were  received  in  Bishop  Scory's  diocese  (Hereford) 
with  acclamation,  and  feasted  in  the  streets  by  torchlight — of  which  he  wrote 
and  made  complaint.— /)<7W(?j-i'?V  State  Papers,  1547-15S0,  August  17,  1561. 

D 


50  THE   CHURCH    UNDER   QUEEN    ELIZABETH. 

ladies  likewise,  cheerfully  left  their  pleasant  mansions  and 
ancient  possessions,  suffering  any  spoiling  of  their  goods  and 
destitution  rather  than  give  uj)  their  faith.  The  most  respected 
and  best  learned  of  the  universities,  becoming  exiles,  were 
scattered  throughout  foreign  lands,  M-eeping  by  strange  waters 
because  of  the  religious  desolation  of  their  native  homes.  Some 
found  a  refuge  and  home  in  Flanders,  others  in  France,  some  in 
Italy.  As  regards  the  latter  country,  it  is  interesting  to  remember 
that  the  saintly  Archl)ishop  of  Milan,  Charles  Borromeo,  received 
the  English  exiles  in  that  beautiful  city  with  cordial  kindness. 
He  truly  bound  up  their  spiritual  wounds,  pouring  in  oil  and 
wine.  For  several  years,  indeed,  His  Grace's  own  confessor  was 
a  Welsh  canon,  Dr.  (jriffith  Roberts,  and  his  last  grand  vicar 
was  another  Welshman,  Dr.  Owen  Lewis. 

For  the  inferior  clergy  these  days  were  indeed  days  of  trial. 
Many  of  them  obviously  conformed  to  the  new  order  of  things 
for  fear  of  poverty,  others  because  they  preferred  the  licence  and 
t'reedom  which  an  acceptance  of  the  new  doctrines  practicallv 
ensured.  Step  by  step,  those  who  would  not  take  the  Oath  of 
Supremacy  ^  were  "  weeded  out,"  as  one  of  the  new  prelates 
phrased  it ;  but  though  the  Visitors  and  Commissioners  appointed 
by  the  queen  went  about  their  work  with  a  will,  the  practical 
difficulties  which  met  them  at  every  turn  were  considerable. 
Though  the  innovators  were  a  small  minority,  they  were 
perfectly  united  and  determined,  while  the  great  body  of  the 
people  were  against  the  changes ;  and  the  hearty  resolutions  of 
such  were  constantly  met  with  by  those  violent  and  foul-mouthed 
officials  who  had  been  sent  forth  to  continue  and  complete  the 
revolution.-  By  degrees,  however,  because  of  the  constant  and 
continual  fines  imposed  for  nonconformity,  many  who  clung  to 
the  ancient  faith  did  not  altogether  decline  to  attend  the  new 
service,  and  even  to  receive  the  bread  and  wine  distributed  at 
what  was  called  "the  Supper  of  the  Lord." 

The  exact  state  of  affairs  at  this  melancholy  period  was  grajih- 
ically  described  by  a  competent  judge  and  author,  Edward 
Rishton,  a  watchful   and   observant  jjriest,  who  followed  a  con- 

^  Those  who  resigned  their  appointments  rather  than  do  so  were  possibly 
under  two  hundred  and  fifty  in  number  ;  but  of  those  who  remained,  hoping 
for  another  change  and  l)etter  days,  several  hundreds,  possibly  some  thou- 
.sands,  heartily  disliked  the  new  religion  and  its  founders. 

-  John  Scory,  Bishop  of  Hereford,  writes  to  Cecil,  June  21,  1561,  to  say 
that  there  are  great  disorders  in  the  cathedral  church  of  his  diocese,  which, 
he  charitably  remarks,  is  "  a  very  nurserye  of  blasphemy,  whordom,  pryde, 
superstition,  and  ignorance." — Domestic  State  Papers,  Elizabeth,  vol.  xvii. 
No.  32. 


THE    NEW   ORDINATIONS.  51 

siderable  number  of  the  clergy  of  the  ancient  faith,  in  a  total 
denial  of  the  validity  and  value  of  the  new  ordinations.  Some 
moderns  may  have  desired,  and  yet  desire,  that  a  different 
contemporary  judgment  might  have  been  given  at  the  time  when 
the  new  rites  and  regulations  were  first  set  forth  and  adopted  ; 
but  from  the  days  of  Thomas  Goldwell,  Bishop  of  St.  Asaph, ^ 
to  those  of  Canon  Edgar  Estcourt  of  St.  Chad's  Cathedral,  in 
Birmingham,  one  uniform  opinion  and  tradition  appears  to  have 
been  held.  The  limited  number  of  exceptions  only  serve  to 
prove  the  rule. 

"  It  may  be  confidently  asserted,"  writes  Canon  Estcourt, 
"that  there  is  an  unbroken  tradition  from  the  year  1554  to  the 
present  time,  confirmed  by  constant  practice  in  France  and 
Rome,  as  well  as  in  this  country,  in  accordance  with  which 
Anglican  ordinations  are  looked  upon  as  absolutely  null  and 
void ;  and  Anglican  ministers  are  treated  simply  as  laymen,  so 
that  those  who  wish  to  become  priests  have  to  be  ordained  un- 
conditionally. Not  a  single  instance  to  the  contrary  can  be 
alleged."  ^ 

There  are  certain  difficulties  which,  it  must  be  frankly  allowed, 
have  been  always  felt  by  learned  Roman  Catholics  and  Orientals 
with  regard  to  the  fact  of  Parker's  consecration,  and  which  must 
be  duly  faced  and  removed  before  any  recognition  of  the  validity 
of  English  ordinations  can  be  reasonably  expected  either  from 
the  Eastern  or  Western  Churches.  Anglicans  must  not  remain 
contented  with  assertions  which  appear  to  satisfy  themselves,  but 
be  prepared  with  arguments  and  conclusions  which  will  serve  to 
convince  their  opponents. 

The  modern  Easterns,  though  personally  civil  and  polite 
enough,  frequently  repudiate  our  ordinations  with  scorn.^     Such, 

^  A  contemporary  inquiry  was  made  at  Rome  in  the  spring  of  the  year 
1570,  as  well  concerning  the  character  of  the  new  orders  as  of  the  assumed 
jirelatial  dignities  held  by  those  who  had  not  been  previously  ordained  priests. 
Goldwell,  Bishop  of  St.  Asaph,  gave  his  opinion,  as  did  also  Dr.  Nicholas 
Morton,  of  the  diocese  of  York  ;  Henry  Henshaw,  of  the  diocese  of  Lincoln  ; 
Edmund  Daniel,  Dean  of  Hereford  ;  Thomas  Kinton,  of  the  diocese  of  Sarum, 
and  others.  All  the  opinions  of  these  persons  were  against  the  validity  of  the 
new  rites  and  ordinations. — See,  for  the  document  itself,  the  continuation  of 
the  Annah  of  Baron'nts,  by  Laderchius,  vol.  iii.  pp.  197  et  seq. 

-  The  Question  of  Anglican  Ordinations  Discussed,  by  £.  E.  Estcourt, 
M..'\.,pp.  145-6.     London,  1873. 

•*  The  late  Archbishop  of  Syra  and  Tenos,  even  more  civil  than  some  of 
his  brethren,  reordained  absolutely  the  Rev.  James  Chrystal,  an  American 
clergyman  of  the  Protestant  Episcopal  Church  ;  while  the  Servian  Archi- 
mandrite, who  once  gave  the  Holy  Communion  to  a  London  clergyman,  the 
Rev.  William  Denton,  who  had  rendered  good  service  to  the  Servian  Church, 
was  most  severely  reprimanded  by  authority,  and  made  to  give  a  promise  in 


52  THE   CHURCH    UNDER   QUEEN    ELIZABETH. 

in  their  judgment,  are  on  a  level  with  the  ministries  of 
Lutherans,  Calvinists,  and  continental  Protestants.  At  Rome 
every  care  is  taken  to  arrive  at  the  truth,  so  that  the  inadequate 
defences  regarded  as  sufficient  and  satisfactory  by  some  at  home, 
will  never  pass  muster  in  the  presence  of  the  skilled  theologians 
of  the  Eternal  City.^  A  huge  assumption,  as  the  majority  of 
Roman  Catholic  theologians  maintain,  that  all  was  right  in 
Parker's  case,  is,  of  course,  easily  enough  made  ;  but  detailed 
proofs  of  facts  and  satisfactory  replies  to  objectors  often  give 
trouble,  entail  research,  and  yet  remain  insufficient  for  the 
purpose. 

As  regards  the  fact  of  Parker's  consecration  at  Lambeth  on 
the  17th  of  December  1559,  it  must  be  admitted  that  the 
following  difficulties  appear  to  exist : — 

1.  The  Lambeth  Register  was  not  publicly  produced — in  fact, 
no  reference  of  any  sort  or  kind,  either  in  attack  or  defence,  was 
made  to  it — until  16 13,  fifty-three  years  after  the  date  of  Parker's 
consecration ;  though  the  new  bishops  had  been  constantly 
pressed  to  show  some  written  proofs  of  their  consecration  by 
Nicholas  Sander,  AVilliam  Allen,  Stapleton,  Pristow,  Reynolds, 
and  more  especially  by  Harding  in  his  Confutation  of  Jewel Ps 
Apo/ogie,  first  published  only  six  years  after  Parker's  consecration, 
i.e.  in  1565.  Why  it  was  not  produced  is,  to  say  the  least, 
singular,  if  not  mysterious. 

2.  Stowe,  the  chronicler,  though  he,  as  any  reader  may  see, 
was  often  exact  and  circumstantial  in  recording  the  most  trivial 
matters,  and  duly  put  on  record  the  consecration  of  Reginald 
Pole  and  others,  omitted  by  some  strange  oversight  any  account 
whatsoever  of  Parker's  consecration,  or  any  reference  to  it, 
though  he  was  very  intimate  with  this  new  prelate,  and  was 
frequently  a  guest  at  Lambeth  Palace. 

3.  Holinshcd  and  Stowe  both  make  the  remarkable  statement 
that  Arclibisiiop  Parker,  and  (irindal.  Bishop  of  London,  were 
])resent  at  the  obsequies  of  Henry  H.,  King  of  France,  performed 
in  St.  Paul's  Cathedral  on  the  8th  and  9th  of  September  1559;"- 

wriling  that  be  would  never  repent  that  liis  canonical  offence  ;  and  this  in  a 
lormal  document  which  described  the  Church  of  England  as  "unorthodox" 
and  "Protestant,"  and  the  clergyman  in  question  as  "without  the  priest- 
hood." 

'  The  author  had  hoped  (if  he  mav  be  pardoned  for  writing  thus")  that  his 
book  maintaining  the  I  'alidity  of  t lie  Ordiiia/ioits  of  the  Church  of  En^^land,  in 
which  he  made  the  best  defence  in  his  power,  might  have  called  our  bishops' 
attention  to  a  subject  of  the  gravest  moment,  which  touches  the  organic  life 
of  the  Establishetl  Church  ;  but  at  ]nesent  these  have  made  no  sign. 

-  I'arker  had  been  elected  on  August  1st.     In  a  letter  to  the  Privy  Council, 


DOCUMENTS   CONCERNING   ORDINATION.  53 

yet  the  first-named,  Parker,  was  certainly  not  consecrated  until 
December  19th,  and  Grindal  not  until  the  21st  of  that  same 
month.  The  terms  "  archbishop  "  and  "  bishop,"  therefore,  were 
consequently  most  inexact ;  unless,  indeed,  the  Queen's  Letters 
Patent  enjoining  the  respective  chapters  to  elect  these  persons, 
were  regarded  by  Stowe  as  of  more  importance  than  any  other 
previous  or  subsequent  rite. 

4.  From  an  original  document  in  the  State  Paper  Office, ^  it  is 
clear  that  Matthew  Parker,  who  then  styled  himself  "elect  Arch- 
bishop of  Canterbury,"  did  homage  for  his  temporalties  before 
the  queen  at  Westminster,  in  February  1559.  At  that  period 
he  certainly  was  neither  elected  nor  consecrated,  and  it  is 
equally  certain  that  bishops  did  not  usually  do  such  homage 
until  their  consecration  had  been  effected.  Here  it  may  be 
remarked  by  some  that  February  1559  may  possibly  mean 
February  1560;  but  if  so,  then  the  Lambeth  Register,  in  which 
his  consecration  is  recorded  as  having  taken  place  in  December 
1559,  is  altogether  wrong;  for  Parker,  in  February  1560,  could 
never  have  then  wittingly  termed  himself  merely  "elect  arch- 
bishop," when,  according  to  the  said  register,  he  had  been 
actually  consecrated  two  months  previously. 

5.  Again.  There  is  in  the  State  Paper  Office  -  a  Commission 
from  the  queen,  constituting  Parker,  who  is  termed  "  Arch- 
bishop-elect of  Canterbury,"  Grindal,  who  is  styled  "Bishop- 
elect  of  London,"  and  others,  Commissioners  for  carrying  into 
execution  the  Acts  for  the  Uniformity  of  Common  Prayer,  and  for 
restoring  to  the  Crown  the  ancient  jurisdiction  of  the  State 
Ecclesiastical.  This  document  is  dated  the  19th  of  July  1559, 
nearly  a  fortnight  before  the  election  of  Parker  to  the  See  of 
Canterbury,  which  took  place  on  the  ist  of  August;  conse- 
([uently  the  use  of  the  term  "bishop-elect"  is  inexact,  or  else  the 
dates  of  the  Lambeth  Register,  as  regards  these  events,  are 
wrong.  At  all  events,  this  State  Paper  is  distinctly  and  remark- 
ably out  of  harmony  with  them. 

dated  the  27th  of  that  month,  he  signed  it  "  Matth.  C[antaur.]"  And  it 
appears,  as  Canon  Estcourt  points  out  (on  p.  83  of  his  Qiiestiau  of  Anglican 
Ordinations),  that  he  is  addressed  in  the  same  style  in  official  documents. 
Another  remarkable  error  is  that,  in  an  Order  of  the  Queen,  dated  26th 
October,  it  is  asserted  that,  amongst  others,  the  elect-bishop  of  Chichester, 
Dr.  William  Barlow,  "remains  unconsecrated." — State  Papers,  Elizabeth, 
vol.  vii.  p.  19. 

^  It  is  referred  to  in  the  State  Papers  of  Elizabeth,  Domestic,  vol.  xi,, 
under  the  date  23rd  February  1560,  and  is  printed  at  length  in  Collier's 
Ecclesiastical  History  of  Great  Britain,  vol.  ix.  pp.  331-2.  London, 
1846. 

-  Domestic  State  Papers,  Elizabeth,  vol.  v.  No.  18.      London.  1S56. 


54  THE   CHURCH    UNDER   QUEEN    ELIZABETH. 

Whether  these  various  difficulties,  either  apparent  or  real,  are 
not  removed  by  the  knowledge  that  certain  independent  docu- 
ments exist,  plainly  proving  that  the  ceremony  took  place  on 
December  17th,  1559,  is,  of  course,  quite  another  question, 
which  each  investigator  must  determine  for  himself  after  duly 
weighing  the  harmonious  or  conflicting  evidence  on  both  sides. 
But  that  the  evidence  is  conflicting,  and  that  difficulties  do  exist, 
cannot  be  doubted. 

There  are  some  persons,  it  should  here  be  noted,  who  go 
further,  and  maintain  that  the  whole  of  the  first  and  earlier  parts 
of  Parker's  Register,  including  the  heraldic  title-page,  are  in  one 
handwriting;  and  that  this  is  of  a  later  date  than  1559,  possibly 
of  the  subsequent  reign  of  James  I.,  when,  in  the  new  Church  of 
ICngland,  different  and  less  questionable  opinions  concerning  the 
subject  began  to  prevail.  But  this,  of  course,  is  a  subject  for 
impartial  Catholic  theologians  and  skilled  paleographers  satis- 
factorily to  decide. 

But  to  return  to  the  course  of  public  events.  Immediately 
the  clergy  found  themselves  at  liberty  to  enter  the  honourable 
estate  of  matrimony,  most  of  the  reforming  party  took  to  them- 
selves wives.  Some  had  already  done  so  secretly.  Archbishoj) 
Cranmer's  distinguished  precedent  of  having  had  two  ^  was  in 
many  cases  dutifully  followed  by  the  new  bishops,  though  of 
course,  these  wives  were  procured  one  after  the  other,  and  not 
both  at  the  same  time.  But  these  married  prelates,  and,  indeed, 
the  married  clergy  likewise,  were  looked  upon  with  intense 
dislike,  and  often  with  contempt,  by  the  people  in  general;  while 
the  terms  which  were  sometimes  applied  both  to  their  wives  and 
children  were  much  more  plain  and  impressive  than  compliment- 
ary.'-^ Even  the  Queen's  Highness  disliked  the  wives  of  prelates. 
As  a  rule,  the  reforming  clergy,  when  waxing  amorous,  could 
only  secure  helpmeets  from  the  lowest  of  the  people — almost  all 
others  turned  away  with  disgust  at  the  proposal ;  ■'  while  many  of 
those  thus  secured  owned  questionable  or  fly-blown  characters, 
had  been  waiting-women,  ale-house  attendants,  or  publicly  dis- 
reputable. The  gravest  scandals  by  consequence  arose  in 
several  places,*  to    which   from  time  to  time    the  attention   of 

^  "The  husband  orotic  wife." — Titus  i.  6. 

-  See  Briefe  Confutation  of  a  Godlie  IVarniug,  p.  47.      London,  1572. 

'  "  No  knight's  daughter,  nor  esquire's,  could  be  so  certified  to  accept  of 
him." — Briefe  Coiifiitntion,  etc.,  p.  50. 

■*  "Because  there  hath  grown  offence,  and  some  slander  to  the  Church,  by 
lack  of  discreet  and  sober  behaviour  in  many  ministers  of  the  Church,  both  in 
choosing  of  their  wives  and  indiscreet  living  with  them,  the  remedy  whereof 


THE  queen's  injunctions.  55 

the  Queen's  Privy  Councillors  was  officially  drawn.  On  two 
occasions  Sir  William  Cecil  wrote  contemptuously  of  those 
whose  matrimonial  acts  had  been  called  into  question,  to  the 
great  annoyance  of  Parker.  The  subject  was  new,  and  certainly 
difficult.  Sir  John  Mason  informed  Cecil  that  "  in  sundry  par- 
ticular churches  at  this  present  [there  is]  such  fleshly  demeanour 
in  appearance,  as  small  difference  is  to  be  seen  in  any  point 
between  them  and  lay-houses,  wherewith  the  world  taketh 
occasion  of  offence,  and  God,  I  think,  is  not  much  pleased."^ 
Some  other  instances  of  wantonness  and  demoralisation  in  the 
houses  of  the  ministers  cannot  be  further  alluded  to. 

The  Queen's  Injunctions  had  laid  down  some  excellent  and 
practical  rules  on  the  subiect ;  but  these  appear  to  have  been  too 
generally  disregarded.  When  a  minister  or  deacon  had  made 
choice  of  some  buxom  woman  or  country  lass,  and  she  was  certified 
to  be  ready,  or  at  least  not  unwilling,  to  accept  him,  the  bishop  of 
the  diocese  and  two  neighbouring  justices  of  the  peace  on  some 
holiday,  and  in  church  in  presence  of  the  congregation,  were  to 
examine  her  personally,  "behind  and  before,  in  mind  and  in 
body,  by  inspection  and  by  report,"  to  see  that  she  was  whole 
and  sound,  healthy,  and  of  good  repute,  free  from  either  moral 
or  physical  blemish,'-  and,  in  order  to  find  this  out,  her  parents, 
or,  if  they  were  dead,  two  of  her  nearest  kinsfolk,  or  "  her 
master  or  mistress  whom  she  serveth,"  being  summoned  to 
appear,  "shall  make  a  good  and  certain  proof  thereof "  both  to 
the  minister  of  the  parish  and  to  the  assembled  congregation. 
Such  was  usually  known  as  a  "  matrimonial  inquisition  "  :  profane 
or  over-witty  persons  sometimes  gave  it  a  less  pleasant  name. 
Having  passed  through  this  disagreeable  but  perhaps  necessary 
ordeal,  the  bishop  and  the  magistrates,  if  satisfied,  gave  per- 
mission, under  their  hands  and  seals,  to  the  two  persons  more 
particularly  interested,  to  gratify  their  praiseworthy  intentions 
"with  all  due  and  convenient  speed." 

A  similar  process  was  also  necessary  and  enjoined  by  the 
queen  in  the  case  of  bishops.  Only  here  special  commissioners 
of  rank — -not  mere  justices  of  the  peace — were  appointed  to 
undertake  the  needful  examination,  and  with  these  were  associ- 

is  necessary  to  be  sought." — Queen  Elizabeth's  Injunctions  to  the  Clergy, 
A.D.  1559. 

1  State  Papers,  August  il,  1561,  Sir  John  Mason  to  Secretary  Cecil. 

-  A  transcript  of  the  minutes  of  such  an  examination — lucjiiisitio  Afatri- 
monialis,  etc. — is  before  me  as  I  write.  It  took  place  in  an  Oxfordshire 
Peculiar  of  the  ancient  diocese  of  Lincoln,  before  its  rearrangement  ;  and, 
though  faithfully  paraphrased  in  the  text  above  is,  in  some  of  its  details,  lar 
too  coarse  to  be  verbally  quoted. 


56  THE    CIIlKCIl    UNDER    QUEEN    ELIZABETH. 

ated  the  venerable  metropolitan,  himself  a  married  man.  For 
such  an  exalted  ecclesiastical  officer  this  was  certainly  a  new, 
as  no  doubt  it  must  have  been  an  interesting,  duty. 

Deans  of  cathedrals  and  heads  of  houses,  fired  with  matrimonial 
ambitions,  when  proposing  to  wed,  were  to  apply  to  the  official 
visitor  of  their  respective  institutions,  whose  duty  it  was,  as  the 
Supreme  Governess  enjoined,  to  make  a  similar  personal  examina- 
tion of  the  wife-designate,  and  to  see  that  the  proposed  union 
"  tend  not  to  the  hindrance  of  their  house." 

Archbishop  Parker  was  terribly  mortified  at  the  queen's  formal 
edict  about  the  marriage  of  the  clergy,  and  horrified  at  her 
unscriptural  and  unfeeling  language.  He  wrote  to  Sir  William 
CeciP  to  explain  his  manifold  grievances,  and  evidently  looked 
for  some  word  of  consolation  from  him.  He  went  so  far  as  to 
lament  that  under  such  conditions  he  had  ever  accepted  the  See 
of  Canterbury.  If  the  bishops'  inferior  servants  might  have 
their  wives  within  the  precincts  of  the  cathedrals,  and  in  the 
useful  outhouses  of  the  episcopal  palaces — if  these  respectable 
officers  might  rock  their  offspring's  cradles,  why  might  not  the 
lady  of  the  most  reverend  and  loyal  Primate  of  all  England  do 
the  same?  Parker  was  evidently  very  sore  at  what  he  termed 
these  "  rebukeful  separations." 

Bishop  Cocks  of  Ely  likewise  on  his  own  part  complained 
loudly  to  Archbishop  Parker  that  the  "  women  of  the  bishops 
and  prebendaries"  were  by  the  Queen's  Majesty's  edict  turned 
out  of  the  colleges  and  precincts  of  the  cathedrals.  He  wrote, 
"  forasmuch  as  it  is  not  needful,  but  at  this  time  very  miserable, 
and  sounding  contrary  to  the  ordinance  of  the  Holy  Ghost  in 
the  Scriptures  of  God,"  he  hoped  that  the  edict  might  be  with- 
drawn. He  went  on  to  inform  his  afflicted  metropolitan  that 
there  was  then  but  "  one  prebendary  dwelling  with  his  family  in 
Ely  Church,"  and  "if  the  wife  and  children  were  turned  out,  the 
1)rebendary  himself  would  go."  "Turn  him  out,"  wrote  the 
bishop  plaintively,   "doves    and    owls  may  dwell  there  for  any 

'  Parker,  in  this  letter,  asserts  of  the  queen  that  he  was  "  in  an  horror  to 
hear  such  words  to  come  from  her  mild  nature  and  Christianly  learned 
conscience,  as  she  spake  concerning  God's  holy  ordinance  and  institution  of 
matrimony."  And  again  :  "  To  tarry  in  cathedral  churches  with  such  open 
and  rebukeful  separations,  what  modest  nature  can  abide  it  ?  Or  tarry  where 
they  be  discredited.  Ilorsekecpers'  wives,  porters',  i)antlers',  and  butlers' 
wives  may  have  their  cradles  going;  and  honest  learned  men  expulsed  with 
open  note,  who  only  keep  the  hospitality,  who  only  be  students  and  preachers, 
who  only  be  unfeigned  orators  in  open  prayers  for  the  Queen's  Majesty's 
prosperity  and  contmuance,  where  others  say  their  back  paternosters  for  her 
in  corners."— Parker  to  Cecil,  Petyt  MSS.,  No.  47,  folio  374. 


HER   majesty's    HIGH    SPH^ITUAL   STATE.  57 

continual  housekeeping.  It  is  miserable  that  the  poor  man's 
family  should  be  turned  out,  and  miserable  that  such  a  number 
of  houses  should  be  left  desolate."  ^  Expressive  sentences  like 
this  sufficiently  set  forth  the  awful  havoc  which  had  been  made 
in  the  garden  of  God  by  these  "wild  boars"  of  the  Reformation. 
They  had  indeed  rooted  up  the  garden,  for,  where  flowers  of 
grace  erewhile  grew  in  abundance,  now  only  sterility  and  desola- 
tion reigned. 

As  regards  the  practical  action  of  those  who  resisted  the 
innovators,  we  may  learn  much  from  the  following  interesting 
and  pregnant  words  : — 

At  the  same  time,  they  had  mass  said  secretly  in  their  own 
houses  by  those  very  priests  who  in  church  publicly  celebrated 
the  spurious  liturgy,  and  sometimes  by  others  who  had  not 
defiled  themselves  with  heresy ;  yea,  and  very  often  in  those 
disastrous  times  were  on  one  and  the  same  day  partakers  of  the 
Table  of  our  Lord  and  of  the  table  of  devils ;  that  is,  of  the 
Blessed  Eucharist  and  of  the  Calvinistic  Supper.  Yea,  what  is 
.still  more  marvellous  and  more  sad,  sometimes  the  priest  saying 
mass  at  home,  for  the  sake  of  those  Catholics  whom  he  knew 
to  be  desirous  of  them,  carried  about  him  Hosts  consecrated 
according  to  the  rite  of  the  Church,  with  which  he  communicated 
them  at  the  very  time  in  which  he  was  giving  to  other  Catholics 
more  careless  about  the  faith  the  bread  prepared  for  them 
according  to  the  heretical  rite."- 

At  the  same  time,  Elizabeth  maintained  her  unprecedented 
dignity.  When,  for  example,  the  queen  visited  Canterbury,  she 
was  received  pontifically,  as  the  Head  of  the  Church  of  England. 
On  one  occasion  Parker,  supported  by  the  Bishops  of  Lincoln 
and  Rochester,  met  her  outside  the  west  door.  There  a 
"grammarian"  made  a  long-winded  oration  in  her  praise,  in 
which  the  words  Ave  Eliza  !  and  numerous  exaggerated  epithets 
were  used.  Then,  alighting  from  her  palfrey,  she  entered  the 
cathedral,  where  the  psalm  Deus  misereatur  and  some  collects 
were  said.  The  choir  men  and  boys,  with  the  dean  and  pre- 
bendaries, stood  in  order  on  either  side,  and  "  brought  Her 
Majesty  up  with  a  square  song,  she  going  under  a  canopy,  borne 
by  four  of  her  temporal  knights,  to  the  traverse,  placed  by  the 
Communion  board,  where  she  heard  evensong."  ■^ 

1  Petyt  MSS.,  No.  47,  folio  37S,  in  the  Inner  Temple. 

-  Continuation  of  the  Hislory  by  Rev.  Edward  Ri^hton,  B.A.,  B.N.C. , 
Oxon.  ;  edited  by  David  Lewis,  M.A.  ;  p.  267.     London,  1877. 

'■''  This  is  Parker's  own  description  of  the  event.  See  Petyt  MSS.,  No.  47, 
foHo  22.      "The   Communion  board  "  is  what  contemporary  writers  of  the 


58  THE   CHURCH   UNDER   QUEEN    ELIZABETH. 

In  1560  the  Geneva  Bible  was  printed  and  circulated.  Both 
in  its  preface  and  notes  the  false  doctrines  of  Calvin  were  studi- 
ously inculcated  ;  and  these  being  popular  with  the  now 
extending  Puritan  party,  it  had  a  considerable  circulation, 
exercising  much  influence.  Some  of  its  notes  were  obviously 
directed  against  prelacy ;  while  others  were  so  grossly  heretical, 
that,  in  the  then  excited  state  of  public  opinion,  their  evil 
teaching  was  avowedly  feared  by  the  bishops.  These  superin- 
tending officials,  though  much  divided  both  in  faith  and  opinion, 
were  mainly  desirous  of  doing  what  the  queen  enjoined  upon 
them,  and  of  subserviently  following  Her  Highness's  spiritual 
directions,  however  such  might  change  or  vary  ;  yet  at  the  same 
time  feared  altogether  to  offend  their  foreign  allies  and  puritanical 
supporters.  Archbishop  Parker,  therefore,  arranged  that  Cran- 
mer's  English  version  of  the  Scriptures  should  be  at  once 
revised  and  reissued — a  work  which  was  accomplished  about 
eight  years  afterwards,  and  is  the  foundation  of  our  present 
English  version  of  the  pjible. 

Early  in  the  year  1563,  Parliament  met  and  considered  more 
important  measures  concerning  religion  (or  irreligion,  as  some 
might  phrase  it)  and  the  New  Church.  The  wheels  of  the 
Establishmentarian  machine  often  creaked  and  groaned,  and 
continually  stuck  in  the  progress  of  ordinary  motion  ;  for  the 
concern  being  lumbering,  unwieldy,  ill-planned,  and  rudely 
constructed,  made  extremely  little  way  onwards. 

To  drop  a  simile.  The  confusion  which  reigned  when 
Puritans,  Catholics,  and  State-religionists  were  in  constant  and 
active  conflict  was  steadily  increasing.  In  many  places  disorders 
of  a  gross  character  were  abounding.  The  laxest  doctrines  of 
common  morality  were  proclaimed  by  the  new  preachers,  who 
were  at  once  venal  and  "  godly."  Vapid  and  vain  sentiments 
were  highly  valued,  more  especially  by  the  foolish  persons  who 
uttered  them ;  while  good  works,  looked  upon  by  some  as 
external  tokens  of  predestined  reprobation,  seem  to  have  been 
altogether  at  a  discount. 

At  the  same  time,  these  self-constituted  prophets  pushed 
themselves  and  their  wares  to  the  forefront  ;  and  in  scriptural 
phraseology,  interlarded  often  with  highly  scurrilous  assertions, 
condemned  all  those  who  would  not  promote,  or  abhorred,  the 
new  gospel  ;  proclaiming  for  such  temporal  ruin  here  and  ever- 
lasting misery  hereafter.  Sometimes,  with  the  solemn  deliverance 
of  jjrophecies,  they  combined  the  practices  of  palmistry,  necro- 

old  religion  termed  "  tlie  Protestant  oyster-board,"  wliich  it  no  doubt  greatly 
resembled. 


EXTERNAL  CHANGES  WIDE  AND  VAST.      59 

mancy,!  and  astrology.  Others  again,  called  up,  or  professed 
to  call  up,  familiar  spirits  whom  they  consulted;  or  peered 
into  a  crystal  globe  either  to  watch  distant  events  therein 
revealed,  or  to  obtain  special  guidance  in  seeking  for  hidden 
treasures.  When  it  was  known  that  the  queen  and  some  of  her 
new  nobility  consulted  such  professors,  it  need  not  cause  surprise 
that  the  common  people  followed  their  example.  By  a  fanciful 
study  of  the  armorial  bearings  granted  to  some  new  peer  or 
recently-made  knight,  some  of  these  necromancers  of  the  new 
gospel  professed  to  forecast  the  certain  future  of  those  who  bore 
the  arms,  and  to  unfold  for  such  the  mysteries  and  marvels  of 
coming  years.  In  the  royal  coat  the  proximity  of  the  lilies  of 
France  with  the  lions  of  England  led  some  of  the  prophets — 
why,  is  not  on  record — to  predict  either  sudden  death  or  a 
disagreeable  future  for  the  queen ;  reports  of  which  reaching 
Her  Highness's  ears  caused  her  to  fume,  fret,  and  even  to  swear 
right  royally.  Many  members  of  the  old  and  noble  families,  as 
well  as  the  "new  men," — who  had  pushed  themselves  forward, 
and,  because  of  their  greed  and  rapacity,  were  not  over-popular, 
— became  the  subjects  of  such-like  necromantic  inspiration. 
Those  who  were  superstitious,  and  many  of  them  were  this, 
gravely  feared  the  prophets  in  question,  and  trembled  when  they 
heard  their  predicted  doom.  In  alliance  with  the  prophets  came 
the  perambulating  conjurors  who,  on  a  slightly  different  platform, 
undertook  to  prove  by  ocular  demonstration,  to  the  shallow  or 
to  those  who  thought  themselves  wise,  the  impossibility  of  the 
reality  or  value  of  the  Sacrament  of  the  Altar ;  and  who,  clothed 
in  disused  or  imitation  sacerdotal  vestments,  and  by  the  aid  of  tin 
cups  and  thin  pellets  of  bone,  on  which  were  engraved  repre- 
sentations of  the  enemy  of  souls,  or  some  inferior  demon,  most 

^  A  certain  William  Wycherley  practised  necromancy,  from  whose  formal 
depositions  the  following  is  taken: — "23rd  August.  Ite?n,  he  saith  that 
about  ten  years  past  he  used  a  circule  called  Circulus  Salamonis  at  a  place 
called  Pembsam  [Qy.  Pepplesham],  in  Sussex,  to  call  up  Baro,  whom  he 
taketh  [to  be]  an  Orientalle  or  septentrialle  spirit.  Where  was  also  one 
Robert  Bayly,  the  scriere  of  the  ciistalle  stone;  Syr  John  Anderson,  the 
magiste}-  opcralor;  Syr  John  Hickley,  and  Thomas  Goslyng,  in  the  which  their 
practice  they  had  sword,  ring,  and  holly  water  ;  where  they  were  frustrated,  for 
Baro  did  not  appere,  nor  other  vision  of  spirit,  but  there  was  a  terrible  wind  and 
tempest  for  the  time  of  the  circulation.  Per  me  Wylliam  Wycherley.  .  .  . 
Maier,  a  preest,  and  now  lay-master  of  the  Mynt  at  Durham  House,  hath 
conjured  for  treasure  and  their  stolen  goods.  Sir  John  Lloyd,  a  preest  that 
sometime  dwelt  at  Godstone,  besides  Croydon,  hath  used  it  likewise.  Thomas 
Owldring  of  Yarmouth  is  a  conjuror,  and  hath  very  good  books  of  conjuring, 
and  that  a  great  number." — Lansdowne  MSS.,  British  Museum,  vol.  ii. 
art.  26. 


6o  THE   CHURCH    under   queen    ELIZABETH. 

profanely  caricatured  the  mass  and  its  manual  actions,  with 
utterances  of  '■'■  MHiiipsiniiis"  and  ''  Sin/ipsiwus,"  and  the  still 
perpetuated  phrase  of  modern  conjurors,  ^'-  Hocus-poaisr^ 

The  work  of  destroying  the  ancient  faith  of  a  nation  is,  of 
course,  never  so  difficult  as  the  work  of  building  it  up.  Hence, 
when  in  the  interests  of  Cecil,  Bacon,  and  Walsingham,  the 
ballad-singers,  the  self-constituted  prophets,  and  the  wandering 
conjurors  were  openly  allied  with  the  Estahlishmentarian 
preachers  and  diocesan  superintendents  (while  the  representa- 
tives of  the  old  system  were  thumb-screwed,  hung,  or  banished), 
the  work  of  corruption  and  destruction,  of  course,  went  on 
apace. 

But  the  prophets  and  conjurors  were  so  personally  distasteful 
to  the  queen  and  her  Council,  having  caused  them  so  much 
annoyance,  that  in  1563  Parliament  promptly  passed  an  Act- 
against  "fond  and  fantastical  prophecies,"  in  which  the  punish- 
ments were  most  severe.  Persons  convicted  of  excogitating  or 
spreading  prophecies  founded  on  the  armorial  bearings  of  any 
nobleman,  knight,  or  gentleman,  or  upon  the  days  of  the  month 
or  year  on  which  they  had  been  born  or  ennobled,  were  rendered 
jjunishable  with  a  year's  imjjrisonment  and  a  fine  of  ten  pounds  for 
the  first  offence ;  and  to  the  forfeiture  of  all  their  goods  and  chattels 
and  imprisonment  for  life  for  the  second.  By  the  same  severe 
enactment,  any  persons  practising  "  conjurations,  enchantments, 
and  witchcraft"  were  declared  felons,  and  ordered  to  be  punished 
as  such  without  the  benefit  of  clergy.  If,  however,  the  witchcral't 
was  not  directed  against  the  life  of  any  one,  perpetual  imprison- 
ment was  the  extremest  ]5unishment  permitted. 

But  all  such  measures  were  impotent  to  do  the  work  intended. 
The  fiood-gates  of  impiety,  superstition,  and  disorder  had  been 
deliberately  opened  by  those  w^ho  had  assumed  power;  but  it 
was  seen  to  be  no  easy  task  to  close  them  again. 

As  to  the  bishops  of  the  new  sort,  they  found  themselves 
hampered  and  hindered  on  all  sides.  For  not  a  tenth  part  of  the 
|)e()])le,  even  in  the  towns  and  cathedral  cities,  went  with  the 
Reformers,''  while  scarcely  a  fifth  of  those  in  rural  villages  and 

^  Originally  a  horri'ole  travestie  of  the  divine  words  of  consecration  in  the 
Canon  of  the  Mass,  '^  Hoc  est  Corpus  Metini." 

-  5  Elizabeth,  c.  15,  16. 

■'  On  January  12th,  1562,  in  a  letter  to  Cecil,  Bishop  Home  gave  a  de- 
plorable account  of  the  Protestant  cause  at  Winchester  :  "  Having  many 
ways  endeavored  and  travailed  to  bring  and  reduce  the  inhaliitants  of  the 
City  of  Winchester  to  good  uniformity  in  religion,  and  namely  to  hive  the 
cures  there  served,  as  the  Common  Prayer  might  be  frequented,  which  hath 
not    been   done   sithence   the   massing-time  ;  and   also  that  good  and  sound 


THE   bishops'   VISITxVTION   ARTICLES.  6 1 

hamlets  were  prepared  to  accept  the  new  religion.  But  those 
who  had  grasped  the  whip-handle  of  authority  or  might  declined  to 
slacken  their  hold  upon  it ;  while  any  dutiful  return  of  the  nation 
to  faith  and  obedience  was  held  to  be  simply  out  of  the  question. 
A  study  of  the  "  Visitation  Articles "  and  "  Injunctions  "  of 
the  bishops  show  evidently  enough  the  true  state  of  their 
dioceses.  As  to  the  old  churches,  most  of  them  had  been 
thoroughly  cleared  out  of  all  their  sacred  ornaments.^  Rood- 
lofts  and  their  crucifixes  ^  had  been  hewn  down  ;  pictures,  paint- 
ings, and  banners,  looked  upon  as  tokens  of  "  impietic,"  had 
followed  the  vessels  of  silver  and  gold.  Almost  everything, 
including  screens,  woodwork,  roofs,  and  walls,  had  been  painfully 
whitewashed.  As  to  the  new  ministers,  disorder  and  confusion, 
irregularities  and  example  of  self-will  were  everywhere  apparent, 
and  the  bishops  could  do  little  or  nothing  to  mend  matters. 

doctrine  mic;ht  be  taught  amongst  them,  which  they  as  yet  do  not  so  well  like 
and  allow,  I  could  not  by  any  means  hitherto  bring  the  same  to  pass.  .  .  . 
The  said  inhabitants  are  very  stubborn,  whose  reformation  would  help  the 
greatest  part  of  the  shire  bent  that  way,  and  I  would  the  rather  have  this 
brought  to  pass,  for  that  some  of  them  have  boasted  and  vaunted  that  do 
what  I  can  I  shall  not  have  my  purpose.  .  .  .  Sundry  there  are  in  the  shire, 
which  have  borne  great  countenance  in  late  times,  which  hinder  as  much  as 
they  can  the  proceedings  in  religion." — Original  MS.  in  State  Paper  Office, 
A.I).  1562. 

^  For  example,  in  John  Parkhurst's  'Visitation  Articles  for  the  Diocese  of 
Norwich,  A.  D.  1561,  the  following  inquiry  is  made  of  the  various  church- 
wardens:— "  Whether  all  aulters,  images,  holi-water  stones,  pictures,  paint- 
ings, as  of  Th'assumption  of  the  Blessed  Virgin,  of  the  descending  of  Christ 
into  the  ^'irgin  in  the  fourme  of  a  little  boy  at  Th'annunciaiion  of  the 
Aungell,  and  al  other  superstitious  and  dangerous  monuments,  especiallie 
paintings  and  imagies  in  walle,  boke,  cope,  banner,  or  els  where,  of  the 
Blessed  Trinitie,  or  of  the  Father  (of  whom  there  can  be  no  image  made),  be 
defaced  and  removed  out  of  the  churche  and  other  places,  and  are  destroyed, 
and  the  places  wheie  such  impietie  was,  so  made  up  as  if  there  had  been  no 
suche  thing  there."  And,  again,  Grindal  inquired  "  Whether  in  your  churches 
and  chappels  all  aulters  be  utterly  taken  down  and  cleane  removed,  even 
unto  the  foundation  ;  and  the  place  where  they  stood  paved,  and  the  wall 
whereunto  they  joined  whited  over  and  made  uniform  with  the  rest,  so  as  no 
breach  or  rupture  appear.  And  whether  your  rood-lofts  be  taken  downe, 
and  altered,  so  that  the  upper  partes  thereof  with  the  soller  or  loft  be  quite 
taken  down  unto  the  crosse-beame,  and  that  the  said  beame  have  some  con- 
venient creast  put  uppon  the  same." — Articles  to  be  Enquired  of,  etc.,  by 
Edmond  Grindall,  Archbishopof  York,  A.i).  1571.     London,  William  Serres. 

■^  In  the  vestry  of  St.  Anthony's  Chapel,  Cartwell  Fell,  was  found  a  wooden 
figure  of  our  Saviour,  part  of  the  ancient  rood.  It  is  of  oak,  has  been  covered 
with  some  composition  and  then  gilded.  The  arms  are  gone,  the  feet,  which 
seem  to  have  been  crossed,  are  burnt  off.  It  has  the  usual  cloth  about  the 
loins,  and  the  ribs  show  distinctly.  It  is  said  to  have  been  used  to  poke  the 
vestry  fire. — Transactions  of  the  Cumberland  and  Westmoreland  Antiquarian 
and  Archceologieal  Society,  vol.  ii.  p.  39S. 


62  THE   CHURCH   UNDER   QUEEN    ELIZABETH. 

These  poor  perplexed  officials  of  the  Supreme  Governess,  not 
having  learnt  to  obey,  were  in  no  case  competent  to  rule. 
Certain  of  the  principles  which  they  had  imbibed  abroad  were  at 
once  heretical  and  revolutionary  ;  so  no  wonder  that  disorder 
reigned  throughout  the  land,  and  that  self-pleasing  was  the  lead- 
ing principle  which  guided  men's  minds.  When  once  the 
principle  of  "  Reform  "  had  been  duly  and  practically  admitted, 
every  one  had  his  own  nostrum  for  the  existing  national  sickness  ; 
while  no  one  exactly  approved  of  that  change  which  his  neigh- 
bour had  endeavoured  to  effect  or  had  effected.  The  "  reforms  " 
which  the  mushroom  peers  had  daringly  carried  out,  and  by 
which  they  themselves  had  so  considerably  benefited  in  things 
temporal,  were,  by  other  people  who  wished  to  try  their  hands  at 
a  like  game,  voted  to  be  totally  inadequate  to  the  grave  necessities 
of  the'times;  so  that  fresh  and  wider  changes  were  by  conse- 
quence ruthlessly  inaugurated.  Faith  and  stability  had  vanished, 
though  sentiment  and  opinion  sometimes  secured  a  hearing  amid 
the  disputes  of  controversialists  and  the  profane  and  ponderous 
cant  of  hysterical  preachers.  But  peace  and  unity,  twin  sisters 
of  a  divine  corporation  endued  with  God's  Holy  Spirit,  had  been 
duly  and  efficiently  banished  from  the  realm.  In  their  place  the 
confusion  of  Babel  and  an  excruciating  discord  as  of  combative 
demoniacs  rose  on  all  sides. 

Some  of  these  hysterical  preachers — "gospellers,"  as  they  were 
now  called,  or  "  ministers  "  (though  the  fact  has  too  often  been 
ignored) — were  mere  tinkers  ;  some  were  tailors,  who  believed 
themselves  to  be  "inspired;  others  farm  labourers,  such  as 
ditchers,  hedgers,  or  ploughmen,  who  thought  themselves 
"called";  a  few  had  probably  been  admitted,  in  some  mode  or 
another,  to  the  office  of  Lector  or  reader ;  on  which  authority,  as 
it  appears,  they  presumed  to  baptize,  to  celebrate  the  Lord's 
Supper,  and  to  marry  couples.  Discipline  had  long  been  flung 
to  the  winds.  As  such  ministers  only  received  a  miserable 
pittance  for  their  "  labours  in  the  gospel,"  and  as  most  of  them 
were  married,  they  took  to  trading — buying  and  selling — in  order 
to  keep  body  and  soul  together,  to  feed  their  wives  and  children, 
and  thus  to  keep  the  wolf  from  the  door.  The  bishops,  who  were 
better  housed,  fed,  and  paid,  did  not  approve  of  all  this ;  but  by 
their  lordships' Injunctions  and  Visitation  Articles  >  condemned 
the  traders ;  and  though  they  hated  and  persecuted  "  the  greased 

1  "  Whether  your  minister  ordereth  the  course  of  his  life  answerable  to  his 
vocation,  or  useth  buying  and  selling  or  trading  or  tinkering  or  tailoring,  or 
to  hed<fe  ditch,  or  go  to  plough  ;  or  hath  soUicited  other  men's  visits  for 
gaine,  or  hath  employed  himself  about  other  such  business  not  beseeming  or 


THE   NEW   RITES   AND   SERVICES.  6^ 

varlets  of  Antichrist,"  '  as  they  termed  the  old  priests,  they  could 
scarcely  sanction  the  ministrations  of  vulgar  and  unordained 
adventurers  from  "  the  lowest  of  the  people." 

During  the  whole  of  the  reign  of  Queen  Elizabeth,  it  may  be 
here  properly  pointed  out,  the  loosest  notions  regarding  the  im- 
portance and  value  of  ordinations  almost  universally  prevailed. 
The  old  Catholic  doctrine,  with  the  ancient  Ordinals,  havin"" 
been  abolished,  the  necessity  of  imposition  of  hands  with  corre'- 
sponding  "form  "-gave  place  to  a  notion  that  what  alone  was 
truly  necessary  to  the  making  either  of  an  overseer  or  a  minister 
was  a  call  from  the  congregation  whose  servant  he  was  then  to 
become.  Hence,  in  the  tractates  published  and  in  the  discus- 
sions which  arose,  this  "call"  became  the  leading  feature  in  the 
making  of  ministers.  Superadded  ceremonies  were  held  to  be 
ornamental  and  perhaps  politic,  but  not  in  any  way  essential. 
In  fact,  no  Church  of  England  controversialist"  whatsoever  of  that 
reign  can  be  found  who  maintained  plainly  and  categorically  the 
present  doctrine  of  the  Established  Church  on  the  subject  ^  nor 
was  it  until  the  year  1597,  when  Richard  Bancroft  was  "called" 
to  be  Bishop  of  London,  that  any  practical  attempt  was  made  to 
reach  any  higher  theological  level  than  that  which  most  of  the 
Zwinglians,  Calvinists,  and  Establishmentarians  regarded  as 
])erfectly  scriptural,  secure,  and  true.  When  this  prelate  was  in 
1604  elevated  to  the  See  of  Canterbury,  he  succeeded  in  stem- 
ming the  further  progress  of  such  lax  teaching  ;  for,  |)ressed  as 
the  Establishmentarians  had  been  by  so  many  able  defenders  of 
the  ancient  faith,  it  was  found  that  no  defence  of  the  polity  of  the 
New  Church  could  be  efficiently  made  in  which  the  necessity  of 
valid  ordination,  independent  of  any  "  call,"  or  supposed  "  call," 
was  not  plainly  and  systematically  asserted  as  essential  to  validity 
and  value. 

As  regards  the  character  of  divine  service,  it  was  universally 
meagre  in  the  extreme.  The  Reformation  advocates  were  sorely 
offended  at  what  little  of  ancient  order  and  decency  had  been 
deliberately  retained— the  surplice,  organs,  and  the  observance 
of  holy  days ;  so  that  several  of  them,  and  some  of  these  in  high 

fitting  his  calling  ?  "—.-^ ;-//(-/«  of  Enquiry,  of  Cocks,  Bishop  of  Ely,  a.d. 
1566.  "  Item,  whether  that  any  reader  being  admitted  but  to  reade,  taketh 
upon  him  to  baptize,  to  marry,  to  celebrate  the  Lord's  Supper,  or  to  distribute 
the  Lord's  cn-p."—JnJuiutio>is  of  Parkhiirst,  Bishop  of  A'or-ccick.  London  : 
John  Day,  1561. 

'Arnoklus  Raissius,  quoted  l^y  Austin  AUfield  in  his  Answer  to  Jnstitia 
Britannica,  cap.  iii.  p.  103. 

-  This  word  is,  of  course,  here  used  in  its  technical  and  theological  sense. 
The  "  form  "  and  "  matter  "  of  ordination  own  a  special  meaning. 


64  THE   CHURCH    UNDER   QUEEN    ELIZABETH. 

positions,  declined  to  participate  in  services  at  which  such 
practices  were  adopted.  For  example,  Peter  Martyr,  Canon  of 
Christ  Church,  Oxford,  declared  :  "  As  to  myself,  when  I  was  at 
Oxford,  I  would  never  wear  the  surplice  in  the  choir,  although  I 
was  a  canon  ;  and  I  had  my  own  reasons  for  doing  so."  ^  John 
lewell, — who  was  never  more  fitly  or  aptly  described  than  when 
the  late  Richard  Hurrell  Froude  ^  termed  him  "an  irreverent 
Dissenter," — when  writing  to  this  said  Protestant  Canon  of 
Oxford,  remarked  that  "the  scenic  apparatus  of  divine  worship 
is  now  under  agitation ;  and  those  very  things  which  you  and  I 
have  so  often  laughed  at  are  now  seriously  and  solemnly  enter- 
tained by  certain  persons  (for  we  are  not  consulted) ;  as  if  the 
Christian  religion  could  not  exist  without  something  tawdry."'' 
It  was  this  person,  subsequently  made  a  bishop,  who  put  himself 
forward,  or  was  put  forward  by  others,  to  defend  by  his  pen  the 
new  National  Church  which  had  been  set  up  by  Parliament;  and 
a  laboured,  tortuous,  and  poor  apology  and  defence  he  made  of 
it,  as  the  numerous  and  forcible  replies  to  his  treatise  sufficiently 
jjrove.  The  language  of  Richard  Cocks,  Bishop  of  Ely,  still 
further  shows  the  true  character  of  certain  of  these  miserable 
innovators: — "We  are  only  constrained,"  he  writes,  "to  our 
great  distress  of  mind,  to  tolerate  in  our  churches  the  image  of 
the  cross,  and  Him  Who  was  crucified :  the  Lord  must  be 
entreated  that  this  stumbling-block  may  at  length  be  removed."-* 
In  1563,  Edwin  Sandys,  then  Bishop  of  Worcester,  petitioned 
the  Convocation  of  Canterbury  "to  supplicate  the  Head  of  the 
Church,"  by  which  he  meant  the  queen,  "that  all  curious 
singing  and  playing  of  the  organs  may  be  removed  ;"  while  two 
other  prelates,  Grindal  and  Robert  Home,  in  a  letter  to  their 
foreign  ally,  BuUinger,  who  appears  to  have  been  greatly  exer- 
cised in  his  mind  that  such  eminent  English  gospellers  should 
appear  to  tolerate  these  superstitions,  thus  plainly  declared  their 
private  convictions  :  "  We  do  not  assert  that  the  chanting  in 
churches,  together  with  the  organ,  is  to  be  retained."  Nothing 
of  the  sort  was  their  real  wish.  They  desired  that  the  prayers,  if 
said  at  all,  should  be  preached  or  pronounced  to  the  people ; 
while,  as  to  popish  chanting,  they  write  :  "  We  disapprove  of  it, 
as  we  ought  to  do."^  This  same  person,  Edmund  Sandys,  pro- 
posed in  Convocation,  "That  all  saints'  feasts  and  holy  days 

^  Z/iric/i  Lii/crs,  2nd  series,  No.  14.     Parker  Society's  Publications. 

-  The  well-known  early  Tractarian  leader. 

•*  Z.iirich  Letters,  1st  series,  No.  9.     Parker  Society's  Publications. 

■*  Zurich  Letters,  1st  series,  No.  28. 

^  Zurich  Letters,  1st  series,  No.  75. 


IRRELIGION   AND    INDIFFERENCE.  65 

bearing  the  name  of  a  creature  may,  as  tending  to  superstition, 
.  .  .  be  clearly  abrogated."  ""^  On  the  other  hand,  certain  of 
these  cringing  fanatics  and  heretical  preachers  having  abolished 
the  chief  feasts  of  the  Mother  of  God — though  some  of  them 
were  restored,  for  very  shame's  sake,  about  a  hundred  years 
later — had  no  scruple  whatsoever  in  profanely  making  Queen 
Elizabeth's  birthday  a  new  feast  of  the  first  importance,  equal  to 
those  of  Christmas  or  Ascension  Day  ;  of  singing  invocations  of 
Her  Majesty,  commencing  Ave  Eliza  !  in  St.  Paul's  Cathedral, 
instead  of  the  ancient  and  beautiful  Angehis  Domini^  or  the  anti- 
phons  which  often  followed  evensong ;  or  of  placing  her  portrait 
and  coat-of-arms  over  the  chancel  arch  of  certain  churches.  The 
Erastianism  and  wickedness  of  such  innovations  will  be  now 
frankly  acknowledged  by  all  Christian  people.- 

What  they  had  produced  throughout  the  country  may  be 
readily  enough  gathered  from  the  books  and  tracts  of  the  day, 
copies  of  which  can  still  be  studied.  Irreligion  and  indifference, 
twin  giants  of  evil,  stalked  unopposed  throughout  the  land. 
Even  some  of  the  highest  officials  were  startled  at  the  sharp  and 
striking  results  of  their  own  deplorable  handiwork,  occasionally 
standing  aghast  at  the  existing  desolation  and  demoralisation. 
They  had  succeeded  in  overturning  one  religion,  that  which  St. 
Augustine  brought  from  the  sacred  city  of  Rome  ten  centuries 
before,  and  hundreds  of  thousands  deplored  its  overthrow.  The\- 
had  set  up  another,  recently  made  by  the  queen  and  Parliament, 
which  the  people,  knowing  its  origin  and  authorship,  looked 
upon  both  with  aversion  and  contempt. 

To  suppose  that  the  main  body  of  the  baptized  desired  any 
such  change  as  was  effected  under  Elizabeth  is  a  fond  and  false 
notion,  without  historical  sanction,  and  in  the  teeth  of  numerous 
batches  of  evidence  to  the  direct  contrary.  The  churches,  bare 
and  barn-like,  were,  in  fact,  almost  deserted.-^  The  preachers 
often  addressed  only  their  own  families  and  the  whitewashed 

^  Wilkins'  Concilia,  vol.  iv.  p.  239. 

-  See  Wilkins'  Concilia,  vol.  iv.  p.  239  ;  Edwar.d  Rishton's  continuation  of 
Sander  s  History,  Book  iv.  chap.  vi.  ;  a  paper  by  Dr.  Rimbault  on  "Music 
of  the  Reformation  Period  ;"  Grindal's  Remains,  Parker  Society's  edition,  in 
loco  ;  and  Nichol's  Progresses  of  Queen  Elizabeth.  At  Rycot  Chapel,  Oxford- 
shire, there  was  anciently  a  portrait  of  this  queen  placed  exactly  over  the 
Communion  Table  ;  but  when  the  adjoining  mansion,  Rycot  House,  was 
pulled  down,  this  picture  is  said  to  have  been  taken  to  Wytham,  near  Oxford, 
the  present  seat  of  the  Earl  of  Abingdon.  "In  St.  Peter's  Church  in  y^' 
East  Oxon,  on  the  North  Wall,  is  painted  Queen  Eliz.  lying  at  full  length  in 
her  Royal  Robes,  w"'  a  Crown  on  Her  Head,"  etc. — Hearne's  Collections, 
August  and  September  1706. 

■^  "Come  into  a  church  on  the  Sabbath  day,  and    ye  shall  see  but  few, 

K 


66  THE   CHURCH    UNDER   QUEEN    ELIZABETH. 

walls.  The  old  religion  the  poor  could  understand  ;  but  they 
pardonably  preferred  the  quiet  pleasures  of  the  ale-house  to  the 
dismal  doctrines  of  John  Calvin  and  the  noise  of  his  disciples. 

Let  a  writer  on  behalf  of  the  ancient  faith  state  his  position 
and  judgment  of  what  had  been  done  : — "  This  manner  of 
ministration  of  sacraments  set  forth  in  the  Book  of  Common 
Prayers  was  never  allowed  nor  agreed  upon  by  the  Universal 
Church  of  Christ  in  any  General  Council  or  Sacred  Synod ;  no, 
not  by  the  clergy  of  England  at  the  last  Parliament ;  but  only  it 
was  agreed  upon  by  the  laity,  which  have  nothing  ado  with 
si)iritual  matters  or  causes  of  religion,  but  ought  to  stand  to  the 
decrees,  judgment,  and  determination  of  the  clergy  in  causes  of 
faith  and  religion."^ 

Again,  let  the  same  writer  point  out  what  was  the  impression 
in  his  own  day  as  to  the  substitution  of  a  table  for  an  altar,  and 
as  to  the  intentional  absence — for,  to  use  a  modern  phrase  and 
jjhantasy,  "omission  was  prohibition  " — of  any  act  of  consecration 
in  the  new  and  chopped-up  Service  of  the  Supper : — 

"  The  Catholic  Church,  which  we  professed  at  our  baptism  to 
believe  [in]  and  obey,  teacheth  us  to  receive  Christ's  Body  con- 
secrate at  Holy  Mass  with  prayers,  invocations,  and  benediction 
with  the  sign  of  the  holy  cross;  and  not  bare  bread  and  wine 
without  consecration  and  benediction  as  is  used  in  this  Com- 
munion, being  against  the  decrees  and  ordinance  of  Christ's 
Catholic  Church.  Almighty  God  does  command  us  to  separate 
ourselves  from  such  as  take  in  hand  a  ministration  of  sacraments 
against  the  ordinance  of  Christ's  Church,  and  that  ye  touch 
nothing  pertaining  to  them,  lest  ye  be  lapped  in  their  sin."  - 

These  statements  are  clear  enough.  The  writer  honestly 
urged   all   his   readers  not  to  particii)ate  in   the  heresies^  and 

though  there  be  a  sermon  ;  but  the  ale-house  is  ever  full.  ...  A  popish 
summoner,  spy  or  promoter,  will  drive  more  to  the  church  with  a  word  lo 
hear  a  Latin  mass,  than  seven  preachers  will  bring  in  a  week's  preaching  to 
hear  a  godly  sermon." — Bishop  James  Pilkington's  preface  to  his  Coiniuen- 
tary  on  the  Prophcl  Ai^geus. —  ll'orAs,  p.  6.      Parker  Society.     London,  1S42. 

^  Certain  Questions  Propounded,  etc.      London,  1564. 

■^  Certain  Questions  Propounded,  etc.      Ivondon,  1564. 

'^  The  following  is  a  specimen  of  the  anti-religious  poetry  of  the  Elizabethan 
era  : — 

"  O  presumptions  undertaker, 

Never  cake  could  make  a  baker, 

Yet  a  Preist  would  make  his  Maker. 
What's  become  of  all  ye  Christs  ye  preists  h,-ive  made? 
]Jo  those  hosts  of  Hosts  abide,  or  do  they  fade? 

One  Christ  binds,  ye  rest  doe  die  ; 

One's  a  truth,  the  rests  a  lie." 

MS.,  in  quarto,  in  the  library  of  the  Rev.  V..  Higgins  of  Bosbury  House, 
Herefordshire,  —  the  Commonplace  Book  of  the  Lady  Elizabeth  Cope. 


BISHOP   PILKINGTON'S   OPINIONS.  67 

blasphemy  of  the  innovators.  Whatever  else  such  charitable 
warnings  serve  to  show,  they  certainly  prove  that  some  at  least 
were  true  to  the  faith  of  their  forefathers. 

On  the  other  side,  let  the  varied  words  of  an  eminent  innovator 
and  Protestant  Prince  Palatine,  Bishop  Pilkington  of  Durham, 
be  studied.  He  spoke  with  authority,  even  the  authority  of  his 
Supreme  Mistress,  Queen  Elizabeth,  whom  he  obsequiously 
maintained  ^  had  rightly  all  spiritual  ])re-eminence,  even  over 
patriarchs  and  popes  : — "  In  the  restoring  of  the  gospel  many 
weep  when  they  see  not  the  churches  so  well  decked  and 
furnished  as  before.  The  Pope's  church  hath  all  things  pleasant 
in  it  to  delight  the  people  withal ;  as  for  the  eyes,  their  God 
hangs  on  a  rope  [/.«?.  in  the  pix  or  dhormm\  images  gilded, 
painted,  carved  most  finely,  copes,  chalices,  crosses  of  gold 
and  silver,  banners,  etc.,  with  relics  and  altars;  for  the  ears, 
singing,  ringing,  and  organs  piping;  for  the  nose,  frankincense 
sweet ;  to  wash  away  sins  (as  they  say),  holy  water  of  their  own 
hallowing  and  making  ;  priests  an  infinite  sort ;  masses,  trentals, 
diriges,  and  pardons,  etc.  But  where  the  gospel  is  preached, 
they  knowing  that  God  is  not  pleased  but  only  with  a  pure  heart, 
they  are  content  with  an  honest  place  appointed  to  resort 
together  in,  though  it  were  never  hallowed  by  bishop  at  all ;  but 
have  only  a  pulpit,  a  preacher  to  the  people,  a  deacon  for  the 
poor,  a  table  for  the  Communion,  with  bare  walls,  or  else  written 
with  Scriptures,  having  God's  eternal  word  sounding  always 
amongst  them  in  their  sight  and  ears."  ^ 

Again,"  as  regards  the  contrast  between  the  Old  and  the 
New  : — 

"  For  when  thou  comest  to  Communion  with  the  Papists,  and 
according  to  St.  Paul  would  'eat  of  that  bread  and  drink  of  that 
cup,'  they  will  neither  give  thee  bread  nor  wine  according  to 
Christ's  institution  (for  they  say  the  substance  is  changed,  and 
there  remaineth  no  bread) ;  but  they  will  give  thee  an  idol  of 
their  own  making,  which  they  call  their  God.     They  come  not 

^  "  As  I  noted  before,  so  it  is  not  to  be  lightly  considered,  that,  where  so 
often  the  prophet  here  rehearseth  the  names  of  Zerubbabel  and  Joshua,  the 
two  chiefest  rulers  ;  yet  he  evermore  setteth  in  order  the  Civil  Magistrate  and 
Power  before  the  Chief  Priest,  to  signify  the  pre-eminence  and  preferment 
that  he  hath  in  the  commonwealth  and  other  matters,  more  than  the  Chief 
Priest  (by  what  name  soever  he  be  called),  whether  it  be  the  pope,  arch- 
bishop, or  metropolitan." — Aageus  and  Abdias,  by  James  Pilkington,  chap.  i. 
London:   W.  Serres,  1562. 

"^  VA'i\\o^^Y\Wmg\.ox\'s,  Aggetis  and  Abdias.      London:  W.  Serres,  1562. 

^  Bishop  Pilkington's  Exposition  upon  the  Prophets,  etc.,  pp.  171,  172. 
Parker  Society.     London,  1S42. 


6S  THE   CHURCH   UNDKR   QUEEN    ELIZABETH. 

together,  according  unto  Christ's  rule,  to  break  the  bread  :  but 
they  creep  into  a  corner,  as  the  Pope  teaches  them,  to  sacrifice 
for  the  quick  and  the  dead,  to  sell  heaven,  to  harrow  [i.e.  to 
plunder]  hell,  and  sweep  purgatory  of  all  such  as  will  pay.  They 
come  not  to  communicate  v.ith  the  people,  but  to  eat  up  all 
alone." 

No  words  could  possibly  set  forth  the  actual  position  of  the 
innovators  more  exactly  and  correctly.  Yet,  it  is  clear  that  the 
people  cared  not  for  the  recent  inventions  in  religion  ;  on  the 
contrary,  being  earnestly  and  heartily  attached  to  the  one  true 
faith,  they  disliked  them. 

Pilkington,  by  conseciuence,  goes  on  to  grumble  because  the 
desecrated  and  deserted  churches  were  despised  and  neglected 
by  the  populace,  as  they  deserved  to  be;  and  to  complain  of  the 
people  because  they  did  not  appreciate  the  alternate  preaching 
and  reading,  reading  and  preaching,  so  wordy,  tedious,  and 
uninteresting,  of  the  restless  innovators.  Then,  as  now,  many 
affirmed  that  they  themselves  could  read  quite  as  profitably,  if 
not  more  so,  at  home  : — 

"  Let  us  be  ashamed,  then,  of  those  lewd  sayings,  '  ^^'hat 
should  I  do  at  the  church  ?  I  may  not  have  my  beads ;  the 
church  is  like  a  waste  barn  ;  there  is  (sic)  no  images  nor  saints  to 
worshi])  and  make  curtsey  unto ;  little  God-in-the-box  is  gone 
(!  I) ;  there  is  nothing  but  a  little  reading  and  preaching,  that  I 
cannot  tell  what  it  means.     I  had  as  lief  keep  me  at  home.'  "  ^ 

About  this  period,  the  Bible  and  the  newly-revised  Prayer- 
Book,  already  altered  three  times  since  1549,  were  ordered  to 
be  translated  into  Welsh,  for  use  in  the  Principality  of  Wales, 
where  the  people  knew  little  or  nothing  of  English  ;  though  they 
could  follow  well  enough,  and  join  in,  the  ancient  Latin  services 
of  the  Western  Church.  The  Rosary  they  knew,  and  the  Litany 
of  the  Saints,  and  the  Angehis,  which  they  recited  three  times  a 
day.  But  these  new  translations  being  strange  to  them  effected 
little  good. 

As  we  all  know,  the  h'.stablished  Churcli  in  \\'ales  has  turned 
out  a  complete  failure.  Foes  assert  it,  friends  admit  it.  What 
religion  still  remains  is  of  a  dissenting  type.  Englishmen  not 
knowing  the  language  and  customs  of  the  Welsh  people  have 
been  too  often  appointed  to  the  highest  offices  in  that  com- 
munion. Both  deans  and  bishops  have  frequently  been  merely 
commonplace  aliens.  So  that  prelates,  rewarded  for  ])olitical 
services,  or  younger  sons  of  impoverished  noblemen,  have  been 
chiefly  distinguished — and  it  is  no  mean  worldly  advantage — for 
^  Agi^i'tis  and  AbJias.     London:  W.  Serres,  1562. 


STATE   OF   THE   OLD   CATHEDRALS.  69 

the  fruitfulness  of  their  wives,  the  size  of  their  famihes,  the 
excellence  of  their  wine,  and  the  large  sums  of  money  left  to 
their  English  survivors  by  testamentary  bequests  at  their  un- 
mourned  decease. 

^  The  cathedrals,  until  quite  lately,  had  long  lain  in  partial  ruin. 
The  snows  of  winter  and  the  sunshine  of  sunimer  alternately  fell 
on  the  floors  of  unroofed  chantries  and  desecrated  chapels, 
where  a  few  chipped  and  cast-down  altars  and  battered  monu- 
ments, slowly  crumbling  to  decay,  told  of  a  worship  that  had 
been  long  ago  cast  out,  and  of  Catholic  families  long  gone  to 
their  rest  or  become  e.xtinct.  The  cathedral  choir — musty  in  its 
atmosphere,  and  gloomy  in  its  aspect,  witli  no  scrap  of  colour 
throughout  it  from  floor  to  roof,  except  maybe  the  crimson  stair- 
carpet  of  its  lofty  pulpit,  or  the  velvet  cushion  for  the  dean's 
elbows — may  have  been  used  as  a  preaching-place  once  a  week  ; 
and  perhaps  for  the  Lord's  Supper,  travestied  by  some  ministerial 
sloven,  once  a  quarter.  Otherwise  it  stood  only  as  an  impressive 
monument  of  a  cast-out  faith  ;  and  as  an  actual  reminder  to  the 
more  thoughtful  of  the  impotence  of  reforms  and  revolutions  to 
benefit  a  Christian  population.  In  the  chief  Welsh  towns  at  the 
present  day,  the  Establishment  can  scarcely  hold  its  own;  while 
in  the  villages  too  many  of  the  antique  barn-like  churches,  so 
cold,  desolate,  and  unused,  green  with  damp  and  rot,  and  some- 
times not  even  paved,  are  not  unfrequently  practically  empty. 
In  the  disastrous  principles  of  reform  and  change  there  was 
obviously  no  finality.  If  one  set  of  men  might  mend,  mar,  and 
muddle — why  not  the  restless,  the  self-seeking,  and  the  revolu- 
tionary of  every  succeeding  generation  ? 

_  So  great  was  the  confusion  existing,  so  perplexing  were  the 
discords  of  controversialists  ;  while  cross-purposes,  the  sowing  of 
political  discord  in  foreign  nations,  and  an  universal  upheaving 
of  opinion,  popular  with  self-seekers  and  reformers,  were  so 
common  that  the  wisest  were  most  anxious  for  the  close  and 
consequences  of  the  Council  of  Trent. 

Here  it  may  be  incidentally,  but  not  inappropriately,  noticed, 
with  regard  to  General  Councils,  that  the  sublime  doctrines  of 
the  Christian  religion  have  been  duly  developed  in  a  certain 
historical  sequence,  parallel  to  the  order  in  which  they  are  set 
forth  in  the  Creeds.  Thus  the  true  doctrine  of  the  adorable 
Trinity  chiefly  occupied  the  two  first  (Ecumenical  Councils ;  the 
four  next — those  of  Ephesus,  Chalcedon,  the  Second  and  Third 
of  Constantinople — were  engaged  in  expressing  with  unerring 
exactness  the  faith  concerning  the  Incarnation  ;  while  the  first 
indirect  definition  regarding  the  Holy  Eucharist  was  made  by 


yo  THE   CHURCH    UNDER   QUEEN    ELIZABETH. 

the  seventh  (Ecumenical  Council,  the  Second  of  Niccea.  The 
subjects  of  grace  and  of  the  sacraments  in  general,  of  man's  free- 
will and  justification,  were  treated  and  settled,  once  for  all,  by 
the  Council  of  Trent.  Later  questions,  mainly  rationalistic, 
relating  to  the  true  nature  of  the  Church,  the  office  and  work  of 
the  Holy  Ghost,  His  Divine  indwelling,  and  the  infallibility  and 
indefectibility  of  the  kingdom  of  the  world's  Redeemer,  have 
been  treated  more  recently.  The  rationalism  of  the  present 
day,  in  which  the  very  existence  of  God  has  been  denied,  and 
the  evils  which  flow  from  such  rationalism — Erastianism,  godless 
education,  and  nationalism  in  religion — are  the  great  subjects 
which  quite  recently  have  been  authoritatively  condemned. 

On  the  3rd  and  4th  of  December  1563,  the  last  session  of  the 
sacred  Council  of  Trent  was  held.  It  had  been  in  abeyance  for 
the  greater  part  of  the  time  since  its  first  assembling  on  the 
13th  of  December  1545.  Pope  Paul  HI.  and  Pope  Julius  HI. 
had  in  due  course  guided  its  decisions  and  decrees,  but  during 
its  sessions  had  passed  to  their  reward.  Its  work,  from  beginning 
to  end,  was  one  of  true,  honest,  and  legitimate  reform.  The 
lawful  rulers  of  the  Western  Church — duly  and  painfully  con- 
sidering all  heresies,  schisms,  defects,  innovations,  and  errors, 
and  more  especially  those  modern  "reforms"  which  had  become 
so  disastrously  current  amongst  the  Northern  races — carefully 
amended  whatever  needed  amendment,  and  this  in  no  ambiguous 
terms.  Its  Catechism,  Canons,  Decrees,  and  Confession  of 
Faith  remain  consequently  as  monuments  of  the  consummate 
wisdom  of  its  members,  and  as  certain  tokens  of  the  guiding 
])resence  of  the  Divine  Paraclete,  with  the  Chief  Bishop  of 
Christendom,  the  cardinals  and  prelates. 

The  close  of  the  Council  was  impressive  indeed.  First,  all 
things  that  had  been  duly  done  for  the  progress  of  Holy  Church 
and  the  benefit  of  the  faithful  were  solemnly  confirmed  by  those 
]:)resent  in  the  presence  of  the  Blessed  and  Adorable  Sacrament. 
To  the  then  Pontiff,  Pius  IV.,  the  members  of  the  Council 
wished  many  years  and  eternal  memory.  Peace  from  the  Lord 
God,  everlasting  glory  and  eternal  happiness  in  the  sight  of  the 
vSaints,  were  asked  for  on  behalf  of  the  two  departed  Popes  who 
had  reigned  during  the  Council's  previous  sessions.  For  the 
Emperors  Charles  V.  and  Ferdinand,  and  for  all  Christian  kings, 
"  ijreservers  of  the  right  faith,"  the  members  of  the  Council  prayed 
God  to  bestow  many  years  of  life.  Prayers  went  up  to  the 
Almighty,  likewise,  for  the  legates,  the  cardinals,  and  the 
bishops.  The  faith  of  the  Church,  as  newly  explained,  was 
confessed  by  all,  and  promises  openly  made  to  keep  the  Council's 


CLOSE   OF   THE   COUNCIL   OF   TRENT.  7 1 

Decrees.  "  We  all  thus  believe,"  they  affirmed.  "  We  all  think 
the  very  same  thing;  we  all,  consenting  and  embracing  both 
Creed  and  Decrees,  voluntarily  subscribe  thereto.  This/'  they 
went  on  to  declare,  "  is  the  faith  of  blessed  Peter  and  of  the 
Apostles ;  this  is  the  faith  of  our  fathers,  this  we  believe,  this 
we  hold,  to  this  we  adhibit  our  names." 

Then  the  Cardinal  of  Lorraine,  arising  uncovered,  declared  as 
follows  : — "  Adhering  to  these  Decrees,  may  we  be  rendered 
worthy  of  the  grace  and  mercy  of  the  first  and  Great  High  Priest, 
Jesus  Christ,  Our  Lord  and  God  ;  Our  Immaculate  Lady,  the 
Holy  Mother  of  God,  and  all  the  Saints  interceding  for  us." 

"  Amen ;  so  be  it ! "  was  the  unanimous  and  universal 
response. 

"  To  all  heretics,"  continued  His  Eminence,  "  be  anathema." 

"  Amen  ! "  was  the  like  hearty  and  unanimous  answer. 

Then,  after  having  sung  Te  Deun:^  the  members  dispersed. 
Such  was  the  Council's  impressive  and  solemn  close. 

In  England  what  had  been  effected  was  at  once  seen  to  be  of 
the  gravest  and  greatest  importance.  Independent  of  the  dis- 
cussions concerning  doctrines,  the  very  practical  point  of 
occasional  conformity  with  the  new  religion  and  worship,  which 
certain  Englishmen  had  followed,  was  fearlessly  dealt  with  ; 
while  those  who  had  occasionally  frequented  the  churches  were 
distinctly  forbidden  to  do  so  any  longer. 

Immediately  this  decision  was  formally  proclaimed,  a  change 
came  over  those  who  clung  to  the  ancient  faith.  Reports  of  the 
terms  in  which  the  decision  had  been  given  reached  England 
in  due  course,  some  months  before  the  formal  decree.  An 
authority  hitherto  recognised  by  all  the  Christian  nations  of  the 
West,  the  Chief  Bishop  of  the  Church  of  God,  now  spoke.  His 
words  were  reverently  listened  to;  the  old  law  of  Christianity, 
newly  applied,  was  at  once  dutifully  heard  and  duly  obeyed. 

Much  suffering  followed  upon  obedience  ;  but  it  sanctified  the 
sufferers,  and  abundantly  blessed  them  all,  during  the  anxious 
and  trying  time  of  their  earthly  probation. 


CHAPTER  III. 

This  decision  of  the  Council  of  Trent,  as  will  soon  be  discovered, 
exercised  great  and  direct  influence  on  the  course  of  events  in 
England.  But  these  must  not  be  forestalled.  The  exact  point 
and  purport  of  that  decision  were  not  publicly  made  known  by 
the  issue  of  any  formal  document;  but  the  duty  of  those  who 
retained  the  old  faith  soon  became  perfectly  well  understood. 

Hence,  more  completely  and  generally  than  ever,  the  churches 
in  England,  and  especially  the  more  remote  and  village  churches, 
became  deserted.  ^  This  fact  is  on  record  again  and  again  in  the 
writings  of  the  Fathers  of  the  so-called  "Reformation."  The 
new  prelates  deplored  the  emptiness  of  the  sacred  edifices  in 
writing  to  each  other.  Some  of  them,  furthermore,  grumblingly 
romphined  to  Sir  William  Cecil ;  but  if  the  existing  fines  for 
absence  and  for  non-participation  in  the  new  "rites  of  the 
Supper  ■'  would  not  aid  in  filling  the  desecrated  sanctuaries,  that 
statesman,  as  he  responded,  was  unable  as  yet  to  suggest  any 
more  efficient  practical  remedy.  The  bishops  should  more 
])ainfully  and  piously  give  themselves  to  preaching  and  prayer, 
'l^hey  .should  be  "less  with  your  women  and  children,  and  more 
with  your  flocks,"  -  as  an  anonymous  writer  forcibly  remarked. 

The  division,  therefore,  between  the  ancient  Catholics  and  the 
upholders  of  the  new  religion  became  still  further  marked  and 
manifest;  while  the  State  authorities  thus  confessed  themselves 
impotent  either  to  bridge  over  the  newly-made  chasm,  or  to  pre- 
vent fiirther  rents  and  fissures  being  deliberately  made  by  those 
standing  on  its  brink. 

Ere  we  pass  on  to  the  deeds  of  later  years,  it  is  necessary  to 
deal  here  with  a  few  particular  events  and  positions  of  some 
importance. 

1  In  some  of  the  towns,  pre-arranged  theological  controversies  and 
squabbles  over  the  meaning  of  Scripture  enlivened  the  ordinary  dulness, 
when  bull  or  badger  baiting  was  out  of  season. 

-  "A  A/i'i/t'sl  Cure,  together  with  a  Cry  from  the  Wilderness,  etc.,  jip.  35, 
36.      London,  1566. 


CONP^USION    AND   DISORDER   IN    PUBLIC   WORSHIP.      ^ ^ 

The  state  of  ecclesiastical  affairs,  about  the  year  1564,  more 
especially  the  frightful  confusion  everywhere  practically  existing, 
and  in  some  places  rampant,  is  sufficiently  proved  from  a  record 
still  remaining  in  Sir  William  Cecil's  own  handwriting.^  It  was 
evidently  made  after  due  and  careful  inquiry  on  the  part  of  that 
influential  State  official.  As  regards  the  performance  of  divine 
service  and  the  administration  of  those  sacraments  which  were 
retained, — Cecil's  own  expressive  sentences  are  scarcely  altered 
in  what  is  about  to  be  reproduced,  and,  where  altered,  only 
paraphrased  in  what  follows  : — 

Some  of  the  ministers  say  the  service  and  prayers  in  the 
chancel,  others  in  the  body  of  the  church.  Some  say  the  same 
in  a  seat  made  in  the  church,  others  in  the  pulpit,  with  their 
faces  to  the  people.  Some  keep  precisely  the  order  of  the  new 
Prayer  -  Book,  others  introduce  metrical  psalms ;  some  use  a 
surplice  at  prayers,  while  others  minister  in  their  secular  and 
ordinary  attire — hat,  doublet,  and  hose.  As  regards  the  position 
of  the  Communion  Table,  in  certain  places  it  stands  in  the  body 
of  the  church,  in  others  in  the  choir.  Within  the  latter  it  is 
sometimes  placed  altar-wise  about  a  yard  from  the  east  wall ;  in 
other  cases  it  stands  in  the  midst  of  the  chancel,  north  and  south. 
In  a  few  places  it  consists  of  a  table  duly  constructed  in  joiner's 
work,  in  others  it  is  a  mere  rough  board  placed  upon  common 
trestles.  By  some  of  the  new  ministers  it  is  covered  with  a 
carpet  or  an  old  vestment ;  by  others  the  bare  oak  table  is 
intentionally  left  perfectly  exposed  and  uncovered.  In  the 
actual  administration  of  the  Communion,  ordered  to  take  place 
once  a  month,  some  of  the  cathedral  clergy  and  the  Queen's 
chaplains  ministered  the  ordinance  in  a  surplice  with  a  cope  over 
it;  others  were  clad  in  a  surplice  only;  others,  again,  with  no 
official  dress  of  any  sort  or  kind.  Uniformity  was  thus  out  of 
the  question,  as  those  discovered,  who,  with  unbridled  self- 
pleasing  and  licence,  having  altered  the  ancient  services  to  suit 
their  own  tastes  and  opinions,  found  it  exceedingly  hard  to 
induce  others  to  adopt  exactly  the  same  standard  of  ecclesiastical 
taste,  though  prescribed  by  injunction  or  proclamation.  So  it 
was,  likewise,  as  regards  details.  Some  used  an  ancient  chalice 
and  paten  at  the  table,  others  a  Communion  cup  of  the  new  sort, 
others  a  common  cup.  The  bread,  either  leavened  or  un- 
leavened, was  received  by  some  kneeling,  by  others  standing,  by 
some  walking  round  the  table,-  by  others  sitting,  by  many  with 

'  See  vol.  iii.,  No.  7,  of  the  Lansdowne  MSS.  in  the  British  Museum. 
"  "They  used  to  begin  with  three  or  four  sermons,  preached  one  after  the 
other.     They  then  went  to  Communion,  not  receiving  it  either  on  their  knees 


74  THE   CHURCH    UNDER   QUEEN    ELIZABETH. 

their  heads  covered.  All  thus  pleased  themselves,  while  discord 
reigned.  Again  :  at  baptism  some  ministers  administered  the 
sacrament  at  the  font,  others  in  a  basin  ;  some  with  a  surplice, 
others  without ;  some  drew  the  sign  of  the  cross  on  the  child's 
brow,  others,  with  an  honest  shudder  at  the  very  notion, 
deliberately  omitted  it  as  the  acknowledged  "  mark  of  the 
Apocalyptic  Beast." 

This  new  religion,  so  eminently  selfish,  which  Cecil  and 
Elizabeth  had  set  up,  had  given  point  to  the  well-known  foreign 
Protestant  maxim  "every  one  for  himself,  and  God  for  us  all." 
The  poor,  therefore  (now  so  haggard  and  famishing),  whom  the 
Divine  Author  of  Christianity  had  declared  that  His  followers 
should  always  have  with  them,  were  voted  an  eyesore  and  a 
nuisance.  AVhen,  consequently,  the  queen,  in  her  royal  pro- 
gresses, passed  through  different  districts  of  this  once-favoured 
land,  she  could  not  fail  to  observe  the  miserable  condition  of  the 
lean  and  famishing  peasantry,  who  came  out  from  their  hovels  to 
stare  sullenly  at  her  as  she  was  borne  along  on  her  velvet-dressed 
litter.  Ill-fed,  half-clothed,  lantern-jawed,  and  wolf-like,  with 
scarcely  any  rights  left,  with  no  protectors  against  tyranny  from 
above  or  grinding  cruelty  from  below  (for  the  new  nobles  and 
the  local  constables  equally  oppressed  them),  those  few  who  were 
old  enough  to  remember  a  former  state  of  things  may  have  been 
pardoned  if  they  felt  disposed  to  curse  the  day  upon  which  they 
had  been  born. 

During  the  whole  of  her  reign,  in  truth,  the  state  of  the  lower 
classes  was  appallingly  sad,  and  their  destitution  deplorable.  The 
monasteries  having  been  already  destroyed,  or  put  to  secular 
purposes,  and  their  ample  revenues  given  away  to  worthless 
adventurers  as  bribes ;  and  these  revenues  too  often  lost, 
squandered,  and  dissipated  by  those  who  had  by  law  sacrileg- 
iously taken  possession  of  such  sacred  possessions  and  their 
corresponding  treasures, — the  country  poor  suffered  severely. 
Often  no  moral  consideration  could  induce  the  new  owners  of  the 
monastic  estates  to  aid  in  relieving  or  maintaining  the  indigent 
and  aged  people,  who  bore  in  patience  their  poverty  and  woes. 
No  doubt  such  estates  were  grievously  impoverished,  and  pro- 
duced but  little  ;  for,  as  a  rule  (the  times  being  times  of  change), 
they  were  neither  cultivated  so  well,  nor  looked  after  so  carefully, 
as  when  the  monks  owned  only  a  life  interest  in  them.  Too  often 
the  new  secular  proprietors — men  of  low  birth  and  breeding — 
were  tyrants,  oppressive  usurers,  cold-hearted,  and  godless. 

or  standing,  but  moving  by,  so  that  it  might  be  called  a  Passover  in  very 
truth." — Life  of  W'illiavi  ll'estou,  p.  241.      Lundon,  1S75. 


THE   queen's   visit   TO   CAMBRIDGE.  75 

Our  Divine  Redeemer,  as  all  Christians  know,  has  left  here 
upon  earth  the  poor,  the  unfortunate,  and  the  miserable — a 
beautiful  necessity — to  become  objects  of  the  love  and  care  of 
those  who  have  received  temporal  blessings  and  the  riches  of  this 
world.  Like  a  refreshing  shower  during  sunshine,  He  has  caused 
to  descend  upon  them  a  double  portion  of  His  divine  charity — 
the  graces  of  Calvary  and  the  glories  of  Tabor.  Withdrawing 
Himself  awhile  during  man's  time  of  probation,  He  has  thus 
bequeathed  the  poverty-stricken  to  us.  They  are  at  once  His 
liveliest  image  and  His  best-loved  inheritance.  But  under  Queen 
Elizabeth  they  were  neglected,  despised,  and  passed  by.  For 
faith  was  cold  and  charity  was  not. 

On  the  occasion  of  the  queen's  visit  to  Cambridge,  she  went 
in  State,  on  a  Sunday  morning  in  August  1564,  to  King's  College 
Chapel,  to  hear  a  Latin  sermon  by  Dr.  Perne,  prefaced  by  the 
new  Bidding-Prayer.  Prior  to  this,  the  Litany  in  English  was 
sung,  during  which  she  entered  with  a  combination  of  regal  and 
pontifical  splendour.  Four  Doctors  of  Divinity  carried  a  canopy 
of  cloth  of  gold  over  the  Supreme  Governess — the  same  canopy 
which,  in  the  fourth  year  of  her  sister's  reign,  had  been  borne 
over  the  Blessed  Sacrament  by  four  knights  in  the  same  chapel ; 
and  she  was  attended  by  her  ladies-in-waiting  and  high  officers 
of  State, — some  of  whom  carried  those  external  symbols  of  Her 
Highness's  spiritual  and  ecclesiastical  authority  which  she  had 
assumed,  and  desired  never  should  be  wanting  on  such  occasions. 
The  queen  approved  of  the  sermon;  and  "liked  the  singing  of 
the  choir  so  well,"  that  she  attended  evensong  in  the  afternoon, 
on  which  occasion  some  lyrical  verses  in  her  honour,  parodying 
one  of  the  ancient  antiphons  of  Our  Lady  with  which  the  Sunday 
Vespers  had  been  formerly  concluded,  were  sung. 

It  had  been  arranged  that  one  of  the  plays  of  Plautus — the 
"Aularia" — should  be  represented  in  the  hall  of  King's  College 
on  Sunday  evening;  but  as  the  space  of  that  refectory  was 
limited,  and  there  was  not  sufficient  room  to  erect  a  suitable 
state-throne  and  canopy  for  the  queen,  Her  Majesty  gave  orders 
that  a  stage  should  be  put  up  and  that  the  play  should  be  acted 
in  the  chapel,  which  was  done,  and  the  performance  was  not 
concluded  until  midnight.  The  queen  was  so  pleased  with  the 
acting,  but  more  particularly  with  the  good  looks,  of  a  handsome 
youth  who  had  very  cleverly  personified  Dido,  that  on  that  sultry 
autumn  midnight  she  at  once  sent  for  him  to  her  apartments  at 
King's  College,  "to  speak  to  him  and  to  commend  him  to  his 
face ; "  and,  when  she  left  the  university,  graciously  bestowed 
an  annual  benefaction  of  twenty  pounds  per  annum  for  lile  upon 


76  THE   CHURCH    UNDER   QUEEN    ELIZABETH. 

this  favoured  and  lucky  performer.'  It  will  thus  be  seen  that 
the  revived  taste  for  pagan  literature  had  at  this  time  become 
so  rampant,  as  that  a  chapel  dedicated  to  the  solemn  worship 
of  God  the  I'rinity  was,  by  royal  command,  thus  deliberately 
I)rofaned. 

By  the  queen's  numerous  love  affairs — for  she  was  always  in 
love,  ever  making  plans  for  matrimony — she  contrived  to  render 
herself  the  scandal  of  England  and  the  laughing-stock  of  the 
European  Courts.  Details  of  her  personal  behaviour  when  her 
favourites  were  concerned,  often  so  unwomanly  and  disgusting, 
of  her  coarse  words  and  questionable  sayings,  were,  in  open 
letters  or  by  occult  cypher,  transmitted  by  the  clever  ambassadors 
from  abroad  to  their  various  royal  and  imperial  masters  ;  who 
were  thus  kept  well  and  truly  informed  of  what  was  actually 
going  on,  and  who,  on  reading  them,  grinned  over  such  records 
of  her  amorous  antics. 

The  first  of  her  lovers  was  a  knight  of  a  respectable  family. 
Sir  A\'illiam  Pickering,  of  whom  John  Jewell  informed  P3ullinger 
that  he  was  "both  a  prudent  and  pious  man."  Sir  William  had 
been  sent  on  a  mission  to  one  of  the  petty  princes  of  Germany, 
and  on  his  return  the  queen,  suddenly  smitten,  heaped  such 
favours  on  him,  and  paid  him  such  unusual  attention,  both  at 
])roper  and  improper  times,  that  the  courtiers  quite  believed  that 
a  marriage  would  (or  at  all  events,  after  what  had  happened, 
that  it  should)  take  place.  Pickering  was  undoubtedly  hand- 
some, with  a  fine  brow,  regular  features,  and  small  hands  and 
feet ;  his  address,  moreover,  was  courtly,  his  tastes  were  refined. 
Whether,  on  discovering  the  amatory  peculiarities  of  the  Supreme 
Governess,  and  her  expectations,  he  became  both  alarmed  and 
disgusted,  or  not,  may  never  be  accurately  known.  Anyhow, 
the  affair  all  at  once  collapsed — no  one  knew  why  or  wherefore 
— and  this  as  suddenly  as  it  had  been  initiated. 

Her  next  lover  was  Henry,  Earl  of  Arundel,  K.G.,  born  in 
1512,  at  heart  a  staunch  supporter  of  the  ancient  faith,  a  brave 
soldier,-  and  one  who  on  several  occasions  had  done  good 
service  to  the  State.     In  Edward  VI. 's  reign  he  had  been  unjustly 

^  The  authorities  at  Cambridge  seem  to  have  been  exceedingly  annoyed,  if 
not  greatly  disgusted,  at  her  parsimony  and  favouritism.  On  leaving,  she 
simply  thanked  them  for  their  hospitality,  and  gave  some  of  the  Heads  oi 
Houses  her  right  hand  to  kiss.  A  "  Copie  of  verses"  then  penned  and  printed, 
— commenting  on  her  gift  to  the  youthful  actor,  and  hinting  tliat  the  said 
gift  was  a  reward  for  cjuestionable  favours, — too  coarse  to  transcribe,  is  pre- 
served there. 

-  He  had  distinguished  himself  greatly  by  his  bravery  at  the  siege  of 
Boulo 'ne. 


THE   queen's   favourites.  yj 

and  heavily  fined  upon  frivolous  pretences;  but  his  noblest 
achievement  was  to  have  peaceably  secured  the  throne  to  the 
late  pious  and  religious  Queen  Mary.  He  it  was  who  proclaimed 
her  in  the  city  and  then  rode  down  to  Suffolk  to  receive  her 
commands  and  serve  her  faithfully.  But  this  unhappy  nobleman, 
in  order  to  please  the  new  queen,  had  voted  in  the  House  of 
Lords,  against  the  convictions  of  his  conscience,  in  favour  of 
the  so-called  "Reformation"  and  the  new  laws,  and  kept  up  an 
appearance  of  maintaining  it.  A  member  of  the  old  nobility, 
for  he  was  the  eighteenth  earl  of  his  house  and  name,  he  was 
munificent  and  even  regal  in  his  choice  offerings  and  rich  gifts 
to  his  sovereign,  often  entertaining  her  with  masques,  banquets, 
and  balls.  In  fact,  his  vast  fortune  had  proved  wholly  inadequate 
to  pay  for  the  expenses  thus  incurred,  and  he  greatly  impoverished 
his  estates  by  so  doing.  At  length,  irritated  by  the  queen's 
behaviour,  he  haughtily  returned  his  staff  of  office  as  Lord 
Steward,  with  some  over-plain  and  too  homely  words  of  warning 
and  expostulation.  Later  on,  however,  he  opposed  the  Couit 
party  (disliking  the  queen's  projected  marriage  with  the  Duke  of 
Anjou),  and,  being  by  them  feared,  was  soonpersecuted.  When 
he  could  no  longer  minister  to  the  queen's  amusement,  evinced 
independence,  and  was  growing  old  and  gouty,i  she  speedily 
turned  her  attention  to  younger  and  livelier  favourites  ;  and  not 
only  treated  the  earl  with  contempt,  but  with  great  harshness. 
He  died  in  1580.- 

The  person  who  made  the  deepest  impression  on  her  heart 
was  a  worthless  fellow  of  neither  family  nor  blood,  Lord  Robert 
Dudley.  He,  with  his  father  the  Duke  of  Northumberland,  the 
low-born  son  of  the  rapacious  usurer  of  Henry  VHL's  reign,  had 
been  attainted  for  the  attempt  to  remove  both  Mary  and  EHzabeth 
from  the  succession  to  the  Crown.  But  he  had  recently  been 
restored  in  blood,  received  several  official  appointments  and 
grants,  and  met  with  great  favour  from  the  queen  herself.-^     He 

1  In  1565  be  went  to  try  the  effects  of  the  baths  at  Padua  for  relief  from 
the  gout  in  his  feet,  but  with  no  great  success.  "He  had  been  made  her 
tool  in  politics  and  her  sport  in  secret,"  writes  Miss  Strickland. 

-  "  In  him,"  wrote  Camden,  "  was  extinct  the  surname  of  this  most  noble 
family,  which  had  flourished  with  great  honour  for  three  hundred  years  and 
more  ;  from  the  time  of  Richard  Fitz-alan,  who,  being  descended  from  the 
Albinis,  ancient  Earls  of  Arundel  and  Sussex,  in  the  reign  of  Edward  I. 
received  the  title  of  earl  without  any  creation,  in  regard  of  his  bein'i- 
possessed  of  the  castle  and  honour  of  Arundel." 

^  In  the  fifth  year  of  her  reign  she  granted  Robert  Dudley  the  castle  and 
manor  of  Kenilworth  and  Astel  Grove,  the  lordships  and  manors  of  Denbigh 
and  Chirk,  with  other  lands  and  possessions,  together  with  a  special  licence 
for  transporting  cloth,   which  he  disposed   of  to  John    Mark   and    others, 


78  THE   CHURCH    UNDER   QUEEN    ELIZABETH. 

was  appointed  Master  of  the  Horse,  with  a  fee  of  one  hundred 
marks  a  year,  and,  to  the  astonishment  both  of  the  peers  and 
the  pubUc,  made  a  Knight  of  the  Garter,  and  soon  afterwards 
Constable  of  Windsor  Castle.  On  September  29th,  1563,  he 
was  created  Baron  of  Denbigh  and  Earl  of  Leicester.  This  took 
place  with  great  state  at  Westminster,  as  Sir  James  Melville, 
who  was  present,  has  left  on  record.  The  queen,  in  her  chair 
of  state,  personally  invested  Robert  Dudley  with  the  new  robes 
of  his  dignities  as  he  knelt  before  her.  During  the  trying 
process,  many  eyes  being  upon  him,  he  bore  himself  with  due 
gravity  and  discretion  ;  for  several  peers,  officers  of  State,  and 
foreign  ambassadors  were  present.  Before  the  new  peer  arose, 
however,  the  amorous  queen  had  the  execrable  taste  to  tickle 
him  in  the  neck  underneath  his  linen  shirt,  at  which  he  crimsoned 
deeply  ;  and  afterwards,  with  smirks  and  smiles  of  satisfaction, 
to  ask  JNIelville,  the  Scotch  ambassador,  what  he  thought  of  the 
earl's  person  and  bearing.^ 

Elizabeth  had  evidently  pressed  a  marriage  between  Mary, 
(2ueen  of  Scots,  and  Lord  Leicester,  in  order  that  when  the 
former  refused  him,  as  was  sure  to  be  the  case,  the  way  might 
be  more  easily  opened  for  the  completion  of  her  own  matrimonial 
arrangements  with  the  new  nobleman.  Should  Mary  accept  him, 
which  was  highly  improbable,  it  would  not  be  difficult  for 
Elizabeth  to  bring  the  proposal  to  nought,  and  then  secure  the 
man  for  herself. 

There  was  at  one  time  a  coolness  between  the  queen  and 
Leicester,  which  the  latter  cleverly  turned  to  his  own  account, 
and  made  use  of  in  the  following  manner.  Holding  that  a 
temporary  absence  might  serve  his  purpose,  and  whet  Her 
Highness's  appetite  for  his  return  and  company,  he  resolved  to 
ask  to  be  sent  to  France  on  some  diplomatic  mission,  and  in- 
duced De  Toys,  the  French  ambassador,  to  make  this  request 
in  person  of  the  queen.  On  hearing  it  she  flew  into  a  passion, 
swore  her  usual  impressive  oath,  and  at  once  ordered  Leicester 
into  her  presence  to  offer  some  explanation  of  his  unexpected 
desire. 

The  earl  came  in  due  course,  when  she  immediately  asked 
him  if  it  were  possible  that  he  truly  wished  to  go  to  France.     "  I 

merchant  adventurers.  — See  The  Sidney  Papers,  in  loco,  and  the  grant  of 
the  peerage  for  life  to  Alice  Dudley  (wife  of  Sir  Robert  Dudley,  son  of  the 
Earl  of  Leicester),  as  Duchess  of  Dudley,  by  King  Charles  L 

•  A  very  fine  miniature  of  this  nobleman,  from  the  pencil  of  Isaa.c  Oliver 
(1556-16 1 7),  is  in  the  possession  of  the  Duke  of  Ruccleuch,  K.G.  It  is 
inscribed  with  the  name  of  Leicester  and  with  the  date  of  his  death,  15SS. 


LORD   LEICESTER   AND   THE    SPANISH  AMBASSADOR.  79 

will  have  it,"  she  said,  "from  thine  own  lips,  if  so  it  be."  He 
replied,  with  unusual  calmness,  "  With  your  Highness's  permis- 
sion and  favour,  it  is  one  of  the  several  things  I  most  desire." 

The  queen  was  so  nettled  by  this  quiet  response  that  she  told 
him,  with  bitterness,  that  it  would  be  no  great  honour  to  send  a 
groom  (this  was  a  sarcastic  allusion  to  his  office  of  Master  of 
the  Horse)  to  so  great  and  puissant  a  prince  as  the  French  king. 

He  is  said  to  have  been  made  intensely  indignant  by  this 
studied  insult,  and  to  have  changed  colour  greatly.  But  he  kept 
his  temper,  and  wisely  restrained  his  speech. 

When  he  had  retired  from  her  presence,  which  he  did  at  once, 
she  laughingly  observed  to  the  ambassador — "  I  cannot  live, 
believe  me,  I  cannot  live  without  a  sight  of  that  man  daily.  He 
is  like  my  lap-dog.  When  that  is  seen  running  forward,  they 
who  see  it  say  that  I,  his  mistress,  am  nigh.  And  so  it  is. 
Where  my  Lord  of  Leicester  is,  there  too  am  I :  there,  good  De 
Foys,  must  I  be  likewise." 

Soon  afterwards  fresh  warmth,  not  to  write  heat,  took  the 
place  of  the  temporary  coolness  which  had  existed  between  the 
queen  and  her  favourite  ;  while,  as  a  consequence  of  their  be- 
coming inseparable  companions,  once  more  the  case,  fresh 
scandalous  reports  were  current  at  home,  while  abroad  it  was 
openly  asserted  that  they  lived  in  adulterous  intercourse.^ 

On  one  occasion  Elizabeth  had  condescended  to  discuss  these 
reports  with  Quadra,  the  Spanish  ambassador.  In  so  doing, 
the  poor  lady  surely  forgot  both  her  dignity  as  a  queen  and  her 
delicacy  as  a  woman,  in  personally  and  argumentatively  pointing 
out  the  a  priori  improbability  of  what  was  asserted  by  her 
enemies,  by  a  joint  inspection  of  her  own  and  her  favourite's 
sleeping-chambers,  and  their  due  geographical  relation  to  each 
other.  This  unpleasant  incident,  which,  it  is  to  be  feared, 
altogether  failed  of  its  purpose,  was  discussed  by  some  of  the 
other  ambassadors,  and,  as  usual,  also  talked  about  abroad. 

Subsequently  the  queen,  finding  that  her  favourite's  health 
was  likely  to  suffer  from  the  alleged  dampness  of  the  room  in 
which  he  had  hitherto  slept,  had  the  daring  indelicacy  to  assign 
him  a  chamber  in  close  proximity  to  the  royal  sleeping  apart- 
ment.^    The  boldness  of  this  act  quite  astonished  some  of  the 

^  A  gentleman  in  Norfolk  was  put  upon  his  trial  for  having  asserted  that 
"my  Lord  of  Leicester  had  two  children  by  the  queen,"  and  for  this  plain- 
speaking  was  compelled  to  lose  both  his  ears  or  else  to  pay  a  fine  of  ^100. 
— See  Lodge   vol,  ii.  p.  47. 

-  Testimony  of  Quadra,  Bishop  of  Aquila,  in  original  despatches  at 
Simancas. 


8o  THE   CHURCH    UNDER    QUEEN    ELIZABETH. 

more  refined  amongst  the  courtiers  ;  while  certain  of  the  old 
nobility,  though  silent,  shook  their  heads  gravely  at  the  mention 
of  it.  But  no  one  publicly  criticised  or  protested.  Fortune  in 
this,  as  in  other  cases,  favoured  the  brave.  Elizabeth,  in  these 
amorous  contrivances,  was  truly  as  brave  as  she  was  bold, 
and,  it  may  be  added,  as  daring  as  she  was  indelicate  and  un- 
blushing. 

But  more  of  this  hereafter.  Almost  to  the  day  of  her  death 
she  was  always  seeking  for  the  admiration  of  the  other  sex.  As 
she  grew  in  years,  so  she  grew  in  vanity,  selfishness,  and  cruelty 
— cruelty  such  as  in  a  woman  the  world  has  seldom  been  called 
upon  to  contemplate  and  turn  from  in  aversion. 

Her  treatment  of  the  venerable  Archbishop  of  York,  1  )r. 
Nicholas  Heath,  for  example,  was  simply  inhuman  and  scandal- 
ous. She  had  been  deeply  indebted  to  him,  seven  years 
previously,  at  a  sore  crisis  in  her  life,  the  death  of  her  half-sister 
Queen  Mary,  but  seems  to  have  speedily  enough  forgotten  her 
obligation.  He  it  was  who,  when  her  title  to  the  throne  was  so 
doubtful,  served  by  boldness  and  prompt  action  to  establish  her 
questionable  position ;  for,  like  an  apt  statesman  and  loyal 
subject,  he  secured  the  sanction  of  both  Houses  of  Parliament 
to  the  proclamation  by  which  her  reign  was  peacefully  and  duly 
inaugurated.  Yet  because,  being  "a  Churchman  of  the  true 
ancient  sort,"  he  was  conscientiously  unable  to  accept  the  ridi- 
culous figment  of  her  so-called  "supremacy,"  and,  as  in  duty 
bound,  resisted,  both  in  the  Houses  of  Lords  and  Convocation, 
the  imposition  of  such  a  fraudulent  novelty  upon  Englishmen, 
by  every  lawful  means  at  hand,  she  had  the  archbishop  privately 
conveyed  to  the  Tower,  without  charge  or  trial,  and  there  for 
five  weary  years  confined  in  a  dark  and  unwholesome  dungeon, 
to  his  great  sorrow  and  pain. 

When  in  ordinary  conversation  the  Venetian  Ambassador  so 
properly  put  before  the  queen  the  strong  judgment  entertained 
abroad  of  such  unjustifiable  acts  of  persecution  and  ini(]uity, — 
for,  as  he  remarked  in  regard  to  the  imprisoned  archbisho|), 
"no  man  in  a  civilised  State  should  be  condemned  to  punish- 
ment without  a  hearing," — she  enjoined  that  Archbishop  Heath 
was  to  be  "less  straitened."  At  that  time,  Thomas  Young,  an 
intruder,  neither  canonically  elected  nor  duly  confirmed,  had 
usurped  the  place  and  revenues  of  the  ancient  archiepiscopal  See, 
legally  belonging  to  Heath,  and  was  doing  his  best  to  serve  the 
cause  of  Cecil  and  the  innovators  in  a  loyal  and  beautiful  county 
— the  people  of  which  were  almost  unanimously  in  favour  of  the 
ancient  faith.     Heath  was,  therefore,  permitted  to  retire  to  the 


VESTIMENTARY   INNOVATIONS.  8 1 

Manor  House  in  York,^  formerly  the  residence  of  the  Abbot  of 
St.  Mary's  and  subsequently  one  of  the  official  houses  of  the  See 
in  question ;  and,  though  kept  under  a  close  watch,  was  allowed 
to  walk  abroad  within  a  certain  distance  of  his  place  of  confine- 
ment. But  even  this  moderate  liberty  was  looked  upon  by  some 
with  dislike  and  jealousy.  The  suspicions  regarding  this  vener- 
able prelate  were,  however,  suspicions  and  nothing  more  ;  possibly 
the  consequence  of  malice,  or  probably  of  mere  gossip.  In  the 
meantime  Lord  Scrope  r  applied  to  the  Council  for  advice  and 
directions  in  the  case  of  the  archbishop's  suspected  peregrinations. 
The  question  was  discussed,  in  the  queen's  presence,  on  the 
22nd  of  June  1565,  with  the  assistance  of  the  Lord  Keeper 
Bacon,  the  ]\Larquis  of  Northampton,  the  Earl  of  Leicester,  Air. 
Secretary  Cecil,  Mr.  Cave,  Mr.  Petre,  and  Mr.  Sackville ;  when 
it  was  determined  that  Lord  Scrope  should  deal  sharply  and 
promptly  with  the  old  man  of  eighty,  "to  the  end  that  he  should 
declare  the  full  truth  why  he  wandereth  abroad,  and  if  he  will 
not  be  plain  in  his  declaration," — the  queen,  just  turned  thirty 
years  of  age,  goes  on  to  have  "  fully  determined  "  and  recorded  on 
the  Council  Register  that  he  must  be  tortured,  pinched,  or  thumb- 
screwed, — "  to  use  some  kind  of  torture  to  him,  so  as  to  be  without 
any  great  bodily  hurt,  and  to  advertise  his  (Lord  Scrope's)  doings 
herein,"  ^  are  the  exact  words  of  the  Privy  Council  Order. 

About  this  time,  i.e.  1566,  another  controversy  arose,  not  from 
maintainers  of  the  old  order  of  affairs,  but  from  certain  of  the 
more  advanced  innovators.     And  it  arose  as  follows  : — 

For  the  new  bishops  a  lawn  rochet  and  black  chimere,  with 
silk  scarf,  and  neckband  of  sable  or  other  furs,  was  customarily 
adopted  or  enjoined  to  be  worn.  In  existing  pictures  of  them 
they  are  thus  represented.*     This  was  the  ancient  domestic  dress 

^  Canon  Raine  of  York  thus  most  courteously  writes  to  me: —  "If  the 
place  is  described  as  '  the  Manor  House  in  York,'  it  is  the  large  building 
formerly  the  residence  of  the  Abbot  of  St.  Mary's  and  now  the  Yorkshire 
School  for  the  Blind.  It  was  generally  called  'the  Manor  House'  or  '  ihe 
King's  Manor,'  as  the  Stuart  kings  resided  there." 

■'  This  was  Henry,  ninth  Lord  Scrope  of  Bolton,  K.G.,  summoned  to 
Parliament  from  21st  October  1555  to  4th  of  February  1589.  In  the  filth 
year  of  Queen  Elizabeth  he  was  appointed  Governor  of  the  Castle  of  Carlisle 
and  Warden  of  the  West  Marches.  He  married,  first,  Eleanor,  daughter 
of  Edward,  Lord  North,  by  whom  he  had  an  only  daughter  ;  and,  secondly, 
the  Lady  Margaret  Howard,  sister  of  the  Duke  of  Norfolk,  by  whom  he  had 
an  only  son  Thomas,  who  became  tenth  Lord  Scrope. 

^  See,  for  the  documents  and  authorities  relating  to  this  act  of  iniquitous 
cruelty.  Memorials  of  the  Hoivards,  edited  by  Mr.  Howard  of  Corby  Castle. 

^  See  a  contemporary  portrait  of  Matthew  Parker  in  the  dining-liall  of 
Lambeth  Palace. 


82  THE   CHURCH    UNDER   QUEEN    ELIZABETH. 

of  a  Western  Catholic  prelate — not  a  dress  for  public  ministra- 
tions, but  for  hall  or  study — which  he  always  used  in  private. 
But  as  it  seemed  to  mark  off  the  chief  superintendents  from 
ordinary  ministers,  it  gave  great  offence  to  the  latter  and  their 
followers,  more  especially  when  these  were  violent  Calvinists  or 
rampant  Zwinglians.  Equality  in  the  House  of  God  was  what 
was  wanted  by  the  innovators,  with  a  complete  banishment  of  all 
external  signs,  symbols,  or  "  vestures  of  superstition,"  as  they 
were  termed. 

Anything  more  than  the  ordinary  dress  of  the  preachers  was 
consequently  held  in  horror.  The  same  was  the  case  with  the  use 
of  the  surplice  and  silken  hood  enjoined  upon  the  inferior  clergy, 
h'rorn  the  outset  the  foreign  Protestants  had  rudely  characterised 
the  surplice  as  "the  whore  of  Babylon's  chemise,"  "the  Romish 
ragge,"  "  Antichrist's  shyrte,"  and  by  other  equally  choice  terms. 
As  early  as  1550,  however,  John  Hooper,  an  apostate  Cistercian 
monk,  who  had  been  duly  infected  with  the  heresies  of  Geneva, 
had  firmly  refused  to  wear  any  such  vestments,  and  had  carried 
on  a  furious  and  angry  controversy  with  Dr.  Nicholas  Ridley 
against  them  ;  while  Miles  Coverdale,  a  rough  Yorkshireman, 
who  had  once  been  an  Augustinian  friar,  but  repudiated  the 
faith  and  had  become  tirst  a  Lutheran  and  subsequently  a 
(.'alvinistic  heretic,  was  heartily  at-one  with  Hooper  in  his 
practice  ;  and  was  even  obstinately  vigorous  and  foul-mouthed 
in  his  anti-vestment  frenzy.  The  extravagant  violence  of  this  old 
man's  language,  glanced  at  now,  only  raises  a  smile  or  a  sincere 
feeling  of  pity. 

This  controversy,  which  obviously  covered  theological  differ- 
ences of  a  true  and  deep  nature,  grew  rapidly  in  fierceness  and 
fury.i  The  anti-vestment  agitators  i)leaded  for  a  "  pure  and 
])lain"  service,  which,  judging  from  contem])orary  statements  on 
the  subject,  it  might  not  unreasonably  be  presumed,  from  their 
own  standing-i)oint,  they  had  already  secured — for  the  churches 
had  been  largely  emptied  of  their  ornaments,  wrecked  of  all  that 
was  valuable,  and  whitewashed.     Still  the  innovators  declined  to 

'  To  add  a  few  details  as  to  facts  : — The  Puritans  objected  to  the  pre- 
eminence and  authority  of  the  bishops,  and  the  jurisdiction  of  the  episcopal 
courts.  They  disliked  the  repetition  of  the  Lord's  Prayer,  as  savouring  of 
vain  repetitions  on  popish  beads  ;  they  would  not  use  the  versicles  and 
responses,  which  were,  they  maintained,  loo  much  like  the  "ancient  idolatrie." 
The  reading  of  the  A])ocrypha,  the  sign  of  the  cross  in  baptism,  the  ring  in 
marriage,  and  the  terms  of  the  marriage-contract  were  equally  distasteful. 
Chanting  the  psalms,  the  use  of  organs  or  musical  instruments,  and  more 
especially  the  enjoined  dresses  of  the  clergy,  were  all  signs  or  marks  of  the 
Beast. 


Enactments  concerning  divine  service.      s^ 

attend  any  worship  where  surpHce,  rochet,  or  hood  appeared  on 
the  backs  of  the  ministers;  and  expressed  this  their  settled 
determination  in  scurrilous  pamphlets  and  the  most  violent 
speeches,  as  well  as  in  action.  Many  of  these  tractates  were 
printed  at  private  presses,  some  had  been  prepared  abroad, 
others  were  issued  without  any  publisher's  name,  so  that  no 
one  could  be  held  responsible  for  what  they  contained.  All  of 
them  were  wildly  anti-episcopal,  and  full  of  abuse  of  the  new 
Protestant  bishops,  who  were  characterised  as  "turncoats," 
"anti-gospellers,"  and  "traitors."  The  Master  and  Wardens 
of  the  Stationers'  Company  consequently  were  formally  enjoined 
to  search  for  and  seize  all  such  works.  Their  authors  were  to 
be  dealt  with  by  the  arbitrary  Court  of  High  Commission,  which, 
managing  by  a  side-wind  to  make  laws  as  they  seemed  to  be 
required,  came  down  upon  all  Puritan  offenders  with  sledge- 
hammer force.  The  recent  "reforms"  were  asserted  to  be  at 
once  "godly"  and  "sufficient";  anything  further  was  ruthlessly 
condemned.  Furthermore,  any  book-dealer  selling  a  copy  of  the 
offensive  pamphlets  in  question  was  to  be  fined  twenty  shillings 
for  each  offence.  The  printer  was  to  be  imprisoned,  while  both 
printer  and  bookseller  was  each  henceforward  forbidden  to  follow 
his  respective  calling  on  any  plea,  at  any  time,  in  any  case,  or 
under  any  circumstances. 

These  tyrannical  and  contemptible  enactments — which  came 
fresh  from  the  soiled  hands  of  the  daring  rebels  who,  without  any 
authority,  had  pretended  to  "reform"  the  Church  of  God,  and 
which  enactments,  it  may  be  remarked,  were  quite  worthy  of 
their  authors — utterly  failed  of  their  purpose.  The  Puritans 
continued  to  read,  write,  and  publish  most  violent  and  obnoxious 
tractates ;  and,  as  a  party,  soon  became  distasteful,  and  a  source 
of  grave  danger,  to  the  Government. 

These  energetic  persons  who  on  principle,  however  false, 
objected  to  the  "prelatial"  and  "popish"  character  of  the  new 
religion,  soon  secured  for  themselves  the  title  of  "Noncon- 
formists." According  to  their  consciences  (or  what  may  have 
done  duty  for  the  same)  they  could  not  and  would  not  adhere 
to  the  system  recently  set  up.  They  deliberately  dissented  from 
it ;  they  could  not  conform  to  it,  even  though  enjoined  thereto 
by  so  high  an  authority  as  the  Queen's  Highness  herself.  Of 
course,  it  was  quite  reasonable  that  any  of  the  preaching-ministers 
who  adopted  this  policy  should  retire  from  work  in  the  new  state 
organisation  or  religious  institution — leave  the  pulpit  and  close 
the  Book  of  Homilies.  But  this  was  not  enough.  Her  Majesty's 
advisers  went  much  further  in  their  dealings  with  these  unhappy 


84  THE   CHURCH    UNDER   QUEEN    ELIZABETH. 

people.^  All  Englishmen,  as  the  teachhig  then  stood,  must 
acknowledge  the  Queen's  Supreme  Headship,  and  worship  exactly 
as  she  worshipped,  bow  when  she  bowed,  pray  as  she  prayed, 
sing  as  she  sang,  and  in  no  other  way.  The  ponderous  preach- 
ments and  dreary  services  of  Geneva,  which  some  miserable 
fanatics,  stricken  with  self-delusion,  looked  upon  as  the  highest 
types  of  evangelical  purity,  were  consequently  as  much  forbidden 
as  the  Hereford  or  Salisbury  rite  for  Holy  Mass.  The  so-called 
"prophesyings"  of  the  Puritans  were  quite  as  odious  to  the 
queen  as  the  Catholic  Sacraments  of  Confirmation  and  Extreme 
Unction,  the  Rosary  or  the  Angelus.  Such  a  practical  policy 
scarcely  befitted  those  who  so  loudly  condemned  the  proceedings 
of  the  previous  reign.  And  this  point  was  more  than  once  ably 
but  unavailingly  pressed  upon  the  queen  by  some  of  the  oflicial 
representatives  of  foreign  Courts.  Yet,  let  the  truth  be  told,  it 
was  only  by  persecution,  fines,  imprisonment,  and  the  gallows 
that  the  new  system  of  nationalism  in  religion  could  be  main- 
tained at  all. 

About  this  time  an  ecclesiastical  case  of  great  importance — of 
such  importance  indeed  as  that  special  legislation  immediately 
took  place  because  of  it — was  heard  in  the  secular  courts. 
Robert  Home,  Bishop  of  Winchester,  a  Puritan  gentleman  of 
some  zeal,  indicted  Dr.  Bonner,  the  de  jure  but  not  dc  facto 
Bishop  of  London  (for  FMmund  Grindal  by  royal  authority  had 
usurped  that  important  position),  for  refusing  to  take  the  recent 
( )aih  of  Supremacy.  PJonner  had  been  for  years  a  close  prisoner 
in  the  Marshalsea,  and  this  place  of  confinement  was  in  the 
diocese  of  Winchester.  The  plea  which  Bonner  put  in  was  a 
])lain  and  bold  one,  viz.  that  Home,  falsely  calling  himself 
■'  Bishop  of  Winchester,"  had  never  been  duly,  regularly,  and 
legally  consecrated  according  to  the  laws  of  the  Church  of 
England  ;  and  consequently  that  he  could  not  be,  and  was  not, 
bishop  (if  the  diocese  in  which  Bonner  was  confined,  and  there- 
fore had  no  legal  authority  whatsoever  to  tender  him  the  oath 
in  question.  It  was  a  bold  move  on  the  part  of  the  closely- 
imprisoned  and  ill-treated  ])rclate  ;  but,  being  founded  on  fact 
and  law,  turned  out  to  be  a  due,  proper,  and  valid  plea.  The 
judges  who   heard   the   case  were    much   annoyed   and   sorely 

'  In  June  of  the  year  15(17  a  congregation  of  more  than  a  hundred  Puritans 
was  surprised  and  seized  at  I'lumbcrs'  Hall,  in  the  city  of  London,  of  which 
tifieen  were  marched  ofT  to  prison  without  either  charge,  trial,  or  condemna- 
tion. After  they  had  thus  been  treated  they  were  examined  by  Grindal, 
the  Bishop  of  London,  who  rated  them  fiercely,  but  failed  to  secure  their 
conformity. 


THE   CASE   OF   BONNER   AGAINST   IIORNE.  85 

puzzled  by  the  position  into  which  Bonner,  a  learned  canonist, 
had  thus  so  adroitly  placed  Home.  They  resolved,  therefore, 
to  give  no  decision  whatsoever ;  for  otherwise  it  must  have  been 
clearly  and  unquestionably  against  Home,  and  in  favour  of 
Bonner.  So  the  proceedings  were  most  irregularly  and  unjustly 
stayed  and  quashed.  Bonner  was  sent  back  to  the  unhealthy 
ceils  of  the  Marshalsea.  Home  did  not  venture  to  tender  him 
the  oath  again  ;  while  the  result  of  this  lawsuit  sorely  vexed  and  dis- 
mayed the  new  prelates,  and  annoyed  the  Queen's  Council  greatly. 

Throughout  the  whole  country  the  issue  of  this  suit  gradually 
became  known,  and  it  was  largely  discussed.  It  had  effectually 
served  to  test  the  question  whether  the  new  bishops  and  ministers 
were  "true  and  lawful"  or  not.  The  old  clergy,  who  compared 
the  novel  form  of  ordination  with  the  old,  looked  upon  the  New 
Church  officers  with  both  suspicion  and  aversion,  the  more 
vigorous  amongst  them  with  contempt.  They  were  unnoticed 
by  the  rich  and  learned,^  and  despised  by  the  poor  and  un- 
lettered ;  so  much  so  indeed  that  the  Supreme  Governess  had  to 
invoke  the  aid  of  Parliament  to  fill  up  what  was  so  obviously 
wanting,  and  to  strengthen  that  which  was  so  notoriously  weak. 

An  Act  of  Parliament  was  therefore  passed  declaring  that  the 
method  of  making  and  consecrating  the  archbishops  and  bishops 
of  this  realm,  notwithstanding  all  objections,  was  "good,  lawful,  and 
perfect."  The  tedious  terminology  and  numerous  redundancies 
of  expression  in  the  Act  are  remarkable;  but  inasmuch  as,  under 
the  circumstances,  such  was  obviously  the  only  method  available 
for  settling,  once  for  all,  the  various  disputes  ^  which  had  arisen 
on  the  subject,  it  is  necessary  to  put  a  part  of  it,  at  all  events, 
on  record. 

Its  preamble  asserted  that  "  divers  questions  by  overmuch 
boldness  of  speech  and  talk  of  the  common  sort  of  people,  being 
unlearned,  having  lately  grown,"  concerning  the  new  kind  of 
ordinations,  whether  the  same  be  done  according  to  law  or  not, 
"  which  is  much  tending  to  the  slander  of  all  the  state  of  the 
clergy";  therefore,  for  avoiding  such  slanderous  speech  and  for 
enabling  Parliament  to  settle  the  question,  this  Act  is  passed. 

'  Grindal,  when  Archbishop  of  York,  writing  from  Cawood  to  Cecil,  on 
August  29,  1570,  tells  him  plaintively  that  he  has  not  been  well  received  ; 
the  greater  part  of  the  gentlemen  of  the  county  being  not  well  affected  towards 
godly  religion,  and  among  the  common  people  many  superstitious  practices 
remain. — Domestic  State  Papers,  Elizabeth,  vol.  Ixxiii.  p.  390. 

"  The  writers  who  during  Elizabeth's  reign  dealt  with  this  subject,  and  who 
had  occasioned  such  "various  disputes,"  were  Harpesfield,  Hoskins,  Sander, 
Harding,  Stapleton,  Allen,  Reynolds,  and  others— all  of  whom,  it  should  be 
remembered,  were  English  Churchmen  vigorously  resisting  the  innovators. 


86  THE   CHURCH    UNDER   QUEEN    ELIZABETH. 

No  reference  is  made  to  any  rites  older  tlian  those  of  King 
Henry's  reign,  and  whatever  has  been  or  is  wanting  is  duly 
supplied  "  by  the  authority  of  Parliament " — of  course,  a  high 
authority  in  things  temporal,  but  nothing  more.  Parliament,  of 
course,  can  compass  many  deeds  and  effect  much,  but  it  is 
utterly  powerless  to  make  either  a  priest  or  a  bishop,  and  no 
declaration,  resolution,  or  statute  can  render  valid  and  certain 
any  ordination  or  consecration  already  invalid  or  doubtful. 

The  most  important  part  of  the  new  enactment  is  now  verbally 
quoted  : — 

"And  further,  for  the  avoiding  of  all  ambiguities  and  ques- 
tions that  might  be  objected  against  the  lawful  confirmations, 
investings,  and  consecrations  of  the  said  archbishops  and  bishops, 
Her  Highness,  in  her  Letters  Patent,  under  the  Great  Seal  of 
England,  directed  to  any  archbishop,  bishop,  or  others,  for  con- 
firming, investing,  and  consecrating  of  any  person  elected  to  the 
office  or  dignity  of  any  archbishop  or  bishop,  hath  not  only  used 
such  words  and  sentences  as  were  accustomed  to  be  used  by  the 
said  late  King  Henry,  and  King  Edward,  Her  Majesty's  father, 
and  brother,  in  their  like  Letters  Patents,  made  for  such  causes, 
but  also  hath  used,  and  put  in  Her  Majesty's  said  Letters  Patents 
divers  other  general  words  and  sentences,  whereby  Her  Highness. 
by  her  supreme  power  and  authority,  hath  dispensed  with  all 
causes  or  doubts  of  any  imperfections,  or  disability,  that  can  or 
may  in  anywise  be  objected  against  the  same,  as  by  Her  Majesty's 
said  Letters  Patents  remaining  of  record  more  plainly  will  appear  ; 
so  that  to  all  those  that  will  well  consider  of  the  effect  and  true 
intent  of  the  said  laws  and  statutes,  and  of  the  supreme  and 
absolute  authority  of  the  Queen's  Highness,  and  which  she,  by 
Her  INLajesty's  said  Letters  Patents,  hath  used,  and  put  in  use, 
in  and  about  the  making  and  consecrating  of  the  said  archbishojis 
and  bishops,  it  is,  and  may  be,  very  evident  and  apparent  that 
no  cause  of  scruple,  ambiguity,  or  doubt  can  or  may  justly  be 
objected  against  the  said  elections,  confirmations,  or  consecra- 
tions, or  any  other  material  thing  meet  to  be  used,  or  had,  in  or 
about  the  same ;  but  that  everything  requisite  and  material  for 
that  purpose  hath  been  made  and  done  as  precisely,  and  with  as 
great  a  care  and  diligence,  or  rather  more,  as  ever  the  like  was 
done  before  Her  Majesty's  time,  as  the  records  of  Her  Majesty's 
said  father's  and  brother's  time,  and  also  of  her  own  time,  will 
more  jjlainly  testify  and  declare. 

"Wherefore,  for  the  ])lain  declaration  of  all  the  premises,  and 
to  the  intent  that  the  same  may  the  better  be  known  to  every 
of  the  Queen's  Majesty's  subjects,  whereby  such  evil  speech,  as 


NEW  ENACTMENT  CONCERNING  THE  NEW  ORDERS.      8/ 

heretofore  hath  been  used  against  the  high  state  of  prelacy,  may 
hereafter  cease,  be  it  now  declared  and  enacted,  by  the  authority 
of  this  present  Parliament,  that  the  said  act  and  statute  made  in 
the  first  year  of  our  said  sovereign  lady,  the  Queen's  Majesty, 
whereby  the  said  Book  of  Common  Prayer,  and  the  administra- 
tion of  sacraments,  with  other  rites  and  ceremonies,  is  authorised 
and  allowed  to  be  used,  shall  stand  and  remain  good  and  perfect, 
to  all  intents  and  purposes ;  and  that  such  order  and  form  for 
the  consecrating  of  archbishops  and  bishops,  and  for  the  making 
of  priests,  deacons,  and  ministers,  as  was  set  forth  in  the  time 
of  the  late  King  Edward  VI.,  and  added  to  the  said  Book  of 
Common  Prayer,  and  authorised  by  Parliament  in  the  fifth  and 
sixth  years  of  the  said  late  king,  shall  stand,  and  be  in  full  force 
and  effect,  and  shall,  from  henceforth,  be  used  and  observed 
in  all  places  within  this  realm,  and  other  the  Queen's  Majesty's 
dominions  and  countries  : 

"  And  that  all  acts  and  things  heretofore  had,  made,  or  done, 
by  any  person  or  persons,  in  or  about  any  consecrations,  con- 
firmation, or  investing  of  any  person  or  persons  elected  to  the 
office  or  dignity  of  any  archbishop  or  bishop  within  this  realm, 
or  within  any  other  the  Queen's  Majesty's  dominions  or 
countries,  by  virtue  of  the  Queen's  Majesty's  Letters  Patents 
or  commissions,  since  the  beginning  of  her  reign,  be,  and  shall 
be,  by  authority  of  this  present  Parliament,  declared,  judged, 
and  deemed,  at  and  from  every  of  the  several  times  of  the 
doing  thereof,  good  and  perfect,  to  all  respects  and  purposes, 
any  matter  or  thing  that  can  or  may  be  objected  to  the  contrary 
thereof,  in  any  wise,  notwithstanding  : 

"And  that  all  persons  that  have  been,  or  shall  be,  made,  ordered, 
or  consecrated  archbishops,  bishops,  priests,  ministers  of  God's 
Holy  Word  and  Sacraments,  or  deacons,  after  the  form  and  order 
prescribed  in  the  said  order  and  form  how  archbisliops,  bishops, 
priests,  deacons,  and  ministers  should  be  consecrated,  made, 
and  ordered,  be  in  very  deed,  and  also  by  authority  hereof 
declared  and  enacted  to  be,  and  shall  be,  archbishops,  bishops, 
priests,  ministers,  and  deacons,  and  rightly  made,  ordained,  and 
consecrated ;  any  statute,  law,  canon,  or  other  thing  to  the 
contrary  notwithstanding." 

Some  may  say  that  the  deed  done,  or  pretended  to  be  done, 
by  this  wordy  and  unprecedented  Act,  was,  in  truth,  a  large 
stretch  of  the  new  supremacy.  But  surely  the  same  national 
authority  which  had  created  that  power  could  equally  define  its 
limits,  supply  its  existing  deficiencies,  and  furthermore  extend  its 
operation. 


88  THE   CHURCH    UNDER   QUEEN    ELIZABETH. 

The  queen  herself,  however,  did  not  in  the  least  believe, 
though  officially  she  was  bound  to  do  so,  in  her  so-called 
"  supremacy."  She  was  not  so  theoretically  uninstructed  in  the 
Christian  religion  as  to  conceive  for  a  moment  that  a  woman 
could  either  own  or  exercise  such  spiritual  power,  or  that  any 
other  warrant  for  her  having  assumed  such  a  title  as  Supreme 
Governess  could  be  found  beyond  the  bare  yet  bold  decree  of  the 
English  Parliament.  She  more  than  once  distinctly  admitted  as 
much.i  To  Lausac,  an  envoy  from  France,  sent  hither  on  certaui 
special  business,  she  frankly  owned  her  sure  conviction  that  the 
supremacy  of  the  Church  of  England,  and  indeed  of  the  whole 
family  of  God,  did  not  belong  to  her,  but  to  the  successor  of 
St.  Peter ;  but  she  apologeticafly  added  that  circumstances  had 
created  a  breach  with  the  Pope,  and  that  the  English  Parliament 
and  people,  having  resolved  to  make  a  new  Church  for  them- 
selves, she  was  thus  obliged  to  assume  and  exercise  the  office  of 
Supreme  Governess  of  it ;  in  which,  for  the  sake  both  of  con- 
venience and  necessity,  she  was  officially  compelled  to  feign  her 
belief. 

At  the  same  time  that  much  persecution  was  being  carried  on 
against  two  parties — the  anti-innovating  and  the  non-conform- 
ing— certain  foreign  princes  endeavoured  so  to  influence  the 
(jueen  that  she  might  be  induced  to  repudiate  the  wicked  and 
dangerous  policy  of  her  advisers,  more  especially  this  newly- 
invented  si)iritual  supremacy.  The  Emperor  Ferdinand,  in  a 
holograph  letter,  implored  Her  JSIajesty  not  to  forsake  the 
religious  fellowship  of  all  the  Christian  princes  of  Europe,  or  of 
a  long  line  of  illustrious  Catholic  ancestors  at  home ;  nor  to  set 
her  own  fallible  opinion,  and  that  of  the  "  new  men  of  yester- 
day"— themselves  so  notoriously  unsettled  and  changeable — in 
opposition  to,  and  above  that  of,  the  Universal  Church  of  our 
Redeemer,  the  Church  of  fifteen  centuries  and  more.  He  also 
entreated  her  to  refrain  from  imprisoning  and  persecuting  the 
suffering  remnant  of  true  Catholic  prelates,  whose  only  fault  was 
that  they  were  loyal  and  faithful  to  the  almost  universal  religion 
of  Christendom  and  its  chief  bishop.  Moreover,  His  Majesty 
suggested  that,  for  those  of  her  subjects  whom  no  fines  could 

'  This  can  be  seen  on  record  from  a  perusal  of  An  J>is7cer  to  Sir  EcncaiJ 
Cokes  Reports  (p.  365),  the  author  of  which  also  points  out  that  Lord 
Montagu  and  the  Earl  of  Southampton  had  heard  similar  expressions  of  the 
queen's  mind.  So,  too,  had  the  Duke  of  Ecria,  who,  after  talking  with  the 
(pieen  on  the  inherent  absurdity  of  a  woman  ruling  a  Church,  wrote  to  his 
master,  King  Philip,  to  inform  him  that  she  did  not  in  her  innermost  heart 
believe  in  any  such  notion,  but  only  look  the  title  and  office  because  Cecil 
and  Bacon  had  assured  her  of  the  urgent  necessity  of  so  doing. 


DR.,  AFTERWARDS   CARDINAL,   ALLEN.  89 

make  apostates,  no  bribes  serve  to  pervert,  and  no  persecution 
alter,  some  few  desecrated  and  empty  churches  here  and  there 
might  be  given  up  for  the  ancient  rites  and  reh'gion  as  heretofore.^ 

But  these  wise  and  timely  proposals  fell  upon  a  heart  that  was 
being  alternately  excited  by  the  lusts  of  the  flesh  and  chilled 
by  the  pride  of  life,  and  upon  a  conscience  dulled  to  the  voice 
both  of  truth  and  of  justice.  Nothing  whatsoever  was  gained 
by  the  emperor's  well-intended  and  charitable  letter.  Affairs 
steadily  and  surely  went  from  bad  to  worse. 

For  practical  action  the  ancient  Church  of  England  men  were 
at  this  time  led  by  a  very  able  and  remarkable  ecclesiastical 
statesman, — a  leader  of  experience,  learning,  and  prudence, — who 
rendered  good  service  to  their  cause.  William  Allen,  a  Lanca- 
shire man,  educated  at  Oxford,  Fellow  of  Oriel  in  due  course, 
and  for  some  years  the  Principal  of  St.  ]Mary's  Hall  in  that 
university,  had  ever  set  his  face  as  a  rock  against  the  innovators 
and  their  innovations.  On  the  death  of  Queen  Mary  he  had 
withdrawn  to  Louvaine,  but  on  his  return  to  England,  about  this 
period,  became  foremost  in  condemning  any  participation  what- 
soever in  the  mutilated  rites  or  public  services  of  the  new 
religion. 2  All  true  Catholics,  he  asserted,  were  absolutely  bound 
to  abstain  from  taking  any  part  in  the  worship  set  up  by  Act  of 
Parliament,^  and  patiently  to  suffer  the  consequences  of  non- 
compliance. Since  the  decision  at  Trent,  no  controversy  on  the 
subject  could  even  be  entertained.  This  was  Dr.  Allen's  opinion, 
stated  with  lucidity  and  frankness ;  and  it  was  largely  followed. 

When,  therefore,  this  pious  and  learned  Churchman  (afterwards 
Cardinal  Allen)  defended  the  position  of  those  who  sought  a 
remedy  for  the  existing  spiritual  desolation  in  England  by  the 
establishment  of  a  theological  college  abroad,  he  thus  beautifully 
and  powerfully  wrote,  describing  the  situation  exactly  :• — 

"  The  universal  lack,  then,  of  the  sovereign  sacrifice  and 
sacraments  catholicly  ministered,  without  which  the  soul  of  man 
dieth,  as  the  body  doth  without  corporal  food  ;  this  constraint 

1  The  queen  had  already  given  up  the  Church  of  the  Austin  Friars  and 
the  crypt  of  Canterbury  Cathedral  to  certain  foreign  heretics  ;  while  the  nave 
of  the  Abbey  of  Glastonbury  had  been  actually  turned  into  a  workshop  for 
Protestant  weavers  from  Flanders. 

"  It  seems  a  little  doubtful  when  Dr.  Allen  was  in  England.  Possibly  he 
may  have  come  over  for  awhile  with  Dr.  Morton  and  others  to  consult  the 
old  bishops  and  the  ancient  Catholic  nobility  on  his  proposition,  and  soon 
gone  abroad  again. 

^  "In  Lancashire,"  as  Richard  Barnes,  Bishop  of  Carlisle,  wrote  to  Cecil, 
"  the  people  fall  from  religion,  revolt  to  Popeiy,  and  refuse  to  come  to 
church." — Carlisle,  October  27,  1570,  Domestic  State  Papers,  Elizabeth, 
vol.  Ixxiv.  p.  395. 


90  THE   CHURCH    UNDER   QUEEN    ELIZABETH. 

to  the  contrary  services,  whereby  men  ])erish  everlastingly  ;  this 
intolerable  oath,  repugnant  to  God,  the  Church,  Her  Majesty's 
honour,  and  all  men's  consciences;  and  the  daily  dangers, 
disgraces,  vexations,  fears,  imprisonments,  impoverishments,  de- 
spites,  which  they  must  suffer ;  and  the  railings  and  blasphemies 
against  God's  sacraments,  saints,  ministers,  and  all  holies,  which 
they  are  forced  to  hear  in  our  country,  are  the  only  causes, 
most  dear  sirs,  or  (if  we  may  be  so  bold,  and  if  Our  Lord 
permit  this  declaration  to  come  to  Her  Majesty's  reading)  Most 
Gracious  Sovereign,  why  so  many  of  us  are  departed  out  of  our 
natural  country,  and  do  absent  ourselves  so  long  from  that  place, 
where  we  had  our  being,  birth,  and  bringing-up,  through  God  ; 
and  which  we  desire  to  serve  with  all  the  offices  of  our  life  and 
death,  only  craving  correspondence  of  the  same,  as  true  and 
natural  children  of  their  parents."^ 

In  the  year  1569,  it  seemed  to  many  of  those  who  still  re- 
mained faithful  to  the  old  religion,  that,  as  a  consequence  of  the 
action  of  the  Fathers  of  Trent,  they  were  being  verily  driven 
to  desperation  by  the  cruel  severity  of  the  penal  enactments  ; 
by  the  gross  persecution  which,  over  and  above  the  law,  was 
notoriously  connived  at  and  tolerated  ;  and  by  their  own  utter 
inability,  as  mere  isolated  units,  to  defend  themselves,  to  stem 
the  tide  of  social  ruin,  or  to  oppose  the  policy  of  those  who  were 
in  authority.  Amongst  the  new  ministers,  controversy  and 
squabbles  appeared  interminable.^  The  old  clergy  had  either 
been  silenced  or  compelled  to  adopt  the  new  religion,  its  regula- 
tions and  worship.  Numbers  of  the  most  learned  who  had 
refused  to  do  so — dignitaries  of  the  highest  rank — had  been  de- 
prived, imprisoned,  or  sent  abroad.  Many  more,  the  very  Hower 
of  the  learned  clergy,  had  become  voluntary  exiles.  Protests 
and  expostulations  to  the  harsh  makers  of  cruel  laws  were  use- 
less. Such  had  been  made  in  abundance,  in  various  forms  and 
shapes,  by  various  persons ;  but,  as  already  pointed  out,  were 
always  made  in  vain.  For  nobody  heeded  them.  Obedience  to 
the  new  laws  was  carefully  exacted  from  all.     The  dictates  of 

^  Apoljgie  and  True  Declaration  of  the  Institution  of  the  Eni;lish  Colleges, 
etc.,  pp.  12,  13. 

-"Our  people  (the  innovators  and  so-called  'Reformers')  are  carried 
away  with  every  wind  of  doctrine.  If  you  know  what  their  l)elief  is  to-day, 
you  cannot  tell  what  it  will  be  to-morrow.  Is  there  one  article  of  religion  in 
which  these  communities,  which  are  at  war  with  the  Pope,  agree  together? 
If  you  run  over  ail  the  articles,  from  the  first  to  the  last,  you  will  not  find 
one  which  is  not  iield  by  some  of  them  to  be  an  article  of  faith,  and  rejected 
by  others  as  an  impiety." — "  Letter  of  Uudith  to  Capitonius,"  amongst  the 
Epistolc£  Bezie. 


RISING   IN   THE    NORTHERN    COUNTIES.  QI 

conscience,  like  the  ancient  faith  and  its  rites,  were  laughed  to 
scorn.  Men  who  clung  to  the  old  religion  were  harassed  to 
death  by  persecution,  fines,  and  imprisonment.  The  many  sores 
in  the  body  politic  were  deliberately  and  carefully  kept  open. 
Rich  and  poor,  ignorant  and  learned,  alike  suffered.  So  deep 
was  the  feeling  of  irritation  in  the  Northern  Counties  that,  under 
the  guidance  of  the  Earls  of  Northumberland  and  Westmore- 
land, the  people  eventually  rose  as  one  man  to  throw  off  the 
unbearable  burdens  by  which  they  were  being  thus  oppressed. 
Her  Majesty,  it  was  maintained,  was  surrounded  "  by  divers  new 
set-upp  nobles,  who  not  only  go  about  to  overthrow  and  put 
downe  the  ancient  nobilite  of  the  realme,  but  also  have  misused 
the  Queue's  Majestie's  own  personne,^  and  also  have  by  the 
space  of  twelve  years  nowe  past  sett  upp  and  mayntained  a  new- 
found religion  and  heresie  contrarie  to  God's  Word."-  In  York- 
shire, Durham,  and  Northumberland,  there  had  long  been  a 
stir  amongst  all  classes.  Dr.  Nicholas  Morton,  sometime  a 
Prebendary  of  York,  who  had  gone  to  Rome  for  counsel  and 
advice,  came  back  again  with  the  rank  and  office  of  Apostolical 
Penitentiary  ;  in  order  to  bestow  afresh  upon  the  ancient  clergy 
who  so  dehberately  rejected  the  innovations,  those  special 
faculties  required,  and  that  needful  jurisdiction  desired,  which 
so  many  believed  to  have  lapsed  altogether.  He  was  a  near 
relation  of  the  old  Yorkshire  families  of  Markenfeld  and  Norton, 
owned  considerable  influence,  and  had  long  done  his  best  to 
band  together  the  leading  representatives  of  the  ancient  nobility 
in  resistmg  the  innovators.  He  received  sympathy  and  support 
from  the  families  of  Dacres,  Ratcliffe,  Swinbourne,  and  Tempest 
— names  to  be  had  in  renown.  During  the  summer  and  autumn 
he  visited  these  and  other  families  at  their  pleasant  homes,  where 
his  welcome  was  hearty  and  sincere  ;  and  pointed  out  plainly  the 
only  practical  remedy  for  discord  and  disunion.  His  words 
were  acceptable.  But  when  he  treated  of  passive  obedience,  his 
advice  was  not  taken  by  all.  Some  were  for  action  rather  than 
words.  Words  and  expostulations  were  useless.  Strength  must 
now  be  met  by  strength  :  the  brute  force  of  unbelief  and  revolu- 
tion by  the  chivalry  of  faith  and  self-sacrifice. 

As  Sir  Ralph  Sadler  was  careful  to  inform  the  Court,  there 
were  not  at  that  time  "in  all  this  country  ten  gentlemen  that  do 
favor  and  allow  of  Her  Majesty's  proceedings  in  the  cause  of 

1  This  was  evidently  a  direct  allusion  to  Robert  Dudley,  who  elsewhere 
was  characterised,  with  regard  to  his  relations  with  the  queen,  in  terms  which 
cannot  be  decently  quoted. 

-  Author's  excerpts  and  MSS. 


92  THE   CHURCH    UNDER   QUEEN    ELIZABETH. 

religion. "1  When  forced  by  fine  and  confiscation  to  attend  the 
now  dreary  services  and  dreadtul  sermons  of  the  new  Calvinistic 
rehgionists — in  which  damnation  was  sternly  dealt  out  to  all 
doubters  of  their  own  and  their  partisans'  election — and  this 
entirely  against  their  consciences,  they  were  only  the  more 
exasperated  by  such  enforced  attendance,  and  made  the  more 
discontented.  On  this  point  sentiment,  both  amongst  rich  and 
poor,  was  almost  unanimous.  The  Countess  of  Westmoreland, 
and  several  members  of  the  ]Markenfeld  and  Norton-  families 
were  for  open  and  active  resistance.  Some  asserted  that  Dr. 
Allen  favoured  this  policy.  In  the  middle  of  November,  there- 
fore, the  banners  of  another  Pilgrimage  of  Grace  were  unfurled, 
and  many  prayers  went  up  to  heaven  for  success  and  victory. 

At  Durham,  which  was  immediately  occupied  by  the  armed 
retainers  of  the  two  earls.  High  Mass  was  once  more  celebrated 
in  the  cathedral,  in  the  ])resence  of  several  thousand  earnest  and 
excited  worshippers.  Whittingham,  the  i^seudo-dean,^^  who  had 
never  received  any  ordination  whatsoever  by  a  bishop,  and  there- 
fore was  a  mere  layman,  with  a  great  show  of  practical  wisdom, 
took  himself  out  of  harm's  way  with  more  than  convenient  speed. 
In  the  cathedral  the  "  tressells  of  bordes  "  for  the  Lord's  Supper 
were  ignominiously  kicked  out  of  the  choir  and  broken  into 
splinters  ;  the  English  Bible  and  the  Zwinglian  Service-Books 
were  enthusiastically  torn  into  fragments.  Nobody  desired  that 
the  Word  of  God  should  be  doctored  by  mistranslations, 
omissions,  and  false  human  glosses.  A  portable  altar  was  set  up 
at  the  east  end  of  the  deep  choir,  flanked  by  velvet  hangings  ; 
and  a  processional  crucifix  with  taper-bearers  on  either  side  was 
uplifted  once  again  at  the  head  of  the  procession  in  that  sacred 
sanctuary.  The  old  vestments  were  brought  out  from  the 
sacristy ;  the  wax  tapers  were  once  more  lit ;  a  chalice  and 
ciborium  of  precious  metal,  with  a  York  missal,  were  sought  out 
anew  and  used  ;  while  the  voices  of  those  who  sang  the  Gloria 
in  excelsis.  Credo,  Sanctus,  and  Benedidiis  of  the  sacred  mass — 
an  united  crowd,  which  filled  the  Norman  nave  from  northern 
side  to  southern,  and  from  the  sanctuary  steps  to  the  western 
Galilee — rose  grandly  like  the  sound  of  many  waters. 

From  Durham  the  "Pilgrims  of  Grace"  marched  southwards, 
in  strict  order  and  with  some  confidence,  issuing  appeals  to  the 

1  Sir  Ralph  Sadler's  StaU  Papers,  vol.  ii.  j).  55. 

'  See  Pedigree  of  "  Norlon  alias  Conyers,"  pp.  244,  etc.,  of  T/ie  Visitation 
of  Yorkshire,  edited  by  Joseph  Foster.      London,  1875. 

^  William  Whittingham,  a  layman,  inNtalled  October  8th,  1563,  died  lOlh 
June  1579. 


STRONG   ACTION    ENSUING   THEREUPON.  93 

afflicted  populace  westward  and  eastward  to  rise  in  defence  of  the 
religion  of  their  forefathers.  The  watchwords,  "  God,  Our  Lady, 
and  the  Catholic  Faith,"  were  passed  from  lip  to  lip,  and  from 
village  to  village.  Bells  from  the  church  towers  welcomed  the 
Pilgrims  with  merry  peals.  The  old  clergy  came  out  of  their 
retreats  and  seclusion  to  offer  a  silent  prayer  for  success,  or  to 
bestow  a  coveted  blessing,  as  the  army  with  banners  passed  down 
the  northern  lanes.  The  innovators,  on  the  other  hand,  cowardly 
and  terrified,  offered  no  resistance.  Some  few  stared  with 
astonishment,  but  did  nothing  more.  At  Darlington  and  Stain- 
drop  the  mass  was  restored  amidst  the  acclamations  and  thanks- 
giving of  thousands.  People,  congratulating  each  other,  flocked 
in  from  the  villages  around  to  worship  and  rejoice.  The  banner 
of  our  Divine  Redeemer,  representing  His  blessed  Passion  and 
sacred  wounds  was  upborne  by  an  old  esquire,  Richard  Norton, 
whose  Christian  character  and  high  social  position  had,  for  manv 
years,  secured  the  respect  and  aftection  of  the  populace.  At 
Richmond  and  at  Ripon  the  Pilgrims  were  also  welcomed  and 
strengthened,  and  there  likewise  the  old  rites  were  restored :  so 
that  the  Court,  on  learning  from  Sir  Ralph  Sadler  of  what  was 
taking  place,  became  thoroughly  alarmed  ;  while  the  Supreme 
Coverness,  after  her  impressive  but  unhallowed  custom,  swore 
like  an  excited  fishwife. 

But  the  royal  plans  in  opposition  to  this  movement  had  been 
well  made.  The  Earl  of  Warwick  was  steadily  advancing  north- 
wards with  twelve  thousand  soldiers.  Lord  Hunsdon,  likewise, 
was  on  the  march  thither.  Troops  under  the  command  of  the 
Earl  of  Sussex,  who  had  made  York  his  headquarters,  soon  after- 
wards came  up  to  and  faced  the  Pilgrims.  Amongst  these,  spies 
and  agents  had  already  misreported  the  advance  of  many  other 
forces  of  the  Crown ;  so  that  the  insurgents,  losing  heart,  and 
being  divided  in  counsels,  ill-fed  and  dispirited,  at  length  dis- 
persed and  fled.  The  Earl  of  ^V'estmore]and  succeeded  in 
making  his  escape  to  Flanders ;  but  the  Earl  of  Northumberland, 
crossing  the  Scottish  border,  was  soon  confined  as  a  prisoner  by 
the  Regent  Murray  in  Lochleven  Castle.  INIany  of  the  northern 
gentry  also  escaped  to  Scotland,  and  obtained  protection  from 
the  heads  of  the  southern  clans. 

At  home  the  work  of  vengeance,  which  more  than  rivalled  the 
cruelties  of  William  the  Conqueror,  began  with  no  delay. 
Martial  law  was  everywhere  proclaimed.  Of  the  nobility  and 
gentlefolk  there  were  no  less  than  fifty-seven  persons  promptly 
attainted  of  treason.  The  legal  machinery  speedily  did  its  work. 
Their  confiscated  lands,  goods,  and  chattels  served  both  to  pay 


94  THE   CHURCH    UNDER   QUEEN    ELIZABETH. 

the  expenses  of  the  royal  troops  and  to  reward  those  who  had 
condescended  to  do  the  queen's  dreadful  work  at  the  same  time. 
No  less  than  three  hundred  villages  w-ere  at  once  wasted  with 
fire  and  sword.  People  who  had  heard  mass,  as  well  as  priests 
who  had  said  mass,  were  specially  singled  out  for  severity.  Any 
one  who  confessed  to  having  carried  a  cross,  worn  a  surplice,  or 
borne  a  banner  stood  self-convicted  of  treason,  and  was  decreed 
to  be  "strung  up"  without  mercy  or  delay.  An  old  widow 
woman  named  Alice  ^^'ilkinson,  who  had  been  seen  to  use  her 
beads  and  pray  for  Esquire  Norton  and  the  Pilgrims,  found  her 
cottage  in  flames  over  her  head,  and  herself  homeless  and  penni- 
less, as  a  fitting  punishment.  Most  persons  will  think  this  too 
severe.  Moreover,  homesteads  and  farm  produce  in  general 
were  ruthlessly  burnt,  and  cottages  destroyed ;  while  in  every 
town  and  village  the  gibbets  were  hung  with  the  carcases  of  those 
who  had  been  killed.  Many  were  turned  out  to  die  in  the  cold 
of  a  severe  winter.  Sir  William  Cecil  had  personally  given  strict 
orders  that  the  chief  inhabitants  of  each  township  should  be  at 
once  summoned  before  the  soldiery,  and  compelled  by  imprison- 
ment or  starvation — if  need  be  "  by  lack  of  food  "  was  his  exact 
phrase — to  disclose  the  names  of  those  of  their  neighbours  who 
had  joined  in  the  rebellion.  Lord  Sussex,  naturally  harsh, 
appears,  in  doing  this,  to  have  shown  no  mercy  whatsoever. 
Three  hundred  people,  in  the  county  palatine  of  Durham,  at 
once  suffered  death;  but,  in  writing  to  Cecil,  on  the  28th  of 
December,  the  Earl  of  Sussex  informs  him  that  the  number  ot 
those  hung  was  at  present  uncertain  ;  but  "  I  guess,"  he  continues, 
"  that  it  will  not  be  under  six  or  seven  hundred  at  the  least  that 
shall  be  executed  of  the  common  sort,  besides  the  prisoners 
taken  in  the  field,"  who  appear  to  have  been  at  once  cruelly 
butchered  in  cold  blood.  Subsequent  to  this.  Lord  Sussex,  using 
again  a  favourite  and  expressive  Elizabethan  phrase,  ordered 
eighty  to  be  "strung  up"  without  benefit  of  clergy — that  is, 
unconfessed,  unabsolved,  and  uncommunicated  —  at  Durham, 
forty-one  at  Darlington,  twenty  at  Barnard  Castle,  and  no  less 
than  one  hundred  and  seventy-two  in  the  other  towns  and 
villages  of  that  county.  To  each  and  all,  religious  consolations 
were  peremptorily  refused.  The  poor  creatures  were  forced  to 
die  without  either  prayers,  houseling,  or  unction.  Numbers 
more  were  imprisoned,  half-starved,  tortured  in  various  modes, 
beaten,  hung  up  by  the  wrists  to  a  beam,  and  otherwise  grossly 
maltreated ;  but  several  of  those  who  survived  were  subsequently 
pardoned,  on  the  sole  and  express  condition  that  they  took  the 
Oaths  of  Allegiance  and   Supremacy.     Those  who  declined  to 


CRUEI-TIES  INFLICTED  ON  THOSE  WHO  HAD  RISEN.      95 

allow  that  the  queen  was  Supreme  Governess  of  the  Church  were 
compelled  to  linger  on  for  years,  and  finally  to  rot  and  die  in 
prison. 

During  the  perpetration  of  these  Nero-like  atrocities,  it  appears 
that  even  the  stern  Lord  Sussex  was  not  sufficiently  prompt  in 
his  harshness,  nor  savage  in  his  cruelty,  to  satisfy  the  require- 
ments of  his  most  religious  and  gracious  queen.  What  he  had 
done  was  good  and  politic  as  far  as  it  went,  she  intimated  ;  but 
Her  Sacred  Majesty  was  evidently  anxious  to  hear  of  the 
perpetration  of  yet  further  and  greater  severities.^  "  The  Queen's 
Majesty,"  as  he  informed  his  lieutenants,  "  doth  much  marvel 
that  the  executions  are  not  yet  ended,  and  she  disburdened  of  the 
charges  which  are  considered  for  that  respect ;  wherefore  I  pray 
you  heartily  to  use  expedition  [in  torturing,  starving,  and  hang- 
ing], for  I  fear  this  lingering  will  breed  displeasure  to  us  both."  -^ 

The  stern  calamities  which  befell  the  old  nobility  of  the  north 
and  their  faithful  retainers,  on  this  and  on  other  occasions,  are 
not  forgotten  even  at  the  present  day.  Their  chivalric  deeds  of 
unselfish  daring,  having  inspired  some  of  the  most  musical  ballad 
writers  of  former  days,  when  they  penned  their  touching  songs  ; 
noble  aspirations  and  lofty  thoughts  being  thus  scattered  like 
good  seed,  which  bore  good  fruit  for  many  an  after  generation. 
Through  times  of  moral  darkness  and  heresy,  in  the  esquire's 
hall,  and  round  the  cottage  hearth,  of  the  Northern  Counties, — 
the  land  of  the  Percies,  the  Nortons,  and  the  Nevilles, — touching 
records  of  faithfulness  to  conscience,  fidelity  to  God,  and  of  noble 
self-sacrifice  were,  with  tearful  eye  and  faltering  voice,  told  to 
those  who  came  after, — by  which  for  generations  many  a  sancti- 
fied heart  was  silently  edified,  and  many  a  strong  arm  nerved  for 
the  doing  of  good  and  great  deeds. 

Early  in  the  spring  of  the  year  1570,  the  saintly  and  self- 
denying  ^  Pontiff,  Pope  Pius  V.,  at  last  issued  his  solemn  Bull  of 
Excommunication  against  Queen  Elizabeth.     Some  assert  that 

'  See  RIe/noriah  of  the  N'ortherJt  Rebellion,  by  Sir  Cuthbert  Sharp,  from 
which  interesting  and  valuable  compilation  the  main  facts  of  the  text  have 
been  thankfully  taken. 

-  Later  on,  it  appears  that  even  Lord  Sussex  was  thoroughly  weary  of  his 
bloody  work  and  brutal  butcheries  ;  for  he  wrote  complainingly  to  Cecil  :  "  I 
was  first  a  lieutenant  ;  I  was  after  little  better  than  a  marshal ;  I  had  then 
nothing  left  to  me  but  hanging  matters."  For  further  evidence  regarding  the 
putting  down  of  this  rebellion,  the  original  letters  of  Sir  George  Bowes, 
quoted  by  Sir  Cuthbert  Sharp,  furnish  most  reliable  but  melancholy 
information. 

■*  "  Pius  v.,"  wrote  Lord  Macaulay,  "under  his  gorgeous  vestments,  wore 
day  and  night  the  hair-shirt  of  a  simple  friar  ;  walked  barefoot  in  the  streets 
at  the  head  of  procesbions  ;  found,  in  the  midst  of  his  most  pressing  avoca- 


96  THE   CHURCH    UNDER   QUEEN    ELIZABETH. 

the  absence  of  any  authority  from  Rome  to  defend  their  righteous 
cause  by  force  of  arms  had  powerfully  influenced  several  of  the 
old  nobility  in  their  action  with  reference  to  the  recent  IMlgrimage 
of  Grace,  and  induced  them  to  desist  altogether  from  active 
co-operation  with  those  who,  as  a  last  resort,  had  been  driven  to 
take  up  arms  in  defence  of  God,  the  Church,  and  their  country. 
Henceforth  such  a  doubt  could  not  exist.  The  terms  of  the  Bull 
are  luminous,  concise,  and  full  of  vigour.  \\'arnings  from  one 
who  certainly  had  the  right  to  make  them,  the  Chief  Bishop  of 
Christendom,  had  remained  unnoticed  ;  friendly  expostulations 
were  wholly  unheeded ;  his  patience  had  been  taken  undue 
advantage  of ;  it  was  now  the  obvious  duty  of  the  Father  of  the 
Faithful  to  act.  Of  the  world's  Redeemer  and  King  it  had  been 
foretold  bv  David,  long  previously  to  the  Incarnation—"  He 
shall  call  Me,  Thou  art  My  Father,  My  God  and  My  strong 
salvation  :  and  I  will  make  Him  My  first-born,  higher  than  the 
kings  of  the  earth.  My  mercy  will  I  keep  for  Him  for  evermore  ; 
ancf  My  covenant  shall  stand  fast  with  Him.  .  .  .  But  if  His 
children  forsake  My  law,  and  walk  not  in  My  judgment ;  if  they 
break  My  statutes  and  keep  not  My  commandments,  I  will  visit 
their  offences  with  the  rod  and  their  sin  with  scourges."  ^  The 
divine  and  eternal  kingdom,  thus  prophesied  of,  then  existed. 
Christ  ruled  everywhere  by  delegation.  Parish  priest,  bishop. 
metroi)olitan,  archbishop,  and  patriarch,  each  and  all,  in  due 
order  and  subordination,  and  with  their  legitimate  authority 
acknowledged,  in  their  degree  represented  our  ascended  Lord. 
But  the  Bishop  of  the  See  of  St.  Peter  represented  Him  in  one 
eminent  and  special  manner,  claiming  jurisdiction  over  the 
whole  family  of  God.  Most  confused  and  inexact  notions  exist 
regarding  this  jurisdiction  of  the  Roman  Pontiff.  All  that  was 
claimed  for  him  w-as  an  acknowledgment  that,  as  Chief  Bishoj) 
of  Christendom,  he  had  everywhere  authority  to  reform  and 
redress  heresies,  errors,  and  abuses  within  the  Church,  which 
was  not  confined  to  any  place  or  nation,  but  was  Catholic  or 
Universal.  Furthermore,  so  as  to  avoid  discord  and  disputes, 
and  to  preserve  the  visible  and  actual  unity  of  the  Episcopate,  it 
l)clon"-ed  to  the  Holy  Father  to  confirm  the  election  of  bishops 
and   to   approve   of  and   sanction   their   institution.     He   also 

lions,  time  for  private  prayer  ;  often  regretted  that  the  public  duties  of  his 
station  were  unfavourable  to  growth  in  holiness  ;  and  edified  his  flock  by 
innumerable  instances  of  humility,  charity,  and  forgiveness  of  injuries;  while 
at  the  same  time  he  upheld  the  .authority  of  his  See  with  all  the  stubbornness 
and  vehemence  of  llildebrand."— Essays,  Ranke's  History  of  the  Popes,  in 

loco. 

1  Psalm  Ixxxix.  26  32. 


PIUS   V.   AGAINST   ELIZABETH.  97 

claimed  to  grant  to  the  clergy  licences  of  non-residence,  and 
permission  to  hold  more  than  one  benefice  with  cure  of  souls,  as 
also  to  dispense  by  act  and  deed  with  the  canonical  impediments 
to  matrimony  ;  and,  finally,  he  received  appeals  from  the  highest 
spiritual  courts  throughout  the  whole  Christian  world.  In  Eng- 
land the  lawful  successor  of  him  who  had  sent  St.  Austin  to 
Kent,  and  by  whose  authority  he  had  placed  his  chair  as  arch- 
bishop at  Canterbury,  by  whose  own  graces  and  miracles  the 
beautiful  tree  of  the  Church  had  taken  root  downward,  and 
borne  fruit  upward, — now  so  weightily  spoke,  not  with  the  stutter- 
ing accents  of  usurping  and  pitiful  heretics,  but  with  the  due  and 
delegated  authority  of  the  First-born  of  the  Most  Highest. 

Here  follows  an  English  version  of  this  important  Latin 
instrument : — 

"Sentence  declaratory  of  our  Sovereign  Lord,  the  Pope  Pius 
v.,  against  Elizabeth,  pretended  Queen  of  England,  and  the 
heretics  who  abet  her,  whereby  all  subjects  are  declared  released 
from  the  Oath  of  Allegiance,  and  every  other  bond,  and  those  who 
hereafter  shall  obey  her,  are  bound  by  the  bond  of  anathema. 

"Pius,  Bishop,  servant  of  the  servants  of  God,  in  memorial  of 
the  matter. 

"The  sovereign  jurisdiction  of  the  One  Holy  Catholic  and 
Apostolic  Church  (outside  of  which  there  is  no  salvation),  has 
been  given  by  Him,  unto  Whom  all  power  in  heaven  and  on 
earth  is  given,  the  King  Who  reigns  on  high,  to  but  one  person 
on  the  face  of  the  earth,  even  to  Peter,  Prince  of  the  Apostles, 
and  to  the  successor  of  Peter,  the  Bishop  of  Rome.  Him  He 
has  set  up  over  all  nations,  and  over  all  kingdoms,  to  root  up 
and  destroy,  to  waste  and  to  scatter,  to  plant  and  to  build;  to  the 
end  that  he  may  maintain  in  the  unity  of  the  spirit  the  faithful 
people  bound  together  by  the  bond  of  charity,  and  present  them 
unto  Him  their  Saviour  perfect  and  without  loss. 

"In  the  discharge  of  this  duty,  We,  whom  God  of  His  good- 
ness has  called  to  the  Government  of  His  Church,  shrink  from 
no  labour,  striving  with  all  Our  might  to  preserve  in  their  integrity 
that  very  unity  and  the  Catholic  religion  which  are  now  assailed 
by  so  many  storms,  by  His  permission  from  Whom  they  come, 
for  Our  correction,  and  for  the  trial  of  the  faith  of  His  children. 
But  the  wicked  are  so  many,  and  are  growing  so  strong,  that 
there  is  no  part  of  the  world  which  they  have  not  attempted  to 
corrupt  by  their  evil  doctrines  :  among  others  labouring  for  this 
end  is  the  servant  of  iniquity  Elizabeth,  the  pretended  Queen  of 
England,  with  whom,  as  in  a  safe  refuge,  the  worst  of  these  men 
have  found  a  secure  retreat. 

G 


98  THE   CHURCH    UNDER   QUEEN    ELIZABETH. 

"Tills  woman  having  taken  possession  of  the  kingdom,  un- 
naturally claims  for  herself  the  place,  the  great  authority  and 
jurisdiction  of  the  sovereign  head  of  the  Church  throughout  all 
England,  and  has  involved  in  miserable  ruin  that  kingdom  so 
lately  recovered  to  the  Catholic  faith  and  piety. 

"  She  has  forbidden  by  the  strong  hand  of  power  the  observ- 
ance of  the  true  religion,  overturned  by  the  apostate  Henry 
VIII.,  and  by  the  help  of  the  Holy  See  restored  by  Mary,  the 
lawful  (jueen,  of  illustrious  memory.  She  has  followed  after  and 
accepted  the  errors  of  heretics.  She  has  driven  the  English 
nobles  out  of  the  Royal  Council,  and  filled  their  places  with 
obscure  heretics.  She  has  been  the  ruin  of  those  who  profess 
the  Catholic  faith,  and  has  brought  back  again  the  wicked 
])reachers  and  ministers  of  impieties.  She  has  done  away  with 
the  Sacrifice  of  the  Mass,  the  Divine  Office,  fasting,  the  distinction 
of  meats,  celibacy,  and  the  Catholic  rites.  She  has  ordered  the 
use  of  books,  containing  manifest  heresy,  throughout  the  realm, 
and  the  observance  by  her  subjects  of  impious  mysteries  and 
ordinances,  according  to  the  rule  of  Calvin,  accepted  and  practised 
by  herself. 

"She  has  dared  to  take  away  their  churches  and  benefices 
from  the  bishoixs,  the  parish  priests,  and  other  Catholic  ecclesi- 
astics, and  has  given  them  with  other  ecclesiastical  goods  to 
heretics.  She  has  made  herself  a  judge  in  ecclesiastical  causes. 
She  has  forbidden  the  prelates,  clergy,  and  people  to  acknow- 
ledge the  Church  of  Rome,  or  to  obey  its  mandates  and  the 
Catholic  constitutions.  She  has  compelled  many  to  take  an  oath 
to  observe  her  wicked  laws,  to  renounce  the  authority  of  the 
Roman  Pontiff,  to  refuse  to  obey  him,  and  to  accept  her  as  the 
sole  ruler  in  temporal  and  spiritual  matters.  She  has  decreed 
pains  and  penalties  against  those  who  do  not  submit  to  her,  and 
has  inflicted  them  upon  those  who  continue  in  the  unity  of  the 
faith  and  obedience. 

"She  has  thrown  Catholic  prelates  and  parish  priests  into 
prison,  where  many,  worn  out  by  sorrows  and  their  protracted 
sufferings,  have  ended  their  days  in  misery. 

"  All  this  being  notorious  and  known  unto  all  nations,  and  so 
confirmed  by  very  many  grave  witnesses,  as  to  leave  no  room  for 
])alliation,  defence,  or  concealment,  sin  being  added  to  sin,  and 
iniquity  to  iniquity,  the  persecution  of  the  faithful,  and  the  ruin 
of  religion  daily  growing  more  and  more  at  the  suggestion  and 
under  the  direction  of  Elizabeth  aforesaid,  whose  will  is  so 
obstinate  and  whose  heart  is  so  hardened  that  she  has  set  at 
nought  not  only  the  charitable  prayers  and  counsels  of  Catholic 


CONTINUATION   OF   THE   POPE'S   LETTER.  99 

princes  entreating  her  to  return  to  a  better  mind  and  be  con- 
verted, but  also  Our  own,  by  her  refusal  to  allow  the  Nuncios 
of  the  Holy  See  to  enter  the  realm.  We,  having  recourse,  by 
necessity  compelled,  to  the  weapons  of  justice,  are  unable  to 
control  Our  grief  that  We  must  proceed  against  one  whose  pre- 
decessors have  rendered  signal  services  to  Christendom. 

"  Relying,  then,  on  His  authority  Who  has  placed  Us  on  this 
sovereign  throne  of  justice,  though  unequal  to  the  bearing  of  so 
great  a  burden,  We  declare,  in  the  fulness  of  the  Apostolic 
power,  the  aforesaid  Elizabeth  a  heretic,  and  an  encourager  of 
heretics,  together  with  those  who  abet  her,  under  the  sentence  of 
exxommunication,  cut  off  from  the  unity  of  the  Body  of  Christ. 

"  Moreover,  We  declare  that  she  has  forfeited  her  pretended 
title  to  the  aforesaid  kingdom,  to  all  and  every  right,  dignity,  and 
privilege  ;  We  also  declare  that  the  nobles,  the  subjects,  and  the 
people  of  the  kingdom  aforesaid,  who  have  taken  any  oath  to 
her,  are  for  ever  released  from  that  oath,  and  from  every  obliga- 
tion of  allegiance,  fealty,  and  obedience,  as  We  now  by  these 
Letters  release  them,  and  deprive  the  said  Elizabeth  of  her 
pretended  right  to  the  throne,  and  every  other  right  whatsoever 
aforesaid  :  We  command  all  and  singular  the  nobles,  the  people 
subject  to  her,  and  others  aforesaid,  never  to  venture  to  obey 
her  monitions,  mandates,  and  laws. 

"  If  any  shall  contravene  this  Our  decree,  We  bind  them  with 
the  same  bond  of  anathema. 

"  Seeing  that  it  would  be  a  work  of  too  much  difficulty  to  send 
these  Letters  to  every  place  where  it  is  necessary  to  send  them, 
Our  will  is  that  a  copy  thereof  by  a  public  notary,  sealed  with  the 
seal  of  an  ecclesiastical  prelate,  or  with  the  seal  of  his  court, 
shall  have  the  same  force  in  courts  of  law  and  everywhere 
throughout  the  world  that  these  Letters  themselves  have  if  they 
be  produced  and  shown. 

"  Given  at  St.  Peter's,  in  Rome,  in  the  year  of  the  Incarnation 
of  our  Lord  One  thousand  five  hundred  and  sixty-nine,  on  the 
fifth  of  the  calends  of  March, ^  in  the  fifth  year  of  Our  Pontificate. 

"C^.  Glorierius. 

"  H.  CUMYN." 

What  resulted  from  this  instrument  will  be  apparent  from  the 
events  of  later  years,  to  be  recorded  and  commented  upon  in 
due  course. 

In  the  spring  of  the  year  15  71,  there  was  a  severe,  sharp,  and 

^  February  27,  1570,  according  to  the  present  computation.  Anciently  the 
year  began  on  the  25th  of  March. 


lOO         THE   CHURCH    UNDER   QUEEN    ELIZABETH. 

carefully-organised  raid  upon  the  beggars.  In  the  north  the 
distress,  of  course,  was  most  severe.  Hundreds  in  the  past 
winter  had  died  of  starvation.  Poverty,  even  then,  as  may  be 
noted,  was  a  sin  for  which,  by  order  of  the  autocratic  authorities, 
there  was  to  be  no  absolution  and  no  forgiveness.  Charity  was 
dead.  Selfishness  reigned.^  The  poor  and  miserable  were  hate- 
ful to  look  upon  and  expensive  to  feed.  The  old  were  far  too 
long-lived.  Somehow  or  another  they  must  be  put  out  of  the  way, 
or  confined  to  their  miserable  habitations.  When  the  queen 
took  her  journeys  through  the  country,  therefore,  the  lean,  the 
famished,  the  wolf-like,  and  the  repulsive-looking  were  now,  by 
special  Privy  Council  order,  to  be  carefully  kept  out  of  her  royal 
sight;  for  she  disliked  their  aspect  and  dreaded  their  cries  of 
hunger.  Thirty  years  ago  and  more,  the  monasteries  had  all 
been  destroyed,  and  with  them  had  been  lost  any  adequate 
realisation  of  the  duty  of  practising  the  corporal  works  of  mercy  ; 
for  good  deeds  were  regarded  by  the  new  gospellers  as  "  filthy 
rags."  Most  of  the  older  monks  and  friars  had  found  their  only 
rest  in  death.  But  of  the  younger  who  had  been  professed,  some 
still  lived ;  a  few  had  passively  accepted  the  new  state  of  affairs ; 
while  many  of  the  lay  brothers  had  no  doubt  become  mendicants 
— reasonably  dissatisfied  with  having  lost  their  only  homes,  and 
having  no  apparent  chance  of  obtaining  work  in  the  present,  and 
less  hope  of  being  able  to  keep  body  and  soul  together  in  the 
future. 

These  antl  such  as  these,  their  name  was  "legion,"  seemed 
to  fill  the  land — for  field  after  field  remained  until  led  ;  acre  after 
acre  now  lay  fallow — they  infested  the  towns  and  villages,  the 
wild  bye-ways  and  out-of-the-way  hamlets,  asking  alms  of  esquire 
and  yeoman,  hind  and  peasant,  at  the  portal  of  the  hall  and  at 
the  thatched  porch  of  the  cottage  ;  living  often  during  autumn 
on  wild  fruit,  uncooked  roots,  and  during  winter  upon  the  barley- 
bread  of  alms.    In  the  frost  and  cold  they  frequently  herded  with 

1  As  Bishop  Sandys  himself  wrote: — "But  we  are  fallen  into  these  evil 
times,  wherein  iniquity  aboundeth,  and  charity  waxeth  cold.  Hearty  love  is 
turned  into  hearty  hatred :  our  hands  are  bloody,  and  our  hearts  malicious. 
He  liveth  not  that  loveth  his  neighbour  as  himself.  If  we  did  love  our 
neighbours  as  ourselves,  we  would  not  oppress  them  with  extortion  and 
usury  :  we  would  not  undermine  them,  and  wring  them  in  bargaining :  we 
would  not  so  proudly  contemn  them,  so  spitefully  envy  them,  so  impudently 
slander  them,  or  so  greedily  practise  for  their  infamy  and  discredit :  we  would 
not  speak  them  fair,  and  mind  them  evil  :  fawn  on  them,  and  betray  them  ; 
seek  our  credit  by  their  reproach,  our  gain  by  tlieir  loss  :  when  we  see  their 
necessities,  we  would  relieve  and  succour  them,  bind  up  their  wounds  with 
the  good  Samaritan,  and  charitably  provide  for  them." — Sandys'  IVoil's,  pp. 
206,  207.     Parker  Society.     London,  1842. 


THE   POOR,   WANDERERS   AND   OUTCASTS.  lOI 

the  cattle  at  night,  or  in  summer  went  to  rest  under  hedges 
and  trees.  With  no  apparent  means  of  subsistence,  and  always 
practically  witnessing  against  the  success  of  the  new  religion, 
— for  they  constantly  deplored  the  destruction  of  the  religious 
houses, — and  often,  when  lingering  near  village  cross  or  way- 
side hostel,  in  language  frequently  bold  and  sometimes  possibly 
seditious,  they  forcibly  contrasted  the  past  with  the  present,  to 
the  grave  disparagement  of  the  latter,  and  to  the  annoyance  of 
the  powers  that  were. 

Such  dangerous  wanderers,  therefore,  as  the  Privy  Council 
determined,^  must  now  be  everywhere  persecuted;  hunted  from 
pillar  to  post ;  examined  by  justices  of  the  peace  to  find  out  if 
they  used  the  rosary  or  sympathised  with  the  old  religion ; 
flogged  on  their  naked  backs,  without  regard  either  to  age  or 
sex,  for  being  poor  and  having  no  home ;  put  into  the  stocks  on 
a  starvation  allowance  for  several  days  ;  whipped  afresh  when 
they  were  taken  out,  until  the  purple  wale -marks  on  their 
shoulders  became  bloody  wounds,  from  which  the  gore  trickled 
downwards  to  the  earth  ;  while  sometimes  the  poor  creatures, 
being  so  weak  with  want  of  food,  and  feeble  and  shrunken 
because  of  their  poverty,  suddenly  sunk  senseless  towards  the 
ground,  straining  the  cords  round  their  wrists,  and  so  were 
literally  flogged  to  death. 

It  was  an  awful  sight  and  a  horrible  ;  worthy  of  the  reign  of 
a  woman  falsely  called  "glorious"  and  "good," — a  sight  to  have 
made  angels  weep  and  Englishmen  shudder  and  sicken ;  and  a 
national  sin  well  meriting  all  the  various  and  heavy  punishments 
which  one  after  another  descended,  sixty  years  afterwards,  upon 
our  distracted  nation,  during  those  fearful  twenty  winters  and 
more  of  the  miseries  of  the  Great  Rebellion  and  the  dire 
slaughter  of  the  Civil  War. 

^  It  was  required  by  the  Privy  Council  that  "  certificates  of  all  the  vaga- 
bonds, rogues,  and  mighty  valiant  beggars,  men  and  women,"  who  had  been 
"examined,  whipped,  stocked,  and  punished  according  to  law,"  should  be 
duly  made  out  and  sent  up. — Domestic  State  Papers,  Elizabeth,  vol.  Ixxx. , 
August  20,  1571.  In  Gloucestershire,  William  Wynter,  justice  of  the  peace, 
and  others,  have  made  search  for  vagabonds,  but  have  found  none  but  such 
poor  beggarly  persons  as  are  not  thought  fit  to  trouble  their  lordships  with. 
— August  27,  1 57 1.  At  Aylesford,  on  August  28,  the  justices  of  Kent 
apprehended  "thirteen  men  and  women,  stout  and  valiant  vagabonds,  all  of 
whom  have  been  stocked  and  whipped  severely." — Vol.  Ixxx.  At  Thame,  in 
Oxfordshire,  some  "proper  stoute  al;)bey-men  "  were  convicted  and  punished 
as  vagabonds.  Of  these  it  is  stated  that  on  September  8th,  1571,  "they 
took  their  stocking  and  whipping  verie  ill.  So  they  were  sore  bloodied, 
and  one  thereafter  died,  no  long  whUe  thereupon." — Author's  MSS.,  from 
Churchwardens'  and  Parish  Accounts  of  Thame. 


CHAPTER  IV. 

The  two  events  recently  recorded,  viz.  the  formal  condemnation 
of  the  queen  by  Pope  Pius  V.,  and  the  strong  determination  to 
persecute  even  unto  death,  and  so  extirpate,  those  of  the  English 
poor  who  still  adhered  to  the  old  religion,  by  taking  care  that 
all  obstinate  persons  of  that  class  could  be  summarily  and  easily 
dealt  with  and  disposed  of  by  the  new  laws,  effectively  cleared 
the  way  for  the  queen's  advisers,  and  enabled  them  to  act  with 
still  greater  decision  than  they  had  hitherto  shown.  The  recent 
enactment  against  beggars  would  enable  the  authorities  to  worry, 
starve,  brand  with  a  hot  iron,  flog  and  put  in  the  stocks  and 
pillory,  any  persons  of  the  lower  or  migratory  class  supposed  to 
be  dangerous.  The  possession  of  a  string  of  prayer- beads,  a 
crucifix,  an  Agmts  Bet,  or  any  foreign  book  of  devotions,  served 
to  secure  for  the  poverty-stricken  possessor  of  it,  the  title  ot 
"  Italianate  atheist."  ^  A  poor,  friendless  man  who  was  found 
saying  his  prayers  on  a  rosary,  at  the  steps  of  a  wayside  cross, 
was  held  to  be  a  certain  ally  of  the  Pope  and  a  possible  assassin 
of  the  queen.  As  regards  the  Bull  of  Pius  V.,  Cecil  and 
Walsingham  could  never  henceforth  mistake  the  attitude  of  the 
Primate  of  Christendom.  Exercising  his  acknowledged  powers, 
he  had  at  length  drawn  the  spiritual  sword  from  its  scabbard,  as 
all  the  European  nations  then  saw,  and  had  spoken  out  in  a  cause 
in  which,  as  the  Father  of  the  Faithful,  he  believed  himself  to 
have  both  an  official  and  personal  interest.  His  Holiness  had 
not  acted  in  haste,  nor  without  a  perfect  knowledge  of  the 
degraded  state  of  England,  nor  without  exact  information  of 
what    the    new   prelates    preached   and   taught ;  -    nor   without 

^  "The  number  of  obdurate  Papists  and  Italianate  atheists  is  great  at  this 
time,  both  desperate,  and  grown,  as  it  evidently  appeareth,  to  the  nature 
of  assassins." — Grindal  to  Lord  Treasurer  Burghley,  29th  January  1572, 
Grindal's  Remains,  p.  333.      Parker  .Society's  Works. 

^Sandys  had  written  thus: — "Our  Gracious  Governor  [i.e.  Elizabeth) 
.  .  .  hath  caused  all  rubbish  and  whatsoever  was  hurtful  to  be  removed  ;  the 
den  of  thieves  to  be  dispersed  ;  buyers  and  sellers  of  popish  trash,  monks, 
friars,   mass-mongers,   with   like  miscreants,  to  be  hurled  and  whipped  out, 

10:2 


"ANCIENT   TRIESTS"   AND    MINISTERS.  I03 

constant  consultation  with  those  exiles  for  their  faith  at  Rome,' 
who  knew  the  exact  situation  accurately,  and  were  able  to  afford 
him  the  most  complete  information  as  to  what  was  needed. 
Queen  Elizabeth's  bishops  were  obviously  and  notoriously  of 
a  new  and  unprecedented  kind  and  make.^  Her  "ministers," 
whatever  they  were,  were  certainly  not  of  the  same  order  as  the 
parish  clergy  of  old.  The  "  ancient  priests  "  altogether  repudiated 
the  new;  while  the  new  in  turn  caricatured  and  condemned  the 
old  as  worshippers  of  the  blessed  Sacrament,  which  they  so  pro- 
fanely termed  "  Jack-in  the-box,"  and  of  idols.  A  strong  measure 
would  evidently  not  have  been  adopted,  if  one  less  vigorous  and 
decisive  would  have  been  likely  to  have  wrought  a  cure. 

It  was  not,  however,  the  queen's  dealings  with  her  own 
religious  subjects  alone  which  brought  about  tlie  Holy  Father's 
action.     At  the  instigation  of  her  ministers  she  had  again  and 

the  stumbling-stones  of  superstition,  the  baggage  of  man's  traditions,  with 
all  monuments  of  idolatry,  vanity,  and  Popery,  to  be  cast  out  of  the  house 
of  God  and  vineyard  of  the  Lord." — Sandys'  Works,  p.  59.  Parker  Society. 
London,  1842. 

"The  Popish  Church  hath  neither  the  true  foundation,  nor  yet  the  right 
marks  of  the  Church  of  God;  her  foundation  is  man;  her  'marks'  are 
blasphemy,  idolatry,  superstition.  Christ  is  '  the  Head  of  His  Body  the 
Church ; '  this  Head  cannot  err.  The  head  of  the  Church  anti-Christian  is 
the  Pope,  that  man  of  sin,  a  liar  ;  yea,  a  very  father  of  lies." — Ihjd.  p.  67. 

1  These  were  Goldwell,  Bishop  of  St.  Asaph  ;  Glennock,  Bishop-elect  of 
Bangor  ;  Nicholas  Morton,  Prebendary  of  York  ;  Henshaw,  Rector  of  Lincoln 
College,  Oxford;  Daniel,  Dean  of  Hereford;  Bromborough,  Hall,  and 
Kirton,  Doctors  of  Divinity,  and  some  other  priests  of  experience  and  good 
reputation. 

"  "The  position  of  bishops  in  the  Church  of  England  has  been  from  the 
first  anomalous.  The  Episcopate  was  violently  separated  from  the  Papacy, 
to  which  it  would  have  preferred  to  remain  attached,  and,  to  secure  its 
obedience,  it  was  made  dependent  on  the  Crown.  The  method  of  episcopal 
appointments,  instituted  by  Henry  VIII.  as  a  temporary  expedient,  and 
abolished  under  Edward  as  an  unreality,  was  re-established  by  Elizabeth, 
not  certainly  because  she  believed  that  the  invocation  of  the  Holy  Ghost 
was  required  for  the  completeness  of  an  election  which  her  own  choice  had 
already  determined,  not  because  the  bishops  obtained  any  gifts  or  grace  in 
their  consecration  which  she  herself  respected,  but  because  the  shadowy 
form  of  an  election,  with  a  religious  ceremony  following  it,  gave  them  the 
semblance  of  spiritual  independence,  the  semblance  without  the  substance, 
which  qualified  them  to  be  the  instruments  of  the  system  which  she  desired 
to  enforce.  They  were  tempted  to  presume  on  their  phantom  dignity,  till 
the  sword  of  a  second  Cromwell  taught  them  the  true  value  of  their  apostolic 
descent ;  and  we  have  a  right  to  regret  that  the  original  theory  of  Cranmer 
was  departed  from— that  being  officers  of  the  Crown,  as  much  appointed  by 
the  sovereign  as  the  Lord  Chancellor,  the  bishops  should  not  have  worn 
openly  their  real  character  and  received  their  appointments  immediately  by 
letters  patent  without  further  ceremony."— Froude's  History  oj  EnglanJ,  vol. 
vi.  pp.  552,  553.     London,  1870. 


104         THE   CHURCH    under   queen    ELIZABETH. 

again  proclaimed  herself  the  determined  opponent  everywhere  of 
the  cause  of  Catholic  Christianity  abroad.  Secretly  yet  effici- 
ently, by  the  aid  of  spies,  secret  agents,  and  bribes,  she  had 
co-operated  with  the  fanatical  rebels  of  several  neighbouring 
states  in  opposing  their  sovereigns;  and  this  not  unfrequently 
when  she  herself  professed  to  be  at  peace  with  the  latter,  and 
actually  had  accredited  ministers  at  their  respective  Courts.  Her 
treatment  of  Mary,  Queen  of  Scots,  likewise,  was  marked  by 
gross  injustice,  and  by  indecency  without  a  parallel.  This 
treatment  ensued  because  of  Queen  Mary's  religion ;  for  she 
was  the  last  hope  of  those  who  looked  for  another  restoration  of 
the  ancient  faith.  The  persecution  which  she  endured, — and 
which,  as  will  be  seen,  terminated  in  her  murder, — she  endured 
because  she  was  true  to  that  faith,  from  which  in  no  single  iota 
did  she  intentionally  swerve. 

Here,  therefore,  it  will  be  convenient  to  set  forth  with  certain 
detail  and  at  some  considerable  length,  in  a  record  ranging  over 
several  years,  the  true  state  of  ecclesiastical  affairs,  both  as  con- 
cerns the  kingdom  in  general,  and  certain  parts  of  it  in  particular. 
A  private  letter,  an  official  document,  a  public  trial,  or  a  per- 
sonal squabble  between  officials,  may  often  comprise  niuch  of 
interest  and  point,  as  will  be  shown.  The  changes  which  had 
now  taken  place  had  been  brought  about,  not  by  unauthorised 
private  individuals  acting  on  their  own  responsibility,  but  by 
exalted  officials,  the  archbishops  and  chief  bishops  of  the 
National  Church,  who  had  been  clothed  with  all  such  temporal 
authority  as  Pariiament  could  authorise  the  queen  to  bestow 
upon  them ;  and  who  had  indeed  worked  with  a  will  and  system 
both  in  the  overthrow  of  the  old,  and  the  consolidation  of  the 
new,  religion.  Some  readers,  in  that  which  follows,  may  think 
that  out-of-the-way  and  valueless  details  of  information  have  been 
gathered  together  without  object ;  but  surely  any  record  of  facts 
which  serves  to  bring  out  points  of  historical  interest  may  well 
be  rescued  from  oblivion  and  be  made  to  serve  its  purpose. 

Throughout  the  whole  of  the  queen's  reign,  there  had  been 
constant  complaints  from  all  (juarters  of  the  difficulty  in  getting 
the  existing  cures  served  by  persons  who  could  read  sufficiently 
well  to  recite  the  morning  and  evening  prayers.  Early  in 
Parker's  episcopate,  in  addition  to  the  "  readers  "  everywhere  set 
apart,  he  had  ordained  more  than  a  hundred  and  twenty 
"ministers"  in  one  week;  and  many  of  these  were  reported  to 
have  been  schoolmasters,  "scribes,"  "most  ignorant  persons,"^ 

1  What  must  we  say,  when  most  of  them  are  popish  priests,  consecrated  to 
perfurm  mass,  and  the  far  greaUr  pari  of  the  remainder  are  most  ignorant 


DISSERTATIONS,   DISPUTES   AND   DESTRUCTION.       I05 

tradesmen  who  had  failed  to  get  their  Hving,  and  even  husband- 
men. When  these  persons,  in  their  ordinary  secular  habits, • 
appeared  in  the  pulpits,  they  made  such  a  deplorable  exhibition 
of  fanaticism  and  ignorance,  that  the  congregation  was  sometimes 
moved  to  laughter  and  ribaldry,  the  new  service  was  brought 
into  contempt,  and  the  people  declined  to  go  to  church  at  all. 
This  kind  of  irreverent  exhibition  became  so  common  at  one 
period,  that  disputes  and  brawls  constantly  occurred,  even  at  the 
font  and  Communion  board.  The  consequence  was  that  fresh 
legislation  took  place,  by  which  all  criticism  of  these  distressing 
ministers  during  divine  service  was  forbidden  under  pains  and 
penalties,-  though  the  practice  was  not  by  any  means  stopped. 
It  has  been  calculated  that  out  of  the  nine  thousand  benefices, 
including  chapelries  attached  to  mother  churches,  which  about 
the  year  1570  required  pastors,  at  least  half  were  unoccupied 
and  unserved  during  the  greater  part  of  this  queen's  reign.  The 
work  of  destruction  had  not  been  so  difficult  as  was  anticipated  : 
the  work  of  reparation  and  restoration  would  possibly  remain 
uncommenced,  most  certainly  uncrowned,  for  generations. 

persons,  appointed  at  the  will  of  the  people,  not  to  the  !ninisti-y  of  the  IVord?" 
— George  Withers  to  the  Elector  Palatine,  Letter  Ixii.,  Zurich  Letters,  2nd 
series,  Parker  Society.  Parker's  admissions  may  be  thus  read  in  his  own 
words  : — "Whereas  occasioned  by  the  great  want  of  ministers,  we  and  you, 
brother,  for  tolerable  supply  thereof,  have  heretofore  admitted  into  the 
ministry  sundry  artificers  and  others  not  traded  and  brought  up  in  learning, 
and  as  it  happened  in  a  multitude  some  that  were  of  base  occupation  ;  foras- 
much as  now  by  experience  it  is  seen  that  such  manner  of  men,  partly  by 
reason  of  their  previous  profane  acts,  partly  by  their  light  behaviour  other- 
wise and  trade  of  life,  are  very  offensive  unto  the  people,  yea,  and  to  the 
wise  of  the  realm  [i.e.  to  Bacon  and  Cecil],  are  thought  to  do  great  deal  more 
hurt  than  good,  the  gospel  there  sustaining  slander  ;  these  shall  be  to  desire 
and  require  you  hereafter  to  be  very  circumspect  in  admitting  any  to  ihe 
ministry,  and  only  to  allow  such  as  having  good  testimony  of  their  honest 
conversation,  have  been  traded  and  exercised  in  learning,  or  at  the  least  have 
spent  their  time  with  teaching  of  children,  excluding  all  others  which  have 
been  brought  up  and  sustained  themselves  either  by  occupation  or  other  kinds  of 
life  alienated  from  learning." — Archbishop  Matthew  Parker's  Cor?-espondcnce, 
vol.  i.  p.  121. 

■•  So  averse  was  Dr.  Turner,  holding  the  important  position  of  Dean  of 
Wells,  to  sacerdotal  habits,  that  acting  in  his  official  capacity  in  1565  he 
caused  a  common  adulterer  to  do  public  penance  in  a  priest's  square  cap. — 
See  Dr.  W.  Turner  to  11.  Bullinger,  Letter  li. ,  July  23rd,  1566,  Zurich 
Letters,  2nd  series,  Parker  Society. 

^  One  of  the  bishops  thus  inquired: — "Whether  there  be  any  that  hath 
unreverently  abused  or  given  any  evill  and  unseemly  terms  of  any  minister  of 
God's  Word  and  Sacraments  .  .  .  either  in  the  time  of  his  celebration  of 
Divine  Service,  or  Sermon,  or  in  the  time  of  the  administration  of  the  sacra- 
ments in  the  Church .''" — Visitation  Articles  of  Thornboroitgh,  Bishop  of 
Bristol,  1603. 


Io6         THE   CHURCH    under   queen    ELIZABETH. 

In  some  cases  the  lay  leaders  and  allies  of  the  innovators, 
needy  gentlefolks,  succeeded  in  getting  themselves  appointed  to 
vacant  cures,  more  especially  to  those  impoverished.  Benefices 
which  had  thus  remained  unfilled  for  several  years  (such  were 
numerous)  were  often  granted  to  the  new  nobles,  to  knights,^ 
and  to  Protestant  yeomen  who  asked  for  them.  Sometimes  one 
person  would  secure  as  many  as  four  or  five  cures  within  a  given 
radius.  He  thus  became  the  "  farmer"  of  the  various  benefices, 
and  was  known  as  such ;  and  then  proceeded  to  seek  out 
some  "abbey-man,"  "old  schoolmaster,"  or  "cunning  scribe  and 
reader,"  who  would  be  prepared  to  minister  alternately  at  the 
various  churches  for  some  pitiable  and  paltry  pittance.  Many  of 
these  persons  were  unordained.^  By  increasing  the  rents  of  the 
church  lands  ;  by  inducing  the  reader  to  curtail  the  appointed 
services,  and  so  get  through  four  or  five  in  one  day  ;  by  private 
arrangements  with  the  diocesan  officials  who  winked  at  such  pro- 
ceedings (if  paid  to  close  their  eyes  or  purposely  look  in  another 
direction);  these  "benefice-farmers"  were  thus  enabled  to 
squeeze  a  little  more  out  of  the  impoverished  cures.  Giving  as 
little  as  they  could  and  getting  as  much,  the  last  thought  that 

^  In  Edward  VI. 's  reign,  William  Cecil,  a  layman  (eventually  Lord 
Burghley),  had  been  made  Rector  of  Wimbledon,  and  occupied  the  rectory 
house.  At  the  same  period  the  Princess  Elizabeth  secured,  through  Cecil 
himself,  the  parsonage  of  Harptree,  in  Somersetshire,  for  "  Master  John 
Kenyon,"  who  had  been  yeoman  of  her  robes — of  course,  only  a  layman.  He 
was,  however,  duly  instituted,  and  then  hired  a  "reader"  to  supply  his 
place  and  do  the  work  while  he  received  the  revenues.  Sir  Thomas  Smith, 
Dean  of  Carlisle,  was  only  a  deacon,  while  Sir  John  Woollery,  who  enjoyed 
that  dignity  from  A.D.  1577  to  1596,  and  Sir  Christopher  Perkins,  who  suc- 
ceeded him,  living  until  1622,  were  laymen.  Examples  of  this  kind  of 
jobbery  are  constantly  met  with  in  the  official  correspondence  of  the 
Reformation  bishops. 

-  Of  a  certain  Lowth,  a  minister  of  Carlisle  side,  Grindal,  after  some 
inquiry  as  to  the  fact,  wrote  to  Parker  on  the  4th  March  1575  :  "  I  think  it 
will  fall  forth  that  he  was  never  ordered  priest  or  viinisler ;  aud yet  halh  he 
these  fifteen  or  sixteen  years  exercised  that  function." — Grindal's  Remaitis,  p. 
353,  Parker  Society.  Eleven  years  afterwards,  Bishop  Aylmer,  in  the  diocese 
of  London,  officially  inquired  "whether  any  ministers  appointed  loithotit 
orders  taken  of  the  bishops  do  baptize,  minister  the  Communion,  or  deal  in 
any  function  ecclesiastical?" — Aylmer's  Articles  of  Enquiry,  15S6.  In  the 
queen's  letter  to  the  bishops,  for  suppressing  "  prophesy ings,"  she  asseris  that 
"  in  sundry  parts  of  Our  realm  there  are  no  small  number  of  persons  presuming 
to  be  teachers  and  preachers  of  the  Church  {though  neither  la-ifidly  thereunto 
called,  noryetfitfor  the  same)." — Cotton  ^LS.,  British  Museum  ;  Cleopatra,  V. 
2,  folio  2S7.  "  [anuary4th,  1572:  William  Bele,  M.A.,  was  presented  to  the 
I'rebcnd  of  Schalford,  (///(Zi-  Scarford,  at  the  ciueen's  presentation  by  lapse; 
because  one  Alwood,  the  pretended  Canon  and  Prebendary  was,  mer?  laicus, 
as  it  is  set  down  in  the  Register." — SWy^t^'s,  Annals,  vol.  ii.  part  i.  p.  277. 
Oxford,  1824. 


BISHOP   JEWELL   AND   LANCASTER.  lO/ 

ever  entered  the  heads  of  such  reforming  gentry  was  any  con- 
sideration for  the  neglected  population.  "Greed  of  gain,"  as 
Archbishop  Parker  admitted  and  deplored,  "  be,  together  with 
self-seeking,  eating  up  of  all  charity  to  God  and  one's  neighbour." 
The  archbishop's  opmions  concerning  ordination,  its  true  nature, 
importance,  and  value,  may  not  inaccurately  be  gathered,  though 
but  indirectly,  from  a  very  important  letter  written  to  him  by 
Tewell.i  Bishop  of  Salisbury,  dated  April  26th,  1568,  as  follows:— 

"Whereas  I  wrote  of  late  under  Your  Grace  touching  the 
bearer  M.  Lancaster,  now  elect  of  Armagh,-  that  it  might  please 
Your  Grace  to  stay  him  from  further  ordering  of  ministers,  it 
may  now  like  the  same  to  understand  that  I  have  sithence  com- 
muned with  the  same  M.  Lancaster  concerning  the  same,  and 
tind  by  his  own  confession  that  he  hath  already  ordered  divers 
(although  not  so  many  as  it  was  reported) :  Howbeit  among  the 
same  he  hath  admitted  and  ordered  one  whom  by  the  space  of 
these  eight  years  I,  for  many  good  and  just  causes  me  moving, 
evermore  have  refused.  Your  Grace  may  further  advertise  him 
hereof,  as  unto  your  wisdom  shall  seem  good  ;  certainly  in  such 
cases  his  discretion  is  very  small." 

Now  when  the  date  of  this  letter  is  carefully  noted,  it  is  found 
that  Lancaster  was  not  consecrated  for  nearly  two  months  after 
wards,  i.e.  until  the  13th  of  June.  Yet,  as  a  mere  minister  or 
priest,  he  had  already  been  ordaining  others  ;  and  Jewell  takes 
It  for  granted,  that,  like  himself,  Parker  will  regard  all  such 
ordinations,  if  a  previous  call  has  been  made,  as  perfectly  good 
and  valid,  though  somewhat  irregular ;  and  he  does  not  for  a 
moment  declare  them  to  be  utterly  null  and  void,  as  they 
certainly  were.  Does  it  not  follow,  therefore,  as  an  obvious  con- 
sequence, that  the  opinions  then  current  in  the  New  Church,  and 
the  lax  practices  then  tolerated  by  its  chief  officers,  prove_  that 
some  at  least  of  the  leading  "reformed"  prelates  practically 
repudiated  altogether  the  Catholic  doctrine  of  ordination?  If  it 
had  been  otherwise,  if  the  law  on  the  subject  had  been  then 
what  the  law  now  is,  such  a  case  as  that  of  which  Jewell  makes 
mention  would  have  been  properly  and  severely  dealt  with. 
Yet  how  stands  the  question  ?  This  very  man  Lancaster,  a  Pro- 
testant, who  had  notoriously  assumed  episcopal  duties  without 

^  For  this  letter,  at  length,  see  JeivelPs  Works,  Parker  Society,  vol.  iii. 
part  ii,  p.  1274.      London,  1850. 

2  Thomas  Lancaster  had  been  Treasurer  of  Salisbuiy,  and  was  consecrated 
Archbishop  of  Armagh,  June  13th,  1568.  A  person  of  the  same  names  had 
been  consecrated,  eighteen  years  previously,  to  the  See  of  Kildare. — Loftus 
MSS.,  Marsh's  Library,  Dublin. 


I08         THE   CHURCH    UNDER   QUEEN    ELIZABETH. 

episcopal  consecration,  was  not  only  not  even  reprimanded,  but 
was  soon  afterwards  consecrated  Archbishop  of  Armagh,  as  if,  in 
the  case  in  question,  nothing  worthy  of  complaint  or  reprimand 
had  occurred,  or  nothing  out  of  the  way  happened.  Election  by 
the  people,  from  a  Lutheran  point  of  view,  was  regarded  as  an 
essential  in  the  "making  of  ministers"  ;  the  imposition  of  hands 
w^as  held  to  be  an  ornamental  but  useless  addition. ^  In  this 
conviction  the  above  facts  show  that  Archbishop  Parker  and 
Bishop  Jewell  were  perfectly  agreed. 

Many  of  the  bishops,  it  is  evident,  were  adventurous  self- 
seekers,  sometimes  taken  from  the  lowest  of  the  people ;  or 
needy  and  impecunious  gentlefolks,  who,  together  with  their 
property  and  old  position,  had  lost  their  self-respect ;  and  who, 
when  their  willingness  to  aid  the  innovators  had  been  authorita- 
tively made  clear  to  the  Council,  were  put  into  places  of  trust 
and  importance  to  continue  and  consolidate  the  policy  of  change. 
They  were  too  often  keen  and  successful  money-hunters,  and 
willing  tools  of  the  Court.  A  large  majority  of  these  Reforma- 
tion prelates,  though  constantly  prating  about  the  "gospel"  (as 
they  termed  their  own  immoral  principles),  were  always  sharply 
on  the  look-out  for  something  more  solid  and  less  transcendental 
than  the  Calvinistic  calculations  and  phantasies  in  which  they 
themselves  professed  to  believe.  There  is  scarcely  one  who  is  free 
from  the  charge  of  peculation,  double-dealing,  and  self-aggrandise- 
ment.2  Their  whole  energies  seem  to  have  been  set  on  securing 
for  themselves,  their  wives  and  families,  every  temporal  advantage 
which  could  be  had  from  their  official  positions,  or  squeezed  out 
of  the  estates  connected  with  them.  From  the  days  of  William 
Barlow,  "the  calamity  of  his  See,"^  as  he  was  termed,  to  those 

^  Luther  taught  that  there  were  two  kinds  of  calling  to  the  office  and  work 
of  the  ministry — one,  internal,  from  God,  such  as  that  of  prophets,  apostles, 
and  holy  teachers  ;  the  second,  external,  by  the  free  election  of  the  people, 
or  by  the  selection  and  nomination  of  persons  having  authority,  such  as  rulers 
and  magistrates.  The  imposition  of  hands,  with  prayer,  by  some  presiding 
minister,  was  a  public  indication  to  the  congregation  gathered  together  that 
the  person  had  already  been  selected,  and  it  was  at  the  same  time  a  ratifica- 
tion of  the  choice  made.  But  it  was  not  held  to  be  a  means  of  grace.  The 
essential  act  was  the  selection,  not  the  imposition  of  hands. 

'  Camden's  Annals,  in  loco. 

2  For  an  account  of  the  disagreements  between  Sandys  and  Parker,  see 
Petyt  MS.,  No.  47,  folio  376,  in  which  the  former  writes  at  length  to  the 
latter.  Again  :  of  the  ruin  wrought  under  William  Barlow  at  ]5ath.  Sir  John 
Harington  gives  the  following  graphic  account  from  personal  knowledge  : — 
"  I  speak  now  only  of  the  spoil  made  under  this  bishop,  scarce  were  five 
years  past  after  Bath's  ruins  ;  but  as  fast  went  the  axes  and  hammers  to  woik 
at  Wells.  The  goodly  hall  covered  with  lead  (l)ecause  the  roof  might  seem 
too  low  for  so  large  a  room)  was  uncovered,  and  now  this  roof  reaches  to  the 


SOME   OF   THE   NEW   BISHOPS   DESCRIBED.  IO9 

of  Bishop  Pilkington,  who  robbed  the  diocese  of  Durham  right 
royally,  the  same  unchanging  policy  was  pursued.  Sometimes, 
as  in  the  case  of  Aylmer,  Bishop  of  London,  and  his  immediate 
predecessor,  they  openly  quarrelled  amongst  themselves  over  the 
temporalties,  and  so  drew  public  attention  to  their  selfish  pro- 
ceedings. 

We  may  learn  from  what  Strype  and  others  have  put  on 
record,  that  the  queen  was  highly  incensed  on  hearing  that  James 
Pilkington,  Bishop  Palatine  of  Durham, ^  had  so  managed  to 
manipulate  the  revenues  of  that  See,  which  he  held  for  seventeen 
years,  as  to  have  been  enabled  to  give  a  marriage  portion  of  no 
less  than  ten  thousand  pounds  to  his  daughter — an  enormous 
sum  in  those  days,  equal,  in  fact,  to  that  which  the  queen  herself 
had  received  from  King  Henry  VIII.  her  father.  "If  the 
revenues  be  so  mighty,"  remarked  Her  Highness,  "and  the 
Crown  be  so  poor,  my  lord  of  Durham  ^  can  surely  spare  Us  a 
little.  We  will  charitably  lighten  his  heavy  burden  for  him 
somewhat."  So,  without  process  or  further  ado,  she  henceforth 
took  one  thousand  pounds  a  year  from  the  bishop's  income,  and 
devoted  it  to  maintaining  her  garrison  at  Berwick. 

Sandys  and  Grindal  disagreed  fiercely  about  dilapidations, 
for  which  neither  cared  to  pay,  while  the  forcible  words  and 
strong  adjectives  they  both  used  in  controversy  on  the  subject 
were  very  remarkable.  In  a  fierce  dispute  about  a  leasehold 
house  at  Battersea,  which  the  Archbishops  of  York  had  frequently 
used  when  in  London,  the  language  uttered  and  written  was  both 
unprelatic  and  violent.  Aylmer,  too,  was  not  a  whit  behind- 
hand either  in  the  vigour  of  his  words  or  in  the  grasping  spirit  he 
displayed.  He  and  Sandys  had  so  furious  a  public  quarrel 
regarding  the  revenues  due  to  either  from  the  See  of  London 

sky.  The  Chapel  of  Our  Lady  late  repaired  by  Stillington,  a  place  of  great 
reverence  and  antiquity,  was  likewise  defaced,  and  such  was  their  thirst  after 
lead  (I  would  they  had  drunk  it  scalding)  that  they  took  the  dead  bodies  of 
bishops  out  of  their  leaden  coffins,  and  cast  abroad  the  carcases  scarce 
thoroughly  putrified." — Brief  View  of  (he  State  of  the  Church  of  Englatid, 
p.  110. 

1  When  this  Puritan  was  a  poor  exile  at  Frankfort,  he  is  said  to  have  con- 
soled his  afflicted  and  complaining  fellows  with  "the  heavenly  promises  of 
riches  hereafter,"  asserting  that  "few  men  were  predestined  to  celestial 
joys  who  owned  much  money." 

^  James  Pilkington,  born  at  Rivington,  county  Lancaster,  in  1520,  was 
third  son  of  Richard  Pilkington.  He  graduated  B.A.,  Cantab.,  1539; 
became  Fellow  of  St.  John's,  Cambridge,  26th  of  March  1539  ;  M.A.,  1542  ; 
B.D.,  1550.  He  married  Alice,  daughter  of  Sir  John  Kmgsmill,  and  died 
23rd  of  January  1575,  aged  fifty-five,  leaving  his  wife  and  two  daughters  as 
survivors.  He  was  buried  at  Bishops  Auckland,  but  afterwards  removed  to 
Durham. 


no      THE  CHURCH  under  queen  Elizabeth. 

upon  Sandys'  translation  to  York,  that  the  Lord  Treasurer,  for 
decency's  sake,  was  called  in  to  appease  it,  but  in  vain.  The 
two  prelates  wrangled  and  snarled  for  some  hours.  Cecil  as 
arbiter  offended  both,  and  satisfied  neither.  The  prelates 
continued  to  dispute  for  several  years,  and  died  engaged  in 
tortuous  lawsuits.  In  these,  and  in  other  particulars,  their 
characters  were  certainly  not  a  little  fly-blown. 

The  first  wife  of  this  man  Edwin  Sandys,  sometime  Bishop  of 
Worcester,  is  said  to  have  been  his  own  niece  or  great-niece,  the 
young  and  attractive  widow  of  one  of  the  keepers  of  the  Marshal- 
sea  prison,  where,  at  the  outset  of  his  career,  Sandys  had  been 
for  some  weeks  confined.  She  was  formally  described  as  the 
daughter  of  "Master  Sandys  of  Essex,"  and  "a  right  buxom 
woman."  But  she  died  shortly  after  their  illicit  and  uncanonical 
union ;  and  he  soon  married  another— thus  piously  consoling 
himself — Cecilia,  daughter  of  Sir  Thomas  VVilford. 

In  Worcestershire,  Sandys  acted  with  a  very  high  hand.  For 
example  :  On  a  visitation  tour,  his  attention  was  called  to  an  old 
stone  altar  still  standing  in  the  parish  church  of  Battenhall,^ 
where  the  chief  proprietor  was  Sir  John  Bourne,  who  had  been 
Secretary  of  State  under  Queen  Mary.  Sandys  ordered  it  to  be 
'•removed,  defaced,  and  at  once  put  to  some  common  use." 
But  Sir  John  and  his  allies  resisted  this  injunction  by  force,  so 
far  as  that  when  the  altar-stone  was  pulled  down  he  had  it  taken 
to  his  own  mansion.  Hearing  of  this,  Sandys  became  impres- 
sively violent,  and  ordered  another  visitation  of  the  same  village 
church  to  be  held  without  delay.  But  when  an  appeal  was 
made  to  Archbishop  Parker,  as  metropolitan,  as  to  the  need  for 
such  a  step,  Sandys  was  advised  to  be  quiet  and  not  push  matters 
to  further  extremities — advice  which  he  appears  reluctantly  and 
not  very  good-temperedly  to  have  taken. 

Sir  John  Bourne,  on  the  other  hand,  made  a  series  of  grave 
and  disagreeable  accusations  against  Sandys,  some  of  which  were 
certainly  true  enough ;  ^  but,  on  an  appeal  to  the  Privy  Council 

1  Some  assert  that  this  occurred  at  a  parish  in  the  city  of  Worcester. 

*  Amongst  Sir  John  Bourne's  charges  against  Bishop  Sandys  are  the 
following,  given  by  Strypc  : — "  That  the  manor  house  of  Northwike  (built 
in  the  beginning  of  Henry  VH.  his  reign)  he  had  already  pulled  down  and 
razed  from  the  bottom  of  the  foundation  ;  and  having  sold  the  hall,  and  the 
most  part  of  the  matter  and  stufi"  unto  his  friends,  making  thereof  a  great 
piece  of  money  ;  with  some  part  of  the  rest  had  raised  at  his  palace  a  prettv 
building,  which  he  called  his  nursery:  to  which  it  was  also  put,  his  wife 
bein"-  of  good  fecundity,  and  a  very  fruitful  woman.  And  that  for  the 
furniture  and  finishing  of  the  said  nursery,  he  had  likewise  razed  and  pulled 
down  a  fair  long  vaulted  chapel  of  stone,  standing  within  his  said  palace. 
That  his  wife  being  thus  fruitful,  he  had  for  one  of  his  children  procured,  in 


BISHOP   SANDYS   AND   SIR   JOHN    BOURNE.  Ill 

(all  of  whom  were  disposed  to  defend  and  uphold  the  innovators 
at  any  cost,  and  who  certainly  had  the  power  to  do  so),  Bourne 
was  condemned  for  having  spoken  disparagingly  of  Mistress 
Sandys  and  urged  his  retainers  to  do  likewise,  and  committed  to 
the  Marshalsea.  Subsequently,  on  retracting  his  sayings,  he  was 
released.  But  when  invited  to  spend  Christmas  with  the  bishop, 
who  in  this  case  appears  as  a  peace-maker,  he  threw  the  letter 
of  invitation  into  the  fire.^  He  continued  to  criticise  the 
Protestant  prelate  and  his  lady  very  sharply,  until  the  former 
was  translated  to  London.  At  Worcester,  Sandys  was  likewise 
accused  of  granting  long  leases  of  farms  and  lands  belonging  to 
the  See  to  various  poor  Protestant  relations,  who  had  secured 
them  for  very  low  and  inadequate  rents.  But  adequate  inquiry 
on  the  subject  was  suppressed.  When  he  went  to  London,  with 
a  like  benevolent  intention  of  doing  good  to  the  household  of 
faith,  more  particularly  his  own,  he  attempted  a  similar  policy  ; 
but  the  Court,  hearing  of  his  contemplated  proceedings,  warned 
him  in  time  that  such  tactics  were  not  to  be  again  attempted 
with  impunity  ;  while  the  Lord  Treasurer,  in  the  name  of  the 
Chief  Governess,  rebuked  him  in  very  strong  and  vigorous 
Scripture  phrases.  In  London,  Sandys  was  good  enough  to  take 
under  his  special  protection  the  Dutch  Protestants  in  Austin- 
friars  ;  and,  on  the  other  hand,  suppressed  for  awhile  the  mass 
celebrated  at  the  Portuguese  ambassador's  mansion  in  Tower 

his  brother's  name,  one  lease  of  the  parsonage  of  Flodbury  :  which  benefice 
was  yearly  worth  fonr  hundred  marks,  and  better,  being  one  of  his  own 
patronage,  having  a  goodly  mansion,  and  a  goodly  demean  :  whereof  was 
wont  to  be  kept  great  hospitality." — Strype's  Actuals,  vol.  i.  part  ii. 
pp.  38,  39.  Oxford,  1824.  Sir  John  Bourne  likewise  asserted  that  the 
pipes  of  a  great  pair  of  organs,  which  had  cost  two  hundred  pounds,  had  been 
melted  down  to  make  the  prebendaries'  wives  dishes  for  their  kitchens,  and 
the  organ-case  had  made  them  bedsteads  ;  that  the  silver  plate  of  the  sacristy 
had  been  divided  amongst  the  prebendaries,  and  that  it  was  intended  to 
divide  the  copes  and  other  ornaments.  The  bishop,  though  evidently  much 
annoyed  that  these  and  such-like  reports  should  get  abroad,  admitted  of  his 
accuser  that  "  none  love  him  for  himself,  but  for  his  religion  many  like  him." 
— Strype's  Annals,  vol.  i.  part  ii.  pp.  39-42. 

1  Bourne  treated  Sandys  with  contempt,  as  the  bishop  maintained.  When 
after  many  contentions  the  latter  invited  Sir  John  and  his  lady  to  spend 
Christmas  with  him,  he  not  only  refused  to  come,  but  threw  the  letter  into 
the  fire.  Sir  John's  eldest  son  had  a  special  aversion  to  priests'  and  bishops' 
wives,  which  at  that  period  was  shared  by  many,  and  applied  a  term  to  them 
which  certainly  was  strong  and  not  over  polite.  Sir  John  himself  in  this 
particular  had  equally  offended,  as  the  bishop  averred,  "three  women  going 
through  his  park,  wherein  is  a  path  for  footmen,  he,  supposing  they  had  been 
priests'  wives,  called  unto  them,  '  Ye  shall  not  come  through  my  park,  and 

no  such  priests'  w s.'" — Strype's  .,4«?/a/y,  vol.  i.  part  ii.  pp.   24  and  30, 

Oxford,  1824. 


112  THE   CHURCH    UNDER   QUEEN    ELIZABETH. 

Street,  to  which  crowds  had  for  some  time  resorted.  He  was 
translated  to  York  on  the  Sth  of  March  1576  ;  but,  as  he  com- 
yjlained  to  the  Lord  Treasurer,  was  most  coldly  received  ^  by  the 
nobility  and  gentlepeople  on  his  arrival. 

In  May  1581,  Sandys  was  holding  a  visitation  at  Doncaster  ; 
and,  contrary  to  the  canons,  went  to  an  inn  in  the  town,  where 
he  remained  for  some  days  for  rest  and  refreshment.  One 
midnight  the  wife  of  the  innkeeper  was  found  in  His  Grace's 
bedchamber  by  her  own  husband.'^  The  latter  had  returned 
home,  as  it  appears,  somewhat  unexpectedly,  and,  seeking  his 
spouse  in  vain  in  her  own  room,  thus  discovered  her  elsewhere. 
Such  a  discovery,  of  course,  required  an  explanation.  It  certainly 
had  an  awkward  appearance.  The  noise  which  ensued  disturbed 
other  inmates  of  the  hostel,  amongst  whom  was  a  shrewd  and 
popular  Yorkshire  knight.  Sir  Robert  Sta])leton  of  Wighill,^  who, 
at  once  taking  in  the  situation,  and  for  the  honour  of  the  arch- 
bishop's cloth  and  dignity,  is  said  to  have  endeavoured  to  prevent 
unnecessary  scandal.  The  excited  host  of  the  inn  had  gone  so 
far  as  to  threaten  the  exalted  prelate  with  a  taste  of  his  un- 
sheathed dagger,  which  he  brandished  again  and  again.  But 
Stapleton  interposed  with  earnestness  and  temporary  success ; 
for  the  archbishop,  who,  if  innocent,  committed  an  unpardonable 
error  of  judgment,  consented  at  once  to  give  the  innkeeper  a 
considerable  bag  of  golden  angels  to  purchase  his  forgiveness 
and  silence.*  Subsequently  other  demands  were  made  u|)on  the 
unfortunate  prelate  under  a  threat  of  exposure,  to  which  both 

1  Sandys  could  scarcely  have  looked  for  a  very  cordial  greeting  from  the 
nobility  and  gentry  of  the  ancient  faith  in  Yorkshire,  as  he  had  thus 
described  the  ecclesiastical  position  in  a  sermon  at  York  Minster:  "As 
Christ  hath  delivered  all  His  out  of  the  captivity  of  Satan  and  sin,  so 
hath  He  also  us,  after  a  more  special  and  peculiar  manner,  out  of  that  den 
of  thieves,  out  of  that  prison  of  Romish  servitude,  out  of  the  bloody  claws 
of  that  cruel  and  proud  antichrist." — Sa/it/fs'  IVorks,  p.  iSo.  Parker 
Society.  London,  1842.  Grindal,  on  going  to  York  to  take  up  his  new 
office  seven  years  previously,  had  written  to  Sir  W.  Cecil  to  the  same  effect  : 
"  I  was  not  received  with  such  concourse  of  gentlemen,  at  my  first  coming 
into  this  shire,  as  I  looked  for."  It  is  evident,  therefore,  that  the  "new 
cause  "  had  not  gained  many  adherents. 

-  For  detailed  particulars  of  this  case,  see  Strype's  Atinals,  vol.  iii.  Rook 
i.  chap,  ix.,  and  Ajipendices  Nos.  20  and  21.  Also,  Bioqrn/^/'iica/  Notiic'  of 
Satu/ys,  by  the  Rev.  John  Ayre.     Parker  Society's   Works.     LouLion,  1842. 

•*  Sir  Robert  Stapleton  of  \Vighill,  of  an  old  Yorkshire  family,  was  a 
connection  of  the  ancient  Catholic  houses  of  Neville  and  Constable.  For 
pedigree,  see  p.  333  of  Foster's  Pedigrees  of  Yorkshire.     London,  1875. 

*  Sir  John  Ilarington  asserts  that  the  hostess  had  previously  been  Mistress 
Sandys'  waiting-maid,  and  that  on  taking  a  candle  to  the  bishop  in  bed,  she 
"  slipped  into  my  lord's  bed  in  her  smock."  Parsons,  a  contem]")orary  writer, 
asserts  that  "this  prelate  had  in  his  younger  days  been  too  familiar  with  this 


BALE,   BISHOP   OF   OSSORY.  II3 

Stapleton  and  the  injured  husband,  whether  rightly  or  wrongly, 
are  reported  to  have  been  parties.  Such  an  incident  in  the  case 
of  so  dignified  a  prelate,  who  had  a  wife  of  his  own,  of  course 
afforded  food  for  conversation  and  criticism  in  a  very  loose  and 
dissolute  Court  when  the  news  reached  Richmond  and  White- 
hall. The  queen  and  Leicester,  evidently  sympathising  with 
the  archbishop,  had  the  innkeeper  brought  up  to  the  Star 
Chamber  for  examination ;  and  the  evidence  in  detail  was 
written  out  for  Her  Majesty's  perusal  and  edification,  Leicester 
directing  Her  Grace's  attention  to  its  more  salient  and  striking 
points.  The  result  was  that  the  judges  condemned  the  inn- 
keeper to  acknowledge  the  archbishop's  innocence  at  the  York 
Assizes,  which  was  formally  done  ;  but  only  amidst  the  jeers  and 
contemptuous  laughter  of  those  who  filled  the  court-house.  For 
many  months  the  archbishop  shut  himself  up  at  home.  Several 
coarse  squibs  in  prose  and  verse  on  this  topic  were  secretly 
printed  and  hawked  about  the  castle-yard  and  cathedral-close  ; 
while  copies  of  two  were  affixed  to  the  chief  entrance  of  Bishops- 
thorpe  Church,  His  Grace's  parish,  to  the  interest  and  amusement 
of  the  shrewd  and  observant  Yorkshire  rustics.  Subsequently, 
Sir  Robert  Stapleton,  when  found  to  be  an  adherent  of  the  old 
religion,  was  confined  in  the  Tower  for  nearly  two  years,  because 
he  declined  either  to  vary  from  his  original  statement  or  to 
express  regret  for  the  charitable  part  which  he  had  taken  in  a 
very  questionable  and  unpleasant  affair.  Archbishop  Sandys 
never  recovered  this  blow\^  According  to  his  monument,  he 
was  soon  afterwards  translated  to  a  better  world. ^ 

A  few  pages  must  now  be  devoted  to  Dr.  John  Bale,^  one  of 

woman,  which  is  said  to  pass  as  a  veniall  sin  wiih  tliose  of  his  profession." — 
Brief  Vieiv  of  the  State  of  the  Clinrcli  of  England,  pp.  177-179. 

^  On  his  monument  in  Southwell  Minster  this  disagreeable  event  is  un- 
necessarily commemorated.  The  archbishop  is  said  to  have  "suffered,  from 
what  the  innocent  mind  can  least  of  all  endure,  atrocious  slanders." 

^  The  following,  though  vigorous  and  plain-spoken,  is  true  :  —  "  The 
'  Reformers '  differed  from  each  other,  as  widely  as  the  colours  of  the  rainbow, 
in  most  other  things  ;  but  they  all  agreed  in  this,  that  good  works  were 
unnecessary  to  salvation,  and  that  the  ^saints,'  as  they  had  the  modesty  to  call 
themselves,  could  not  forfeit  their  right  to  heaven  by  any  sins  hoivever  numerous 
and  enormous.  By  those,  amongst  whom  plunder,  sacrilege,  adultery,  poly- 
gamy, incest,  perjury,  and  murder  were  almost  as  habitual  as  sleeping  and 
waking  ;  by  those  who  taught  that  the  way  to  everlasting  bliss  could  not  be 
obstructed  by  any  of  these,  nor  by  all  of  them  put  together  ;  by  such  persons, 
charity,  besides  that  it  was  so  well-known  a  Calhohc  commodity,  would  be, 
as  a  matter  of  course,  set  wholly  at  nought." — History  of  the  Protestant 
Jxeformation,  by  W.  Cobbett,  p.  189.     Dublin,  1868. 

^  John  Bale,  a  Suffolk  man,  first  a  Carmelite  friar,  was  perverted  to 
Protestantism,    and    then   married   a    woman    whose    Christian   name   was 

H 


114         THE   CHURCH    under   queen    ELIZABETH. 

the  chief  bishops  of  the  Reformation  era,  and  certainly  one  of 
the  most  outspoken  and  plain  spoken.  His  name  occurs  in  the 
commission  for  Dr.  Parker's  consecration ;  and  although,  for 
some  reason  or  another,  he  was  not  present  on  the  occasion,  it 
is  evident  that  he  was  well  known  to  the  authorities,  and  held  in 
high  estimation  by  them.  He  had  been  for  some  time  Bishop 
of  Ossory,  in  Ireland  ;  but  found  himself  extremely  unpopular  in 
that  Catholic  land,  where  the  unattractive  gospel  of  which  he 
was  a  minister  was  wholly  repudiated.  So,  as  the  income  of  the 
Irish  See  in  question  was  very  small,  and  his  followers  corre- 
spondingly so,  Dr.  Bale  thought  it  prudent  to  turn  his  steps 
homewards,  more  especially  when  his  family  increased  and  his 
wife  anxiously  desired  preferment  for  him  in  England. 

His  language  was  often  unusually  coarse,  as  will  be  seen  from 
the  specimens  of  it  now  to  be  given.  He  deals  with  the  most 
sacred  subjects  in  a  spirit  of  virulence  ^  and  buffoonery — a  spirit 
])erfectly  in  harmony  w'ith  certain  of  the  doings  of  his  allies  and 
himself,  but  very  much  out  of  place  in  a  minister  of  religion. 
He  writes  of  the  Catholic  sacraments  and  sacred  rites  of  the 
Universal  Church  in  language  so  frightful,  that  many  will  find  it 
(lifihcult  to  believe  that  the  profane  author  of  such  sentiments 
was  in  his  right  mind  ;  while  modern  Anglicans  may  feel  a  little 
ashamed  of  owning  him  as  a  successor  of  the  apostles.  His 
contemporaries,  however,  were  well  enough  pleased  with  him, 
and  his  writings  do  not  appear  to  be  out  of  harmony  with  the 
official  "  Homilies "  which  had  been  recently  issued.  For 
Parker  secured  him  the  place  of  a  prebendary  at  Canterbury ; 
consulted  him  on  several  occasions,  and  sometimes  used  his 
services  in  preaching,  confirming,  and  visiting  certain  churches 
in  the  diocese. 

The  following  are  his  sentiments  concerning  priestly  ordina- 
tion and  the  Sacrament  of  the  Eucharist : — 

Dorothy.  As  regards  his  perversion,  l]i>hop  Nicholson  remarks  that  "  his 
wife  seems  to  have  had  a  great  hand  in  that  hap]iy  work."  He  was 
patronised  by  Cromwell  and  Cranmer,  and  subsequently  by  (^)ueen  Elizabeth 
and  Matthew  Parker.  liale  died,  under  Parker's  rule  and  patronage,  Pre- 
bendary of  Canterbury,  and  wa.s  buried  there  in  1563.  Though  more  coarse 
in  his  language  than  some  others  of  the  Reformers,  he  was  a  fair  and  faithful 
specimen  of  an  outspoken  and  consistent  Reformation  prelate.  It  is  cmly 
just  to  the  late  Rev.  Henry  (Jhristmas,  D.C.L.,  to  note  that,  when  re-editing 
Julie's  ll^or/cs  for  the  Parker  Society,  he  left  his  conviction  on  record  that 
certain  of  them  "could  not  with  projiriety  be  presented  to  the  public." 

'  Pilkington  of  Durham  was  sometimes  equally  virulent  : — ''  I  will  show 
vou  what  is  written  in  the  life  and  history  of  Thomas  Becket,  Bishop  of 
Canterbury,  ^//f7> -f//«/(7«^'-  »/ar/yr  and  traitor  to  his  prince." — Piikiugion's 
Works,  p.  589,  Parker  Society's  Works.     London,  1842, 


THE    NEW   AND   DANGEROUS   OPINIONS.  I15 

"As  touching  the  priests'  consecration,  vvliich  is  such  a  charm  of  enchant- 
ment which  may  not  be  done  but  by  an  oiled  officer  of  the  Pope's  generation  ; 
...  for  in  all  the  Bible  it  is  not  that  any  man  can  make  a  dry  wafer-cake  a 
new  Saviour,  a  new  Redeemer,  a  new  Christ,  or  a  new  God  :  no,  though  he 
should  utter  all  the  words  and  Scriptures  therein." '^ 

Of  the  same  adorable  sacrament  this  impious  "Reformer" 
hkewise  writes — 

The  mass  "serveth  all  witches  in  their  witchery,  all  sorcerers,  charmers, 
enchanters,  dreamers,  soothsayers,  necromancers,  conjurors,  cross-diggers, 
devil-raisers,  miracle-doers,  dog-leeches,  and  bawds ;  for  without  a  mass 
they  cannot  well  work  their  feats.'' " 

The  old  clergy,  legitimate  successors  of  Saint  Augustine,  vSaint 
Anselm,  and  AViUiam  of  Wykeham,  he  calls,  "puffed-up  porklings 
of  the  Pope;"-'  and  again  writes — 

"  These  were  the  idle  priests  at  London  and  their  beastly  ignorant  broods, 
with  old  superstitious  bawds  and  brothels,  the  Pope's  blind  cattle." 

Of  preaching  clergy  of  the  old  order  of  things  he  is  equally 
abusive — 

"  lyCt  beastly  blind  babblers  and  bawds,  with  their  charming  chaplains, 
then,  prate  at  large  out  of  their  malicious  spirit  and  idle  brains."  ■* 

The  Church  Universal  is — 

"  The  madam  of  mischief  and  proud  synagogue  of  Satan." 

And  the  Catholic  bishops  are — 

"  Those  two-horned  whoremongers,  those  conjurors  of  Egypt,  and  lecherous 
locusts,  leaping  out  of  the  smoke  of  the  pit  bottomless."  * 

The  "  communion  of  saints,"  according  to  this  apostate 
Carmelite,  is  the — 

"  Proud  synagogue  of  Satan,  with  gold,  silver,  pearl,  precious  stones, 
velvets,  silks,  mitres,  copes,  crosses,  cruetts,  ceremonies,  censurings,  blessings, 
babblings,  brawiings,  processions,  puppets,  and  such  other  mad  masteries 
(whereof  the  Church  that  Christ  left  here  behind  Him  knew  not  one  jot),  to 
provoke  the  carnal  idiots  to  her  whoredom  in  the  spirit." '' 

^  IVorlcs  of  Bishop  Bale,  pp.  232,  233,  Parker  Society's  Publications. 
London,  1S49. 

-  //;/,;/.  p.  236.  ^  Ibid.  pp.  242  and  249.  *  Ibid.  p.  245. 

^  Ibid.  p.  259.  He  may  be  fairly  matched  by  Dr.  Walter  Haddon,  in  his 
reply  to  Jerome  Osorius,  a  Portuguese,  who  wrote  thus  of  the  outcast  English 
monks  and  nuns — "  It  was  provided  by  laws  that  the  sows  should  not  again 
wallow  in  such  filthy  mire." — Strype's /^«//a/j-,  vol.  i.  part  ii.  p.  74.  Oxford, 
1S24. 

"  Ibid.  pp.  259,  260. 


Il6         THE   CHURCH    UNDER   QUEEN    ELIZABETH. 

No  fanatic  who  ever  put  pen  to  paper  could  possibly  outstrip 
in  coarseness  the  following  episcopal  blasphemy  ;  never  repudi- 
ated by  any  authority  in  the  new  Church,  and  recently  re- 
jjublished  for  the  edification  of  those  who  are  charmed  with, 
and  attracted  towards,  Bale's  religion. 

"Who  ever  heard  of  so  great  a  wonder  that  a  dry  cake  should  become  a 
God  to  be  worshipped?  .  .  .  they  will  take  upon  them  to  create  (Him)  every 
(Lay  afresh,  and  when  their  old  God  stinketh  in  the  box,  remove  Him  out  of 
the  way,  and  put  a  new  in  His  room."  ^ 

Finally,  for  it  is  impossible  to  quote  much  which  he  wrote, 
and  which  his  modern  admirers  have  thought  it  decent  to 
reproduce,  he  declares,  in  language  borrowed  from  the  Apocalypse 
and  most  blasphemously  misapplied,  that  the  Catholic  Church  is 
a  "great  whore,"  "a  stinking  strumpet."-  "She  is,"  he  goes  on 
to  maintain,  "in  like  case  flourishingly  decked  with  gold, 
jirecious  stones,  and  pearls,  not  only  in  her  manifold  kinds  of 
ornaments,  as  in  her  copes,  corporasses,^  chasubles,  tunicles, 
stoles,  fanons,  and  mitres,  but  also  in  mystery  of  counterfeit 
godliness."  "Their  shavelings  of  prodigious  beastliness  in 
lecherous  living  [live],  under  the  colour  of  chastity."  "* 

The  bishops,  as  cannot  fail  to  be  remarked,  were  all  most 
obsequious  and  obedient  to  the  queen ;  ^  and  at  all  times 
dutifully  and  faithfully  regarded  the  Crown  as  the  source  of  all 
their  authority  and  the  fountain  of  their  jurisdiction,  as  Parlia- 
ment had  decreed.  They  thus  most  thoroughly  understood 
their  true  position,  frankly  accepted  it,  and  do  not  appear  to 
have  ever  desired  any  change ;  save,  of  course,  that  all  of  them 
looked  to  become  archbishops  (it  was  only  in  human  nature  to 
do  so),  while  the  Archbishop  of  York  for  the  time  being,  no 

1  Biles  Works,  p.  283. 

"  Ibid.  p.  494. 

•'*  The  Reformers  had  always  much  disliked  these.  Bishop  Hooper  had 
asked,  Anno  1552,  "whether  the  Communion  be  used  in  such  place  and 
after  such  sort,  as  most  varieth  from,  and  is  most  distant  from  the  popish 
mass,  and  whether  they  use  any  corporas  cloth  in  the  Communion  ? " — 
Hooper's  Iiilerrogaton'es. 

^  Bale's  IVorks,  p.  497. 

**  Bishop  Sandys  was  particularly  laudatory  of  Elizabeth.  Here  are  his 
words: — "Did  God  ever  bless  the  throne  of  any  man  as  He  hath  done  the 
royal  seat  of  Hi-;  anointed  this  day?  Hath  the  like  ever  been  heard  of 
in  any  nation  to  that  which  in  ours  is  seen  ?  Our  Deborah  hath  mightily 
repressed  the  rebel  Jaben  ;  our  Judith  hath  beheaded  Holofernes,  the  sworn 
enemy  of  Christianity  ;  our  Hester  hath  hanged  up  that  Haman  which  sought 
to  bring  iioth  us  and  our  children  into  miserable  servitude." — Sandys'  Works, 
p.  81.     Parker  Society.     London,  1S42. 


ACTS  OF  THE  SUPREME  GOVERNORS.      11/ 

doubt,  expected  in  due  course  to  be  translated  to  Canterbury. 
Their  new  Oath  of  Homage,  taken  by  each  one  and  every  one  on 
his  knees  before  Her  Highness,  has  already  been  referred  to. 
It  behoved  them,  therefore,  never  to  forget  her  to  whom  they 
owed  all  that  they  were,  or  might  be,  in  dignity,  rank,  office,  and 
state — the  queen.  On  the  whole,  it  must  be  ungrudgingly 
admitted  that  their  memories  were  tolerably  faithful,  and  did  not 
often  fail. 

As  examples  of  their  profound  subservience  to  the  Supreme 
Governess,  it  may  be  here  recorded  that  Parker  and  Grincial,  in 
1561,  humbly  approached  the  queen,  for  letters  "to  authorise  the 
now  Bishop  of  Hereford  to  visit  the  same  church  from  time  to 
time  as  occasion  shall  serve."  ^ 

Thus  none  of  them  presumed  to  do  anything  whatsoever 
which  involved  the  exercise  of  jurisdiction,  without  having  first 
sought  permission  from  the  only  person  in  whom  it  was  now 
suppo.sed  to  be  vested. 

Three  years  later,  that  is,  in  March  1564,  the  queen  issued  a 
dispensation,''  on  the  humble  petition  of  the  Warden  of  Win- 
chester College,  abolishing  Wednesday  as  a  fast  day  in  that 
venerable  institution  ;  for  with  Her  Majesty  it  now  lay  to  under- 
take all  which  the  Chief  Bishop  of  Christendom,  since  the  days 
of  St.  Augustine,  had  by  right  of  his  office  and  dignity  hitherto 
done  for  this  island.  She  could  grant  licences,  dispensations, 
and  graces ;  for,  to  quote  the  Bidding-Prayer,  she  was  "  in  all 
causes,  and  over  all  persons,  both  civil  and  ecclesiastical,  in 
these  her  dominions,  supreme." 

When,  therefore,  some  years  afterwards,  Grindal,  who  had 
so  faithfully  proclaimed  the  "principles  of  the  Reformation," 
resigned  his  archbishoprick,  a.d.  1583,  he  probably  resigned  it 
into  the  hands  of  the  queen,  the  fountain  of  spiritual  authority 
in  the  New  Church,  as  the  foUovving  extract  from  his  formal 
instrument  declares: — -"Pure,  sponte,  simpliciter,  et  absolute, 
in  manus  excellentissimae  ac  illustrissinice  in  Christo  principis  et 
Domince,  Elizabethce,  Dei  gratia  Angliae,  Francias  et  Hibernian 
Reginje,  etc.,  cujus  singulari  favore  et  benignitate  dictum  ar- 
chiepiscopatum  consecutus  sum,  resigno."  Between  himself  and 
his  spiritual  Master,  Jesus  Christ,  there  only  stood  one  person, 
and  that  person  was  Queen  Elizabeth. 

Some  idea  in  detail  of  the  state  of  the  various  dioceses  of 
England  at  different  periods  during  Elizabeth's  reign  '■'  must  now 

^  13th  March  1561. — State  Paper  Office. 

■■^  Parker  MSS.,  C.C.C.  Camb.,  No.  cxiv.  p.  547. 

^  In  1 57 1  there  was  a  Communion  only  once  a  quarter  in  every  parish  church, 


Il8         THE  CHURCH    UNDER   QUEEN    ELIZABETH. 

be  given  from  the  words  of  her  new  prelates  themselves,  and 
others,  otherwise  the  Pope's  action  might  appear  too  severe.  As 
regards  that  of  Durham,  in  the  north,  let  Dr.  Pilkington  in  a 
])lain-spoken  letter  to  the  Archbishop  of  Canterbury  first  tell  his 
own  story  : — 

"  It  is  too  lamentable,"  he  writes,  concerning  one  of  his  chief 
towns,  Blackburn,  "to  see  and  hear  how  negligently  they  say 
any  service  there,  and  how  seldom.  .  .  .  The  old  Vicar  of 
Blackburn,  Roger  Linney,  resigned  for  a  pension,  and  now, 
A.D.  1564,  Whalley  has  as  evil  a  vicar  as  the  worst  ;  and  there 
is  one  come  thither  that  has  been  deprived,  and  changes  his 
name,  and  now  teaches  school  there,  of  evil  to  make  them 
worse."  ^ 

Archbishop  Parker,  in  writing  to  Lord  Burghley,  gave  a  terrible 
account  of  the  state  of  Norwich  Cathedral,  in  the  east  of 
England.  The  diocese  appears  to  have  been  equally  bad  ;  - 
and  the  same  is  supported  by  local  records.  The  choir  was  an 
utter  desolation.  It  had  long  ago  been  cleared  of  everything 
valual)le  —  ornaments,  service-books,  lamps,  vestments,  and 
tapestry.  The  rain  came  in  from  the  roof,  partly  stripped  of  its 
lead,  and  the  walls  were  sodden  ;  the  pictured  glass  of  the 
windows  broken,  so  that  the  wind  whistled  round  transepts, 
ambulatory,  and  chapels ;  the  font  was  thrown  down ;  the 
monuments  in  the  various  chantries  were  in  course  of  destruction. 
"  The  church  is  miserable,"  are  the  archbishop's  exact  words. 
It  "hath  but  six  prebendaries;  and  but  one  of  them  at  home, 
both  needy  and  poor,  of  which  some  of  those  six  I  know  to  be 
Puritans.  Chapman  of  late  displaced  by  the  Bishop  of  Lincoln  : 
Johnson  cocking  abroad,  with  his  four  several  prebends  (as  they 
say)  in  new-erected  churches,  both  against  statute  and  his  oath.' 

with  a  sermon  an  hour  long.  For  servants  and  officers  it  began  at  five  o'clock 
in  the  morning,  and  ended  at  eight ;  for  masters,  gentry,  and  dames,  another 
commenced  at  nine,  with  alike  sermon  to  end  at  twelve.  "The  people," 
as  may  be  read,  "do  orderly  arise  from  their  pews,  and  so  pass  to  the 
Communion  Tal;le,  where  they  receive  the  Sacrament  ;  and  from  thence  in 
like  oriler  to  their  place  ;  having  all  this  time  a  minister  in  the  pulpit, 
reading  unto  them  comfortable  Scriptures  of  the  Passion  or  other  pertaining 
to  tlie  matter  in  hand." — Slrype's  Annals,  vol.  ii.  part  i.  pp.  134,  135. 
Oxford,  1834. 

1  Parker  MSB.,  C.  C.  Coll.,  Camb.,  No.  cxiv.  p.  519. 

-  One  Mr.  Nesse,  of  the  diocese  of  Norwich,  caused  his  bishop  some 
vexation.  He  was  reported  to  be  of  "  troublesome  and  disordered  behaviour. "' 
So  the  bishop  rebuked  him  in  a  letter  dated  February  25th,  1572,  and 
threatened  him  with  legal  })rocess  if  he  did  not  mend  his  manners.  He  had 
been  for  some  time  a  great  preacher  of  the  new  evangel,  but  now  the  bishop 
looks  upon  him  as  "slanderous";  because  he  would  not  marry,  but  "fre- 
quented a  suspected  house." 


STATE   OF   THE  CATHEDRALS   AND   CHURCHES.      II9 

There  was  no  daily  service,  either  in  cathedral  or  parochial 
church  :  a  mere  "reader"  read  out  matins  and  evensong  once  a 
week,  and  kept  the  parish  registers.^  Communion  was  celebrated 
only  three  times  a  year;  no  sermon  at  the  period  of  Parker's 
complaint  had  been  preached  in  the  cathedral  for  nine  months 
previously,  and  none  of  the  people  of  the  city  apparently  cared 
to  attend-  for  "  the  common  prayer  sayd  only  on  the  Sundaies." 
The  prebendaries,  with  a  single  exception,  were  away,  their 
houses  dilapidated;  the  deanery  of  Norwich  was  vacant.  Of 
the  late  dean  of  the  cathedral  and  of  the  bishop  of  the  diocese, 
Parker  indirectly  and  vaguely,  but  forcibly  remarked  :  "  I  have 
been  of  late  shamefully  deceived  by  some  young  men,  and  so 
have  I  been  by  some  older  men."-' 

At  St.  Saviour's  Church  in  that  city,  all  organs  and  singing 
having  been  abolished,  and  the  minister  having  taken  to  reading 
the  Sunday  prayers  from  a  new  pulpit  in  the  nave, — as  Park- 
hurst  had  enjoined, — some  of  the  parishioners  were  exceedingly 
displeased.  One,  Thomas  Lynn,-^  so  far  resented  this  innova- 
tion, that  he  appeared  in  the  church  with  some  "cunning 
queristers,"  as  some  say — or  with  "three  or  four  lewd  boys,  set 
on  by  some  lewder  persons,"  as  they  were  described  by  others  ; 
and  when  the  parson  facing  the  people  preached  the  Magnificat 
like  a  sermon,  they,  on  their  part,  "chaunted  it  out  loudlie,  after 
the  auncient  mode." 

The  bishop,  John  Parkhurst,  was  a  strong  and  irreverent 
Puritan  ;  and  seems  to  have  been  always  on  the  side  of  the 
Protestant  innovators.  Anything  approaching  to  what  he  im- 
piously called  "  the  clouted  popish  mass  "  his  unrighteous  soul 
abhorred.  When  the  tressels  and  Communion  board  were 
brought  down  for  "the  Lord's  Supper,"  he  forbade  its  being 
decked  like  an  altar  ;  or  the  retention  of  any  rites  by  the  pre- 
siding   minister,  which    might    in    any    way    recall    the    ancient 

'  The  readers,  formally  set  apart,  in  some  way  or  another,  but  by  no  public, 
authorised,  and  legal  form,  "were  not  to  preach,  administer  the  Sacrament 
of  the  Lord's  Supper,  nor  baptize  ;  but  to  read  the  Common  Prayers  and 
keep  the  registers.  They  were  taken  out  of  the  laity,  tradesmen  or  others  ; 
any  that  was  of  sober  conversation  and  honest  behaviour,  and  that  could  read 
anil  write."— Strype's  Annals,  vol.  i.  p.  516.      Oxford,  1824. 

-  The  cathedral  was  not  singular  in  this  respect,  for  it  is  on  record  that 
"  many  were  now  departed  from  the  communion  of  the  church,  and  came  no 
more  to  hear  divine  service  in  the  parish  churches,  nor  received  the  Holy 
Sacrament  according  to  the  law  of  the  realm.  This  was  especially  taken 
notice  of  in  the  diocese  of  Norwich." — Strype's  Annals,  vol.  ii.  part  i.  p.  161. 
Oxford,  1824. 

•*  Lansdovvne  MSS.,  British  Museum,  No.  xvii.  folio  58. 

*  Strype's  Annals,  vol.  ii.  part  i.  p.  328.     Oxford,  1824. 


I20         THE   CHURCH    UNDER   QUEEN    EEIZAEETH. 

Sacrifice.^  The  sign  of  the  cross  he  also  forbade,  as  well  as 
any  washing  of  the  Communion  cup  after  its  use.  If  any 
minister  went  forth  for  a  perambulation  at  Rogation-tide,  he 
was  to  go  without  surplice,  and  not  to  stop  at  any  wayside 
cross.  Nor  was  any  banner  to  be  carried.  On  taking  posses- 
sion of  his  episcopal  seat,  he  apparently  allowed  any  one  who, 
in  his  own  estimation,  could  preach  and  proclaim  the  new 
gospel  —  though  "  not  bred  to  learning,"  a  trader,  or  even  a 
husbandman — to  officiate  in  the  parish  churches  of  his  diocese. 
Fanaticism,  ignorance,  and  presumption  were,  with  him,  sure 
tokens  of  election  and  grace.  At  Cotessey,  near  Norwich,  a 
"love-feast"  was  held  in  the  chancel,  the  Communion  board  of 
which  served  as  the  table  for  the  profane  entertainment,  round 
which  the  elect  sat — an  entertainment  which  ended  in  scandals 
too  shocking  for  any  detailed  description.- 

In  the  city  of  Norwich  the  Calvinists  and  Zwinglians  from 
Flanders  had  a  church  apportioned  to  them,  and  Parkhurst 
took  them  under  his  protection.  The  three  ministers  were  named 
Anthonius,  Theophilus,  and  Isbrandus.  Neither  was  superior 
to  the  other  two,  yet  in  controversy  each  wanted  to  have  the 
first  word,  the  last  retort,  and  the  final  triumph.  They  quar- 
relled violently,  and  their  respective  adherents  came  to  blows. 
"  Falling  in  their  sermons  upon  particular  doctrines  controverted 
amongst  themselves  [they]  preached  so  earnestly  in  answers  and 
confutations  one  of  another,  that  the  congregation  was  all  in 
confusion,  and  the  peace  of  the  church  broken  uj)."''  When 
the  bishop  interfered  they  would  not  obey,  laughing  him  to 
scorn,  and  openly  defying  his  authority. 

It  will  cause  no  surprise,  therefore,  that  Sir  William  Cecil, 
when  writing  to  Parker  on  the  12th  of  August  1561,  declared 
that  "the  Bishop  of  Norwich  is  blamed  even  of  the  best  sort  for 
his  remissness  in  ordering  his  clergy.  He  winketh  at  schis- 
matics and  Anabaptists,  as  I  am  informed.     Surely  I  see  great 

^  These  were  the  bishop's  express  and  formal  directions:  —  '^ Item,  that 
they  neither  suffer  the  Lorde's  Table  to  be  hanged  and  decked  like  an  aulter, 
neyther  use  any  gestures  of  the  jjopish  masse  in  the  time  of  ministracion 
of  the  Communion,  as  shifting  of  the  booke,  washing,  breathing,  crossing, 
or  such-like." — Injunctions  of  John  Parkhurst,  Bishop  of  Norwich.  A.D. 
1561.  And,  again,  eight  years  later: — "  At  such  times  as  ye  shall  use  the 
perambulation  in  the  Koi^alio)i  dayes  for  the  boundes  of  your  ])aris]i,  you 
shall  not  use  any  surplas  u]ipon  you,  or  stay  at  any  crosse,  or  suffer  any 
banners  to  be  carried,  or  other  superstition  to  be  used." — Injunctions  of 
Bishop  John  Parkhurst.  A.I).  1569.     London,  John  Wallcy. 

-  MS.  letter  in  the  possession  of  tlie  author  from  the  collections  of  the 
Very  Rev.  F.  C.  Husenbeth,  D.D. 

■*  Strype's  ^//«a/j-,  vol.  ii.  part  ii.  p.  174.     Oxford,  1S24. 


DIOCESES   OF   CARLISLE   AND    NORWICH.  121 

variety  in  ministration.  A  surplice  may  not  be  borne  here. 
And  the  ministers  follow  the  folly  of  the  people,  calling  it 
charity  to  feed  their  fond  humour.  Oh  !  my  Lord,  what  shall 
become  of  this  time  ?  "  ^ 

With  all  such  laxity  of  discipline,  however,  some  hundreds 
of  parishes  in  the  eastern  portion  of  the  country  remained  wholly 
unserved. 

In  the  year  1563,  in  the  Archdeaconry  of  Norwich,  for 
example,  there  were  no  less  than  eighty  vacant  benefices ;  in 
the  Archdeaconry  of  Norfolk,  one  hundred  and  eighty-two ;  in 
the  Archdeaconry  of  Suffolk,  one  hundred  and  thirty;  in  the 
Archdeaconry  of  Sudbury,  forty-two.  In  addition  to  these,  there 
had  been  a  large  number  of  chapels  "standing  so  ruinous  a 
long  time,  that  now  they  were  quite  taken  down."  ^ 

In  the  diocese  of  Carlisle,  to  go  back  again  northwards,  a 
similar  state  of  affairs  existed.  The  destroyers  had  done  their 
work  only  two  well.  Every  rapacious  "reformer"  had  gained 
his  point.  The  altars  had  been  overthrown  and  broken  down, 
the  chalices  and  pixes  stolen,  either  legally  or  otherwise,  and 
the  old  religion  utterly  cast  out.  No  one  could  be  obtained, 
however,  judging  from  Archbishop  Grindal's  complaint  to  Sir 
William  Cecil,  to  preach  the  new  gospel  : — ■ 

"  The  Bishop  of  Carlisle  (John  Best)  hath  often  complained 
to  me  for  want  of  preachers  for  his  diocese,  having  no  help  at 
all  of  his  cathedral  church.  Sir  Thomas  Smith  is  his  dean, 
occupied  in  the  Queen's  Majesty's  affairs,  as  ye  know.  All  his 
prebendaries  .  .  .  are  ignorant  priests,  or  old,  unlearned 
monks."  ^ 

Again,  about  the  year  1565,  in  the  diocese  of  Bangor,  then 
presided  over  by  Dr.  Rowland  Meyrick,  the  new  gospel  was 
evidently  making  but  little,  if  any,  progress,  and  the  salutary 
practice  of  good  works  even  less.  "  Many  of  the  churches  be 
utterly  closed."  "  Therein  there  be  neither  Word  nor  Sacra- 
ments." The  bishop,  though  a  Welshman,  was  very  unpopular, 
except  with  the  laxest  and  most  immoral  of  the  preachers,  for 

1  Petyt  MSS.,  No.  47,  folio  372,  in  the  Inner  Temple.  In  Parkhurst's 
Visitation  Articles  for  1 561,  under  the  head  of  "The  People  and  theyr  Duetie, " 
he  seems  active  enough  against  the  innovators,  and  asks  "  whether  any  man 
is  known  to  have  said  or  heard  masse,  sithens  it  was  abrogate  by  lawe  ;  and 
whether  any  man  maketh  any  singing  cakes  to  say  masse  withal,  reserveth 
vestments,  superaltaries,  masse-bookes,  or  other  instruments  of  this  super- 
sticion?" — Injiiiictions.     Printed  by  John  Day,  1561. 

^  Strype's  Annals,  vol.  i.  p.  539.     Oxford,  1S24. 

^  Lansdowne  MSS.,  British  Museum,  No.  vi.  folio  86.  Grindal  to  Cecil, 
27th  December  1563. 


122  THE   CHURCH   UNDER   QUEEN    ELIZABETH. 

he  seems  to  have  been  sorely  intent  on  both  contemplating  and 
grasping  things  temporal.  For  spiritual  concerns  he  showed 
but  little  interest.  He  is  reported  to  have  been  cringing  and 
abject  to  his  superiors,  always  lazy  and  indolent  in  himself,  and 
most  pompous,  overbeariiig,  and  tyrannical  to  those  beneath 
him.  His  lordship  was  evidently  more  indebted  to  the  new 
religion  than  the  new  religion  was  to  him.  This  diocese,  it  is 
put  on  record,  is  "  much  out  of  order,"  "  having  no  preaching 
there,  and  pensionary  concubinage  openly  continued."  ^ 

Nor  was  the  extensive  diocese  of  Lichfield  api)arently  more 
favoured.  It  suffered,  as  the  bishop  himself  admitted,  "  lament- 
able inconveniences  growing  to  the  Church  of  God  by  the 
insufficient  ministry."^  The  new  gospel,  which  the  old  clergy 
secretly  hated  and  despised,  had  not  as  yet  shed  many  bless- 
ings upon  the  cruelly-robbed  people  in  that  part  of  the  queen's 
dominion,  nor  could  the  religious  state  of  the  diocese  compare 
with  what  it  had  been  in  the  previous  century. 

On  June  ii,  1581,  Dr.  William  Overton,  Bishop  of  that  See, 
had,  he  asserted  in  writing,  the  stubbornest  diocese  in  all  this 
land,  and  a  clergy  the  most  unwilling  to  show  themselves  ready 
and  dutiful  in  any  good  service,  specially  if  it  touched  their  purse.^ 

The  chief  church  of  Coventry  had  been  long  ago  efficiently 
"reformed."  The  "robbers  of  churches"  had  gathered  in 
bands  and  flocks,  and  had  there  left  little  worth  taking.  Some 
writers  have  laid  this  and  similar  acts  of  destruction  to  the 
charge  of  those  who,  in  the  succeeding  century,  sided  with  the 
usurping  ruffian  Oliver  Cromwell.  But  it  was  certainly  effected 
under  Edward  VI.  and  Elizabeth.  Everything  of  great  value  in 
the  shape  of  gold  or  silver  ])late,  jewels,  MSB.,  and  rich  vest- 
ments, had  long  ago  vanished  under  the  rule  of  Protector 
Somerset.  The  vessels  of  latten,  brass,  and  white  metal — all 
savouring  of  superstition — had  already  been  devoutly  stolen,  so 
that  no  one  might  henceforth  sin  by  using  them.  Several  of  the 
bells  and  much  of  the  lead  had  been  removed.  The  rafters  and 
roof-boards  of  aisles  and  chantries  had  rotted;  rain  sometimes 
poured  in  on  to  the  pavements  ;  in  the  spring,  birds  built  their 
nests  above  the  wall-plates  ;  in  the  winter,  the  aisles  and  side 
chapel-floors  were  flooded  with  water;  while  green  lichen  andweeds 

^  Lansdowne  MSS.  British  Museum,  No.  viii.  folio  7S. 

-  "  To  help  ihc  lamentable  inconveniences  growing  to  the  Church  of  God 
by  the  insufficient  ministry,  they  are  not  only  to  be  sifted  which  are  already 
made  ministers,  but  also  a  diligent  care  and  foresight  is  to  be  used  that  only 
sufficient  men  be  admitted  to  that  function  hereafter." — Certain  "  Advertise- 
ments," by  William  Overton,  Bishop  of  Coventry,  a.d.  1584. 

^  Vide  State  Papers,  Domestic,  Elizabeth,  vol.  cxli.x.  p.  18. 


THE  np:w  diocese  of  oxford.  123 

soon  grew  luxuriantly  on  their  walls.  Certain  of  the  chapels 
were  thus  partially  roofless.  Yet  even  then  some  adventurous 
gospeller  with  a  sham  commission,  a  mere  poor  gleaner  in  a 
harvest-field  once  rich,  came  and  stole  all  the  remaining  brass.^ 

A  few  words  may  now  be  written  as  to  the  diocese  of  Oxford, 
one  of  the  new  Sees.  Henry  VIII.  had  intended  to  have  had 
it  styled  the  "  Bishoprick  of  Osney  and  Thame,"  after  two 
important  religious  houses  in  Oxfordshire  which  had  been 
suppressed.  But  the  abbey  churches  of  Osney  and  Thame  were 
soon  both  destroyed  ;  while  the  parish  church  of  Thame,  though 
of  prebendal  rank,  and  a  cruciform  and  dignified  building  of 
considerable  size  for  its  purpose,  was  inadequate.  So,  in  1546, 
the  bishoprick  had  a  seat  appointed  to  it  in  the  priory  church  of 
St.  Frideswide,  now  Christ  Church,  Oxford.  From  the  death  of 
Robert  King,  who  for  some  time  had  been  Abbot  of  Thame, 
with  the  title  of  Bishop  of  Rheon,  and  was  one  of  the  suffragans 
of  the  Bishop  of  Lincoln,  a  death  which  had  taken  place  in  the 
last  year  of  Queen  Mary's  reign,  until  the  year  1567,  the  See  of 
Oxford  had  been  kept  vacant ;  so  that  its  revenues  might  be 
utilised  in  serving  the  queen's  friends  or  bribing  her  enemies. 
On  the  14th  of  October  of  the  last-named  year,  Dr.  Hugh  Curwen, 
sometime  Archbishop  of  Dublin,  who,  like  other  of  the  Protestant 
])relates,  had  not  been  at  all  appreciated  in  Ireland,  was  ap- 
])ointed  to  the  See  of  Oxford;  but  he  died  within  a  year  of  his 
enthronisation.  It  then  remained  unfilled  for  the  long  period  of 
nearly  twenty-one  years,  when  Dr.  John  Underbill  was  conse- 
crated on  the  14th  of  December  1589.  The  poverty  of  this  See 
of  Oxford  ;  the  actual  difficulty  of  living ;  the  misery  of  many  of 
the  burdened  clergy ;  the  notable  fact  that  more  than  one 
hundred  and  ninety  benefices  had  been  unserved  for  nearly  a 
(juarter  of  a  century,  and  that  the  country  people,  some  not 
baptized,  were  untaught,  unfed,  and  often  buried  without 
Christian  rites,  depressed  his  lordship  so  seriously  that,  within 
two  years  and  a  half,  in  a  state  of  incurable  melancholy,  he  took 
to  his  bed,  and  passed  to  his  final  account.  So  that  the 
episcopal  seat  in  this  new  cathedral  of  Our  Blessed  Lady  and 
St.  Frideswide  was  filled  for  little  more  than  three  out  of  forty- 
six  years.     The  Spiritual   Governess    had   given   its  lands  and 

1  "The  pavement  of  Coventry  Church  is  almost  all  tomljstones  and  some 
very  ancient.  But  there  came  in  a  zealous  fellow,  with  a  counterfeit  com- 
mission, that,  for  avoiding  of  superstition,  hath  not  left  one  pennyworth, 
nor  one  pennybreadth,  of  brass  upon  the  tombs  of  all  the  inscriptions,  which 
had  been  many  and  cn^Wy ." — R rief  Virw  of  the  State  of  the  Church,  by  Sir 
John  Harington,  p.  85.      London,  1653. 


124         THE   CHURCH   UNDER   QUEEN    ELIZABETH. 

revenues  to  her  favourite,  the  Earl  of  Leicester;  after  whose 
death,  Lord  Essex,  another  favourite  secured  them  for  himself. 
Both  these  noblemen  so  spoiled  and  wasted  them,  that  there  was 
nothing  left  to  later  bishops  but  impropriations  and  a  dilapidated 
mansion  in  St.  Aldate's,  at  Oxford.  So  devastated  was  this  and 
other  new  Sees,  in  truth,  that  the  bishops  were  actually  obliged 
to  solicit  pecuniary  aid  from  the  rectors  and  vicars  of  their 
respective  dioceses  to  enable  them  to  furnish  their  episcopal 
residences. 

Within  a  single  century  of  Queen  EHzabeth's  death,  those  who 
admire  her  vigorous  policy  will  learn  with  satisfaction  and  thank- 
fulness that,  whether  true  or  false,  good  or  bad,  the  old  religion 
had  been  thereabouts  almost  entirely  rooted  and  stamped  out. 
Judging  from  a  "  Return  of  the  Popish  Recusants  for  the  County 
and  City  of  Oxford"  made  in  1706,^  they  might  then  be  easily 
numbered.  A  mere  handful,  no  one  could  pretend  to  fear  them. 
Mr.  Nathaniel  Bevan,  Vicar  of  North  Aston,  officially  reported 
that  one  Sutton,  "  supposed  to  be  the  priest,"  "  reads  mass  in 
my  parish  most  Sundays  and  holidays."  At  Somerton,  twenty- 
seven  persons  remained,  of  whom  the  vicar  wrote  :  "We  have 
probable  grounds  to  believe  that  they  meet  sometimes  for  their 
service  in  a  house  in  the  parish  ;  but  they  are  civil,  quiet,  and 
peaceable."  At  Whitchurch  there  was  only  one — Esquire  Hyde. 
At  another  parish  there  were  "two  old  women  only."  At  North 
Leigh,  near  Blenheim  Park,  "  Mary  Morris,  wife  of  a  day 
labourer,"  was  the  sole  representative  of  the  religion  of  William 
of  Wykeham.  At  Burford,  "  Elizabeth  Haines,  a  poor  sojourner  ; 
no  other."  At  Checkendon,  there  was  a  family  of  the  name  of 
Grimsditch  who  were  Catholics.  At  Sandford,  Esquire  Powell 
and  his  dependents  hkewise  clung  to  the  ancient  faith,  as  did 
the  Earl  and  Countess  of  Kildare  at  Caversham,  together  with 
the  knightly  family  of  the  Curzons  of  Waterperry,  and  a  few 
more.  However  persons  may  shrink  from  approving  the  policy 
of  Elizabeth's  advisers,  they  cannot  deny  that,  by  the  aid  of  fine, 
imprisonment,  knife,  halter,  and  torture-chamber,  it  thus  turned 
out  a  complete  and  triumphant  success  ;  for  the  solitude  had 
been  made,  the  peace  was  secured.  With  some  persons,  the 
selfish  and  the  shallow,  success  is  a  certain  test  of  truth. 

The  actual  state  of  affairs  in  the  diocese  of  St.  David's  likewise 
may  be  tolerably  well  gleaned  from  certain  "Injunctions  to  be 
observed  and  kept,"  ^  issued  to  the  clergy  of  his   diocese  by 

'  To  be  seen  in  the  Diocesan  Registry  at  Oxford. 

-  The  original  of  these,  printed  in  15S3,  can  be  seen  in  a  large  and  curious 
collection  of  such  documents  in  the  Bodleian  Library  at  Oxford. 


BISHOP   INIARMADUKE   MIDDLETON.  1 25 

Middleton,  Bishop  of  that  See,  in  1583.  Judging  them  from 
a  Christian  stand-point,  it  is  not  easy  to  determine  whether 
their  heresy  or  profanity  be  their  most  notable  feature. 

This  man,  Marmaduke  Middleton,  a  person  remarkable  for 
nothing  in  particular,  had  been  made  Bishop  of  Waterford,  in 
Ireland,  in  1579,  by  Letters  Patent.  No  canonical  election  had 
ever  taken  place,  and  there  seems  to  be  some  doubt  whether  he 
had  ever  received  episcopal  consecration  of  any  sort  or  kind.^ 
Four  years  afterwards,  like  other  Protestant  prelates,  who  had 
laboured  in  vain,  if  they  had  laboured  at  all,  he  found  that 
Ireland  was  no  fitting  place  for  him,  as  the  "gospel"  he  pro- 
claimed was  there  repudiated  with  scorn ;  so,  after  the  death  of 
Richard  Davies,  Bishop  of  St.  David's,  on  November  7,  1581, 
he  begged  for  that  vacated  See,  and  in  the  following  year,  with 
Burghley's  sanction,  was  appointed  to  it.  Within  twelve  months 
he  issued  a  large  series  of  Visitation  Articles,  or  Injunctions, 
from  which  much  exact  information  may  be  gained  as  to  his 
actual  goings-on.  He  persecuted  with  vigour  those  who  clung 
to  the  old  faith  ;  he  was  a  profound,  intelligent,  and  obsequious 
Erastian  ;  he  destroyed  several  churches  and  built  none  ;  and  at 
the  end  of  ten  years  was  called  to  his  account. 

These  "  Injunctions"  are  worthy  of  careful  study.  They  con- 
tain his  lordship's  sage  and  mature  directions,  and  as  must  be 
allowed,  are  quite  free  from  any  taint  of  superstition.  In  the 
administration  of  the  Sacrament  of  Baptism,  trine  immersion 
and  trine  affusion  were  each  distinctly  forbidden  by  them.  No 
chrisom-cloth  was  to  be  used  ;  the  godfathers  were  not  allowed 
to  touch  the  child's  head  as  heretofore;  for  Bishop  Middleton, 
as  he  was  careful  to  explain,  discountenanced  the  ancient  but 
erroneous  idea  that  there  was  any  "virtue  or  hidden  mystery"  in 
baptism  ;  and  desired,  as  a  godly  exercise,  in  the  new  method  of 
baptizing,  that  all  young  sponsors  should  "sale  the  whole 
Catechisme,"  and  "make  an  open  confession  at  the  font  of  the 
articles  of  their  faith,"  before  assuming  that  office  and  duty. 
Lay  baptism  he  distinctly  disallowed. 

All  the  old  ceremonies  of  the  mass,  and  especially  consecra- 
tion, were  likewise  deliberately  forbidden.  The  minister  was 
neither  to  handle,  bless,  lift  up,  consecrate,  nor  show  to  the 
people,  the  bread  and  wine,  but  to  "let  it  lie  upon  the  table 
until  the  distribution  thereof."     He  was  to  act  exactly  "accord- 

1  It  is  only  fair  to  the  late  Archdeacon  Cotton  to  state  that  he  believed 
himself  to  be  in  possession  of  indirect  evidence  of  Middleton's  consecration. 
See  also  on  the  other  side,  The  Episcopal  Succession,  etc.,  by  Dr.  Maziere 
Brady,  vol.  i.  p.  351.      Rome,  1876. 


126         TIIK   CHURCH    UNDER   QUEEN    ELIZABETH. 

ing  to  the  orders  of  the  Book  [of  Common  Prayer]  without  any 
addition  or  detraction."  In  this,  of  course,  the  manual  actions 
had  been  dehberately  omitted.^  No  one  was  under  any  circum- 
stances to  remain  either  in  church  or  chancel  unless  an  actual 
communicant,  prepared  then  and  there  to  communicate  ;  for  this 
likewise  savoured  of  the  "  abominable  and  vain "  custom  of 
hearing  mass ;  and  if  any  stubborn  or  obstinate  person  kneeling 
on  his  knees,  knocking  his  breast,  or  devoutly  saying  his  prayers, 
proposed  to  remain,  and  would  not  depart  when  c^uietly  ordered 
out  of  church,  the  presiding  minister  was,  with  no  consideration  for 
the  expectant  or  the  hungry,  to  stop  the  whole  proceedings  at  once 
without  further  ado,  and  then  summon  the  "troubler  of  God's 
divine  service" — the  ignorant  person  who,  believing  in  the  efficacy 
of  prayer,  i)rayed — before  the  judge  of  the  local  Consistory  Court. 
The  officiating  joarson  himself  was  enjoined  to  stand  always  in 
the  "bodie  of  the  church,  or  in  the  lower  end  of  the  chancel, 
with  his  face  invariably  turned  unto  the  people."  Turnings 
about  were  solemnly  discountenanced.  The  use  of  a  low  voice 
or  mumbling,  as  it  was  contemptuously  called,  was  expressly 
forbidden.  The  "  mass-mongers  "  had  mumbled  ;  so  by  way  of 
contrast  the  minister  was  expected  to  bellow  or  bawl.  He  was 
to  use  a  loud  voice,  or  as  loud  as  he  could  make  it, — for  "  faith 
cometh  by  hearing,"'-^  and  never  to  go  near  the  Communion 
board  unless  there  was  an  actual  Communion ;  for  such  custom, 
to  use  the  bishop's  own  profane  language,  "doth  retain  a 
memorie  of  the  idolatrous  masse."  ^  To  avoid  even  the  appear- 
ance of  anything  so  heinous  during  the  ante-Communion  service, 
he  was  to  stand  in  his  own  seat  or  pulpit  and  nowhere  else, 
"  wMth  his  face  turned  down  towards  the  people ; "  and  he  was, 
moreover,  to  take  special  care  that  the  board  and  tressels 
remained  wholly  unadorned,  in  their  plain  and  severe  simplicity. 
No  linen  cloth  *  was  to  be  laid  upon  the  Communion  Table,  and 
no  other  covering  ordinarily ;  and,  when  the  tressels  and  board 
were  done  with,  when  the  ante-Communion  prayers  were  ended, 

^  This  omi.^sion,  perfLClly  intentional,  was  entirely  in  harmony  with  tlie 
opinions  of  Elizabeth's  bishops,  who  had  adopted  the  Second  Prayer-Book. 

-  This  text  was  actually  quoted  as  a  justification  for  shouting  out  the 
prayers. 

■'  This  custom  was  almost  universal  throughout  Eni^land  up  to  the  period 
of  the  commencement  of  the  Oxford  movement,  except  perhaps  in  cathedrals 
and  colleges.  Thus  chancels,  when  large  and  long,  often  stood  disused  and 
deserted. 

■*  "No  linen  cloths  called  altar  cloths,  and  before  used  about  masses,  be 
laid  upon  the  Communion  Table,  but  that  new  be  provided." — Grindal's 
Register,  suh  anno  1572. 


FUNERAL   CEREMONIES.  12/ 

or  when  the  sacred  meal  was  over,  they  were  to  be  removed  "to 
the  upper  end  of  the  raised  chauncell.'' 

Again,  when  any  woman  gave  thanks  to  God  for  her  safe 
dehvery,  neither  she,  when  making  her  offering,  nor  the  midwife 
who  accompanied  her,  were  "to  kiss  the  Communion  boarde," 
a  very  old  Catholic  custom,  common  in  many  parts  of  England, 
of  old  ;  and  almost  universal  abroad. 

As  regards  ceremonials  at  funerals,  those  expressive  rites 
which  the  Church  of  God  had  ever  made  so  solemn  and  hallow- 
ing, blessing  and  benefiting  all  who  took  part  in  them,  no 
hand-bell  was  henceforth  to  be  rung  throughout  the  diocese  of 
St.  David,  no  oblations  were  to  be  offered,  "no  prayers  for  the 
dead  were  to  be  made " — the  exact  words  of  this  episcopal 
heretic  are  quoted — "either  in  the  house  or  upon  the  way,  or 
elsewhere  "  :  practices  which,  it  appears,  had  been  too  frequently 
and  universally  tolerated  by  the  clergy  of  this  diocese  up  to 
the  time  of  Middleton's  unwelcome  arrival.  Month's-minds  or 
year's-minds  were  absolutely  prohibited.  All  "popish  supersti- 
tion" was  to  be  given  up.  A  practice  of  the  communion  of 
saints  was  thus  authoritatively  forbidden  and  cast  out.  Again, 
if  strange  ministers  came  to  pay  their  respects  to  the  memory  of 
any  departed  Welshman,  they  were  not  to  array  themselves  in 
rochets  or  surplices,  nor  to  carry  lighted  candles  or  torches,  nor 
to  place  any  wax  tapers  on  or  near  the  corpse  whilst  it  was  in 
the  church.  If  they  prayed  at  all,  they  were  to  pray  not  for  the 
person  departed ,  but  for  themselves,  a  form  of  selfishness 
peculiarly  repulsive  on  such  an  occasion.  A  short  peal  was  to 
be  rung  both  before  and  after  the  funeral ;  and  then  the  people 
were  to  depart  without  adding  any  ancient  Catholic  prayers  of 
their  own,  or  anything  w^hich  resembled  them.  Wooden  crosses 
were  not  to  be  erected,  as  had  been  so  long  the  custom,  and  was 
common,  where  the  corpse  had  rested  on  its  way  to  its  last 
earthly  home  ;  while  the  putting-up  of  "  crosses  of  wood  "  in  the 
churchyard  "  upon  or  about  the  grave  "  was  also  distinctly  for- 
bidden. Hence,  until  quite  recent  times,  no  cross  was  ever 
found  placed  at  the  head  of  a  grave.  Almost  all  churchyard 
crosses  were  broken,  though  sometimes  the  shaft  remained. 

Moreover  (and  here  the  actual  words  are  quoted),  "  Images, 
pictures,  and  al  monuments  of  fained  miracles,  as  well  in  walles, 
as  in  glasse  wdndowes  [shall]  be  defaced  ;  and  namely  [i.e.  par- 
ticularly] the  Image  of  the  Crucifixe^  and  the  two  Maries  in  the 

^  It  has  always  seemed  to  the  author  quite  an  incomprehensible  mystery 
why  these  "  Reformers"  displayed  so  satanic  a  hatred  of  the  crucifix  and  of 
representations  of  the  crucifixion. 


128  THE   CHURCH    UNDER   QUEEN    ELIZABETH. 

chauncell  windowes."  Pictures  of  the  queen  herself,  together 
with  gorgeous  representations  of  Her  Majesty's  heraldric  achieve- 
ment, were  alone  allowed  by  way  of  internal  decorations.  Later 
on,  when  Christian  sacraments  had  been  dragged  down  to  the 
level  of  Jewish  types  of  the  same,  representations  of  Moses  and 
Aaron  were  admitted.  All  rood-screens  likewise  were  to  be 
pulled  down. 

With  regard  to  questions  of  living,  morals,  and  theological 
duties,  it  was  enjoined  that  those  ministers  who  had  previously 
kept  inns,  taverns,  or  "  victuallying  houses  "  were  to  give  them 
up,  learn  to  read  better  and  more  intelligibly,  and  stick  to  the 
study  of  BuUinger's  "Decades"  or  the  published  "Homilies," 
which  were  so  plain  spoken,  spirited,  and  impressive.  Nor  were 
these  ministerial  worthies,  who,  never  having  themselves  learnt, 
were  now  commissioned  to  teach,  ever  to  play  at  dice,  cards, 
tables,  or  bowls.  Four  times  a  year,  with  a  loud  voice  and  in 
an  impressive  manner,  they  were  to  read  out  in  church  the 
"  Queen's  Majestie's  Injunctions."  They  were,  furthermore,  to 
possess  no  books  of  divinity  except  such  as  had  been  specially 
recommended  and  approved  by  their  bishop;  nor  was  any  man 
to  have  two  wives,  or  any  woman  to  have  two  husbands — one  of 
his  lordship's  most  practical  and  important  provisions — for  gross 
looseness  of  morals  had  too  speedily  followed  upon  misbelief 
and  grave  laxity  of  doctrine. 

From  Wales  let  us  now  pass  to  Lincolnshire,  the  chief  part  of 
one  of  the  most  important  dioceses  of  England. 

The  old  diocese  of  Lincoln,  then  as  now,  embraced  more  than 
one  county  and  a  large  tract  of  land,  perhaps  but  sparsely 
populated.  It  took  in  the  whole  of  the  central  part  of  eastern 
England,  from  Barton-upon-Humber  and  Great  Grimsby  in  the 
north,  to  Oowland  and  Market  Deeping  in  the  south,  with  the 
Isle  of  Axholme  and  the  county  of  Nottingham.  As  early  as  the 
reign  of  William  Rufus,  St.  Remigius,  the  devoted  Bishop  of 
Dorchester-upon-Thame,  in  Oxfordshire,  had,  for  good  and  suffi- 
cient reasons,  removed  his  See  from  a  sacred  spot,  well  wooded 
and  watered,  where  the  junction  of  two  ancient  rivers  is  made, 
to  a  fortified  place  in  the  north-east — the  present  ancient  and 
interesting  city  of  Lincoln.  St.  Hugh  the  Carthusian,  and 
Alexander  the  Munificent,  by  their  charitable  labours,  had  each 
left  their  impress  upon  the  devout  and  reverent  people  under 
them ;  while  those  parts  of  Oxfordshire  and  Buckinghamshire 
which  in  previous  generations  had  perhaps  owned  Dorchester  as 
their  mother  Church  henceforth  turned  to  the  important  See  of 
Lincoln,  as  a  child  turns  to  its  i)arcnt,  for  guidance  and  aid. 


THE    DIOCESE   OF   LINCOLN.  1 29 

The  city  itself  must  have  been  once  fair  and  beautiful  in  the 
sight  of  God  and  the  holy  angels ;  for  there,  independent  of  the 
glorious  and  richly-furnished  cathedral  of  Our  Lady  and  St. 
Hugh,  which  towered  over  weald  and  wold,  no  less  than  fifty-two 
parish  churches,^  with  all  their  efficient  machinery, — their  rich 
altars  and  lighted  lamps,  their  means  of  grace  for  the  unre- 
generate,  and  their  angel's  food  for  the  pious  wayfarer, — stood 
around  and  about  that  majestic  sanctuary,  calling  people  by  open 
door  and  pleasant  chime  to  worship  and  prayer,  and  silently 
reminding  them  ever  of  the  unseen  world,  its  beauty  and  its 
peace. 

Throughout  the  shire,  all  around,  northward,  eastward,  and 
westward, — dotted  here  and  there  amid  clumps  of  trees,  or 
where  willows  marked  out  the  tortuous  way  of  some  sluggish 
stream,  or  nestling  under  some  green  slope, — rose  spire  or  tower 
or  stunted  bell-cote  of  many  a  village  fane.  Throughout 
Lincolnshire,  prior  to  the  sixteenth-century  changes,  no  less  than 
a  hundred  and  eight  religious  houses  had  long  been  centres  of 
light  and  life  to  a  people  who  appreciated  and  valued  them.  Of 
these  the  more  celebrated  were  the  abbeys  of  Barlings  and 
Bardney,  Swineshead  and  Croyland,  with  the  notable  priory  of 
Sempringham,  where  St.  Gilbert  had  so  often  prayed. 

The  Knights  Templars  had  owned  five  houses,  which  were 
suppressed  and  destroyed ;  while  no  less  than  fourteen  hospitals, 
where  the  corporal  works  of  mercy  had  long  been  charitably 
practised  to  the  great  benefit  of  the  poor,  shared  a  similar  fate. 
Those  persons  who  had  been  subservient  to  King  Henry  VHI., 
those  who  in  the  succeeding  reign  had  actively  supported 
Protector  Somerset  and  his  policy,  and  those  who  later  on  were 
secret  and  sure  allies  of  Cecil  and  Walsingham,  had  secured  a 
considerable  share  of  the  various  spoils.  Such  gained  a  few 
things  here,  if  they  lost  more  hereafter.  Many  ancient  families, 
impoverished  by  the  disastrous  Wars  of  the  Roses,  to  their 
eternal  shame,  consented  to  acquiesce  in  the  unhappy  changes 
carried  out,  on  condition  of  being  allowed  to  participate  in  the 
lands  and  manors  stolen  from  the  religious  communities. 

Under  Edward  VL,  as  is  well  known,  much  had  been  done 
in  many  parts  of  England  to  strip  the  parish  churches  of  their 
ornaments  and  treasures.  On  the  15th  of  February  1549,  Com- 
missioners had  been  despatched  in  all  directions  to  find  out 
exacdy  what  still  existed  of  value,  and  to  take  inventories  of  the 
same.  Two  years  afterwards,  other  commissions  were  issued  to 
do  a  similar  work;  and,  again,  two  years  later,  in  May  1553, 
^  Now  there  are  but  fifteen. 
I 


I30         THE   CHURCH    UNDER   QUEEN    ELIZABETH. 

a  fresh  set  of  inquisitors  was  sent  about  to  different  dioceses 
on  a  like  errand.  These  Commissioners  were  even  then  most 
unpopular. 

The  people  in  general  were  Catholic,  and  saw  with  horror  and 
dismay  the  churches  of  the  Most  High  plundered,  desecrated, 
and  rendered  utterly  destitute  of  any  kind  of  religious  worship  or 
service.^  The  bells  of  the  churches  were  never  rung;  the  doors 
seldom  opened.  Parsonages  were  in  ruins.  It  was  in  vain, 
however,  at  that  time  that  Humphrey  Arundell,  the  valiant 
Cornish  soldier,  rose  in  defence  of  the  faith,  in  his  wild  western 
country,  and  in  the  name  of  some  hundreds  petitioned  for  an 
immediate  restoration  of  the  abolished  mass ;  for  the  ancient 
rites  and  the  old  religion.  In  Berks,  Hants,  and  Oxfordshire  - 
the  people  likewise  rose  in  a  fury  to  defend  their  parish  churches  ; 
so  that  the  Commissioners  on  several  occasions  slunk  away  in 
fear  and  dismay,  terrified  at  the  intensifying  opposition.  But  a 
recent  Act  against  unlawful  and  rebellious  assemblies  ^  was 
.speedily  put  into  operation  ;  and  men  were  thus  warned  that  the 
king,  their  sovereign  lord,  charged  and  commanded  them  to 
disperse  themselves,  and  peaceably  depart  to  their  habitations 
and  to  their  lawful  business,  under  the  pains  and  perils  of  the 
Act.     If  more  than  twelve  persons  assembled  they  were  liable 

^  "Great  endeavours  were  also  made  in  this  Synod  for  the  mending  the 
poor  and  bare  condition  of  vicarages,  many  of  which  were  of  so  small 
revenue,  that  abundance  of  parishes  were  utterly  destitute  of  ministers,  to 
assist  the  people  in  their  serving  of  God,  and  to  instruct  them  in  spiritual 
knowledge  for  the  edification  of  their  souls.  vSo  that  there  was  no  small 
apprehension  that  in  time  a  great  part  of  the  nation  would  become  pagans. 
Besides,  to  render  the  condition  of  small  livings  more  deplorable,  the 
pensions  that  were  due  to  religious  persons,  and  allowed  them  for  their  lives 
when  their  houses  were  dissolved,  seemed  to  have  been  by  patrons  charged 
upon  their  livings,  when  themselves  ought  to  have  paid  them.  And 
commonly  poor  ministers,  when  they  came  into  livings,  were  burdened  with 
payment  of  divers  years'  tenths  and  subsidies  that  were  payable  by  former 
incumbents.  There  seemed  now  also  to  be  some  that  put  the  queen  upon 
taking  a  new  survey  of  all  ecclesiastical  livings,  pretending  that  thereby  the 
values  of  first-fruits  and  tenths  would  be  considerably  advanced  to  her,  to  the 
further  oppression  of  the  needy  clergy." — Strype's  Annals,  vol.  i.  pp.  512,  513. 
Oxford,  1824. 

-  In  this  county  the  old  families  of  Simeon  of  Brightwell,  Dormer  of 
Thame  and  Ascot,  Davey  of  Dorchester,  Wolfe  of  Ilaselcy,  Browne  (after- 
wards) baronets  of  Kiddington,  Curzon  of  Waterperry,  Phillips  of  Thame 
and  Ickford  (Bucks),  and  many  others  were  warm  defenders  of  the  ancient 
faith.  At  the  close  of  Elizabeth's  reign  three  distinguished  priests,  Francis 
Harcourt,  Anthony  Greenaway,  and  Roger  Lee,  all  belonging  to  knightly 
families  of  Oxfordshire,  and  all  connections  of  each  other,  were  in  the 
forefront  as  regards  their  prayers  and  labours  for  Catholic  Chiistianiiy. 

^  3  and  4  Edward  VL,  cap.  5. 


PUNISHMENTS   FOR   ALL   WHO   RESISTED   CHANGES.     I31 

to  punishment.  Though  they  demanded  a  restoration  of  the  old 
religion  of  their  forefathers,  and  the  rites  and  ceremonies  of 
bygone  times,  of  which  they  reasonably  enough  felt  the  loss, 
their  demands  were  not  only  contemptuously  disregarded,  but 
they  were  at  once  tried  as  rebels,  soon  found  guilty,  and  speedily 
enough  "  strung  up," — as  the  brief  and  expressive  phrase  stood, — 
as  a  punishment  for  their  inconvenient  and  fanatical  attachment 
to  the  ancient  faith ;  and  as  a  warning  to  others  who  might  be 
secretly  attached  to  it,  that  if  they  ventured  actively  to  resist 
the  innovators  in  authority  they  would  similarly  and  sharply 
suffer. 

All  this,  of  course,  was  well  and  accurately  enough  remembered 
on  all  sides.  The  issue  was  quite  evident.  Those  who  lifted  up 
their  voices  for  God  and  His  truth  knew  plainly  enough  what 
they  had  to  expect.  The  least  resistance  to  constituted  authority 
would  at  once  merit  the  strictest  and  severest  punishment. 
Judges  and  bishops  prated  about  "the  law";  while  justice  was 
dethroned  and  true  religion  was  being  strangled.  And  though 
news  travelled  slowly  in  those  days,  when  conveyances  were 
lumbering,  bridges  few,  and  roads  impassable ;  yet  the  Lincoln- 
shire gentlepeople  and  the  sturdy  yeoman  of  the  wolds  knew  too 
well  what  lay  in  store  for  them,  if  they  should  dare  to  oppose  the 
triumphant  policy  of  Elizabeth's  chief  advisers.  The  dark  doom 
of  the  Abbot  of  Barlings,  in  the  days  of  the  first  pilgrimage  of 
grace,  had  not  been  forgotten  ;  for,  by  the  side  of  many  a 
Lincolnshire  hearth,  when  the  days  were  drawing  in,  had  been 
frequently  recited  the  vigorous  and  stirring  ballads  which  so 
properly  commemorated  that  prelate's  strong  faith  and  noble 
self-sacrifice. 

When,  therefore,  the  high-principled  adherents  of  the  old 
religion  had  been  silenced,  either  by  imprisonment,  fines, 
persecution,  or  expatriation ;  and  when,  for  the  sake  of  peace 
and  quietness,  the  weak-kneed  and  cowardly  were  quite  known 
to  be  unlikely  to  make  any  resistance  ;  the  work  of  destruction, 
carefully  planned,  was  most  efficiently  carried  out  in  the  diocese 
of  Lincoln.  All  the  ancient  clergy  of  any  note  or  influence  had 
been  put  out  of  the  way.  Bishop  Watson,  the  chief  pastor  of 
that  flock,  could  do  little  or  nothing  but  pray,  and  hope  for 
better  days ;  for  he  was  safe  and  secure  in  prison.  Nicholas 
Bullingham,  one  of  the  ministers  who  had  been  present  at  the 
inauguration  of  the  new  hierarchy,  when  Matthew  Parker  was 
consecrated,  had  been  himself  subsequently  elevated  to  the 
episcopate  in  the  month  of  January  1560,  by  Parker  and  others  ; 
and,  having  by  the  queen's  authority  usurped  the  place  of  his 


132  THE   CHURCH    UNDER   QUEEN    ELIZABETH. 

betters, — come  into  the  fold  in  fact  by  some  other  way, — now 
ruled  at  Lincoln,  with  the  sanction  and  under  the  special  and 
direct  patronage  of  the  Supreme  Governess.  If  heresy  be 
opposition  to  the  Catholic  faith,  and  sacrilege  be  sinful,  then 
BuUingham's  words  and  tactics  certainly  merit  an  application  of 
those  terms  to  him.  It  would  be  a  distasteful  word  of  super- 
erogation, condemned  by  the  Thirty-nine  Articles,^  to  set  forth 
in  detail  the  theological  propositions  by  Avhich  Bishop  Bulling- 
ham  recommended  his  new  gosi)el  to  the  acceptance  of  the 
Lincolnshire  peasantry.  He  and  Jewell  and  Bale  and  Pilking- 
ton,  with  Sandys  and  Grindal,  were  the  burning  and  shining 
lights  of  the  new  system,  and  the  coarse-languaged  evangehsts  of 
another  gospel.  ^Vhat  took  place  under  his  rule  in  the  work  of 
what  was  styled  "  Reform "  —  comprised  in  a  duly-recorded 
document  of  melancholy  interest — will  best  be  shown  and  more 
accurately  apprehended  than  by  any  study  of  the  "  Decades,"  or 
by  any  perusal  of  his  existing  manuscript  letters.  No  more 
frightful  record  of  deliberate  sacrilege  and  savage  profanity  could 
be  found,  either  on  parchment  or  paper,  amongst  the  records  of 
any  civilised  country. 

This  work  of  destruction  had  been  begun  in  1566,  under  the 
special  direction  of  Dr.  John  Aylmer,  then  Archdeacon  of 
Lincoln,  but  eleven  years  afterwards,  i.e.  in  1577,  Bishop  of 
London.  The  various  acts  performed  were  not  the  result  of  a 
sudden  burst  of  maniacal  fury,  on  the  part  of  an  ignorant  and 
brutalised  populace,  maddened  by  previous  sufferings,  or  spurred 
on  to  violence  and  reprisals  by  unjust  persecution  ;  but  they  were 
deeds  done  calmly  and  coolly  -  at  the  express  direction  of  those 
who  perhaps  may  have  believed  themselves  in  a  special  manner 
to  have  been  the  living  agents  of  the  incarnate  Son  of  God ;  and 
who  certainly  were  the  appointed  officers  of  a  royal  lady  who,  at 

'  See  Article  xiv.  Of  Works  of  Supererogation. 

2  Mr.  Edward  Peacock  thus  thoughtfully  writes  : — "  It  requires  an  cfTort  to 
place  ourselves,  in  imagination  even,  in  the  same  position  of  affectionate 
reverence  for  mere  articles  of  furniture — silk  and  gold,  brass  and  stone — as 
our  forefathers  ;  but  let  us  remember  that  the  vestments  thus  wantonly  cut  up 
into  hosen  and  cushions,  or  made  into  costumes  for  strolling  ])layers,  were 
the  solemnly  blessed  garments  in  whicli  they  had  seen  their  priests  celebrate 
the  Great  .Sacrifice  of  the  Catholic  Church  ;  that  the  altar  slabs  thus  used  as 
fire-backs  and  bridges  had  l)een  dedicated  by  episcopal  unction  and  the  relics 
of  the  saints,  and  had  received  the  far  higher  consecration  of  being  the 
appointed  place  whereon  that  same  sacrifice  was  consummated  ;  that  the 
rood  was  to  them  the  visilile  representation  of  their  God — of  Him  who  had 
(lied  for  them  on  Calvary,  and  who,  with  hands,  feet,  and  side  pierced  as 
they  saw  Him  there,  would,  as  they  believed,  come  ere  long  in  glory  and 
terror  to  judge  the  universe.     The  bells  that  profane  persons  hung  to  the 


REFORMS    IN    LINCOLNSHIRE.  1 33 

her  coronation,  had  openly  professed  the  CathoHc  rehgion, 
received  the  Sacrament  of  the  Altar  under  one  kind,  and  who 
had  then  solemnly  pledged  herself  in  the  face  of  the  nation  to 
maintain  the  ancient  faith. 

The  destruction  and  desolation  thus  caused  by  authority, 
carried  out  in  cold  blood,  with  preparation,  resolution,  and 
success,  can  now  scarcely  be  imagined  ;  nor,  from  a  religious 
])oint  of  view,  can  the  dead  and  miserable  state  of  affairs,  which 
speedily  ensued  be  easily  conceived.  What  had  taken  place  in 
the  diocese  of  Lincoln,  so  far  as  regards  about  a  hundred  and 
fifty  parish  churches,  can  still,  however,  be  tolerably  well  realised 
from  the  careful  study  of  a  volume  ^  edited  with  care  and  judg- 
ment by  a  very  competent  hand,  and  which  is  mainly  the  reprint 
of  an  original  "Inventory  of  the  Monuments  of  Superstition," 
the  document  referred  to,  preserved  amongst  the  miscellaneous 
papers  of  the  Episcopal  Registry  at  Lincoln, — with  interesting 
and  copious  footnotes  and  most  valuable  appendices  added. 

It  was  not  enough,  as  the  manuscript  in  question  so  plainly 
shows,  that  the  altars  were  ordered  to  be  utterly  taken  down  and 
destroyed, — which  was  done  to  the  dismay  and  amazement  of  a 
large  majority  of  the  people,  who  were  awestruck  by  the  punish- 
ment with  which  those  were  threatened  who  actively  interfered 
in  behalf  of  the  ancient  rites, — but  the  sacred  cross-marked  slabs, 
which  had  been  duly  blessed  in  God's  name,  with  consecrated 
chrism,  were  to  be  purposely  and  deliberately  profaned.  To  lay 
them  down  in  the  church  porch  or  middle  aisle,  so  that  the 
people  on  entering  were  compelled  to  tread  upon  them,  was  not, 
in  Archdeacon  Aylmer's  opinion,  a  use  sufficiently  "common" 
or  profane  ;  so  certain  of  them  were  sometimes  placed  as  steps 
leading  to  the  nearest  pig-stye,  or  even  put  to  a  more  infamous 
and  disgusting  use — too  disgusting  to  refer  to  more  particularly  : 
and   this  under  the  direct  official  authority  of  the  Primate  of 

harness  of  their  horses  had  been  borne  before  the  priest  through  many  a 
crowd  of  kneehng  villagers  when  the  Blessed  Sacrament  was  carried  from  its 
resting-place  over  the  altar  to  the  bedside  of  the  sick  and  the  dying.  The 
banners,  the  hearse,  the  lights,  and  almost  every  article  of  the  Church's  furni- 
ture, were  connected  in  their  minds  with  the  solemn  funeral  services,  which, 
in  their  plaintive  melody,  show  forth  more  fully  than  anything  else  that  is  left 
to  us  the  wistful  longing  of  the  faithful  here  for  the  kingdom  where  sickness 
and  death,  marrying  and  giving  in  marriage,  and  all  other  sorrows  and  joys 
of  this  phenomenal  existence,  shall  have  passed  away." — English  Church 
Furniture,  etc.,  edited  by  E.  Peacock,  F. S.A.,  pp.  21,  22.      London,  1866. 

^  English  Church  Furniture,  Ornantents,  and  Decoration  at  the  Period  of 
the  Reformation,  as  exhibited  in  a  List  of  Goods  destroyed  in  certaiii  Lincoln- 
shire Churches,  A.D.  1566.  Edited  by  Edward  Peacock,  F.  S.A.  London, 
1866. 


134         THE   CHURCH    UNDER   QUEEN    ELIZABETH. 

England^  and  Dr.  Nicholas  BuUingham,  the  intruded  "  Bishop 
of  Lincoln." 

A  mere  brief  abstract,  with  a  few  startling  examples  of  what 
was  actually  done  in  detail,  must  now  be  set  forth  with  care. 
For  after  a  study  of  this,  the  romance-writers  of  the  Reformation 
may  henceforth  write  in  vain.  Most  of  the  recorded  inventories 
are  alike,  both  in  form  and  phraseology ;  the  destruction  being 
systematic  and  complete.  Every  trace  of  the  old  religion,  its 
mystic  sacrifice  and  solemn  rites,  was  carefully  removed ;  while 
the  language  employed,  relating  to  the  ancient  solemnities  and 
their  ornamenta^  was  violent,  contemptuous,  and  coarse,  as  will 
be  too  clearly  seen. 

At  Ashby,  near  Sleaford,-  as  may  be  read,  the  images  of  the 
rood  were  burnt,  and  the  altar-stones  used  to  pave  the  church. 
At  Aslacbie  "  the  Mass-books,  the  processioners,  the  manual,  and 
all  such  peltrie  of  the  Pope's  sinfull  service,  was  made  away,  torn, 
and  defixccd  in  the  second  or  third  year  of  Our  Sovereign  Lady 
that  now  is."  The  same  was  the  case  at  Ashwardbie.  Here 
"all  the  Mass-books  and  all  books  of  papistrie  were  torn  in 
pieces,  and  sold  to  pedlars  to  lap  spice  in."  At  Bardney,  the 
old  priest,  Sir  Robert  Cambridge,  had  removed  the  service-books  ; 
but  the  candlesticks  and  other  ornaments  were  broken  and  sold. 
The  altar-stones  of  the  church  of  Barkeston  were  put  to  profane 
uses,  having  been  laid  down  in  pavement  at  the  town  bridge, 
while  the  holy-water  vat  was  turned  into  a  vessel  for  milk.  At 
Belton,  in  the  Isle  of  Axholme,  a  representation  in  alabaster  of 
All  Saints,  with  "divers  other  idolls,"  were  cut  in  pieces,  burnt, 
and  defaced.  What  the  churchwardens  profanely  call  "a 
sepulchre,  with  little  Jack," — i.e.  the  Blessed  Sacrament, — had 
been  smashed  a  year  ago,  "but  little  Jack  was  broken  in  peces 
this  yeare  by  the  said  churchwardens."  Here,  too,  the  altar 
cloths  were  said  to  be  "rotting  in  pieces  in  the  bottom  of  a 
cheste."  At  Bichfield,  the  torn-down  altar-stones  had  been 
])laced  on  Broad  Bridge  to  bear  up  the  bank.  At  Billingborough, 
the  churchwardens  certified  to  Bishop  BuUingham  that  "all  the 
trumpery  and  popish  ornaments  were  sold  and  defaced,  so  that 
there  rcmaincth  no  superstitious  monument  within  our  parish 
church."  The  sacring-bell  of  Burton  Goggles  Church  had  been 
given  to  William  Eland,  who  contem])tuously  hung  it  by  his 
horse's  ear.     At  Bomnbie,  the  j)i.\  had  been  used  for  a  salt-cellar  ; 

1  "The  churchwardens  shall  see  that  the  altar-stones  be  broken,  rlefaced, 
and  bestowed  to  some  coininon  use." — Injunctions  of  Edimmd  Grindal,  1571. 
London  :  William  Serres. 

^  For  details,  see  pp.  29-171  of  Mr.  Peacock's  important  volume. 


DESTRUCTION   OF   CHURCH   ORNAMENTS.  1 35 

while  at  Botheby,  when  Archdeacon  x\ylmer  held  his  visitation, 
the  rood-loft  had  been  sold  to  one  Richard  Longland,  church- 
warden, who  made  a  bridge  of  it  by  which  his  cattle  might  reach 
their  pasture.  The  altar-stone  was  disposed  of  to  Mr.  Francis 
Pennell,  who  made  a  fire-hearth  of  it.  At  Braughton  two  pixes 
which  held  the  Sacrament  had  been  given  as  playthings  to  a 
child ;  while  at  Braunceton  the  altar-bread  box  of  bone  or  ivory 
became  the  money-box  of  John  Watts.  Here  Robert  Bellamy 
bought  two  corporas  cases,  "whereof  his  wife  made  of  one  a 
stomacher  for  her  wench,"  and  of  the  other,  when  ripped  up,  a 
purse.  The  pix  cloth  of  this  parish  had  been  secured  by  John 
Storr,  whose  "wief  occupieth  yt  in  wiping  her  eies."  These 
arrangements  were  sanctioned  at  Lincoln  by  the  bishop  and 
others  on  the  i8th  of  March  1565.  At  Croxbie,  when  some 
plumber  was  mending  the  leads  of  the  nave,  and  needed  a  fire 
for  his  work,  the  crucifix  and  the  images  of  Our  Lady  and  St. 
John  were  thrown  into  it  and  burnt.  Of  the  rood-loft,  a  Mr. 
John  Sheftield,  ancestor  of  the  present  Earls  of  Mulgrave,  made 
a  ceiling  in  his  house ;  and  of  one  of  the  altar-stones  a  sink  for 
his  kitchen.  At  Croxton,  the  tabernacle  for  the  Blessed  Sacra- 
ment was  converted  by  some  earnest  Reformer  into  a  dresser 
upon  which  to  set  dishes.  Of  one  of  the  chasubles  at  Denton, 
a  certain  William  Green  made  a  velvet  doublet ;  the  sepulchre 
from  the  chancel  John  Orson  turned  into  "a  presse"  for  his  own 
clothes.  At  Dowsbie  the  churchwardens  had  secured  two  suits 
of  vestments,  of  which  they  made  cushions  and  bed  quilts  ;  while 
at  Durrington  it  is  thus  recorded  : — "  Altar-stones  ij — one  is 
broken  and  paveth  the  church,  and  the  other  is  put  to  keep 
cattail  from  the  chappall  wall ;  and  yet  standeth  edgewaies  on 
the  ground."  At  Gonwarbie,  two  copes  and  two  chasubles  were 
sold  to  a  tailor,  and  a  holy-bread  basket  to  a  fishmonger  "to 
Carrie  ftish  in ; "  while  at  Grantham,  St.  Wulfran's  shrine  was  sold 
to  a  goldsmith,  and  the  proceeds  devoted  to  the  purchase  of  a 
"  sylver  Pott,  parcell  gilt,  and  an  ewer  of  silver  for  the  mynis- 
tracion  of  the  holye  and  most  sacred  Supper  of  Oure  Lorde 
Jhesus  Crist  called  the  Holye  Communyon."  Three  altar- 
stones  from  Habrough  Church  were  first  broken,  and  one  of  them 
was  then  laid  in  the  porch,i  so  that  the  people  should  be  obliged 

^  These  pages  are  being  prepared  for  the  press  at  the  little  village  of 
Chearsley  between  Thame  and  Aylesbuiy,  where  the  Buckingham  family  of 
Francklin  were  once  lords  of  the  manor,  and  founded  a  chantry  ;  and  I  find 
that  one  of  the  altar-stones,  with  its  top  downwards,  placed  as  a  step  at  the 
south  porch  of  the  church  in  Queen  Elizabeth's  reign,  still  remains.  It 
measures  4  feet  8  inches  by  2  feet  I  inch,  is  nearly  4  inches  thick,  and  is 
bevelled  round  its  edge. 


136         THE   CHURCH    UNDER   QUEEN    ELIZABETH. 

to  tread  upon  it  on  entering ;  while  stepping-stones  for  man  and 
dog  at  the  churchyard  stile  were  made  of  the  other  two.  The 
Vicar  of  Haconbie  must  have  been  a  person  somewhat  deficient 
in  piety  and  reverence;  for  the  rood  here  with  Mary  and  John 
were  burnt  under  his  direction,  as  well  as  an  elaborate  reredos 
of  alabaster,  "  full  of  images."  The  altar  candlesticks  were  also 
broken,  two  purple  velvet  vestments  were  cut  up  and  made  into 
cushions ;  while  the  vicar  himself  was  foremost  in  his  energy  for 
such  reform.  Of  the  tabernacle  veil  he  made  a  hanging  for  his 
own  hall,  of  two  banner  cloths  he  made  window-curtains  for  the 
vicarage  parlour,  and  of  an  altar  canopy  of  velvet  he  made  him- 
self a  tester  for  his  bed  ;  where,  when  awake,  he  and  his  lady,  by 
due  contemplation,  with  their  eyes  turned  upwards,  could  con- 
stantly realise  the  practical  advantages  of  the  "Reformation." 
The  holy-water  stoup  this  religious  and  reverent  divine  deliber- 
ately turned  into  "a  swine's  troughe."  At  Horblinge  the  MS. 
service-books  were  sold  to  a  mercer,  who  tore  them  up  to  wrap 
spice  in  ;  the  rood-loft  to  a  certain  John  Craile,  who  made  of  it 
a  weaver's  loom  ;  three  altar-stones  were  used  for  swine  troughs 
and  bridges ;  while  two  old  vestments  were  given  to  Richard 
Colson,  a  scholar,  who,  it  is  on  record,  "haith  made  a  player's 
cote  thereof"  The  altar-stones  at  Kelbie  are  "defaced  and  laid 
in  high  waies  and  serveth  as  bridges  for  sheepe  and  cattail  to  go 
on  ;  so  that  there  now  remaineth  no  trash  nor  tromperie."  At 
Langtoft,  one  altar-stone  was  ])laced  at  the  bottom  of  a  cistern, 
another  was  used  in  mending  the  church  wall,  and  a  third  inserted 
in  a  fire-hearth.  A  bedstead  was  made  out  of  the  rood-loft  of 
Osbombie  by  John  Audley — a  member  of  an  illegitimate  branch 
of  the  baronial  family  of  that  name.  At  Market  Raisen  the 
"  rood  with  Mary  and  John — with  the  rest  of  the  idolatrous 
images  belonging  to  the  abominable  mass,"  had  been  burnt  three 
years  previously.  The  cross  cloth  of  Stallingbrook  had  been  sold 
to  some  strolling  ])layers ;  that  at  Tallington  the  churchwarden, 
John  Wright,  took  and  hung  up  in  his  hall ;  an  amice  from 
Thorpe  was  given  to  a  poor  woman,  with  which  to  make  a  shirt 
for  her  child.  At  Thurlby  the  altar-stones  were  set  up  edgeways 
to  make  churchyard  stiles.  At  Waddingham  the  banner  cloths 
and  cross  cloths  were  made  into  coats  for  the  children  of 
strolling  players;  while  at  Welby  what  is  styled  the  "linen 
baggage  "  was  made  into  shirts  and  smocks.  The  high-altar  stone 
at  Witham  had  been  placed  at  Mr.  Harington's  fire-back.  At 
Wrought,  in  the  Isle  of  Axholme,  "  the  rest  of  such  triflinge  toyes 
and  tromperie  appertaininge  to  the  popish  masse  and  pojjish 
prelate  was  made  away  and  defacid  in  King  Edwarde's  time.' 


THE   LIKE   DESTRUCTION    EFFECTED   ELSEWHERE.      1 37 

In  certain  of  the  cases  here  detailed,  no  doubt  many  of  the 
crnamerita  noted  as  "  stolen  "  were  removed  by  devout  people  in 
the  hope  of  seeing  better  times  and  another  change,  when  they 
would  be  brought  out  again  for  use.^  Many  such,  carefully 
hidden  away,  have  been  from  time  to  time  discovered.  A 
Lincoln  antiquary  -  of  taste  and  repute  some  years  ago  gathered 
a  large  collection  of  old  vestments  and  fragments  of  hangings 
from  different  parts  of  the  diocese. 

Now,  when  it  is  remembered  that  Bishop  BuUingham  and 
Archdeacon  Aylmer,  under  whose  authority  the  frightful  deeds 
thus  put  on  record  had  been  done,  were  not  only  perfectly  in 
harmony  with  Queen  Elizabeth,  the  chief  ruler  of  the  Church  of 
P^ngland,  but  entirely  at  one  with  their  episcopal  and  archi- 
diaconal  brethren  of  both  provinces,  it  is  clear  that  the  work  of 
destruction,  carried  out  in  the  diocese  of  Lincoln,  was  in  no 
manner  peculiar;  that  it  did  not  differ  either  in  method  or 
completeness  with  the  same  kind  of  work  done  in  other 
dioceses  ;  and  that  what  took  place  in  that  of  Lincoln,  just 
referred  to,  was  likewise  carried  out  and  completed  in  every 
other  diocese  throughout  the  kingdom.  Bishops  Pilkington,'^ 
Sandys,  Grindal,  Overton,  Meyrick,  Bale,  BuUingham,  and  Park- 
hurst  were  each  and  all  thoroughly  agreed  in  their  principles  and 
course  of  action.  In  substituting  the  new  religion,  which  had 
been  set  up  for  the  old  one  which  had  been  deliberately  and 

1  Mr.  Peacock  thus  wrote  : — "  I  should  not  have  published  it  had  I  not  felt 
that  the  text  illustrated  in  no  ordinary  manner  the  spirit  of  the  Reformation. 
There  is  nothing  in  the  annals  of  the  French  Revolution  more  sickening  to  a 
Christian  man  than  some  of  the  entries  in  these  pages.  I  did  not  point  out 
in  my  'Preface,'  as  I  wished  to  write  entirely  without  partisanship,  the  fact 
that  from  many  of  the  churches  {e.g.  Scotton,  p.  135  ;  Market  Kaisen,  p.  124, 
para.  S)  things  are  said  to  have  been  'stolen.'  Surely  these  repeated  entries 
imply  that  Catholic-minded  persons  removed  the  things  to  keep  them  from 
profane  hands.  I  think  that  in  many  cases  where  the  vestments  are  said  to 
have  been  ripped  up  for  bed-hangings,  'quishinges,'  etc.,  that  the  persons 
who  did  so  only  made  believe  to  put  them  to  household  uses  for  the  sake  of 
siving  them.  The  John  Thimbleby  (p.  loS)  '  wat  haith  defacid  '  a  cope  and 
a  vestment  was  certainly  a  Roman  Catholic.  So,  I  think,  were  the  Ffair- 
faxes  mentioned  under  Langtoft  (p.  iii)." — Author's  MSS.  and  Excerpts, 
"  Letter  from  E.  Peacock,  Esq.,  dated  13th  September  1866." 

-The  late  E.  J.  Willson,  Esq.,  F.S.A.,  whose  son  has  inherited  the 
collection. 

^  Whittingham,  Dean  of  Durham,  under  Pilkington,  in  his  frightful  excesses 
quite  equalled  the  dark  deeds  of  BuUingham  and  Aylmer  ;  for  he  made  the 
stone  coffins  of  the  priors  of  Durham,  whom  he  termed  "  servants  of  the 
synagogue  of  Satan,"  mto  swine  troughs,  and  the  holy  water  stoups  of  brass, 
which  stood  within  each  of  the  doors  of  the  cathedral,  into  vessels  for  ignoble 
uses  in  the  kitchen  of  his  house. — See  JVIachyn's  Diary,  p.  59,  and  Anthony  a, 
\^ Qod' s,  Athence  Oxon.  vol.  i.  p.  195.      London,  1721. 


138  THE   CHURCH    UNDI:R   QUEEN    ELIZABETH. 

duly  abolished  by  Parliament  (the  adherents  of  which  were  being 
persecuted  and  exterminated),  were  only  carrying  out  the  obvious 
and  avowed  intentions  of  those  State  ofificials  who  had  placed 
them  in  high  ecclesiastical  positions  expressly  to  carry  out  the 
changes  and  so-called  "reforms"  resolved  upon. 

Of  course  to  any  English  Churchman  of  the  Oxford  school,  the 
proceedings  in  question  will  no  doubt  be  read  with  some  pain. 
It  is  no  easy  task  to  show  that  the  revived  doctrines  and  Catholic 
practices,  now  so  largely  current  in  every  diocese  of  our  beloved 
country,  and,  many  of  them,  so  generally  popular,  were  utterly 
repudiated  by  the  dismal  prelates,  whose  violent  and  heretical 
language  is  so  awful  in  itself  and  so  disquieting  to  dwell  upon  ; 
and  whose  destructive  labours  it  is  so  distasteful  to  put  on  record. 
Men,  who  in  a  spirit  of  self-sacrifice  now  repair  churches,  cleanse 
the  font,  rebuild  the  broken-down  altar  of  the  Lord,  beautify  His 
sanctuary,  adorn  with  pictured  pane  and  Mosaic  representation 
the  chancel  wall, — who  open  their  restored  churches  for  the 
daily  office  ;  who,  in  the  face  of  secular  courts  and  senseless 
"judgments,"  believe  in  baptismal  regeneration,  i)ractise  con- 
fession, pray  for  the  departed,  and  have  been  led,  step  by  step, 
to  restore  the  Christian  sacrifice  and  Eucharistic  adoration ;  and 
who,  furthermore,  look  upon  themselves,  now  clothed  in  sacer- 
dotal garments,  and  standing  facing  the  crucifix  at  lighted  altars, 
as  sacrificing  priests  of  the  new  law, — can  surely  have  but  very 
little  in  common  with  the  vulgar  anti-Catholic  bishops  of  Queen 
L^lizabeth's  day,  whose  profane  and  awful  words,  when  read  at  a 
distance  of  three  centuries  and  more,  make  a  reverent  person 
shudder ;  and  the  dark  record  of  whose  blasphemies  and  active 
wickedness,  when  calmly  faced,  sends  a  thrilling  shiver  through 
the  heart  of  a  Christian,  and  makes  every  decent  Englishman — 
unparalysed  by  indifference  and  not  choked  by  false  Science — 
blush  for  shame  that  such  officials  ever  belonged  to  so  moderate 
and  respectable  an  institution  as  the  Church  of  England  by  law 
established,  now  appears. 

The  change  for  the  better  which  in  several  respects  has  taken 
place  of  late  years  in  this  communion,  as  those  external  to  it 
allow,  is,  in  truth,  little  short  of  miraculous.  In  Queen  Eliza- 
beth's reign,  the  bishops  and  ministers,  having  only  little  to  give, 
of  course  gave  but  little.  But  "  to  him  that  hath  shall  be  given." 
The  grace  of  baptism  used  aright  merits  more  grace — the  gift  of 
contrition  and  the  admitted  efficacy  of  prayer.  An  imperfect 
knowledge  of  the  Most  High,  duly  made  use  of,  merits  more 
knowledge.  That  which  is  used  for  God's  honour  and  glory  is 
never  squandered,  and  cannot  be  altogether  lost.     Nor  are  men, 


PRESENT-DAY   CHANGES   FOR   THE   BETTER.        1 39 

after  they  have  known   the  grace  of  baptism,  what  they  were 
before. 

In  the  present  day,  some  Enghshmen  frequently  complain  of 
the  policy,  principles,  and  action  of  the  bishops  of  the  Established 
Church  under  difficult  circumstances,  and  when  dealing  with 
delicate  and  complex  cases  ;  and  ofttimes  they  complain  without 
just  cause  ;  for,  as  a  rule,  those  dignified  officials  are  perfectly 
true  to  the  duties  imposed  on  them,  and  obedient  and  faithful  to 
their  present  Master — the  British  public.^  Too  much  independ- 
ence should  not  be  looked  for  from  them.  The  water-spring  can 
never  rise  above  its  source ;  nor,  to  use  another  simile,  are 
grapes  gathered  from  thorns.  In  the  present  day  Her  Most 
Gracious  Majesty's  bishops,  notwithstanding  their  extraordinary 
but  precedented  Oath  of  Homage,  are  obviously  far  superior  in 
character  to  those  of  Elizabeth,  the  first  female  Governor  of  the 
Church  of  England  ;  for  they  are  decorous,  moral,  and  moderate. 
It  is  true  that  they  are  sometimes  more  active  in  defending  the 
temporalties  and  position  of  the  Establishment  than  the  Creeds 
which  it  still  professes  to  maintain  ;  in  other  words,  some  seem 
to  value  more  highly  their  temporal  than  their  spiritual  trusts — ■ 
yet  they  are  almost  always  active,  well-informed,  worldly-wise,  and 
shrewd.  No  bishop  of  the  times  in  which  we  live  would,  for 
example,  think  of  marrying,  or  rather  of  taking  into  his  keeping 
as  mistress,  the  attractive  spouse  of  a  butcher,  as  did  John 
Poynet ;  nor  would  any  modern  Archbishop  of  Canterbury,  as 
did  Cranmer, — after  the  woman  in  question  had  obtained  a 
divorce,  and  the  amorous  prelate  was  waiting  to  welcome  her  to 
bed  and  board, — publicly  officiate  at  the  questionable  nuptials, 
and  so  seal  his  suffragan's  happiness.  Nor,  in  truth,  would  a 
modern  Anglican  prelate  of  the  exalted  rank  of  Archbishop 
Sandys  put  up  at  an  inn  during  his  visitation  rounds,  and  so  far 
forget  himself  as  to  allow  the  wife  of  the  host  to  be  discovered  in 
his  sleeping-chamber  during  the  darkness  and  quiet  of  midnight. 
With  all  their  drawbacks  and  difficulties,  therefore,  English 
Churchmen  have  much  for  which  to  be  thankful.  What  has 
been  already  accomplished  may  be  reasonably  regarded  as  an 
earnest  of  what  it  is  still  possible  to  labour  for,  with  zeal  and 
credit,  and  it  may  be,  after  all,  with  success. 

^  The  reader  who  is  curious  to  see  how  gradual,  but  certain,  has  been  the 
change  from  the  "  Royal  Supremacy,"  invented  at  the  so-called  "  Reforma- 
tion "  to  the  "  Supremacy  of  Public  Opinion,"  may  read  with  interest,  and 
possibly  with  profit,  an  article  on  that  subject  in  the  Reunion  Magazine^  vol. 
i.     London,  1879. 


CHAPTER  V. 

A  COPY  of  the  Bull  of  Pope  Pius  V.,  already  duly  published  and 
set  forth,  was  affixed  to  the  door  of  the  English  ambassador's 
house  at  Paris ;  and  another  was  placed  on  the  gate  of  the 
Bishop  of  London's  Palace  at  St.  Paul's,  late  at  night  on  May  the 
24th,  1570,  by  John  Felton,  a  gentleman  of  Southwark,  and 
Cornelius  Irishman,  a  priest.  Of  these  the  former  was  tried  for 
high  treason  at  Guildhall  on  the  4th  of  August,  and  found  guilty. 
His  attachment  to  the  old  religion  was  evidently  deep,  earnest, 
and  enthusiastic,  as  the  risk  he  had  run  showed.  Under  the 
severest  and  most  cruel  torture,  borne  without  shrinking,  he 
absolutely  refused  to  name  his  accomplices  ;  he  declined,  more- 
over, to  acknowledge  that  he  had  received  the  copy  made  use  of 
from  the  chaplain  of  the  Spanish  ambassador ;  he  gloried  in 
having  thus  promulgated  the  document,  and  asserted  his  perfect 
readiness  to  die  a  martyr  to  the  faith  of  his  fathers.  To  the 
"heretical  system,"  as  he  termed  it,  which  the  queen  and  her 
advisers  had  set  up,  he  professed  his  cordial  repugnance ;  he 
declined,  after  the  decision  of  the  Pope,  to  acknowledge  Eliza- 
beth as  his  sovereign  ;  but  personally,  as  he  asserted,  bore  her  no 
malice  whatsoever,  hoping  that  she  would  one  day  renounce  her 
heresy  and  accept  the  faith ;  while  on  the  morning  of  his  execu- 
tion, August  8th,  as  a  token  and  testimony  of  earnest  sincerity, 
he  drew  a  diamond  ring  of  the  value  of  four  hundred  pounds 
from  off  his  finger,  and  sent  it  by  the  Earl  of  Sussex  as  an 
offering  to  the  queen. 

Though  she  professed  to  despise  the  sentence  pronounced  by 
the  Pope,  and  though  her  advisers  appeared  to  treat  it  with  the 
utmost  contempt,  it  is  tolerably  clear  that  neither  the  one  nor 
the  others  at  all  liked  it ;  and  it  is  perfectly  certain  that  it  was  a 
cause  of  much  suspicion,  uneasiness,  and  alarm  to  both.  Making 
it  a  subject  of  conversation  with  her  ambassadors,  she  is  said  to 
have  declared  it  to  be  an  insult  to  all  the  European  sovereigns  ; 
and  induced  the  Emperor  Maximilian  to  endeavour  to  get  it 
withdrawn.     The  Holy  Father,  on  being  solicited  to  do  this,  at 


BULL   OF   rOPE   PIUS   V.  I4I 

once  perceived,  as  all  but  Cecil  and  his  allies  saw,  that  the  blow 
had  been  keenly  felt.  But  before  his  Holiness  could  give  any- 
reasonable  answer  to  the  emperor's  request,  he  must  first  know 
whether  Elizabeth  acknowledged  his  authority.  This  was  a 
preliminary  and  crucial  point  which  could  not  be  overlooked. 
Having  procured  intervention  regarding  the  Bull,  it  might  be 
presumed  that  she  did.  But  to  the  definite  question,  "  Does  the 
Queen  of  England  regard  the  sentence  as  valid  or  invalid  ? " 
he  must  have  an  unambiguous  and  reasonable  answer.  If  Her 
Majesty  looked  upon  it  as  valid,  why  did  she  not  at  once  seek 
reconciliation  with  the  successor  of  St.  Gregory  and  the  Chief 
Bishop  of  Christendom?  If  invalid,  there  was,  of  course, 
nothing  to  revoke  ;  for,  from  her  own  standing-point,  the  act  was 
null  and  void.  The  pitiful  revenge,  which,  with  written  oaths 
and  strong  language,  she  had  threatened,  was  altogether  beneath 
the  Pope's  notice.  As  the  earthly  father  of  the  Christian  family, 
and  acting  in  his  Master's  name,  he  had,  as  he  remarked,  only 
done  his  duty.  If,  therefore,  the  queen  did  not  repent  and  alter 
her  policy,  events  must  take  their  course. 

Her  Majesty's  advisers,  therefore,  lost  no  time  in  taking  fresh 
action  consequent  upon  the  publication  of  this  Bull.  Parker, 
Grindal,  and  Sandys,  judging  from  their  advice,  held  that  it  was 
a  matter  to  be  treated  with  contempt ;  but  whether  this  was 
their  true  and  secret  opinion  appears  exceedingly  doubtful. 
Cecil  certainly  did  not  agree  with  them,  but  thought  otherwise. 
For  a  local  insurrection  in  Norfolk,  in  which  Esquire  John 
Throckmorton  took  a  leading  part,  appeared  to  give  some 
grounds  for  disquiet.  On  the  2nd  of  April  1571,  consequently 
several  fresh  laws,  most  carefully  and  artfully  framed,  were  duly 
and  finally  passed ;  ^  and  such  was  the  practical  response  made 
by  the  queen  to  the  Pope.  Henceforth  if  any  one  called  Eliza- 
beth a  heretic,  or  gave  her  the  title  of  schismatic,  or  declared 
her  to  be  an  usurper  or  an  infidel,  he  was  liable  to  be  charged 
with  treason  and  punished.  What  the  punishment  for  treason 
was  no  one  was  ever  allowed  to  forget.  Any  one  introducing  a 
Papal  Bull  into  England  was  likewise  held  to  be  a  traitor  ;  and, 
if  the  fact  were  proved,  the  usual  punishment  followed.  All 
persons  who  should,  by  writing  or  printing,  dare  to  affirm  that 
any  one  particular  person  was  the  heir  of  the  queen,  "  except  the 
same  were  the  natural  issue  of  her  body  "  - — a  phrase  of  remark- 

1  Some  propositions  relating  to  persons  who  refused  to  communicate  at  the 
new  service  of  the  Supper  were  so  extravagant,  that,  when  certain  peers  com- 
plained of  their  tyrannical  character,  they  were  withdrawn. 

^  At  one  period  most  unpleasant  rumours  were  afloat,   amongst  others  a 


142  THE   CHURCH    UNDER   QUEEN   ELIZABETH. 

able  significance — were  to  be  imprisoned  for  twelve  months  for 
the  first  offence,  and  to  suffer  the  penalties  of  prccmunire  for  the 
second.  Furthermore,  if  any  English  people  were  found  sending 
over  relief  to  their  expatriated  relations,  who,  because  of  the  fury 
of  the  persecution  and  the  impossibility  of  exercising  the  Catholic 
religion  at  home,  had  gone  abroad,  very  severe  punishments  at 
once  ensued.  Finally,  those  who  went  abroad  without  licence, 
as  well  as  those  who  had  obtained  written  permission  to  go, 
were  to  return  at  once  after  a  warning  by  proclamation,  at  the 
risk  of  forfeiting  all  their  goods  and  chattels,  and  the  profits  of 
their  lands  during  lifetime,  to  the  queen's  use.  Tyranny  is  no 
term  with  which  to  describe  such  proceedings.  The  darkest  age 
of  barbarism — when  cruellest  despots,  without  responsibility  or 
conscience,  governed  undraped  savages — could  scarcely  produce 
parallels  to  the  policy  of  this  fearful  woman  and  her  unprincipled 
advisers. 

Her  government  was  in  fact  a  pure  and  simple  despotism — a 
despotism  of  the  darkest  dye.^  The  Court  of  High  Commission 
and  the  Star  Chamber  Court  were  the  principal  instruments 
by  which  such  alarming  despotism  was  carried  out ;  and  if 
unpopularity  met  any  man  of  rank  or  mark ;  if,  in  the  hearing  of 
a  spy  of  Cecil's,  or  of  some  long-eared  and  contemptible  informer, 
he  uttered  a  word  or  sentence  which  might  be  twisted  and  turned 
against  him  ;  or  if  the  queen  found  him  less  pliant  or  obsequious 
than  she  thought  he  ought  to  be,  he  stood  henceforth  in  the 
greatest  danger  of  liberty  or  life.  Both  those  who  adhered  to 
the  old  religion,  and  those  who  were  for  proceeding  further  along 
the  road  of  reform,  alike  suffered. 

The  queen,  jealous  of  the  prerogatives  and  powers  with  which 
Parliament  had  endowed  her,  was  resolved  to  make  all  her 
subjects  of  one  religion — that  which,  mainly  for  State  purposes, 
had  been  recently  excogitated  and  set  up.  This  bore  a  certain 
relation  to  the  old,  for  some  of  the  leading  dogmas  of  Christianity 
were  embodied  in  it ;  but  other  doctrines  which  served  to 
preserve  a  due  balance,  and  which  together  made  up  a  complete 

report  that  the  queen  was  likely  to  become  a  mother.  But  Lord  Leicester 
thought  it  his  duty  to  write  to  Sir  Francis  Walsingham  to  inform  him  that 
the  queen's  indisposition  was  but  slight,  and  that  the  rumour  in  question  was 
unfounded. 

^  Those  who  assisted  in  erecting  this  system,  though  continually  condemn- 
ing the  proceedings  of  Bonner  and  others  in  Mary's  reign,  seem  never  to 
have  been  struck  by  their  own  great  inconsistency.  Bonner,  so  unjustly 
maligned,  was  at  least  upholding  and  maintaining  a  system  which  was  as 
old  as  the  time  of  St.  Austin  of  Canterbury,  whereas  tlie  new  institution  of 
Cecil  and  Parker  was  of  quite  recent  date. 


COURT   OF   HIGH    COMMISSION.  143 

circle  of  divine  truth,  were  rejected.  The  ecclesiastical  somer- 
sault which  Her  Majesty  herself  had  made  between  the  faith  she 
professed  to  hold  on  the  morning  of  her  coronation  and  that  in 
which  she  now  appeared  to  believe,  was  a  somersault  which  she 
expected  all  her  subjects  to  be  capable  of  taking,  and  ready  to 
take. 

The  Court  of  High  Commission  enabled  her  effectually  to 
carry  out  her  plans,  and  especially  to  answer  the  Pope.  By  this 
she  formally  gave  to  certain  prelates  and  State  officers  exceptional 
powers  :  their  authority  extending  over  the  whole  realm,  and 
over  all  ranks  and  degrees  from  peer  to  peasant.  These  Com- 
missioners were  empowered  to  exercise  a  complete  control  over 
both  the  faith  and  opinions  of  all ;  and,  according  to  their 
discretion,  to  punish  all  men,  in  any  v.ay  and  by  any  method 
short  of  death.  It  was  open  to  them  to  proceed  against  delin- 
quents by  law,  if  they  thought  fit ;  but,  on  the  other  hand,  if 
these  Commissioners  thought  it  desirable,  they  might  employ 
imprisonment  (without  trial  or  conviction),  the  rack,  or  any 
customary  torture,  so  as  to  obtain  their  desired  ends.  If  any 
man  was  even  suspected — no  matter  regarding  what,  where,  or 
why — they  were  empowered,  ex  officio,  to  administer  an  oath  to 
him  ;  by  which,  as  they  maintained,  he  was  bound,  as  a  good 
subject,  to  reveal  his  most  inward  thoughts,  opinions,  and  con- 
victions;  and  not  only  thus  to  accuse  himself,  but  his  nearest 
and  dearest  friend  or  relations,  and  this  on  pain  of  death.  Such 
ingenious  and  frightful  tactics  opened  the  door  to  dark  acts 
of  injustice  worthy  of  the  heartiest  reprobation.  Moreover, 
whenever  they  pleased,  these  High  Commissioners  could  fine 
and  imprison  men  as  and  when  they  willed,  without  fear  or 
rebuke.  They  claimed  alike  an  absolute  control  over  the  souls 
and  consciences,  as  well  as  over  the  bodies,  lands,  and  monies 
of  Englishmen, — and  all  this  on  the  hypocritical  and  false  plea 
that  such  a  policy  was  essential  for  delivering  their  countrymen 
from  a  "slavish  subjection  to  a  foreign  prince  and  prelate."  In 
the  action  of  these  courts  nobody's  conscience  was  regarded, 
whether  Catholic  or  Puritan  ;  in  fact,  no  one  was  expected  to 
possess  a  conscience,  while  no  mercy  was  shown  to  any  who 
presumed  to  exhibit  the  least  independence.  Furthermore,  no 
practical  remedy  for  the  existing  evils  seems  to  have  been  as  yet 
devised,  even  by  those  called  upon  to  suffer  in  patience  and 
endure. 

The  nation  at  this  period  was,  in  truth,  sick  at  heart.  The  old 
nobility  could  not  act  together,  were  sometimes  jealous  of  each 
other,  and  had  lost  much  of  their  influence.     The  new  men,  ever 


144         THE   CHURCH    UNDER   QUEEN    ELIZABETH. 

so  avaricious  and  grasping,  cared  little  for  the  poor ;  and  in  turn 
were  themselves  cared  not  for  by  any  of  those  beneath  them.  The 
abbey  and  church  lands  were  now  theirs ;  but  their  first  thought 
was  to  make  the  most  of  their  new  possessions,  and  so  the  poor 
were  deliberately  passed  by.  New  notions  were  eagerly  clutched 
at.  Some  of  the  nobility  openly  advocated  change,  and  in 
certain  cases  did  so  with  a  lack  of  good  breeding  and  a  singular 
want  of  taste. ^  There  was  an  almost  universal  restlessness  of 
thought;  disorder  everywhere  reigned,  and  poverty  was  wide- 
spread. ]\Ien  by  hundreds  rose  of  a  winter  morning  who  knew 
not  how  to  sustain  their  ordinary  wants  during  the  day;  social 
misery  increased,  dissatisfaction  was  rampant.  The  successful 
thieves — for  this  is  what  they  were — who  had  ennobled  them- 
selves, or  induced  the  queen  to  make  them  peers,  had  ruder 
imitators  in  the  lowest  ranks  of  the  people ;  who,  if  they  could 
obtain  success  in  no  other  manner,  became  cut-purses  and 
highwaymen.  For  them,  under  the  new  order  of  things,  might 
became  right. 

Take,  for  example,  one  well-known  case  of  legal  wickedness 
and  murder.  Dr.  John  Storey,  a  distinguished  civilian  who  in 
King  Edward  VI. 's  reign  had  done  all  that  lay  in  his  power  to 
oppose  the  changes  in  religion,  and  who,  under  Queen  Mary, 
had  been  commissioned  to  see  that  the  rood  and  its  attendant 
images,  with  a  figure  of  the  patron  saint  of  every  church,  had 
been  restored,  was  now  to  suffer  death.  He  had  done  this  good 
work  of  reparation  and  restoration  so  energetically  and  enthusi- 
astically that  the  innovators,  no  bad  judges  of  who  were  their 
friends  and  who  their  enemies,  held  him  in  particular  abhorrence. 
The  earlier  Reformers  had  often  singled  him  out  for  special  abuse  ; 
for  he  had  frequently  exposed  their  heresy  and  self-seeking,  had 
drawn  a  most  powerful  contrast  ^  between  the  old  religion  and 

^  The  Duchess  of  Suffolk,  wife  to  Mr.  Peregrine  Bertie,  a  renowned 
Protestant,  had  had  a  small  rochet  and  chimere  (the  domestic  dress  of  a 
bishop)  made  for  one  of  her  poodle  dogs,  which,  in  contempt  for  the  Bishop 
of  Winchester,  she  put  on  the  animal's  back,  with  its  fore-legs  in  lawn  sleeves. 
The  dog  itself  she  was  polite  enough  to  name  "Gardiner." — See  Memoir  of 
Peregrine  Birtie,  Eleventh  Lord  I'Villoiigliby  de  Eresby,  etc.     London,  1S3S. 

-  The  contrast  has  been  vigorously  drawn  in  recent  da3-s  by  Mr.  J.  A. 
Eroudc,  though  his  conception  of  the  Catht)lic  religion  and  Catholic  practices 
is  as  inexact  as  it  is  queer.  Some  assertions  he  makes,  if  made  in  earnest, 
are  exaggerated  caricatures,  altogether  unworthy  of  a  writer  of  history : — 
"The  Catholic  believed  in  the  authority  of  the  Church;  the  Reformers  in 
the  authority  of  Reason.  Where  the  Church  had  spoken,  the  Catholic 
obeyed.  His  duty  was  to  accept  without  question  the  laws  which  councils 
had  decreed,  which  Popes  and  bishops  administered,  and,  so  far  as  in  him 
lay,  to  enforce  on  others  the  same  submission  to  an  outward  rule  which  he 


DOCTOR  JOHN   STOREY.  I45 

the  new,  and  was  exceedingly  plain  spoken  and  zealous  for  the 
faith.  On  Queen  Mary's  death  he  had  prudently  withdrawn  to 
the  Netherlands,  where  he  received  an  appointment  in  the  local 
Custom-house.  There  he  was  often  brought  into  contact  with 
English  merchants.  On  one  occasion,  evidently  by  previous 
arrangement  with  the  authorities  at  home,  he  was  seized  bodily, 
when  searching  an  English  vessel,  and  brought  by  force  to 
England.  Though  guilty  of  no  transgression  save  that  of  self- 
expatriation,  so  that  he  might  observe  without  let  or  hindrance 
the  religion  of  his  forefathers,  he  was  at  once  put  into  confine- 
ment in  the  Tower ;  ^  and  at  the  age  of  seventy  years  cruelly 
executed.  The  Oath  of  Supremacy  -  was  at  once  tendered  him  ; 
but  he  refused  to  take  it,  as  contrary  to  his  faith  and  conscience. 
Neither  argument  nor  threat  could  move  him.  He  had  never 
had  a  doubt  that  such  a  she-supremacy,  the  acceptance  of 
which  it  was  endeavoured  to  impose  upon  him,  was  both 
ridiculous  and  profane ;    and  no  inducements  held  out  of  a  few 

regarded  as  divine.  All  shades  of  Protestants,  on  the  other  hand,  agreed 
that  Protestants  might  err  ;  that  Christ  had  left  no  visible  representative, 
whom  individually  they  were  bound  to  obey  ;  that  religion  was  the  operation 
of  the  Spirit  on  the  mind  and  conscience  ;  that  the  Bible  was  God's  Word, 
which  each  Christian  was  to  read,  and  which,  with  God's  help  and  his  own 
natural  intelligence,  he  could  not  fail  to  understand.  The  Catholic  left  his 
Bible  to  the  learned.  The  Protestant  translated  the  Bible,  and  brought  it  to 
the  door  of  every  Christian  family.  The  Catholic  prayed  in  Latin  ;  and 
whether  he  understood  his  words,  or  repeated  them  as  a  form,  the  eflect  was 
the  same,  for  it  was  magical.  The  Protestant  prayed  with  his  mind,  as  an 
act  of  faith,  in  a  language  intelligible  to  him,  or  he  could  not  prny  at  all. 
The  Catholic  bowed  in  awe  before  his  wonder-working  image,  adored  his 
relics,  and  gave  his  life  into  the  guidance  of  his  spiritual  director.  The 
Protestant  tore  open  the  machinery  of  the  miracles,  flung  the  bones  and 
ragged  garments  into  the  fire,  and  treated  priests  as  men  like  himself." — 
Froude's  History  of  England,  vol.  vii.  pp.  23,  24.      London,  1863. 

^  On  the  walls  of  the  Beaucliamp  Tower  the  inscription,  no  doubt  cut  with 
his  own  hand,  still  remains,  thus  : — 

1570    :    IHON    .    STORE   .    DOCTOR    . 

-  "Bishop  Burnet  acquaints  us,  in  his  History  of  the  Refo7-vtalion,  that 
Queen  Elizabeth  scrupled  at  first  very  much  to  accept  the  supremacy.  And 
well  she  might.  For  she  could  not  but  know  herself  unqualified  by  her  very 
sex,  even  for  the  lowest  degree  of  any  ecclesiastical  dignity  or  function.  Yet 
she  accepted  it,  and  discarded  the  Pope,  as  her  father  had  done  before  her, 
though  upon  a  different  motive.  For  Henry  did  it  to  be  revenged  of  the 
Pope  ;  but  Queen  Elizabeth's  motive  was  '  l)ecause  she  knew  very  well,'  says 
Dr.  Haylin,  '  that  her  legitimacy  and  the  Pope's  supremacy  could  not  stand 
together.'  So  that  although  her  policy  was  not  quite  so  bad  as  her  father's, 
it  was  mere  policy  and  interest  of  state  that  determined  her  to  this  capital 
article  of  her  Reformation,  and  the  considerations  of  religion  had  no  part  in 
it." — England s  Conversion  and  B formation  Compared,  p.  302.  Antwerp, 
1725. 

K 


146         THE  CHURCH    UNDER   QUEEN    ELIZABETH. 

more  years  of  life  (he  had  already  reached  the  appointed  three- 
score years  and  ten)  could  lead  him  for  an  instant  to  alter  his 
noble  determination.  He  was  consequently  condemned  to  be 
drawn,  hung,  dismembered,  disembowelled,  and  quartered ;  and 
thus,  his  punishment  deliberately  prolonged,  the  poor  old  man 
suffered.  When  cut  down  from  the  hanging-post  alive — an 
important  i)art  of  the  sentence — he  is  said  to  have  struggled 
with,  and  struck  the  executioner,  who  was  drawing  out  the 
bowels  from  his  ripped  up  and  bleeding  body  ;  but,  of  course. 
Storey,  wounded,  maimed,  and  half-strangled  was  soon  overcome, 
and  groaning  heavily,  then  died  for  his  religion  and  his  conscience 
in  excruciatmg  agonies. 

Thus  men  of  independence  and  vigour,  the  grey-haired  as  well 
as  the  hale  and  lusty,  were  put  out  of  the  way.  It  needed  a 
firm  faith  in  the  unseen  world,  and  a  full  reliance  on  the 
Almighty's  promised  help  in  time  of  need,  to  enable  them  thus 
nobly  and  calmly  to  meet  death.  God  grant  that,  if  the  valley 
were  shadowy  and  dark  for  such  sufferers,  the  land  beyond  was 
fair  and  peaceful  and  bright  to  their  disembodied  souls  ! 

But  even  this  bloody  method  failed  of  its  purpose.  Uni- 
formity was  never  attained  ;  divisions,  as  will  be  seen,  steadily 
increased. 

Dr.  Bonner,  Bishop  of  London,  whose  dignity  and  revenues 
had  been  usurped,  died  a  prisoner  in  the  Marshalsea  on  the  5th 
of  September  1569.  He  was  unpopular  because  he  had  taken 
an  active  part,  in  Mary's  reign,  against  the  innovators;  and 
various  writers  have  united  in  his  condemnation.  But  exceed- 
ingly little  has  ever  been  produced  to  show  that  the  popular 
conception  of  this  prelate's  character  and  actions  was  either  just 
or  true.  Moreover,  those  who  live  for  the  sake  of  popularity 
frequently  get  exceedingly  little  for  their  pains.  In  sowing  over- 
abundantly  they  often  reap  but  very  sparingly.  Bonner  was 
more  than  once  offered  his  liberty  if  he  would  change  his  re- 
ligion ;  but  he  died  as  he  had  lived,  a  consistent  man  and  a  good 
Catholic,  preferring  to  the  smile  of  the  present  world  the  welcome 
of  his  Master  and  the  eternal  joys  of  the  world  to  come.  He  was 
buried  at  nightfall  in  the  churchyard  of  St.  George's,  Southwark.' 

^  Bisho]>  Sandys  thus  wrote  to  Cecil: — "Dr.  Fionner  had  stand  excom- 
municate by  a  sentence  in  the  Arches'  eight  or  nine  years  and  never  desired 
absolution.  Wherefore  by  the  law  Christian  sepulture  might  have  been 
denied  him  ;  but  we  thought  not  good  to  deal  so  vigorously,  and  therefore 
permitted  him  to  be  buried  in  St.  George's  Churchyard.  And  the  same  to 
lie  done  not  in  the  day  solemnly  but  in  the  night  privily." — Bishop  Sandys  to 
Sir  W.  Cecil,  9th  September  1569,  Remauis  of  Archbishop  Sandys,  p.  307. 
I'arker  Society. 


THE   ADMONITION    TO    PARLIAMENT.  147 

Bishop  Thirlby^  died  at  Lambeth  Palace,  where  he  had  been 
confined  for  eleven  years,  on  the  2  6lh  of  August  1570,  and  was 
buried,  without  Catholic  rites,  in  the  midst  of  the  choir  of  the 
parish  church  of  Our  Lady  of  Lambeth. 

It  should  here  be  noted  that  many  principles  which  those  who 
had  formed  the  New  Church  had  entirely  put  out  of  consideration 
in  constructing  it,  were  at  once  true  and  important;  and  some  of 
these  were  very  soon  seized  upon  and  adopted  by  the  Puritan 
leaders — many  of  whom  were  laborious  scholars,  and,  though 
sometimes  pedants,  men  of  rare  ability.  The  inherent  truth  of 
such  principles  and  their  obvious  reasonableness  ensured  them 
both  respect  from  the  populace  and  acceptance ;  while  in  some 
instances  they  were  received  with  enthusiasm.  An  Admonition 
to  Parliament,  presumed  to  be  from  the  pens  of  Wilcox  and 
Field,  two  Puritan  divines,  who  lectured  at  Wandsworth,  con- 
tained the  bitterest  language  against  the  New  Church,  and  was 
greedily  bought  up  and  read.  Whitgift  on  the  side  of  the 
Establishment,  and  Cartwright  on  the  Puritan  side,  both  engaged 
in  controversy  concerning  it.  Long  sermons  and  longer  con- 
troversies were  at  that  time  all  the  fashion.  This  particular 
discussion  lasted  no  less  than  six  years.  At  its  end  neither 
batch  of  disputants  seemed  to  be  wiser  than  at  the  beginning. 
At  Cambridge,  one  Charke,  a  preacher,  was  also  anything  but 
complimentary  to  the  new  hierarchy.  It  is  true  that  as  a  body 
the  members  of  it  were  a  very  commonplace  lot,  with  no  higher 
notion  of  their  office  than  that  they  were  State  officers, — perhaps, 
after  all,  a  not  inaccurate  estimate, — yet,  when  this  university 
divine  maintained  that  "Satan  had  introduced  bishops,  arch- 
bishops, metropolitans,  patriarchs,  and  popes,"  neither  Dr. 
Matthew  Parker  nor  Dr.  Edwin  Sandys  could  have  been  exactly 
flattered.  The  polite  and  impressive  language  they  had  so  often 
applied  to  the  Holy  See  and  its  occupants  was  now  in  turn 
applied  to  themselves.  Nemesis  had  arrived  sooner  than  was 
anticipated.     When,  moreover,  the  Puritans  ^  taught,  for  instance, 

^  The  only  predecessor  of  Cardinals  Wiseman  and  Manning  in  the  See  of 
Westminster. 

-  They  objected  altogether  to  bishops  and  specially  to  the  superiority  of 
bishops  over  other  ministers.  With  them  all  "preaching  ministers"  were 
alike.  They  also  disliked  the  Ecclesiastical  Courts  (as  in  subsequent  times 
they  had  the  best  reasons  for  doing),  the  "vain  repetition"  of  the  Lord's 
I'rayer,  and  the  existence  in  the  Table  of  Lessons  of  any  parts  of  the 
Apocrypha.  They  further  objected  to  the  use  of  the  sign  of  the  cross  in 
baptism  ;  to  the  ring  and  the  words  of  betrothal  in  marriage  ;  to  the  observ- 
ance of  festivals  ;  to  the  chanting  of  Psalms  ;  to  the  use  of  organs  or  other 
musical  instruments  ;  and,  above  all,  to  the  habits — the  surplice,  silken  hood, 
cope,  rochet,  and  chimere  of  the  ministry. 


148         THE   CHURCH    UNDER   QUEEN    ELIZABETH. 

that  the  Church  ought  always  to  be  independent  of  the  State, 
they  only  recommended  an  obvious  truism ;  for  C?esar  has 
nothing  to  do  with  the  things  of  God.  When,  again,  they 
maintained  that  women  should  have  no  part  in  Church  govern- 
ment, except  to  listen,  learn,  and  obey,  they  knew  themselves 
to  be  supported  both  by  apostolic  teaching  and  by  universal 
precedent  throughout  Christendom.  Here  they  and  the  Pope 
w-ere  at-one.  This  doctrine,  therefore,  they  constantly  declared 
in  private,  and  often  preached  in  public.  The  Supreme  ( Governess, 
of  course,  did  not  approve  of  such  homilies,  and  swore  when  she 
heard  of  their  delivery.  But  whether  Her  Highness  liked  them 
or  not,  the  Puritans  continued  to  preach  on.  As  a  consequence, 
divisions  multiplied,  and  new  sects  were  born. 

As  a  maintainer  and  defender  of  these  principles  one  remarkable 
man  stood  in  the  forefront,  and  for  some  time  gave  considerable 
trouble  to  the  authorities.  Thomas  Cartwright,  born  in  Hertford- 
shire, about  1535,  received  his  education  at  St.  John's  College, 
Cambridge.  In  Queen  Mary's  reign  he  had  withdrawn  from 
making  preparation  for  the  ministry,  and  for  a  while  made  his 
living  as  a  scribe.  On  Elizabeth's  accession,  however,  when  the 
tide  had  turned,  he  went  back  to  Cambridge,  where  he  was 
elected  a  Fellow  of  Trinity  College ;  but  being  disappointed  of 
further  promotion,  as  some  have  asserted,  went  off  to  Geneva, 
where  he  cordially  accepted  the  Calvinistic  theories  in  all  their 
logical  sharpness  and  terrible  conclusions  ;  and  then  returned  in 
1570,  when  he  was  made  Margaret  Professor  of  Theology.  The 
controversy  concerning  clerical  vestures  was  then  raging  furiously 
and  being  conducted  with  vigour,  in  which  he  took  a  leading 
part  against  them.  But  he  carried  his  contention  with  the 
(jueen's  New  (Church  still  further.  He  was  opposed  to  bishops 
themselves,  their  incomes,  courts,  and  officers,  as  well  as  to 
their  lawn  rochets  and  satin  chimeres ;  and  in  due  course, 
because  of  his  ability  and  plain  si)eaking,  was  soon  looked  upon 
as  the  head  and  leader  of  the  Puritan  party — a  party  patronised 
by  Lord  Leicester.  Thus  the  new  bishops  were  not  only  com- 
pelled to  face  and  receive  the  controversial  fire  from  Dr.  Allen, 
Stapleton,  and  others,  who  for  several  years  had  so  ably  and 
consistently  maintained  the  ancient  faith,  but  were  now  likewise 
taken  in  the  flank  by  the  racy  and  raking  arguments  of  Cart- 
wright  and  his  allies.     They  were  thus  between  two  fires. 

The  policy  and  method  of  Cartwright  in  appealing  to  this  or 
that  text  of  Scripture,  or  in  quibbling  and  arguing  about  antiquity, 
entirely  took  the  wind  out  of  the  sails  of  the  Establishmentariaa 
prelates.     They  knew  not  what  to  say.     If  one  controversialist 


RISE    OF    THE   PURITAN    FACTION.  149 

could  appeal  to  the  Bible,  so  could  two,  or  twent}^  or  two 
hundred,  and  why  should  they  not?  They  each  did  so.  No 
one  could  determine  the  controversy.  No  one  could  finally 
decide  it.  Private  judgment  untrammelled  and  unchecked  had 
come  in.  Authority  had  been  turned  out.  Thus  confusion 
became  worse  confounded.^  Babel  was  being  painfully  re- 
built. 

Again,  this  honest  and  out-spoken  Puritan  was  highly  incensed 
at  what  he  looked  upon  as  the  pompous  state  and  extravagance 
and  good  living-  of  the  bishops:  "He  is  much  offended  with 
the  train  they  keep,"  are  Parker's  own  words  of  complaint  to 
Lord  Burghley,  "and  saith  that  three  parts  of  their  servants  are 
unprofitable  to  the  filling  of  the  Church  and  Commonwealth  ; 
and  he  is  very  angry  with  their  furniture  of  household."^  All 
this  annoyed  and  mortified  the  archbishop  greatly,  who,  what- 
ever he  may  have  been,  was  very  modest  in  his  opinion  both  of 
his  personal  and  official  powers.  For  he  thus  implored  Lord 
Burghley  to  induce  the  Supreme  Head  to  step  in  and  settle 
the  dispute  concerning  the  value  of  episcopacy  : — "Sir,  because 
you  be  a  principal  Councillor,  I  refer  the  whole  matter  to  Her 
Majesty  and  to  your  order.  For  myself,  I  can  as  well  be  content 
to  be  a  parish  clerk  as  a  parish  priest.  I  refer  the  standing 
or  falling  altogether  to  your  own  considerations,  whether  Her 
Majesty  and  you  will  have  any  archbishops  or  bishops,  or  how 
you  will  have  them  ordered." 

The  abject  and  humiliating  position  of  this  great  ofificial,— this 
first  Protestant  archbishop, — thus  set  forth  in  his  own  words, 
could  not  possibly  be  more  abject  or  degrading.  He  has 
evidently  no  principles  to  maintain,  and  therefore  none  to  resign. 
But  he  is  even  ready  to  sacrifice  his  office,  as  well  as  himself, — 
to  give  up  the  whole  question  of  episcopacy  (which  with  him 
evidently  could  have  been  no  question  of  principle), — if  the 
Head  of  the  Church,  the  new  She-Pontiff,  and  her  principal 
secretary  should  in  their  infallible  judgment  decree  that    His 

^  Eventually  the  ministers  themselves  admitted  as  much.  "Because  that 
is  generally  known  throughout  the  whole  Citie  (of  London)  that  no  one 
parish  or  parson  can  agree  together,  &  that  the  cause  thereof  is  the  privatt 
readinge  in  houses  ...  we  humbly  require  that  these  readers  may  be  for- 
bidden and  some  straight  punishment  for  this  great  and  horrible  sin  may  be 
appointed,  or  else  the  preachers  hereafter  commanded  to  hold  their  peace." 
— Address  of  the  London  Clergy  to  Convocation,  a.d.  1580. — MSS.  of 
Anthony  a  Wood,  No.  8494,  fol.  30,  Bodleian  Library. 

-  "Tin  cupps  for  the  Supper  suffice;  but  my  Lord  of  Durham  now  hath 
them  of  gold  for  his  lady  and  impes." — J  True  Protestacioii,  etc.,  p.  31. 
London,  1575. 

^  Lansdowne  MSS.,  Brit.  Museum,  No.  xvii.  folio  93. 


130         THE   CHURCH    UNDER   QUEEN    ELIZABETH. 

(irace  ought  to  do  it.  In  this  Parker  proved  himself  a  wortliy 
successor  to  Thomas  Cranmer. 

That  prelate,  who,  twenty-six  years  previous  to  Elizabeth's 
accession,  had  first  stood  forward  to  make  a  breach  with  the 
Holy  See,  and  who,  to  his  earthly  king  and  patron,  had  pro- 
claimed himself  ready  at  all  risks  and  at  any  cost  to  act 
independently  of  his  legitimate  superior,  bore  a  heavy  responsi- 
bility upon  his  shoulders.  Where  he  had  passed,  others,  like 
Parker,  were  ready  to  follow.  The  acts  of  Cranmer  at  his 
consecration  had  been  so  bold  and  unprincipled,  and  at  the 
same  time  so  adroit  and  well-suited  to  the  temporary  purpo.se  of 
the  king  his  master,  that  all  the  complex  and  miserable  evils 
which  have  afflicted  this  nation  since — the  final  separation,  with 
division  subdivided  by  division — may,  in  truth,  be  traced  upward 
to  the  frightful  sacrifice  of  principle  perj^etrated  when  this 
wretched  man  became  Archbishop  of  Canterbury. 

In  truth,  no  one  acf]uainted  with  the  facts  of  his  true  history 
has  presumed  to  deny  that  he  was  a  despicable  character ;  and 
that  the  only  noble  act  he  did  was  at  the  close  of  his  life,  when 
he  appropriately  let  his  right  hand  first  suffer  at  the  stake, 
because  it  had  been  the  instrument  by  which  a  degraded  and 
corrupt  mind  had  wrought  out  so  many  evil  deeds.  His  notorious 
obsequiousness  to  his  successive  masters,  Henry,  Seymour,  and 
Dudley,  was  only  equalled  by  the  barbarous  cruelty  exercised  by 
him  upon  the  various  obstinate  and  wrong-headed  sectaries  who, 
from  time  to  time,  found  themselves  in  his  power.  In  one 
respect  this  archbishop  is  distinguished  from  all  other  persecutors, 
even  from  pagans,  in  that  he  not  only  actively  promoted  the 
capital  punishment  of  those  who  disagreed  with  him  in  religion, 
but  of  those  likewise  who  agreed  with  him  in  it.  In  Henry's 
reign,  for  example,  he  took  a  leading  part  in  bringing  to  the 
stake  Lambert,  Anne  Askew,^  Frith,  and  Allen,  besides  con- 
demning many  others  to  the  same  awful  ])unishment  for  denying 
a  bodily  presence  of  our  Lord  in  the  Sacrament  of  the  Altar. 
Lender  King  Edward, — the  Calvinistic  child  who  was  the  pliant 
and  pietistic  tool  of  others, — Cranmer  had  secured  the  conviction 

'  At  the  church  of  Snodland,  in  Kent,  there  is,  or  was  when  tlie  author 
visited  it  several  years  ago,  a  highly  coloured  and  most  impressive  stained - 
glass  window,  of  ail  the  tints  of  the  rainbow,  in  which  certain  of  the  re- 
forming bishops  are  represented,  above  the  Comnninion  Tal)le,  in  the  most 
gorgeous  Eucharistic  vestments — "the  garments  of  Babylon,"  as  tliey  would 
have  termed  them.  In  one  of  the  lights  is  a  highly  idealised  representation 
of  Cranmer;  in  another — with  somewhat  of  inconsistency,  not  apparent 
doubtless  to  those  who  put  it  up  —  a  representation  of  this  veiy  "Anne 
Askew  "  whom  he  had  bruuglit  to  the  stake. 


AUTHORITY   IN    THE   NEW   COMMUNION.  151 

of  Arians  and  Anabaptists — two  of  whom,  Joan  Knell  and  George 
Van  Parr,  he  actually  caused  to  be  burnt,  personally  preventing 
the  king  from  pardoning  the  poor  wretches,  by  authoritatively 
and  unctuously  assuring  him  that  "princes  being  God's  deputies, 
ought  to  punish  impieties  against  Him."^ 

But  to  return  to  the  method  by  which  the  New  Church  was 
practically  ruled — a  point  of  great  practical  moment.  For  many 
persons  nowadays  hold  that  what  they  term  "  recent  innova- 
tions "  -  had  no  place  in  the  pure  conception  and  perfect  scheme 
of  the  "  Reformers," — a  remarkable  delusion,  utterly  contrary  to 
historical  facts ;  totally  opposed  both  to  the  policy  of  the  queen 
and  the  unvarying  practice  of  each  of  Her  Majesty's  prelates. 

The  Church  of  God,  as  we  all  admit,  was  ever  governed  by 
lawful  authorities,  the  bishops ;  the  Church  of  England  from  its 
first  creation  by  the  Reformers  was  ruled  by  Royal  Commis- 
sioners, who  settled  its  constitution,  arranged  its  Prayer-Book, 
sanctioned  and  legalised  its  Ordinal,  and  managed  its  temporal 
affairs.  These,  with  a  few  exceptions,  were  laymen,  some  of 
them  lawyers,  others  needy  gentlepeople  who  had  apostatised,  or 
"  new  men  "  of  base  birth  and  low  origin,  who  had  already  risen 
from  the  ranks  by  servility,  want  of  good  principles,  and  by 
intrigue ;  and  who  reasonably  desired  to  rise  higher,  and  secure 
more  of  the  good  things  of  this  world  by  fresh  deeds  which  will 
not  bear  the  light  of  day.  Their  scheme  of  setting  up  a  local 
church  which  they  could  mould,  alter,  and  dominate  as  they 
willed  was  a  master-stroke  of  state- craft.  But  it  was  also 
mischievous,  wicked,  and  wrong.  "God's  mill  grinds  slowly." 
At  length,  however,  some — waking  from  a  deep  sleep,  stretching 
out  their  hands,  yawning  with  a  will,  and  rubbing  their  eyes — 
begin  to  see  the  situation  as  it  is  (not  as  it  seemed  to  them  in 
their  rosy  dream),  and  are  now  too  accurately  realising  what 
was  done. 

Elizabeth's  Commissioners,  of  whom  Archbishop  Parker  was 
chief,  were  to  make  strict  inquiries  concerning  all  erroneous, 
heretical,  and  dangerous  opinions.  They  were  to  find  out  who 
were  absent,  Sunday  by  Sunday,  from  the  Church  services,  as 
well  as  those  who  frequented  the  private  prayer-meetings  and 
preachings   of    the    Puritans.     They   were   to   give   their    best 

^  Burnet's  Hislory,  part  ii.  book  i. 

-  The  existence  of  the  Privy  Council  as  the  Final  Court  of  Appeal  in 
spiritual  questions,  for  example  ;  the  abolition  of  the  Arches'  Court  and  the 
Chancery  Court  of  York  ;  the  sulistitution  of  a  new  Parliamentary  Court  for 
the  whole  of  the  two  provinces  ;  and  the  setting  up,  by  statute,  of  a  new  and 
non-spiritual  judge. 


152  THE   CHURCH    UNDER   QUEEN    ELIZABETH. 

endeavour  to  suppress  all  heretical  and  seditious  publications  ; 
all  anonymous  and  other  libels  and  squibs,  then  becoming 
numerous,^  against  the  cjueen,  and  her  officers  both  of  Church 
and  State,  and  if  possible  to  get  hold  of  both  writer  and  printer, 
and  nail  their  ears  to  the  pillory,  or  cut  them  off ;  they  were, 
moreover,  to  deal  with  all  adulteries,  bigamies,  fornications, 
and  other  offences  against  the  ecclesiastical  law — which  had 
enormously  increased — and  to  punish  the  offenders  with  so-called 
"  spiritual  censures." 

Catholics  and  Puritans  alike  both  suffered. 

In  157 1,  two  Puritan  members  of  Parliament,  Strickland 
and  Snagg,  boldly  proposed  to  amend  the  Prayer -Book  in 
a  Protestant  direction  ;  but  they  were  soon  put  down.  The 
(]ueen,  as  Sujjreme  Governess,  maintained,  accurately  enough, 
that  such  proposals  struck  at  the  very  root  of  her  prerogative,  as 
no  doubt  was  the  case ;  and  that  she,  as  Head  of  the  Church, 
being  alone  charged  with  the  care  of  it,  distinctly  forbade  Strick- 
land to  go  forward  with  the  measure.  At  first  he  declined,  and 
was  pardonably  sulky  over  the  question ;  but,  on  being  warned 
of  the  consequences  of  his  resolution,  and  having  been  brought 
before  the  Privy  Council,  he  was  most  arbitrarily  and  illegally 
forbidden  to  attend  the  House  at  all.^  This  strong  measure, 
however,  was  more  than  the  Commons  chose  to  allow  to  pass 
unchallenged.  They,  therefore,  protested,  and  Strickland  soon 
took  his  seat  again. 

^  It  was  made  felony  "to  write,  print,  or  set  forth  any  manner  of  book, 
rhyme,  ballad,  letter,  or  writing,  containing  any  false  or  seditious  matter  to 
the  defamation  of  the  Queen's  Majesty  or  to  the  encouraging  of  insurrection 
or  rebellion  within  tiie  realms." — Statutes  of  the  Realm,  vol.  iv.  p.  659. 

-  Her  Majesty's  arbitrary  action  on  this  occasion  was  severely  commented 
on.  Some  said  that  as  Parliament  had  made  her  the  Head  of  the  Church, 
she  was  obviously  inferior  to  Parliament,  and  must  abide  by  its  decisions. 
On  the  other  hand,  the  promjit  action  she  took  in  the  case  of  Strickland,  if 
justifiable  with  one  member  of  Parliament,  might  subse(|uently  have  been 
applied  to  all.  The  Puritans  were  furious,  and  considerable  sensation  was 
created.  Besides  such  action  as  that  recorded  above,  the  queen  interfered 
personally  in  the  election  of  members  of  Parliament.  In  Oxfordshire  and 
Buckinghamshire  she  sent  written  orders  to  those  known  to  favour  the  inno- 
vating section,  to  see  that  her  allies,  and  those  who  would  actively  support 
them,  should  alone  be  elected.  Amongst  such  •w&xe.  Sir  Henry  Lee  of 
(^uarrendon  ;  the  Cheynes,  a  knightly  family  of  Drayton  Bcauchamp  and 
Chesham-Bois ;  and  the  Packingtons  of  Aylesbury;  all  connections  by 
marriage,  and  all  more  or  less  of  a  Gallio-like  type.  The  long  disfranchised 
borough  of  Gallon  was  at  that  period  notoriously  under  the  influence  of  a 
certain  Madam  Copley.  But  this  lady  had  not  repudiated  the  ancient  faith, 
and  was  consefiuently  held  to  be  "not  well  affected."  So  the  queen  gave 
directions  that  Madam  Copley's  nominees  should  be  passed  over,  and  only 
"loyal"  men  returned. — See  Loseley  MSS. ,  and  Author's  MSS.  Excerpts. 


FURTHER   ABOLITIONS   AND   CHANGES.  153 

In  the  meantime,  those  who  were  directly  affected  by  the  issue 
of  the  Pope's  Bull,  found  themselves  in  still  greater  straits. 
Foreign  Catholic  sovereigns  with  their  hands  full  of  troubles  and 
responsibilities  of  their  own,  had  apparently  allowed  its  promulga- 
tion to  pass  unnoticed ;  while,  amongst  those  of  the  old  religion 
at  home,  there  had  at  once  arisen  serious  dissensions  with  regard 
both  to  its  terms  and  its  object,  as  well  as  to  its  immediate 
effects.  Some  maintained  that  it  had  been  irregularly  and  un- 
authoritatively  issued.  Others  argued  that  no  one  was  bound  to 
take  action  upon  it,  until  the  Christian  nations  of  Europe  had 
first  determined  upon  accepting  it  in  combination,  and  of  actually 
putting  it  into  practice.  Argument,  as  experience  teaches,  is 
often  easier  than  action. 

While  opinions  thus  differed,  and  nothing  was  done,  it  became 
tolerably  evident  that  the  innovators  did  not  intend  to  be  at  all 
checked  or  circumscribed  by  any  such  inaction.  Cranmer,  by 
his  laxity  regarding  oaths,  had  some  years  previously  taught  how 
an  Archbishop  of  Canterbury  might  become  entirely  independent 
of  the  Pope ;  and  the  queen's  advisers,  having  accurately  and 
perfectly  learnt  their  lesson,  applied  the  principle  involved  in  it 
with  boldness  and  spirit.  Having  first  repudiated  the  Pope,  they 
then  abolished  the  Christian  sacrifice.^  In  so  doing,  they  were 
independent  of  every  existing  authority,  being  amenable  to  no 
one,  and  superior  to  all.  In  action  they  were  wholly  unchecked 
by  any  considerations  of  what  might  be  said  in  criticism — a 
position  scarcely  conceived  of  nowadays  when  public  opinion 
owns  such  an  extended,  and,  in  some  cases  (where  prejudice 
does  not  come  in),  beneficent  and  advantageous  influence. 

When,  therefore,  to  say  mass  was  to  be  guilty  of  high  treason,- 

^  In  the  abolition  of  the  Christian  sacrifice,  Protestantism  and  Mahometan- 
ism  appear  to  stand  on  a  level.  In  the  recommendation  of  penance  and  self- 
denial,  however,  the  latter  apparently  has  the  advantage  of  the  former. 
Here  it  may  be  noted  that  one  of  the  queen's  leading  bishops  is  profane 
rather  than  witty  (as  he  evidently  intended  to  be)  in  the  following  pedantic 
and  laboured  paragraph  regarding  the  mass: — "How  many  toys,  crossings, 
blessings,  blowings,  knockings,  kneelings,  bowings,  liftings,  sighings, 
houslings,  turnings^ and  half-turnings,  mockings,  mowings,  sleepings  and 
api:-h  playings,  soft  whisperings  and  loud  speakmgs,  have  we  to  consecrate 
our  own  devices  withal,  or  [i.e.  before]  it  can  be  gotten  done  !  " — Pilk'mgtons 
Works,  p.  498,  Parker  Society.     London,  1S42. 

^  "Treason,  by  the  law  of  England,  and  according  to  the  common  use  of 
language,  is  the  crime  of  rebellion  or  conspiracy  against  the  Government. 
If  a  statute  is  made,  by  which  the  celebration  of  certain  religious  rites  is 
subjected  to  the  same  penalties  as  rebellion  or  conspiracy,  would  any  man, 
free  from  prejudice,  and  not  designing  to  impose  upon  the  misinformed,  speak 
of  persons  convicted  on  such  a  statute  as  guilty  of  treason,  without  expressing 
in  what  sense  he  uses  the  words,  or  deny  that  they  were  as  truly  punished  for 


154         THE   CHURCH    UNDER   QUEEN    ELIZABETH. 

and  to  hear  mass,  of  felony, — each  offence  punishable  with  an 
infamous  death, — it  certainly  behoved  all  those  who  could  take  a 
broad  and  wide  view  of  the  position  to  be  prepared  for  some 
kind  of  action,  unless  the  faith  were  to  be  actually  allowed  to  die 
out.  Of  course  penal  laws,  like  the  enactments  referred  to, 
could  never  change  the  nature  or  essence  of  things.  They  could 
not  make  certain  actions,  for  the  punishment  of  which  these  laws 
had  been  specially  passed,  to  become  crimes  in  the  sight  of  God 
and  man,  if  they  w'ere  not  so  before.  Murders,  treasons,  and 
rebellions,  great  and  acknowledged  sins,  have  generally  been 
punished  with  death  ;  but  can  any  reasonable  being — can  any 
j)erson  in  his  right  mind,  assert  that  to  say  mass  was  a  sin  at  all, 
or  a  sin  of  a  like  dye,  or  had  ever  before  been  looked  upon  as 
such,  or  that  it  merited  a  similar  punishment,  or  indeed  any 
punishment  at  all  ?  The  most  holy  and  sacred  mass  was  simply 
the  august  sacrifice  of  the  new  law,  instituted  by  Our  Divine 
Lord  Himself,  and  offered  to  Almighty  God  day  by  day,  from 
east,  to  west,  in  all  preceding  ages,  and  in  every  Christian 
kingdom,  from  the  foundation  of  our  holy  religion  to  the  period 
in  question.  Is  it  credible,  then,  that,  as  in  other  Christian 
countries,  all  the  bishops  and  priests  of  Great  Britain  through  a 
period  of  nine  hundred  years  should  have  been  guilty  every 
morning  of  committing  a  crime,  equivalerrt  in  its  punishment  to 
that  for  murder  or  rebellion  ?  ^  The  very  notion  thus  stated, 
though  absurd  enough,  suffices  to  prove  that  the  enactment  of 
these  sanguinary  statutes, — executed  for  generations,  and  some 
of  them  remaining  as  laws  of  the  land  within  the   memory   of 

their  religion  as  if  they  had  been  convicted  of  heresy  ?  A  man  is  punished 
for  religion,  when  he  incurs  a  penalty  for  its  profession  or  exercise,  to  which 
lie  was  not  liable  on  any  other  account.  This  is  applicable  to  the  great 
majority  of  capital  convictions  on  this  score  under  Elizabeth.  The  persons 
convicted  could  not  be  traitors  in  any  fair  sense  of  the  word,  because  they 
were  not  charged  with  anything  properly  denominated  treason." — Hallam's 
Constitutional  History  pf  England,  6th  edition,  vol.  i.  p.  164,  note. 

^  .Some  of  the  more  daring  innovators  ]-iersisted  in  maintaining  that  all 
"mass-mongers,"  as  they  termed  the  old  clergy,  because  of  their  office,  were 
"conjurors."  The  Protestant  bishops  in  their  sermons  had  deliberately 
encouraged  this  kind  of  language,  with  profane  epigrams  about  "  Hocus- 
pocus."  For  example,  Grindal,  when  liishop  of  London,  wrote  to  Cecil  on 
April  17,  1571,  alluding  to  the  examination  of  Cox  alias  Devon,  an  old  priest 
who  had  been  taken  that  day.  The  Council,  the  bishop  hopes,  will  surely 
])unish  him  for  his  magic  and  conjuration.  Devon,  it  appears,  had  said  mass 
at  the  house  of  Sir  Thomas  Wharton  of  Newhall,  Essex;  at  Sir  Edward 
Waldegrave's ;  and  at  Stubbe's,  in  Westminster.  On  the  19th,  the  Earl  of 
Oxford  encloses  to  Cecil  "an  Inventory  of  all  such  imjilements  of  superstition 
as  were  found  in  the  chamber  near  Lady  Wharton's  bedchamber  at  Newhall, 
Essex,"  after  the  pursuivants  had  ransacked  it. 


STILL    MORE   CHANGES    EFFECTED.  1 55 

those  still  living  was  one  of  the  blackest  stains  on    Elizabeth's 
character. 

The  direct  consequences  of  such  legislation  have  already  been 
only  indirectly  hinted  at,  though  some  few  have  been  plainly  .set 
forth.  In  the  latter  portions  of  this  sketch  of  the  Church  under 
(^ueen  Elizabeth,  certain  dark  deeds  which  resulted  from  that 
legislation  will  be  duly  put  on  record.  With  several  writers 
they  have  been  deliberately  kept  in  the  background. 

Before  the  result  of  the  recent  legislation  against  recusants  is 
considered  in  detail,  it  is  necessary  to  glance  for  awhile  at 
another  part  of  the  i)icture,  and  to  note  certain  obvious  features 
in  the  new  order  of  things,  which,  by  way  of  contrast,  may  better 
enable  the  reader  to  take  in  exactly  what  had  been  done. 

Many  of  the  new  clergy  were  zealous  in  their  labours,  and  had 
little  disposition  to  let  their  moderation  be  known  unto  all  men. 
For,  as  it  was  mainly  the  over-zealous  and  fanatical  who  had 
been  promoted  to  high  places  since  the  queen's  accession,  so 
fanaticism  and  over-zeal,  held  to  be  the  highest  virtues  by  those 
who  expected  promotion,  were  often  rampant. 

Just  as  the  queen's  first  Parliament  had  been  packed  with 
"good  and  true  men," — that  is,  with  persons  known  to  Cecil  as 
favourable  to  his  own  designs  and  a  change  in  religion, — so 
likewise  had  the  two  Convocations  of  the  English  provinces. 
\Vhen  those  clergy  who  on  principle  had  resisted  the  innova- 
tions, had  either  resigned,  been  imprisoned,  or  expatriated,  there 
were  no  great  difficulties  in  duly  manipulating  the  elections  for 
proctors.  The  deans  and  other  officials  were,  of  course,  all  of 
one  way  of  thinking;  and  every  care  was  taken  that  the  repre- 
sentatives of  the  chapters  and  parochial  ministers  should  be  of 
a  like  stamp  and  in  harmony  with  them,  as  far  as  harmony 
could  be  looked  for. 

As  early  as  the  year  1562,  the  Lower  House  of  the  Convoca- 
tion of  Canterbury,  clearly  indicating  its  "  reformed  "  character, 
had  formally  made  requisition  to  the  bishops,  firstly,  that  "  no 
person  abide  within  the  church  during  the  time  of  the  Com- 
munion, unless  he  do  communicate  :  that  is,  they  shall  depart 
immediately  after  the  Exhortation  be  ended,  and  before  the 
Confession  of  the  communicants  "  ;  and,  secondly,  that  it  be 
added  to  this  Confession  that  "the  communicants  do  detest  and 
renounce  the  idolatrous  mass."^ 

Deacons — whether  distinct  from   "  readers  "  does  not  appear 
— on  their  being  licensed  were  expected  to  promise  as  follows  : 
"  I  shall  not  openly  intermeddle  with  any  artificer's  occupation 
^  Strype's  Annals,  vol.  i.  p.  50S.      Oxford,  1S24. 


156         THE   CHURCH    UNDER   QUEEN    ELIZABETH. 

as  covetously  to  seek  a  gain  thereby,  having  in  ecclesiastical 
living  the  sum  of  twenty  nobles  or  above  by  year,'" — a  position 
which,  from  some  documents  consulted,  it  is  tolerably  clear  that 
no  ordinary  "  reader"  could  have  held. 

The  furniture  now  needed  for  the  churches,  but  not  always 
supplied,  consisted  of  a  font,  a  pulpit,  a  table  {i.e.  a  board), 
some  tressels,  a  large  Bible,  and  a  Prayer-Book  each  for  the 
])arson  and  clerk.  John  Foxe's  Book  of  Martyrs,  a  volume  of 
controversial  misrepresentations  and  falsehoods,  which  still 
stands  without  a  rival,  was  specially  ordered  to  be  procured 
and  left  open  in  some  side  aisle,  in  order  that  all  might  read 
its  gross  and  wicked  assertions,  illustrated  by  rude  but  thrilling 
and  effective  woodcuts,  and  so  swell  the  ranks  of  the  innovators. 
"J'he  queen's  "Injunctions"  and  the  "Paraphrase"  of  Erasmus 
likewise  had  to  be  procured  by  the  churchwardens,  together  with 
the  two  volumes  of  savoury  Homilies,  recently  published,  for 
the  non-preaching  ministers  to  read  out  to  the  people. 

The  parish  clerk,  who  in  out-of-the-way  places  -  was  no  doubt 
conservative  enough,  and  no  great  promoter  of  change  (for 
change  was  not  likely  to  benefit  him  much),  went  on  the  even 
tenor  of  his  way,  as  of  old,  making  as  few  practical  alterations 
as  possible.  In  many  places,  as  at  St.  Just's,  in  Cornwall  ; 
Wincanton,  in  Somersetshire ;  Thame,  in  Oxfordshire ;  St.  Mar- 
garet Pattens,  in  the  city  of  London  ;  and  at  Our  Lady's,  Bury 
St.  Edmunds,^  he  still  wore  the  accustomed  linen  rochet — 
sometimes  without  sleeves,  as  more  convenient.  No  doubt  he 
continued  likewise  to  observe  many  of  the  ancient  traditional 
rites  and  ceremonies,  not  specified  by  any  printed  or  written 
direction,  as  a  matter  of  course  ;  to  ring  the  bells  as  of  yore, 
marking  peal  from  chime, "^  the  clang  of  the  marriage-bells  from 
the  solemn  toll  of  the  great  bell  for  funerals.  It  was  more 
probably  his  pious  custom  to  begin  and  end  all  services,  regular 
or  occasional,  with  the  sign  of  the  cross ;  to  strike  his  breast  at 

'  Strype's  Annals,  vol.  i.  p.  515.     Oxford,  1824. 

-  Mass  was  said  in  several  remote  parishes,  throughout  the  whole  of  the 
reign  of  Elizabeth,  e.i^.  at  Morwenstow  and  Lanherne,  in  Cornwall ;  at 
Stonor  Park,  Oxon. ;  at  Thame  Prebendal  House  Chapel,  as  well  as  at 
'I'hame  Park  ;  at  tlie  Manor  House,  North  Weston  ;  at  Waterperry  House; 
at  Wing,  in  P.uckinghamshire  ;  Nash  Court,  in  Kent  ;  Raglan  Castle  ;  and  in 
many  parish  churches  in  Lancashire  and  Carlisle,  where  the  local  nobility 
and  gentry  connived  at  such  breach  of  "the  law";  in  some  places  even 
unto  the  period  of  the  Creat  Rebellion. 

^  Author's  MSS.  and  Excerpts. 

^  In  hundreds  of  country  parishes  throughout  England  and  Wales,  the 
mass-bell  is  still  rung  on  Sunday  mornings  at  eight  o'clock,  though  there  be  no 
service  held  of  any  sort  or  kind. 


STATE   OF   THE   CHURCH    IN    EXTERNAL   RITES.       1 57 

the  Confession  ;  reverently  to  cover  his  face  with  his  hands  at 
the  Miserere  as  usual ;  ^  to  respond  as  of  old  at  baptisms  and 
churchings  ;  to  have  the  cross  borne  at  the  head  of  a  corpse  at 
funerals  ;  and,  generally,  to  sever  as  few  as  possible  of  those 
traditional  threads-  which  both  in  church  and  churchyard 
hnked  so  firmly  the  living  with  those  who  had  worshipped 
there  in  the  past,  and  who  now  slept  their  last  sleep  beneath 
the  green  grass,  under  the  shadow  of  some  old  church-tower. 

Except  amongst  the  upper  classes  and  the  more  prosperous 
tradesmen  and  yeomen,  the  people  seemed  to  have  still  buried 
their  dead,  when  interred  in  the  churchyard  green,  in  a  shroud 
and  winding-sheet,  without  coffins.  Most  of  the  nobility  and 
gentlepeople  owned  vaults  in  the  churches  or  chantry  chapels, 
and  were  interred  with  exceeding  great  heraldric  pomp — strictly 
according  to  their  true  and  recognised  rank.  Of  this  the  heralds 
took  especial  care,  for  they  duly  marshalled  the  procession, 
formally  sanctioned  the  coat-armour  put  up,  and  were  not 
unrewarded  as  regards  fees.  The  clergy  likewise  by  custom 
were  commonly  interred  in  the  choirs  or  chancels,  and  often, 
as  of  old,  with  their  feet  towards  the  west.  In  these  cases 
leaden  and  oak  coffins  were  always  used.  But  the  large  majority 
of  persons  during  Elizabeth's  reign  were  evidently  buried  with- 
out  coffins.     The    long   winding-sheet   was    folded   again   and 

1  The  fact  that  these  traditional  observances  were  forbidden  in  the  later 
years  of  Queen  Elizabeth,  by  her  bishops  in  their  "  Visitation  Articles  "  shows, 
by  implication,  that  they  were  still  practised  in  some  places. 

-As  late  as  the  first  year  of  James  I.,  one  Howell  Thomas  was  buried 
openly  in  the  parish  church  of  Caerleon,  with  all  the  ancient  rites.  Father 
Robert  Jones  said  the  funeral  mass  early  in  the  morning,  after  which  a  large 
concourse  of  persons,  hooded  and  bearing  lighted  tapers,  preceded  the 
corpse  to  the  burial-place.  The  ancient  offices  seem  to  have  been  used,  for 
no  minister  was  present,  while  at  the  close  of  the  funeral  ceremonies,  one 
Lander  ventured  to  predict  that  mass  would  soon  be  said  publicly  again. — 
State  Papers,  Domestic,  James  I.,  vol.  xiii.  52a,  a.d.  1603.  Even  later  than 
this,  public  feeling  was  so  strong  on  the  subject  of  the  burial  of  the  dead, 
that  an  attempt  at  excommunication  on  the  part  of  the  minister  of  AUesmore, 
near  Hereford,  was  completely  defeated  by  force.  It  seems  that  a  devout 
Catholic  woman  died  ;  but,  as  the  old  rites  had  been  used  in  her  sickness, 
the  minister  maintained  that  she  was  excommunicated,  and  could  not  be 
interred  in  the  churchyard.  The  clerk  dug  a  grave,  but  the  minister  ordered 
it  to  be  filled  in  again.  The  body  remained  unburied  for  more  than  eight 
days.  At  length  her  neighbours  determined  to  inter  the  corpse.  So  they 
rose  early  on  the  appointed  day,  and  with  torches,  tapers,  and  the  ancient 
ringing  of  bells,  they  boldly  went  to  the  churchyard  and  peacefully  effected 
their  object.  The  minister  had  appealed  to  the  bishop,  w  ho  sent  his  officers 
to  take  the  people  into  custody  ;  but  the  number  of  Catholic  sympathisers 
so  increased,  that  this  was  out  of  the  question,  and  serious  riots  were  feared. 
— See  Treatise  on  ^litigation,  by  Robert  Parsons. 


158  THE   CHURCH    UNDER   QUEEN    ELIZABETH. 

again  round  the  stiff  body,  after  which  the  latter  was  bound 
closely  with  swathings  of  clean  and  white  linen,  with  a  frill  both 
at  head  and  foot ;  then  placed  on  a  bier,  or  sometimes  in  a  parish 
coffin  kept  for  the  purpose,  over  which  during  the  funeral  service 
a  wooden  hearse  stood,  commonly  covered  with  a  silken  pall. 

In  certain  dioceses,  as  in  that  of  St.  David's,  already  referred 
to,  some  young  and  vigorous  bishop — "a  mightie  proper  enemy 
to  the  Pope  and  all  his  fond  and  pernicious  tromperie " — had 
done  his  best  to  crush  out  all  Catholic  customs,  and  to  destroy 
reverence  and  decency ;  but  in  others,  and  specially  in  that  of 
York,  where  the  wolds  were  wild,  the  parishes  extensive,  and 
the  country  population  scattered  ;  and,  perhaps,  mainly  because 
parsons  were  scarce,  and  ministers  few  in  number, — the  parish 
clerk,  retaining  his  old  duties,  was  duly  authorised  by  the 
Primate  of  England  ^  not  only  to  read  the  first  Lesson,  but  to 
monotone  the  Psalms  at  mattins  and  evensong,  and  to  recite 
the  Epistle  in  the  monthly  and  quarterly  service  of  the  Lord's 
Supper.  In  some  cases,  when  no  minister  was  to  be  had,  the 
clerk  appears  to  have  churched  the  women,  catechised  the 
children,  and  buried  the  dead.- 

Here  and  there,  especially  in  certain  large  towns,  well-meant 
attempts  to  preserve  to  the  newly-arranged  services  some  kind 
of  order  and  decency  were  sometimes  made.  So  long  as  former 
traditions  survived  this  was  not  so  impracticable.  But  such 
services  were  not  popular ;  the  churches  had  fallen  into  such 
decay — there  were  broken  windows  around,  damaged  roofs 
above,  and  damp  pavements  beneath — that  the  people  failed  to 
attend  them,  save  under  pressure  from  authority,  and  fear  of 
punishment  for  being  absent.  Thus  week-day  services  ceased, 
and  only  Sundays  came  to  be  at  all  observed.  For  then  lists  of  all 
absentees  were  made  out  by  churchwardens  and  sidesmen,  who 
stood  at  the  chief  entrance  with  ink-horn,  pen,  and  paper,  while 
once  a  quarter  lists  were  returned  to  the  diocesan  authorities. 
In  newly-founded  grammar  schools,  however,  and  in  alms- 
houses, some  kind  of  prayers,  usually  a  modification  of  mattins 
and  evensong,  were  almost  always  enjoined  to  be  said  daily — to 
the  credit  of  their  founders. 

1  The  clerk,  at  least,  in  the  diocese  of  York,  was  expected  to  be  both  able 
and  ready  to  read  distinctly  the  first  Lesson,  the  PLpistle,  and  the  Psalms, 
with  all  the  ordinary  responses,  and  to  keep  the  church  clean,  swept,  and 
sweet.  Whether  he  was  ordained  at  all,  and  if  so  by  what  form,  is  uncertain. 
The  old  clerks  had  almost  always  received  the  four  minor  orders. — Arch- 
bishop Grindal's  Articles  to  be  Enquired  of,  etc.,  A.D.  1571.  London: 
William  Serres. 

*  Author's  Excerpts  and  MSS.      EUekcr  Letters,  No.  17. 


THE   NEW    "rite"   OF   CONFIRMATION.  1 59 

Loose  doctrines  continued,  at  the  same  time,  to  be  taught 
with  regard  to  the  need  and  nature  of  episcopacy.  Whatsoever 
the  Pope  was  believed  to  maintain  as  true  and  necessary,  that 
(whatever  it  might  be)  was  still  openly  opposed,  caricatured,  and 
condemned.  Yet  when  the  ultra-Puritans  became  potent,  those 
in  authority  in  the  Established  Church  were  obliged  to  shift 
their  ground  a  little.  Bishop  Pikington  of  Durham,  for  example, 
remarked  :  "  I  agree  that  James,  brother  of  our  Lord,  was  bishop 
there  at  Jerusalem,  as  the  ancient  writers  testify ;  but  that  he 
said  or  did  anything  like  the  popish  clouted  Latin  mass,  that  I 
utterly  deny."  ^ 

Elsewhere  the  same  Protestant  authority  wrote  : — 

"  In  all  these  ages  were  some  that  both  knew,  taught  privately, 
and  followed  the  truth ;  though  they  were  not  horned  and 
mitred  bishops,  nor  oiled  and  sworn  shavelings  to  the  Pope. 
Such  popish  bishops,  I  am  sure,  no  man  is  able  to  prove  to 
have  been  in  every  See  of  this  realm  continually  since  the 
apostles'  time,  nor  elsewhere.  When  he  has  proved  it,  I  will 
say  as  he  does."  ^ 

Confirmation,  no  longer  a  sacrament,  but  only  a  mere  rite,^  in 
which  the  subjects  confirmed  themselves,  was  then  looked  upon 
by  the  great  majority  as  most  probably  a  work  of  supererogation, 
and  was  in  no  way  appreciated.  Hence  very  few  confirmations 
were  held  anywhere;  for,  in  truth,  nothing  approaching  a 
ceremony,  unless  the  queen  were  the  chief  subject  of  it,  was 
now  tolerated,  much  less  run  after.  When  apostles  could 
bestow  a  power  of  speech  to  the  stammering  or  stupid,  or  when 
to  those  preaching  to  strange  nations  (as  some  remarked)  a 
special  "gift  of  tongues"  was  thus  imparted,  laying  on  of  hands 
was  all  very  well.  But  when  nothing  visible  ensued,  as  was 
certainly  then  the  case,  it  became  merely  an  empty  and  idle 
ceremony.  Long  sermons  or  wearisome  "prophesyings,"  as 
they  were  termed,  were  then  all  the  rage.     What  were  termed 

^  Works  of  Bishop  Pilkington,  p.  496,  Parker  Society.     London,  1S42. 

2  Ibid.  p.  59S. 

^  "The  rite  of  Confirmation,  as  I  desire  to  point  out,  is  something  aho- 
gether  different  to  the  Sacrajnent  of  Confirmation.  The  latter  is  as  old  as 
Christianity,  administered  both  in  the  East  and  West  ;  whereas  the  former, 
the  '  rite,'  was  first  invented  by  the  English  Reformers.  It  is,  as  we  all 
know,  a  service  in  which  persons  make  a  promise  in  the  face  of  the  con- 
gregation '  to  ratify  and  confirm '  the  pledge  made  on  their  behalf 
by  their  sponsors  —  a  very  impressive  service;  a  kind  of  'renewal  of 
vows.'  But  this  is  not  a  sacrament,  as  any  bishop  of  the  Established 
Church  would  frankly  and  passionately  maintain." — Sermon  by  the  Bishop 
of  Dorchester,  O.C.R.,  reported  in  the  Daily  Chronicle,  September 
1S78. 


l60         THE   CHURCH    UNDER   QUEEN    ELIZABETH. 

"theatrical  displays"^  had  quite  gone  out  of  fashion.  When, 
therefore,  Dr.  John  Uncierhill,  in  15S9,  was  sent  to  Oxford  as 
bishop,  this  interesting  rite  had  not  been  administered  for  more 
than  a  quarter  of  a  century  ;  -  and  when  an  obscure  person,  named 
John  Jegon,  was  appointed  to  the  See  of  Norwich  in  the  spring 
of  1603,  there  had  been  no  confirmation  in  that  part  of  the 
country  for  the  space  of  twelve  years.^ 

It  was  a  long  time  before  the  people  became  accustomed  to 
wedded  bishops  and  parsons'  wives.  Several  smitten  and  insinu- 
ating prelates  who  had  made  offers  of  marriage  to  the  daughters 
(jf  knights  and  esquires  were  cruelly  repulsed,  and  this  some- 
times even  when  the  watchful  paterfamilias  was  himself  an 
innovator,  and  "  most  godly  and  worshipful."  Sir  John  Haring- 
ton  records  some  notable  incidents  relating  to  this  subject ;  and 
it  is  well  known  that  for  several  generations  after  the  changes 
under  Elizabeth  the  inferior  clergy  had  to  be  content  with  the 
])ink-faced  and  fresh  daughters  of  husbandmen,  with  "serving- 
maids,"  or,  as  a  doubtful  alternative,  with  "ancient  widows." 

When  Dr.  John  Whitgift  was  Bishop  of  Worcester  (a.d.  1577- 
1583),  though  the  revenue  of  the  See  was  not  very  great,  he 
always  came  up  to  Parliament  well  attended, — his  servants  in 
purple  liveries  and  staves  of  office,  his  ambling  nag  caparisoned 
with  a  richly  embroidered  saddle-cloth,  his  chimere  of  new  and 
shining  satin,  and  his  lawn  sleeves  perfectly  clean  and  undarned, 
— a  fashion  much  gone  out,  because  many  of  the  prelates  were 
so  miserly,  and  consequently  so  personally  shabby ;  but  one 
which  was  greatly  liked  by  the  queen.'*  It  happened  one  day 
that  Bishop  Aylmer  of  London,  meeting  His  Lordship  of  Wor- 
cester with  such  an  orderly  troop  of  attendants,  demanded  of 
him  how  he  could  afford  to  keep  so  many  men,  upon  which 
Whitgift  answered,  with  a  sharp  twinkle  of  the  eye  and  a  smile, 
that  it  was  because  he  kept  so  few  women. 

The  distracted  bishops,  pulled  hither  and  thither  by  contro- 
versial partisans,   were  now  so  troubled  by  the    Puritans  that 

'  "  With  respect  to  Confirmation,  I  do  not  suppose  you  approve  of  the 
theatrical  display  which  the  Papists  have  admitted  among  their  sacraments. 
But  if  those  who  rightly  instructed  in  the  Catechism  are  admitted  to  the 
Lord's  Supper  with  public  testimony  and  imposition  of  hands  (which  we 
know  that  Christ  also  practised  to  young  children),  I  do  not  see  what  occa- 
sion there  is  fur  any  one  to  c[uarrel  about  it." — Rodolph  Gualter  to  Bishop 
Cocks,  Letter  94,  2nd  series  Zurich  Letters. 

-  This  melancholy  fact  is  apparent  from  documents  existing  in  the  Diocesan 
Registry  at  Oxford. 

^  A  Replicacion  to  an  Aniieient  Enemy,  etc.,  p.  31.      London  :   Serres. 

■'  Brief  View  of  the  State  of  the  Church  of  England,  by  Sir  J.  liarington, 
p.  S.     London,  1C53. 


ECCLESIASTICAL   DISORDERS.  l6l 

formal  Injunctions  were  issued  in  the  summer  of  15 71,  forbidding 
reading,  praying,  preaching,  or  administering  the  Sacraments^  in 
any  place,  public  or  private,  without  licence.  This  was  certainly 
needed,  if  anything  approaching  to  order  was  to  be  retained  ; 
and  was  not  determined  on  a  day  too  soon,  for  the  disorder  then 
existing  was  of  so  remarkable  a  kind  that,  to  some,  it  seemed 
likely  to  be  subversive  of  all  peace,  either  in  Church  or  State, 
and  threatened  to  produce  anarchy.  A  sermon  in  those  days, 
instead  of  ending  with  a  devout  iormula,  often  closed  amidst 
controversial  expostulations  and  noisy  assertions,  and  sometimes 
ended  with  a  free  fight.  A  parsimonious  Chelmsford  church- 
warden,^  who,  on  one  occasion,  had  provided  a  certain  amount 
of  wine  for  use  at  some  religious  commemoration  (let  us  hope 
it  was  a  love-feast,  and  not  "the  Supper  "of  the  Prayer-Book), 
had  the  empty  flagon  thrown  at  his  head,  because  he  had  not 
supplied  sufficient  for  the  spiritual  wants  of  the  militant  and 
excited  "saints."  Such  disorders  were  by  no  means  singular. 
The  Act  of  Parliament  ^  which  had  been  passed  in  the  spring 
of  the  year  had  already  gone  as  far  as  it  was  possible  to  go  in 
conciliating  the  wandering  preachers  and  communistic  prophets. 
Probably  a  full  third  of  the  beneficed  clergy  were  either  (i)  only 
"readers"  or  old  parish  clerks;  (2)  persons  who,  when  abroad, 
had  received  a  "  call "  from  some  of  the  foreign  sects,  or  who 
had  been  "ordered"  by  a  minister ;*  (3)  persons  who  had  been 
appointed  preachers  by  the  Superintendents  of  Foreign  Protestants 
in  London,  Sandwich,  Canterbury,  Dover,  Norwich;  and  else- 
where ;  or  (4)  old  men  who,  either  in  religious  houses  or  as 
seculars,  had,  in  previous  reigns,  received  minor  orders  and  the 
office  oi  the  sub-diaconate  or  diaconate ;  or  (5)  persons  who, 
believing  themselves  "  sent,"  and  wholly  repudiating  forms  and 

^  Unless  a  man  could  preach  fluently  without  a  mnniiscript,  ihe  Puritan 
leaders  doubted  if  he  were  "called,"  though  possibly  "ordered."  "As  for 
those  unlearned  one-s,  whom  you  call,  neither  are  they  ministers,  though  you 
so  term  them;  neither  have  authority  to  minister  Sacraments,' though  you 
give  them  power,  except  they  can  minister  the  Word  by  preaching  also."— 
An  Ans'iver  to  Certain  Pieces  of  a  Se)t?ion  made  at  Fanl's  Civ7s,  by  Dr. 
Cooper,  Bishop  of  Lincoln.     London,  1572. 

2   77ie  Brownists  of  Chelmsford,  etc.,  by  a  Congregational  Minister,  p.  17 
Chelmsford,  1821. 

^  Statutes,  13  Elizabeth,  cap.  xii. 

■•  "One  Badam,  an  old  worn  out  minister  of  Gloucestershire,  deprived  of 
all  hvmg  by  the  Superintendent  of  Ilererord  {i.e.  John  Scory,  bishop]  foV  his 
lewd  conversation,  and  among  the  rest/;;-  makin-r  ministers  for  money,  with- 
out his  lordship's  kno  wk  dge,  etc.  "—An  Aneic  nt  Editors  Note- Book.  Library, 
Stonyhurst  College.  From  this  it  is  clear  that  an  old  minister  [neither  bishop 
nor  priest]  simoniacally  pretended  to  make  "ministers." 

L 


l62  THE   CIIUKCH    UNDER   QUEEN    ELIZABETH. 

ceremonies,  had  never  been  ordained  at  all.  Inquiries  Avhich 
some  of  the  bishops  had  carefully  made,  convinced  them  clearly 
enough  of  the  true  state  of  affairs ;  and,  as  it  was  quite  impossible 
by  any  existing  legal  machinery  to  turn  out  at  least  one-third  of 
the  persons  beneficed,  amounting  to  no  less  than  three  thousand, 
it  was  clear  that  what  could  not  be  cured  must  be  endured. 
Complaints  had  long  been  made  that  anybody  and  everybody 
who  believed  himself  to  be  under  the  guidance  of  the  Spirit/ 
insisted  both  on  praying  and  preaching  in  i)arish  churches  as 
well  as  by  market-places  and  on  village  greens.  Persons  of  the 
humblest  class,  and  with  no  attainments, — some  could  only  read 
with  difficulty,  and  often  stumbled  much  in  reading  at  all, — 
came  forward  on  their  own  authority  to  curse  the  religion  of  their 
ancestors,  with  impressive  oaths  and  terrible  language;  to  interpret 
the  mystical  imagery  of  the  Apocalypse  in  a  sense  "disadvan- 
tageous to  the  foreign  Bishop  of  Rome,"  and  at  the  same  time, 
as  some  reason  for  their  astounding  dogmatism,  to  maintain  the 
certainty  of  their  own  predestination  to  eternal  life,  and  their 
sure  guidance  from  on  high.  As  regards  "  reforms,"  those 
already  carried  out  by  the  Spiritual  Governess,  Tarker,  and 
Cecil  were  not  worthy  of  the  name.  Instead  of  having  had  one 
Pope  of  old,  all  the  new  prelates,  as  it  was  maintained,  now 
themselves  wanted  to  be  popes ;  they  wore  the  outlandish 
garments  of  Babylon,  fined  and  persecuted  "the  saints"  (as  the 
Puritans  modestly  called  themselves),  cited  them  to  their  courts, 
where  legal  sharks  abounded,  and  steadily  resisted  that  further 
"godly  reformation,"  which  was  still,  as  they  argued,  so  sorely 
needed.  When  Archbishop  Parker  summoned  Sampson  and 
other  Puritan  leaders  to  Lambeth,  His  Grace  soon  found  out 
how  fanatical  and  disobedient  they  were,  and  how  entirely 
exhortations  to  conformity  were  contemptuously  disregarded. 

It  was  determined,  therefore,  to  allow  all  those  who  were  in 
]iossession  of  benefices— whether  ordained  or  not,  and  whatever 
they  were,  laymen,  ministers,  or  priests — to  retain  their  respective 
jueferments  by  simj^le  subscription  to  such  of  the  "  Articles  of 
Religion  "of  1563  "as  only  concern  the  profession  of  the  true 
Christian  faith  and  the  doctrine  of  the  Sacraments."  Conditional 
ordination  was  never  even  contemplated.  With  the  same  aim, 
certain  words  of  the  twentieth  Article,  viz.  "The  Church  hath 

'  Tlic  "fanners  of  l)enelkes"  were  ([uite  content  to  employ  such  persons, 
because  tlieir  services  could  be  secured  for  a  small  payment  ;  and,  conse- 
quently, seldom  inquired  about  "ordination."  The  IJishops'  Courts,  more- 
over, grantetl  all  kinds  of  dispensations,  from  which  considerable  fees  were 
received. 


NEED   OF   EPISCOPAL   ORDINATION.  1 63 

power  to  decree  rites  and  ceremonies,  and  authority  in  con- 
troversies of  faith,"  were  somehow  omitted  in  a  new  edition  of 
these  Articles  which  Jewell,  Bishop  of  Salisbury,  had  prepared 
for  publication ;  and  this  with  the  express  intention  of  more 
effectually  smoothing  the  path  of  the  Puritans,  and  of  avoiding 
further  contests  or  agitation.  Such,  however,  was  never  secured. 
For  agitation  was  still  carried  on,  and  contests  were  more 
frequent  than  ever.  The  large  concessions  already  made  to  the 
Puritans  were,  of  course,  accepted.  And,  be  it  noted,  these  were 
no  sooner  accepted,  than  fresh  agitators  began  at  once  to  demand 
further  and  still  greater  changes. 

The  chief  point,  however,  which  should  never  be  forgotten  by 
those  who  look  back  on  the  past,  but  of  which  few  are  really 
aware,  is  that,  at  the  period  referred  to,  the  question  of  the 
necessity  of  episcopal  ordination  was  settled,  at  the  distinct 
suggestion  of  the  bishops  themselves, — with  the  pontifical 
authority  of  the  Supreme  Governess  herself,  and  by  and  with 
the  consent  of  Parliament, — in  the  plain  sense  of  its  not  being 
necessary  at  all.  Thus  the  loose  and  lawless  opinions  of  Cranmer, 
Barlow,  and  Bale  concerning  ordination  were  not  only  commonly 
current  throughout  the  New  Church,  but  were  actually  approved 
and  ratified  by  this  new  and  special  enactment;  formally  confirm- 
ing those  whose  ordinations  were  avowedly  questionable,  doubtful, 
or  invalid,  in  the  full,  free,  and  peaceable  possession  of  their 
respective  benefices. 

Were  the  solemn  warnings,  let  it  be  here  asked,  of  Bishops 
Thirlby  and  Scott,  of  Abbot  Feckenham,  and  Bishop  Watson, 
uttered  in  all  solemnity  on  Queen  Elizabeth's  accession,  but 
utterly  disregarded,  the  warnings  of  the  lawful  teachers  of  the 
Church  of  England,  —  not  greatly  needed  when,  in  less  than 
twenty  years,  such  a  fundamental  and  complete  revolution  could 
have  been  thus  effected  ? 

Alas,  for  the  poor  of  our  crowded  cities !  Alas,  too,  for 
the  poor  scattered  over  the  wealds  and  wolds  of  our  dear  old 
England,  robbed  thus  of  their  brightest  heritage,  the  faith  of  their 
fathers  :  offered  henceforth,  in  lieu  of  the  promised  Bread  and 
a  foretaste  of  the  peace  up  above,  only  the  discordant  wranglings 
of  dreary  disputants,  and — a  stone  ! 

What  has  already  and  hitherto  been  set  forth  will  thus  serve 
to  show  how  thoroughly  the  work  of  destruction  had  been  done. 
Not  only  had  the  people  of  England  been  cruelly  cut  off  from 
communion  wath  the  rest  of  Christendom — against  the  will  of 
a  large  majority,  and  obviously  without  the  knowledge  of  what 
was  being  done,  on  the  part  of  a  still  larger ;  but  all  religion  was 


164         THE   CHURCH    UNUKR   QUEEN    ELIZABETH. 

being  deliberately  corrupted  and  destroyed/  and  all  authority 
weakened. 

Those  who,  for  their  own  selfish  purposes,  had  set  to  work  to 
make  a  new  Church  for  the  English  people,  may  possibly  have 
done  their  best,  in  the  process  of  its  b^,,ng  first  planned,  then 
arranged,  then  manipulated  anew,  altered  again,  reformed  afresh, 
and  still  made  dependent,  weak,  and  uninfluential ;  but  the  lesson 
they  all  so  entirely  forgot — a  lesson  which  is  more  than  ever 
needed  at  the  present  day — is  that  "all  power"  has  been  given 
to  the  Son  of  Man  on  earth  as  well  as  in  heaven  ;  that  He  has 
mercifully  delegated  that  power  to  be  exercised  for  the  benefit 
of  all  races  and  nations  to  His  One  Universal  Church,  and  that 
no  local  communion,  isolated  and  apart,  can  in  such  sinful  isola- 
tion convey  the  full  benefit  of  God's  royal  gifts  to  any. 

The  authority  of  prince  as  well  as  prelate,  indeed,  comes  from 
the  same  divine  source — God  Almighty;  and  this  is  true,  though 
now  rejected  by  those  who  think  themselves  wiser  than  their 
forefathers.  Furthermore,  the  destruction  of  one,  as  the  experi- 
ence of  Christians  teaches,  ensures  the  certain  weakening  of  the 
other,  and  vice  versa.  It  can  cause  no  surprise,  consequently, 
that,  when  the  old  and  legitimate  Christian  authority  of  the  Holy 
See  was  rudely  abolished  in  England,  all  authority  became 
weakened ;  or  that,  in  due  course,  it  was  discovered  that  the 
destruction  of  the  altar  under  Elizabeth  had  directly  led  to  the 
overthrow  of  the  throne  under  Charles  I.  Putting  aside  the 
question  of  a  she-supremacy,  the  monstrous  and  impracticable 
doctrine  that  children  should  rule  their  parents,  and  subjects 
their  kings  ;  that  a  disjointed  rabble,  excited  by  godless  self- 
seekers  and  political  fanatics,  may  lawfully  and  properly  set 
aside  both  patriarch  and  prince,  as  and  when  they  will,  and  as 
often  as  they  like,  is  a  doctrine  which,  more  than  any  other,  has 

'  As  Dr.  Mnssman  has  acutely  observed  : — "The  position  taken  up  by  the 
English  Church  at  the  lime  of  the  Reformation  was  that  a  national,  or  local, 
or  particular  Church  has  a  right  to  sit  in  judgment  upon  the  Church  Universal  ; 
that  a  part  of  the  Church  has  a  right  to  decide  for  herself  whether  or  not  the 
doctrines  which  siie  has  hitherto  held  in  common  with  the  whole  Church 
Universal  arc  true  or  false,  and  accept  them  or  reject  them  accordingly  ;  a 
right  to  deciile  whether  or  not  the  canons  of  the  Church  Universal  are  in 
accordance  with  the  laws  of  Christ  and  His  Apostles,  and  abrogate  them,  or 
establish  them  accordingly  ;  a  right  to  decide  for  herself,  as  against  the  rest 
of  Christendom,  which  Sacraments  were  ordained  by  Christ,  and  which  were 
not  ;  and  a  right  to  decide  finally  what  ritual  and  ceremonies  of  the  Church 
are  lawful  and  edifying,  and  so  to  be  retained  ;  and  what,  on  the  other  hand, 
are  unlawful  and  unedifying,  and  so  to  be  rejected,  as  tending  to  superstition 
and  idolatry  to  be  abhorred  of  all  faithful  Christians." — The  Keys  of  the 
Kingdom  of  llcavcii:  a  Sermon.     London,  1S79. 


CONSEQUENCES    OF    SIXTEENTH-CENTURV    CHANGES.   1 65 

tended  to  bring  about  that  alternate  disorder,  confusion,  mis- 
trust, and  revolution  by  which  the  once-Christian  nations  of 
Europe  are  now  in  these  latter  years  of  civilisation,  culture,  and 
progress,  periodically  cursed.  The  most  influential  modern 
Evangel  is  obviously  the  gospel  of  the  Gatling-gun — the  glad 
tidings  of  fire,  sword,  and  force.  The  so-called  "progress" 
of  once  Christian  races  turns  out  to  be  only  the  impressive 
progress  of  a  crab — their  culture,  a  mere  knowledge  of  how  to 
pamper  the  body,  paganise  the  mind,  corrupt  the  conscience,  and 
starve  the  immortal  soul. 


CHAPTER  VI. 

The  action  wliich  had  been  taken  at  Rome  produced  one  direct 
effect,  viz.  that  the  persecution  of  those  who  clung  to  the  old 
religion  became  at  once  more  merciless,  bitter,  and  unrelenting. 
While  some  few  persons  endeavoured  to  escape  the  penalties 
imposed  by  occasionally  going  to  the  new  services,  the  large 
majority  resolutely  and  firmly  declined  to  do  so. 

As  regards  the  old  clergy,  "  Queen  Mary's  priests,"  as  they 
were  still  called,  some  notoriously  conformed  in  the  hope  of 
another  change,  or  possibly  in  order  to  have  greater  liberty  and 
licence.  Others,  however,  stood  firm  unto  the  very  end,  living 
and  dying  in  the  faith  of  their  forefathers. 

Of  the  former  an  acute  writer  thus  remarks:  "When  punish- 
ments are  inflicted  on  the  one  hand,  and  considerable  advantages 
offered  on  the  other;  when  non-compliance  is  attended  with 
bitter  sufferings,  and  temporising  encouraged  with  rewards,  a 
sudden  change  in  matters  of  religion  is  justly  ascribed  either 
to  the  fear  of  the  one  or  hope  of  the  other.  And  this  was  the 
case  from  the  very  beginning  of  Queen  Elizabeth's  Reformation. 
Oreat  numbers  of  the  inferior  clergy  who  came  over  to  it 
were  frightened  into  a  compliance,  and  taught  to  conform  by 
the  sufferings  of  others.  They  saw  their  bishops  imprisoned, 
and  all  those  of  their  own  rank  who  had  refused  the  Oath  of 
Supremacy  turned  out  of  their  livings  and  reduced  to  beggary. 
So  that  they  had  no  other  choice  left  but  either  to  conform 
or  starve,  having  nothing  but  their  benefices  to  depend  upon 
for  a  livelihood.  A  terrible  tem[)tation  to  those  who  are  not 
armed  with  virtue  strong  enough  to  undergo  a  lingering  martyr- 
dom !  ]jut  the  greatest  part  were  ])revailed  upon  by  the 
]jo\verful  charms  of  liberty  and  ease.  Tor,  besides  the  liberty 
they  were  sure  to  enjoy  of  gratifying  their  incontinence,  as  the 
effect  soon  showed,  the  queen  had  by  the  plenitude  of  her 
ecclesiastical  power  contrived  such  a  commodious  Reformation 
for  them  that,  if  they  would  but  conform,  they  should  keep  their 


rUNISIIMENT   OF   THOSE   HOLDING   THE   OLD   FAITH.   1 6/ 

benefices,  and  at  the  same  time  be  eased  of  the  most  painful 
part  of  the  duties  annexed  to  them."^ 

Of  the  CathoHc  laity  by  far  the  greater  number  had  deliber- 
ately declined  to  attend  the  new  services.  Enactment  had  been 
added  to  enactment,  statute  to  statute,  but  all  in  vain.  They 
could  not  conform.  Their  consciences  were  altogether  against 
it.  The  new  religion,  made  only  a  few  years  ago,  was  certainly 
not  from  God.  The  new  ministers  had  no  i)roper  ordination, 
and  many  of  them  no  ordination  at  all.  One  contradicted 
another,  and  all  was  confusion  ;  while  the  new  doctrines  were 
heretical  or  erroneous.  They,  therefore,  would  not  conform.^ 
Hence  they  lay  at  the  mercy  of  their  enemies.  At  any  moment 
they  might  be  arrested  and  hurried  off  before  the  appointed 
courts  to  be  interrogated  on  oath  as  to  whether  or  not  they  had 
been  to  church,  where,  when,  and  how  often  they  had  received 
the  Lord's  Supper,  and  whether  they  held  the  parson's  written 
certificate  that  this  had  been  publicly  done.  If  not,  they  were 
condemned  as  recusants  to  fines  and  imprisonment  ;  and  if, 
having  previously  communicated,  they  had  repented  of  the  act 
and  been  reconciled  by  some  priest,  they  forfeited  their  lands  and 
goods,  and  were  liable  to  be  confined  in  prison  for  life.  Thus, 
to  say  mass,  as  well  as  to  hear  mass,  was  a  crime.  To  receive  a 
confession,  as  well  as  to  make  a  confession,  was  the  same.  To 
teach  the  Catholic  faith  as  brought  hither  by  St.  Augustine,  or  to 
be  taught  it,  was  the  like.  To  know  that  a  priest  was  at  a  certain 
place,  and  not  to  seize  or  betray  him,  was  a  crime.  To  give  him 
food,  shelter,  or  money  was  also  a  crime.  To  remain  away  from 
the  services  of  the  desolate  and  ruined  churches  was  a  crime  ; 
torture,  imprisonment,  and  death  were  the  punishments.  So 
that  the  rack  and  gibbet  and  the  gallows  were  in  constant 
requisition  ;  while  the  prisons  and  the  dungeons  were  choked 
with  innocent  victims.-^ 

Elizabeth's  Inquisition,  for  such  it  was,  was  empowered  to 
exercise  an  absolute  control  over  men's  opinions,  and  to  punish 

1  Englamrs  Conversion  and  Reformation   Compared,  p.   260.       Antwerp, 

1725-  .  ... 

^  The  above  is  duly  and  e.xactly  paraphrased  from  replies  to  the  inquiries 
of  the  Commissioners,  of  whom  Grindal  was  one. 

■'  "  Of  our  late  persecution  in  general  it  is  so  extreme  as  the  like  was  never. 
All  prisons  are  full  of  all  sorts,  old  and  young  men,  wives,  widows  and  maids. 
It  is  not  enough  to  use  all  allegiance  by  way  of  protestation  ;  unless  they  can 
get  one  to  renounce  the  Pope  and  comer  with  the  ministry  ;  or  else  to  be  com- 
mitted and  indicted  for  £zo  by  the  month,  and  all  further  misery  to  be 
inflicted  that  they  can  possibly  devise." — Tiie  Troubles  of  our  Catliolic  Fore- 
fathers, 3rd  series,  p.  50.     London,  1877. 


1 68  THE   CHURCH    UNDER   QUEEN    ELIZABETH. 

all  according  to  the  discretion  of  its  members.  Ordinary 
evidence  might  be  received  in  the  ordinary  manner  ;  but  torture 
and  imprisonment  (what  these  were  will  be  soon  seen  in  detail) 
were  likewise  to  be  used  whensoever  thought  necessary.  Thus 
this  hypocritical  woman,  aided  by  men  like  Cecil  and  Walsing- 
ham,  the  bishops  and  the  judges,  as  well  as  the  ordinary  justices 
of  the  peace,^  punished  in  a  most  barbarous  manner  persons 
absolutely  guiltless  of  any  crime  whatsoever,  and  this  by  punish- 
ments hitherto  reserved  for  the  most  dark  and  deadly  crimes. 

But  the  tyranny  of  inflicting  fines  for  recusancy,  i.e.  for  declin- 
ing to  attend  the  new  services,  was  the  most  tyrannical.  If 
persons  honestly  and  conscientiously  believed  that  attendance 
thereat  involved  the  sin  of  apostacy  (and  most  of  their  religious 
teachers  so  taught  them),  surely  their  consciences  were  not  to  be 
forced  by  such  odious  laws.  But  bribery  had  then  become  a 
science  ;  the  bribed  were  exceedingly  numerous,  and  money  with 
which  to  reward  them  was  notoriously  scarce.  Hence  this  plan 
of  fines  was  cleverly  adopted.  Old  families  paid  them  ;  upstarts 
and  time-servers  received  them.  The  actual  punishment  for 
refusing  to  attend  the  queen's  new  services  was  no  less  than 
twenty  pounds  a  lunar  month,  or  about  two  hundred  and  fifty 
pounds  a  year;  which,  according  to  the  value  of  money  in  the 
present  day,  would  be  equivalent  to  an  annual  fine  of  three 
thousand  two  hundred  and  fifty  pounds  per  annum.  Hoards 
and  children's  marriage-portions,  put  by  year  by  year  from  the 
time  of  their  birth,  thus  soon  decreased,  and  subsequently 
vanished.  Numbers  of  noblemen  and  gentlemen  endured  this 
tyranny,  and  anxiously  endeavoured  to  pay  these  demands,  so 
long  as  their  property  enabled  them  to  do  so,  by  selling  their 
estates  (and  this,  of  course,  by  forced  sales  and  at  great  dis- 
advantage) ;  but  if  at  any  time  the  fines  were  in  arrears,  a 
statute  recently  passed  authorised  the  immediate  seizure  of  all 
their  personal  property  in  addition,  together  with  two-thirds  of 
their  real  estates  every  six  months,  so  long  as  the  arrears  were 
unpaid.  Sometimes  an  annual  composition  was  received  instead  ; 
but  this  was  regarded  by  Elizabeth  and  her  ministers  as  a  great 
favour. 

Thus,  under  this  woman's  disastrous  rule,  the  Catholic  gentle- 

'  A  justice  of  llic  peace  was  delined  as  "an  animal,  who,  for  half-a-dozen 
chickens,  would  dispense  wiih  a  dozen  laws  "  (Sir  .Simon  D'Ewes' y<?//;';/(7/, 
p.  66i,  London,  1682)  ;  while  as  regards  bribes  offered  to,  and  received  by, 
some  of  the  superior  judges,  Recorder  Fleetwood  (cpioted  in  Wright's  Letters, 
vol.  ii.  p.  247)  asserts  that  it  had  grown  to  be  a  trade  in  the  court  to  make 
means  for  reprieves.  "  Twenty  pounils  for  a  reprieve  is  nothing,  though  it 
be  but  for  bare  ten  days." 


SUFFERINGS   AND   PUNISHMENT   OF   "RECUSANTS."    169 

man's  manor-house  or  mansion  afforded  him  neither  security  nor 
safety.  The  walls  may  have  been  tliick,  and  the  moat  around 
them  broad  and  deep.  Within,  memorials  of  the  past,  and  of 
those  who  had  crossed  the  dark  river,  told  silently  of  the  peace 
of  the  grave.  In  the  courtyard  the  peacock  may  have  sunned 
itself  undisturbed,  or  the  swans  moved  gracefully  upon  the  still 
waters.  But  the  pleasant  quiet  of  the  old  home  was  a  mockery  ; 
while  its  material  stability  maybe  only  reminded  its  thoughtful 
owner  how  insecure  was  now  his  own  altered  lot.  Peace  was 
denied  him ;  he  experienced  no  such  protection  as  just  and 
righteous  laws  in  a  Christian  state  should  always  provide.  His 
house  was  no  longer  his  castle,  as  the  ancient  phrase  stood. 
For  the  indiscretion  of  friends,  or  the  ill-will  and  malice  of  foes  ; 
the  dishonesty  of  tenants,  or  the  carelessness  of  servants  ;  a  word 
uttered  by  accident ;  the  sight  of  a  rosary  or  crucifix,  might 
cause  the  immediate  break-U[)  and  desolation  of  his  ancient  and 
pleasant  home,  and  bring  him  face  to  face  with  ruin.  In  by-ways 
and  retired  nooks,  under  high  patronage,  the  disguised  spy 
constantly  skulked  or  crawled,  in  order  to  betray  and  impoverish 
the  descendants  of  English  gentlemen  who,  both  at  home  and 
abroad,  had  been  valorous  and  vahant  in  the  field,  just  and 
honest  in  their  due  positions  at  home,  the  stay  and  strength  of 
England— hitherto  a  happy  country,  where  truth  had  found  a 
temple  and  freedom  had  been  secured  and  loved. 

As  for  the  poorer  recusants,  who  owned  consciences,  and 
whose  only  comfort  was  their  faith,  they  were  in  a  like  sorry 
plight.  They,  too,  were  cited,  charged,  and  condemned.  But 
how  could  any  of  such  miserable  creatures,  who  with  the  greatest 
difficulty  had  kept  body  and  soul  together,  pay  the  fines  and 
compositions  which  had  been  imposed .?  ^  They  could  not. 
For  no  sheriff's  official  can  draw  blood  out  of  a  flint  stone,  nor 
can  any  man  give  what  he  does  not  possess.  They  were  sent  off 
to  prison  therefore ;  huddled  together  in  rank  and  filthy 
dungeons,  and  fed  on  black  bread  and  brackish  water.  On  one 
occasion  as  many  as  eighty-two  had  stood  in  the  dock  at  Oxford 
at  once.  At  York  two  hundred  and  three  were  condemned  and 
imprisoned  either  there,  at  Beverley,  or  at  Hull,  in  the  course  of 
three  days,  until  at  length  the  various  counties  petitioned  to  be 

^  In  the  course  of  an  inquiry  into  the  existence  of  bondsmen  in  England  at 
the  time  of  and  after  the  Reformation,  Mr.  Furnivall  has  been  shown,  Ijy  Mr. 
Selby  and  Mr.  Bond  of  the  Record  Office,  two  grants  by  Queen  Elizabeth  in 
the  seventeenth  year  of  her  reign  (a.d.  1575)  to  Sir  Henry  Lee,  as  a  reward 
for  his  services,  of  all  the  fines  and  compositions  he  could  extract  from  three 
hundred  bondsmen  and  women. 


I/O  THE   CHURCH    UNDER   QUEEN    ELIZABETH. 

relieved  of  their  care  and  cost.  Then,  after  having  been  stripped 
to  the  waist  (women  as  well  as  men),  these  prisoners  were  some- 
times tied  up  to  a  post,  first  flogged  until  the  blood  streamed 
down  their  backs ;  and  then,  having  had  their  ears  bored  with  a 
red-hot  iron,  were  sent  off  without  either  money  or  food,  to  do 
as  they  could  or  starve.  If  they  were  not  possessed  of  twenty 
marks,  they  were  to  quit  their  native  land  within  three  months, 
and  to  suffer  death,  without  any  fre.^h  trial  or  further  process,  if 
they  returned. 

One  fact  at  length  became  clear,  viz.  that  unless  some  actual 
and  practical  means  were  taken  without  delay  by  which  to  keep 
alive  an  interest  in  the  ancient  faith,  and  unless  authorised 
officers  were  appointed  to  maintain  and  defend  it,  it  must  surely 
cease  to  exist,  and  this  in  no  long  period.  The  priests  ordained 
in  Queen  Mary's  reign  were,  one  after  the  other,  dying  out.^ 
Poverty,  anxiety,  and  imprisonment  had  made  their  hair  pre- 
maturely grey,  and  weakened  their  bodily  powers.  They  had 
lost  their  spirits,  and  their  energies  had  faded  and  failed.  The 
illegally-deprived  bishops  were  kept  in  confinement,  and  conse- 
quently could  not  keep  up  the  supply  of  clergy.  A  true  vocation 
for  the  office  and  due  preparation  were  at  least  needed.  How 
could  the  latter  be  given  when  persecution  was  rampant  ?  Who, 
then,  would  propose  a  remedy — who  supply  the  want  ?  AVhat 
could  be  done  ? 

Dr.  William  Allen,  already  referred  to,  of  good  and  ancient 
family,-  was  the  patriotic  and  far-sighted  person  who  so 
charitably  and  boldly  stood  forward  to  give  an  answer  and 
])rovide  a  remedy.  From  the  outset  he  had  clearly  enough  seen 
the  magnitude  of  the  evil  and  the  true  nature  of  the  remedy 
required.  With  an  intimate  knowledge  of  his  contemporaries, 
and  a  sincere  devotion  to  the  Church  of  his  baptism,  he  set 
himself  in  good  earnest  to  accomplish  the  task  which  the 
religious  revolution  then  effected  in  his  native  land  made  it  so 

^  One  priest  "for  avoiding  searches  he  hath  been  compelled  five  days  and 
nights  to  lie  in  the  woods,  and  other  times  to  walk  on  hills  and  forests,  ami 
lie  in  haj'-barns.  He  hath  reconciled  one  hundred  and  sixty.  He  hath  been 
driven  to  sit  up  four  whole  nights  together  to  do  works  of  charity,  sometimes 
hearing  an  hundred  several  confessions  at  one  time." — An  Ancient  Editor  s 
Note-iiook^  MS.,  Stonyhurst  College. 

-  He  was  a  son  of  Esquire  John  Allen  of  Rosshall,  co.  Lancaster.  His 
sister,  iVIary  Allen,  married  one  of  the  Worthingtons  of  \\'ortliington,  an 
ancient  Catholic  family  of  rank  and  lineage.  —  From  some  M.S.  notes  by  a 
relation,  the  author  discovers  that  in  iSo3  there  was  a  striking  ])ortrait  of  the 
cardinal  at  Kiddington  House,  Oxfordshire,  in  which  he  was  rejiresented  in 
rochet,  scarlet  mozetta,  and  biretta.  It  belonged  to  the  late  Charles  Browne 
Mostyn,  Esq. 


DR.   AFTERWARDS   CARDINAL   WILLIAM   ALLEN.       171 

essential  for  him  to  undertake.  He  was  learned  and  eloquent, 
bold  and  discreet,  a  good  tactician,  and  patient  under  difficulties. 
From  the  first  he  had  let  his  fellow-Christians  know  that  Catholic 
authority  could  never  tolerate  any  attendance  at  the  new  Zwing- 
lian  services.  On  that  point  his  trumpet  had  never  given  any 
uncertain  sound.  To  him,  therefore,  many  seemed  to  look  up 
with  confidence  and  trust  as  to  a  guide.  And  they  did  not  look 
in  vain. 

He  resolved  without  delay  to  open  a  college  at  Douay,  in 
Flanders,  for  the  education  of  English  Catholics  for  the  priest- 
hood, on  the  model  of  those  valued  institutions  at  Oxford  and 
Cambridge,  which  were  now  shut  to  them  at  home.  Friends 
and  alhes  who  had  been  consulted  on  the  subject,  not  only  gave 
their  sincere  approbation  to  the  scheme,  but  rendered  substantial 
and  efficient  help.  Men  denied  themselves  sorely  in  order  to 
aid;  contributions  came  in  profusely,  more  at  first  than  were 
actually  required.  When  at  the  inauguration  of  the  college,  the 
mass  of  the  Holy  Ghost  was  said  by  Dr.  Allen  in  the  private 
chapel  of  his  new  institution,  only  six  companions,  five  of  them 
being  Oxford  men,  knelt  behind  him  at  the  elevation,  imploring 
the  Almighty's  blessing  on  their  joint  labours.  So  soon  as  the 
start  had  been  first  made,  difficulties  seemed  to  vanish  marvel- 
lously. Men  planted  and  watered,  but  God  gave  the  increase. 
First  came  the  blade,  then  the  ear,  then  the  full  corn  in  the  ear. 
In  a  short  time  more  than  a  hundred  and  fifty  exiled  English- 
men, mourning  over  the  desolation  of  their  country,  but  full  of 
resolution,  zeal,  and  devotion,  had  been  enrolled  on  the  books  of 
the  college,  in  order  to  study  theology,  receive  the  sacerdotal 
character,  and  then  return  to  their  native  shores  at  the  risk  of 
their  liberties  and  lives  to  keep  the  lamp  of  Divine  Truth 
burning  in  their  once  happy  island-home.^ 

Theirs  was  a  noble  work.  In  less  than  five  years,  ninety-six 
priests,  charitable,  zealous,  and  fearless,  anointed  with  the  unction 
of  the  Holy  One,  had  landed  in  England  to  perpetuate  the 
ancient  faith.  Later  on  more  came,  in  a  like  spirit  of  self- 
sacrifice  ready  to  face  death  ;  and  though,  for  many  generations, 
and  through  more  than  three  centuries,  it  appeared  as  though 

1  "  This  seminary  or  college  counts  amongst  her  alm/iiii,  or  such  as  have 
been  some  time  her  members,  one  cardinal,  one  archbishop,  twelve  bishops, 
two  other  bishops-elect,  three  archpriesls  with  episcopal  faculties,  eighty 
doctors  of  divinity,  seventy  writers,  many  of  the  most  eminent  men  of  divers 
religious  orders,  and  what  is  most  glorious  of  all,  above  one  hundred  and  fifty 
martyrs,  besides  innumerable  others  who  have  either  died  in  prison  for  their 
faith,  or  at  least  have  suffered  imprisonments,  banishments,  etc.,  for  the 
same." — Richard,  Bishop  of  Debra. 


172  THE   CHURCH    UNDER   QUEEN    EEIZABETH. 

the  chill  of  a  permanent  winter  had  as  it  were,  throughout  all 
seasons,  settled  upon  a  garden  where  the  spiritual  flowers  and 
fruit  liad  once  been  beautiful  and  rich  ;  yet  after  much  patient 
waiting,  and  many  a  prayer  that  the  dew  of  heaven  might  fall, 
a  second  spring  appeared  when  men  least  expected  its  balmy 
breath  and  bursting  buds  ;  and  so  the  flowers  of  grace  again 
adorned  the  earth,  and  the  welcome  time  of  the  singing  of  birds 
came  back  once  more. 

But  to  revert  to  facts,  and  to  continue  the  record.  Arch- 
bishop Parker  died  of  the  stone,  having  suff"ered  much,  on  the 
17th  May  1575.  Below  the  middle  height,  his  features  were 
heavy  and  dull ;  his  hands  large,  his  form  portly ;  and  he  is  said 
to  have  been  somewhat  rough  in  his  manners  and  wanting  in 
refinement.  From  Queen  Elizabeth's  standing-point  —  save  in 
the  case  of  having  secured  for  himself  a  wife.  Mistress  Margaret 
Harleston — he  proved  himself  to  have  been  politic,  discreet,  and 
duly  subservient  to  the  State  authorities;  sufficiently  i^liable  to 
have  caused  them  no  inconvenience  by  the  assumption  of  an 
independence  which  he  did  not  possess,  and  never  cared  to 
hanker  after;  and  was  found  to  be  at  all  times  a  useful  and 
prudent  adviser  in  ecclesiastical  questions.  More  considerate 
than  others  of  the  new  bishops  for  those  of  the  old  faith,  he 
appears  to  have  been  a  learned  man,  particularly  in  history  and 
anticjuitics ;  and  in  this  respect  was  unlike  the  majority  of  his 
brethren  ;  moreover,  he  was  not  stained  with  those  obvious  vices 
which  overtook  so  many  of  the  "  Reformation  "  prelates ;  and 
when  he  saw  how  the  Supreme  Governess  disliked  them,  he  gave 
no  sanction  whatsoever  to  the  fanatical  extravagances  of  the 
Puritans "^  and  their  various  sects.  He  was  a  commonplace,  but 
somewhat  dull  and  insipid,  Erastian.  From  the  wreck  which 
had  overtaken  the  abbey  libraries,  however,  he  wisely  gathered 
several  literary  and  palcographic  treasures,  which  still  remain  as 
a  memorial  of  him  at  Lambeth  Palace,  while  his  Antiquities  of 
the  Church,  and  Lives  of  the  Archbishops,  is  a  learned  antiquarian 
volume.  He  was  buried  with  some  heraldric  pomp  in  the 
chapel  of  that  prelatial  mansion,  and  an  altar-tomb  was  placed 
over  his  remains.^ 

^  In  Lodge's  sketch  of  the  life  of  I'arker,  he  declares  truly  enougli  that  at 
that  time  "ail  the  exterior  decencies  of  devotion  were  revileti  as  remnants  of 
popery,  and  ecclesiastical  propriety  was  viewed  merely  as  the  means  of 
spiritual  pride." — Lodge's  Portrails,  vol.  iii. 

^  The  remains  of  this  prelate  were  l)uried  in  the  midst  of  the  chapel  ;  but 
in  the  time  of  the  Great  Rebellion,  that  building  was  "converted  into  a 
dancing-room,  they  [the  rebels]  having  first  beat  down  Archbishop  Parker's 
tomb  in   the  middle  of  it,   and    thrown  his  bones  upon  the  dunghill." — .See 


THE   queen's   high-handed    POLICY.  I73 

Edmund  Grindal,  first  Bishop  of  London,  afterwards  translated 
to  York  in  1570,  was  appointed  Parker's  successor  as  Primate  of 
all  England,  in  the  early  part  of  the  year  1576.  He  was  a 
Cumberland  man,  who  had  been  educated  at  Cambridge, 
jiatronised  by  Ridley,  and  had  taken  a  moderate  part  in  the 
disputes  concerning  the  character  and  comprehensiveness  of  the 
Book  of  Common  Prayer  when  the  foreign  Reformers  wished  it 
to  be  further  "  reformed."  He,  too,  was  an  Erastian,  though 
puritanically  inclined,  and  a  great  persecutor  of  his  opponents. 

An  amusing  anecdote  is  on  record  of  the  high-handed  manner 
in  which  the  queen  practically  maintained  her  supremacy  over 
the  bishops  whom  she  had  made,  and  may  be  here  recounted. 
Cocks  of  Ely,  a  noted  Puritan,  then  dwelt  at  his  official  town 
house  to  the  north  of  Holborn — a  spacious  and  magnificent 
edifice  with  hall,  chapel,^  library,  parlour,  gate-house,  and 
hostelrie,  of  rich  second-pointed  architecture,  surrounded  with 
a  garden  and  well-wooded  grounds  of  no  less  than  twenty  acres. 
Sir  Christopher  Platton,^  one  of  the  queen's  later  favourites,  a 
person  of  handsome  figure  and  an  accomplished  dancer,  often 
looked  upon  the  stately  palace  and  fair,  surroundings  of  the 
bishop, — the  situation  w^as  pleasant,  the  air  pure,  the  land  pro- 
ductive,— and  at  last,  like  Ahab  of  old,  coveted  a  portion.  The 
queen  on  learning  this,  ordered  Cocks  to  transfer  by  legal  deed 
a  certain  part  to  the  new  Vice-Chamberlain,  and  with  no  delay. 
But  the  bishop  looked  at  the  proposal  from  another  point  of 
view,  and  pleaded  that  as  he  only  held  the  property  in  trust  for 
the  See,  and  owned  but  a  life  interest  in  it,  he  was  altogether 
unable  conscientiously  to  alienate  any  portion. 

Upon  which  the  Supreme  Governess,  who  notoriously  disliked 
consciences,  wrote  to  him  as  follows  :  — 

"  Proud  Prelate, — You  know  well  what  you  were  afore  I 

Trials  for  High  Treason^  etc.,  part  i.  p.  41 1.  London,  1720.  The  empty 
tomb  now  stands  at  the  south-west  part  of  the  building,  in  a  coiner  to  the 
right  of  the  chief  entrance. 

1  The  chapel,  dedicated  in  honour  of  St.  Ethelreda  of  Ely,  after  having 
been  in  a  state  of  humiliating  degradation  for  centuries,  was  purchased  by  the 
Fathers  of  the  Order  of  Charity,  and  solemnly  opened  for  divine  service  in 
the  presence  of  Henry  Edward  Manning,  sometime  Cardinal-Archbishop  of 
Westminster  (who  preached  with  great  unction  and  charity),  in  1879.  Mass 
is  again  said  daily ;  and  a  relic  of  the  patroness  is  placed  under  the 
altar. 

■■*  There  is  an  excellent  portrait  of  Sir  Christopher  Hatton,  from  the  brush 
of  Kettel,  at  Dytchley  Park,  Oxfordshire.  It  was  a  present  from  Hntton 
himself  to  Sir  Henry  Lee,  K.G.,  and  descended  to  the  Lord  Viscount  Dillon, 
through  his  ancestress  Lady  Charlotte  Lee. 


1/4  THE   CHURCH    UNDER   QUEEN    ELIZABETH. 

made   you   what    you    now  are.       If  you    do    not   immediately 
comply  with  my  request  I  will  unfrock  you,  by  God. 

"Elizabeth  R." 

His  lordship,  being  no  doubt  impressed  by  the  threat  and  the 
oath  conjoined,  and  seeing  that  the  person  who  had  made  a 
bishop  could  most  probably  unmake  one,  did  as  he  was  told.  The 
gate-house  of  his  palace  on  Holborn  Hill,  and  a  considerable 
part  of  the  adjacent  property,  were  speedily  and  duly  made  over 
to  Sir  Christopher,  who  still  gives  the  name  of  "  Hatton  Garden  " 
to  a  modern  street  in  that  changed  locality. 

As  early  as  the  year  1575,  a  congregation  of  Dutch  Ana- 
baptists, numbering  nearly  thirty  persons  of  either  sex,  was 
seized  in  London  on  Easter  Sunday  and  committed  to  prison. 
This  sect  ^  was  one  of  the  most  direct  and  offensive  products  of 
the  so-called  "Reformation."  Its  members  rejected  the  doctrine 
of  the  Trinity,  repudiated  baptism,  and  denied  the  lawfulness  of 
war,  oaths,  and  magistrates.  All  this,  of  course,  made  them 
specially  obnoxious.  Eour  of  the  persons  seized  and  accused 
recanted  their  errors  at  St.  Paul's  Cross.  Eleven  were  con- 
demned to  be  burnt,  but  were  banished  instead.  Two  men, 
however,  John  Wielmacher  and  Hendrick  Ter  Vort,  were  actually 
burnt  at  Sraithfield,  and  died  enduring  great  agonies.-  Foxe,  the 
author  of  what  is  called  his  Martyrolog}\  wrote  to  the  queen  -^ 
urging  her  to  inflict  some  other  death  than  burning,  as  burning 
was  only  the  Pope's  method  of  punishment,  as  he  falsely  asserted 
— conveniently  forgetting  the  cruelties  which  Servetus  received 
at  the  hand  of  John  Calvin,  and  those  endured  by  Lambert, 
Allen,  and  Erith  from  Archbishop  Cranmer.  But  the  queen, 
who  hated  the  Puritans  more  than  the  Catholics,  would  not,  and 
did  not,  interfere. 

In  the  meantime,  persecution  was  steadily  carried  on  in  every 
part  of  England.  Terror  and  misery  everywhere  ensued.  Many 
persons  were  banished.     The  treatment  through  a  considerable 

'  Its  lineal  descendants  at  the  present  day  are  a  great  curse  to  tlie  country. 
I''or  in  many  places  they  still  (\o  much  to  prevent  the  lower  classes  having 
their  children  christened,  so  that  many  thousands  year  by  year  die  unbaptized 
and  unregenerate. 

-  "Two  Dutchmen,  Anabaptists,  were  burnt  in  Smithfield,  who  died  in 
great  horror,  with  roaring  and  crying." — Stowe's  Annals,  in  loco. 

'^  On  another  and  similar  occasion  it  is  on  record  that  the  queen  calling  to 
mind  "  that  she  was  the  Head  of  the  Church  ;  that  it  was  lier  duty  to  extirpate 
error  ;  and  that  heretics  ought  to  be  cut  off  from  the  flock  of  Christ  that  they 
may  not  corrupt  others,"  signed  the  death-warrant  of  two  Nonconformists, 
who  were  burnt  to  death  in  Smithfield.-    Rymer's  fadcra,  xv.  740,  741. 


TREATMENT   OF   THE   CATPIOLIC   NOBILITY.         1 75 

period  of  Doleman  and  Jackson,  two  priests  of  Queen  Mary's 
reign,  and  others  of  like  standing,  may  be  gathered  from  the 
confession  of  Robert  Gray,  a  priest,  taken  by  that  cruel  and 
infamous  priest-taker,  Richard  Topcliffe.^  Every  endeavour  was 
made  to  find  out  what  religious  services  were  held  at  Lord 
Viscount  Montagu's  house  at  Cowdray,  near  Midhurst,  and  at 
Sir  Robert  Dormer's  mansion  at  Wing,  in  Buckinghamshire. 
Watchers  were  stationed  near  and  servants  bribed.  These  noble 
families  were  related  to  each  other,  and  warmly  upheld  the 
ancient  faith.  William  Browne,  grandson  of  the  first  Viscount 
Montagu,  born  in  15 78,  entered  the  Society  of  Jesus,  and  died 
a  lay  brother  abroad,  aged  fifty-nine.  His  sister  Dorothy  had 
married  Edward  Lee  of  Stantonbury.-  Their  mother  Mary  was 
one  of  the  Dormers  of  Eythrope  and  Thame.  All  these,  amid  the 
greatest  difficulties,  practised  the  ancient  religion,  and  always 
carefully  protected  the  old  clergy.  Many  of  these  latter  who  had 
resigned  their  preferments  for  conscience'  sake  were  provided 
for  by  the  Montagus.  At  Wing  and  Eythrope  there  were  priests' 
hiding-places,  and  it  is  on  record  that  Sir  Robert  Dormer  every 
year  laid  by  a  considerable  sum  of  money  to  distribute  to  those 
poor  outcast  clergy  of  the  old  faith »  who  patiently  suffered 
poverty  rather  than  conform  to  the  new  state  of  things,  and  who 
found  a  home  at  no  great  distance  from  the  mansion  of  this 
Catholic  nobleman. 

Some  writers,  either  misinformed  or  inexact  in  their  statements, 
have  boldly  asserted  that  priests  of  Queen  Mary's  reign  were 
never  persecuted,  and  that  no  undue  persecution  was  inflicted  on 
any  of  the  older  clergy  at  all  until  the  Bull  of  Pope  Pius  V.  had 
been  issued.  But  this  is  quite  inaccurate,  as  the  following 
original  document  conclusively  proves  : — 

1  See  S/aie  Papers,  Domestk,  Elizabeth,  vol.  ccxlv.  folio  n8  Author's 
MS.  Collections. 

-  Father  Roger  Lee,  S.J.  (son  of  Edward  Lee,  and  Aniicia  his  wife.  dr.  of 
Sir  Edmund  Ashfield  of  Evvelme,  Oxon.),  was  of  this  family.— See  Records 
of  the  English  Province,  vol.  i.  pp.  456  el  seq.     London,  1877. 

•^  The  following  examples  of  how  the  old  clergy  were  sometimes  treated  is 
worthy  of  note  :— "  Sir  Michael  Bowton,  priest  [an  old  man  in  iuarg.\  about 
thirteen  years  since  being  apprehended  and  committed  to  prison  to  Ouse- 
bridge,  was  called  before  the  judges  the  next  assizes  after,  and  because  he 
would  not  tell  them  his  place  of  abode,  they  burned  him  through  the  ear  for 
a  XQgwt." —Notes  by  a  Prisoner  in  Ousebridge  Kidcote,  p.  307.  Mr.  William 
Bandersby,  an  old  man  and  priest,  was  committed  to  the  castle,  where  he 
died  in  i^Z^.—Ibid.  322.  Mr.  Richard  Bowes,  an  old  priest,'  sometime 
Priest- Vicar  of  Ripon  Minster,  i.e.  from  1554  to  1569,  but  who  would  never 
do  any  Protestant  service,  nor  come  to  church,  was  committed  to  York  Castle, 
where  he  died. — Ibid.  322. 


1/6  THE   CHURCH    UNDER   QUEEN    ELIZABETH. 

"  Sir  John  Bowlton,  priest,  committed  the  first  year  of  Her 
Majesty's  reign,  first  to  York  Castle,  from  thence  to  Ousebridge, 
where  he  remained  ten  or  twelve  years  close  prisoner,  and  from 
thence  removed  to  Hull  Blockhouse,  there  remained  about 
eight  years,  and  tlien  banished  beyond  the  seas.  Sir  Nicholas 
Grene,  priest,  being  committed  twenty-eight  years  since  to 
Ousebridge,  where  he  remained  five  years  and  then  died.  Sir 
Henry  Comberforth  [priest]  committed  prisoner  to  Ousebridge 
twenty-six  years  since,  where  he  remained  six  years,  from  thence 
removed  to  Hull  Blockhouse,  remaining  there  close  prisoner 
about  ten  years  and  there  died.  So  likewise  Sir  Thomas  Bedall 
and  Thomas  Bell.  The  last  named  was  committed  twenty-four 
years  since  to  Ousebridge,  where  he  lay  all  one  cold  [est]  winter 
as  hath  been  seen  of  frost  and  snow,  in  the  stocks  :  divers 
preachers  coming  the  same  time  to  confer  with  him ;  then 
removed  to  the  castle."  ^ 

The  timid  as  well  as  tlie  more  bold  and  devout  adherents  of 
the  ancient  faith,  when  their  means  would  permit,  sought  an 
asylum  from  such  persecution  in  foreign  countries.  When  this 
became  known  to  the  Court,  proclamations  for  their  return  were 
speedily  issued  ;  and  if  they  did  not  at  once  come  back,  their 
lands  and  goods  were  seized  and  sold  at  mere  nominal  prices  to 
the  supporters  and  adherents  of  the  authorities  and  those  in 
power.  In  one  year  no  less  than  sixty-eight  fugitives  were  so 
treated.^  Thus  opposition  was  successfully  borne  down,  for  all 
opponents  w-ere  legally  robbed  and  ruthlessly  ruined.  If  such  a 
policy  deserved  the  name  of  "  statesmanship,"  Queen  Elizabeth's 
advisers  were  statesmen  indeed. 

Many  of  the  bishops  were  likewise  active  in  taking  proceedings 
against  all  recusants.  If  any  of  their  lordships  appeared  to  be 
indifferent  on  the  subject,  or  apathetic,  Cecil  employed  some 
mutual  friend  or  agent  to  jog  their  memories,  and  remind  them 
of  their  duties.  Occasionally  he  did  this  himself.  Purity  of 
faith,  in  that  conscientious  and  religious  statesman's  opinion, 
was  the  first  and  greatest  need.  The  Pope's  religion,  he  ])iously 
observed,  was  most  impure.  Therefore  the  official  believers  in  a 
better,  as  he  pointed  out,  should  strive  to  make  others  believers 
also.  To  ferret  out  the  obstinate  or  timorous,  to  worry  again 
and  again  those  who  had  been  ferreted  Qut,  and  were  then  very 
])robably  in  prison,  was  one  of  the  chief  and  most  charitable 
duties  of  the  Protestant  prelates.     Grindal,  a  person  of  consider- 

^  Notes  by  a  Prisoner  in  Ousebridge  Kidcote.  Original  MS.  at  Stonyhurst 
College. 

^  Strype's  Annals,  vol.  ii.  Appendix  No.  102. 


THE   CASE   OF   DR.   VAVASOR.  1 77 

able  energy,  was  both  constant  and  earnest  in  what  he  called  the 
"  blessed  work."  He  always  did  it  with  a  good  will ;  but,  as  he 
informed  Cecil  regarding  a  most  devout  person  upon  whom  he 
had  tried  his  hand,  was  not  always  very  successful : — "  I  can  do 
no  good  with  Sir  John  Southworth  for  altering  his  opinion  in 
religion  .  .  .  the  man  is  altogether  unlearned,  carried  with  a 
blind  zeal  without  knowledge.  His  principal  grounds  are  '  He 
ivill  follow  the  faith  of  his  fathers  ;  he  will  die  in  the  faith 
wherein  he  was  baptized.'  "  ^ 

Surely  if  this  persecuted  gentleman  was  satisfied  with  the 
religion  which  Christendom  for  fifteen  hundred  years  had 
universally  acknowledged  to  be  the  only  true  religion,  he  might 
not  unreasonably  have  been  allowed  the  same  liberty  as  that 
claimed  by  Grindal  and  Cecil  themselves. 

When  this  prelate,  who  was  great  at  sharp  sayings  and  epigram- 
matic retorts,  became  Archbishop  of  York,  he  wrote  a  letter  to 
Cecil,  then  Lord  Burghley,  concerning  Dr.  Vavasor,  a  physician 
of  that  city,  who  declined  to  give  up  the  ancient  faith,  and  was 
such  an  experienced  and  adroit  controversialist  that  the  arch- 
bishop himself,  having  in  a  public  disputation  been  put  to  shame 
before  a  public  audience,  acted  (as  his  own  words  allow)  thus  : — 
"  My  Lord  President  and  I,  knowing  his  disposition  to  talk, 
thought  it  not  good  to  commit  the  said  Dr.  Vavasor  to  the 
Castle  of  York,  where  some  other  like  affected  prisoners  remain ; 
but  rather  to  a  sohtary  prison  in  the  Queen's  Majesty's  Castle  at 
Hull,  where  he  shall  only  talk  to  zvalls." 

In  the  city  of  York,  a.d.  1576,  at  the  suggestion  of  the  Queen's 
Council,  more  specific  and  definite  inquiries  were  made  as  to  the 
number  and  status  of  the  recusants.  The  same  process  was 
adopted  in  other  places,  and  similar  machinery  put  in  motion.- 
At  York  the  city  authorities  were  peremptorily  ordered  to  supply 
careful  and  detailed  information  to  the  Earl  of  Huntingdon,  Lord 
President  of  the  Northern  Council.  From  the  dates  of  the 
official  letters  despatched  from  London — the  later  communica- 
tions becoming  more  demanding  and  exacting  in  their  terms — 
it  is  clear  that  the  action  enjoined  upon  the  authorities  in  ques- 
tion was  very  distasteful  to  them  ;  for  these  evidently  put  off  the 
disagreeable  work  of  examining  the  poorer  citizens  as  long  as 

'  Remains  of  Archbishop  Grindal,  p.  305.  Parker  Society.  Letter  56,  to 
Cecil,  3rd  August  1569. 

-  As  early  as  19th  June  1573,  one  of  the  old  clergy,  Sir  Thomas  Wood- 
house,  had  been  executed  at  Tybourne  for  denying  the  queen's  supremacy, 
and  this  was  done  with  the  customary  cruelties.  lie  was  a  Norfolk  man, 
and  of  a  knightly  family. 

M 


178  THE   CHURCH    UNDER   QUEEN    ELIZABETH. 

possible.  Perhaps  no  more  touchini:;  returns  can  be  found 
amongst  such  legal  documents  as  those  subsequently  furnished 
and  still  on  record.  The  poor  all  tell  their  plaintive  story  with 
wonderful  simplicity.  Between  the  new  and  the  old  order  of 
things  there  was  a  difterence,  apparent  enough  both  to  eye  and 
ear,  and  so  great  that  none  could  mistake  the  one  for  the  other. 
The  innovators  and  their  innovations  were  utterly  distasteful  to 
all  under  examination.  The  consciences  of  those  who  clung  to 
the  ancient  faith  would  not  allow  these  poor  people  to  accept  the 
"reforms"  thrust  upon  them.  One  remarked  that  "her  con- 
science would  not  serve  her  to  do  so."  In  another  case  an  aged 
respondent  who,  though  poor  and  feeble,  had  been  evidently 
well  taught  and  owned  true  instincts  as  to  right  and  wrong, 
averred  that  compliance  "would  damn  her  soul."  But,  to  go 
into  particulars.  From  the  existing  minutes  of  the  examinations 
it  may  be  seen  how  close  were  the  inquiries  concerning  even  the 
trading  class  and  those  below  it.  One,  EHzabeth  Wilkinson,  the 
wife  of  a  miller  in  the  parish  of  AU-Hallows-on-the-Pavement,  in 
response  to  questions,  "  sayeth  she  cometh  not  to  the  church 
because  there  is  neither  priest,  altar,  nor  sacrifice."  Isabel,  wife 
of  William  Bowman,  locksmith  of  the  parish  of  St.  Cross, 
"  sayeth  she  cometh  not  to  the  church,  for  her  conscience  will 
not  serve  her,  because  there  is  not  the  Sacrament  hung  up,  and 
other  things  as  hath  been  aforetime.  And  further  she  sayeth 
that  she  doth  not  believe  that  such  words  as  the  priest  readeth 
are  true."  "Margaret  Taylor,"  wife  of  Thomas  Taylor  of  the 
same  parish,  "  sayeth  that  she  cometh  not  to  the  church  because 
there  is  not  a  priest  as  there  ought  to  be,  and  also  that  there  is 
not  the  Sacrament  of  the  Altar." 

Instead  of  a  priest,  vested  in  his  sacrificial  garments  attended 
by  his  server,  and  offering  day  by  day  the  mystical  sacrifice  at 
the  sacred  altar  in  the  dim  and  distant  sanctuary,  as  had  been 
the  case  from  the  coming  hither  of  St.  Austin  the  Monk,  the 
poor  now  beheld  the  altar-stone  thrown  down,  and  perhaps  used 
as  a  doorstep,  the  priest  imprisoned,  the  lamps  stolen,  the  sacred 
vessels  profaned;  and,  in  lieu  thereof,  some  "weighty  minister" 
in  a  black  garment  reading  prayers  once  a  week  from  a  pulpit  in 
the  nave  to  a  fanatical  and  small  congregation,  whom  he  faced,' 
but  did  not  edify. 

1  "To  the  intent  that  the  ]ieo)ile  may  the  better  heare  the  Morning'  and 
Evening  Prayer,  when  the  same  by  the  minister  is  saide,  and  be  the  more 
edified  thereby,  we  do  enjoine  that  the  churchwardens  of  every  parish  in 
places  as  well  exemjit,  as  not  excmjJte,  at  the  charges  of  the  Parish  shall 
procure  a  decent  low  pulpit  to  be  erected  and  made  in  the  body  of  the  church, 


OTHER   CASES   OF   A   LIKE   NATURE.  179 

Isabel  Portar,  already  in  prison, — and  thus  punished  before 
she  was  properly  charged  with  any  offence, — the  wife  of  a  tailor 
in  the  parish  of  St.  Mary,  Castlegate,  "sayeth  that  she  cometh 
not  to  the  church  because  her  conscience  will  not  serve  her ;  for 
things  are  not  in  the  church  as  it  hath  been  aforetime  in  her 
forefathers'  days."  Janet  Stryckett,  widow,  of  the  parish  of  the 
Holy  Trinity,  in  Micklegate,  "  sayeth  she  cometh  not  to  church 
because  her  conscience  will  not  serve  her;  for  the  bread  and 
wine  is  not  consecrated  as  it  hath  been  in  time  past."  ^  Alice 
Lobby,  the  wife  of  a  tanner  in  the  parish  of  All  Hallows,  likewise 
"cometh  not  to  the  church  because  her  conscience  will  not  serve 
her;  for  she  sayeth  she  thinketh  the  baptism  is  not  as  it  hath 
been ;  and  sayeth  she  will  not  receive  (at  the  '  Supper ')  so  long 
as  she  liveth."  - 

The  above  are  only  a  few  specimens  of  the  replies  out  of 
many.  They  all,  more  or  less,  tell  the  same  tale — a  heavy  tale 
of  individual  suffering. 

The  process  of  further  action  was  eminently  simple  and 
extremely  effective.  It  had  been  carefully  devised  round  the 
Council-board  of  the  Supreme  Governess  in  London,  and  worked 
admirably.  The  first  weapon  was  a  severe  fine  for  being  absent 
from  church  ;  and  this,  if  not  promptly  paid,  was  secured  by  an 
immediate  distraint.  Pots  and  pans,^  jewels,  "pillow-beres," 
"  coverlids,"  coffers,  and  hangings  were  at  once  ruthlessly  swept 
off  and  sold.  For  silly  and  superstitious  "Papists"  —  as  they 
were  termed — there  was,  of  course,  no  pity.  If  such  persons 
owned  consciences,  it  was  all  the  worse  for  them  ;  for  consciences 
were  obviously  unprofitable  possessions,  and  only  brought  mis- 

wherein  the  iinnister  shall  stande  with  his  face  towards  the  people  when  he 
readeth  Morning  and  Evening  Prayer.'" — Injunctions  given  by  Edmund 
Grindal,  A.D.  1 57 1.     London  :  William  Series. 

^  In  the  Book  of  Common  Prayer  then  in  use,  there  were  no  manual  acts 
whatsoever,  nor  any  consecration  ordered  to  be  done,  in  or  at  the  saying  of 
the  appointed  prayer. 

-  i\IS.  Records  of  the  Proceedings  of  the  Court  of  the  Lord  Mayor  of 
York. — MS.  Collections  at  Stonyhurst  College,  Angl.  A.  "By  William 
Hutton,  an  ancient  Catholic  prisoner  upon  Ousebridge. " — The  Troubles  of 
our  Catholic  Forefathers,  3rd  series,  pp.  233  et  seq.     London,  1S77. 

^  "  Our  miseries  are  daily  multiplied  ;  we  expect  every  hour  dissolution. 
Our  friends  abroad  are  spoiled  to  their  skin  ;  what  by  the  pursuivants,  and 
what  robberies  they  suffer  by  the  under-sheriff  and  his  followers  it  is  long  to 
tell  you — neither  pot  nor  pan,  nor  bedding,  nor  ring,  nor  jewels,  nor  anything 
whatsoever  escapeth  their  hands.  The  oath  is  offered  by  the  justices  even  at 
their  pleasure,  yet  some  of  them  cannot  but  in  their  hearts  detest  the  injury. 
Divers  piiests  have  been  banished  of  late,  and  now  more  are  apprehended 
and  like  to  be  banished." — From  a  Letter  by  G.  Lumbton.  MS.  Archives, 
Old  Clergy  Chapter,  Westminster. 


I  So  THE   CHURCH    UNDER   QUEEN    ELIZABETH. 

fortune.  In  the  battle  of  life,  in  that  day,  those  Avho  regarded 
their  consciences  lost ;  while  those  who  boldly  disregarded  them 
won  triumphantly.  The  cottage  room,  therefore,  was  left  empty 
(its  pantry  and  bread-aumbry  rifled),  and  sometimes  the  bed-loft 
over  it  likewise.  If  the  grave  offence  of  not  going  to  listen  to 
the  squabbling  preachers  and  Zwinglian  pastors  were  repeated, 
imprisonment  followed  the  act  of  distraint.  Tradesmen,  yeomen, 
and  husbandmen  who  themselves  conformed  were  all  pressed 
hard  to  ensure  the  conformity  of  their  wives ; '  while  every 
obstacle  was  put  in  the  way  of  those  who  sought  to  bring  up 
their  children  in  the  ancient  religion.  Schoolmasters  of  the  old 
faith  were  equally  persecuted  with  the  priests.  Subsequently  all 
lodgers,  servants,  and  wayfarers,^  who  were  occasionally  housed 
in  charity  were  also  brought  under  the  supervision  of  these 
energetic  officials  who  exercised  local  authority ;  for  by  this 
means,  a  wandering  priest,  who,  at  the  risk  of  his  liberty  and 
life,  went  about  to  minister  to  the  poor,  the  desolate,  and  to 
prisoners,  was  sometimes  secured,  imprisoned,  and  subsequently 
either  banished  or  executed. 

Now,  therefore,  that  the  ancient  faith,  which  had  made  England 
so  great  and  happy  for  ages,  was  thus  cast  out,  there  seemed 
some  chance  of  the  total  extirpation  of  all  who  dared  to  remain 
its  adherents. 

Though  it  had  been  and  was  a  religion  of  charity  and 
hospitality,  though  the  repulsive  name  of  "pauper"  was  then 
unknown, — for  all,  whether  rich  or  poor,  were  regarded  as 
brethren  in  the  One  Fold,  all  owned  one  Master  and  possessed 
a  common  interest  in  securing  the  common  good, — yet  in  great 
])robability  (as  men  then  alive  thought)  Elizabeth  and  her  tools 
would  complete  the  change  they  had  so  resolutely  undertaken 
and  commenced. 

'"21"  FeVjruarii,  20°  Elizabeth. — And  now  John  Widdon,  William 
Wilkinson,  William  Plowman,  Richard  Durham,  Thomas  Langton  have 
suljmittcd  themselves  to  bide  the  order  of  this  court  for  arrearages  {sic)  due  by 
every  of  them  for  their  wives'  offence  for  not  coming  to  the  church,  contrary 
to  the  ordinance  of  this  city  therefore  lately  established  by  this  court." — MS. 
Records  of  the  Proceedings  of  the  Court  of  the  Lord  Mayor  of  York,  folio  83^^. 

^  "The  sheriffs  of  this  city,  taking  occasion  to  view  the  prisoners  in  the 
Kidcotes  upon  Ousebridge,  they  found  amongst  those  that  are  committed 
for  not  coming  to  church,  certain  mass-l)ooks,  pictures,  holy  water  with 
strencles  [sic — strencle,  aspcrsoriiim  or  holy-water  sprinkler],  beads,  pairs  of 
vestments,  wax  candles  and  girdle,  and  a  great  canvas  bag  belonging  to  some 
man,  having  in  it  some  unlawful  books  :  wherefore  it  is  supposed  that  some 
seminary  priest  did  resort  and  frequent  the  company  of  the  said  prisoners  in 
the  said  gaols,  and  there  did  say  mass,  persuading  the  said  prisoners  to 
remain  in  their  disobedience." — MS.  Records,  etc.,  14th  February  1582. 


THE   CASE   OF   CUTPIBERT   MAINE.  l8l 

But  Dr.  William  Allen  was  doing  what  lay  in  his  power  to 
resist  the  work,  and  was  doing  it  wisely  and  well.  Between  him 
and  the  Supreme  Governess  there  rolled  the  sea— happily  for 
his  liberty  and  life ;  he,  therefore,  from  his  new  residence,  could 
defy  her  death-dealing  power,  while  she,  frantic  with  the  sincerest 
vexation,  and  savage  with  feminine  spite,  was  unable  to  defy  his. 
He  had  been  steadily  training  a  series  of  zealous  and  fearless 
teachers  of  the  old  religion ;  and  now  they  had  come,  in  twos 
and  threes,  to  do  their  work.  They  did  it  well,  in  the  spirit  of 
the  martyrs  of  the  Forum  and  Amphitheatre  of  old,  and  soon 
had  their  reward. 

The  protomartyr  of  Dr.  Allen's  College  at  Douay  was  Cuthbert 
Maine,!  born  at  Yalston,  near  Barnstaple,  in  Devonshire.  He 
had  an  uncle  who,  having  been  ordained  under  Queen  Mary, 
had  conformed  to  the  new  order  of  affairs,  and  was  comfortably 
beneficed  in  the  West  of  England.  This  uncle  entered  him  at 
St.  Alban's  Hall,  in  the  University  of  Oxford,  where  he  graduated, 
and  having  been  ordained,  subsequently  became  Fellow  of  St. 
John's  College.  There  he  lived  for  some  years  and  secured  the 
regard  and  respect  of  its  members  and  authorities ;  but,  subse- 
quently, not  liking  the  new  religion,  he  went  over  to  Douay, 
where  he  formally  renounced  all  heresy  and  schism,  and  was  in 
due  course  ordained  a  priest.  Anxious  to  atone  for  his  past 
errors  by  some  marked  exhibition  of  zeal,  he  volunteered  for 
work  in  England,  and  in  company  with  another  priest,  Mr.  John 
Paine,  reached  his  old  home  in  1576. 

Here  he  became  chaplain  to  a  certain  Esquire  Thomas 
Tregean  who  lived  on  his  ample  estate  near  Truro;  and  for 
nearly  a  year  laboured  incessantly  amongst  the  Cornish  people, 
who  were  all  deeply  attached  to  the  ancient  faith. 

In  the  summer  of  1577,  William  Bradbridge,  Bishop  of  Exeter, 
was  holding  a  visitation  at  Truro,  when  the  sheriff,  a  certain 
Esquire  Greenfield,  was  ordered  to  search  for  one  Bourne  who 
had  been  convicted  in  London  of  a  misdemeanour,  and  to  do  so 
in  the  house  of  Tregean,  where  Maine  passed  as  the  esquire's 
steward,  and  in  which  house  report  declared  that  the  delinquent 
was  hiding. 

The  sheriff  and  his  officers,  offering  a  great  show  of  violence, 
searched  the  house  by  force,  and  finding  Maine  there,  accused 

1  See  Bishop  Challoner's  Memoirs  of  Missionary  Priests,  vol.  i.  pp.  37- 
45  ;  Apology  and  True  Declaration  of  the  Institution  and  Endeavour  of  the 
Two  English  Colleges,  etc.,  by  Dr.  William  Allen  :  John  Stowe's  Chronicles, 
p.  677  ;  Athenx  Oxon.,  by  Anthony  a  Wood  ;  and  the  old  edition  of  the 
State  Trials. 


1 82  THE   CHURCH    UNDER   QUEEN    ELIZABETH. 

him  of  being  the  person  sought  for,  but  this  he  denied.  How- 
ever, on  searching  him  carefully,  they  found  an  Agnus  Dei  hung 
upon  a  ribbon  round  his  neck ;  and  upon  discovering  this,  at 
once  took  possession  of  all  his  books,  letters,  manuscripts,  and 
other  property,  which  they  carried  off  in  triumph  to  the  bishop. 
Amongst  these  was  a  printed  copy  of  a  document  from  Rome, 
announcing  a  jubilee,  which  he  had  purchased  at  a  bookseller's 
shop  at  Douay.  They  hkewise  soon  lodged  Maine  in  prison  at 
Launceston,  "putting  great  gyves  about  his  legs,  and  chaining 
him  to  a  bed-post." 

At  Michaelmas  he  was  indicted  of  five  separate  offences  : — (i) 
That  he  had  obtained  a  Bull  from  Rome  absolving  the  queen's 
subjects  from  their  allegiance,  and  had  so  absolved  divers.  (2) 
That  he  had  published  this  Bull  in  Esquire  Tregean's  house. 
(3)  That  he  had  maintained  the  usurped  power  of  the  Bishop  of 
Rome,  and  so  denied  Her  Majesty's  spiritual  supremacy.  (4) 
That  he  had  unlawfully  brought  into  the  kingdom  a  popish 
Agnus  Dei.  And  (5)  that  he  had  said  mass  in  Mr.  Tregean's 
house.  Maine's  reputation  stood  high  amongst  his  Cornish 
friends  and  neighbours.  He  was  of  a  sweet  disposition,  with  no 
harsh  word  for  his  enemies,  and  he  owned  a  large  circle  of 
friends.  Moreover,  he  was  most  self-denying,  patient,  and 
devout ;  and  this  was  all  well-known  to  the  spectators,  amongst 
whom  he  had  great  sympathy. 

The  jury  had  been  "carefully  selected  so  as  to  serve  the 
Queue's  Majestic  well  and  truly,"  which  obviously  means  that  it 
had  been  duly  packed.  The  Earl  of  Bedford,  one  of  the  new 
mushroom  noblemen,  who  took  a  great  interest  in  all  such  pro- 
ceedings, was  present ;  but  Judge  Manwood  presided.  With  the 
exception  of  the  Agnus  Dei,  which  was  found  upon  Maine,  but 
of  which  there  was  no  proof  that  he  had  brought  it  hither,  there 
was  literally  no  evidence  against  the  accused  of  any  sort  or  kind. 
Surmises  without  reason,  there  may  have  been  in  abundance. 
Reasonable  surmises  there  were  but  {q.\\.  But  as  for  proofs, 
there  were  none.  As  regards  the  Bull,  it  merely  proclaimed  a 
jubilee.  It  was  not  an  official  copy  certified  by  a  notary,  but 
only  a  printed  version  issued  by  a  foreign  bookseller. 

However,  the  judge  informed  the  jury  that,  in  a  case  like  that 
before  them,  where  plain  and  positive  proofs  were  wanting, 
strong  presumption  should  be  allowed  to  take  their  place  ;  add- 
ing that  it  was  their  bounden  duty  by  their  verdict  to  protect 
the  queen  and  condemn  the  accused. 

They  did  so,  with  Lord  Bedford's  avowed  approbation,  and 
brought  in  Maine  guilty  of  high  treason.     He  was  held  to  have 


HIS   SUFFERINGS   AND    MARTYRDOxM.  1 83 

offended  against  the  law  of  157 1.  Sentence  was  pronounced 
in  the  usual  form. 

But  it  appears  that,  as  certain  of  the  other  judges  were  dis- 
satisfied with  the  verdict,  some  delay  was  occasioned  in  carrying 
it  out.  The  matter  was  brought  before  the  Privy  Council ;  but 
such  was  the  iniquity  of  the  times,  that,  notwithstanding  the 
opinion  of  several  of  the  judges  that  the  verdict  went  beyond 
the  evidence,  it  was  resolved  to  carry  it  out  as  a  terror  to  the 
Pope's  allies.  The  Sheriff  of  Cornwall,  going  up  to  London  by 
command,  was  knighted  for  having  done  his  part  of  the  work  so 
efficiently,  and  took  back  the  death-warrant  duly  signed. 

On  the  26th  of  November  a  serving-man  informed  Maine  that 
he  was  to  suffer  in  three  days. 

Maine  thanked  God  for  this  information,  and  told  his  in- 
formant that  if  he  had  anything  worthy  of  his  acceptance  he 
would  gladly  give  it,  for  he  had  done  him  greater  service  than 
any  other.  He  spent  the  remaining  hours  of  his  life  in  devout 
exercises,  meditation,  mental  prayer,  and  holy  contemplation. 
The  second  night  before  he  suffered,  some  prisoners  confined 
in  an  adjoining  apartment  beheld  a  strange  and  unusual  light 
gleaming  over  him,  though  he  had  neither  fire,  lamp,  nor  candle. 

On  the  morning  of  his  execution,  in  the  presence  of  several 
ministers,  his  life  was  offered  him  if  he  would  renounce  the  old 
faith,  go  to  the  new  services,  and  acknowledge  the  spiritual 
supremacy  of  the  queen.  Only  let  him  accept  these  terms,  by 
an  oath  on  the  Geneva  Bible  offered  to  him,  and  all  his  assumed 
treasons  should  be  forgiven  and  forgotten. 

But  with  a  firm  resolution  he  laughed  them  to  scorn.  "What 
should  it  profit  a  man,"  he  asked  triumphantly,  "if  he  should 
gain  the  whole  world,  and  lose  his  own  soul  ?  Or  what  should 
he  give  in  exchange  for  his  soul  ? "  And  when  they  held  out  a 
copy  of  the  Scriptures,  he  took  it  in  his  hands,  drew  the  sign  of 
the  cross  with  deliberation  over  it,  kissed  it,  and  then  declaring 
in  a  loud  voice,  said  :  "  The  queen  never  was,  never  can  be, 
and  never  shall  be,  the  Supreme  Head  of  the  true  Church  in 
England." 

He  was  to  be  drawn  a  quarter  of  a  mile  to  the  place  of 
execution.  The  sledge  or  hurdle  was  prepared,  the  horses  were 
harnessed  and  attached  to  it,  when  some  of  the  officials  sug- 
gested that  the  head  of  Maine  should  be  so  hung  over  the  side 
of  the  sledge,  to  which  he  submitted  himself  to  be  bound,  that 
he  might  be  killed  before  he  reached  the  gallows.  To  this  the 
sufferer  readily  consented,  only  it  was  disallowed  by  the  sheriff's 
deputy. 


1 84         THE   CHURCH    UNDER   QUEEN   ELIZABETH. 

In  the  market-place  of  Launceston,  a  gibbet  of  unusual  height 
had  been  put  up,  around  which  a  temporary  barricade  of  stout 
])osts  and  rails  had  been  placed.  On  arriving  there,  and  having 
been  unbound,  he  knelt  down  and  prayed  with  great  devotion. 
During  this  act  the  crowd  observed  a  remarkable  silence.  He 
was  not  permitted  to  address  the  people,  though  many  had 
come  to  hear  his  words  of  defence,  heartily  sympathising  with 
him. 

Before  he  ascended  the  ladder,  he  kissed  it,  as  he  likewise  did 
the  rope. 

Just  before  the  executioner  was  about  to  remove  the  ladder, 
one  of  the  justices  cried  out  to  Maine  :  "Now,  villain  and  traitor, 
you  know  that  you  must  die;  tell  us,  therefore,  whether  Sir  John 
Arundell  and  Squire  Tregean  knew  of  these  things  for  which 
thou  art  condemned." 

"  I  know  nothing  of  these,"  he  meekly  replied,  "  save  that 
they  be  good  and  most  godly  gentlemen."  And  then,  drawing 
the  sacred  sign  on  forehead,  lips,  and  breast,  he  said  :  "  O  Lord, 
into  Thy  hands  I  commend  my  spirit,  for  Thou  hast  redeemed 
me,  O  Lord,  Thou  God  of  Truth." 

Some  of  the  more  brutal  officials  would  have  had  him  cut 
down  at  once,  but  this  was  disallowed.  When  the  rope  was 
severed,  however,  life  was  by  no  means  extinct ;  but,  falling  with 
his  head  on  the  side  of  the  platform,  which  caused  a  shudder 
and  scream  from  the  populace,  he  was  stunned ;  so  that,  as  one 
account  puts  on  record,  "  he  was  little  sensible  of  the  ensuing 
butchery." 

His  sentence  otherwise  was  duly  carried  out.  He  was  dis- 
meml)ered,  ripped  up,  disembowelled,  beheaded,  and  (quartered. 
His  head  was  set  upon  a  pole  at  Wadebridge,  a  noted  highway 
near  Launceston,  and  his  four  quarters  were  exhibited  at  Bodmin, 
Tregony,  Barnstaple,  and  Launceston. 

One  event  followed,  which  left  a  deep  impression  on  the 
Cornish  people.  The  hangman,  within  a  month  of  this  act  of 
legal  butchery,  lost  his  reason,  and  became  a  violent  maniac, 
dying  a  frightful  death  in  great  agony. 

With  Cuthbert  ^Laine  no  less  than  sixteen  persons,  some 
gentlepeople  and  some  yeomen  and  servants,  were  condemned 
in  a  pr-ceiminire.  They  had  been  reconciled  by  this  zealous 
priest  to  the  old  religion.  At  the  next  assizes,  Tregean  himself 
suffered  by  a  similar  judgment,  and  was  thrown  into  the  common 
gaol  at  Launceston,  while  his  ample  estate  and  beautiful  home 
were  seized  by  the  Crown.  Through  the  long  period  of  twenty- 
eight   years   he   remained   a   prisoner.       Though    he    had  been 


OTHER   CASES  OF   MARTYRDOM   FOR   THE   FAITH.    1 85 

known  personally  at  Court,  and  was  much  regarded  by  many, 
the  queen  refused  to  listen  to  any  proposal  for  the  alleviation  of 
his  long  sufferings.  Save  for  his  religious  ardour,  and  for  the 
consolation  from  on  high  which  he  received,  the  years  went 
wearily  by.  On  the  queen's  death,  the  old  man,  so  worn  and 
changed  that  he  was  unrecognised  by  his  few  living  friends, 
obtained  his  liberty  from  King  James,  but  only  on  condition 
that  he  at  once  expatriated  himself.  His  children  were  reduced 
to  penury,  and  he  himself  died  an  exile  at  Lisbon  in  1608. 

From  this  time  forward,  persecution  never  ceased.  The 
hurdle  and  the  horses,  the  hanging-post  and  the  rope,  the  knife 
of  the  blood-bespattered  executioner,  and  the  cauldron  of  boiling 
and  bubbling  pitch,  were  in  constant  and  continued  requisition. 
Almost  every  year,  and  in  some  years  every  recurring  month, 
witnessed  the  cruel  execution  of  those  who  followed  in  Maine's 
footsteps.  Fresh  heads  of  seminary  priests  were  consequently 
stuck  up  on  poles  above  the  prison  gates ;  more  portions  of  their 
quartered  bodies  were  exposed  to  the  sun  of  summer  and  the 
winter  snows.  Perjury,  priest-hunting,  and  gross  acts  of  injustice 
were  then  popular  amusements.  The  grimy  rabble  often  enjoyed 
the  sport,  more  especially  those  influenced  by  the  Protestant 
ballad-singers ;  and  grinned  with  anticipated  satisfaction  at  the 
idea  of  being  free  spectators  of  a  morning's  butchery. 

Two  priests  suffered  in  1578,  four  more  at  Tybourne  in  1581. 
No  less  than  eleven  were  hung,  drawn,  and  quartered  with  the 
usual  barbarities  in  the  succeeding  year.  Of  these  a  consider- 
able number,  though  first  technically  hung,  but  at  once  cut  down, 
were  ripped  up  alive,  had  their  bowels  taken  out  before  their  own 
eyes,  as  the  official  sentences  expressly  ordered,  and  the  sufferers 
were  then  beheaded  and  quartered.  In.  1583  two  priests  thus 
suffered  at  York,  and  two  others  in  Hampshire.  Five  priests 
died,  after  like  cruelties,  at  Tybourne,  and  one  layman,  in  1584; 
a  priest  and  a  layman  were  thus  put  to  death  in  Lancashire,  and 
a  schoolmaster  at  Wrexham,  in  the  same  year.  In  1585,  at 
Tybourne  and  York,  four  were  likewise  legally  murdered — two 
priests  and  two  laymen.  In  1586  no  less  than  seven  priests 
suffered  at  Tybourne,  two  in  the  Isle  of  Wight,  two  at  York,  and 
one  at  Gloucester.  At  York,  likewise.  Esquire  Richard  Langley 
and  Robert  Bickerdike,  a  gentleman,  were  thus  executed. 
Margaret  Clitheroe,  whose  sufferings  and  death  will  be  recounted 
and  recorded  in  a  later  chapter,  was  in  this  year  pressed  to  death. 
In  1587  seven  priests  suffered  ;  in  the  following  year  no  less  than 
twenty,  with  nine  laymen.  Five  priests  and  four  laymen  were 
drawn,  hung,  and  quartered  in  1589;  nine  priests  and  two  lay- 


1 86  THE   CHURCH    UNDER   QUEEN    ELIZABETH. 

men  in  1590;  seven  priests  and  seven  laymen  in  1591;  two 
priests  and  one  layman  in  the  following  year ;  four  priests  and 
one  layman  in  1593  ;  six  priests  and  four  laymen  in  1594;  four 
priests  in  1595  ;  five  laymen  in  1596  ;  one  priest  and  two  laymen 
in  1597  ;  four  priests  and  three  laymen  in  159S  ;  one  priest  and 
tvvo  laymen  in  1599  ;  six  priests  and  seven  laymen  in  1600  ;  and 
several  more  of  both  orders  in  the  last  three  years  of  this  terrible 
woman's  reign.  Of  those  who  were  imprisoned  for  years,  some 
throughout  their  lifetime,  Dr.  Bridgewater  provides  a  list  of 
more  than  twelve  hundred ;  but  recent  researches  amongst  the 
State  papers  have  shown  that  this  number  does  not  probably 
embody  one-sixth  of  those  who,  including  the  rank  of  yeoman, 
then  suffered  by  imprisonment  or  expatriation  for  conscience' 
sake. 

Even  as  late  as  this  reign  the  greatest  part  of  London  was 
contained  within  its  actual  walls,  where  gardens  for  fruit  and 
flowers,  and  pleasaunces  for  recreation,  adjoining  the  picturesque 
timber-houses  with  quaint  dormer  windows  and  high-pitched 
roofs,  abounded.  In  the  whole  area  now  constituting  the 
])arishes  of  St.  Margaret,  St.  Martin,  St.  Paul  in  the  Convent 
Garden,  St.  Ann,  St.  Giles,  St.  George,  Bloomsbury,  and  St. 
Mary-at-the-Bourne  there  were  not,  at  that  time,  two  thousand 
houses.  The  little  sanctuary  of  St.  Pancras  was  the  church  of  a 
small  suburban  hamlet.  Clerkenwell  and  Shoreditch  were  then 
but  thinly  populated ;  Stepney  and  Statford-Langton  only  large 
villages.  Spitalfields,  Goodman's  Fields,  and  Limehouse  Fields 
were  green  open  spaces  with  luxuriant  blackthorn  and  privet 
hedges  ;  here  and  there  a  farmhouse  stood  shaded  with  clumps  of 
dark  elms,  or  rows  of  stately  poplars,  or  of  lime-trees  where  the 
bees  were  musical.  Spitalfields  was  first  built  upon  in  this  reign, 
a  district  where  the  Huguenot  silk-weavers  from  France  secured 
a  home.  Hitherto  its  hospital  had  stood  in  fields;  so  named 
because  of  it.  With  the  exception  of  Bermondsey,  where  the 
solid  walls  of  its  abbey  still  towered  above  the  squat  cottages 
around  ;  and  South wark,  with  its  lofty  church  of  Our  Lady  and 
the  house  of  the  Bishops  of  Winchester  ;  and  Lambeth,  with  its 
])alace,  parish  church,  and  archiepiscopal  ferry,  the  tract  south- 
wards of  the  Thames  was  flat,  marshy,  and  thinly  populated. 
Willow  trees,  on  both  sides,  bordered  the  two  chief  roads  to 
Kennington  and  to  Kent.  The  waters  of  the  Thames  often 
overflowed,  and  made  Lambeth  a  village  flanked  on  either  side 
by  broad  marshes  and  s|)ongy  meadows,  where  the  water-flag  and 
the  oat-grass  flourished  luxuriantly,  and  where  such  flats  stretched 
to  the  south-west  towards  the  manor-houses  of  Kennington  and 


STATE   OF   THE   CHURCHES   IN   LONDON.  1 87 

Clapham,  and  to  the  solid  walls  of  the  water-girt  mansion  then 
called  Vaux's  Hall. 

The  churches,  both  of  the  city  of  London  and  its  environs, 
were  at  this  time  more  than  half  empty,  and  the  people  grew  so 
irreligious  and  openly  wicked  that  the  contrast  between  the  past 
and  the  present  startled  many.  Chancels  in  their  neglected 
state  and  desolation  were  boarded  off  from  the  naves.  For  they 
were  unused  and  not  wanted.  There  the  spider  spun  its  web 
unharmed,  and  the  dust  of  many  seasons  lay  thick  and  undis- 
turbed upon  the  desolate  stalls.  Early  on  Sunday  mornings, 
soon  after  sunrise,  the  bells  of  the  city  spires  were  sometimes 
chimed  as  of  old ;  but  there  was  no  Christian  sacrifice  offered, 
and  no  worshippers  gathered.  Selfishness  and  self-seeking  were 
rampant.  Old  religious  duties  and  customs,  one  after  the  other, 
were  abandoned  and  died  out.  Miserable  disputes  here  and 
elsewhere  ^  were  carried  on  with  bitterness  and  bad  feeling  by 
the  new  ministers.  Butchers  took  part  in  "  prophesyings,"  and 
disputed  concerning  St.  Paul's  teaching.  Some  men  wrangled 
over  the  official  dresses  of  the  ministers — what  they  should  wear, 
and  what  they  should  leave  off  wearing  ;  others  became  fanatical, 
and  even  mad,  by  reason  of  their  perplexing  disquisitions  con- 
cerning the  free-will  of  man  and  the  foreknowledge  of  the  Eternal. 
Certain  persons  believed  themselves  to  be  already  of  the  family 
of  the  saints  and  the  company  of  the  chosen,  and  declared  that 
nothing  they  might  think,  say,  or  do,  could  alter,  by  one  iota, 
their  predestined  and  blessed  position.  Others  again  (these 
were  "  weaker  vessels "),  gnashing  their  teeth  and  tearing  their 
hair,  despairingly  proclaimed  themselves  lost  throughout  eternity  ; 
while  few  or  none  of  the  onlookers  who  witnessed  their  phrenzy 
cared  to  argue  with  them  to  the  contrary.  Necromancy  was 
])ractised  largely.  The  queen  and  Walsingham  frequently  con- 
sulted Dr.  Dee,  as  of  old;  while  that  person  became  quite  a 
proficient  in  the  occult  sciences.  Demoniacs  increased  in 
number,  and  superstition  on  all  sides  was  welcomed.  At  the 
same  time  a  steady  wave  of  unbelief  rolled  forward,  and  few 
worked  to  stem  its  progress.     Authority  had  been  so  purposely 

^  "  Since  your  departure  from  Norwich  the  preachers  of  the  city  have  taken 
in  hand  (both  for  their  l^etter  exercise  and  also  for  the  education  of  the  people), 
prophesying,  which  is  done  once  in  three  weeks  ;  when  [some]  one  first  inter- 
prets a  piece  of  the  Scriptures,  which  at  present  is  Fan!  to  the  Romans,  for  an 
hour,  and  then  two  others  reply  for  half  an  hour,  when  we  end  with  prayer. 

"My  Lord  Bishop,  at  his  last  giving  orders,  admitted  none  that  had  no 
knowledge  of  the  Latin  tongue  or  that  exercised  any  secular  occupancy  ;  by 
means  whereof  John  Cayme  was  not  admitted,  for  he  lacked  the  Latin  and 
was  a  butcher." — State  Papers,  Domestic,  Elizabeth,  vol  xii.  n.  27. 


l88  THE   CHURCH    UNDER   QUEEN    ELIZABETH. 

banished,  and  licence  eveiywhere  recommended,  tliat  many,  know- 
ing not  what  to  believe,  believed  nothing ;  and,  as  a  necessary 
consequence,  often  became  less  decent  and  moral  in  their  ordinary 
habits  than  the  inferior  animals  which  they  despised  and  ill- 
treated.' 

But  terrible  sights  met  the  eyes  of  the  citizens  on  every  side ; 
bequeathed  by  the  legal  butchers  of  Tybourne.  Over  the  gate- 
ways of  the  various  prisons,  stuck  upon  poles,  were  placed  the 
heads,  and  sometimes  the  arms  and  legs,  of  those  who  had  died 
for  their  religion.  No  one  could  come  up  to  the  city  of  London 
from  Kent,  or  pass  over  old  London  Bridge  to  return  to  that 
pleasant  county,  without  seeing  from  twenty  to  thirty  heads, 
which  had  been  first  boiled  and  tarred,  and  then  dried  and 
become  withered  under  summer  heat  and  winter  winds,  exposed 
on  poles  over  the  gateway  battlements  at  either  end  of  the  bridge. 
Children  looked  up  with  horror ;  men  shuddered  involuntarily  as 
they  gazed  on  these  dark,  eyeless  heads,  with  their  matted  hair, 
drawn  features,  and  white,  protruding  teeth ;  and  tears  often  fell 
down  the  cheeks  of  women,  when  such  ghastly  sights  suddenly 
met  their  glance ;  for  they  knew  that  those  advisers  of  the  queen 
then  in  power  had  the  will  to  rack  and  to  fine,  to  imprison,  flog, 
and  kill  all  and  any  w'ho  should  oppose  the  changes  which  had 
been  so  generally  effected,  or  resist  the  policy  sanctioned  by  the 
Council.  However,  in  1582,  the  people  began  to  murmur  that 
the  Court  authorities  were  now  making  London  "  but  as  one 
shambles  for  human  flesh,"  ^  so  numerous  were  the  heads  exposed 
upon  the  towers  of  the  bridges,  and  the  limbs  hung  here  and 
there  in  public  places. 

The  prisons  of  London  were  still  full  of  "recusants."  About 
this  time  there  were  no  less  than  thirty-two  priests  in  the  Marshal- 
sea,''  nearly  the  same  number  in  the  Tower,  eighteen  in  the  Gate 
House  at  Westminster,  eleven  in  the  Compter  in  Wood  Street, 
nine  at  St.  Bridget's  Fountain  or  Bridewell,  five  in  the  prison- 
house  known  as  the  "  White  Lion,"  twenty-two  in  the  Compter 
in  the  Poultry,  fourteen  in  the  Clinke  or  "  Hall  of  Winchester  "  in 

'  The  whole  of  the  above  account  is  faithfully  paraphrased  from  the  actual 
records  and  written  lamentations  of  eye-witnesses. 

-  On  the  strengtli  of  this  complaint,  four  or  five  of  the  condemned 
"  recusants"  were  sent  up  to  York  to  be  executed.  The  gallows  stood  near 
Knavesmoor,  a  common  near  to  the  city,  and  opposite  to  a  place  called 
Hobbmoor  Lane.  During  the  reign  of  Elizabeth,  no  less  than  forty-nine 
jiersons  suffered  here  for  atlhercnce  to  the  Catholic  faith. 

'  See  Sta/e  Papers,  Dniiicstic,  Elizabeth  (a. D.  15S0).  vol.  cxlviii.  n.  33,  35, 
61  ;  vol.  cxlix.  n.  1S4  ;  vol.  cxc.  n.  25,  42,  44,  74;  and  vol.  cxcv.  n.  74. 
(These  last  named  refer  to  later  years,  i.e.  to  the  year  1586.) 


POLICY   OF  CERTAIN    OF   THE   NEW   MEN.  1 89 

the  Eankside,  Southwark,  seven  in  Newgate,  and  three  in  the 
King's  Bench  Prison.  Some  of  these  had  been  closely  con- 
fined more  than  twenty  years,  and  had  been  racked,  otherwise 
tortured,  half  starved,  and  most  cruelly  used  on  many  occasions. 
More  than  two  hundred  laymen^  were  likewise  imprisoned  in 
one  or  the  other  because  of  their  religion. 

In  1580  numbers  of  persons  fled  from  England  to  France  and 
Belgium.  Dr.  William  Allen,  still  President  of  the  College  which 
had  been  removed  from  Douay  to  Rheims,  entertained  no  less 
than  fifty  expatriated  Englishmen  within  a  single  month.  Some- 
times whole  families  came,  weary  and  utterly  sick  at  heart ;  having 
been  unable  to  endure  the  fines,  persecution,  imprisonment,  and 
contumely  which  they  had  so  long  experienced  in  the  land  of 
their  birth.  The  President  has  left  on  record  his  conviction  that 
the  devotion  thus  exhibited  to  the  cause  of  God  and  His  Church 
was  a  standing  miracle  of  grace.  Many  of  these,  noblemen's  and 
gentlemen's  sons  in  the  flower  of  their  age,  resigning  the  comforts 
of  home  and  the  hopes  of  future  position  and  usefulness,  gave 
themselves  up  to  a  course  of  preparation  for  the  priesthood ;  so 
that  they  might  again  return  to  their  native  land,  anointed  with 
unction  from  on  high,  to  strengthen  and  sustain  the  weak,  and 
help  to  rebuild  its  waste  and  desolate  places. 

One  of  the  chief  argumentative  weapons  of  the  new  leaders  had 
continually  been  that  all  priests  were  impostors,  and  that  under 
the  gospel  dispensation  the  very  idea  of  a  priest  had  no  real 
existence,  the  office  being  entirely  superfluous;  for  that  the 
Saviour  of  the  world  was  the  alone  and  only  true  Priest,  and 
all  others  were  but  impiously  and  profanely  usurping  His  office 
without  authority,  Scripture  warrant,  or  reason.  They  asserted 
likewise  that  the  sacrifice  of  the  mass  was  a  blasphemous  fable 
and  a  dangerous  deceit ;  that  the  blessed  Sacrament  of  the  Altar 
was  "  a  god  made  in  co-operation  by  the  bakers  "  and  "  Queen 
Mary's  shaven  conjurors,"  with  other  blasphemies  too  awful  to 
repeat.  For  themselves  they  were,  as  they  maintained,  but  plain 
ministers  of  the  Word,  not  priests  ;  preachers,  not  offerers  of  any 
kind  of  sacrifice  except  that  of  prayer  and  praise.  A  sacrifice 
of  bread  and  wine  had  not  then  been  conceived  or  invented. 

1  One  Richard  Fulwood,  a  layman,  thus  details  his  own  miserable  lot  in 
Bridewell :— "  He  had,  he  said,  hardly  enough  black  bread  to  keep  him  from 
starving.  His  abode  was  a  narrow  strongly-built  cell,  in  which  there  was  no 
bed,  so  that  he  had  to  sleep  sitting  on  the  window-sill,  and  was  months  without 
taking  off  his  clothes.  There  was  a  little  straw  in  the  place,  but  it  was  so 
trodden  down  and  swarming  with  vermin  that  he  could  not  lie  on  it.  Besides 
all  this,  he  was  daily  awaiting  an  examination  by  torture." — Records  of  the 
English  Province,  vol.  i.  p.  494.     London,  1877. 


IQO  THE   CHURCH    UNDER   QUEEN    ELIZABETH. 

The  "  elect,"  when  worsliipping,  of  course  offered  themselves, 
their  souls,  and  their  bodies  as  a  sacrifice,  but  nothing  more. 
This  they  fearlessly  asserted  the  Prayer-Book  and  "  Articles  of 
Religion  "  taught,  and  nothing  further.  Possibly  they  were  not 
wrong. 

In  answer  to  this  and  such  like,  which  abounds  in  the  ponderous 
and  unread  literature  of  the  period,  and  the  points  of  which  are 
reproduced  again  and  again.  Dr.  Allen  thus  quaintly  but  forcibly 
replied.     His  words  are  given  exactly  as  they  were  first  printed  : — 

"  Because  one  special  reproch  given  us  pertaineth  not  to  our  persons,  but 
to  the  whole  order  of  priesthood,  we  may  be  bold  to  adde  a  worde  or  two 
for  our  defense  specially  concerning  that  terme,  '  Massing  Priests,'  whereby 
the  new  pulpits  (the  very  chairs  of  the  skorneful)  merily  or  mockingly  call 
us  and  our  brethren.  \\'hich  name  yet  given  us  also  in  public  writing  of 
authorities,  is  not  doubtles  of  skornefulnes,  which  must  needes  be  far  from 
the  editers  of  such  :  but  as  we  take  it,  for  distinction  and  difference  betwixt 
us  Catholike  and  in  deede  onely,  and  the  other  of  the  new  creation,  whom  the 
people,  for  some  resemblance  of  their  actions  in  the  ministerie  to  the  wonted 
celebration  of  divine  things,  often  call  priests,  though  they  list  not  to  be  so 
called,  as  in  deede  the  ministers  cannot  of  right  have  any  such  calling,  having 
no  more  power,  right  or  aulhoritie  to  minister  any  Sacrament  (other  than 
Baptisme,  which  in  some  cases  women  may  also  do)  then  they  have  to  make 
a  new  moone  or  another  sunne.  The  Church  of  God  knoweth  no  other 
jiriests,  neither  hath  Christ  instituted  any  other  order  of  priests,  but  of  these 
whom  contemptuously  they  call  '  Masse  Priests.'  It  is  that  sort,  and  none 
other,  to  which  our  Saviour  gave  power  to  consecrate  His  body  and  blood 
and  offer  the  same,  which  is  to  say  Masse.  "^ 

But  to  return  to  the  innovators.  In  and  about  the  year  15  So, 
many  ministers,  some  of  them  evidently  not  ordained  at  all,- 
took  livings  and  would  ovA'^ preach  to  their  congregations,  refus- 
ing altogether  to  baptize  or  to  celebrate  the  Sacrament  of  the 
Lord's  Supper,  and  these  were  termed  "no-sacrament  ministers  "  ;  '■'' 
upon  which  Archbishop  Grindal  wrote  to  his  diocesan  officers, 
and  asked  for  the  names  of  such  offenders.     The  Privy  Council 

^  An  Apologie  and  Trite  Declaration  of  the  Two  English  Colleges,  the  one 
in  Rome,  the  other  in  R hemes,  pp.  88,  89,  A.D.  158 1. 

-  Two  modern  authors  of  ability,  perfectly  able  to  give  a  faitliful  judgment, 
write  as  follows : — ( i )  "If  the  rectors  and  vicars  of  the  parishes,  witcther priests 
or  laymen,  were  the  very  scum  of  the  earth,  and  contrast  so  very  unfavourably 
with  their  successors  of  the  present  day,  the  comparison  of  our  bishops  with 
those  promoted  in  the  reign  of  T'dward  \T.  will  exhibit  this  contrast  in  a  still 
more  striking  light." — The  Reformation  and  the  Prayer-Book,  by  Nicholas 
Pocock,  M.A.  London,  1879.  (2)  '■^  Some  of  the  best  of  them  \the  ministers] 
were  ignorant  ranters,  utterly  unfit  to  cope  with  the  trained  dialecticians  who 
were  being  reared  so  carefully  beyond  the  seas." — One  Generation  of  a 
Norfolk  House,  by  Augustus  Jessopp,  D.D.,  second  edition,  p.  74.     London, 

•*  Strype's  Life  of  Crindal,  p.  363,  and  Grindal's  Remains,  p.  413.  See 
also  "  Letter  from  the  Lords  of  the  Council,"  in  Grindal's  Register,  folio  191, 


PERSECUTION   OF   SEMINARY   PRIESTS.  IQI 

likewise  interfered,  ordering  them  to  be  sent  up  as  recusants.  But 
there  were  too  many  of  such  to  make  it  easy  to  put  them  down. 

Persecution,  however,  went  on  apace.  More  seminary  priests 
arrived,  while  Puritanism  developed  in  several  directions  and 
increased.  In  1581  Chaderton,  Bishop  of  Chester,  wrote  to  the 
Council,  urging  them,  on  the  one  hand,  to  bring  in  a  Bill  making 
traitors  and  felons,  without  benefit  of  clergy,  of  "  all  vagrant  priests 
as  walk  about  in  disguised  apparel  seducmg  Her  Majesty's  sub- 
jects." He  also,  on  the  other  hand,  complained  that  conventicles 
were  not  put  down,  and  urged  that  the  preachers  should  be  com- 
pelled to  reside  upon  their  benefices.  As  regards  the  state  of  his 
own  cathedral,  he  gives  a  most  deplorable  account.  Religion  in 
Chester,  apparently,  had  been  reformed  off  the  face  of  the  earth. 
For  all  the  good  which  that  interesting  fabric  did,  it  might  as 
well  have  been  clean  pulled  down,  "  In  this  cathedral  church  of 
Chester  neither  the  dean  nor  any  prebendary  hath  been  resident 
or  kept  hospitality  of  many  years.  Neither  is  any  parson  or  vicar 
of  any  parish  within  the  city  a  preacher."^  Overton,  of  Lich- 
field and  Coventry,  in  April  of  the  same  year,  complains,  in  a 
melancholy  strain,  of  the  state  of  the  county  of  Salop,  though  it 
be  "one  of  the  best  and  conformablest  parts  of  my  diocese." 
There,  "  of  one  hundred  all  most  presented  for  recusancy,  they 
could  get  one  only  to  be  bound,  the  rest  refusing  most  obstinately 
to  come  before  them."- 

In  other  parts  they  were  more  successful.  Cheshire  and 
Lancashire  clung  closely  to  the  old  religion ;  in  certain  counties, 
however,  where  the  ancient  nobility  had  been  ruined,  and  their 
places  supplied  by  Court  nominees,  "  new  men,"  and  ready  tools, 
the  "  Reformers  "  apparently  had  their  own  way. 

In  1580  Dr.  William  Allen  ^  induced  Pope  Gregory  XIII.  to 
send  some  of  the  Jesuits  into  England  to  aid  in  preserving  the 
ancient  faith.  Two  Oxford  men,  Robert  Parsons,  Fellow  and 
Dean  of  Balliol  College,  and  Edmund  Campion,  Fellow  of  St. 
John's,^  were  chosen  for  that  purpose.     They  arrived   in   the 

^  Staie  Papers,  Domestic,  Elizabeth,  leUer  dated  December  1,  1 58 1. 

"  Lansdowne  MSS.  Brit.  Museum,  No.  t,t„  folio  14. 

^  Of  this  divine,  Anthony  a  Wood  gives  the  following  character  : — "  Certain 
it  is  that  he  was  an  active  man,  and  of  great  parts  and  high  prudence  ;  that 
he  was  religious  and  zealous  in  his  profession  ;  restless  till  he  had  performed 
what  he  had  undertaken  ;  that  he  was  very  affable,  genteel,  and  winning  ; 
and  that  his  person  was  handsome  and  proper ;  which,  with  an  innate 
gravity,  commanded  respect  from  those  that  came  near,  and  had  to  do  with 
him." 

*  See  The  Life  of  Edmund  Ca>npion,  by  Richard  Simpson.     London,  1867 
A  model  biography  and  a  mine  of  information  regarding  Elizabeth's  reign. 


192  THE   CHURCH    UNDER   QUEEN   ELIZABETH. 

summer,  and  losing  no  time  in  beginning  their  work,  before  the 
Christmas  feast  came  round,  had  reconciled  to  the  Church  of 
their  fathers  many  who  had  lapsed.  They  acted  in  the  spirit  and 
I)urport  of  the  Bull  of  Pope  Pius  V.  For,  as  some  might  have 
asked  themselves,  if,  in  such  a  matter,  the  Father  of  Christendom 
could  not  speak  with  authority,  who  could  ?  If  he  was  not  to 
be  obeyed,  to  whom  was  obedience  due?  If  His  Holiness  was 
unable  to  devise  a  remedy  for  the  sorrows  of  England,  to  whom 
should  the  afflicted  turn  ? 

In  the  work  of  Parsons  and  Campion,  friends  aided  them  with 
zeal  and  devotion.  So  that  they  preached  by  pre-arrangement  at 
different  places,  and  exhorted  with  all  diligence  and  earnestness 
various  gatherings  of  sincere  adherents  and  followers.  Men  of 
great  gifts  and  of  the  highest  culture,  their  influence  began  to 
be  widely  experienced  at  once ;  they  always  found  an  attentive 
audience,  and  seldom  passed  on  to  some  other  place  without 
obvious  results  from  their  labours.  In  August  of  this  year 
Parsons  wrote  his  celebrated  Challenge,  which,  having  been 
made  public  by  an  esquire  of  Hampshire  named  Thomas 
Pounde,  soon  secured  a  circulation  throughout  the  whole 
kingdom. 

At  Stonor  Park,  about  five  miles  to  the  north  of  Henley,  in 
Oxfordshire,  a  family  of  antiquity  and  repute  had  long  resided — 
the  Stonors.  They  were  earnestly  attached  to  the  ancient  faith. 
In  the  attractive  and  interesting  picture  gallery,  which  runs  from 
east  to  west  on  the  north  side  of  their  pleasantly-placed  mansion, 
are  various  representations  of  those  of  many  generations  who 
have  always  been  leal  and  loyal  to  the  faith  of  their  forefathers. 
In  the  adjoining  church,  standing  towards  the  east  of  the  house, 
mass  has  been  constantly  said  without  break  or  discontinuance 
down  to  the  present  day.  In  that  sacred  edifice  no  abomination 
of  desolation  has  ever  been  set  up.  There,  under  the  protection 
of  an  influential  family,  in  a  house  placed  towards  the  lower  slope 
of  a  hill,  away  from  main  roads,  and  amid  the  shelter  of  beechen 
woods.  Parsons  was  allowed  to  set  up  a  private  printing-press. 
One  volume  after  another  was  put  forth,  being  sold  at  Oxford  as 
well  as  in  London  ;  each  book  full  of  wholesome  truths  for  the 
innovators,  and  telling  arguments  for  the  deluded  and  misled  in 
general.  The  authorities  were  beside  themselves  with  anger  and 
annoyance  at  being  unable  to  unearth  the  offenders  or  discover 
the  press.     Spies  and  agents  were  despatched  to  secure  them. 

Parsons,  who  had  been  appointed  one  of  the  members  of 
the  Spanish  ambassador's  household,  had  his  headquarters  in 
London.     But  Campion,  after  moving  about  discreetly  for  some 


TORTURE   OF   CAMPION.  I93 

months,  betrayed  by  one,  George  Elliot,^  was  taken  in  the  house 
of  Esquire  Yates,  at  Lyford,  in  Berkshire,  on  Sunday,  July  i6th, 
1 58 1,  just  after  he  had  preached  to  a  congregation  of  nearly  sixty 
listeners,  a  considerable  proportion  of  whom  were  young  students 
of  the  University  of  Oxford.  Eyford  House  was  then  a  turreted 
and  moated  building  of  some  antiquity,  —  a  county  family's 
pleasant  home, — in  which  several  carefully-arranged  hiding-places 
existed.  Elliot  had  himself  been  a  servant  at  Ingatestone  Hall 
in  Essex,  and  at  Orpington  in  Kent,  but  was  then  a  government 
spy,  on  active  duty;  and,  knowing  one  of  the  servants  at  Lyford, 
entered  into  conversation  with  him  at  the  gate  of  the  drawbridge. 
Elliot's  recent  apostacy  and  infamous  character  were  quite  un- 
known to  the  servant,  who  admitted  him  to  mass,  and  informed 
him  in  confidence  that  Campion  would  preach.  The  latter  was 
taken  in  due  course,  at  once  given  over  to  the  care  of  the  Sheriff 
of  Berks,  and  carried  through  Abingdon,  Reading,  and  Coln- 
brooke  to  London.  There  he  was  committed  to  the  Tower. 
Both  the  Lord  Chancellor  and  the  Lieutenant  of  the  Tower  tried 
to  induce  him  to  betray  his  allies  and  friends.  But  he  declined. 
So  within  a  week  he  was  placed  upon  the  rack,  and  endured  its 
tortures. 

To  quote  from  a  contemporary  authority  :  — ■  "  At  his  first 
racking  they  went  no  farther  with  him  ;  but  afterwards,  when 
they  saw  that  he  could  not  be  won  to  condescend  somewhat  at 
least  in  religion,  which  was  the  thing  they  most  desired,  they 
thought  good  to  frame  matter  of  treason  against  him,  and  framed 
their  demands  accordingly ;  about  which  he  was  so  cruelly  torn 
and  rent  upon  the  torture,  the  two  last  times,  that  he  told  a 
friend  of  his  that  found  means  to  speak  to  him,  that  he  thought 
they  meant  to  make  him  away  in  that  manner.  Before  he  went 
to  the  rack  he  used  to  fall  down  at  the  rack-house  door,  upon 
both  knees,  to  commend  himself  to  God's  mercy ;  and  upon  the 
rack  he  called  continually  upon  God,  repeating  often  the  holy 
name  of  Jesus.  He  most  charitably  forgave  his  tormentors  and 
the  causers  thereof.  His  keeper,  asking  him  the  next  day  how  he 
felt  his  hands  and  feet,  he  answered  not  ill,  because  not  at  all."  - 

Some  controversies  were  held  with  him  in  the  chapel  of  the 
Tower  by  certain   ministers.     "  That   he    might  want  no  good 

^  .See  a  document  in  the  handwriting  of  this  man,  amongst  the  Lansdowne 
MSS.,  British  Museum,  Buri;hLy  Papers,  vol.  xxxiii.  Pluto,  folio  16  et  seq., 
endorsed  "10  Aug.  1581.  A  declaracon  of  certain  Papists,  etc.,  writ  by 
G[eorge]  E[lliot]  is  by  one  that  was  servant  to  the  old  Ladye  Peter." 

-  From  an  old  Latin  MS.  sometime  at  Douay,  written  by  an  eye-witness 
of  Campion's  death,  and  quoted  in  Memoirs  of  Missionary  Priests,  by  Bishop 
Challoner. 

N 


194         THE   CHURCH    UNDER   QUEEN    ELIZABETH. 

l)retence  to  yield  to  their  desires,"  it  is  written,  "■  they  often 
brought  to  him  such  divines  as  they  had  to  confer  with  him,  and 
to  persuade  him  privately  to  relent  somewhat  to  their  sect." 
But  this  was  of  no  avail.  Though  worn  widi  agony  and  weak 
wMth  racking — so  weak  that  his  numbed  arms  hung  by  his  side, 
and  he  could  not  stand — he  was  quite  able  to  give  an  ansvver  to 
the  worrying  and  wearying  divines.  He  would  not  succumb, 
and  did  not  give  in.  Having  been  deliberately  allowed  to 
recover  a  little,  the  authorities  proceeded  to  rack  him  a  third 
time ;  so  that  when,  three  weeks  later,  he  was  put  on  his  trial  for 
high  treason,  he  was  positively  unable,  according  to  custom  when 
charged,  even  to  lift  up  his  hand. 

Seven  persons  were  arraigned  with  Campion,  and  like  him 
were  condemned  to  die.  He  thus  spake  : — "  I  protest  before 
God  and  the  holy  angels,  before  heaven  and  earth,  before  this 
world  and  the  bar  whereat  I  stand,  that  I  am  not  guilty  of  any 
])art  of  the  treason  contained  in  the  indictment,  or  of  any  other 
treason  whatsoever." 

liut  the  jury,  having  been  informed  by  Popham,  the  Attorney- 
(jcneral,  that  "  it  was  the  queen's  will  that  the  prisoners  should 
be  found  guilty,"  did  as  they  were  told. 

On  December  ist,  1581,  he,  in  company  with  Alexander 
]5riant  and  Ralph  Sherwin,  were  executed  at  Tybourne,  with  all 
the  ordinary  horrors. 

A  relation  of  Campion's  was  informed  by  the  Lieutenant  of 
the  Tower  that  if  Campion  could  be  induced  to  go  over  to  the 
(jueen's  religion,  he  should  not  only  receive  a  pardon,  but  obtain 
"an  office  worth  ;^ioo  by  the  year";  and  when  Campion  was 
preparing  to  suffer,  a  like  offer  is  said  to  have  been  made  by  Sir 
i'rancis  Knollys. 

A  minister  who  wished  Campion  to  join  in  jjvayer  received 
this  ansvver : — 

"  You  and  I  are  not  of  one  religion.  I  i)ray  )ou,  therefore, 
content  yourself,  and  leave  me  alone.  I  bar  no  one  of  prayer ; 
but,  for  myself,  I  desire  only  them  of  the  liousehold  of  faith 
to  pray  with  me,  and,  in  my  agony,  I  wish  to  know  only  one 
Creed." 

The  end  was  of  the  usual  kind.  The  details  of  this  tragedy 
were  like  those  which  had  been  done  before  and  should  so 
Ireciuently  be  done  after.  The  three  sufferers  were  drawn  on  a 
hurdle  to  Tybourne ;  they  were  then  hung  and  cut  down  alive. 
They  were  at  once  dismembered  and  disembowelled  ;  their  heads 
were  taken  off  and  their  bodies  (juartered,  and  these  were  first 
thrown  into  a  caldron  of  boiling  water,  and  afterwards  smeared 


THE   TIIIMBLEBYS   OF   LINCOLNSHIRE.  1 95 

over  with  pitch,  before  being  exposed  on  poles  in  different  parts 
of  London. 

The  following  four  verses,  in  modern  spelling,  are  given  of  a 
rare  and  beautiful  "  Epitaph  "  by  Henry  Walpole  : — 

"  His  prison  now  the  City  of  the  King, 

His  rack  and  torture  joys  and  heavenly  bliss, 

For  men's  reproach  with  angels  he  doth  sing 
A  sacred  song,   which  everlasting  is. 

For  shame  but  short,   and  loss  of  small  renown, 

He  purchased  hath  an  ever-during  crown. 

"  His  quartered  limbs  shall  join  with  joy  again, 

And  rise  a  body  brighter  than  the  sun, 
Your  malice  keen  tormented  him  in  vain. 

For  every  wrench  such  glory  hath  him  won. 
And  every  drop  of  blood,  \\-hich  he  did  spend. 
Hath  reap'd  a  joy  which  never  shall  have  end. 

"  His  hurdle  draws  us  with  him  to  the  Cross, 
His  speeches  theie  provoke  us  for  to  die, 
His  death  doth  say  this  life  is  but  a  loss. 

His  martyred  blood  from  heaven  to  us  doth  cry  : 
His  first  and  last,   and  all  conspire  in  this — 
To  show  the  way  that  leadelh  us  to  bliss. 

"  Blessed  be  God,  Which  lent  him  so  much  grace, 
Thanked  be  Christ,   Which  blest  this  martyr  so  ; 
Happy  is  he,   which  seeth  his  Master's  Face  ; 

Cursed  all  they  that  thought  to  work  him  woe  : 
Bound  en  be  we  to  give  eternal  praise 
To  Jesu's  Name,  which  such  a  man  did  raise."  ^ 

A  melancholy  incident  relating  to  the  Thimbleby  femily  of 
Lincolnshire  must  now  be  recorded.  Their  ancestors  had  been 
seated  at  Pelham  since  the  reign  of  Edward  III.,  and  were  a 
knightly  family  of  honour  and  good  repute.  One  of  them,  in 
prison  at  Lincoln,  a.d.  15S1,  for  refusing  to  attend  the  new 
services,  and  for  declining  to  receive  at  the  Supper,  desired 
greatly  to  see  his  young  wife,  likely  soon  to  become  a  mother. 
His  request  was  allowed  by  Thomas  Cowper,  the  bishop  of  the 
chocese.  But,  as  her  name  was  amongst  a  list  of  those  un- 
favourable to  the  "  reformed "  faction,  when  she  was  admitted 
to  her  husband's  cell,  she  herself,  under  some  order  from 
authority,  was  actually  detained  by  force.  Either  the  shock  of 
this  act  of  perfidious  inhumanity,  or  the  frightful  stench  of  the 
place,  brought  on  sickness  and  premature  labour;  and,  in  her 

^  The  original  is  reprinted  verbatim  in  Dr.  Jessopp's  most  interesting 
Memoir  of  Henry  Walpole,  entitled  One  Generation  of  a  Norfolk  House,  pp. 
106-110.     London,  1879. 


196         THE   CHURCH    UNDER   QUEEN    ELIZABETH. 

hour  of  weakness,  in  the  presence  of  her  helpless  and  distracted 
husband,  she  was  cruelly  denied  by  the  gaoler  the  assistance  of 
any  matron.  It  seems  probable  that  her  husband,  Gabriel 
Thinibleby,  died  in  prison.  Probably  a  speedy  death  mercifully 
ended  her  own  sufferings. 

But  to  return  to  the  north-west.  In  the  early  part  of  1583,  at 
the  Sessions  held  before  Chaderton,  Bishop  of  Chester,  in  con- 
junction with  John  Byron,  three  old  priests,  Williamson,  Hatton, 
and  Bell,  were  indicted  for  high  treason ;  and  no  less  than 
twenty-six  persons  were  each  fined  two  hundred  and  forty 
])ounds  because  they  had  not  attended  the  new  services  for  at 
least  twelve  months.  Of  these  one  was  a  knight, — Sir  John 
Southworth,  a  most  determined  and  noble  confessor, of  the  faith, 
of  whom  another  prelate,  Grindal,  could  make  nothing  satis- 
iactory  to  him, — four  were  esquires,  three  were  gentlemen,  ten 
were  priests,  three  were  schoolmasters,  and  the  rest  yeomen, 
husbandmen,  and  labourers.  Four  women,  though  indicted, 
were  not  arraigned,  and  seven  other  women  appear  to  have 
escaped.^  Thirty-eight,  however  (including  six  women),  were 
speedily  lodged  in  Salford  Gaol.  Tiie  offence  of  each  was  that 
he  or  she  conscientiously  refused  to  have  anything  to  do  with 
the  new  religion,  its  obligations,  its  authors,  or  its  authorities. 

In  the  meantime  the  new  prelates  and  the  newly -made 
ministers,  so  soon  as  they  were  consecrated  or  ordained,  appear 
to  have  sought  out  wives  for  themselves  as  a  consolation  in  their 
loneliness.  It  must,  of  course,  have  been  very  depressing  to  have 
lived  alone,  year  after  year,  in  out-of-the-way  villages,  with  little 
to  study  but  the  Marty rology  of  Foxe,  Jewell's  Apology,  and  the 
two  books  of  published  Homilies.  Such  reading  was,  no  doubt, 
rather  "painful"  than  profitable.  Wives,  therefore,  when  they 
could  secure  them,  served  to  take  up  their  attention,  while  the 
prattle  of  children  amused  them.  It  is  astonishing,  consequently, 
how  successful  they  became  in  this  very  practical  part  of  their 
dutv.  Dr.  Cotton's  lady  of  Salisbury  presented  him  from  time 
to  time  with  no  less  than  nineteen.  The  bishop's  chapel  was 
often  turned  into  a  nursery;  the  parson's  wife  was  fruitful  as  the 
vine  on  the  vicarage  wall,  and  often  more  blessed  with  olive- 
branches  than  the  neighbouring  squire's  or  the  parish  constable's  ; 
l)ishops  left  their  daughters  handsome  portions,  often  secured 
knighthood  for  their  sons,'-'  and  the  children  of  the  clergy  were 
in  due  course  looked  upon  as  respectable  members  of  society. 

'  Slate  Papers,  Domestic,  Elizabeth,  vol.  clxvii.  No.  40.     Dated  in  dorso, 
lanuaiy  22,  23,  1583. 
-  Two  o.*"  the  sons  of  Sandys,  Archbishop  of  York,  were  knighted,  viz. 


BISHOP   THOMAS   WATSON.  197 

In  those  days  even  the  oldest  prelates,  though  wanting  in 
certain  gifts,  were  bold  and  not  bashful.  For  example,  Thomas 
Ciodwin,'  already  a  widower,  Bishop  of  Bath  and  Wells,  and 
"aged  and  diseased,  and  lame  of  the  gout,"  as  Sir  John  Har- 
ington  puts  on  record,  married  as  his  second  spouse  a  widow 
from  London,  not  one  of  the  "  ancient  widows  "  already  noticed, 
but  one  "livelier  and  right  merrie."  It  reached  the  queen's 
ears  that  this  wrinkled  and  dilapidated  old  man,  with  one  foot 
in  the  grave,  had  indeed  wedded  a  girl  of  twenty ;  and  Her 
Highness,  invariably  meditating  on  matrimony  in  some  form  or 
another,  called  him  a  "  bigamist,"  and  expressed  the  greatest 
indignation.  Upon  which  the  Earl  of  Bedford,  who  happened 
to  be  near  and  knew  the  lady,  said  merrily,  and  with  much  dry 
humour :  "  Madam,  I  know  not  how  much  the  woman  is  above 
twenty ;  but  I  know  that  a  son  of  hers  is  a  little  under  forty." 

But  this  rather  marred  than  mended  matters. 

One  other  bystander  remarked  :  '•'■  Majits peccahun  habei.''' 

Another,  to  the  cjueen's  amusement,  for  it  was  the  single 
topic  always  welcome,  told  methodically  of  three  sorts  of 
marriage.  First,  that  of  God's  making,  when  Adam  and  Eve, 
two  young  folks,  were  coupled ;  secondly,  of  man's  making, 
when  one  is  old  and  another  young,  as  St.  Joseph's  marriage  ; 
and  thirdly,  of  the  devil's  making,  when  two  old  folks  marry,- 
not  for  comfort,  but  for  covetousness,  and  such  they  said  was 
Bishop  Godwin's. 

In  the  autumn  of  1584,  Thomas  Watson,  Bishop  of  Lincoln, 
the  last  survivor  in  England  of  the  ancient  episcopate,  and  a 
marked  contrast  to  the  amorous  old  gentleman  just  referred  to, 
after  a  close  imprisonment  of  nearly  a  quarter  of  a  century,  four 
years  of  which  were  passed  in  Wisbeach  Castle,  passed  to  his 
rest  and  reward.  He  had  seen  sixty-eight  summers,  and  had 
long  suffered  from  the  ague.  No  passing-bell  was  rung  from  the 
adjoining  tower  of  St.  Peter's  Church,  then  in  the  hands  of  the 
new  preachers.  His  life  had  been  one  continued  series  of  trials 
ever  since  Elizabeth's  accession.-*     At  Wisbeach  his  lordship  was 

Sir  Edwin  by  Elizabeth,  and  Sir  Miles.  Each  of  these,  though  laymen, 
had  been  respectively  made  Prebendaries  of  York  Minster  for  the  sake  of 
the  endowments.  The  latter  received  the  honour  of  knighthood  in  the  first 
year  of  King  James  I. 

1  Consecrated  Bishop  of  Bath,  etc.,  at  Lambeth,  September  13,  15S4. 

-  Brief  View  of  tlie  Church  of  England,  by  Sir  J.  Harington,  pp.  114,  115. 
London,  1653. 

'"  The  bishop  was  placed  there,  at  Lord  Burghley's  suggestion,  in  1580. — 
State  Papers,  Elimbeth,  Addenda,  vol.  xxvii.  No.  21.  In  Father  Parsons' 
Accottnt  of  the  Persecution  (p.   60,  A.D.    1582),  he  describes  the  scandalous 


KjS         THE   CHURCH    UNDER   QUEEN    ELIZABETH. 

insulted  by  the  Protestants  in  the  grossest  and  most  infamous 
manner.^  Trusty  friends  were  sometimes  enabled  to  let  him 
know,  wherever  confined,  of  the  downward  course  of  events 
throughout  the  country,  and  of  the  miserable  religious  desolation 
existing — a  desolation  which  he  was  so  powerless  to  alter.  The 
seasons  came  and  went  during  his  last  imprisonment ;  but  for 
him  there  had  been  little  change.  Seed-time  and  harvest  were 
alike.  During  the  Avinter  the  sea-mists,  drifting  landwards, 
almost  always  hung  over  and  hid  the  castle  walls.  Broad  pools 
and  patches  of  stagnant  water,  green  with  rank  weeds,  and  wide 
marshes  and  sterile  flats  lay  outspread  all  around  for  miles.  The 
muddy  river  Nene  w'as  constantly  overflowing  its  broken-down 
banks,  so  that  the  moat  of  the  castle  frequently  flooded  the 
adjacent  garden  and  orchard.  Of  foliage,  save  a  few  stunted 
willow  trees,  there  was  little  or  none  in  sight;  for  when  summer 
came  round,  the  sun's  heat  soon  parched  up  the  rank  grass  in 
the  courtyard,  and  withered  the  dandelion  and  snapdragon  which 
grew  upon  its  massive  but  dilapidated  walls. ^  It  was  a  dreary 
spot,'"*  rife  with  the  saddest  memories  ;  where,  during  half  a  life- 
treatment  which  the  imprisoned  were  then  receiving;  being  deprived  of  all 
their  books,  and  kept  in  separate  rooms  ;  not  being  allowed  any  intercourse 
whatsoever,  except  at  table.  The  Bishop  of  Ely,  as  may  be  seen  from  a  letter 
to  the  Privy  Council  from  Carleton  and  Michel,  the  keepers  of  the  castle, 
'•halh  appointed  a  preacher  unto  the  recusants,  a  man  of  holy  life,  learned, 
and  able  to  give  an  account  of  his  doctrine  strongly."  —  Sfa^e  Papers, 
J)o/nest!c,  Queen  Elizabeth,  vol.  cxliii.  No.  17.  To  have  pestered  them  with 
the  modern  heresies,  over  and  above  their  imprisonments,  was  adding  insult 
to  injury. 

'  It  may  be  gathered  from  an  original  letter  still  remaining  in  the  Record 
Office,  written  by  a  Catholic  prisoner  in  the  Tower  in  1581,  that  the  bishop 
was  subject  to  an  insult  almost  incredible.  "Not  many  days  since,"  the 
account  runs,  "  an  infamous  woman,  the  tool  of  some  ruffians,  was  introduced 
into  the  chamber  of  the  Bishop  of  Lincoln  (who  remains  still  in  prison  at 
Wisbeach),  and  dared  in  the  most  shameless  way  to  solicit  to  sin  that  most 
lioiy  man,  worn  out  as  he  is  with  cruel  treatment.  When  the  old  man,  with 
all  ills  mis^ht,  endeavoured  to  drive  the  impure  beast  from  his  cell,' her  evil 
instigators,  who  awaited  the  result,  even  threatened  him  with  blows." — Slate 
Papers,  Donii'stic,  Elizabeth,  vol.  cxlix.  n.  61. 

-  "The  building,  which  covered  two  acres  of  land,  stood  in  the  midst  of 
four  other  acres,  at  the  boundary  of  which  was  a  strong  high  wall,  and  on 
the  outside  next  the  town  was  a  ditch  or  moat,  forty  feet  wide ;  and  there 
was  no  way  to  the  castle  but  by  a  drawbridge  in  the  west  front. 
The  great  tower  was  the  residence  of  the  constaJjle  or  governor.  Underneath 
were  dismal  dark  vaults  for  the  continement  of  prisoners,  which  made  this 
tower  sometimes  be  called  the  keep  or  dungeon.  In  this  building  was  the 
^reat  hall." — Historical  Account  of  the  Ancient  Tdon  and  Port  of  Wisbeach, 
by  William  Watson,  Esq.,  F.S.A.,  pp.  123-129.     Wisbeach,  1827. 

•'  P'ather  Weston  thus  writes  concerning  this  jirison  : — "When  we  reachetl 
it   \i.c.   Wisbeach  Castle]  we  were  divided   and   sent   into    separate    rooms, 


WISBEACII   CASTLE.  1 99 

time,  several  martyrs  and  confessors  of  the  faith  continued  to 
suffer  in  humiUty  and  patience,  waiting  for  the  breaking  of  a 
better  day,  doing  God's  will,  and  longing  for  their  promised 
crown.' 

wherein  we  lived  day  and  night  under  bolts  and  locks,  excepting  at  the  hours 
of  dinner  and  supper,  and  half  an  hour  before  and  after  our  meal,  when  we 
could  breathe  the  air  and  walk  about  a  little.  This  was  a  public  prison, 
common  to  all  the  thieves  and  criminals,  and  situated  within  the  enclosure  of 
the  bishop's  palace.  It  stood  upon  a  high  terrace,  and  water  filled  a  moat  all 
around  it.  Everything,  however,  at  that  time  was  ruinous  and  dilapidated, 
particularly  through  the  rapacity  and  avarice  of  the  heretical  prelates  ;  who, 
not  caring  for  posterity,  and  only  mindful  of  their  own  convenience,  had 
de=;poiled  the  building  of  its  best  material,  selling  the  lead  off  the  roof,  the 
beam*;,  the  iron,  and  the  glass,  and  thus  abandoning  the  other  parts  to  ruin 
and  decay." — Life  of  IVilliani  Weston,  p.  239.     London,  1875. 

^  The  Burials'  Register  contains  only  four  words — "John  Watson,  doctor, 
sepultus"  ;  and  in  this  entry  "John"  is  a  mistake  for  "Thomas."  There  \>i 
no  stone  to  mark  his  grave,  nor  any  memorial  whatsoever.  As  early  as  the 
year  1748,  the  Rev.  W.  Cole  carefully  searched  for  one,  but  in  vain. — See 
Cole's  ALSS.,  Brit.  Mus.,  vol.  xviii.  folio  90.  Dr.  Christopher  Wordsworth, 
sometime  Bishop  of  Lincoln,  courteously  informed  me  that  there  is  no  portrait 
of  his  illustrious  predecessor,  either  at  Riseholme  or  Lincoln. 


CHAPTER  VII. 

The  first  prisoner  sent  to  W'isbeach  Castle  for  refusing  to  adopt 
the  reforming  policy  was  John  Feckenham,  O.  S.B.,  the  last 
Abbot  of  Westminster.  He  was  a  prelate  of  great  learning,  of 
most  virtuous  life,  and  of  much  kindness  of  heart.  During 
Queen  Mary's  reign  he  is  reported^  to  have  frequently  befriended 
the  Lady  Elizabeth ;  but  when  the  latter  came  to  the  throne,  and 
he  found  that  she  contemplated  setting  up  a  new  religion,  and 
becoming  its  Supreme  Governess,  he  spoke  out  with  the  greatest 
plainness  of  language.  Notwithstanding  this,  it  is  said  that  at 
her  accession  she  felt  disposed  to  offer  him  the  vacant  Arch- 
bishopric of  Canterbury,  if  he  would  only  take  the  Oath  of 
Suj)remacy,  and  co-operate  with  her  and  her  advisers  in  making 
a  new  national  religion  ;  but  this  he  firmly  refused  to  do.  Soon 
after  this  he  had  been  sent  to  the  Tower;  then  he  was  placed  in 
the  custody  of  Home,  Bishop  of  Winchester  ;  subsequently  he 
was  sent  back  to  the  Tower  by  Elizabeth,  then  to  the  Marshalsea, 
and  at  last  to  ^V^isbeach,  where  he  died  in  the  twenty-seventh 
year  of  that  queen's  reign,  having  thus  been  a  prisoner  for 
conscience'  sake  during  the  long  period  of  more  than  a  quarter  of 
a  century.'^ 

Allusion  has  already  been  made  to  the  cruelties  practised  on 
such  prisoners.  One  of  the  most  daring  and  impudent  acts  of 
the  innovators  was  to  provide  a  minister  of  the  new  religion  to 
] (reach  at,  and  argue  with,  those  in  confinement  at  Wisbeach  ; 
and  then  make  these  poor  sufferers  pay  his  stipend  and  find  him 
in  food.  Bishop  Richard  Cocks,  apparently,  was  the  ingenious 
gentleman  who  devised  and  carried  out  this  brilliant  idea ;  but 
though  one  man  may  take  a  horse  to  the  trough,  twenty  cannot 

^  See  Anthony  a  Wood's  Atlieiue  Oxonicnsis,  vol.  i.  p.  222  ;  and  Sta/e 
Papeis,  Domestic,  Elizabeth,  vol.  cxxxi.  n.  48,  and  vol.  cxliii.  n.  17. 

*  The  sin  of  which,  in  the  eyes  of  Queen  Elizabeth's  Council,  this  noble 
confessor,  in  conjunction  with  Heath,  Watson,  and  Tunstall,  had  been 
guilty,  was  maintaining  the  independence  of  the  spiritualty  :  nothing  else. 
He  refused  to  give  to  Caesar  the  things  of  God. 

'•200 


THE   WORTHINGTONS   OF   WORTIIINGTOxV.  201 

make  it  imbibe  the  water,  and  so  in  practical  effect  this  beneficial 
scheme  fell  flat,  and  failed  of  its  purpose,  as  the  following  letter 
so  graphically  sets  forth  : — • 

"  The  Lord  Bishop  hath  appointed  a  preacher  unto  the 
recusants  —  a  man  of  holy  life,  learned,  and  able  to  give  an 
account  of  his  doctrine  strongly.  The  men  restrained,  before 
us  both  and  others,  have  been  called  divers  times  and  as  often 
required  to  hear  the  preacher,  and  abide  the  prayer;  but  they  all 
with  one  voice  generally,  and  after  that  every  man  particularly 
answering  for  himself,  denied  to  allow  either,  saying  that  as  they 
are  not  of  oiir  Church,  so  they  will  neither  hear,  pray,  nor  yet 
confer  with  any  of  us  of  any  matters  concerning  religion."^ 

Even  children  at  this  period  were  not  exempt  from  persecu- 
tion. Four  Lancashire  youths  of  birth  and  rank,  Worthingtons 
of  Worthington,  were  seized  and  sorely  tried,  with  a  view  of 
getting  them  to  betray  their  relatives  and  friends. ^  A  pursuivant, 
accompanied  by  the  under-sheriff  of  the  county  and  twenty 
javelin  men,  seized  them  at  the  house  of  their  friend.  Esquire 
Sankey  of  Great  Sankey,  near  Warrington,  on  February  12th, 
1584.  They  were  at  once  examined  as  to  the  whereabouts  of 
their  uncle.  Father  Thomas  AVorthington,  a  priest  whose  life  had 
been  marked  by  devotion  and  self-denial.  They  were  asked 
when  they  had  last  seen  him,  when  they  had  attended  mass,  and 
where  ;  but  little  information  was  obtained  from  them.  The  two 
eldest,  therefore  (neither  then  sixteen  years  of  age),  were  taken 
before  the  Bishop  of  Chester  and  the  Earl  of  Derby,  but  without 
any  result.  On  their  second  examination  the  two  younger  were 
likewise  brought  up  with  their  brothers.  One  of  the  former  was 
not  yet  twelve  years  of  age.  The  unusual  nature  of  the  proceed- 
ings attracted  a  crowd  interested  and  attentive.  It  appears  that 
on  the  appointed  examination  day  the  guards  had  intentionally 
kept  the  children  without  any  food  at  all  until  the  evening,  when 
they  were  plied  with  wine,  so  as  to  half  stupefy  them,  and  render 
them  possibly  more  talkative  and  probably  easier  to  be  dealt 
with  and  entrapped. 

One  of  them  at  once  complained  to  the  Commissioners  of  this 
treatment. 

"They  had  evidently  intended  to  deprive  me  of  my  mind  by 

'^George  Carleton  and  Humphrey  Michel  to  the  Privy  Council. — Slate 
Papers,  Domestic,  Elizabeth,  vol.  cxliii.  n.  17. 

-  The  account  in  the  text,  much  abbreviated,  is  taken  from  the  second 
part  of  the  Addenda  to  Bridgewater's  edition  of  John  Gibbons'  Coincrlatio 
Ecclesice  Cath.  in  Anglia,  etc.  Treves,  1594.  See  also  Slate  Papers,  Domestic, 
Elizabetii,  vol.  cxc.  n.  25,  dated  "June  12,  1586";  Prisoners  in  the  Gate 
House  ;  and  Strype's  Annals,  vol.  iii.  p.  420. 


202  THE   CHURCH    UNDER   QUEEN    ELIZABETH. 

g'ving  me  strong  drink  !  "  he  exclaimed  ;  "but  by  God's  goodness 
they  have  altogether  failed,  lor  my  mind  is  quite  clear,  though 
my  body  be  in  sore  pain.  I  am,  therefore,  unable  to  appear 
before  your  honours  as  I  should  do." 

They  were  all  examined,  however,  on  subjects  of  their  religion, 
and  every  endeavour  made  to  find  out  their  uncle's  whereabouts, 
and  to  make  them  betray  their  friends  and  criminate  themselves. 

Lord  Derby,  partly  by  threats  and  partly  by  promises,  having 
offered  to  make  the  eldest  youth  his  page  of  honour,  if  he  would 
only  consent  to  attend  the  new  services,  was  unable  to  obtain  the 
information  wanted,  or  to  effect  his  desired  object. 

Nor  was  the  bishop  more  succes'^ful.  Consequently  these  four 
children  were  at  once  imprisoned  in  Manchester,  and  told  that 
as  they  were  guilty  of  high  treason  they  would  be  duly  punished 
for  it.  An  officer  of  the  bishop.  Bull  by  name,  was  commissioned 
by  his  lordship  to  take  them  in  hand  at  once.  They  were  then 
confined  in  the  House  of  Correction.  So,  dragging  the  eldest 
out  of  bed  one  morning,  he  administered  to  him,  in  his  brothers' 
presence,  a  severe  and  cruel  flogging  with  several  ash  rods.  But 
this  was  of  no  avail ;  neither  he  nor  the  others,  as  they  declared, 
would  go  to  the  "services  of  the  Calvinists."  They  were  con- 
sequently taken  thither  and  to  sermons  by  force ;  but  this  policy 
only  sickened  them  more.  Neither  threats  nor  bribes  in  the 
long  run  sufficed ;  and  though  the  bishop  attempted  to  bribe 
them  to  conform,  he  utterly  failed.  They  were  true  to  their 
fathers'  faith ;  and  two  of  them,  it  appears,  went  abroad  ami 
were  subsequently  ordained. 

Prior  to  that  event,  however,  they  seem  to  have  been  again 
secured  by  the  authorities  in  London,  on  the  plea  that  they  were 
about  to  be  sent  abroad  by  their  relations  to  be  educated  and 
made  priests.  Their  uncle  was  taken  by  Topcliffe  at  Islington,^ 
who  reported  him  to  Burghley  and  the  Privy  Council  to  have 
been  eminently  "wilful,  perverse,  and  arrogant."  This,  of 
course,  was  the  character  given  to  all  who  were  resolute  in 
declining  to  co-operate  with  the  innovators, — as  regards  the 
upper  classes  at  that  period  only  a  considerable  minority. 

At  the  visitation  of  Corringham,  in  Lincolnshire,  on  the  8th 
of  April  1566,  three  altar-stones  had  been  taken  down,  two  of 
which  were  used  as  pavement  for  the  church,  and  the  other  was 
sold  to  Mr.  Topcliffe.  This  person,  it  appears,  is  the  "Richard 
Topcliffe"  just  referred  to,  who  so  frightfully  persecuted  the 
"recusants"  and  " seminary  priests."     He  belonged,  apparently, 

'  Thomas  Worthington  was  taken  at  the  house  of  Mr.  Richard  a  Wood  of 
Islington,  an  ancestor  of  the  celebrated  historian  of  the  University  of  Oxford. 


TOPCLIFFE    OF    LINCOLNSHIRE.  203 

to  an  old  family  of  the  country,^  and  had  himself  married  a 
daughter  of  Sir  Edward  Willoughby.  In  the  female  line  he  was 
descended  from  the  ancient  Yorkshire  families  of  Waterton  and 
Fairfax.  He  had  been  brought  up  a  Catholic,  and  had  not  only 
apostatised,  but  become  one  of  the  cruellest  and  most  shameful 
persecutors,  and  a  rack  master.  It  is  melancholy  enough  to  see 
the  "  new  men,"  ready  tools  of  the  authorities,  taking  an  active 
part  in  overthrowing  the  old  religion  ;  but  ignorance  and  fana- 
ticism often  go  hand  in  hand,  and  when  self-seeking  is  a  man's 
sole  aim,  little  good  ensues  ;  but  here  was  a  case  in  which  a 
Lincolnshire  gentleman  of  blood  and  family,  having  renounced 
the  faith  of  his  fathers,  became,  step  by  step,  the  supple  tool  of 
his  inferiors,  and  at  last  a  merciless,  degraded,  and  disgraced 
ruffian. 

Bishop  Cocks  of  Ely,  Berkeley  of  Bath,  and  Davies  of  St, 
David's,  had  died  in  1581  ;  Grindal,  Archbishop  of  Canterbury, 
two  years  afterwards;  Watson  of  Winchester  in  1584;  Barnes, 
Bishop  of  Durham,-  in  1587  ;  and  Sandys,  Archbishop  of  York, 
in  1588.  Thus  the  leading  and  more  active  innovators,  one  after 
another,  were  called  away  to  their  last  account.  The  persons 
who  succeeded  them  were,  as  a  rule,  singularly  commonplace 
in  their  characters.  The  single  theologian  of  the  Reformation- 
era,  John  Jewell,  had  not  made  any  great  impression  at  Salisbury, 
where  the  ordinary  religious  desolation,  so  current  generally,  was 
likewise  experienced. 

All  this  time  the  poor  complained  constantly  of  the  unjust 
manner  in  which  they  were  oppressed,  and  of  the  difficulty  m 

^  English  Church  Furniluye,  e/c,  edited  by  E.  Peacock,  F.S.A.,  p.  62. 
London,  1866. 

■^  The  following  account  of  this  man,  who  was  consecrated  Suffragan 
Bishop  of  Nottingham  by  Thomas  Young,  Archbishop  of  York,  on  March  9, 
1567,  translated  to  Carlisle  in  1570,  and  to  Durham  in  1577,  and  died  August 
24th,  1587,  is  given  by  a  contemporary: — "Richard  Barnes,  an  apostata 
priest,  tuice  married,  a  common  drunkard,  Bishop  of  Durham,  accustomed 
to  drink  seven  times  every  meal,  and  as  many  between  meals,  every  draught 
containing  a  pint  ;  and  in  his  Public  Consistory  to  offenders,  accustomed  to 
use  most  obscene  and  filthy  words,  fell  at  length  with  intemperance  into  a 
fever,  and  so  into  a  frenzy.  One  night  as  he  was  about  to  rise  out  of  his 
bed,  he  fell  out  of  his  bed,  and  was  like  to  have  broken  his  neck  ;  but  for 
that  time  and  with  great  difficulty  recovered.  Soon  after,  his  disease  brought 
him  to  his  last  exigent,  when,  as  past  speech,  Toby  Matthew,  willing  him 
in  sign  of  his  faith  to  hold  up  his  hands,  he  always  held  his  fingers  to  his 
mouth,  which  one,  Ralph  Hilton,  his  base  [born]  son,  marking  [it]  swore, 
and  said  Mr.  Dean  did  mistake  his  father,  for  that  his  finger  to  his  mouth 
did  desire  nothing  but  drink.  And  so  de^perately  he  died,  and  was  buried 
the  next  night  at  midnight." — An  Ajuioit  Editor s  Note-Book,  MS.,  Stony- 
hur^L  College. 


204  THE   CHURCH    UNDER   QUEEN    ELIZABETH. 

keeping  body  and  soul  together.  Petty  tyranny  amongst  in- 
terior officials  was  rampant,  for  which,  too  frequently,  there  was 
neither  remedy  nor  redress.  Anciently  the  great  nobles  had 
stood  between  the  Crown  and  the  people  ;  so  that  while  the 
former  could  not  oppress  those  under  them,  the  latter  were  in 
no  great  danger  of  being  oppressed,  for  their  local  lord  was  their 
patron,  friend,  and  protector.  The  natural  and  proper  rights 
of  all  classes  were  thus  safe  from  the  power  of  any  single 
passionate  or  wayward  ruler.  •  For  generations  the  influence 
and  independence  of  the  greater  noblemen,  supported  by  their 
considerable  wealth  arising  from  broad  lands ;  and  the  personal 
devotion  of  their  faithful  retainers,  had  always  been  a  valuable 
check  upon  regal  tyranny.  Dukes  and  earls  in  their  own 
localities  had  long  been  as  little  kings.  Standing  alone,  they 
were  strong ;  when  in  combination  with  others,  they  were 
stronger.  When,  however,  it  was  seen  how  under  Henry  VIII. 
such  exalted  and  powerful  noblemen  had  been  so  easily  ruined 
and  brought  to  the  block  by  this  tyrant,  the  nobility  in  general, 
as  a  class  or  "estate,"  began  to  lose  their  ancient  legitimate 
prestige ;  the  local  poor  their  natural  protectors ;  and  thus 
regal  tyranny,^  fostered  by  a  few  needy  adventurers  without 
either  conscience  or  principle,  became  practically  unchecked 
and  rampant  in  their  revolutionary  changes,  arbitrary  deeds,  and 
cruel  punishments. 

Two  boys  of  the  town  of  Wisbeach,  born  of  poor  parents, 
likewise  suffered,  Thomas  and  George  Fisher  by  name.  They 
had  been  admitted  to  the  castle  to  attend  upon  the  prisoners  as 
servitors.  Naturally  clever  and  observant,  by  degrees  tliey  each 
became  greatly  influenced  by  what  they  heard  and  saw.  The 
old  religion,  as  so  many  persons  quietly  and  privately  main- 
tained, was  a  strong  and  remarkable  contrast  to  the  new,  and 
though  these  youths  had  been  brought  up  under  the  latter,  in 
no  long  time  they  became  sincerelv  attached  to  the  former ;  and, 
at  their  own  request,  were  carefully  instructed  in  its  tenets  and 

^  As  Canon  Barry  remarked  in  his  recent  Lcdiircs  on  the  Kcfonnalion  : — 
"  From  1485  onwards  the  Royal  power  in  Entjland  grachially  became  despotic 
under  torm  of  law.  The  Tudor  despotism  was  a  despotism  exercised  as  it 
were  with  the  consent  of  the  people.  They  began  to  look  at  the  king  as 
having  a  sacred  character  ;  they  accepted  him  as  a  centre  of  national  uidiy, 
and  came  to  reverence  him  as  '  the  Lord's  anointed.'  The  Royal  jiower 
became  a  very  formidable  thing.  The  same  thing  occurred  in  other  parts 
of  Europe,  especially  in  France,  Germany,  and  Spain.  Monarchial  power 
was  on  the  increase,  and  rallied  round  it  a  strong  national  sjirit  everywhere. 
As  yet  it  was  England  in  alliance  with  the  papal  power,  or  observing  an 
armed  neutrality.      But  a  conflict  was  at  any  moment  likely."     (A.U.  1879.) 


THOMAS   AND   GEORGE   FISHER.  20$ 

duties.  This  being  reported  to  the  governor,  offended  him 
greatly,  who,  on  a  certain  day  when  a  sermon  was  to  be  preached 
in  the  parish  church  "  by  a  painful  and  weighty  minister,"  com- 
manded them  both,  as  a  test,  to  be  present  at  its  delivery. 
But,  in  respectful  language,  they  asked  to  be  excused.  They 
would  rather  not  go.  They  had  recently  learned  what  the 
religion  of  their  fathers  was,  and,  if  they  might  be  allowed  to 
make  choice,  they  preferred  it  to  that  now  set  up.  The 
governor  became  furious.  Was  ever  such  insolence  and  heresy 
known,  and  from  two  boyish  knaves?  As  a  punishment  they 
were  stripped  to  the  waist,  and  publicly  flogged  in  the  market- 
place, in  the  presence  of  a  large  concourse  of  people,  and  then 
put  into  irons.  Being  subsequently  set  free,  the  eldest  escaped 
abroad,  and  became  a  student  at  the  college  at  Douay.  But 
the  younger,  on  a  certain  occasion,  was  found  serving  one  of 
the  old  priests  at  mass,  and  was  imprisoned  in  company  with 
some  of  the  worst  and  most  depraved  criminals.  At  length  he 
was  brought  to  trial,  accused  of  being  an  ignorant  recusant,  and 
upbraided  by  the  magistrates  for  being  so  fooHsh  and  for  bringing 
so  much  misery  upon  himself  and  his  parents. 

"It  is  true  that  I  am  very  ignorant  about  many  things,"  he 
replied ;  "  but  of  this  one  thing  I  am  quite  certain,  notwith- 
standing my  ignorance,  that  the  Catholic  faith  is  the  only 
faith  for  salvation,  and  that  it  is  a  deal  older,  by  many  cen- 
turies, than  your  new  religion." 

"  How  can  you,  an  ignorant  boy,  know  which  is  the  oldest 
religion,  or  anything  about  it?"  asked  the  magistrate. 

"Why,  in  this  way,  sir,"  the  youth  replied;  "your  own 
chroniclers,  your  own  ministers,  admit  as  much.  Holinshed, 
who  must  have  known,  says  so." 

The  magistrate  denied  that  the  writer  in  question  had  admitted 
anything  of  the  sort,  replying  :  "You  lie,  sirrah  !" 

Upon  this  the  youth  triumphantly  drew  out  from  his  breast- 
pocket a  single  leaf  of  the  "Chronicles"  of  Holinshed,  and 
presented  it  to  the  official. 

It  contained  a  description  of  the  coming  hither  of  St. 
Augustine,  with  litanies.  Catholic  prayers,  silver  cross,  and 
pictured  banner,  and  had  been  given  to  him  by  one  of  the 
prisoners  at  Wisbeach,  as  evidence  of  the  antiquity  of  the  old 
religion — a  leaf  which  might  be  judiciously  produced  when  it 
was  required.  The  youth  himself,  being  poor  and  unable  to  pay 
fines,  appears  to  have  been  dismissed  with  a  warning. 

In  the  year  1576  the  Commons  had  petitioned  the  queen  "to 
amend  the  discipline  of  the  Church,'    ^vhich  had  fallen  into  a 


2o5         THE   CHURCH    UNDER   QUEEN    ELIZABETH. 

state  of  great  uncertainty  and  laxness.  In  fact,  nothing  could 
well  have  been  worse  than  it  was.  l"he  disorganisation  in  every 
diocese  was  complete  and  perfect.  P^verybody  wished  to 
govern,  and  declined  to  obey.  Presbyters  looked  upon  them- 
selves as  rulers,  called  synods,  appointed  fast-days,  and  ordained 
other  presbyters.^  In  fact,  every  one  did  as  he  liked.  The 
ecclesiastical  courts  were  sinks  of  jobbery  and  iniquity,  farmed 
by  persons  who  paid  for  their  offices, — handing  over  a  yearly 
sum  to  the  authorities  who  had  let  them  out  to  the  highest 
bidder, — and  then  worked  them  to  their  own  profit  and  ad- 
vantage. 

The  queen,  in  reply  to  the  petition,  informed  tho.se  who  had 
signed  it  that  the  bishops  had  been  directed  to  examine  the 
matter,  and  that  if  they  failed  to  do  their  duty  in  a  reasonable 
])eriod  she  would  speedily  supply  the  want  and  rectify  the  evil 
ijy  her  own  spiritual  supremacy.     But  nothing  had  been  done. 

On  one  occasion,  in  1577, — to  pass  from  the  ailments  of  the 
ministers  to  those  of  the  Supreme  Governess, — the  queen  suffered 
so  acutely  from  toothache  that  she  believed  herself  to  have  been 
bewitched.  This  conviction  grew  in  force  from  the  fact  that 
some  representations  or  images  of  Her  Majesty,  Cecil,  and 
Walsingham  had  been  recently  found  (or  were  said  to  have 
been  found)  concealed  in  the  house  of  an  ancient  priest  who 
sojourned  at  Islington ;  while  Dr.  Dee's  personal  tuition  had 
made  her  singularly  superstitious.  This  poor  innocent  priest 
was  believed  to  have  been  practising  "  malign  magic " ;  for  the 
ordinary  royal  physicians,  instead  of  relieving  their  patient, 
entered  into  a  violent  controversy  as  to  what  potions  ought  to 
l)e  given,  and  ])ractically  did  nothing.  Perhaps  these  physicians 
were  also  bewitched.  Her  Majesty's  pains  and  aches  by  con- 
sequence continued,  and  even  grew  in  violence,  so  that  the  Lords 
of  the  Council  thought  it  their  duty  to  interfere  and  take  the 
matter  in  hand.  A  foreign  doctor,  Fenatus  by  name,  had  been 
highly  recommended  to  them  by  some  of  the  Protestant  exiles  ; 
but  the  queen  mistrusted  all  foreigners,  and  Walsingham  feared 
the  man  might  turn  out  to  be  "possibly  a  Jew  or  even  a  Papist." 
So  they  bade  him  write  a  prescription  without  even  .seeing  the 
royal    patient.       This,    of  course,    was    a    difficult    undertaking. 

^  Independent  synods  had  been  set  up  to  which  only  the  "elect"  were 
summoned  ;  in  various  counties,  clas'^es  and  gatherings  for  tlie  exposition  of 
Scripture  and  prayer  had  been  formed;  "ordination,"  so-called,  by  ]:>rcsby- 
ters  had  l)een  given  to  persons  who  were  supposed  to  own  special  gifts  of 
speecli  ;  and  unauthorised  fast-days  «ere  appointed,  wholly  independent  of 
the  (lueen's  bishops. —See  Strype's  Life  of  Whitgift,  vol.  lii.  pp.  244  256, 
and  the  "Articles"  exhibited  against  Thomas  Canwrighi. 


THE   queen's   progresses   AND   VISITATIONS.       20/ 

Howsoever,  after  having  penned  a  long  Latin  letter,  very  devout, 
but  rather  wordy,  explaining  his  own  entire  unworthiness  to  treat 
so  mighty  a  queen  for  the  toothache,  he  "  drew  a  bow  at  a 
venture,"  and  reasonably  enough  recommended  a  fomentation  of 
narcotic  herbs,  which,  however,  did  no  good  at  all.  The  alter- 
native which  he  had  wisely  suggested,  and  which  certainly  went 
to  the  root  of  the  matter,  was  to  have  the  tooth  drawn.  But  to 
this  the  queen  would  not  submit.  She  could  not  abide  the  pain. 
Though  in  her  name  the  rack  and  the  little-ease  were  in  constant 
use  on  "  seminaries,"  yet  she  herself  quaked  and  sickened  at  the 
very  sight  of  a  steel  forceps.  Her  heart,  as  it  seemed,  came  up 
into  her  mouth.  However,  in  order  to  brace  up  her  nerves, 
Aylmer,  Bishop  of  London,  at  the  Council-board,  told  her  that 
"although  he  was  an  old  man  and  had  not  many  teeth  to  spare, 
she  could  see  a  practical  experiment  upon  himself,  if  she  thought 
well,"  and  forthwith  he  bade  the  surgeon  take  out  one  of  his  own 
teeth  in  the  queen's  presence.  This  having  been  done  "without 
much  blooding  and  no  cries,"  the  queen,  in  turn,  timorously 
submitted  to  a  like  operation,  and  so  was  relieved.  The  "  witch- 
craft "  was  thus  defeated. 

Year  by  year  throughout  her  reign,  the  queen,  as  a  matter  of 
pleasure  and  recreation,  visited  different  parts  of  the  country,  and 
was  received  with  great  state  and  often  with  extravagant  pomp 
by  the  nobility  and  gentry.  Many  of  them  seriously  crippled 
themselves  by  the  outlay  necessary  for  such  entertainments,  and 
greatly  impoverished  their  estates  in  so  receiving  her.  She  came 
with  her  Court  and  servants,  whom  her  chief  allies  and  gracious 
people  of  rank  were  likewise  expected  to  entertain ;  and  she 
always  looked  for  special  amusements, — masques,  bear-baiting, 
tiresome  speeches  full  of  flattery,  morris-dancing,  hunting,  and 
hawking.  Sometimes  no  less  than  two  hundred  servants 
accompanied  her.  Lord  Leicester  entertained  her  at  Kenilworth  ; 
Sir  Henry  Lee  at  Quarrendon,  near  Aylesbury ;  and  from  time 
to  time  the  chief  nobility  and  gentlepeople  of  every  county. 
When  she  left  their  houses,  she  expected  to  receive  presents  of 
money,  jewellery,  and  other  valuable  and  acceptable  gifts.  The 
queen  on  one  occasion  took  Berkeley  Castle  in  her  progress. 
During  her  stay  no  less  than  twenty-seven  stags  of  a  rare  race  of 
red  deer  were  killed,  while  many  others  were  "stolen  and 
havocked,"  which  so  annoyed  Lord  Berkeley  that  he  actually 
there  and  then  disparked  the  place.  The  queen,  on  hearing  of 
this,  counselled  his  lordship  to  be  more  prudent  in  what  he  said 
and  did  in  the  future  ;  informing  him  that  Lord  Leicester  liked 
the  situation   of  his  family  castle  very  much,  and  hinted  that, 


20S  THE   CHURCH    UNDER   QUEEN    ELIZABETH. 

if  he  was  not  more  careful,  he  might  lose  it.  The  morality 
of  such  a  contemplated  robbery  was  quite  in  accordance  with 
this  autocratic  woman's  morality  in  general. 

At  Euston,  in  Norfolk,  the  queen  was  most  hospitably  enter- 
tained by  a  young  esquire  named  Edward  Rookwood  (who  had 
lately  been  married),  at  his  pleasant  mansion  near  Thetford,  in 
August  of  the  year  1578.  His  residence  was  of  no  great  size, 
and,  in  selecting  it  as  a  resting-place,  the  queen  passed  over 
several  large  mansions  near.  This  may  have  been  for  a  purpose. 
When  Her  Majesty  was  about  to  leave,  she,  of  course,  thanked 
Rookwood  for  his  reception  of  her — she  could  have  done  nothing 
less — and  gave  him  her  hand  to  kiss.  But  the  Earl  of  Sussex, 
Her  Majesty's  Chamberlain,  having  learnt  that  he  had  been 
excommunicated  for  "papistrie,"  called  him  forward  and  rated 
him  with  bitterness  and  violence.^  His  lordship  asked  Rookwood 
how  he  who,  because  of  his  religion,  was  wholly  unfit  to  accom- 
pany any  Christian  person,  and  was  fitter  to  be  put  into  a  pair 
of  stocks,  had  dared  to  come  into  the  queen's  "  reall  presence." 
Rookwood  was  then  ordered  out  of  the  room,  and  at  Norwich 
was  committed  to  prison.  An  oaken  image  of  the  Blessed  Virgin, 
which  had  been  taken  down  from  the  lady-altar  of  a  neighbouring 
church,  and  had  been  carefully  secreted  in  a  hay-loft,  was  acci- 
dentally discovered  by  some  of  the  Court  servants.  The  queen 
expressed  her  horror  at  the  "  sight  of  such  a  wicked  idol  "  ■  which 

1  Richard  Topcliffe,  the  rack  master  and  official  torturer,  has  left  a  record 
of  these  events,  the  spelling  of  which  I  have  ventured  to  put  into  modern 
shape: — "This  Rooliwood  is  a  Papist  of  kind  newly  crept  out  of  his  late 
wardship.  Her  Majesty,  by  some  means  I  know  not,  was  lodged  at  his 
house,  Euston,  far  unmeet  for  Her  Highness,  but  fitter  for  the  blackguard  ; 
nevertheless  (the  gentleman  brought  into  Her  Majesty's  presence  by  like 
device),  Her  Excellent  Majesty  gave  to  Rookwood  ordinary  thanks  for  his 
bad  house,  and  her  fair  hand  to  kiss  ;  after  which  it  was  braved  at.  But  my 
Lord  Chamljcrlain  nobly  and  gravely  understanding  that  Rookwood  was 
excommunicatetl  for  papistry  called  him  before  him  ;  demanded  of  him  how 
he  durst  to  attempt  her  real  ])resence,  he  inifit  to  accompany  any  Christian 
person  ;  forthwith  said  he  was  fitter  for  a  pair  of  stocks,  commanded  him  out 
of  the  Court,  and  yet  to  attend  her  Council's  pleasure  ;  and  at  Norwich  he  was 
committed.  And  to  decypher  the  gentleman  to  the  full  (a  piece  of  plate 
being  missed  in  the  Court,  and  searched  for  in  his  hay-house),  in  the  hay-rick 
such  an  image  of  Our  Lady  was  there  found  as  for  greatness,  for  gayness,  and 
workmanship  I  did  never  see  a  match  ;  and  after  a  sort  of  country  dance 
ended  in  Her  Majesty's  sight,  the  idol  was  set  behind  the  people  who  avoided. 
She  rather  seemed  a  beast  raised  upon  a  sudden  from  hell  by  conjuring,  than 
the  picture  for  whom  it  had  been  so  often  and  long  abused.  Her  RIajesty 
commanded  it  to  the  fire,  which  in  her  sight  by  the  country  folks  was  quickly 
done,  to  her  content,  and  mispeakal)le  joy  of  every  one,  but  some  one  or  two 
who  had  sucked  of  the  idol's  poisoned  milk." — Lodge,  vol.  ii.  p.  1S6. 


THE   OLD   PARISH   CHURCHES.  209 

was  burnt  on  the  village  green  in  her  presence  and  with  her 
marked  approbation. 

As  she  journeyed  from  place  to  place,  every  endeavour  was 
made  to  keep  the  poor,  the  poverty-stricken,  and  the  diseased 
out  of  her  sight.  If  they  came  too  near  her  moving  retinue, 
they  were  summarily  punished  with  great  and  sharp  severity.  It 
was  often  her  custom,  however,  to  speak  condescendingly  and 
freely  with  her  people,  from  whom  by  close  questioning  and 
most  pertinent  inquiries — having  beckoned  them  to  her  presence 
— she  frequently  found  out  the  true  state  of  the  locality.  The 
old  religious  houses  were  in  ruins,  their  lands  ill  cultivated. 
Beggars  abounded,  and  so  infested  some  parts  of  the  country — 
Bernewode  Forest  in  Buckinghamshire,  and  that  of  Charnwode 
in  Leicestershire,  for  example — that  travelling  was  dangerous. 
Moreover,  the  churches  ^  everywhere,  not  only  all  but  empty 
or  ill-attended  and  utterly  uncared  for,  were  going  steadily  to 
ruin. 

Anciently,  as  no  one  can  deny,  the  parish  church  was  looked 
upon  with  affection  as  the  common  home  of  all.  By  right  of  the 
new  birth  at  the  font,  every  one  was  equal  in  the  sight  of  God 
when  kneeling  at  mass,  or  worshipping  at  evensong,  whether 
knight  or  knave,  earl  or  husbandman.  Low  and  squat  were  the 
oak-bound  cottages  of  wattle'^  and  thatch  which  clustered  to- 
gether picturesquely  in  remote  spots  round  spire  or  tower ;  and, 
sheltered  by  ancient  trees,  were  the  humble  but  well-loved  homes 
of  a  people  blessed  in  the  natural  order,  and  marvellously  sancti- 
fied by  gifts  of  grace.  But  there  was  one  building  in  every  such 
village,  of  which,  howsoever  simple  in  itself,  the  form  and  outline 
were  the  seemliest  for  its  sacred  purpose  that  mind  could  plan  or 
local  hand  design.  Of  it,  the  stones  had  been  reverently  hewn 
and  chiselled,  the  window  tracery  artfully  drawn  out  and  carved, 
the  roof  of  oak,  the  font  and  altar  made  of  the  best  that  could  be 
gotten,  and  duly  blessed  in  God's  Holy  Name.  The  church  was 
the  chief  building  both  of  town  and  village.  In  such  humble 
temples  the  glowing  prophecies  of  an  elder  dispensation  had 
their  literal  fulfilment ;  for  while  the  pine-tree  and  the  box-tree 

^  "The  parish  churches  themselves — those  amazing  monuments  of  early- 
piety,  built  by  men  who  themselves  lived  in  clay  hovels,  while  they  lavished 
their  taste,  their  labour,  and  their  wealth  on  'the  House  of  God' — were 
still  dissolving  in  ruin." — History  of  England,  by  J.  A.  Froude,  Reign  of 
Elizabeth,  vol.  ii.  p.  93. 

-  "Wattle,"  a  composition  of  mortar,  mud,  and  straw,  of  which  cottage 
walls  in  Elizabeth's  time  were  commonly  built.  In  numbers  of  villages  at 
the  present  day  a  similar  material  is  largely  used,  and  in  some  parts  still  bears 
the  same  name.     In  other  parts,  it  is  termed  "watchyt." 

O 


210         THE   CHURCH    UNDER   QUEEN    ELIZABETH. 

beautified  the  place  of  God's  sanctuary,  there,  too,  the  realities  of 
the  gospel  perfectly  fulfilled  the  ancient  types  of  the  law.  The 
daily  sacrifice  was  ever  offered,  both  for  quick  and  dead.  The 
Lamb  of  God  took  away  the  sins  of  the  world. 

Day  by  day  and  week  by  week  the  people  thus  so  abundantly 
blessed  came  to  worship.  They  were  all  of  one  faith  and  one 
mind.  Year  by  year  children  were  born  and  new  born,  young 
men  and  maidens  were  united  in  marriage,  the  sick  were  anointed, 
the  suffering  cared  for ;  and  in  due  course  the  graveyard,  across 
which  the  shadow  of  tower  or  spire  crept  slowly,  received  the 
bodies  of  those  who  had  done  their  work  and  run  their  race, 
and,  sleeping  in  Christ,  were  there  laid  up  for  the  resurrection 
morning. 

When  these  poor  and  humble  folks  died,  they  seldom  forgot 
the  church  or  its  needs,  but  by  testamentary  disposition  directly 
evidenced  their  faith  and  charity.^  Even  the  husbandman  often 
bequeathed  something  towards  maintaining  the  lamp  before  the 
rood,  over  and  above  the  sum  apportioned  for  his  own  mortuary 
mass  and  month's-mind.  Kneeling,  from  time  to  time,  before 
the  outstretched  arms  of  his  dying  Redeemer,  he  had  learnt, 
more  exactly  than  sermon  could  ever  inform  him,  of  the  deep 
meaning  of  those  simple  words  of  the  belief — -"Jesus  Christ  was 
crucified  " — and  of  his  merciful  Lord's  undying  love.  Those  in 
the  ranks  of  yeomen  or  merchants  often  gave,  in  addition,  six 
shillings  and  eightpence,  or  thirteen  shillings  and  fourpence,  for 
the  church,  a  suit  of  vestments  or  silver /rt-.v  for  some  special  altar, 
twelve  or  twenty  pounds  of  wax  for  the  choir  lights  or  Paschal 
taper,  and  always  a  settled  sum  for  funeral  doles  to  their  poorer 
neighbours.  No  one  went  to  an  open  grave  without  saying  a 
prayer  for  the  dead  person's  soul.  The  rich  from  moated 
mansion  or  crenelated  castle  gave  in  proportion  to  their 
abundance  ;  so  that  the  treasures  of  the  Lord's  House,  even  in 
the  poorest  villages  steadily  increasing,  were  both  worthy  of  the 
respective  givers  and  of  the  object. 

But  at  the  time  at  which  Queen  Elizabeth  made  her  progresses 
throughout  the  land  all  this  had  been  changed,  and  so  changed 
that  men  marvelled  how  such  a  radical  and  startling  change 
could  have  been  accomplished  in  little  more  than  a  single 
generation. 

Sometimes  unjust   persecution    works    its    own   cure.     Here, 

'  Having  been  recently  permitted  to  examine  at  leisure  the  original  MS. 
wills  of  certain  parts  of  Oxfortlshire  and  Buckinghamshire,  the  author,  who 
read  portions  of  several  hundreds,  from  the  year  1530  downwards,  is  confident 
of  the  accuracy  of  his  statements  in  the  text. 


REMEDIES   FOR   THE   RESTRAINED.  211 

however,  it  had  been  so  systematic,  relentless,^  and  determined 
that  most  of  those  who  had  stood  forward  to  resist  innovation — 
homeless,  ruined,  and  outlawed  —  were  swept  away  by  the 
unchecked  tide  of  change,  which,  so  to  speak,  had  flooded  and 
overwhelmed  the  land. 

In  the  year  1585,  no  less  than  seventy-two  priests  were 
banished  ;  while  from  a  calculation  made  from  various  returns 
to  the  Privy  Council  of  certain  dioceses,  there  could  not  have 
been  less  than  four  hundred  and  fifty  about  that  period  still  in 
prison.-  What  to  do  v/ith  them  greatly  puzzled  the  authorities. 
Some  one,  evidently  a  person  of  wisdom  and  foresight,  had 
prepared  a  written  suggestion  which  was  no  doubt  read,  and 
which,  still  preserved  amongst  the  State  papers,  is  headed  "The 
Means  to  Stay  the  Declining  in  Religion."     It  stands  thus  :— 

'■'■  Remedies  for  the  Restrained. — The  execution  of  them,  as 
experience  hath  showed,  in  respect  of  their  constancy  (or  rather 
obstinacy)  moveth   many  to  compassion,  and  draweth  some  to 

^  "  Many  Catholics  have  fled  the  realm  ;  others  live  in  obscure,  unknown 
places  by  contrary  names.  Some  commend  themselves  prisoners  to  noblemen, 
whereof  one  so  prisoner,  his  patience,  demeanour,  and  purity  of  life  were 
such  that  the  lady  of  the  said  house  said  to  some  secret  friends  of  hers,  '  If 
all  Papists  lived  so  well  as  my  lord's  prisoner  did,  Protestants  must  needs  be 
in  an  ill  state  towards  God.'  " — An  Ancient  £dit<07- s  Note-Bock,  JVIS.,  Stony- 
hurst  College. 

^  See,  amongst  other  documents.  State  I'apers,  Domestic,  Elizabeth,  vol. 
clxxviii.  n.  72  ;  vol.  cxc.  n.  44  ;  vol.  cxciii.  n.  67  ;  vol.  cxcix.  n.  15  ;  and 
vol.  ccii.  n.  61,  etc.  etc.  What  these  prisons  were  has  been  most  forcibly 
stated  by  Canon  Raine  of  York  : — "  It  is  impossible  to  speak  in  terms  of  too 
strong  reprobation  of  the  state  of  the  northern  prisons  in  the  seventeenth 
century,  and  of  the  conduct  of  their  keepers.  They  were  dens  of  iniquity  and 
horror,  in  which  men  and  women  herded  together  indiscriminately.  .  .  .  Some 
of  them  had  no  light  and  no  ventilation  ;  several  were  partly  under  water  when- 
ever there  was  a  flood.  The  number  of  prisoners  who  died  in  gaol  during 
this  century  is  positively  startling.  And  how  could  they  live  in  such  places 
where  they  were  treated  worse  than  savages  themselves?  The  ordinary 
conveniences  and  necessaries  of  life  were  denied  to  them.  They  were  at  the 
mercy  of  the  gaolers  for  their  food  and  for  everything  they  possessed.  They 
had  the  meanest  fare  at  the  most  exorbitant  price.  If  they  resisted,  there 
were  irons  and  screws  that  compelled  them  to  be  silent.  There  were  also 
the  greatest  inequality  and  injustice  in  the  treatment  of  the  prisoners.  Those 
that  had  money  had  many  indulgences.  They  were  allowed  to  go  to  places 
of  amusement  without  the  walls  of  the  gaol,  and  some  were  even  permitted 
to  lodge  beyond  the  precincts,  suljected  only  to  some  trifling  surveillance. 
Peter  Prison  in  York  and  the  hold  in  Ousebridge  were  a  disgrace  to  any 
civilised  country.  The  cells  in  the  latter  place  would  almost  have  rivalled 
the  notorious  Black  Hole.  Air,  light,  and  ventilation  were  absent,  and  the 
waters  of  the  river  rushed  in  when  they  were  above  their  usual  level." — 
Depositions  froui  the  Castle  of  York  relatinf;  to  Offences  committed  in  the 
Aorthern  Counties,  etc.,  Surtees'  Society  Publications,  A.D.  1861. 


212  THE   CHURCH    UNDER   QUEEN    ELIZABETH. 

affect  their  religion,  upon  conceit  that  such  an  extraordinary 
contempt  of  death  cannot  but  proceed  from  above ;  whereby- 
many  have  fallen  away. 

"  And,  therefore,  it  is  a  convenient  thing  to  be  considered 
whether  it  were  not  convenient  that  some  other  remedy  were  put 
in  execution.  And  in  case  the  execution  of  them  shall  not  be 
thought  the  best  course,  then  it  is  to  be  considered  what  other 
way  were  fit  to  be  held  with  them. 

"  There  are  of  these  seminaries  two  sorts,  some  learned  and 
politic  withal,  and  of  great  persuasion ;  others  simple,  having 
neither  zeal,  wit,  nor  learning. 

"  For  the  first,  they  are  to  be  sent  to  Wisbech,  or  some  such- 
like place,  where  they  may  be  under  honest  keeping,  and  be 
restrained  from  access  and  intelligence;  for  that  being  banished, 
they  might  do  a  great  deal  of  harm. 

"  For  the  second,  they  may  be  banished,  as  others  before,  upon 
penalty  to  be  executed  if  they  return. 

"Such  as  were  banished  and  are  returned  are  to  be  presently 
executed."  1 

This  document,  by  whomsoever  written,  was  thought  to  be  of  so 
much  importance,  and  of  such  practical  value  that,  as  Sir  Francis 
Walsingham  wrote  to  his  ally  and  friend  Phillipps,  its  suggestions 
were  exactly  adopted  by  the  Council.     Here  is  the  letter  - : — 

"  My  lords  do  mean  to  take  order  with  the  seminary  priests  by 
banishment  of  some,  executing  of  others,  and  by  committing  the 
rest  to  Wisbech,  or  some  such-like  place,  under  some  honest 
keeper.  I  have  thought  good  to  send  you  a  register  of  their 
names ;  to  the  end  you  may  confer  with  the  party  you  wot  of, 
and  to  desire  him  to  set  down  their  intentions  to  do  harm  in 
their  several  kinds. 

"  I  take  it  there  will  be  found  very  few  of  them  fit  to  do  good. 
And  so  I  commit  you  to  God.  At  Barnes,  the  25th  December 
1586. — Your  loving  Friend,  Fra.  Walsingham." 

In  what  way  "order  was  taken"  may  be  learnt  with  exactness 

^  Slate  Papers,  Domestic,  Elizabeth,  vol.  cxcv.  n.  114.  The  number  of 
poor  recusants  was  so  great  that  at  one  sessions  in  Hampshire  no  less  than 
four  hundred  were  presented  as  ofi'enders  against  the  law  ;  while  in  the  north- 
west county  of  Lancaster  six  hundred  were  presented  (see  Stryiie's  Annals, 
vol.  iii.  p.  478,  Appendix  98).  Thomas  Cowper,  Bishop  of  Winchester 
(a.d.  1584),  suggested  to  the  Council  that  one  or  two  hundred  "  lustie  men 
well  able  to  labour"  might  be  sent  to  Flanders  as  pioneers  and  workmen  for 
the  army  {Ibid.  169^. 

-  Cotton  MSS.,  Brit.  ^Llseu^■l,  Caligula,  C.  ix.  f.  566. 


TORTURES   OF   THE   ANCIENT   CLERGY.  21 3 

from  the  following  letter,^  preserved  amongst  the  State  papers, 
evidently  from  the  pen  of  one  who  was  extremely  well  informed  : — 

"  They  lately  threatened  Mr.  Sherwin,  a  priest,  with  renewed 
tortures,  and  then  to  execute  him  and  his  companions ;  but  he, 
preferring  a  present  death  to  longer  life,  was  not  at  all  dismayed 
by  their  threats. 

"  We  shall,  I  hope,  very  shortly  learn  what  will  become  of  us. 
We  all  indeed  greatly  desire  to  pay  the  debt  of  Nature  at  once, 
rather  than  to  languish  on  by  a  daily  death.  However,  there  is 
no  one  here  who  does  not  earnestly  pray  our  Lord  Jesus  Christ 
to  grant  His  aid,  whereby  to  render  us  worthy  to  suffer  for  His 
glory  all  torments  and  tortures,  nay,  even  death  itself,  otherwise 
so  bitter  to  Nature,  rather  than  to  offend  the  Divine  Majesty  in 
the  least  degree  contrary  to  each  one's  conscience. 

"  It  is,  I  think,  patent  and  a  known  fact  to  many,  that  some  of 
our  afflicted  ones  have  endured  the  most  terrible  tortures,  than 
which,  on  account  of  their  excessive  torments,  death  itself  is  far 
preferable,  constantly  and  willingly  ere  they  would  consent  to  the 
most  abominable  crime  {i.e.  apostacy).  Of  which  things  there 
are  certain  living  witnesses,  especially  Luke  Kirby  and  Thomas 
Cottam,  two  venerable  priests,  who  were  subjected  to  a  certain 
iron  instrument  of  torture  called  in  English  the  'Scavenger's 
Daughter,'  enduring  this  most  bitter  torture  for  an  entire  hour  or 
more.  Others — namely,  the  Reverend  Mr.  Skinner  and  Mr. 
Briant,  twice;  Mr.  Johnson,  indeed,  but  once — were  cruelly 
tortured  on  the  rack,  attended  with  the  most  exquisite  sufferings. 
Mr.  Alart  lay  stretched  upon  it  for  three  hours  in  torture;  but 
beyond  this,  or  at  least  more  severely  for  that  time,  he  was  not 
tortured.  And  after  the  same  manner  they  dealt  with  a  portion 
of  the  rest  of  his  companions,  not  without  some  great  attempts  to 
bring  them  to  a  compliance  being  made. 

"  Some  were  thrust  down  into  a  certain  underground  dungeon, 
very  deep,  and  being  shut  in  on  every  side,  involved  in  the 
densest  darkness.  Amongst  these  were  Johnson,  Bristow,  and 
Brian,  all  of  them  priests,  some  of  whom  spent  two  entire  months 
in  this  chamber  of  horrors.  As  for  the  others,  all  of  them, 
together  with  your  Superior,  were  thrust  into  certain  obscure  and 
dark  corners,  deprived  of  hope  and  assistance,  without  beds  or 
other  necessaries  of  any  kind.  Thus  they  dealt  with  Stanislaus 
Bristow  and  the  others.  The  greater  portion  of  them  from  this 
time  are  confined  separately  in  squalid  and  dismal  cells,  where 

1  This  is  believed  to  be  from  the  pen  of  the  Rev.  Edward  Rishton.  The 
original  is  in  Latin.— 5m/^  Papers,  Domestic,  Elizabeth,  15S1,  vol.  cxli.v. 
n.  61. 


214         THE   CHURCH    UNDER   QUEEN    ELIZABETH. 

they  are  not  allowed  at  any  time  to  see  any  one,  much  less  to 
speak  with  a  friend. 

"  Mr.  Brian,  of  whom  I  spoke  before,  was  for  some  days  worn 
out,  and  well-nigh  killed  with  hunger.  At  length,  for  the  greater 
increase  of  his  pain,  he  was  most  atrociously  tortured  by  needles 
being  violently  thrust  under  his  nails.     (Ah,  miser  !) 

"  By  these  things  which  are  written,  most  dear  brothers  in 
Christ,  it  is  well  known  what,  and  what  kind  of  tortures  the  sons 
of  God,  and  the  true  servants  of  Christ,  patiently  endure  for  their 
firm  defence  of  the  orthodox  faith ;  and  should  it  be  required  of 
ihem,  are  ready  willingly  to  undergo  still  greater. 

"This  only  thing  we  implore  of  His  mercy,  that  He  will  of  His 
goodness  grant  uspatienceandperseveranceeventotheend.  Which 
that  we  may  the  more  speedily  obtain,  we  earnestly  implore  your 
prayers  for  us,  and  the  more  so  as  we  are  not  without  some  appre- 
hension, seeing  that  the  Prefect  of  the  Tower  yesterday,  and  again 
to-day,  was  summoned  to  the  Court,  in  order  that,  as  we  believe, 
he  might  be  informed  with  certainty  what  is  decided  upon  about  us." 

The  cases  here  referred  to  by  Mr.  Rishton  were  only  ordinary 
examples  of  what  was  being  continually  carried  out  by  the 
authorities.  Amongst  the  State  papers,  document  after  docu- 
ment has  come  to  light  showing  the  artful  malignity,  the  cruelty, 
as  well  as  the  perseverance  of  the  persecuting  and  triumphant 
faction.  Although  in  ordinary  histories  of  this  period  little  or  no 
reference  is  made  to  such  acts ;  yet  no  adequate  conception  of 
the  true  state  of  affairs  can  be  had  without  some  study  of  the 
various  records  of  these  odious  barbarities. 

Throughout  this  queen's  reign  there  were  not  wanting  occasional 
tokens,  mysterious,  supernatural,  and,  as  some  would  say,  in  a 
measure  miraculous,^  of  the  grave  displeasure  of  the  Almighty 

^  On  the  other  hand,  to  some  of  those  who  suffered,  singular  tokens  of  the 
Almighty's  favour  were  graciously  given.  For  example,  the  Rev.  Stephen 
Rousham,  who  was  executed  at  Gloucester  in  15S7,  was  thus  singularly 
favoured.  He  had  been  banished,  but  had  returned,  and  of  him  yln  Ancient 
Editor  s  Note- Book  gives  the  following  particulars  : — "A  man  of  singular  per- 
fection, he  had  in  his  lifetime  many  heavenly  visions,  as  great  lights  in 
windows  and  places  where  he  was  alone,  and  sometimes  with  others.  His 
crown  of  martyrtlom  [wa^-]  showetl  him  most  gloriously,  being  yet  a  minister, 
and  in  schism.  Afterwards  a  priest  and  in  prison,  God  the  Ealher,  Christ 
<nir  Saviour,  our  Blessed  Lady,  glorious  souls  of  Saints,  full  often  appeared 
unto  him,  leaving  behind  them  such  odoriferous  smells,  and  sometimes  lasting 
many  hours  with  him,  that  for  the  space  of  one  day  and  a  half  he  thought 
himself  in  heaven,  his  joys  were  so  great  and  strange.  This  heavenly 
company  had  divers  speeches  with  him  in  their  several  appearances  to  him, 
whicii  he  would  not  utter,  neither  did  he  reveal  this  but  a  little  before  his 
martyrdom  to  a  dear  worshipful  friend,  after  a  long  visit  to  him." — Records 
of  the  English  Province,  vol.  iv.  p.  340.     London,  1S78. 


SUPERNATURAL  OCCURRENCES.        21  5 

with  the  once  Christian  people  of  this  country.  A  strange  sign, 
which  none  could  explain  nor  account  for,  here ;  a  gloomy  and 
mysterious  prediction  there ;  a  sharp  punishment  by  some  un- 
known and  fatal  disease  in  another  quarter,  by  which,  with  no 
preparation,  numbers  were  hurried  away  to  the  particular  judg- 
ment-seat of  their  Maker;  a  solemn  warning,  of  which  few  could 
mistake  the  purport,  was  from  time  to  time  faced  and  noticed. 
But  these  supernatural  interventions  were  too  often  passed  by 
and  disregarded.  When,  as  was  the  case,  misbelief  had  eaten 
into  the  very  heart  of  the  nation,  such  signs  and  tokens  were 
either  despised  or  laughed  at.  The  old  and  authorised  teachers 
had  been  set  in  a  corner ;  while  the  whole  multitude,  ever  seeking 
after  what  they  called  "  the  Truth,"  and  never  finding  it,  drearily 
brayed  and  fondly  babbled  over  things  sacred,  hearing  nothing 
but  the  discordant  voices  of  angry  controversialists  in  perpetual 
din  and  dismal  contest.  No  one  learnt ;  few  obeyed.  Every  one 
taught ;  all  sought  to  be  guides.  Those  who  then  made  up  the 
common  herd — each  one  for  himself — thus  rode  to  the  devil  on 
his  own  hobby  and  by  his  own  road. 

Of  such  supernatural  warnings,  a  few  examples  shall  now  be 
provided.  To  the  fools  who  say  in  their  heart,  There  is  no 
God,  such  will  be  as  foolishness ;  to  the  Catholic,  perhaps,  not 
unworthy  of  note. 

Within  two  years  of  the  queen's  accession  an  occurrence  had 
taken  place  which  caused  an  unusual  stir  in  Wales.  The  record 
of  it  is  simple  enough,  and  may  easily  be  recounted.  An  ash- 
tree,  it  appears,  had  been  blown  down  during  a  severe  and 
destructive  storm  which  passed  over  the  park  of  Sir  Thomas 
Stradling  at  St.  Donat's,  in  Glamorganshire.  When  certain  people 
came  to  examine  that  portion  of  the  trunk  which  was  thoroughly 
split  up,  they  found  within  it,  much  to  their  consternation  and 
awe,  a  strange  representation  of  a  distinct  and  plainly-defined 
cross.^  Some  persons  who  first  examined  it  confidently  declared 
that  its  appearance  was  a  token  of  the  Almighty's  wrath,  and 
that  it  plainly  indicated  that  many  storms  would  be  experienced 
by  the  nation  if  those  doctrines  which  the  cross  symbolised  were 
cast  out  and  abolished.  The  few  who  first  witnessed  the  portent, 
for  such  it  was  regarded,  spread  the  above  opinion  throughout 
their  respective  villages,  which  led  hundreds  of  persons  from  all 
the  adjacent  places  to  come  in  crowds  to  look  upon  it.     When 

^  In  some  editions  of  Archdeacon  Harpsfield's  Dialogi  Sex,  etc.,  may  be 
found  a  rare  plate  of  this  miraculous  cross.  The  volume  in  quarto  was  first 
published  at  Antwerp  in  1573;  other  issues  of  it  were  made  later;  some, 
however,  without  the  engraving. 


2l6         THE   CHURCH    UNDER   QUEEN    ELIZABETH. 

it  was  seen,  the  people  were  overcome  with  terror.  God  Almighty, 
they  said,  would  punish  them  all  if  they  took  to  the  new  religion. 
On  this  point  controversies  arose  ;  while  the  excitement  and 
interest  so  increased  that  the  Queen's  Privy  Council,  at  Cecil's 
suggestion,  felt  called  upon  to  consider  what  should  be  done. 
The  people  were  in  a  ferment.  Sir  Roger  Vaughan  and  Esquire 
Edward  Lewis,  of  the  county  of  Glamorgan,  were  consequently 
formally  commissioned  to  make  special  inquiries  with  regard  to 
this  "Cross  of  St.  Donat's."  They  did  so  at  once;  but  without 
any  particular  result,  though  they  sent  up  to  the  Council  at 
Richmond  several  curious  depositions  of  eye-witnesses  and  others 
on  the  subject,  which  leave  little  doubt  as  to  the  fact.^  The 
general  impression  amongst  the  populace  was  that  the  shameful 
destruction  of  the  crosses  in  churches  and  churchyards,  which 
had  again  taken  place,  was  thus  solemnly  condemned  by  this 
impressive  portent. 

A  prophecy,  long  ago  fulfilled,  is  one  of  the  points  of  the 
following  notice.  The  restoration  of  Glastonbury  Abbey  is  by 
no  means  so  improbable  as  our  forefathers  may  have  supposed. 

An  old  monk  of  Glastonbury,  Austin  Ringwode,-  who,  having 
the  fear  of  God  before  his  eyes,  though  turned  out  from  his  sacred 
home,  dwelt  in  a  cottage  no  great  distance  from  it,'^  and  through 
many  long  years,  observing  without  relaxation  his  old  rule, 
constantly  interceded  with  God  for  his  miserable  and  afiflicted 
countrymen.  He  lived  under  the  spiritual  direction  of  Father 
Bridgewater,  in  the  greatest  retirement  and  on  the  sparest  diet ; 
gave  himself  up  constantly  to  prayer,  self-denial,  and  fasting ; 
and,  in  his  later  years,  was  favoured  with  celestial  visions  of  a 
most  consoling  nature.  To  some  friends  who  went  to  render 
him  assistance  when  he  was  smitten  down  with  a  sore  i)lague,  he 
predicted  that  "  many  woeful  troubles "  would  "  fall  upon  the 
]ieople  because  of  their  sins  "  ;  that  "  the  lands  would  be  untilled 
for  divers  years  ;  and  that  a  bloody  war "  would  overtake  the 
country  as  a  i)unishment.  He,  furthermore,  averred  that  some 
of  those  then  living  would  not  die  until  they  had  beheld  these 

^  S/ale  Papt'is,  Domestic,  Elizahclh,  vol.  xvii.,  a.d.  1561. 

-  He  is  alluded  to,  as  is  also  his  prediction,  in  a  tract,  A  True  Relation  of 
Master  Austin  Kiuniuode,  etc.,  published  in  the  year  1652,  in  London,  in 
which  the  prophecy  is  assumed  to  have  been  fulfilled  by  the  Civil  ^Yar.  The 
Rev.  William  Cole,  on  visiting  Glastonbury  in  the  eighteenth  century,  read 
the  inscription  upon  his  gravestone. — See  also  HarleianMSS.,  Brit.  Museum, 
No.  6998,  fol.  53. 

-'  Certain  other  of  the  old  monks  continued  to  live  within  sight  of  the  abbey 
walls,  and  to  observe  their  rule  as  I'ar  as  possible.  One  monk,  who  had 
secured  certain  relics  of  the  abbey,  died  at  a  great  age. 


THE   CASE   OF   ROLAND  JENKS.  21/ 

portents.  He  said,  moreover,  that  "  the  abbey  would  be  one  day 
repaired  and  rebuilt  for  the  like  worship  which  had  ceased,  and 
that  then  peace  and  plenty  would  for  long  time  abound." 
Ringwode  died  in  the  winter  of  1587,  and  was  buried  at 
Glastonbury. 

A  mysterious  kind  of  plague  that  swept  off  many  persons  of 
rank  and  birth  at  Oxford  is  allowed  by  certain  writers  on  both 
sides  to  have  been  a  judgment  from  heaven,  and  a  warning  to 
the  innovators  and  persecutors  to  desist  from  their  unhallowed 
work. 

This  warning  was  made  in  the  case  of  the  memorable  trial  or 
Roland  Jenks,  a  Catholic  bookseller  in  Oxford,^  who,  for  speaking 
some  words  against  the  queen's  religion,  was  condemned,  in  the 
Assizes  held  at  Oxford  in  July  1577,  to  have  his  ears  nailed  to 
the  pillorv,  and  to  deliver  himself  by  cutting  them  off  with  his 
own  hands,  which  sentence  was  no  sooner  passed  when  immedi- 
ately upon  the  spot  a  strange,  mortal  distemper,  the  like  of  which, 
as  to  its  symptoms,  has  never  been  heard  of  before  or  since,  fell 
upon  the  judges,  justices  on  the  bench,  sheriffs,  jurymen,  and 
hundreds  of  others  that  were  present  at  the  trial,  and  carried 
them  off  in  a  very  short  time.  Let  us  hear  Mr.  Anthony  a 
Wood,  the  well-known  and  accurate  historian  of  the  University 
of  Oxford,  whose  account  of  this  history  is  on  record.^  His 
words,  translated  from  the  Latin,  are  as  follows  : — 

"It  was  ordered,  therefore,  in  the  Convocation  held  on  the  ist 
of  May  1577  that  the  criminal,  Roland  Jenks,  should  immedi- 
ately be  apprehended  ;  and  being  put  into  irons,  should  be  sent 
up  in  order  to  be  examined  betore  the  Chancellor  of  the  Uni- 
versity and  the  Queen's  Council.  In  the  meantime,  all  his  goods 
are  seized,  and  in  his  house  are  found  Bulls  of  Popes,  and  libels 
reflecting  upon  Her  Majesty.  He  was  examined  at  London,  in 
presence  of  the  persons  aforesaid,  and  then  was  sent  back  to 
Oxford,  there  to  be  kept  in  prison  till  the  next  assizes,  which 
began  on  the  4th  of  July,  in  the  old  hall  in  the  castle-yard,  and 
lasted  for  two  days. 

"  He  was  brought  to  the  bar,  and  was  arraigned  for  high 
crimes  and  misdemeanors ;  and,  being  found  guilty,  was  con- 
demned by  a  sentence  in  some  manner  capital,  for  he  was  to  lose 
his  ears.  At  which  time  (although  my  soul  dreads  almost  to 
relate  it)  so  sudden  a  plague  invaded  the  men  that  were  present 
(the  great  crowd  of  people,  the  violent  heat  of  the  summer,  and 

^  The  above  account,   with  the  authorities  for  its  statements  in  detail,  is 
given  from  the  narrative  of  the  pious  and  accomplished  Bishop  of  Debra. 
^  Historia  et  Aiitiqiiitates  Universitatis  Oxoiiifiisis,  i.  p.  294. 


2l8  THE   CHURCH    UNDER   QUEEN    EEIZABETH. 

the  stench  of  the  prisoners,  all  conspiring  together,  and  perhaps 
also  a  poisonous  exhalation  breaking  suddenly  at  the  same  time 
out  of  the  earth)  that  you  might  say  Death  itself  sat  on  the 
bench,  and  by  her  definite  sentence  put  an  end  to  all  the  causes. 
For  great  numbers  immediately  dying  upon  the  spot,  others 
struck  with  death  hastened  out  of  the  court  as  fast  as  they  could, 
to  die  within  a  very  few  hours.  A  mournful  ditty  was  shortly 
after  published  on  this  subject  by  a  young  university  man,  which, 
for  brevity  sake,  I  shall  omit.  But  it  may  not  be  amiss  to  set 
down  the  names  of  the  persons  of  greatest  note  who  were  seized 
by  that  plague,  and  breathed  out  their  souls.  These  were  Sir 
Robert  Bell,  Chief  Baron  of  the  Exchequer,  and  Nicholas  Bar- 
ham,  sergeant-at-law,  both  great  enemies  of  the  popish  religion. 
...  To  the  above  named  must  be  added  Sir  Robert  Doyley, 
the  High  Sheriff  of  Oxford  ;  Mr.  Hart,  his  deputy  ;  Sir  William 
Babington ;  Messieurs  Doyley,  Wenman,  Danvers,  Fettyplace, 
and  Harcourt,  justices  of  the  peace ;  Kirby,  Greenwood,  Nash, 
and  Foster,  gentlemen  ;  to  whom  are  to  be  joined,  to  say  nothing 
of  others,  almost  all  the  jurymen,  who  died  within  two  days." 

Anthony  a  Wood  adds,  out  of  the  Register  of  Merton  College, 
the  following  account  of  the  symptoms  of  this  strange  disease  : — 

"  Some  getting  out  of  bed  (agitated  with  I  know  not  what  fury 
from  their  distemper  and  pain),  beat  and  drive  from  them  their 
keepers  with  sticks  ;  others  run  about  the  yards  and  streets  like 
madmen  ;  others  jump  head  foremost  into  deep  waters.  The 
sick  labour  with  a  most  violent  pain,  both  of  the  head  and 
stomach ;  they  are  taken  with  a  frenzy ;  are  deprived  of  their 
understanding,  memory,  sight,  hearing,  and  other  senses.  As 
the  disease  increases,  they  take  nothing ;  they  get  no  sleep ;  they 
suffer  none  to  tend  or  keep  them ;  they  are  always  wonderfully 
strong  and  robust,  even  in  death  itself;  no  complexion  or  con- 
stitution is  spared ;  but  the  choleric  are  more  particularly 
attacked  by  this  evil,  of  which  the  physicians  can  neither  find  the 
cause  nor  cure.  The  stronger  the  person  is,  the  sooner  he  dies. 
AVomen  are  not  seized  by  it,  nor  the  poor,  neither  does  any  one 
catch  it  that  takes  care  of  the  sick,  or  visits  them.  But  as  this 
disease  was  strangely  violent,  so  it  was  but  of  a  short  continu- 
ance ;  for  within  a  month  it  was  over."  So  far  the  Merton 
Register.  1 

^  "The  suhstance  of  this  history,"  as  the  same  writer  remarks,  "may  he 
found  also  in  Sir  Richard  Baker's  Chronicle,  and  in  Fuller's  Church  History, 
book  ix.  p.  139.  To  say  nothinsj  <3f  the  Catholic  writers,  in  whom  I  have 
found  it,  who  are  F.  Parsons,  Epist.  dc  Pcrscctitione  Aug!.,  jnihlished  in 
1581  ;  Mr.  Rishton,  De  Schismati  .higl.  i.  3;  Ribadaneira,  in  his  Appendix 


MYSTERIOUS  AND   NOTABLE   WARNINGS.  219 

A  remarkable  occurrence — betokening  the  frequent  use  of  the 
executioner's  knife — took  place  on  the  occasion  vvhen  Father 
Campion  the  Jesuit  was  sentenced  to-  death,  and  seems  to  have 
been  a  warning  to  the  judge.  It  is  given  from  an  authentic 
record  : — 

"  When  Judge  Ayloffe  was  sitting  to  keep  the  place  when  the 
other  judges  retired,  while  the  jury  consulted  about  the  con- 
demnation of  Father  Campion  and  his  company,  and  pulling  off 
his  glove,  found  all  the  hand  and  his  seal  of  arms  bloody,  with- 
out any  token  of  wrong,  pricking,  or  hurt ;  and,  being  dismayed 
therewith,  wiping,  it  went  not  away,  but  still  returned.  He 
showed  it  to  the  gentlemen  that  sat  before  him,  who  can  be 
witnesses  of  it  till  this  day,  and  have  some  of  them  upon  their 
faiths  and  credits  avouched  it  to  be  true.^ 

As  a  rule,  such  warnings  and  portents  remained  all  unnoticed 
by  those  in  power.  Other  persons  occasionally  were  not  un- 
impressed. 

One  of  the  most  serious  and  practical  losses  to  the  country  in 
general,  a  loss  more  especially  felt  by  the  upper  and  middle 
classes,'^  was  that  which  had  ensued  because  of  the  utter  de- 
struction of  the  monastic  system,  viz.  the  universal  lack  of  any 
machinery  for  education.  In  previous  generations,  the  sons  and 
daughters  of  the  nobility  and  gentry  had  commonly  received 
their  education  at  the  abbeys  and  convents  of  old ;  and  there  is 
no  reason  to  believe  that  this  education  was  not  both  solid  and 

to  Dr.  Saunders'  History,  cap.  13  ;  Yepez,  Bishop  of  Tarra9ona,  in  his 
Spanish  History  of  tJie  Persecution,  i.  ii.  cap.  9,  who  relates  also,  cap.  11, 
some  other  examples  of  the  like  judgments  upon  the  persecutors,  etc.  I  find 
also  the  same  history  had  reached  Douay  by  the  following  month,  where  it 
is  recorded  in  the  Register  or  Diary  of  the  College,  August  1577-  M""-  Jenl<s 
survived  his  punishment  many  years,  for  by  the  same  Diary  he  was  at  Rheims 
in  1587." 

^  "  Life  of  Father  Thomas  Cottam,"  p.  16S,  Records  oj  the  English 
Frc/vince.     Manresa  Press,  1875. 

^  Many  of  the  lower  classes  in  agricultural  districts  could  neither  read  nor 
write,  though  there  were,  of  course,  considerable  exceptions.  They  learned 
their  Pafer  noster,  Ave  Maria,  and  Credo  by  heart,  instructed  by  the  parson 
of  the  parish,  and  said  their  rosary  on  a  knotted  ring  or  a  string  of  beads. 
They  heard  the  Bidding- Prayer  in  their  native  tongue  ;  many  parts  of  the 
baptismal  and  marriage  services  were  said  in  English  ;  while  the  sermons 
were  plain  and  homely,  and  wanting  in  that  everlasting  criticism  and  contro- 
versy which  so  distinguishes  those  of  the  present  day.  The  poor  gained  much 
of  the  accurate  religious  knowledge  they  possessed  from  the  expressive  and 
telling  pictures  in  the  churches  ;  and  perhaps  were  after  all  quite  as  happy 
and  contented  as  their  Board  School  trained  descendants,  who  are  illuminated 
by  penny  newspapers,  and  instructed  to  despise  the  Catholic  religion  ;  and 
know  neither  in  theory  nor  practice  their  duty  to  God  and  to  their  neighbour. 


220         THE   CHURCH    UNDER   QUEEN   ELIZABETH, 

sound,  as  well  as  pious  and  sufficient,  notwithstanding  the  false 
assertions  of  the  Commissioners  and  the  sneers  of  the  over-cynical 
Erasmus.  Then,  however,  all  such  places  of  education  had  been 
utterly  destroyed.  At  Glastonbury  several  hundred  youths,  year 
by  year  for  generations,  had  been  Christianly  and  virtuously 
brought  up  ;  and  so  it  was  elsewhere  in  every  English  shire. 
The  practical  change  which  such  a  revolution  had  made  can  now 
scarcely  be  realised.  The  inconvenience  and  loss  must  have 
been  excessive,  and  added  largely  to  the  existing  ill-feeling.  In 
fact,  so  serious  did  some  of  the  reforming  party  think  it,  that  the 
Council  urged  upon  their  trustiest  allies — those  who  had  secured 
so  much  of  the  monastic  property — to  do  what  was  possible  and 
practicable  in  their  own  particular  localities  towards  remedying 
the  evil.  The  queen's  personal  friends  ^  were  likewise  exhorted 
to  aid. 

For  the  new  country  clergy  could  do  nothing  in  this  crisis  of 
want  of  education.  Taken  from  "  the  lowest  of  the  people," 
they  were  often  so  ignorant  that  they  could  scarcely  read  the 
vScriptures  in  English  without  special  preparation,  and  knew  no 
more  of  Latin  or  English  Composition  than  the  general  class  of 
mechanics  from  whose  ranks  so  many  of  them  had  been  taken. 
In  the  dioceses  of  London,  Canterbury,  Norwich,  York,  and 
Lichfield,  judging  by  the  registers  and  books  of  institution, 
batches  of  persons  were  ordained  either  readers  or  ministers, 
thoroughly  unworthy  of  the  offices — gauging  them  from  the  new 
standing-point.  The  very  low  state  of  public  education  in 
general  towards  the  middle  of  Elizabeth's  reign  may  further  be 
collected  from  a  provision  in  Archbishop  Parker's  foundation  of 
three  scholarships  at  Cambridge  in  1567.  These  are  to  be 
supplied  by  the  most  considerable  schools  in  Kent  and  Norfolk, 
and  are  to  be  "  the  best  and  aptest  schollers,  well  instructed  in 
the  grammar,  and  (if  it  may  be)  such  as  can  make  a  verse." 

It  was  essential,  therefore,  that  something  were  done,  and  done 
promptly,  to  remedy  the  evil.  So  the  authorities  stirred  up 
persons  of  influence  in  various  parts  of  England,  especially  those 
who  had  favoured  the  innovating  policy,  to  provide  means  and 
machinery  for  educating  the  young.  Sir  Nicholas  Bacon,  in 
consequence,  secured  two  specific  charters  founding  a  grammar 
school  at  St.   Alban's.     At   Aylesbury,   Sir  Henry   Lee,   K.G., 

^  Author's  MSS.  and  Excerpts.  Letter  of  Robert  Beale,  Clerk  of  the 
Council,  to  Sir  Henry  Lee  of  Dytchlcy  and  (^uarrendon,  Knt.  It  was,  no 
doubt,  because  of  this  that  Sir  Henry  founded  the  grammar  school  at  Ayles- 
bury, near  which  part  of  his  property  lay,  and  in  which  his  lady,  Lord  Pagel's 
second  daughter,  was  buried. 


GRAMMAR   SCHOOLS  FOUNDED.  221 

founded  a  similar  institution,  to  which  a  subsequent  benefactor, 
more  than  a  century  afterwards,  added  a  munificent  donation. 
At  Thame,^  in  Oxfordshire,  in  1559,  Lord  WilHams  of  Thame 
estabhshed  an  admirable  school,  where  for  generations  the  sons 
of  the  nobility  and  gentry  living  near  received  a  good  education. 
At  Bromeyard,  in  Herefordshire,  another  efficient  and  welcomed 
school  was  set  up.  In  the  county  of  Kent,  Sir  Roger  Manwood, 
by  the  queen's  special  authority,  instituted  a  grammar  school  at 
Sandwich.-  Others  at  ]\Iaidstone,  at  Cranbrook  in  1574,  and  at 
Faversham  in  1576,  were  likewise  established.  At  Reading  the 
Corporation  resuscitated  an  old  school  connected  with  the  abbey, 
at  the  queen's  special  request ;  and  having  undertaken  to  pay 
the  master's  salary,  received  in  return  from  Her  Highness  a 
charter,  bearing  date  23rd  of  September  1560,  and  a  grant  of 
certain  lands  which  then  produced  about  forty-one  pounds  per 
annum.  At  Wycombe,  in  the  year  1561,  the  queen  granted  the 
buildings  and  site  of  the  Hospital  of  St.  John  the  Baptist  in  that 
town  for  "  the  maintenance  of  one  pedagogue  or  master  for  the 
good  instruction  of  children  or  youth,"  and  gave  to  it  certain 
lands  in  Penn,  Hughenden,  and  Great  Marlow.  Archbishop 
Grindal  founded  a  school  at  St.  Bees,  about  the  year  1583,  but 
died  before  the  work  was  completed.  At  Ashborne,  in  Derby- 
shire, another  was  set  up,  two  years  later,  on  the  petition  of  Sir 
Thomas  Cockayne  to  the  queen ;  and  a  third  at  Dronfield,  near 
Chesterfield,^  by  Henry  Fanshaw,  Esq.  James  Pilkington,  Bishop 
of  Durham,  had  obtained  a  charter  for  the  foundation  of  a  school 
at  Darlington  on  June  15th,  1567,  the  common  seal  of  which 
bears  a  representation  of  the  queen  crowned  and  with  a  sceptre. 
At  Chepping  Barnet,  Lord  Leicester  founded  a  school  by  Letters 

^  See  Some  Account  of  Lord  Williams  of  Thame,  Founder  of  the  Grammar 
School  and  Alms-Hoitses  at  Thame,  together  with  a  Copy  of  His  IVill,  etc. 
Thame,  1873. 

^  "  That  the  scholemaster  be  firste  allowed  by  the  Ordynarie,  and  by 
examynacion  fownd  meete  bothe  for  his  learnynge  and  dlscreacion  of  teach- 
inge  ;  as  also  for  his  honest  conversacion  and  righte  understandinge  of  Codes 
trewe  religeon  nowe  sette  fourthe  by  publique  awcthoritie. " — Statutes  of 
Sandii'iche  Grammar  School. 

■*  '■^  Item,  I  ordain  that  the  scholars  do  upon  every  Sunday  and  Holy-day  in 
the  morning  resort  orderly  unto  the  school,  and  that  they  go  from  thence 
with  their  master  and  usher  before  them  into  the  church,  two  and  two  in 
rank  ;  that  they  carry  their  service-book  with  them,  and  answer  the  versicles 
and  the  psalms  as  the  clerk  of  the  parish  doth  ;  that  they  kneel  at  such  times 
of  the  celebration  of  Divine  Service  accordingly  as  it  is  in  that  behalf  pre- 
scribed in  the  '  Book  of  Common  Prayer,'  and  that  they  stand  up  at  the 
reading  of  the  Creed,  and  bow  at  the  sacred  name  of  Jesus,"  etc. — Statutes  of 
Dronfield  School. 


222  THE   CHURCH    UNDER   QUEEN    ELIZABETH. 

Patent  dated  24th  March  1573  ;  and  at  Hawkshead,  in  Lancashire, 
Sandys,  Archbishop  of  York,  did  the  same  in  1588.  At  Market 
Bosworth,  Sir  Wolstan  Dixie,  Lord  Mayor  of  London,  founded  a 
school  in  1592.  At  HaHfax  in  Yorkshire  and  at  Woodstock  in 
Oxfordshire,  grammar  schools  were  founded  in  15S5.  In  the 
north  similar  schools  were  erected,  under  the  queen's  direct 
sanction,  at  Appleby  and  Kirkby-Stephen  ;  ^  while  in  the  extreme 
West  of  England,  Bodmin,  Launceston,  Saltash  near  Plymouth, 
and  Penrhyn  were  benefited  by  the  setting  up  of  similar  institu- 
tions. Of  most  of  these  the  statutes  were  drawn  up  with  wisdom 
and  discretion ;  and  the  Christian,  apart  from  the  Catholic, 
principle  was  everywhere  and  thoroughly  recognised.- 

Notwithstanding  the  several  important  educational  foundations 
of  this  reign,  however,  there  were  not  two  hundred  grammar 
schools  existing  throughout  the  whole  country.  These,  of  course, 
were  under  the  direction  of  the  new  bishops,  who  licensed  both 
the  chief  or  head  master  and  his  ushers — often  forbidilen,  in 
their  deed  of  licence,  to  marry,  or  to  have  any  woman  or  children 
at  the  school-house^ — and  who  were  enabled  to  exercise  the 
same  jurisdiction  over  them  as  over  the  ordinary  ministers  of 
their  dioceses.  As  a  rule,  the  "grammarians"  seem  to  have 
been  learned  men  of  mark  and  ability,  and  often  presented  a 
strong  contrast   in   these   particulars    to    the  recently-ordained 

^  From  the  statutes  of  the  School  of  Kirkby-Stephen  (1566)  it  appears  that 
Lord  Wharton,  its  founder,  desired  that  the  scholars,  witli  the  master,  should 
daily  sing  together  certain  psalms  in  the  chapel  where  his  tomb  stood,  after 
they  had  recited  their  prayers  in  the  choir.  "  Knaveshness,  malpertness,  or 
stubliornness  "  in  the  boys  were  to  merit  "reasonable  correction." 

-  In  the  mischievous  educational  changes  of  later  years,  made  ostensibly 
because  of  "  our  miserable  divisions,"  the  Christian  principle  is  now  given  up 
under  (jucen  Victoria,  just  as  the  Catholic  principle  had  been  abrogated  under 
Queen  Elizabeth.  All  religious  tests  are  now  abolished  ;  boys  who  attend 
need  not  be  baptized  ;  "  women  may  be  gonors  "  [Query  ?  governesses]  of  the 
schools  ;  head  masters  need  not  be  in  Holy  Orders  ;  and  a  perfect  revolution 
has  been  once  more  effected. 

^  "Imprimis,  I  do  ordain  and  will  that  the  schoolmaster  to  be  learned, 
sober,  discreet,  and  unmarried  ;  such  a  one  as  hath  taken  a  degree  or  degrees 
in  the  Universities  of  Oxford  or  Cambridge,  undeformed,  and  of  the  age  of 
thirty  years  nt  the  least." — S/a/ntcs  of  W'ittun  Si/wol,  co.  Chester.  "We 
desire  that  the  master  and  undcrmaster  shall  both  be  forbidden  to  keep  their 
■wives  (if  they  have  married  any,  or  hereafter  shall  marry)  or  any  part  of  their 
family  within  the  walls,  rooms,  attics,  or  ajiartments  of  the  masters  ;  for  they 
have  been  built  for  the  purposes  of  teaching  and  learning,  and  ought  to  be 
kept  in  a  state  of  comjilete  quiet  and  silence,  so  that  no  improper  disturbance 
may  arise  in  any  way  to  interfere  with  the  studies  of  the  school." — Slatulcs  of 
'Jhanic  Cranimar  Scliool,  chap.  x.  Bishop  Robert  Pursglove,  in  fountling 
the  school  at  Guisborough,  in  Cleveland  (19th  June  1561),  ordered  that  "no 
Scot  nor  a  stranger  born  be  master,  nor  no  married  priest  or  layman." 


FURTHER   AND   DEADLY   PUNISHMENTS.  223 

clergy.  Many  of  the  former  did  a  good  work,  and  were  held  in 
high  repute.^  As  for  the  general  body  of  schoolmasters,  they 
came  to  be  looked  upon  as  a  special  and  favoured  class,  being 
exempt  from  the  payment  of  certain  taxes  and  other  burdens 
which  pressed  so  severely  upon  other  classes  at  this  period.  It 
should  be  remembered  that,  in  the  beginning  of  Elizabeth's  reign, 
all  benefices  had  been  taxed  to  the  amount  of  a  thirtieth  part  of 
their  value  to  provide  education  for  poor  students. 

About  this  time  William  Carter  was  executed  for  having  re- 
printed and  sold  a  "Treatise  on  Schism,"  which  gave  great 
offence  to  the  authorities.  Full  of  pointed  arguments  and 
pertinent  reflections,  it  is  said  to  have  been  from  the  pen  of  a 
most  brilliant  writer  and  powerful  controversialist,  Dr.  Gregory 
Martin,  an  exile,  and  had  been  first  printed  at  Douay  in  1578. 
One  passage  in  it,  relating  to  Holofernes,  was  thought  to  have 
recommended  the  murder  of  the  queen ;  but  this  interpretation 
appears  far-fetched  and  more  than  doubtful,-  although  the  judges 
assumed  it  to  be  evident.  Eventually  the  jury,  thus  misdirected 
on  a  matter  of  fact,  convicted  the  accused,  and  on  January 
loth,  1584,  he  was  executed  as  a  traitor,  with  the  customary 
barbarities. 

The  halter  and  knife,  in  fact,  were  still  in  constant  requisition. 
Sometimes,  too,  the  stake,  the  faggots,  and  the  lighted  torch. 
For  example  :  Matthew  Hammond,  a  plough-wright,  of  Hether- 
sett,  near  Norwich,  and  a  Nonconformist,  pronounced  an  obstinate 
heretic  by  the  Bishop  of  Norwich,  was  burnt  at  the  stake  on 
May  20th,  1579,  in  the  ditch  of  that  city;  as  was  also  Francis 
Kett,  about  ten  years  afterwards,  i.e.  in  1588,  who  appears  to 
have  been  an  Arian.  On  each  of  these  occasions  the  queen 
justified  herself  in  signing  the  death-warrant  on  the  plea  that  as 
Supreme  Governess  it  became  her  personal  duty  to  punish 
heretics  at  the  stake.  On  February  12th  of  the  year  1584,  five 
seminary  priests  were  put  to  death  at  Tybourne  ;  blood  had  been 

1  At  Thame  the  trustees  of  Lord  Williams'  Will  had  so  high  an  opinion  of 
the  first  "  Informator,"  Edward  Harris  of  New  College,  that  they  procured 
for  him  Letters  Patent  granting  him  the  ofhce  for  life.  Some  of  his  relations 
had  been  monks  at  Notley  Abbey  and  the  Abbey  at  Thame  Park  ;  and  he 
was  a  man  of  good  ability  and  considerable  learning. 

-  "  The  whole  object  of  the  author  was  to  warn  his  brethren  against  the  sin 
of  schism.  For  this  purpose  he  advised  the  Catholic  gentlewomen  to  imitate 
Judith  ;  as  she  abstained  from  profane  meats,  so  ought  they  to  abstain  from 
all  communication  with  others  in  a  worship  which  they  believed  to  be 
schismatical.  By  doing  this  they  would  destroy  Holofernes  .  .  .  After  an 
attentive  perusal  of  the  whole  tract,"  continues  Dr.  Lingard,  "I  cannot  find 
in  it  the  smallest  foundation  for  the  charge." — Appendix,  Note  QO.  to  vol. 
vi.  of  The  History  of  England, 


224         THE   CHURCH    UNDER   QUEEN    ELIZABETH. 

flowing  in  fact,  and  legal  butchering  going  on  so  steadily,  that 
foreign  nations  criticised  the  queen  and  her  advisers  sharply. "■ 
These  criticisms  had  their  due  weight.  Two  treatises,  in  reply 
and  explanation,  accordingly  appeared,  one  a  "  Declaration  of 
the  Favourable  Dealings  of  Her  Majesty's  Commissioners,"  etc., 
and  "  A  Declaration  of  the  Traitorous  Affection  borne  against 
Her  Majesty  by  Edmund  Campion,  Jesuit,  and  other  condemned 
Priests."  To  these  Dr.  Allen  retorted  in  a  very  powerful  volume 
On  the  English  Persecution,  which  created  so  great  a  sensa- 
tion both  at  home  and  abroad,  that  Lord  Burghley  -  entered  the 
arena,  and  published  The  Execution  of  Justice -in  England, 
for  Maintenance  of  Public  and  Christian  Peace,  against  certain 
Stirrers  of  Sedition,  etc.  This  fell  somewhat  flat ;  and  Dr. 
Allen  thought  it  deserving  of  notice,  and  so  wrote  "A  True, 
Sincere,  and  Modest  Defence  of  the  English  Catholics,  that 
suffer  for  their  Faith  both  at  Home  and  Abroad,  against  a 
Slanderous  Libel." 

On  the  part  of  the  queen  and  her  advisers,  fresh  Acts  of 
Parliament  and  further  enactments  were  far  more  efficient  than 
ex  parte  tracts  and  treatises.  These  latter,  however,  as  penned 
by  their  opponents,  had  caused  the  Council  great  consternation. 
They  saw,  or  professed  to  see,  dangers  gathering  on  all  sides, 
and  plots  thickening.  Some  one  had  been  captured  at  sea,  a 
Scotch  priest  named  Creighton,  and  had  tried  to  destroy  a  manu- 
script containing,  as  it  was  asserted,  notes  of  a  plan  for  the 
country's  invasion  by  the  Spaniards,  but  in  vain,  for  the  MS., 
or  something  which  did  duty  for  it,  was  secured.  The  friends  of 
Queen  Mary  of  Scotland  were  reported  to  be  exceedingly  active 
in  trying  to  aid  her ;  and  Francis  Throckmorton  and  others  were 
severely  racked  and  tlien  executed  for  treasonable  correspondence 
with  the  Spanish  ambassador. 

Consequently,  in  the  latter  part  of  the  year,  two  new  and  im- 
portant Acts  of  Parliament  were  passed,  (i)  The  first  was  made 
"  for  the  surety  of  the  queen's  most  royal  person,  and  the  con- 
tinuance of  the  realm  in  peace."  ^  This  enactment  legalised  an 
association  which  had  been  formed  to  protect  Her  Majesty  from 
assassination,    and   to   revenge    her   death   if  assassinated.     Its 

1  A  comparison  between  the  deeds  of  the  pagan  emperors  of  Rome  and 
those  then  being  done  in  the  queen's  name  gave  great  offence.  The  sting  of 
the  remark  lay  in  the  justice  and  accuracy  ot  the  parallel.  The  queen 
smarted  under  it. 

-  Some  assert  that  he  himself  was  the  author  of  the  first  defence  of  the 
Commissioners. 

^  27  Elizabeth,  cap.  i. 


DEAN   WIIITTINGHAM.  225 

members,^  at  the  head  of  whom  was  Lord  Leicester,  pledged 
themselves  to  punish  with  death  any  one  who  attempted  her 
life ;  and  also  excluded  from  the  throne — this  was  directed 
against  Mary  Queen  of  Scots  —  any  one  who  should  either 
authorise  such  an  attempt,  or  profit  by  it.  (2)  The  second  Act 
was  directed  against  Jesuits,  seminary  priests,  and  other  "  such- 
like disobedient  persons."  ^  These  were  to  leave  the  kingdom 
within  forty  days,  under  the  penalty  of  treason.  If  anyone 
received  them  or  aided  them,  it  was  treason.  All  students  in 
the  seminaries  abroad  were  to  return  within  six  months  and  take 
the  Oath  of  Supremacy,  or  else  were  regarded  as  traitors;  and 
when  they  returned  they  were  not  to  come  within  twenty  miles 
of  the  Court  for  ten  years.  Persons  sending  a  son  to  these 
seminaries  were,  for  every  such  offence,  to  forfeit  one  hundred 
pounds,  and  to  incur  the  penalties  oi  pramiinire ;  if  they  for- 
warded money  to  any  son  already  there,  he  was  henceforth 
precluded  from  inheriting  any  estate  or  other  possession  from 
the  sender. 

Whittingham,  a  noted  lay-divine  of  that  period,  was  a  strong 
Calvinist ;  and  the  only  ordination  he  had  received  was  a  call 
from  a  fanatical  assembly  of  this  self-satisfied  sect  at  Geneva.^ 
Yet,  without  either  question  or  protest,  he  had  been  made  Dean 
of  Durham  by  Letters  Patent ;  and,  if  the  Supreme  Governess 
had  willed  it,  she  might  have  made  him  High  Admiral,  a  state- 
bishop,  or  a  peer.  It  the  chief  officer  at  Durham  Cathedral  were 
unordained,  can  it  be  doubted  that  in  inferior  positions  the 
unordained  were  numerous  ?  After  having  been  dean  for  some 
years,  however,  a  complaint  was  laid  agamst  him  that  "he  was 
neither  deacon  nor  minister  according  to  the  laws  of  the  realm, 
but  a  mere  layman."  In  this  prolonged  contest  Sandys,  Arch- 
bishop of  York,  a  decided  personal  opponent  of  the  dean, 
eventually  proceeded  to  excommunication.  Of  this  the  Lord 
Treasurer  strongly  disapproved  ;  nor  were  the  proceedings  looked 
upon  with  favour  by  Dr.  Hutton,  then  Dean  of  York,  who  resisted 
Sandys'  high-handed  policy  with  much  vigour.  A  long,  excited, 
and  involved  discussion  took  place  on  this  point.  In  itself  it  is 
wearisome,  tedious,  and  of  slender  interest.^     It  was  eventually 

^  Mary  Queen  of  Scots  proposed  to  join,  and  offered  to  sign  tlie  declaration 
agreed  upon,  but  was  not  permitted  to  do  so. 

-  27  Elizabeth,  cap.  ii. 

^  Any  one  who  cares  to  wade  through  a  wordy  account  of  it  may  do  sn  in 
the  various  letters  from  foreign  Protestants  in  the  Parker  Society's  publica- 
tions. 

*  What  had  taken  place  under  King  Henry  ^■III.,  as  regards  episcopacy 
and  ordination,  may  be  set  forth  in  the  late  Lord  Macaulay's  own  words  ; — 

P 


226         THE   CHURCH    UNDER   QUEEN    ELIZABETH. 

settled  in  a  manner  which  clearly  and  conclusively  proved  that 
at  the  period  in  question  the  imposition  of  the  hands  of  the 
Genevan  ministers  was  considered  by  all  in  authority  quite  as  ■ 
efficacious  and  sufficient  as  the  imposition  of  the  hands  of  the 
new  English  prelates.  Whittingham  retained  his  deanery  until 
his  death.  The  so-called  "ordination"  of  the  foreign  sectaries, 
Scotch  as  well  as  continental,  was  thus  held  to  be  just  as  good 
as  any  other  ordination.  At  that  time  such  was  the  teaching  ot 
the  queen's  new  communion.  Parker,  Grindal,^  and  Sandys 
fully  recognised  ministers  of  this  kind,  gave  them  licences  to 
officiate  in  London,  Canterbury,  and  elsewhere,  superintended 
them,  and  looked  upon  them  as  part  and  parcel  of  "the  true  and 
lilessed  congregation  of  the  elect." 

"  The  founders  of  the  Anglican  Church  took  a  middle  course.  They  retaineil 
episcopacy  ;  but  they  did  not  declare  it  to  be  an  institution  essential  to  the 
welfare  of  a  Christian  society,  or  to  the  efficacy  of  the  Sacraments.  Cranmer, 
indeed,  plainly  avowed  his  conviction  that  in  the  primitive  limes  there  was  ro 
distinction  between  bishops  and  priests,  and  that  the  laying-on  of  hands  was 
altogether  unnecessary." — The  History  of  Enjjland,  etc.,  p.  53.  London, 
1848.  And  again: — "He  (the  king)  appointed  divines  of  various  ranks  to 
preach  the  Gospel,  and  to  administer  the  Sacraments.  It  was  unnecessary 
that  there  should  be  any  imposition  of  hands.  The  king — such  was  the 
opinion  of  Cranmer  given  in  the  plainest  words — might,  in  virtue  of  authority 
<lerived  from  God.  make  a  ]>riest,  and  the  priest  so  made  needed  no  ordina- 
tion whatever.  These  ojiinions  Cranmer  followed  out  to  their  legitimate 
consequences.  He  held  that  his  own  spiritual  functions,  like  the  secular 
functions  of  the  Chancellor  and  the  Treasurer,  were  at  once  determined  by  a 
demise  of  the  Crown.  \\'hen  Henry  died,  therefore,  the  archbishop  and  his 
suffragans  took  out  fre-h  commissions  empowering  them  to  ordain  and  to 
perform  other  spiritual  functions,  till  the  new  Sovereign  should  tliink  fit  to 
order  otherwise.  When  it  was  objected  that  a  power  to  bind  and  to  loose, 
altogether  distinct  from  temporal  power,  had  been  given  by  our  Lord  to  His 
Apostles,  the  theologians  of  this  [ihe  Krastian]  school  replied  that  the  power 
to  l)ind  and  to  loose  had  descended  not  to  the  clergy,  but  to  the  whole  body 
of  Christian  men,  and  ought  to  be  exerci-ed  by  the  chief  magistrate  as  the 
representative  of  the  society." — Ibid.  p.  56. 

^  In  1582  Archbishop  Grindal's  Vicar-General  gave  a  formal  written  licence 
to  John  Morrison,  a  Scotch  Presbyterian  preacher,  both  to  i)reach  and  to 
minister  the  .Sacraments  throughout  the  province  of  Canterbury.  This  docu- 
ment distinctly  exhibits  the  true  position  of  the  question  of  Orders,  for  it 
states  that  Morrison  had  received  imposition  of  the  hands  of  the  General 
Synod,  i.e.  the  presbyters  and  elders  of  the  county  of  Lothian  ;  and  that  the 
faith  of  the  new  coinmunion  of  John  Knox  was  conformable  with  that  newly 
set  up  and  established  by  the  authority  of  Parliament  in  England. — On  the 
other  hand,  it  seems  that  a  certain  .Serjeant  Manwood,  subsequently  a  judge, 
wrote  to  Archbishop  I'aiker,  asking  that  the  vacant  living  of  Old  Romney, 
might  be  given  to  Nicholas  Jones,  his  brother's  sonin-law,  who,  however, 
had  already  been  refused  it  once,  for  two  good  reasons :  first,  that  he  was 
not  a  member  of  any  university  ;  and,  secondly,  because  he  had  never  been 
ordained."  Here  it  may  be  noted  that  some  of  the  new  prelates  were  more 
lax  than  others. — Parker  MSS.,  C.  C.  Coll.,  Camb.    No.  cxiv.  folio  935. 


TRAVERS  AND  HOOKER.  22/ 

The  case  of  Travers,  the  earnest  and  outspoken  lecturer  of  the 
Temple  Church  in  London,  is  equally  to  the  point.  He  had 
been  originally  educated  at  Cambridge,  was  a  good  Oriental 
scholar  ;  and,  having  gone  to  Geneva  several  years  previously, 
there  made  the  acquaintance  of  Theodore  Beza.  Thus  he 
became  settled  in  his  misbelief  as  a  Calvinist ;  and  going  to 
Flanders,  was  made  a  minister  at  Antwerp,  ^  where,  with  Cart- 
wright,  another  notable  Calvinistic  Puritan,  he  preached  to  the 
workmen  at  the  English  factory.  In  1584  he  returned  to 
England,  and  on  the  strength  of  his  foreign  ordination,  was  at 
once  made  chaplain  to  Lord  Burghley ;  who  subsequently  secured 
for  him  the  appointment  of  lecturer  at  the  Temple.  His 
abilities  as  a  preacher  were  considerable,  his  oratory  powerful ; 
his  learning,  though  one-sided  and  narrow,  was  solid  ;  his  method 
systematic,  and  his  rhetoric  remarkably  telling  and  effective. ^ 
He  consequently  gained  a  great  influence  over  the  councillors  of 
the  Temple,  and  secured  an  enthusiastic  following.  When  the 
celebrated  minister,  Richard  Hooker,  who  inclined  to  ancient 
principles,  was  made  master  of  that  corporation  on  March  17, 
1584,  he  himself  commonly  preached  in  the  morning,  and 
Travers  in  the  afternoon.  What  the  former  "grave  and  painful 
divine"  (as  his  contemporaries  termed  him)  asserted  in  his 
thoughtful  sermon  after  mattins,  that  the  lecturer  was  accustomed 
flatly  to  contradict  in  his  eloquent  discourse  which  followed 
evensong  in  the  afternoon. 

This  state  of  things,  thougli  then  common  enough  in  many 
country  places,  was  not  unlikely  to  breed  grave  dissensions  and 
inconvenience  in  the  city  of  London.  The  lecturer  at  the 
Temple,  however,  was  then  neither  peculiar  nor  alone  in  his 
policy.  Hundreds  of  ministers  had  no  other  orders,  and  an 
mnumerable  number  plainly  contradicted  the  neighbouring 
preachers  to  their  right  hand  and  to  their  left.  But  in  London 
these  offences  became  very  notorious.  So  Travers  was  brought 
before  the  Court  of  High  Commission,  and  after  no  great  con- 
sideration an  order  was  signed  to  silence  him.  Policy,  not  law, 
influenced  the  decision.  He  appealed  for  redress  to  the  Lords 
of  the  Council,  asserting  somewhat  loosely  and  vaguely  that  "  by 
virtue  of  the  communion  of  saints  all  ordinations,  whether  by 

^  For  the  testimonial  of  his  ordination  at  Antwerp  by  the  Presbytery,  datei 
14  May  157S,  see  Fuller's  Church  History,  book  ix.  p.  214. 

^  Fuller  writes  flatteringly  of  Travers,  that  his  "  utterance  was  graceful, 
gesture  plausible,  matter  justifiable,  method  plain,  and  his  style  carried  with 
it  indolevi  pietatis,  a  genius  of  grace  flowing  from  his  sanctified  heart." — 
Church  Histcry. 


228  THE   CHURCH   UNDER   QUEEN    ELIZABETH. 

presbyter  or  bishop,  were  of  equal  value  in  the  Church  of  Christ." 
But  this  did  not  serve  him.  Archbishop  Whitgift  disallowed 
the  proposition.^  Such  loose  jDrinciples,  it  was  seen,  might 
seriously  inconvenience  the  bishops,  now  that  the  Puritans  were 
so  rapidly  gaining  in  strength,  numbers,  and  influence ;  so  that, 
under  Archbishop  Whitgift's  advice,  Travers  was  condemned 
both  for  want  of  Orders  and  for  lack  of  jurisdiction,  in  very  plain 
terms.-  Afterwards  he  went  to  Ireland,  at  the  invitation  ot 
Adam  Loftus,  Archbishop  of  Dublin,  where  orders  were  held  to 
be  of  very  slender  importance,  and  became  provost  of  Trinity 
College ;  but  Calvinism  was  not  over-popular  there — as  Bale  had 
long  ago  discovered — and  he  made  several  enemies,  so  resigning 
this  appointment,  he  eventually  returned  to  England,  where  he 
ended  his  days. 

In  1586,  the  state  of  morals  in  London  had  become  so 
frightful,  while  among  the  preachers  or  ministers  the  peace- 
makers were  few  and  the  sowers  of  discord  and  brawlers  so 
many,  that  John  Aylmer,  the  bishop,  who  at  once  states  and 
deplores  the  evils,  ordered  the  Commination  Service  to  be  said 
at  least  three  times  a  year,  to  avert  the  looked-for  wrath  of  God. 
In  so  doing,  we  may  reasonably  wonder  if  he  ever  called  to 
mind  the  atrocious  acts  of  sacrilege  which  he  himself,  when 
Archdeacon  of  Lincoln,  had  perpetrated  or  directly  sanctioned 
twenty  years  before.  In  the  utter  moral  corruption  then  existing, 
the  nation  was  only  reaping  what  had  been  so  recently  sown  by 
these  "  Reforming  "  prelates  and  their  party. 

Several  of  the  clergy,  to  judge  by  the  actual  words  of  this 
Bishop's  Visitation  Articles,^  were  believed  to  keep  suspected 
women   in   their   houses,    to   be   grossly   incontinent,    given   to 

^Archbishop  Whitgift,  in  15S9,  was  the  first  prelate  of  the  "reformed" 
Church  who  claimed  for  episcopacy  the  joint  character  of  "apostolic"  and 
"divine."  Hatton,  Bancroft,  Bilson,  and  Andrewes  followed  him  sub- 
sequently in  maintaining  the  truth  and  importance  of  the  same  principle. 
But,  like  Hooker,  they  weie  uncertain,  ambiguous,  and  feeble  in  setting  it 
forth  ;  while,  in  almost  every  case,  they  hesitated  to  condemn  the  Puritans, 
excejit  on  the  policy  of  expediency. 

-  The  actual  terms  of  the  order  condemning  Travers  were  as  follows : — 
"That  he  was  no  lawfully-ordained  minister  according  to  the  Church  of 
England  ;  that  he  preached  without  being  licensed  ;  that  he  had  openly  pre- 
sumed to  confute  such  doctrine  as  had  been  jmblicly  delivered  by  another 
preacher,  without  giving  warning  of  these  controversial  sallies  to  the  lawful 
ordinary  ;  and  that  this  lii)erty  was  contrary  to  a  provision  made  in  the 
seventh  year  of  this  reign,  for  avoiding  disturbances  in  the  Church."  The 
authority  of  rarliament,  not  that  of  the  old  canon  law,  was  thus  brought  to 
bear  upon  him. 

•*  Imprinted  at  London  by  Richard  Johnes,  dwelling  at  the  Rose  and 
the  Crowne,  neerc  unto  Holborne  Bridge,  15S6. 


THE   STATE   OF   THE   COUNTRY.  229 

drunkenness,  indecency/  idleness,  hunting,  hawking,  and  dicing, 
to  be  table-swearers,  dancers,  liars,  and  false  dissemblers ;  while 
many  in  all  parts,  as  well  in  the  Province  of  York  as  in  that  of 
Canterbury,  notoriously  ministered,  or  pretended  to  minister,^ 
without  having  received  any  ordination  of  any  sort  or  kind. 
Illiterate,  ignorant,  and  uninstructed,  the  more  violent  and 
vulgar  they  were  in  frantically  denouncing  the  religion  of  their 
grandparents — w'omen  as  well  as  shopkeepers  joined  in  the  work^ 
— the  better  they  found  themselves  suited  to  the  depraved  taste 
or  religious  excitement  and  Calvinistic  blasphemy  of  the  multi- 
tude, and  the  greater  was  the  favour  shown  them  by  those 
ministers  of  the  queen  who  superintended  the  ancient  dioceses, 
and  were  officially  pledged  to  root  out  the  old  faith.  Infants  at 
this  time  were  no  longer  baptized,  as  many  old  parish  registers 
abundantly  show ;  while  the  Lord's  Supper  was  now  celebrated  at 
night,  and  Evening  Communion  introduced  by  these  "  Reforma- 
tion "  worthies.'*  The  most  rampant  revolutionary  utterances, 
often  ridiculous  in  themselves  when  not  painfully  blasphemous, 

^  In  January  1581,  Davye  Wood,  a  drunken  preacher,  scandalously  ill- 
treated  his  wife,  and  when  two  women  interfered,  exposed  himself  to  them. — 
Vide  State  Papers,  Elir.abeth,  vol.  cxlvii.  n.  4. 

-  Archbishop  Parker,  had  some  years  previously,  i.e.  in  1575,  inquired 
"  whether  any  have  intruded  themselves  and  presumed  to  exercise  any  kind 
of  ministry  loithont  imposition  of  hands  and  /awful  caliing  !>}'  ordinary 
authority,  and  whether  any  admitted  h\i\.  io  ded^conuQ  nsnrpe  the  ojiee  of  the 
minister.  Item,  whether  any  lay  persons  take  upon  them  to  read  openly  in 
the  congregation  Divine  Service  in  any  church,  chappie,  or  oratorie,  without 
there  be  thereunto  upon  some  urgent  cause  or  great  necessity  for  a  time 
licensed  by  the  ordinary.  Whether  such  have  been  allowed,  and  how  long 
ihey  have  served,  and  whether  any  of  them  have  taken  upon  them  to 
solemnise  matrimony,  or  to  minister  any  Sacrament." — Parkers  Articles  of 
Enquiry,  1575.  London,  John  Daye.  It  is  evident,  therefore,  from  the 
early  years  of  Queen  Elizabeth's  reign,  that  the  greatest  laxity  had  prevailed  ; 
and  that,  in  fact,  ordination  by  a  bishop  was  not  thought  at  all  necessary  to 
enable  a  person  to  hold  an  ecclesiastical  benefice. 

^  The  common  people  of  England  were  wiser  than  the  wisest  of  the  nation  ; 
for  here  the  very  women  and  shopkeepers  were  able  to  judge  of  predestina- 
tion and  determine  what  laws  were  to  be  made  concerning  Church  govern- 
ment ;  and  then  what  were  fit  to  be  made  or  abolisht :  that  they  were  more 
able  (or,  at  least,  thought  so)  to  raise  and  determine  perplext  cases  of 
conscience  than  the  wisest  of  the  most  learned  colleges  in  Italy  :  that  men  of 
the  slightest  learning,  and  the  most  ignorant  of  the  common  people,  were 
mad  for  a  new,  or  super,  or  re- reformation  of  religion." — Quoted  in  Isaac 
Walton's  Life  of  Kichard  Hooker, 

■*  "  Baptizing  of  infants,  although  confessed  by  themselves  to  have  been 
continued  ever  sithence  the  very  Apostles'  own  times,  yet  they  altogether 
condemned.  .  .  .  The  Eucharist  they  received  (pretending  our  Lord  and 
Saviour's  example)  after  supper." — Hooker's  Preface,  p.  1S6,  vol.  i.,  Hooker's 
Works,  Ed.  Keble.     Oxford,  1845. 


230         THE   CHURCH    UNDER   QUEEN    ELIZABETH. 

were  sometimes  mistaken  by  the  open-mouthed  and  deeply 
impressed  Hsteners  for  special  revelations  from  the  Divine  Spirit 
of  Truth.  Frantic  prophets,  with  staff  and  scroll  and  lying  lips, 
jabbered  of  things  sacred  without  any  regard  for  sense  and 
decency,  or  thundered  forth  curses  and  anathemas  for  the  Chief 
Bishop  of  Christendom  ;  while  the  true  glad  tidings  of  salvation, 
which  had  cheered  the  hearts  of  thousands  in  life,  and  comforted 
the  way-worn  and  weary  in  death  for  well-nigh  ten  centuries, 
were  rejected  with  contumely  and  scorn. 


CHAPTER  VIII. 

In  the  summer  of  1583,  as  already  briefly  recorded,  Edmund 
Grindal,  who,  by  the  queen's  favour,  had  been  Primate  of  all 
England  for  nine  years,  had  gone  to  his  last  account  in  the 
palace  of  Croydon.  A  Cumberland  man,  educated  at  Cam- 
bridge and  patronised  by  Ridley,  he  was  always  puritanically 
inclined,  differing  in  but  few  particulars  from  the  ordinary  herd 
of  commonplace  Elizabethan  prelates.  The  so-called  "  prophesy- 
ings"  already  referred  to,  found  in  him  a  sincere  and  bold 
admirer.  These  "religious  exercises"  had  largely  aided  in 
making  confusion  worse  confounded  all  over  the  country  ;  having 
directly  tended  to  degrade  religion,  to  extend  frivolous  and 
profitless  controversies,  to  foster  self-delusions,  and  even  to  en- 
danger social  order,  by  bringing  all  authority  into  contempt  and 
disrepute.  The  excitement  they  sometimes  produced  was  in 
itself  inherently  mischievous,  as  the  queen  and  some  of  her 
advisers  had  good  cause  for  believing.  But  Grindal,  having  in  a 
bold  and  outspoken  letter  declined  to  put  down  the  pestilent 
discussions  in  question,  though  expressly  ordered  to  do  so  by  the 
Supreme  Governess  herself,  was  promptly  and  duly  suspended 
from  his  archiepiscopal  office  without  further  ado.  The  royal 
lady  who  had  conferred  that  dignity  upon  him,  thus  temporarily 
took  it  away  again,  without  direct  charge  or  any  trial,  to  his 
great  annoyance  and  chagrin.  He  was  furthermore  peremptorily 
commanded  to  remain  a  prisoner  in  his  own  palace  in  Surrey — 
an  order  at  once  dutifully  obeyed ;  and,  had  it  not  been  for  his 
death,  there  is  good  reason  to  believe  that  he  would  have  been 
shortly  evicted  absolutely.  The  poor  perplexed  man,  who  had 
then  grown  blind,  physically  as  well  as  morally,  fretted  sorely 
over  the  disorders  of  the  time  and  because  of  his  punishment ; 
some  affirming  that,  exhausted  with  worry  and  worn-out  with 
disappointment,  he  died  of  a  broken  heart.  Certainly  the  exist- 
ing state  of  public  affairs,  when  contrasted  with  the  harmony  and 
unity  of  the  days  when  he  was  a  Cumberland  youth,  happy  amid 
the  hills  and  lakes  of  a  beautiful  country,  could  not  fail  to  have' 


232  THE   CHURCH   UNDER   QUEEN    ELIZABETH. 

Struck  him  keenly.  No  one  remembered  him  after  death.  He 
who  in  the  spirit  of  a  pagan  had  distinctly  forbidden  prayers  for 
departed  Christian  souls/  was  himself  soon  and  altogether  for- 
gotten when  dead  and  buried. 

The   following,   relating    to    this    period,    from    an    old   and 
authentic  record  of  persecution,  tells  its  own  tale  : — 

"  Mrs.  Anne  Landers,  in  one  of  the  cruel  searches  which  the 
Lord  President  did  continually  cause  to  be  made  in  and  about 
York,  was  apprehended  for  her  religion,  together  with  many 
other  gentlewomen,  and  committed  prisoner  to  Ousebridge. 
Her  husband,  an  attorney,  was  apprehended  for  going  about  to 
defend  his  wife  by  law,  and  sent  prisoner  to  London,  and  con- 
demned to  the  pillory ;  from  whence,  fearing  the  infamy  of  that 
punishment,  he  wrote  to  his  wife  to  yield  somewhat  to  the  times 
in  matter  of  religion,  which  was  a  cause  to  her  of  unspeakable 
grief  and  abundant  tears  for  many  days.  At  length  she  wrote 
back  to  her  husband  her  resolute  mind  to  suffer  all  manner  of 
crosses  rather  than  to  offend  Him  Who  had  died  upon  the  Cross 
for  her,  and  desiring  him  to  do  the  like ;  and  so  he  did,  suffering 
patiently  the  punishment  of  the  pillory  for  the  cause  above 
mentioned.  After  this  she  had  liberty  for  awhile;  but,  being 
taken  the  second  time,  she  was  committed  to  York  Castle  about 
the  year  1579,  where  she  did  much  good  by  example  of  her  godly 
life  and  charitable  works.  From  thence  she  was  removed  to  the 
castle  of  Hull.  The  terror  and  fearful  report  of  the  hard  and 
cruel  usage  there  of  Catholics  did  not  dismay  her,  being  suddenly 
separated  from  her  husband  and  children,  and  committed  to  a 
cruel  and  unmerciful  keeper.  There  she  lived  five  or  six  years, 
suffering  with  great  constancy,  patience,  and  Christian  fortitude, 
and  comforting  all  other  afflicted  Catholics,  her  fellow-prisoners, 
and  relieving  them  with  great  alms.  At  length  she  was  called 
for  by  warrant  to  London  to  the  same  prison  where  her  husband 
was,  where  she  lived  as  godly  as  she  had  done  before ;  and  lastly 
they  both  departed  this  life  in  the  Counter  [or  the  Clink].' - 

During  all  these  years  nothing  could  have  exceeded  the  dis- 
order and  confusion  which  existed.     Everything  was  out  of  gear. 

■^  Grindal,  in  1571,  had  specially  enjoined  in  his  IhJiiucHoiis  "that  neither 
on  All  Saints'  Day,  alter  evening  ]irayer,  nor  the  next  day  after  (of  late  called 
All  Souls'  Day),  there  be  any  ringing  at  all  other  than  to  common  prayer, 
when  the  same  shall  hapi)en  to  fall  upon  the  Sunday.  And  that  no  months' 
minds  or  yearly  commemorations  of  the  dead,  nor  any  other  superstitious 
ceremonies  be  observed  or  used,  which  tend  to  the  maintenance  either  ot 
prayer  for  the  dead  or  of  the  popish  purgatory." — London  :  W.  Serres,  1571- 

-  T/i€  Troubles  of  Our  Catholic  Fortfathers,  3rd  Series,  p.  323. 
London,  1S77. 


STATE   OF   THE   CHURCH   FABRICS.  233 

Restlessness  was  universal.  Men  both  unordained  and  un- 
licensed still  continued  to  officiate.^  The  old  order  of  things 
had  been  duly  and  deliberately  destroyed  by  brute  force ; 
though  whether  this  could  have  been  done  unless  much  wicked- 
ness and  corruption,  much  self-seeking,  worldliness,  and  in- 
difference had  existed,-  seems  more  than  doubtful. 

The  state  of  the  fabrics  of  the  churches,  and  the  nature  of  the 
services  in  them  had  rapidly  gone  from  bad  to  worse.  Many 
more  of  the  former  were  then  becoming  ruinous.  In  some 
dioceses,  notoriously  those  of  Oxford  and  Norwich,  numerous 
churches  and  chapels  were  deliberately  allowed  to  become  utterly 
desolate.  Men  could  not  be  secured  to  serve  them,  for  the  new 
owners  of  the  great  tithes  were  often  only  eminent  for  their  super- 
fine rapacit)'.  In  certain  of  the  churches,  no  service  of  any  sort 
or  kind  had  been  held  for  nearly  twelve  years.  There  was  often 
no  one  either  to  look  after  the  fabric,  to  keep  up  the  straggling 
hedges  or  impaired  fences  of  the  churchyards  (in  which  swine  ^ 
often  gr-ubbed  up  the  graves) ;  no  one  to  let  fresh  air  into  the 
building,  or  to  preserve  the  remaining  fittings  from  the  alternate 
evils  of  mustiness  and  damp  on  the  one  hand,  or  of  dry-rot  and 
pilferers  on  the  other.  Doors  at  last  lost  their  rusted  hinges  and 
imperfect  fastenings  ;  dust  accumulated ;  storied  windows  were 
broken  ;  starlings  found  a  shelter  under  the  roofs;  spiders  undis- 
turbed spun  their  webs  in  convenient  angles ;  bell-towers  were 
turned  into  dove-cotes  and  places  for  breeding  pigeons,  by  some 
local  yeoman.  The  bells,  no  longer  needed,  were  sold — for  they 
brought  in  something  ;  the  lead  was  stripped  of  the  aisle  roofs ; 
sometimes  the  chancel  was  altogether  destroyed,  so  as  to  avoid 

^  "Whether  any  doe  presume  to  saie  service  in  your  church  or  chappell 
openly  luho  is  not  a  lawfull  7)iinister  and  sufficiently  licensed  by  the  ordinarie 
or  this  archdeaconrie  under  the  seal  of  his  office?" — Visi/afioii  Articles  of 
John  King,  Archdeacon  of  Nottingham.     Oxford,  Joseph  Barnes. 

'•^  As  the  Rev.  T.  E.  Bridgett  so  frankly  admits: — "I  cannot  forget  that 
Our  Lady's  Dowry  in  England  was  not  destroyed  by  an  incursion  of  un- 
baptized  heathen  nor  by  Protestants  brought  up  from  infancy  in  anti-Catholic 
prejudice,  and  taught  to  connect  the  honour  of  the  Son  in  some  strange 
fashion  with  the  dishonour  or  neglect  of  the  Mother.  No,  alas  !  the  enemies 
of  Our  Lady  had  been  children  of  the  Catholic  Church." — Our  Lady's 
Dowry.     London,  1875. 

"  There  is  a  peculiar  inscription  on  the  outer  wall  of  Chiswick  churchyard, 
thus: — "  This  wall  was  made  at  ye  charges  of  ye  right  honorable  and  truelle 
pious  Lord  Francis  Russell,  Earle  of  Bedford,  out  of  true  zeale  and  care  for 
ye  keeping  of  this  churchyard  and  ye  wardrobe  of  Godd's  saints,  whose  bodies 
lay  herein  buryed,  from  violating  by  swine  and  other  prophanation.  Wit- 
nesseth,  W.  Walker,  1623."  This  was  Francis,  fourth  Earl  of  Bedford,  who 
married  Katherine,  daughter  of  Giles  Brydges,  third  Lord  Chandos,  and  was 
the  father  of  the  first  Duke  of  Bedford, 


234         THE   CHURCH    UNDER   QUEEN    ELIZABETH. 

the  cost  and  difficulty  of  repairing  it ;  wliile  in  certain  cases  these 
combined  evils  eventually  led  to  the  absolute  destruction  of 
whole  fabrics.  So  that  even  now  in  many  parishes  it  is  impos- 
sible for  any  but  the  duly-initiated  to  trace  even  the  foundation 
stones  on  some  secluded  slope  of  what  until  Queen  Elizabeth's 
day  had  been  a  fair  and  stately  house  of  God.  Many  such  at 
the  hands  of  the  "godly"  were  wholly  "reformed"  off  the  face 
of  the  earth.^ 

It  is  now  necessary  to  deal  at  some  length  with  one  of  the 
darkest  events  of  Elizabeth's  reign,  —  bearing  as  it  does  so 
directly  on  the  ecclesiastical  policy  of  her  advisers.  How  the 
judicial  murder  of  a  royal  guest  and  kinswoman  was  compassed 
by  the  English  queen  shall  now  be  told. 

The  well-meant  advice  which  Catharine  de'  Medici  had  given 
to  Queen  Mary  to  return  to  Scotland  turned  out  to  be  most 
unfortunate.  Her  long  minority  enabled  rival  factions  to  have 
brought  the  country  into  a  state  bordering  upon  civil  war,  while 
deeds  of  infamy  and  ferocity  were  done  there,  with  scarcely  a 
parallel  in  history.  John  Knox,  the  notorious  apostate  monk, 
was  then  carrying  out  what  some  imaginative  persons  still  term  a 
"  Reformation " — the  chief  consequent  effects  of  which  have 
been  schism,  heresy,  disorder,  misbelief,  and  eventually  infidelity.- 
Subsequently  after  many  trials,  personal  as  well  as  political, 
Queen  Mary  became  a  prisoner  in  the  hands  of  her  own  subjects. 
When  she  succeeded  in  escaping  from  their  prison  walls,  and  at 
Elizabeth's  invitation  came  to  England,  she  found  herself  only 
too  secure  in  the  keeping  of  her  wily  and  deadly  enemy. ^ 

^  In  the  diocese  of  Oxford  (though  portions  were  then  in  that  of  Lincoln) 
may  he  mentioned  the  churches  of  North  Weston,  Kasington,  Quarrendon, 
Crcsjow,  Mursley,  Littlecote  near  Stewkiey,  Medmenham,  Saunderton, 
Deyncourt  near  Woburn,  and  Rowsliam  in  \\'ingrave,  as  ruined  or  razed. 
The  late  Rev.  W.  Hastings  Kelke,  in  a  paper  on  the  Desecrated  Churches  in 
Bucks  {/records  of  Bucks,  vol.  iii.  p.  127),  asserts  that  the  whole  number  in 
Buckinghamshire  alone  may  be  estimated  at  no  less  than  sixty.  The  Oxford 
diocese  now  also  comprises  Berkshire  as  well  as  Oxfordshire.  Supposing 
that  each  of  such  churclies  woukl  have  accommodated  a  hundred  worshippers 
(a  k)w  calculation),  this  destruction  thus  robbed  the  people  of  six  thousand 
sittings. 

-  In  almost  all  town  parishes  in  Scotland  there  are  in  the  present  day  at 
lea'-t  three  buildings  used  for  preaching  and  prayer  according  to  the  rules  and 
rights  of  the  Established  religion,  the  Free  Church  religion,  and  that  of  the 
United  Presbyterians  ;  but  these  all  differ.  Independent  of  these  leading 
sects,  there  are  many  others  of  inferior  importance  and  influence,  more  or 
less  Christian  in  certain  of  their  tenets. 

•'  " /Av-  iiitprisoniiieut  can  only  be  jttslified  as  an  act  of  State  necessity. 
There  is  no  other  plea.  To  have  opened  her  prison  doors  and  bade  her  go 
forth  free  would  have  made  her  the  active  chief  and  rallying-point  of  Catholic 


NATIONAL   INDEPENDENCE.  235 

It  was  the  peculiar  and  almost  unique  position  of  Queen 
Elizabeth  which  from  the  outset  of  her  reign  gave  her  advisers 
such  an  obvious  advantage,  in  pressing  their  reforms  and  revolu- 
tions upon  the  English  people.  Edward  VI.  was  dead ;  Mary 
Tudor  was  dead ;  and,  as  Elizabeth  was  notoriously  illegitimate 
both  in  fact  and  law,  Mary  Queen  of  Scots  was,  without  any 
doubt,  the  direct  and  immediate  heiress  to  the  throne  of  England, 
and  was  also  wife  of  Francis,  heir  to  the  king  of  France.  The 
English  people,  who  knew  all  this  well  and  accurately  enough, 
saw  at  once  that  their  island-honie  seemed  thus  more  than  likely 
to  become  a  mere  province  of  France — a  humiliation  loo  great 
to  be  borne.  Thus  many  practical  questions,  as  they  arose  in 
turn  during  Elizabeth's  reign,  were  considered  by  politicians  with 
this  grave  alternative  directly  staring  them  in  the  face.  No  other 
method  of  treating  these  questions  than  that  adopted  could  have 
so  successfully  won  the  confidence  of  the  great  cities  and  centres 
of  renewed  life.  On  the  subject  of  national  independence,  more- 
over, the  husbandman  and  hind  were  as  much  united  in  senti- 
ment with  the  merchant  and  the  townsman  as  Lord  Burghley 
could  have  desired.  The  formal  frivolities  which  were  tolerated 
regarding  the  queen's  matrimonial  arrangements ;  the  numerous 
reasonable  and  unreasonable  proposals  for  her  royal  hand ;  the 
anxious  debates  round  the  council-board  concerning  the  different 
candidates — juvenile,  antique,  or  adventurous — who  came  forward 
for  the  honour  of  becoming  her  husband,  all  arose  from  an  exact 
knowledge  of  the  situation's  gravity.  Therefore  it  came  to  pass, 
not  unreasonabl}^,  that  so  many  leading  men  alike  stood  forward 
as  active  opponents  of  Mary  Stuart  and  warm  supporters  of 
Queen  Elizabeth.  It  was  not  at  the  outset  (when  men  began  to 
take  sides)  a  choice  of  two  religions,  the  old  and  the  new,  the 
Catholic  and  the  Protestant,  for  nine-tenths  of  the  people  were  at 
heart  Catholics  ;  but  it  was  a  great  national  and  political  question, 
in  which  every  Englishman  was  naturally  and  deeply  interested, 
viz.  whether  the  kingdom  should  become  subject  to  foreigners, 
the  Scotch  and  the  French,  or  retain  its  ancient  independence  at 
any  cost  under  Elizabeth.  This  position  of  affairs  gave  notorious 
advantages  to  Burghley  in  carrying  out  his  anti-Catholic  policy, 
and  he  was  certainly  not  slow  to  use  them. 

For  more  than  eighteen  long  and  wearisome  years  the  Queen 
of  Scotland,  who  came  as  a  guest,  had  been  kept  in  captivity. 

disaffection,  and  of  the  power  of  Rome  against  England.  The  same  cause 
compelled  her  execution." — Introduction,  p.  26,  to  Documents  from  Simancas 
relating  to  the  Jxcign  of  Queen  Elizabeth,  edited  by  Spencer  Hall,  F.S.A. 
London,  1865. 


236  THE   CHURCH    UNDER   QUEEN    ELIZABETH. 

The  treatment  Her  Majesty  received,  judged  of,  not  by  liistorical 
romances  of  anti-Christian  or  Protestant  historians,  called  upon 
to  bolster  up  a  bad  cause,  but  by  the  actual  MS.  letters  of  those 
more  immediately  engaged  in  harassing  her,  is  such  that,  after 
the  lapse  of  three  centuries  and  more,  the  queen's  trials  stand  out 
from  the  thick  darkness  around,  and  she  becomes  deserving  of 
the  truest  and  most  profound  sympathy.  She  was  often  treated 
most  insolently  and  cruelly  by  her  keepers.  Beset  with  spies, 
and  surrounded  with  enemies  anxious  to  please  Elizabeth,  Queen 
Mary's  life  must  have  been  a  burden.  On  one  occasion,  Amias 
Poulet,  her  gaoler,  because  she  refused  to  open  her  private  cabinet 
for  his  inspection,  threatened  to  break  it  open  with  bars.^  Upon 
this  the  queen  produced  the  keys.  Poulet  then  rifled  it,  and 
took  possession  of  its  contents  for  his  mistress. 

At  the  age  of  forty-three  Queen  Mary's  hair  had  become 
perfectly  white.  Yet  her  noble  Christian  virtues  of  constancy 
and  fortitude  were  always  remarkable ;  and,  by  the  grace  of  the 
Most  Highest,  her  spirit  never  gave  way.  Many  influential 
foreigners  were  horrified  at  the  treatment  she  received,  and  so 
expressed  themselves,  to  the  intense  annoyance  of  Elizabeth. 
Queen  Mary's  allies  and  partisans,  both  in  Scotland  and  England 
(as  they  were  bound  to  do),  made  several  attempts  to  aid  her, — 
they  would  have  been  unworthy  of  the  honour  of  her  friendship 
had  they  done  less, — but  their  plans  were  either  ill-laid,  or,  by 
the  instrumentality  of  government  spies  and  false  friends,  were 
cleverly  defeated. 

Eventually  Sir  Francis  Walslngham  succeeded  in  entangling  a 
number  of  young  Catholic  gentlemen — Salisbury,  Tichbourne, 
Travers,  Barnewall,  Tilney,  AVindsor,  and  others'- — in  a  scheme 
which  was  known  as  "  Babington's  Plot,"  and  which  apparently 
involved  a  plan  for  dethroning  Elizabeth.^     Pooley  and  Gilbert 

^  "  After  many  denials,  many  exclamations,  and  many  bitter  words  against 
you  (I  say  nothing  of  her  railing  against  myself),  with  flat  affirmation  that 
Her  Majesty  might  have  her  body,  but  her  heart  she  should  never  have ; 
refusing  to  deliver  the  key  of  her  cabinet,  I  called  my  servants  and  sent  for 
bars  to  break  open  the  door,  whereupon  she  yielded  ;  and  causing  the  door 
to  be  opened,  I  found  there  in  the  coffers  mentioned  in  Mr.  Ward's  remem- 
brance five  rolls  of  canvas  containing  five  thousand  French  crowns,  and  two 
leather  bags,  whereof  the  one  had  in  gold  one  hundred  and  four  pounds,  two 
shillings,"  etc.  —  The  Letttr-book  of  Sir  Amias  Poulet. — Fotilet  to  Walsingham, 
p.  2S9.     London,  1874. 

-  For  an  account  of  their  trial,  %qq  State  Trials,  vol.  i.  jiji.  64-71.  London, 
1720. 

•*  Babington  had  been  in  France  recently,  and  had  brought  letters  for 
Mary,  and,  in  return,  she  is  stated  in  his  indictment  to  have  written  letters  to 
him,  '  in  which  she  not  only  signified  that  she  allowed  and  approved  of  such 


BABINGTON  S   PLOT.  23/ 

Giffard,  though  with  other  professed  sentiments  and  trusted  by 
Mary's  friends,  were  the  secret  agents  of  the  Secretary  of  State, 
and,  as  the  plot  developed,  deliberately  betrayed  the  trust  reposed 
in  them.  Letters  which  passed  amongst  the  Scottish  queen's 
allies  were  opened  by  Thomas  Phillips,  a  noted  reader  of  cypher- 
writing,  engaged  by  Walsingham,  and  an  agent  thoroughly  adroit 
in  the  art  of  counterfeiting  seals ;  they  were  read,  copied,  and 
then  sent  on  to  the  person  for  whom  they  were  intended,  so  that 
evidence  of  the  plot  in  writing  might  be  duly  obtained.  By  such 
tactics  Walsingham  secured  such  information  as  enabled  him  in 
some  way  to  connect  Queen  Mary  with  Babington,  and  eventu- 
ally to  bring  about  her  death  on  the  scaffold.  Babington  and 
his  thirteen  allies  were  accused  of  concocting  a  plot  to  murder 
the  queen,  and  of  a  conspiracy  to  raise  a  rebellion  in  favour  of 
Mary.  Seven  of  the  prisoners  acknowledged  their  guilt ;  of  the 
other  seven,  five  were  convicted.  Two  successive  days,  Septem- 
ber 2oth  and  21st,  were  appointed  for  their  execution.  Their 
punishment  was  to  be  drawn,  hung,  and  quartered,  and  this,  it  is 
to  be  feared,  was  done  with  the  deliberate  intention  of  inflicting 
as  much  pain  as  possible.^  The  queen  degraded  herself  by 
expressing  a  particular  wish  that  they  might  suffer  some  kind  of 
death  more  barbarous  and  excruciating  than  the  ordinary  horrors 
referred  to.  To  this  it  was  objected,  by  the  law  officers,  that 
such  an  alteration  or  addition  would  be  illegal.  She  then  con- 
sented that  the  existing  law  should  have  its  course,  on  the  express 
condition  that  the  executions  were  "  protracted  to  the  extremitie 
of  payne  "  in  the  sufferers,  and  in  the  face  of  the  populace.  On 
the  first  day  the  hanging  of  each  was  by  deliberate  intention  a 
mere  pretence,  for  they  were  only  half-choked  or  strangled  a  little, 
and  then  promptly  cut  down  alive.  The  detailed  cruelties  of  the 
executioners  which  ensued,  with  their  savage  slowness,  and 
bloody  knives,  were  endured  by  these  generous  youths  with  noble 
patience  ;  but  the  populace,  horribly  disgusted,  became  so  excited 
at  such  deliberate  barbarity,  that,  on  the  morrow,  the  others  were 
hung  till  they  were  quite  dead,  and  then  dismembered,  disem- 
bowelled, and  quartered  as  usual. 

To  return  to  Queen  Mary.     Some  of  the  letters  made  use  of, 

intended  treasons,  but  therein  also  urged  and  solicited  Babington  and  his 
confederates,  by  promises  of  great  reward,  to  fulfil  the  same."  The  truth  of 
this  assertion,  as  regards  any  design  on  the  life  of  Elizabeth,  is  very  doubtful  ; 
but  it  answered  the  purpose  of  the  framers  of  the  A<;sociation,  and  it  was 
forthwith  resolved  to  proceed  to  the  judicial  murder  of  the  unhappy  prisoner. 
Her  secretaries  (Nau  and  Curie)  and  her  papers  were  seized,  and  both  sub- 
jected to  rigid  examination. 

1  See  Howell's  State  JYials,  vol.  i.  pp.  1126-115S. 


238         THE   CHURCH   UNDER   QUEEN    ELIZABETH. 

and  from  which  the  English  Council  acted,  were  no  doubt 
forgeries  ;  for  the  gospellers  and  leaders  of  the  so-called  "  Refor- 
mation "  were  adepts  at  the  art  of  forgery.  And  it  seems  quite 
reasonable  that,  if  Babington  and  his  allies  had  determined  on 
accomplishing  that  of  which  they  were  ^ suspected,  they  would  at 
least  have  exercised  ordinary  prudence  in  their  plans  and 
arrangements. 

The  Earl  of  Leicester,  who  was  not  without  experience  on  the 
subject,  had  recommended  that  the  Queen  of  the  Scots  should  be 
secretly  poisoned,  and  had  even  sent  a  Protestant  minister  to  Sir 
Francis  W'alsingham  to  prove  logically  that,  in  accordance  with 
the  teaching  of  Scripture,  a  queen  who  is  an  idolatress  deserves 
nothing  short  of  death. ^  Elizabeth,  fearing  the  effect  of  a 
public  trial  and  execution  of  the  Queen  of  Scotland,  com- 
plained that  Sir  Amias  Poulet  and  Sir  Drue  Drury,  did  not 
somehow  or  another  manage  adroitly  and  secretly  to  shorten 
the  life  of  Mary ;  but,  as  these  two  knightly  gaolers  (as  will 
be  shown  further  on)  appeared  horrified  at  the  suggested  idea 
of  assassination,  there  was  nothing  left  but  a  trial  and  an  exe- 
cution. 

On  the  nth  of  October  1586,  preparations  for  the  form  of  a 
trial  were  commenced  and  gone  through  at  Fotheringhay  Castle 
in  Northamptonshire.  Includmg  the  Lord  Chancellor  and 
Burghley  the  Lord  Treasurer,  Henry  Grey,  Earl  of  Kent,  and 
George  Talbot,  Earl  of  Shrewsbury,  no  less  than  twenty-five 
peers  arrived  as  actors  in  the  tragedy.  A  letter  from  Queen 
Elizabeth  was  delivered  to  Mary,  announcing  the  purport  of 
these  formal  proceedings,  who,  on  seeing  it,  composedly  remarked 
that  she  was  sorry  to  be  charged  with  that  of  which  she  was 
innocent;  and  reminded  those  present  that  she  too  was  a  queen, 
and  in  no  way  amenable  to  foreign  jurisdiction.  Her  Majesty 
requested  the  Chancellor  to  explain  what  -Avas  meant  by  his 
mistress's  extraordinary  and  inaccurate  expression,  that  she  was 
"  living  in  England  under  Elizabeth's  protection,"  but  he  evaded 
giving  any  answer  to  so  pertinent  and  difficult  a  question.  For 
some  time  she  refused  to  plead ;  but,  after  Sir  Christopher 
Hatton  had  suggested  that  with  some  persons  such  action  might 
imply  guilt,  she  reluctantly  consented  to  defend  herself.  This 
last  resolution  was  surely  a  mistake. 

The  formal  charge  was  two-fold  :  first,  that  she  had  conspired 

1  The  Protestant  literature  of  the  period  (too  profane  and  offensive  to 
quote)  is  all  based  on  the  gross  assumption  that  "  Eucharistic  Adoration,"  as 
it  is  now  termed  by  certain  English  Churchmen,  is  flagrant  idolatry  ;  and  that 
idolaters  ought  not  to  be  suffered  to  live. 


MARY,  QUEEN   OF   SCOTS.  239 

with  traitors  and  foreigners  to  procure  the  invasion  of  the  reahn  ; 
and  secondly,  that  she  had  hkewise  conspired  to  bring  about  the 
death  of  the  queen.  The  first  charge  Mary  dechned  to  allow, 
for  it  was  obviously  inadmissible.  English  statutes  could  not  in 
any  way  bind  one  who  was  not  an  English  subject,  but  the 
sovereign  of  another  realm.  She,  as  the  Queen  of  Scots,  was  the 
equal  of  Elizabeth ;  and  between  such  there  was  no  other  law 
than  the  law  of  nature.  That  law  fully  justified  her  in  seeking 
to  secure  her  liberty.  And  who,  after  all  these  late  years  of 
trial  and  sufferings,— what  man  could  blame  her,  if  she  received 
such  aid  as  had  been  tendered  her,  in  the  hope  of  securing 
her  deliverance  from  an  unjust  and  shameful  captivity?  With 
regard  to  the  second  charge,  she  firmly  and  emphatically  denied 
it  with  tears ;  calling  God  the  Trinity  to  witness  of  its  utter 
falseness  and  of  her  own  innocency.  Here,  be  it  noted,  that 
only  copies  of  the  intercepted  letters  in  the  Babington  case  were 
produced ;  the  originals  were  not  forthcoming,  nor  was  the 
accuracy  of  the  copies  used  either  asserted  or  proved.  Friend- 
less, and  almost  alone,  this  poor  lady,  worn  with  sufferings  and 
sorrow,  had  been  in  confinement  for  no  less  than  nineteen  years. 
With  no  knowledge  of  law,  and  unaccustomed  to  judicial  pro- 
cesses, she  was  no  match  for  the  low-minded  upstarts  and 
unscrupulous  lawyers  who  pretended  to  sit  in  judgment  upon 
her.  All  that  trickery  could  accomplish,  forgery  compass,^  and 
contrivance  devise,  was  devised  and  accomplished  to  secure  her 
death.  Intense  hatred  of  the  Christian  religion,  and  a  fear  of 
its  being  restored  again  in  its  integrity,  had  much  to  do  in  giving 
point  and  purpose  to  the  aims  of  the  commissioners.^  Moreover, 
this  desolate  lady  was  not  only  refused  the  aid  of  all  counsel  or 
witnesses  in  her  defence,  but  even  of  her  own  papers,  which, 
after  her  caskets  and  coffers  had  been  secretly  broken  open  and 
rifled,  were  stolen  and  denied  her.  As  regards  certain  copies  of 
letters  produced,  "she  protested," 'as  Lord  Burghley  himself 
admits,    "that  the  points  of  the  letters  which    concerned   the 

1  "That  Babington's  conspiracy  was  with  with  the  privity  {ciivi  scientuY)  of 
Mary." — Sentence  of  the  Commissioners. 

-  "  Forgeiy  (I  blush  for  the  honour  of  Protestantism  while  I  write  it)  seems 
to  have  been  peculiar  to  the  Reformed.  ...  I  look  in  vain  for  one  of  those 
accursed  outrages  of  imposition  amongst  the  disciples  of  Popery. "^Dr. 
Whitaker's  Vindication  of  Queen  Mary,  vol.  iii.  p.  2.  And  again,  the  same 
writer,  on  pp.  45,  46,  and  54,  writes:  "  Forgery  seems  to  have  been  the 
peculiar  disease  of  Protestantism,"  etc.,  to  the  same  effect. 

3  As  Camden  put  on  record  :  when  Lord  Buckhursc  pronounced  judgment 
upon  the  queen,  he  clearly  admitted  as  much,  for  he  bade  Her  Majesty 
"look  for  no  mercy,  seeing  that  her  life  was  incompatible  with  the  safety  of 
the  Protestant  religion." 


240         THE   CHURCH   UNDER   QUEEN    ELIZABETH. 

practice  against  the  Queen's  Majesty's  person,  were  never  by  her 
[Mary]  written,  nor  of  her  knowledge."  ^  Eabington  alone  could 
have  told  the  truth,  and  him  they  had  already  put  to  death.  The 
attempts  made  by  Walsingham  and  others  to  inculpate  Mary's 
own  servants  and  attendants  failed.  Some  of  these  on  oath 
denied  the  perverted  interpretation  put  upon  their  words.  The 
Court  was  then  adjourned  to  Westminster,  where,  on  the  29th  of 
October,  after  much  legal  chicanery  and  contemptible  shuffling, 
they  found  the  Queen  of  Scots  guilty. 

On  the  following  day,  Sir  Amias  Poulet  informed  her  that  as 
she  was  now  dead  to  the  law,  she  had  no  right  to  any  of  the 
insignia  of  royalty.  He,  therefore,  made  her  servants  remove 
the  cloth  of  estate,  dais,  and  canopy ;  and  then  with  ill-bred  and 
unmannerly  insolence,  not  looked  for  from  a  Somersetshire  gentle- 
man, he  covered  himself  and  sat  down  in  the  queen's  presence. 
In  place  of  the  royal  arms  of  Scotland,  the  queen's  servants,  at 
her  command,  put  up  some  engravings  of  Our  Saviour's  Passion 
and  death,  which  Poulet  wrote  of  as  "stuff."  He  further  told 
the  queen,  that  "as  a  woman  in  her  situation  could  not  need 
further  recreation,"  he  should  at  once  remove  her  billiard-table, 
which  was  done.  As  she  informed  the  Archbishop  of  Glasgow, 
she  felt  keenly  these  premeditated  and  unworthy  insults;  and 
wrote  to  Elizabeth,  calling  such  action  useless  cruelty. 

No  notice  seems  to  have  been  taken  of  the  Scottish  queen's 
reasonable  complaint.  A  wise  cunning  secured  its  being  ig- 
nored. 

Elizabeth,  however,  on  learning  Avhat  the  commissioners  had 
done,  appeared  to  be  extremely  rtluctant  to  go  a  step  further  and 
to  sign  the  death-warrant,  as  well  she  might  be ;  for  the  whole 
proceedings  had  been  conducted  on  the  principle  that  as  Mary, 
who  had  been  the  English  queen's  guest,  was  thus  her  prisoner, 
she  was  justified,  now  that  Mary  was  in  her  power,  in  taking 
away  her  life.  Both  Burghley  and  Walsingham  saw,  and  put 
their  opinions  on  record,''  that  without  such  a  step  they  them- 
selves stood  in  grave  danger — as  no  doubt  would  have  been  the 
case — if  the  old  Catholic  party  could  by  any  means  have  once 
again  secured  the  upper  hand.  Throughout  Europe  a  thrill  of 
horror  ran,  when  the  proceedings  at  Fotheringhay — for  a  short  time 
kept  secret  and  for  a  much  longer  misrejjresented — were  first 
made  known  ;  and  it  reijuired  all  the  arts  of  dissimulation  and 

1  Lord  Burgliley  to  Secretary  Davison,  October  15. — E///s'  Letters,  pp. 
I11-112. 

-  State  Papers.  Sir  F.  Walsingham  to  Lord  Shrewsliury,  October  6th, 
and  Lord  Burghley  to  Lord  Leicester,  dated  October  26th,  15S6. 


TREATMENT   OF   QUEEN    MARY.  24T 

double-dealing  of  Elizabeth's  confidential  advisers  to  remove  the 
bad  impression  which  these  illegal  and  unprecedented  proceed- 
ings ^  had  produced.  In  truth,  it  may  be  gravely  and  certainly 
doubted  whether  such  was  removed. 

But  for  Elizabeth's  hesitation  there  were  no  doubt  some 
grounds.  True,  the  Spanish  king  was  well  enough  engaged  in 
Flanders  ;  the  French  monarch,  greatly  perplexed  and  engaged 
with  religious  wars  at  home,  was  practically  powerless ;  but 
there  was  the  danger  of  driving  the  Catholics  and  Mary's  allies 
to  desperation,  as  well  as  some  dread  of  the  well-deserved 
infamy  which,  accurately  enough,  she  knew  would  cover  (as  it 
most  righteously  has  covered)  her  name,  because  of  this  iniquity. 
Elizabeth  herself  had  suggested  assassination,  but  it  had  been  of 
f  no  avail ;  her  friend  Leicester,  with  equal  futility,  had  hinted  at 
poison ;  but  neither  assassin  nor  poisoner  had  been  forthcoming. 
Anyhow,  therefore,  if  the  execution  must  take  place,  it  should 
be  done  either  privately  without  the  queen's  cognisance,  or  else 
in  response  to  a  specific  request  for  the  same  from  Parliament. 

This  was  planned  for,  and  soon  cleverly  arranged.  The  Lords 
and  Commons,  duly  manipulated  and  sufficiently  sanctified  by 
the  sacred  presence  of  six  grave  ministers  in  lawn  sleeves  and 
satin, '■^  joined  in  a  solemn  petition  that  the  sentence  of  the 
commissioners  might  speedily  be  carried  into  effect,  for  the 
honour  of  God  and  the  safety  and  glory  of  the  realm.  When, 
as  some  pointed  out,  idol-worshippers  and  ir;ass-mongers  com- 
bined  to   plot   against   the   Lord's    anointed,    it   was   certainly 

^  On  this  point  a  high-principled  author  of  the  last  century  thus  writes  : — 
"The  judges  in  Queen  Mary's  case  were  not  to  act  by  reasons  of  State,  bat 
by  rules  of  law  and  justice  ;  and  the  whole  course  of  the  proceedings,  in 
taking  the  confessions  of  men  who  were  executed,  and  might  have  been  kept 
alive  ;  of  persons  who  were  then  alive,  and  might  have  been  brought  to  the 
trial  ;  in  proving  letters  by  copies,  and  producing  no  originals  ;  in  condemn- 
ing a  sovereign  princess,  who  had  been  so  long  imprisoned  for  using  every 
means  (but  those  of  assassination,  which  were  not  proved)  to  recover  her 
liberty  ;  these  things  were  not  easily  reconcilable  to  the  laws  of  England,  or 
laws  of  nations  ;  and  therefore  I  am  glad  not  to  find  Lord  Willoughby's  name 
in  the  Commission." — Memoir  of  Peregrine  Bertie,  eleventh  Lord  IVilloughhy 
de  Eresby,  etc.,  p.  61,       London,  1838. 

-  Lord  Burghley  wrote  to  Davison,  as  follows,  on  the  9th  of  November 
1586:  —  "Yesterday,  in  the  Parliament,  grew  a  question  whether  it  was 
convenient  for  the  two  Archbishops  (Whitgift  and  Sandys)  and  four  other 
bishops  to  accompany  the  other  Lords  Temporal  in  their  petition  to  Her 
Majesty  for  execution  of  the  Scottish  Queen.  Some  scruple  I  had  whether 
Her  Majesty  would  like  it,  because  in  former  times  the  bishops  in  Parlia- 
ment were  wont  to  absent  themselves.  Yet  I  do  not  think  [it]  unlawful  for 
them  to  be  present  and  persuaders  in  such  causes,  as  the  execution  tend  to 
the  state  of  the  Church,  as  this  doth." — State  Papers,  Domestic,  Elizabeth, 
vol.  cxcv.  n.  1 1. 


242         THE   CHURCH   UNDER   QUEEN   ELIZABETH. 

time  to  act.  The  bishops  were  unctuous  in  their  phrases  and 
])ortentously  solemn  in  their  long  -  winded  warnings.  Their 
lordships,  as  they  asserted,  had  nothing  at  heart,  but  the  pure 
and  unadulterated  Gospel.  This  alone  was  their  comfort,  their 
hope,  and  their  reward.  As  the  speaker,  with  such  profound 
biblical  knowledge  impressively  pointed  out.  Her  Majesty 
should  beware  of  foolishly  and  wickedly  imitating  Saul,  who  had 
spared  Agag,  or  King  Ahab,  who  had  failed  to  put  Benhadad 
to  death.  One,  Sir  James  Croft,  whose  nauseous  cant  and 
hypocrisy  were  super-eminent,  moved  that  some  earnest  and 
devout  prayer  to  God  the  Holy  Spirit  might  be  made,  to  incline 
Her  Majesty's  too  tender  heart  to  grant  this  their  reasonable 
petition ;  and  asked  that  this  devout  prayer  might  be  speedily 
printed,  as  well  for  daily  use  in  Parliament — so  anxious  for 
direct  enlightenment  from  Heaven — as  for  all  the  members 
thereof  in  their  private  devotions  at  home.^ 

The  queen  in  a  similar  spirit  —  disgusting  because  of  its 
obvious  insincerity  and  hypocrisy — on  receiving  the  petition 
and  hearing  of  the  devotional  exercises  of  the  Commons,  took 
up  the  idea  thus  suggested,  and  replied,  with  corresponding 
cant,  that  she  likewise  must  take  time  to  deliberate  and  also 
betake  herself  to  prayer  at  the  throne  of  grace.  She,  too,  "com- 
mended herself  to  be  directed  by  God's  Spirit ; "  while  the  Lord 
Chancellor,  in  answer  to  an  assertion  from  Elizabeth,  that  it  was 
desirable  that  some  expedient  should  be  devised  for  the  safety 
of  the  kingdom,  short  of  the  judicial  murder  of  the  sovereign  of 
an  adjoining  kingdom,  which  she  dreaded, — informed  her  that 
any  such  unwise  and  disastrous  expedient  was  to  be  avoided,  and 
could  not  possibly  be  adopted.  It  was  the  block  and  the  axe 
and  the  Queen  of  Scots'  decapitation  and  death  which  were 
needed.     Nothing  less. 

Lord  Buckhurst  was  consequently  enjoined  to  inform  Queen 
Mary  of  the  unanimous  judgment  of  the  commissioners,  now 
ratified  by  Parliament,  and  of  the  joint  petition  of  both  houses 
to  Elizabeth.  Sir  Amias  Poulet,  her  gaoler,  and  Robert  Beale, 
Clerk  of  the  Council,  accompanied  him. 

His  lordship  told  her  that  it  was  quite  vain  and  useless  to  look 
for  mercy,  for  her  notorious  attachment  to  Popery,  mass-monger- 
ing,  and  idol  worship  rendered  her  life  wholly  incompatible  with 
the  safety  and  security  of  the  new  religion  ;  and  insultingly 
offered  the  services  of  the  Bishop  or  Dean  of  Peterborough  to 
enable  her  to  prepare  for  death. 

^  See  D^  Ewes'  /oitrnal  0/  //w  Votes,  Spccc/ies,  and  Debates  during  t/tc  Reign 
of  Elizabeth,  pp.  491-404.     London,  1682. 


HER   DIGNIFIED   POSITION   AND   ACTION.  243 

She  replied  with  dignity  that  the  judgment  was  wholly  lacking 
in  justice  ;  that  she  had  never  sought  the  least  injury  to,  much 
less  the  murder  of,  the  English  queen  ;  that  her  true  crime  was 
evidently  her  religion,  for  which  she  was  perfectly  ready  to  die ; 
and  that  she  must  altogether  decline  the  aid  of  the  ministers 
in  question.  She  asked  and  secured  the  services  of  her  own 
almoner,  and  then  wrote  three  letters,  entrusting  them  to  her 
servant,  one  to  the  Holy  Father,  another  to  the  Archbishop  of 
Glasgow,  and  a  third  to  the  Duke  of  Guise. 

In  London — where  public  opinion,  so  far  as  it  then  existed, 
had  been  for  several  months  corrupted  by  false  news,  and  by 
groundless  alarms  deliberately  circulated — the  proclamation  was 
with  due  formalities  made  public.  The  bells  of  the  churches 
rang  merry  peals  ;  in  some  instances  the  parish  ministers  "gave 
God  the  thanks " ;  bonfires  blazed  at  Westminster,  Clerkenwell 
Green,  and  Tower  Hill ;  the  more  depraved  creatures  of  the 
Court  appeared  in  a  state  of  frenzied  ecstasy.  \\'alsingham 
told  Lord  Shrewsbury  that  it  was  to  be  hoped  that  the  queen 
might  be  moved  by  these  "  earnest  instances,  to  proceed  thor- 
oughly in  this  cause."  This  man's  hope,  alas  !  was  all  too  soon 
realised. 

In  a  letter  to  Elizabeth,  the  Queen  of  Scots  made  four  dying 
requests  :  first,  that  her  dead  body  might  be  taken  to  France, 
and  placed  beside  her  mother's  tomb ;  secondly,  that  she  might 
send  a  jewel,  with  her  maternal  blessing,  to  her  son  James,^ ; 
thirdly,  that  her  servants  might  have  a  free  passage  home  and 
retain  the  legacies  she  intended  to  leave  them ;  and  fourthly, 
that  she  might  not  be  put  to  death  in  private,  lest  her  enemies 
should  assert  that  she  had  ended  her  days  in  despair,  or  had  not 
died  in  the  CathoHc  faith.  In  this  dignified  letter,  there  is 
throughout  no  expression  whatsoever  which  can  be  twisted  into 
anything  like  a  plea  or  petition  for  mercy.  She  regrets  the 
suppression  of  her  own  letters  before  the  Commission,  a  most 
shameful  act  of  injustice  ;  and  ventures  to  remind  Elizabeth  that 
the  day  would  come  when  she  herself  would  have  to  give  an 
account  of  her  actions  before  a  just  and  unerring  Judge.  It  was 
a  touching  and  true  letter,  in  every  respect  worthy  of  the  high 
character  and  noble  antecedents  of  this  royal  sufferer;  and  its 

1  "From  her  own  son  she  might  have  hoped  [for]  some  sense  of  duty, 
some  desire  to  save.  But  when  this  so-called  Scottish  Solomon — as  being 
the  son  of  David — heard  of  the  trial,  he  simply  remarked,  '  Mary  must  drink 
the  ale  she  has  brewed.'  When  he  consulted  his  Council,  the  Earl  of  Both- 
well  told  him  roundly  he  deserved  to  be  hanged  the  day  after,  if  he  allowed 
the  execution  to  take  place." — Dociuncnts  from  Siviancas,  Introduction,  p. 
28.     London,  1S65. 


244         THE   CHURCH    UNDER   QUEEN    ELIZABETH. 

perusal  brought  tears  to  the  colourless  face  of  Elizabeth,  as 
Lord  Leicester  informed  Walsingham.  But,  with  unroyal  discour- 
tesy and  unwomanly  harshness,  no  notice  whatsoever  was  taken 
of  it.     No  answer  was  returned. 

The  King  of  France,  on  hearing  what  had  taken  place,  at 
once  sent  M.  de  Bellievre  to  expostulate  with  Elizabeth,  but  for 
some  time  she  carefully  avoided  seeing  him.  Fraud  and  cunning 
met  the  king's  agent  at  every  step  he  took  in  endeavouring  to 
accomplish  his  mission.  At  last  he  was  enabled  to  inform  her, 
face  to  face,  that  his  royal  master  would  most  strongly  and 
earnestly  resent  the  execution  of  Queen  Mary. 

"  Sir,  have  you  the  authority  of  your  sovereign  to  employ  such 
language  to  us?" 

"  Yes,  madam,"  he  replied,  "  I  have.  For  the  king,  my  master, 
expressly  commanded  me  to  use  it." 

"  Is  your  authority  signed  with  his  own  hand  ?  " 

"  It  is,  madam." 

"Then  I  require  you,"  responded  the  queen,  "to  testify  as 
much  in  your  writing." 

This  he  did  ;  upon  which  Elizabeth  resolved  to  reply  by  letter, 
which  she  promised  to  send  in  due  course.  In  that  she  assumed 
a  lofty  spirit,  and  rebuked  the  king  with  Tudor  vigour  for  what 
she  asserted  was  his  uncalled-for  interference. 

The  resident  French  Ambassador,  as  well  as  Queen  Mary's 
son  James — the  latter  by  the  intervention  of  Sir  Robert  Keith, 
Sir  Robert  Melville,  and  the  Master  of  Gray  (some  at  heart 
enemies  of  Mary,)  endeavoured  to  avert  the  coming  deed  of 
iniquity,  but  all  in  vain.  Their  expostulations  and  suggestions 
were  treated  with  marked  contempt. 

On  the  I  St  of  February  1581,  a  letter  was  sent  to  Sir  Amias 
Poulet  at  Fotheringhay,  jointly  signed  by  Sir  Francis  Walsingham 
and  William  Davison,^  which  charged  them,  at  Elizabeth's  sug- 
gestion, with  lack  of  care  for  her  service ;  for  had  it  been  other- 
wise, they  would  have  long  ago,  in  some  way  or  another,  killed 
and  got  rid  of  the  royal  captive.  Of  her  guilt,  after  the  trial, 
they  ought  to  have  no  doubt ;  while  the  oath  of  association, 
which  they  had  already  taken,  should  have  perfectly  cleared 
their  consciences  before  God,  and  their  good  repute  in  the  eyes 
of  their  fellows. 

Sir  Amias  Poulet,  though  a  sour  and  bigoted  anti-Catholic, 
and  accurately  enough  perceiving  that  Queen  Mary  was  no  friend 

^  See  "Note"  to  this  chapter,  in  which  the  letter  in  question,  and  some 
other  subsequent  communications  throwing  much  light  upon  its  meaning,  are 
given  at  length. 


HER   SUFFERINGS   AND   DEATH.  245 

to  the  new  religion,  was  too  honest  and  inteUigent  to  sacrifice 
his  conscience  to  Elizabeth's  will.  He  could  never  make  so  foul 
a  shipwreck  of  his  conscience,  he  replied,  nor  leave  so  great  a 
blot  on  his  posterity,  as  to  shed  blood  without  law  or  warrant. 
Drury,  his  co-gaoler,  he  added,  was  of  a  like  mind. 

The  queen,  as  Davison  her  secretary  soon  discovered,  was 
intensely  annoyed  at  the  reply  of  Poulet  and  Drury,  and  burst 
out  into  loud  expressions  of  anger  and  vexation,  well  garnished 
with  her  favourite  oaths,  at  their  scrupulousness.  The  commis- 
sion for  Queen  Mary's  execution,  however,  had  been  duly  signed 
on  the  I  St  of  February,  and  despatched  by  Beale  to  Fotheringhay. 

Immediately  prior  to  this  period,  the  Scotch  ambassador  had 
been  urgently  asking  a  brief  delay  of  eight  days  before  the  sealing 
and  signing  of  the  death-warrant.  But  Elizabeth,  tortured  in 
conscience,  worried  with  expostulations,  and  fearing  further  dis- 
cussion, once  again  swearing  a  profane  oath,  savagely  replied, 
"  No,  not  for  one  hour." 

The  death-warrant  reached  Fotheringhay  Castle  on  a  cold  and 
bleak  day  in  the  early  part  of  February.  The  Earls  of  Kent  and 
Shrewsbury,  who  brought  it,  were  introduced  into  Queen  Mary's 
presence  at  once,  and  read  the  illegal  sentence. 

"My  lords,"  she  answered,  "the  day  long  looked  for  and  long 
desired  has  come  at  last.  And  what  better  end  can  I  have  than 
to  render  up  my  life  for  my  faith  ?  For  thus,  and  because  of 
this  it  is  that  I  am  to  suffer.  Nevertheless,  as  to  having  compassed 
the  death  of  the  queen,  your  sovereign,"  she  continued,  placing 
her  right  palm  on  a  New  Testament  which  lay  open  upon  her 
table,  "  note  my  latest  words  :  I  call  the  living  God  to  witness 
that  I  neither  sought  it  nor  even  imagined  it." 

"  Madam,"  interposed  the  Earl  of  Kent,  "  that  book  there  is  a 
Popish  testament,  not  Christ's  free  and  blessed  Gospel.  An  oath 
on  such  a  book  is  of  no  value." 

"  It  is  a  Catholic  book,"  she  exclaimed,  "  and  for  this  reason  I 
value  it  all  the  more,  and  you  ought  the  more  to  regard  my  oath 
taken  upon  it." 

"  Madam,"  continued  the  earl,  "your  life  must  have  been  the 
death  of  our  new  religion,  while  your  death — God  grant  it ! — will 
be  the  Hfe  of  it." 

"  Heard  you  that  ?  "  asked  the  queen  of  her  attendants.  "  My 
Lord  of  Kent  has  now  betrayed  the  secret.  It  is  my  religion, 
then.  It  is  my  religion,"  she  repeated,  with  intense  emphasis  on 
the  word  "religion,"  "which  is  the  cause  of  my  death." 

She  then  requested  the  assistance  of  a  priest  and  the  aid  of 
her  confessor ;  but  this,  she  was  informed,  was  not  only  contrary 


246  THE   CHURCH    UNDER   QUEEN    ELIZABETH. 

to  the  law  of  the  land,  but  repugnant  to  the  principles  of  the 
Queen's  Highness's  religion  and  the  restored  Gospel,  and  danger- 
ous to  the  souls  and  bodies  of  the  commissioners.  They  could  not 
possibly  tolerate  confession,  idolatry,  massing,  nor  superstition. 
Her  reasonable  request,  therefore,  was  thus  cruelly  and  shame- 
fully denied.  Its  denial  abundantly  serves  to  show  to  what 
practical  infamy  Elizabeth's  despicable  tools  had  descended. 

The  last  night  of  Queen  JNIary's  earthly  life,  when  necessary 
business  was  despatched,  waa  spent  in  self-recollection,  medita- 
tion on  Our  Blessed  Redeemer's  Passion,  and  in  mental  prayer. 
If  the  Sacraments  of  the  Church  were  denied  her,^  —  those 
divinely-appointed  aids  for  gaining  strength  to  pass  the  valley  of 
the  shadow  of  death  securely — yet,  when  these  were  intentionally 
refused  or  could  not  be  had,  her  holy  religion  abundantly  sus- 
tained her  soul  in  these  latest  trials.  She  slept  but  little,  she  ate 
sparingly;  and,  when  not  engaged  in  her  religious  duties,  bade 
farewell,  with  kind  words  and  some  suitable  memorials  for  all,  to 
her  devoted  and  sorrow-smitten  servants.  On  their  knees  they 
asked  forgiveness  for  all  their  defects  and  shortcomings.  She, 
on  her  part,  forgave  them  cheerfully ;  and  in  turn  asked  their 
forgiveness  likewise.  She  then  gave  them  her  hand  to  kiss. 
This  parting  touched  all  even  to  tears.  The  remembrance  of  it 
would  remain  green  and  fresh  as  long  as  life  lasted. 

The  doors  of  the  great  hall  of  Fotheringhay  Castle  were  thrown 
open  about  seven.  It  was  lit  up  within  by  a  few  pendant  lamps. 
Outside,  from  a  very  early  hour,  Thomas  Andrews,  SheritT  of 
the  shire,  and  several  gentlemen  of  the  county,  with  their 
retainers,  on  whose  countenances  the  impress  of  sorrow  was 
stamped,  had  long  waited  for  admittance  in  the  chilling  cold  of  a 
February  morning.  The  fog  lay  heavily  all  around ;  the  mists 
were  thick,  the  ground  white  with  frost.  Many  seemed  terribly 
depressed  ;  the  silence  amongst  those  gathered  was  solemn  and 
trying.  Soon,  however,  the  augmented  guard  of  the  castle 
passed  in,  and  then  nearly  two  hundred  spectators,  pressing 
forwards,  filled  the  hall,  save  in  its  centre,  on  every  side. 

At  eight  in  the  morning  Queen  Mary  entered  the  hall  dressed 
in  robes  of  state,  bearing  a  book  of  devotions  and  an  ivory 
crucifix  in  her  hands,  and  attended  by  two  of  her  ladies.  These 
latter,  however,  were  thrust  back  by  force,  and  the  doors  of  the 
hall  closed. 

^  Conn,  in  his  Life  of  the  Queen,  asserts  that,  by  virtue  of  an  indult  from 
Pope  Pius  v.,  she  administered  the  Holy  Eucharist  to  herself  on  the  mornini^ 
of  her  execution  ;  but  this,  judging  by  her  own  letter  to  that  Pontift",  is 
evidently  a  misconception. 


DETAILS   OF   THE   SAME.  247 

When  her  attendants  had  been  forced  out,  and  their  wailing 
Avas  heard  throughout  the  hall,  Mary  quietly  remarked — "Certainly 
the  queen  your  mistress,  being  a  maiden,  will  vouchsafe  in  regard 
to  womanhood  that  I  have  some  of  my  own  women  about  me 
when  I  die."  A  silence  that  might  have  been  felt  pervaded  the 
whole  assembly.  As  the  queen  spoke  anew  no  one  stirred. 
But  from  the  commissioners  there  was  no  response. 

"You  might,  I  think,  grant  me  a  far  greater  courtesy  were  I  a 
woman  of  lesser  calling  than  the  Queen  of  Scots."  The  Earl  of 
Kent  winced. 

Observing  that  the  authorities  were  looking  at  each  other 
askance,  and  seeing  some  of  them  much  cowed,  she  continued 
with  greater  vigour — "Am  not  I  your  queen's  own  cousin,  a 
descendant  of  the  blood-royal  of  Henry  VII.,  a  married  Queen 
of  France,  and  the  anointed  Queen  of  Scotland  ?  " 

At  this  the  Earl  of  Kent  relented ;  the  two  ladies  were  hastily 
readmitted,  together  with  four  of  the  officers  of  her  household. 

Melville,  her  old  steward,  overcome  with  grief  on  his  admission, 
fell  upon  his  knees  in  a  paroxysm  of  sorrow,  unable  to  speak. 

"  Good  Master  Melville,"  she  said,  giving  him  her  hand  to  kiss, 
and  raising  him  up,  "cease  to  lament  for  me,  for  this  day  thou 
shalt  see  the  certain  end  of  Mary  Stuart's  troubles."  She  then 
graciously  kissed  him  on  the  cheek. 

Her  two  ladies-in-waiting,  Jane  Kennedy  and  Elspeth  Curie, 
were  permitted  to  remain  with  her,  but  her  Majesty's  reiterated 
request  to  see  her  clerical  almoner,  Le  Preau,  was  again  cruelly 
refused;^  the  lords  "not  thinking  it  proper  to  waste  so  much 
time  about  a  priest."  At  the  same  time  one  of  them  heartlessly 
remarked  that  her  beads,  her  Agtms  Dei,  and  the  crucifix  she 
carried  were,  in  their  judgment,  "superstition  enough  already." - 

The  preparations  for  her  death,  the  raised  and  railed  platform 
in  the  middle  of  the  dark-draped  hall,  the  covered  block,  the 
axe,  and  the  masked  executioner  in  black  velvet,  never  caused 
her  to  tremble,  even  when,  in  all  their  startling  solemnity,  they 
first  met  her  gaze.  With  no  quailing  she  advanced  with  her 
accustomed  stately  grace  and  majesty  to  the  centre  of  the  hall. 
Poulet  assisted  her  to  mount  the  scaffold,  on  which  she  said,  "  I 
thank  you,  sir.     It  is  the  last  trouble  I  shall  give  you,  and  the 

1  In  her  letter  to  her  confessor  she  complains  bitterly  of  the  cruelty  of  her 
enemies  in  refusing  her  his  spiritual  aid,  and  earnestly  solicits  his  prayers. 

"  The  Earl  of  Kent  and  Robert  Beale,  in  their  official  account  sent  to  the 
Lords  of  the  Council,  thus  put  on  record  this  fact: — "Shee  demaunded  to 
speake  with  her  prieste,  which  was  denyed  unto  her,  the  rather  for  that  she 
came  with  a  superstityous  paire  of  beades  and  a  crucifix." — See  Sir  Henry 
Ellis'  Original  Letters,  2nd  series,  pp.  111-113.  ^ 


248  THE   CHURCH   UNDER   QUEEN    ELIZABETH. 

most  acceptable  service  you  have  ever  done  me."  ^  She  then 
seated  herself  on  a  stool  prepared  for  her,  during  the  reading  of 
the  warrant. 

Here  the  queen  addressed  those  assembled,  in  her  clear  and 
beautiful  voice,  which  throughout,  even  to  her  latest  and  last 
most  pious  aspirations,  had  never  failed  nor  faltered.  In  brief 
and  pregnant  sentences  of  no  ambiguity,  for  the  last  time  she 
solemnly  protested  her  innocence  of  all  plots  against  Queen 
Elizabeth's  life,"'  and  maintained  her  unshaken  fidelity  to  the 
one  ancient  faith,  which  she  thanked  God  she  was  thus  enabled 
publicly  to  confess..  She  reminded  all  present  that  she  herself 
was  a  sovereign  princess,  in  no  way  subject  to  the  English 
Parliament,  but  brought  there  to  suffer  by  injustice  and  violence. 
"After  my  death,"  she  declared,  "many  things  at  present  hidden 
in  darkness  will  come  to  life.  Rejoicing  to  shed  my  blood  for 
my  religion," — for  she  knew  well  enough  why  she  was  about  to 
suffer  death,— "I  place  all  my  hope  and  confidence  in  Him,  my 
gracious  Lord,  Whose  image  I  hold  in  my  hand.  I  pardon  all 
mine  enemies,  whom  my  latest  words  shall  not  prejudice,  from 
the  bottom  of  my  heart ;  and  from  all  to  w^hom  I  have  done 
amiss  or  given  offence,  I  humbly  ask  pardon,  likewise." 

Upon  this  Dr.  Fletcher,  Dean  of  Peterborough,  pushing  himself 
forward,  began  a  preachment,  in  which  he  contrived  to  be  at  once 
coarse,  canting,  and  insulting.  This  was  the  burden  of  his 
words  : — His  royal  mistress,  the  supreme  and  beneficent  Gover- 
ness of  them  all,  was  bound  to  execute  justice  on  the  body  of 
the  condemned  one,  but,  like  a  mother  to  all,  was  most  anxiously 
watchful  for  tiie  good  of  her  soul.  Elizabeth,  as  he  asserted, 
had  therefore  commissioned  him  to  bring  her  into  that  fold,  in 
which  the  true  sheep  were  fed  on  Gospel-truth ;  and  to  induce 

^  On  the  very  same  day  this  man  thus  wrote  to  Mr.  William  Davison :  — 
"Sir  Drue  Drury,  with  his  hearty  due  commendations  unto  you,  prayeth 
your  favtnirable  mean  for  his  revocation,  whicli  he  would  not  desire  (notwith- 
standing his  great  and  urgent  occasions)  if  the  cause  of  his  abode  were  not 
ihroui^h  the  vte7ry  and  favour  of  onr  good  God  clear/y  removed,  to  the  girat 
comfort  of  Id »t self  and  all  oilier  faithful  Christian  subjects.  I  will  say  nothing 
of  his  careful  service  in  this  place,  because  his  zeal  to  religion,  duty  to  his 
sovereign,  and  love  to  his  country  are  very  well  known  unto  you.  The 
children  of  God  have  daily  experience  of  His  mercy  and  favour  towards  such 
as  can  he  content  to  depend  on  His  merciful  providence,  Who  doth  not  see 
as  man  seeth,  but  His  times  and  seasons  are  always  just  and  perfectly  good. 
The  same  Cod  make  11s  all  thankful  for  his  late  sim^iilar  fa-ivurs  \_i.e.  the 
murder  of  the  queen  !  !],  and  thus  I  leave  to  trouble  you,  wishing  you  all 
felicity  in  Our  Lord  Jesus.  From  Fotheringhay,  the  8th  of  P'ebruary  1586." — 
Letter-book  of  Sir  Ainias  Poiilet,  pp.  364-365.     London,  1874. 

-  In  her  written  letter  to  the  King  of  France — penned  just  before  her  death 
—  she  declares  that  she  dies  quite  innocent  of  any  crime  against  Elizabeth. 


QUEEN   MARY   BROUGHT   TO  THE   BLOCK.  249 

her  to  renounce  the  communion  of  that  idolatrous  and  apostate 
Church,  which  by  law  had  been  abolished,  and  in  which  if  she 
remained  and  died,  she  would  be  most  certainly  damned. 

Queen  Mary,  thus  persecuted  by  this  repulsive  and  extravagant 
fanatic,  entreated  him  on  such  an  occasion  to  hold  his  tongue 
and  let  her  be  at  peace.  But  he  was  not  to  be  put  down. 
Though  she  quietly  turned  away  from  him  and  his  disquieting 
noise,  which  was  all  she  could  do  ;  yet  he  went  round  to  another 
part  of  the  platform,  stared  at  her,  thumbed  his  Bible,  selected 
his  text,  and  began  his  disturbing  utterances  once  again. 

At  last  Lord  Shrewsbury,  who  saw  that  the  onlookers  were 
much  wanting  in  sympathy  with  the  preacher,  suggested  that  he 
should  give  over  preaching  and  proceed  to  prayer.  He  did  so 
at  once.  His  prayer,  however,  was  only  the  same  sermon  put 
into  other  words.  He  exclaimed,  he  lifted  up  his  voice,  and  he 
cursed.     But  Mary  heard  him  not. 

Engrossed  in  devotion,  she  was  repeating  the  beautiful  Psalms, 
Beati  quorum.  Miserere,  and  that  of  Compline,  Qui  habitat, 
during  the  Dean's  "exercise"  as  it  was  termed;  when  one  of 
the  peers,  touched  by  the  creature's  heartless  cruelty,  suggested 
that  he  should  stop  and  stand  aside.     He  did  so. 

The  queen  then  arose,  and  uttering  a  most  touching  interces- 
sion for  the  afflicted  Catholics  of  the  country,  for  her  son  James, 
and  for  Queen  Elizabeth,  heard  by  all  in  painful  silence,  held 
up  her  crucifix  and  exclaimed — "As  Thine  arms,  O  Blessed 
Saviour  of  the  World,  were  stretched  out  upon  the  Cross,  so  now, 
O  Lord,  receive  me  into  the  arms  of  Thy  mercy  and  forgive  me 
all  my  sins." 

"  ALidam,"  retorted  the  Earl  of  Kent,^  "  leave  alone  such 
Popish  trumpery ;  and  bear  Christ  rather  in  your  heart  than  in 
your  hand." 

"  I  cannot  hold  in  my  hand  the  representation  of  His  Passion,'^ 
she  meekly  but  firmly  replied,  "  without  at  the  same  time  bear- 
ing Him  in  my  heart." 

Upon  this  her  two  maids,  bathed  in  tears,  began  to  disrobe 

1  This  man  (Henry  Grey,  sixth  Earl  of  Kent)  was  of  an  ancient  family  ; 
but  evidently  a  person  in  great  want  of  good  breeding.  His  grandfather, 
one  of  Henry  VIH.'s  favourites,  became  so  inveterate  a  gamester,  that  he 
impoverished  his  estate,  and  died  ignobly  at  the  George  Inn  in  Lombard 
Street  in  1523.  The  sixth  earl,  his  grandson,  was  a  sour  Puritan  of  a  bad 
type.  He  married  an  old  woman  and  died  uithout  lawful  issue.  Sir 
William  Dugdale  wrote  of  him  in  very  mild  terms  that  "he  evinced  much 
more  zeal"  for  Queen  Mary's  "destruction  than  befitted  a  person  of  honour." 
Like  many  other  of  the  base  peers  of  that  period  he  was  in  truth  a  disgrace 
to  his  race,  rank,  and  dignity. 


250  THE   CHURCH   UNDER   QUEEN    ELIZABETH. 

her.  But  the  executioners  interfered,  as  it  was  said  to  be  their 
duty,  and  they  looked  for  certain  perquisites.  The  sight  of  the 
queen  thus  being  prepared  for  death  touched  to  the  heart  a  large 
number  of  the  spectators.  Her  servants  were  greatly  overcome. 
One  was  in  paroxysms  of  grief.  But  her  Majesty  bade  them 
bear  up  with  fortitude,  gave  them  her  parting  blessing,  and  asked 
their  prayers. 

One  of  them  placed  a  handkerchief  over  her  eyes,  upon  which 
the  headsman  and  his  assistant  guided  her  towards  the  block. 

Kneeling  down,  she  exclaimed  repeatedly,  "  Into  thy  hands, 
O  Lord,  I  commend  my  spirit."  Save  these  beautiful  words, 
nothing  was  heard  but  the  sobs  and  groans  of  the  onlookers. 

And  now  the  executioner  raised  the  axe.  But  the  sounds  of 
weeping  evidently  disconcerted  him.  It  fell  with  a  flash,  and 
inflicted  a  deep  wound  on  the  skull.  The  poor  sufferer  never 
moved.  At  his  third  stroke  the  head  of  the  saindy  queen  rolled 
on  to  the  scaffold.  The  deed  of  shame  and  infamy  was  now 
complete. 

Holding  it  up,  as  usual,  he  cried  out — as  a  shudder  ran  through 
the  crowd  at  the  sickening  sight,  and  a  wail  of  agony  arose— 
"  God  save  Queen  Elizabeth  !  " 

"  Amen  ! "  responded  the  dignified  minister  who  had  been  cut 
short  in  his  preaching,  "and  so  may  all  her  enemies  perish ! " 

"So  perish  all  the  enemies  of  the  Gospel!"  exclaimed  the 
Earl  of  Kent,  throwing  up  his  velvet  cap  as  a  token  of  satisfac- 
tion. 

But  there  was  no  single  response,  no  one  said  "  Amen." 
Pity,  admiration,  and  sympathy  now  filled  the  hearts  of  many, 
as  the  sobs  which  were  heard  indicated ;  for  truth  and  justice 
had  been  grossly  outraged  by  the  murder  then  committed  by 
Elizabeth ;  ^  while  the  repulsive  cant  which  had  been  there 
exhibited  sickened  to  the  heart's  core  several  of  the  red-eyed 
onlookers,  whose  secret  sympathies  were  against  the  innovators 
and  their  cruel  policy  of  tyranny  and  blood ;  and  w^ho  deplored 
all  the  evil  conse(iuences  which  were  seen  to  exist,  by  reason 
thereof,— and  which,  though  years  have  intervened,  still  live 
on. 

The  queen's  body,  after  embalmment,  was  buried  some  months 

1  To  use  the  words  of  Whitaker,  the  accomplished  historian,  Elizabeth  was 
one  "who  had  no  sensibilities  of  tenderness  and  no  sentiments  of  generosity  ; 
who  looked  not  forward  to  the  awful  verdict  of  History  ;  and  who  shuddered 
not  at  the  infinitely  more  awful  doom  of  God.  I  blush,  as  an  Englishman, 
to  think  that  this  was  done  by  an  English  queen,  and  one  whose  name  I 
was  taught  to  lisp  in  my  infancy  as  the  honour  of  her  sex  and  the  glory  of 
our  isle." 


HOW  HER  DEATH  WAS  BROUGHT  ABOUT.    25  I 

afterwards  at  Peterborough/  but  subsequently  removed  by  her 
son  James-  to  Henry  VII. 's  chapel  at  Westminster. 

William  Davison,  one  of  the  Secretaries  of  State,  —  who 
throughout  these  proceedings  had  been  the  tool  of  Queen  Mary's 
enemies,  and  had  thus  seen  the  bloody  deed,  which  they  had  so 
artfully  planned,  completed,  —  was  sacrificed,^  in  order  that, 
when  the  opinion  of  Catholic  Europe  was  expressed — as  the 
Court  agents  abroad  informed  them  it  soon  might  be — a  scape- 
goat should  be  at  hand  to  bear  their  dark  and  weighty  sins. 
The  queen  had  been  specially  angry  with  Lord  Burghley,  and 
he  was  in  sore  disgrace.  But,  as  he  declared  to  Her  Majesty, 
he  submitted  wholly  to  her  blessed  will ;  she  was  as  light  and 
life  to  him  ;  and  thus  endeavoured  to  soothe  her  by  quoting 
texts  of  Scripture  or  by  nauseous  flattery.^  His  mock  humility 
was  so  ably  assumed  and  so  artfully  exhibited,  that  he  was  soon 
restored  to  favour.  Davison  alone  suffered.  He  was  tried  in 
the  Star  Chamber,  condemned  to  pay  a  fine  of  ten  thousand 
pounds,  and  imprisoned  for  years.  But  these  tactics  did  not 
shield  the  queen  from  the  strong  condemnation  she  so  richly 
and  righteously  deserved. 

In  the  year  of  Grindal's  resignation — to  turn  awhile  to  the 
other  side  of  the  picture — Father  Cornelius,-^  a  Cornishman  of 
Irish   extraction,    came    back   to    England — one    amongst    the 

1  The  Puritans  were  extremely  angry  that  Bishop  William  Wickham  of 
Lincoln,  who  preached  her  IMajesty's  funeral  sermon,  did  not  openly  declare 
his  conviction  of  "her  certain  damnation." — See  Fuller's  Church  History, 
book  ix.  p.  181. 

-  The  most  scandal'ius  case  of  dissimulation,  falsehood,  and  hypocrisy 
which  is  on  record  is  that  in  which  the  queen,  writing  to  James  the  son  of 
Mary  Queen  of  Scots,  makes  a  solemn  appeal  to  Heaven  that  she  was 
entirely  innocent  of  his  mother's  death  ;  and,  furthermore,  that  she  held  in 
abhorrence  the  sins  of  hypocrisy  and  dissimulation. 

2  Of  Davison's  policy,  under  the  charge  against  him,  Dr.  Lingard  thus 
wrote :  "  In  court  he  acted  with  more  reserve  than  prudence.  To  the 
invectives  of  the  Crown  lawyers  he  replied,  that  to  acknowledge  the  offence 
would  be  to  tarnish  his  own  reputation  ;  to  contend  with  his  Sovereign  would 
be  to  transgress  the  duty  of  a  subject  ;  that  they  did  him  injustice  by  reading 
garbled  passages  from  his  answer,  let  them  read  the  wh.)le,  or  rather  let 
them  read  none  :  for  it  contained  secrets  not  iit  for  the  public  ear  ;  he  would 
only  say  that  he  had  acted  under  the  persuasion  that  he  was  obeying  the 
Queen's  commands,  and  for  the  rest  would  throw  himself  on  her  mercy."— 
History  of  England,  by  John  Lingard,  D.D.,  vol.  vi.  p.  232.     Dublin,  1874. 

^  See  Strype's  Annals,  vol.  iii.  p.  371,  and  Appendices  Nos.  144-146. 

5  Father  John  Cornelius,  alias  Mohun,  was  born  at  Bodmin,  in  Cornwall, 
of  poor  parents.  Sir  John  Arundell  of  Traherne,  an  "occasional  conformist," 
gave  him  an  education  at  Oxford,  but  he  subsequently  went  to  I-iheims  under 
Dr.  Allen,  and  afterwards  to  the  English  college  at  Rome.  Having  been 
ordained  priest,  he  came  back  to  England  in  15S3,  and  gained  his  rest  and 


252  THE   CHURCH    UNDER   QUEEN    ELIZABETH. 

numerous  adherents  to  the  old  religious  system.  He  laboured 
assiduously  and  zealously  for  eleven  years,  during  which  he  won 
for  himself  great  admiration  from  men  and  many  remarkable 
divine  graces  from  Heaven,  A  sacred  and  solemn  revelation, 
full  of  expressive  teaching,  was  made  to  him,  six  years  before  his 
death,  with  regard  to  a  deceased  nobleman,  thus  : — 

"John,  Lord  Stourton,  1  who  was  a  Catholic,  had  through  fear 
in  those  terrible  times  conformed  to  the  State  religion,  having 
greater  regard  for  his  temporal  than  for  his  spiritual  and  eternal 
interests.  Lest,  however,  death  should  surprise  him  in  this  sad 
neglect  of  his  duty  he  entertained  two  priests  in  his  house  ;  and 
had  taken  all  imaginable  precautions  that  both  should  never  be 
absent  at  the  same  time,  being  fully  resolved  to  die  within  the 
pale  of  the  true  Church.  But  God's  inscrutable  providence  and 
just  judgment  did  not  allow  this;  for  when  he  met  with  the 
accident  which  carried  him  off,  both  priests  were  absent  at  the 
same  time,  nor  could  the  most  anxious  search  discover  where 
they  were.  Still,  God  in  His  great  mercy  infused  into  the 
baron's  heart  so  lively  a  sense  of  the  horror  of  his  sin,  and  so 
deep  a  contrition,  that,  not  satisfied  with  begging  pardon  of  God 
and  promising  within  his  own  mind  amendment  and  satisfaction, 
he  called  together  his  wife  and  steward  and  all  the  family,  and 
with  floods  of  tears  acknowledged  before  them  his  crime  and  the 
scandal  he  had  given,  declaring  that  he  was  willing  to  make 
amends  were  it  even  by  shedding  his  blood. 

"  He  expressed  his  grief  at  being  deprived  of  the  rites  of  the 
Catholic  Church  when  he  most  wished  to  receive  them ;  and 
protested  that  he  died  a  Catholic,  out  of  which  religion  there  was 
no  salvation.  Then,  imploring  God's  mercy,  he  expired.  He 
not  only  besought  them  all  to  bear  witness  of  this  his  act  before 
both  men  and  the  dreadful  tribunal  of  God,  but  even,  it  is  said, 
made  a  confession  of  his  sins  to  a  servant  man  in  sign  of  his 
sincere  repentance,  desiring  thereby  to  testify  his  full  determina- 
tion to  have  confessed  to  a  priest,  had  time  and  opportunity 
permitted. 

"  Father  Cornelius,  when  asked  his  opinion  if  in  this  case  it  was 
lawful  to  pray  for  the  deceased  lord,  replied  that  it  was  both 
lawful  and  obligatory." 

reward  by  suffering  a  cruel  death  at  Dorchester  on  July  4th,  1594.  He  had 
]ireviously  been  admitted  to  the  Society  of  Jesus. — See  ^tate  Papers,  Domestic, 
Elizabeth,  vol.  ccxlviii.  n.  75,  A. I).  1594.  There  is  an  original  portrait  of 
Father  Cornelius  at  the  Gesii,  Rome. 

'  lohn,  eighth  Baron  Stourton  (whose  wife  was  Frances,  daughter  of 
^Vi^liam,  Lord  Cobham),  died  13th  October  1588. 


FATHER  CORNELIUS   AND   MARGARET   CLITIIEROE.      253 

The  following  incident  is  related  by  Dame  Dorothy  Arundell, 
the  half-sister  of  the  deceased  lord,  in  her  "MS.  Acts  of  the 
Blessed  Martyr  Cornelius  "  :— 

"  One  day  my  mother,  Lady  Arundell,  begged  Father  Cornelius 
to  offer  up  mass  for  the  soul  of  her  son  John,  Lord  Stourton, 
which  he  consented  to  do.  When  at  the  altar  he  remained  a 
considerable  time  in  prayer  between  the  consecration  and  the 
memento  for  the  dead.  After  mass  was  finished,  he  made  an 
exhortation  on  the  words,  Beati  vwrtiii  qui  in  Domitw  moriuntiir 
— '  Blessed  are  the  dead  who  die  in  the  Lord,' — and  then  told 
us  that  he  had  just  seen  a  vision.  Before  him  was  presented  a 
forest  of  immense  size,  in  which  all  was  fire  and  flame,  and  in 
the  midst  he  perceived  the  soul  of  the  deceased  lord,  who,  with 
tears  and  lamentable  cries,  accused  himself  of  the  evil  life  he  had 
led  for  several  years,  especially  whilst  at  the  Court ;  and  his  dis- 
simulation in  frequenting  the  Protestant  Church,  though  still  _a 
Catholic,  to  the  scandal  and  grievous  hurt  of  the  souls  of  his 
relations.  But  above  all,  in  the  most  bitter  terms,  he  accused 
himself  of  having  been  one  of  the  forty-seven  chosen  by  Queen 
Ehzabeth  to  condemn  the  innocent  Mary,  Queen  of  Scots,  a 
crime  for  which  he  had  experienced  so  deep  a  contrition  that  it 
had  hastened  his  death.  After  these  avowals  of  the  deceased 
lord  to  Father  Cornelius,  he  exclaimed  in  the  words  of  Holy 
Scripture,  Misereinini  mei,  viiseremini  mei,  saliem  vos,  a?nici  mei, 
quia  inafius  Domini  tetigit  me — '  Have  pity  on  me,  have  pity  on 
me,  O  !  ye  my  friends,  for  the  hand  of  the  Lord  hath  touched 
me.'  Having  implored  the  Father  to  assist  him  with  prayers,  the 
appearance,  by  w-hich  he  had  been  recognised,  vanished. 

"  Father  Cornelius  wept  much  in  relating  his  vision  to  us,  and 
all  the  household,  who  to  the  number  of  about  eighty  per- 
sons were  listening  to  him,  united  their  tears  with  his.  The 
server  of  the  mass,  John  Carey,  afterwards  a  sufferer  for  the  Faith 
with  Father  Cornelius,  saw  and  heard  all  that  passed  in  the 
vision ;  but  as  for  myself  and  the  rest  of  those  present,  we  only 
perceived,  while  it  was  manifested,  a  glimmering  reflection  like 
that  of  live  coals  on  the  wall  against  which  the  altar  stood."  ^ 

The  sufferings  and  death  of  Margaret  Clitheroe,  already 
referred  to,  must  now  be  narrated  at  some  length.-     She  was  the 

1  See  Records  of  the  English  Province,  vol.  iii.  pp.  444,  445  ;  and  Life  of 
Father  Weston,  in  The  Troubles  of  Our  Catholic  Forefathers,  2nd  series, 
pp.  128,  129.  London,  1875.  ^'^  account  is  also  given  by  Bishop  Challoner 
in  his  Memoirs  of  Missionary  Priests. 

2  The  author  is  largely  indebted  for  most  of  the  facts  related,  to  Father 
John  Mush's  Life  of  Margaret  Clitheroe,  as  well  as  to  Bishop  Challoner's 
Memoirs  of  Alissionary  Priests. 


254         THE   CHURCH    UNDER   QUEEN    ELIZABETH. 

daughter  of  Thomas  Middleton,  citizen  and  wax-chandler  of 
York,  and  sometime  sheriff.  He,  there  is  good  reason  for 
beheving,  was  the  third  son  of  Esquire  Middleton,  of  Stockeld,-"- 
and  his  wife  Margaret,  daughter  of  Sir  Thomas  Gascoigne  of 
Gawthorpe.  She  married  John  Chtheroe,-  a  well-to-do  tradesman 
of  York,  who  became  subsequently  one  of  the  city  chamberlains. 

"As  touching  her  worldly  state  and  condition,"  as  her  bio- 
grapher declares,  "  she  was  about  thirty  years  of  age,  and  to  her 
beautiful  and  gracious  soul  God  gave  her  a  body  with  comely 
face  and  beauty  correspondent.  She  was  of  sharp  and  ready 
wit,  with  rare  discretion  in  all  her  actions,  a  plentiful  mother  in 
children,  and  her  husband  of  competent  wealth  and  ability." 

She  appears  to  have  been  brought  up  without  any  very  definite 
religious  belief;  but,  having  heard  of  the  sufferings  endured  by 
so  many  for  the  old  religion,  she  attached  herself  thereto  with 
great  sincerity  and  devotion.  Declining  to  attend  the  services 
of  the  Calvinists,  she  was  several  times  imprisoned ;  separated 
on  two  occasions  for  more  than  two  years  from  husband  and 
children.  But,  to  quote  her  biographer  again,  "she  turned  all 
things  to  her  good,  and  sucked  honey  out  of  the  cruelty  of  her 
enemies.  They  persecuted,  and  she  thereby  learned  patience ; 
they  shut  her  up  into  close  prison,  and  she  learned  thereby  to 
forget  and  despise  the  world ;  they  separated  her  from  home, 
children,  and  husband,  and  she  thereby  became  familiar  with 
God ;  they  sought  to  terrify  her,  and  she  thereby  increased  in 
most  glorious  constancy  and  fortitude." 

Her  supposed  offence  was  that  she  had  harboured  priests,  and 
allowed  mass  to  be  said  in  her  husband's  house,  and  had  sent 
her  son  Francis  abroad  to  be  educated  in  a  foreign  seminary. 
On  March  loth,  15 86,  the  vice-president  of  the  Northern 
Council  and  others,  therefore,  authorised  her  house  to  be  searched. 
The  sheriffs  officers  coming  suddenly  and  finding  a  youth,  whom 
they  stripped  and  threatened  with  rods,  induced  him  to  show 
them  the  priests'  chamber,  where  they  found  a  portable  altar,  a 
missal,  some  altar-breads,  and  "church-stuff,"  i.e.  priestly  vest- 
ments ;  upon  which  discovery  both  she  and  her  husband  at  once 
were  committed  to  prison. 

^  Sir  William  Middleton  of  Stockeld,  Knt.,  had  by  Afargaret,  his  third 
wife,  a  son,  Thomas.  These  Middletons  were  allied  with  the  Vavasours, 
Wentworths,  Calverleys,  and  Gascoignes.  His  grandson,  William,  signed 
the  Pedigree  in  the  Visitation  of  1612  by  Richard  St.  George. — See  Foster's 
Yorkshire  Pedigrees,  p.  286.      London,  1S75. 

-  tie  had  a  brother,  William  Clitheroe,  who  had  been  ordained  subdeacon 
at  Rheims,  on  jMarch  19,  15S0,  deacon  at  Chalons,  and  priest  at  Soissons  on 
June  9th,  15S2. 


IMARGARET   CLITHEROE'S    EXAMINATION.  255 

She  was  arraigned  four  days  afterwards,  and  brought  from  the 
castle  to  the  common  hall.  She  was  there  formally  accused  of 
having,  contrary  to  the  laws,  harboured  and  maintained  Jesuit 
and  seminary  priests,  traitors  to  the  Queen's  Majesty,  and  that 
she  had  divers  times  idolatrously,  wickedly,  and  unlawfully  heard 
mass,  etc. 

Mr.  Justice  Clinch,  standing  up,  asked  her  thus, — "  Margaret 
Clitheroe,  how  say  you,  are  you  guilty  of  the  indictment,  or  no?" 

To  which,  with  a  smilmg  face,  she  mildly  replied,  "  I  know  of 
no  offence  whatsoever,  of  which  I  should  confess  myself  guilty." 

"You  have  certainly  harboured  Jesuits  and  massing-priests, 
sure  enemies  to  the  Queen's  Afajesty  and  the  Gospel,"  retorted 
the  judge. 

"  I  never  maintained  any  enemies  of  the  queen,"  she  replied, 
"and  God  defend  that  I  should." 

She  thus  declined,  in  a  beautiful  spirit  of  self-sacrifice,  either 
to  betray  her  friends,  implicate  members  of  her  family,  or  injure 
those  of  the  old  clergy  who  had  rendered  her  any  spiritual  aid. 

"  How  will  you  be  tried?"  his  lordship  again  asked. 

"  Having  given  no  offence  whatsoever,  my  lord,  I  need  no 
trial,''  was  her  calm  reply. 

"  But  you  have  offended  against  the  statutes,  as  these  monu- 
ments of  superstition  and  idolatry  plainly  show,"  continued  the 
judge,  pointing  to  some  sacred  vessels  and  vestments  which  lay 
on  the  table  ;  "and,  therefore,  you  must  be  tried,  and  at  once." 

"  If  you  say  I  have  offended,  and  that  I  must  be  tried,  I  will 
be  by  none  save  but  by  God  and  your  own  consciences." 

Some  officers  of  the  court,  taking  up  the  albs  and  chasubles, 
here  put  them  upon  two  common  men  ;  who,  being  vested  in 
mockery,  seized  two  chalices  and  a  handful  of  wafer-breads, 
made  the  sign  of  the  cross  in  mockery,  bowed  down  in  derision, 
and  then  holding  them  up  with  wanton  winks  and  coarse  grimaces, 
exclaimed,  "  Behold  your  gods  in  whom  you  believe  1 " 

"  How  like  you  these  vestments.  Mistress  Clitheroe  ? "  asked 
one  of  the  bystanders  who  had  thus  witnessed  the  antics  of  these 
irreverent  buffoons. 

"Well  enough,"  she  answered,  "were  they  upon  the  backs  of 
those  who  know  how  to  use  them  to  God's  honour,  as  they  were 
made." 

She  still  refused  to  be  tried,  or  to  give  any  other  answer  to 
that  she  had  already  made.  The  judges  adjourned  the  court 
until  the  morrow,  when  she  was  again  brought  up,  to  whom  the 
judge  spoke  thus — 

"  Margaret  Clitheroe,  yesternight  we  passed  you  over  without 


256         THE   CHURCH    UNDER   QUEEN    ELIZABETH. 

judgment,  hoping  that  you  would  be  more  conformable,  and  put 
yourself  to  the  country  ;  otherwise  you  must  needs  have  the  law. 
We  see  no  reason  for  this  your  refusal.  There  be  but  one  witness, 
a  youth,  against  you,  and  the  country  must  consider  your  case." 

"In  deed  and  in  truth!"  replied  the  prisoner,  "you  have  no 
witnesses  against  me  but  a  child ;  and  such,  with  a  rod  or  an 
apple  or  a  bag  of  figs,  you  can  make  to  say  what  you  will." 

"It  is  plain,"  remarked  the  judge,  "  that  you  had  priests  in 
your  house  ;  for  here  be  their  pestilent  garb  and  goods." 

"  As  for  good  Catholic  priests,  why  should  I  not  have  them, 
if  they  come  but  to  do  me  and  others  good  ?  " 

"  They  be  all  rascally  traitors,  idolaters,  and  rank  deceivers  of 
the  queen's  subjects,"  remarked  Mr.  Hurleston,  one  of  the 
councillors. 

"  God  forgive  you  !  "  replied  the  prisoner,  with  feeling  ;  "  you 
could  not  say  so  did  you  know  them.  I  know  them  to  be 
virtuous  men  sent  by  God  to  aid  us  who  need  them,  and  to  save 
our  souls." 

She  was  again  asked  to  plead  ;  but,  with  a  combination  of 
boldness  and  modesty,  still  refused  to  do  so. 

Just  as  the  judge  was  about  to  pass  sentence,  one  of  the 
new  i)reachers,  Wiggington  by  name,  a  noted  Puritan,  stood  up 
and  addressed  his  lordship  with  great  earnestness. 

"  Take  heed  what  you  do,  my  lord,"  said  he.  "  You  sit  here 
to  do  true  justice.  This  woman's  case  is  touching  life  and  death. 
You  may  not,  either  by  God's  law  or  by  man's,  condemn  her  to 
die  on  the  slender  witness  of  a  mere  boy.  You  should  not  judge 
her  save  on  the  credit  of  two  or  three  sufficient  men.  Therefore, 
look  to  it,  my  lord,  look  to  it.     On  your  own  head  rests  this  cause." 

"  I  may  do  it  by  law,"  retorted  the  judge. 

"  By  what  law  ?  "  at  once  asked  the  preacher. 

"  By  the  Queen's  Majesty's  law,"  replied  the  judge,  "  the  only 
law  we  know  of." 

"  That  may  be,"  Wiggington  answered  ;  "  but  not  by  God's 
law.  And  God's  law  none  of  us  may  pass  over,  neither  the 
Queen's  Majesty  nor  any  beside." 

Margaret  Clitheroe  was  once  more  requested  to  plead ;  but 
again  answered  as  before. 

On  this,  one  Rhodes,  a  justice,  is  reported  to  have  interfered, 
asking,  "  Why  stand  we  here  all  the  day  over  tliis  nauglity 
woman  ?  Let  us  with  no  more  ado  despatch  her."  This  was 
determined  on.  Those  in  court,  behind  the  barriers,  and  in 
distant  corners,  the  interested  onlookers,  stretched  themselves 
forward  with  anxiety  to  hear  the  formal  sentence. 


HER   CONDEMNATION.  257 

The  judge  solemnly  rose,  cleared  his  throat  with  an  unctuous 
noise  and  upturned  eyes,  and  thus  delivered  it : — 

"  Margaret  Clitheroe.  Having  refused  to  put  yourself  to  the 
country,  this  must  be  your  sentence  :  Vou  must  return  from 
whence  you  came,  and  there,  in  the  lowest  part  of  the  prison,  be 
stripped  naked,  laid  down  with  your  back  upon  the  floor,  and 
as  much  weight  laid  upon  ycu  as  you  are  able  to  bear,  and  so  to 
continue  three  days  without  meat  or  drink,  except  a  little  barley 
bread  and  puddle  water ;  and  the  third  day,  your  hands  and  feet 
being  tied  to  posts  and  a  sharp  stone  being  put  under  your  back, 
you  are  to  be  pressed  to  death." 

She  heard  the  awful  words  without  fear  or  shrinking,  merely 
remarking,  with  humility  and  modesty,  in  reply,  "  If  this  judg- 
ment be  according  to  your  conscience,  I  pray  God,  when  your 
own  time  comes,  to  give  you  a  better  judgment  before  Him. 
P'or  this  right  heartily  do  I  thank  the  Most  High  !  " 

She  was  then  pinioned  by  the  sheriff's  men,  and  led  back  to 
])rison.  There  Sir  Thomas  Fairfax  and  others  earnestly  implored 
her  to  save  herself  and  family  by  going  even  to  one  sermon  at 
church.  Some  of  the  York  ministers  repeated  this  request,  but  in 
vain.  One,  Pease,  asked,  "  AVhy  refuse  you  to  come  to  '  Our 
Church,'  we  having  so  plain  and  sure  testimonies  to  show  on  our 
side  for  the  truth  ?  " 

"  I  believe  in  that  One  Church,  not  made  by  man,  which 
hath  Seven  Sacraments  and  One  unalterable  Faith.  In  that  I 
will  to  live  and  die." 

Wiggington,  the  already  mentioned  minister,  informed  her 
that  he  had  had  a  vision  of  the  Person  of  Our  Lord,  who  had 
assured  him  of  his  own  election  and  salvation ;  and  therefore  he 
trusted  she  would  regard  him  as  a  faithful  minister. 

Mr.  Toby  Matthew,  Dean  of  Durham,  and  the  Lord  Mayor  of 
York  (who  had  married  her  mother),  likewise  tried  to  make  an 
impression  upon  her  ;  but  it  was  of  no  avail.  She  declined  to 
give  up  the  faith. 

It  was  decreed  that  she  should  suffer  on  Ladyda)',  and  at  the 
York  Tolbooth.  She  looked  forward  to  her  end  without  fear, 
and  in  full  confidence  of  God's  sustaining  power  to  enable  her  to 
endure.  She  passed  the  last  night  of  her  life  in  prayer;  and  had 
fasted  all  the  previous  day.  The  i)rison-keeper's  wife,  though  no 
Catholic,  in  charity  promised  to  induce  the  executioners  to  hasten 
her  death  as  soon  as  possible;  but  the  sufferer  replied,  ''No, 
good  Mrs.  Yoward  ;  not  so.  God  defend  that  I  should  procure 
any  to  be  guilty  of  my  death  and  blood." 

Ladyday  dawned  brightly.       The  golden  sunshine  had  early 

R 


258         THE   CHURCH    UNDER   QUEEN    ELIZABETH. 

lit  the  fretted  towers  of  the  Minster,  and  gilded  the  many  spires 
of  the  parish  churches  ;  all  around  the  city  it  fell  on  the  bright 
green  meadows  watered  by  the  Ouse.  The  clouds  above  were 
light,  the  air  was  clear,  the  sky  blue.  Nature  seemed  to  speak 
eloquently  of  man's  resurrection  from  temporal  death  ;  while  the 
blessed  feast-day  itself  told  of  God's  grace  and  mercy,  and  of 
Mary's  co-operation  and  obedience. 

The  two  sheriffs  of  the  city,  one  of  whom,  Gibson,  was  horri- 
fied at  this  legal  atrocity,  brought  the  condemned  one  to  the 
place  of  execution  before  eight  o'clock.  She  went  cheerfully, 
walking  bare-footed,  and  distributing  her  alms.  Coming  to  the 
appointed  place,  quite  calmly,  she  knelt  down  and  prayed.  Some 
ministers  near,  tormenting  her  for  the  last  time  with  exhortations 
and  vain  words,  asked  her  to  join  with  them  in  prayer. 

"  I  will  not  pray  with  you,  nor  shall  you  pray  with  me,"  she 
replied.  "  I  will  neither  say  '  Amen  '  to  your  prayers,  nor  shall 
you  to  mine." 

She  then  interceded  openly  for  the  Holy  Father,  for  the 
cardinals,  for  all  true  bishops  and  priests,  and  for  all  Christian 
princes,  more  especially  for  Queen  Elizabeth,  that  God  would 
turn  her  to  the  Catholic  faith,  and  that  so,  after  this  mortal  life, 
she  might  enjoy  the  peace  of  Heaven. 

Fawcelt,  the  other  sheriff,  said,  "Mistress  Clitheroe,  remember 
that  you  die  for  treason." 

"  No,  no,  Mr.  Sheriff,"  she  answered ;  "  deceive  not  yourself, 
I  pray  you.  I  die  for  the  love  of  my  Lord  and  Saviour  and  for 
the  Ancient  Faith." 

"  Put  off  your  apparel,  then,  now,"  he  continued ;  for  you 
must  die  naked,  as  judgment  was  pronounced." 

On  her  knees,  and  in  piteous  accents,  with  tears,  she  and  other 
women  earnestly  asked  that  she  might  retain  her  linen  under- 
garment. But  this  was  rudely  denied  her.  Then  she  further 
implored  that,  for  the  honour  of  womanhood,  only  women  might 
undress  her ;  and  that  the  spectators  would  then  avert  their 
gaze.  Eight  beggars,  four  men  and  four  women,  had  been  hired 
to  do  the  murder,  and  stood  by  ready  for  the  w^ork.  Fler  clothes 
were  removed,  and  thereupon  the  women  drew  over  her  body  a 
habit  of  linen.  She  was  then  laid  at  length  on  the  ground,  with 
a  kerchief  over  her  face.  A  large,  sharp  flint  stone,  of  many 
angular  points,  was  placed  under  her  back.  Her  ankles  were 
tied  together,  and  her  wrists  affixed  by  cords  to  two  posts.  A 
stout  oak  door,  supported  at  the  edges  by  these  and  other  posts, 
was  then  placed  upon  her  body.  Heavy  stones  were  then  placed 
thereon.     She  continued  to  pray  audibly,  "O  Jesu,  good  Jesu, 


OTHER   SUFFERERS   FOR   RELIGION.  259 

good  Jesu,  have  mercy  upon  me,"  as  the  hired  and  heartless 
ruffians  rudely  heaped  stone  after  stone  upon  the  door.  The 
rough  fall  and  increased  weight  of  every  addition  produced 
unknown  agony.  But  she  is  said  to  have  struggled  not,  and  only 
prayed  more  earnestly.  The  few  spectators  sickened  at  the  sight, 
as  during  a  full  quarter  of  an  hour  the  stones  were  being  piled 
on  to  the  amount  of  nine  hundredweight ;  while  the  poor 
sufferer's  agonising  prayers  to  her  Master  grew  fainter  and 
feebler,  for  her  frame  quivered  and  her  swollen  tongue  was  dry. 
To  some  the  minutes  seemed  hours.  At  length,  after  the  crash 
of  a  weightier  stone  than  any,  no  more  prayers  were  heard  ;  the 
suppressed  sob  of  suffering  and  the  awful  and  prolonged  sigh  of 
extremest  agony,  found  relief  and  rest  in  death. 

Thus   of  one  more  obstinate    adherent   of  the  old   religion 
England  was  rid. 

Should  any  reader  conceive  this  to  be  an  exceptional  case  of 
punishment  even  unto  death,  inflicted  on  a  woman  during  Queen 
Elizabeth's  reign,  it  becomes  a  duty  to  point  out  that  such  an 
idea  is  a  complete  misconception.  Women  as  well  as  men  were 
constantly  treated  with  the  severest  cruelty.  Record  after  record 
occurs  of  their  imprisonment  and  torture.  Hundreds  died  in 
the  northern  gaols,  after  years  of  sufferina;,  worn  out  with  punish- 
ment and  misery.  Mistress  Margaret  Ward,  a  lady  of  Cheshire, 
and  Mistress  Ann  Line,  a  widowed  gentlewoman,  both  suffered 
death  at  Tybourne  ;  the  first  in  1588,  for  aiding  a  poor  perse- 
cuted priest.  Father  Richard  Watson, ^  to  escape  from  Bridewell ; 
the  second,  on  February  27th,  1601,  for  having  harboured  a 
priest,  as  was  supposed;  for  the  "offence"  was  not  proved. 
The  first-named  was  often  whipped  most  infamouslj-,  and  tortured 
acutely.  For  eight  succeeding  days  she  was  hung  up  by  the 
hands  to  a  beam,  her  feet  scarce  touching  the  ground ;  a  sharp 
punishment,  which  sometimes  caused  her  to  swoon.  She  was 
then  taken  down,  carefully  tended  until  she  revived  and  recovered, 
then  scourged  anew,  and  hung  up  in  the  same  way  once  again. 
She  was  offered  her  liberty  if  she  would  go  to  church,  but  declined. 
When  her  aid  to  the  poor  priest  was  thrown  in  her  teeth  as  an 
act  of  disrespect  to  the  queen,  she  replied  that  if  Her  Majesty 
had  the  ordinary  feelings  of  a  woman,  and  had   known   how 

^  Of  Father  Watson,  it  is  on  record,  "  the  authorities"  thrust  him  into  a 
dungeon  so  low  and  so  strait,  that  he  could  neither  stand  up  in  it,  nor  lay 
himself  dovyn  at  his  full  length  to  sleep.  Here  they  loaded  him  with  irons, 
and  kept  him  for  a  whole  month  on  bread  and  water  ;  of  which  they  allowed 
him  so  small  a  pittance  that  it  was  scarce  enough  to  keep  him  alive  ;  not 
suffering  anyone  to  come  near  him  to  comfort  him  or  speak  to  him. — 
Memoirs  of  Missionary  Priests,  vol.  i.  p.  234.     Derby  edition. 


26o         THE   CHURCH    UNDER   QUEEN    ELIZABETH. 

Father  AVatson  was  suffering,  she  herself  would  surely  have 
aided  him  to  have  escaped.  When  Mrs.  Line  was  ready  to  die 
she  embraced  the  rope  as  well  as  she  was  able,  being  old,  weak, 
and  ill,  exclaiming,  "  I  am  about  to  suffer  for  having  harboured 
a  jn-iest.  So  far  from  repenting  for  having  done  so,  I  rejoice  ; 
and  would,  with  all  my  heart,  that  instead  of  having  harboured 
one  I  had  entertained  a  thousand."  Two  priests,  Mark  Bark- 
worth  and  Roger  Filcock,  suffered  death  at  the  same  time. 

About  the  period  that  Campion  and  Parsons  arrived  in 
England,  it  is  said  by  some  that  Philip  II.  of  Spain,  who  was 
also  Sovereign  of  the  Low  Countries,  in  concert  with  the  Guises 
of  France,  had  begun  to  make  military  and  naval  preparations 
for  the  conquest  of  England.  At  all  events  they  were  com- 
menced soon  afterwards.  It  must  be  frankly  admitted  that 
Elizabeth  had  given  him  great  provocation  for  going  to  war. 
She  had  artfully  fomented  rebellion  against  him,  and  by  the  aid 
of  spies,  secret  agents,  and  traitors,  had  done  him  all  the  mischief 
in  her  power.  She  had  notoriously  intercepted  and  seized  his 
treasure,  had  provokingly  engaged  foreign  mercenaries  to  fight 
against  his  troops,  had  allowed  her  mariners  to  plunder  and 
massacre  his  defenceless  subjects,  as  well  as  those  of  his 
American  colonies.  When  he  quietly  and  privately  complained, 
shufHing  and  sophistry  were  the  only  replies  vouchsafed.  When, 
again,  he  expostulated  with  dignity  through  his  ambassador,  she 
and  her  ministers  descended  to  the  use  of  obvious  and  acknow- 
ledged falsehoods.  Yet  for  her  liberty  and  life  she  had  been 
indebted  to  Philip  inbyegone  days.  Throughout  all  the  prepara- 
tions, however,  Walsingham  had  been  indefatigable  in  watching 
them  step  by  step,  and  in  checking  King  Philip  indirectly  on  all 
occasions  and  at  every  point.  When  he  sought  pecuniary  aid 
from  the  Venetians  and  Genoese,  the  great  money-lenders  of  the 
age,  Elizalieth's  ministers,  perfectly  aware  of  the  negotiations, 
succeeded  both  in  damaging  King  Philip's  credit,  and  in  causing 
him  some  inconvenience.  But,  having  secured  new  vessels, 
naval  stores,  and  efficient  seamen  from  Denmark  and  the  Hanse 
towns,  and  by  great  general  efforts  both  in  Spain  and  the  Low 
Countries  obtained  co-operation,  he  began  to  make  his  final 
plans. 

In  1587  it  became  evident  from  reliable  information  received, 
that  the  expedition  would  certainly  sail  in  the  spring  of  the 
following  year.  .Vccordingly  every  endeavour  to  meet  the  enemy 
was  made  by  the  queen's  advisers,  and  a  fleet  was  assembled  of 
some  size,  consisting  of  about  one  hundred  and  forty  vessels. 
These  were  furnished  by  the  cities  of  London,  Bristol,  Harwich, 


THE   GREAT   ARMADA.  26 1 

Sandwich,  and  other  seaports  ;  by  the  merchant  adventurers  and 
by  private  individuals.  To  Charles,  Lord  Howard  of  Etifingham, 
who  was  of  the  old  religion,  was  given  the  chief  command. 
Under  him  were  Raleigh,  Hawkins,  Drake,  and  Frobisher.  Lord 
Henry  Seymour,  with  a  portion  of  the  fleet,  w^atched  the  coast  of 
Flanders. 

Three  armies  were  gathered  together,  each  consisting  of  about 
twenty-five  thousand  men.  One  was  discreetly  distributed  along 
the  southern  coast,  specially  near  probable  landing-places ;  a 
second  was  placed  near  Tilbury  Fort  on  the  Thames,  to  protect 
the  city  of  London,  while  it  was  arranged  that  a  third  should  be 
in  attendance  on  the  person  of  the  Sovereign.  The  queen,  who 
stayed  at  Havering-at-Bower,  St.  Edward's  ancient  palace, 
absurdly  arrayed  in  a  breastplate,  paid  a  short  visit  to  this  camp, 
where  Lord  Leicester,^  though  a  most  incompetent  general, 
commanded,  and  Her  Majesty  made  an  artificial  and  somewhat 
bombastic  speech  to  the  troops  : — ■"■  I  am  come  amongst  you," 
she  remarked,  "  not  for  my  sport  and  recreation "  (an  indirect 
reply  to  those  who  said  that,  as  usual,  she  had  only  followed  her 
favourite),  "  but,  as  being  resolved  in  the  heat  of  the  fight,  to 
live  and  die  amongst  you  all.  I  am  ready,  for  my  blood  and  my 
people,  to  lay  mine  honour  in  the  dust.  I  know  I  have  but  the 
body  of  a  feeble  woman,  but  I  possess  the  heart  of  a  king,  and  of 
a  King  of  England  too." 

The  people  were  enthusiastic  in  coming  forward  to  defend 
their  country.  Those  who  adhered  to  the  ancient  faith  were 
not  less  earnest  and  zealous  than  their  neighbours.  On  this 
occasion,  and  indeed  on  all  others,  where  patriotism  was  brought 
to  the  test,  the  Catholics  proved  that  no  degree  of  oppression 
and  persecution  could  make  them  forget  their  duties  as  citizens 
or  as  subjects.  Even  Hume  admits  that  Catholic  gentlemen, 
though  excluded  from  all  offices  of  trust  and  authority,  entered 

^  "As  for  your  person,"  wrote  Leicester  to  her,  "  being  the  most  dainty 
and  sacred  thing  we  have  in  this  world  to  care  for,  I  cannot,  most  dear 
queen,  consent  that  you  should  expose  it  to  danger.  For  upon  your  well- 
doing consists  all  the  safety  of  your  whole  kingdom  ;  and,  therefore,  preserve 
that  above  all." — Hanhvicke  Papers,  vol.  i.  p.  577,  She  was  allowed  to 
come  for  a  few  days  to  see  the  forts  and  troops,  and  spend  a  short  time  with 
her  favourite,  who,  however,  distinctly  forbad  her  remaining  with  the  army  or  in 
the  camp.  \Yhen  Lord  Leicester  visited  Lord  and  Lady  Shrewsbury  at  Chats- 
worth,  the  queen  had  the  execrable  taste  to  write  thus  of  him,  acknowledg- 
ing his  hosts'  attentions  : — We  should  do  him  great  wrong  (holding  him 
in  that  place  of  favour  We  do)  in  case  We  should  not  let  you  understand  in 
how  thankful  sort  IVi:  accept  the  same  at  both  your  hands,  not  as  done  tin  to 
him,  but  to  Our  Own  self,  7-eputing  him  as  another  Ourself,"  etc. — Lodge, 
vol.  ii.  p.  155. 


262  THE   CHURCH    UNDER   QUEEN    ELIZABETH. 

as  volunteers  in  the  queen's  fleet  and  army.  Some  equipped 
ships  at  their  own  charge,  and  gave  the  command  of  them  to 
Protestants ;  others  were  active  in  animating  their  tenants, 
vassals,  and  neighbours,  to  the  defence  of  their  hearths  and 
homes.  Thus,  at  a  sore  crisis,  when  internal  dissensions  might 
have  produced  national  ruin,  and  when  an  excellent  opportunity 
had  arisen  to  disorganise  the  plans  of  the  Council  and  to  make 
their  cruel  enemies  and  persecutors  then  lick  the  dust,  the 
afflicted  and  sorely-tried  Catholics  were  nobly  patriotic  and 
marvellously  self-denying.  Facts  like  this  are  of  far  greater 
moment  and  value  than  words.  These  facts  cannot  be  gainsayed. 
On  the  side  of  the  Spaniards  there  then  lay  near  Lisbon  a 
mighty  fleet  of  nearly  a  hundred  and  forty  vessels  of  war,  with  a 
corresponding  number  of  transports — a  grand  and  imposing  sight. 
They  had  no  less  than  twelve  thousand  seamen  and  galley-slaves, 
three  thousand  pieces  of  ordnance,  and  twenty-two  thousand 
troops,  officered  by  the  noblest,  the  most  refined,  and  the  most 
gallant  of  Spain.  In  May,  Philip  visited  the  fleet,  having  received 
a  blessed  banner  from  Pope  Sixtus  V.^  and  His  Holiness's  good 
wishes  for  success.  Perex,  Duke  of  Medina  Sidonia  was  in 
command,  aided  by  Don  Martinez  de  Ricaldi,  a  mariner  of 
great  experience.  I'he  king  had  an  account  of  what  he  termed 
"  the  most  happy  Armada,"  set  forth  and  printed  in  Latin  and 
other  languages,  while  Cardinal  Allen  addressed  "  An  Admo- 
nition to  the  nobility  and  people  of  England  and  Ireland,"  in 
Latin,  urging  them  to  aid  the  Spaniards  and  denouncing  the 
<iueen  in  language  as  plain  and  forcible  as  that  used  of  their 
opponents  by  her  own  new  bishops.  His  Eminence,  or  Robert 
Parsons  (for  some  say  it  was  first  drafted  by  him),  seems  to  have 
caught  something  of  the  spirit  of  Bale,  Pilkington,  and  Sandys. 
The  "  Admonition,"  however,  did  not  involve  a  question  of  style 
or  spirit,  but  of  fact.  It  is  to  be  feared  that  the  facts  stated 
therein  are  but  too  true,  and  cannot  be  denied  nor  disproved. 
As  paragraph  after  paragraph  is  faithfully  and  impartially  con- 
sidered, melancholy  though  the  strong  and  plain-spoken  expres- 
sions and  charges  in  it  appear,  yet  it  is  impossible  with  any 
honesty  to  deny  that  they  are  in  the  main,  and  unhappily,  correct 
and  only  too  true.  These  are  their  exact  terms  in  its  old 
English  form  : — 

1  Felix  Peretti — (a.  n.  1 585-1590) — a  PontifTof  humble  birth,  but  of  great 
governing  powers  and  high  principles.  He  encouraged  the  Ploly  League  in 
France,  formed  to  defend  the  faith  against  the  Huguenots  ;  and  was  active 
both  in  maintaining  tlie  rights  of  the  Chief  Bishop  of  Christendom,  and  in 
putting  down  innovation  and  error. 


POPE   SIXTUS   V.   ON   ELIZABETH.  263 

"  She  [Queen  Elizabeth]  is  a  bastard,  and  daughter  of  Henry 
VIII.,  by  his  incestuous  commerce  with  Anne  Boleyn. 

"She  was  intruded  by  force,  unjustly  deposing  the  lords  of  the 
clergy,  without  whom  no  lawful  Parliament  could  be  held,  nor 
statute  made  ;  and  without  any  approbation  of  the  See  of  Rome, 
contrary  to  the  accord  by  King  John,  at  the  special  request  and 
procurement  of  the  Lords  and  Commons,  as  a  thing  necessary 
to  preserve  the  realm  from  the  unjust  usurpation  of  tyrants. 

"As  to  her  behaviour,  she  has  professed  herself  a  heretic. 
She  usurpeth  by  Luciferian  pride  the  title  of  Supreme  Ecclesi- 
astical Government,  a  thing  in  a  woman  unheard  of;  not  tolerable 
to  the  masters  of  her  own  sect  [this  is  an  allusion  to  Calvin's  and 
Knox's  opinion  on  the  subject] ;  and  to  all  Catholics  in  the 
w^orld  most  ridiculous,  absurd,  monstrous,  detestable,  and  a  very 
fable  to  the  posterity. 

"  She  is  taken  and  known  for  an  incestuous  bastard,  begotten 
and  born  in  sin,  of  an  infamous  courtesan,  Anne  Boleyn,  after- 
wards executed  for  adultery,  treason,  heresy,  and  incest,  among 
others  with  her  own  natural  brother,  which  Anne  Boleyn  her 
father  kept  by  pretended  marriage  in  the  life  of  his  lawful  wife, 
as  he  did  before  unnaturally  know  and  kepe  both  the  said  Anne's 
mother  and  sister. 

"She  is  guilty  of  perjur}',  in  violating  her  coronation  oath. 

"  She  hath  abolished  the  Catholic  religion,  profaned  the 
Sacraments,  forbidding  preaching,  impiously  spoiled  the  churches, 
deposed  and  imprisoned  the  bishops,  and  suppressed  the  monas- 
teries. 

"  She  hath  destroyed  most  of  the  ancient  nobility,  putting  into 
their  houses  and  chambers  traitors,  spies,  delators,  and  promoters, 
that  take  watch  for  her  of  all  their  ways,  words,  and  writings. 

"  She  hath  raised  a  new  nobility  of  men,  base  and  impure, 
inflamed  with  infinite  avarice  and  ambition. 

"She  hath  intruded  a  new  clergy  of  the  very  refuse  of  the 
worst  sort  of  mortal  men, 

"  She  hath  made  the  country  a  place  of  refuge  for  Atheists, 
Anabaptists,  heretics,  and  rebels  of  all  nations. 

"  She  hath  polled  the  people,  not  only  by  more  frequent  and 
large  subsidies  than  any  other  princes,  but  by  sundry  shameful 
guiles  of  lotteries,  laws,  decrets,  falls  of  money,  and  such  like 
deceits. 

"  She  sells  laws,  licences,  dispensations,  pardons,  etc.,  for 
money  and  bribes,  with  which  she  enriches  her  poor  cousins  and 
favourites.     Among  the  latter  is  I>eicester  ^  whom  she  took  up 

1  "  We   are    told    that  among  the  females,    married  or  unmarried,   who 


264         THE   CHURCH    UNDER   QUEEN    ELIZABETH. 

first  to  serve  her  filthy  lust ;  whereof  to  have  more  freedom  and 
interest,  he  caused  his  own  wife  to  be  murdered,  as  afterwards, 
for  the  accomplishment  of  his  like  brutish  pleasures  with  another 
noble  dame,  it  is  openly  known  he  made  away  with  her  husband. 
This  man  over-ruleth  the  Chamber,  Court,  Council,  Parliament, 
ports,  forts,  seas,  ships,  tenders,  men,  munition,  and  all  the 
country. 

"AVith  the  aforesaid  person,  and  with  divers  others,  she  hath 
abused  her  bodie  against  God's  lawes,  to  the  disgrace  of  princely 
majestic  and  the  whole  nation's  reproache,  by  unspeakable  and 
incredible  variety  of  lust,  which  modesty  suffereth  not  to  be 
remembered  ;  neyther  were  it  to  chaste  eares  to  be  uttered  how 
shamefully  she  hath  defiled  and  infamed  her  person  and  country, 
and  made  her  court  as  a  trappe,  by  this  damnable  and  detestable 
art  to  entangle  in  sinne,  and  overthrowe  the  younger  sorte  of  the 
nobilitye  and  gentlemen  of  the  lande ;  whereby  she  is  become 
notorious  to  the  Worlde,  and  in  other  countryes  a  common  fable 
for  this  her  turpitude,  which  in  so  highe  degre,  namely  in  a 
woman  and  a  queene,  deserveth  not  onlie  deposition,  but  all 
vengeance,  both  of  God  and  man ;  and  cannot  be  toUerated 
without  eternal  infamie  of  our  whole  countrie,  the  whole  worlde 
diriding  our  effeminate  dastardie,  that  have  suffered  such  a 
creature  almost  thirty  years  together  to  raigne  both  over  our 
bodies  and  soules,  and  to  have  the  chief  regiment  of  all  our 
affaires,  as  well  spirituall  as  temporal,  to  the  extinguish inge  not 
onley  of  religion  but  of  all  chaste  livinge  and  honesty. 

"  She  does  not  marry,  because  she  cannot  confine  herself  to 
one  man ;  and  to  the  condemnation  of  chaste  and  lawful 
marriage,  she  forced  the  very  Parliament  to  give  consent  to  a 
law  that  none  should  be  named  for  her  successor,  savinge  the 
natural,  that  is  to  saie  bastard-borne,  child  of  her  own  bodie." 

(Here  is  an  allusion  "to  her  unlawfull,  longe  concealed,  or 
fained  issue.") 

"  She  confederates  with  rebels  of  all  nations,  and  is  known  to 
be  the  first  and  principal  fountain  of  all  those  furious  rebellions 
in    Scotland,    France,    and     I'landers ;  sending    abroad    by    her 

formed  the  Court  of  Elizabeth,  two  only  escaped  his  solicitations  ;  that  his 
first  wife  was  munlered  by  his  order  ;  that  he  disowned  his  marriage  with 
the  second,  for  the  Scd-;e  of  a  more  favoured  mistress  ;  and  that  to  obtain  that 
mistress  he  first  triumphed  over  her  virtue,  and  then  administered  poison  to 
lier  husband.  To  these  instances  lias  been  added  a  long  catalogue  of  crimes, 
of  treachery  to  his  friends,  of  assassination  of  his  enemies,  and  of  acts  of 
injustice  and  extortion  towards  those  who  had  oflended  his  priile  or  refused 
to  bend  to  his  pleasure." — History  of  Eti^land,  by  J.  Lingard,  I),D.,  vol.  vi. 
p.  253.     Dublin,  1874. 


FAILURE   OF   THE   ARMADA.  265 

ministers,  as  is  proved  by  intercepted  letters  and  confessions, 
numbers  of  intelligencers,  spies,  and  practisers,  in  most  princes' 
courts,  not  only  to  give  notice  of  news,  but  to  deal  with  the  dis- 
contented;  and  hath  sought  to  destroy  the  persons  of  the  Pope's 
Holiness  and  the  King  of  Spain. 

"  She  is  excessively  proud,  obstinate,  and  impenitent,  though 
she  has  been  excommunicated  eighteen  years. 

"  She  hath  murdered  bishops  and  priests,  and  the  Queen  of 
Scots." 

The  point  and  pith  of  this  terrible  series  of  charges  is  then  set 
forth.  Having  noticed  several  examples  of  the  depositions  of 
kings  under  the  elder  dispensation,  and  of  emperors  by  the 
Patriarch  of  Christendom,  it  proceeds  to  point  out  that  the 
sentence  of  Pope  Pius  V.  has  not  been  pursued,  for  two  reasons  : 
firsdy,  because  of  His  Holiness's  death,  and,  secondly,  because 
of  Elizabeth's  great  power  and  influence.  But  her  determined 
perseverance  in  wickedness,  her  frightful  persecution  of  those  of 
the  old  religion,  and  her  constant  incitation  to  continental  rebels 
to  revolt,  have  induced  Pope  Sixtus  to  urge  upon  Philip  of  Spain 
the  work  now  undertaken. 

How  all  this  failed  of  its  purpose ;  how  the  Armada,  thought 
to  be  invincible,  was  speedily  scattered ;  how  the  elements 
fought  against  the  Spaniards;  and  how  their  admiral  frankly 
admitted  the  loss  of  thirty  ships  of  the  largest  class,  and  no  less 
than  ten  thousand  i:nen,  is  perfectly  well  known.  Philip  was  thus 
defeated,  the  foreign  Catholics  were  sorely  disappointed.  Many 
English  people  were  frantic  with  joy.     The  queen  triumphed. 

To  revert  once  again  to  the  innovators,  their  doings,  and  the 
consequences  thereof. 

In  certain  places  where  the  gospellers  had  secured  popularity 
for  their  new  doctrines — popular,  of  course,  with  the  fanatical 
and  gloomy  of  a  certain  type,  as  well  as  with  the  speculative  and 
logical,  who  followed  Calvin,^— many  of  the  old  rules,  and  most 
of  the  existing  directions  concerning  divine  service,  put  forth  in 
rubrics,  injunctions,  and  visitation  articles,  were  utterly  ignored. 
Some  of  the  ministers,  like  Dee  and  Cardan  (in  a  later  reign), 
practised   witchcraft   and    invoked    demons.-     The    amount   of 

1  Dean  R.  W.  Church,  of  St.  Paul's  Cathedral,  with  an  evident  dash  of 
quiet  irony,  writes  of  "the  imposing  greatness  of  Calvin's  theological  posi- 
tion."— Iniroduciion  to  Hcwker.     Oxford,  1868. 

-  "Whether  there  be  any  man  or  woman  in  your  parish  that  useth  witch- 
craft, sorcery,  charms,  or  unlawful  prayer,  or  invocations  in  Latin  or  English, 
or  upon  any  Christian  body,  or  beast,  or  any  that  resorteth  to  the  same  for 
counsell  or  help,  and  what  be  their  names." — Sandys'  A'isitation  Articles, 
1578. 


266         THE   CHURCH    UNDER   QUEEN    ELIZABETH. 

liberty  in  fact  taken  on  all  sides  was  considerable,  but  with 
some  licence  had  no  bounds ;  for  the  restless  spirit  of  reform 
seemed  to  have  taken  possession  of  so  many.  They  simply  did 
as,  and  what,  they  willed.  Thus  change  followed  change, 
because  the  followers  of  these  daring  innovators  were  ever  seek- 
ing after  some  new  thing. 

In  many  dioceses  the  ''non-sacrament  ministers"  seemed  likely 
to  become  a  majority.  Increasing  in  boldness,  some  of  them, 
I)assing  over  the  bishops,  set  up  Presbyteries,^  and  held  so-called 
"  courts  "  or  assemblies  of  their  own,  for  judging  their  adherents. 
In  these,  all  signs  and  sacraments  were  condemned.  And,  as 
legal  presentments  for  schism  or  neglect  were  calmly  ignored  by 
such  innovators,  while  some  of  the  bishops  confessed  themselves 
altogether  unable  to  suggest  any  remedy,-  disorder  continued  to 
increase. 

Only  on  Sundays  in  certain  parishes  were  any  services  ordin- 
arily held.  From  Monday  mornings  until  Saturday  nights,  more 
especially  in  villages,  the  churches  were  too  often  locked  up  and 
left  desolate.  In  certain  towns,  however,  where  the  "prophesy- 
ings "  were  popular,  such  devotional  exhibitions  or  exercises 
afforded  considerable  interest  to  many.  They  steadily  developed 
in  a  Puritan  direction,  and  became  more  extravagant  year  by  year. 

These  "  prophesyings "  commonly  began  with  a  long  prayer 
from  the  presiding  minister,  who  occupied  the  pulpit;  during 
which  the  men,  standing,  bent  forward  and  covered  their  faces 
with  the  sleeves  of  their  gowns.  The  women-folk  squatted  and 
sighed.^  A  mystical  text  selected  from  the  Apocalypse  always 
ensured  an  exciting  sitting,  for  those  who  thought   themselves 

^  '  Whether  any  new  presbiteries  or  eldershippe  be  lately  among  you 
erected,  and  by  them  any  niinis-ters  appointed  iL'itlioiit  orders  taken  of  the 
bishops,  do  baptize,  minister  the  Communion,  or  deale  in  any  function 
ecclesiasticall  ? "  <S;c. — Articles  of  Enquiry  of  John  Ayhner,  Bishop  of 
London,  15S6. 

-  "My  Lorde  of  Llandaffe  [Gervaise  Babington,  consecrated  in  1591,  and 
■who  died  in  1610]  would  faine  end  these  terrible  [Qy.  ?]  disputacions  ;  but 
siihense  the  coming  of  Morgan  the  minister,  all  hath  Ijin  perversitie  and  sore 
disputaciousnesse." — Author's  MSS.  and  Excerpts.  Original  Letter  from 
Robert  Johnes,  dated  1594.  "  Since  the  liberty  ot  prophesying  was  taken  up, 
which  came  but  lately  into  the  northern  parts  (unless  it  were  in  the  towns  of 
Newcastle  and  Berwick,  where  Knox,  Macbray,  and  Udall  had  sown  their 
tares),  all  things  have  gone  so  cross  and  backward  in  our  Church,  that  I  cati- 
not  call  the  history  of  these  forty  years  or  more  to  mind,  or  express  my  obliga- 
tions upon  it,  but  with  a  bleeding  heart." — 'Aorks  of  Dr.  T.  fackson, 
vol.  iii.  p.  273. 

^  Apolo^iefor  the  Trewthe,  as  sette  fforthe,  etc.  by  IL  H.,  p.  19.  London  : 
At  the  Sign  of  the  Swan  in  Paul's  Churchyard,  1594.  See  also  Histoiy  of 
(he  Alartin  Marprclate  Controversy,  etc.     London,  1845. 


THE    NEW   "SUPPER,"   ETC.  26/ 

specially  endoAved  from  on  high,  seated  and  covered,  and  with 
their  Bibles  open  and  ready,  gave  free  rein  both  to  imagination 
and  assertion.  If  the  minister  who  began  the  proceedings  had 
plenty  of  confidence  in  his  own  judgment,  a  stentorian  voice,  a 
fluent  delivery,  and  what  has  been  styled  "the  grace  of  obstinacy," 
he  could  not  only  talk  down  his  contradictory  opponents,  but 
both  command  silence  and  ensure  it,  when  the  subject,  in  his 
judgment,  had  been  well  thrashed  out,  or  when  wind  and  words 
failed  him.  If  he  were  both  physically  and  morally  weak,  no 
one  could  safely  predict  the  result  of  the  "  prophesying,"— it 
might  end  in  an  unsanctified  noise,  a  shower  of  Bibles  across  the 
nave,  and  a  free  fight  amongst  the  elect.  No  one  under  such 
circumstances  could  say  that  the  new  system  was  dead,  where 
such  obvious  and  tangible  signs  of  active  life  were  so  plainly 
apparent. 

Towards  the  latter  half  of  the  queen's  reign,  when  develop- 
ments more  startling  than  ever  were  current,  the  suggestion,  long 
previously  put  forth, ^  that,  as  a  further  reform,  "the  Lord's 
Supper"  should  be  made  a  substantial  meal,  and  be  partaken  of 
in  the  evening,  the  only  suitable  time  of  day  for  a  supper,  was 
very  commonly  followed.  To  wind  up  the  proceedings  of  the 
"  Sabbath,"  as  the  Lord's  Day  began  to  be  called,  in  this  manner 
was  felt  by  some  to  be  at  once  solemnising,  appropriate,  and 
elevating.  On  such  occasions  the  "  ordinance,"  as  it  was  termed, 
partook'largely  of  the  nature  of  a  solemn  social  assembly  for 
singing  sacred  songs,  making  vague  admissions  of  spiritual  weak- 
ness, eating,  drinking,  and  praying.^  How  far  "  the  Order  for  the 
Administration  of  the  Supper"  in  the  Book  of  Common  Prayer 
was  used  or  followed,  is  open  to  question  and  consideration. 
The  Communion  tressels  were  spread  with  a  table-cloth,  loaves 
and  wine  were  supplied  in  abundance,  and  in  some  cases  pro- 
fusely ;  platters  or  trenchers  were  placed  round  the  table;  a  sop 
of  bread  and  wine  made  in  a  porringer,^  was  partaken  of  with 

1  See  page  68  of  this  book  for  the  authority,  given  in  the  foot-note. 

-  At  Thame,  Oxon.,  at  Easter  1560,  two  gallons  of  wine  were  provided  ; 
at  Easter  1563,  three  gallons,  a  large  amount,  and  no  less  than  twenty-six 
loaves.  It  is  thus  also  recorded  :  —  "  1591.  May  2nd.  Item,  delivered  unto 
William  Typpinge  Two  Cupps  for  the  Communion-table,  ij  dozen  and  an 
halfe  of  Platters,  one  pann,  six  spones,  and  half  a  dozen  of  trenchers,  ij  table- 
clothes."  The  tressels  there  were  not  abolished  until  the  year  1625,  when 
thirty  shillings  were  expended  in  providing  a  Communion-table. — Author's 
MSS.  and  Excerpts  from  the  Parish  Accounts  of  Thame,  Oxon. 

^  There  is  a  two-handled  silver  cup  at  Charing  in  Kent.  It  is  said  to  hold 
a  gallon  of  wine.  The  Tudor  notion  of  making  the  Lord's  Supper  a  full  and 
substantial  meal  was  perpetuated  for  several  generations. — See  Archaologta 
Cantiaua,  vol.  xvi.  p.   354.     At  Bonnington  in  Kent,  there  is  no  chalice, 


268  THE   CHURCH    UNDER   QUEEN    ELIZABETH. 

spoons ;  and  so,  with  a  certain  grave  demeanour,  the  sitting 
saints^  ]:>robably  contrasted  that,  their  homely  and  simple  rite, — 
in  which  the  body  was  refreshed,  the  mind  deluded,  and  the 
conscience  drugged, — with  the  now  absolutely-abolished  and  truly- 
hated  mass.     It  7vas  a  contrast  indeed. 

In  other  particulars,  some  reaction  took  place.  The  first 
person  amongst  the  English  ministers,  who,  by  the  general 
soundness  of  his  principles,  the  clearness  of  his  thoughts,  and 
the  ability  with  which  he  set  them  forth,  began  to  stem  the  tide 
of  this  kind  of  confusion,  innovation,  and  novelty  (in  his  day  so 
great,  that  all  order  and  law  seemed  likely  to  be  overturned,  and 
distinct.  Atheism  first  became  rampant  in  a  once  Catholic 
country-)  was  Richard  Hooker,  born  of  a  respectable  family 
near  the  city  of  Exeter,  on  Our  Lady's  Day  1554.  "When  about 
twenty  years  of  age,  by  the  aid  of  an  uncle  who  was  chamber- 
lain of  that  city,  he  was  admitted  a  clerk  of  Corpus  Christi 
College,  Oxford,  of  which  in  1577  he  became  a  Fellow,  and 
subsequently  Rector  of  Drayton  Beauchamp  in  Buckingham- 
shire;  but  was  in  1584  appointed  Master  of  the  Temple  in 
London,  a  position  of  prominence  and  importance.  Here  he 
was  brought  into  controversy  with  the  two  notorious  Puritans, 
Travers  and  Cartwright  (of  whom  mention  has  already  been 
made),  who  were  deliberately  aiming  to  effect  still  further  and 
still  greater  fundamental  changes  both  in  the  doctrine  and 
discipline  of  the  Church  of  England. 

but  a  porringer  (that  is,  a  domestic  cup),  with  two  handles  for  porridge, 
is  in  use  at  the  Holy  Communion.  The  same  is  the  case  likewise  at 
Frinsted  and  Pestling  in  that  county. — //>/(/.  vol.  xvii.  pp.  291-2.  London, 
1SS7. 

1  '  The  state  of  the  churches  was  deplorable  ;  they  had  been  left  to  fana- 
tical neglect  and  ruin.  The  Sacrament  was  administered  in  the  most  irre- 
verent manner ;  the  sci-nce  for  the  altar  [Qy.  the  cup  and  platter]  ivas 
borrowed  from  the  nearest  house,  and  the  communicants  took  their  seats  at 
tallies  which  the  Catholics  termed  ^'oyster-boards.''  The  estates  of  the  Church 
were  alienated  by  the  bishops.  The  highest  dignitaries  had  availed  them- 
selves of  the  spoliation  of  the  churches,  and  shared  the  plate  and  costly 
carvings  with  the  nobility  and  gentry.  Many  parishes  were  left  without  a 
clergyman  ;  in  almost  all,  the  service  was  neglected." — Documents  from 
Simancas,  Introduction,  pp.  17,  18.      London,  1S65. 

-  "To  heighten  all  these  discontents  and  dangers,  there  was  also  sprung 
up  a  generation  of  godless  men  ;  men  that  had  so  long  given  way  to  their  own 
lusts  and  delusions,  and  so  highly  opposed  the  blessed  motions  of  His  Spirit, 
and  the  inward  light  of  their  own  consciences,  that  they  became  the  very 
slaves  of  vice,  and  had  thereby  sinned  themselves  into  a  belief  of  that  which 
they  would,  but  could  not,  believe  :  into  a  belief  which  is  repugnant  even  Ui 
human  nature  (for  the  heathens  believe  that  there  are  many  gods),  but  these  had 
sinned  themsehk-s  into  a  belief  that  there  -,i'as  no  God."— Life  of  Mr.  Richard 
Hooker^  by  Isaac  Walton,  ed.  Keble,  p.  37.     Oxford,  1845. 


RICHARD   HOOKER.  269 

Though  Hooker  had  been  brought  up  in  the  narrow  school  of 
Calvin,  yet,  when  the  new  religion  became  duly  developed  in  its 
various  and  contradictory  forms,  when  moreover  he  saw  to  what 
lengths  Travers  and  his  adherents  proposed  to  go, — what  blank 
infidelity  had  ensued  from  such  conflicts  and  controversies,-^he 
himself  stopped  short ;  surveyed  the  actual  situation  with  the 
])ower  and  grasp  of  a  clear-sighted  and  vigorous  mind,  and  gave 
to  the  Christian  nations  a  treatise  so  deep,  so  exact,  and  so 
masterly,  that  his  name  remains  as  one  of  the  greatest  and 
deepest  writers  of  his  day.  One  of  the  Chief  Bishops  of  Chris- 
tendom highly  commended  his  labours.^  The  Laws  of  Ecclesi- 
astical Polity  was  commenced  in  the  Temple  about  1587, 
continued  at  Boscombe  in  the  diocese  of  Sarum  four  years 
afterwards,  and  completed  about  1594  at  Bishopsbourne  near 
Canterbury.  The  eminent  writer,  who  was  as  modest  and 
humble  as  he  was  thoughtful  and  learned,  was  of  short  stature, 
bent  with  literary  labours  and  bodily  mortifications,  much  tried 
by  home  troubles,  and  in  no  way  externally  remarkable.  But 
the  services  he  rendered  to  the  institution  of  which  he  was  so 
great  a  light  and  defender,  the  masterly  method  by  which  he  led 
his  readers  back  from  the  new  to  the  old,  will  only  be  adequately 
realised  when  the  miserable  disunion  of  the  sixteenth  century, 
which  he  so  deplored,  is  atoned  for  by  the  corporate  reunion  of 
a  later  age. 

Hooker  laid  the  foundation  of  a  theological  party  in  the 
National  Church,  whose  principles  were  rather  akin  to  those  of 
Christian  divines  before  the  so-called  "Reformation,"  than  to 
those  of  Barlow,  Cranmer,  Sandys,  Parkhurst,  and  Bale.  From 
Hooker's  day  to  the  present,  his  principles  have  been  always 
more  or  less  acknowledged  as  good  and  true  ;  so  that  a  consider- 
able section  of  English  Churchmen  has  been  benefited  and 
blessed  through  his  labours. 

Nevertheless,  as  regards  the  crucial  question  of  ordination, — a 
question  of  life  or  death  to  the  professing  Catholic,  though  one 
of  little  or  no  moment  to  the  newly-bred  sectarian  or  Donatistic 
Nationalist,- — Hooker's    trumpet    gave    a   most    uncertain    and 

^  Pope  Clement  VIH.  [Hippolytus  Aldobrandini]  said  of  Hooker,  "There 
is  no  learning  that  this  man  hath  not  searcht  into  ;  nothing  too  hard  for  his 
imderstanding  ;  this  man  indeed  deserves  the  name  of  an  author  ;  his  books 
will  get  reverence  by  age,  for  there  is  in  them  such  seeds  of  eternity,  that,  if 
the  rest  be  Hke  this,  they  shall  last  till  the  last  fire  shall  consume  all  learn- 
ing."— Life  of  Hooker,  Iveble's  ed.  of  his  Works,  p.  71.      Oxford,  1845. 

-  In  quoting  the  following  account  of  Hooker's  position,  the  author  must 
regretfully  and  frankly  confess  his  inability  to  reconcile  such  distressing  facts 
as  many  of  those  which  are  recorded  in  these  volumes,  with  the  late  respected 


270  THE   CHURCH    UNDER   QUEEN    ELIZABETH. 

unsatisfactory  sound.  As  regards  current  events,  he  saw  around 
him  bishops  who  one  and  all  did  not  believe  that  episcopal 
ordination  was  essential,  and  who  possibly  had  never  themselves 
received  it ;  deans  and  prebendaries,  like  Whittingham  and 
Kinge,  Ahvood  and  De  Saravia,  who  had  received  only  so-called 
"ordination  "at  the  hands  of  presbyters  ;  and  numerous  churches, 
as  existing  evidence  proves,  served  by  ministers  not  ordained  at 
all.^     In  making  his  able  defence  of  true  principles,  therefore,  he 

Mr.  Keble's  confident  assertions  regarding  the  then  state  of  affairs.  That 
thoughtful  and  eminent  Tractarian  in  1845  thus  wrote: — "Now,  since  the 
episcopal  succession  had  been  so  carefully  retained  in  the  Church  of  England, 
and  so  much  anxiety  evinced  to  render  both  her  Liturgy  and  Ordination 
Services  strictly  conformable  to  the  rules  and  doctrines  of  antiquity,  it  miyht 
have  been  expected  that  the  defenders  of  the  English  hierarchy  against  the 
first  Puritans  should  take  the  highest  ground,  and  challenge  for  the  bishops 
the  same  unreserved  submission,  on  the  same  plea  of  exclusive  apostolical 
prerogative,  which  their  adversaries  feared  not  to  insist  on  for  their  elders  and 
deacons.  It  is  notorious,  however,  that  such  was  rot  in  general  the  line  pre- 
ferred by  Jewell,  Whitgift,  Bishop  Cooper,  and  others,  to  whom  the  manage- 
ment of  that  controversy  was  intrusted  during  the  early  part  of  Elizabeth's 
reign.  They  do  not  expressly  disavow,  but  they  carefully  shun,  that  unre- 
served appeal  to  Christian  antiquity,  in  which  one  would  have  thought  they 
must  have  discerned  the  very  strength  of  their  cause  to  lie.  It  is  enough  with 
them  to  show  that  the  government  by  archbishops  and  bishops  is  ancient  and 
allowable  ;  they  never  venture  to  urge  its  exclusive  claim,  or  to  connect  the 
succession  with  the  validity  of  the  holy  Sacraments  ;  and  yet  it  is  obvious  that 
such  a  course  of  argument  alone  (supposing  it  borne  out  by  facts)  could  fully 
meet  all  the  exigencies  of  the  case.  It  must  have  occurred  to  the  learned 
writers  above  mentioned,  since  it  was  the  received  doctrine  of  the  Church 
down  to  their  days  ;  and  if  they  had  disapproved  it,  as  some  theologians  of  no 
small  renown  have  since  done,  it  seems  unlikely  that  they  should  have  passed 
it  over  without  some  express  avowal  of  dissent ;  considering  that  they  always 
wrote  with  an  eye  to  the  pretensions  of  Rome  also,  which  popular  opinion 
had  in  a  great  degree  mixed  up  with  this  doctrine  of  apostolical  succession. 
One  obvious  reason,  and  probably  the  chief  one,  of  their  silence,  was  the 
relation  in  which  they  stood  to  the  foreign  Protestant  congregations.  The 
question  had  been  mixed  up  with  considerations  of  personal  friendship,  first 
by  Cranmer's  connection  with  the  Lutherans,  and  after  King  Edward's  death, 
by  the  residence  of  Jewell,  Grindal,  and  others  at  Zurich,  Strasburg,  and 
elsewhere,  in  congregations  which  had  given  up  the  apostolical  succession. 
Thus  feelings  arose  which  came,  insensibly,  no  doubt,  but  really  and  strongly, 
in  aid  of  the  prevailing  notion  that  everything  was  to  be  sacrificed  to  the 
paramount  object  of  union  among  Protestants." — Rev.  J.  Keble's  Preface  to 
the  Works  of  Kichard  Hooker,  pp.  lix.  Ix.     Oxford,  1S45. 

1  "Nearly  up  to  the  time  when  he  [Richard  Hooker]  wrote,  numbers  had 
been  admitted  to  the  ministry  of  the  Church  of  England,  witli  no  better  than 
Presbyterian  ordination,  and  it  appears  by  Travers's  Supplication  to  the 
Council,  that  such  was  the  construction  put  upon  the  statute  of  the  13th  of 
Elizabeth,  permitting  those  who  had  received  orders  in  any  other  form  than 
that  of  the  P'.nglish  service-book,  on  giving  certain  securities,  to  exercise  their 
calling  in  England.  If  it  were  really  the  intention  of  [the  framersand  makers 
of]  that  act  to  authorise  other  than  episcopal  ordination,  it  is  but  one  proof 


CONCERNING    IIOOKER'S   SCHOOL   OF   THOUGHT.      2/1 

was  bound  to  consider  such  grave  facts,  which  he,  a  mere 
country  pastor,  had  neither  power  nor  opportunity  to  alter. 
Nothing  that  he  could  think,  write,  or  say,  could  undo  the 
mischief  already  deliberately  done.  Hooker,  consequently, 
adapted  himself  to  circumstances,  there  was  obviously  no  other 
alternative  ;  and  though,  if  his  admitted  principles  were  faith- 
fully applied,  the  fact  that  episcopal  ordination  was  essential 
might  be  reasonably  deduced  from  their  acceptance,  he  not  only 
nowhere  so  applied  them,  but  actually  regarded  Ur.  Adrian  De 
Saravia  ^ — ordained  abroad  by  presbyters,  if  at  all — as  one 
perfectly  capable  of  receiving  his  death-bed  confession,  of  giving 
him  absolution,  and  of  administering  the  Lord's  Supper.  Here 
is  the  record  : — 

"  About  one  day  before  his  death,  Dr.  Saravia,  who  knew  the 
very  secrets  of  his  soul  (for  they  were  supposed  to  be  confessors 
to  each  other),  came  to  him,  and  after  a  conference  of  the 
benefit,  the  necessity,  and  safety  of  the  Church's  absolution,  it 
was  resolved  the  doctor  should  give  him  both  that  and  the 
Sacrament  the  day  following.  To  which  end  the  doctor  came, 
and  after  a  short  retirement  and  privacy,  they  two  returned  to 
the  company,  and  then  the  doctor  gave  him,  and  some  of  those 
friends  which  were  with  him,  the  blessed  Sacrament  of  the  body 
and  blood  of  our  Jesus.  Which  being  performed,  the  doctor 
thought  he  saw  a  reverend  gaiety  in  his  face."'- 

Subsequently,  the  "  Reformed  "  National  Church  —  which, 
however,  had  happily  retained  a  belief  in  the  fundamental 
doctrines  of  Christianity,  and  in  two  of  the  Sacraments — began 
to  throw  off  the  heresies  and  errors  of  its  first  founders,  and  in 
due  "course  abandoned  some  of  them.  For  the  influence  of 
Hooker  has  never  been  lost.  The  rise  of  the  Caroline  school  of 
theologians,  often  thoroughly  Christian,  if  not  quite  Catholic  ; 
the  improvement  deliberately  made  in  the  Ordinal  in  1662, 
together  with  the  expulsion  of  the  fanatical  and  unordained  ;  the 
beneficial  influence  of  Archbishop  Sancroft  and  the  later  Non- 
more  of  the  low  accommodating  notions  concerning  the  Church  which  then 
prevailed  ;  and  may  serve  to  heighten  our  sense  of  the  imminent  risk  which 
we  were  in  of  losing  the  succession." — P.  Ixxvi.  of  the  Preface  by  the  Rev. 
John  Keble  to  his  edition  of  Hooker's  Works. 

1  Adrian  de  Saravia  came  from  Ghent.  His  father  was  a  Spaniard  ;  his 
mother  from  Artois.  As  is  generally  allowed,  he  was  never  ordained,  though 
he  wrote  in  defence  of  episcopacy,  held  a  controversy  with  Beza,  and  was 
made  a  Prebendary  of  Canterbury.  He  wrote  three  remarkable  tracts  :  (i) 
"De  diversis  ministrorum  evangelii  gradibus  ;  "  (2)  '-'De  Honore  prcesulibus 
et  presbyteris  debito  ;"  and  (3)   "  De  sacrilegis  et  sacrilegorum  pcenis." 

-  Life  of  Mr.  Richard  Hooker,  p.  85.  Keble's  edition  of  his  Works. 
Oxford,  1845. 


2-2  THE   CHURCH    UNDER   QUEEN    ELIZABETH. 

jurors  ;  and,  more  especially,  the  great  work  of  reparation  and 
restoration  effected  because  of  the  Oxford  movement  of  1833, 
are  all  tokens  that  the  Almighty  has  not  forsaken  us,  but  has  yet 
some  important  work  for  the  Church  of  England  to  do, — ^whether 
in  a  day  of  sunshine  and  grace,  or  after  a  period  of  storm  and 
losses,  none  can  know, — when  the  time  for  effecting  corporate 
reunion,  on  the  solid  basis  of  authority  and  truth,  shall  in  His 
merciful  providence  have  at  length  arrived. 


Correspondence  concerning  the  Proposed  Private 
Assassination  of  Marv,  Queen  of  Scots. 

From  the  '■'•  Letter-Books  of  Sir  Amias  Fou/et,'^  Keeper 
of  the  Queen. 

"  To  Sir  Amias  Poulet.' 

"  '  After  our  hearty  commendations,  we  find  by  speech  lately 
uttered  by  Her  Majesty  that  she  doih  note  in  you  a  lack  of  that 
care  and  zeal  of  her  service  that  she  looketh  for  at  your  hands, 
in  that  you  have  not  in  all  this  time  of  yourselves  (without  other 
])rovocation)  found  out  some  way  to  shorten  the  life  of  that 
([ueen,  considering  the  great  peril  she  is  subject  unto  hourly,  so 
long  as  the  said  queen  shall  live.  \Vherein,  besides  a  kind  of 
lack  of  love  towards  her,  she  noteth  greatly  that  you  have  not 
that  care  of  your  own  particular  safeties,  or  rather  of  the  pre- 
servation of  religion  and  the  public  good  and  prosperity  of  your 
country,  that  reason  and  policy  commandeth,  especially  having 
so  good  a  warrant  and  ground  for  the  satisfaction  of  your  con- 
sciences towards  God  and  the  discharge  of  your  credit  and 
reputation  towards  the  w'orld,  as  the  oath  of  association  which 
you  both  have  so  solemnly  taken  and  vowed,  and  especially  the 
matter  wherewith  she  standeth  charged  being  so  clearly  and 
manifestly  proved  against  her.  And  therefore  she  taketh  it 
most  unkindly  towards  her,  that  men  professing  that  love  towards 
her  that  you  do,  should  in  any  kind  of  sort,  for  lack  of  the  dis- 
charge of  your  duties,  cast  the  burthen  upon  her,  knowing  as 
you  do  her  indisposition  to  shed  blood,  especially  of  one  of 
that  sex  and  quality,  and  so  near  to  her  in  blood  as  the  said 
(jueen  is.  These  respects  we  find  do  greatly  trouble  Her 
Majesty,  who,  we  assure  you,  has  sundry  times  protested  that  if 

'  Hearne's  M.S.  Diary,  vol.  Ixxxv.  p.  89.     From  Gwyn^^  Transcript. 


VARIOUS   HISTORICAL   LETTERS.  273 

the  regard  of  the  danger  of  her  good  subjects  and  faithful 
servants  did  not  more  move  her  than  her  own  peril,  she  would 
never  be  drawn  to  assent  to  the  shedding  of  her  blood.  We 
thought  it  very  meet  to  acquaint  (you)  with  these  speeches 
lately  passed  from  Her  Majesty,  referring  the  same  to  your  good 
judgments.  And  so  we  commit  you  to  the  protection  of  the 
Almighty. 

"'At  London,  February  i,  1586. 

"  '  Your  most  assured  friends, 

" '  Francis  Walsingham, 
" '  Wm.  Davison.' 

"  This  letter  was  received  at  Fotheringhay,  the  2nd  of  February 
at  five  in  the  afternoon." 


"  An  abstract  of  a  letter  from  Mr.  Secretary  Davison,  of  the 
said  ist  of  February  1586,  as  foUoweth  : — 

" '  I  pray  let  this  and  the  inclosed  be  committed  to  the  fire, 
which  measure  shall  be  likewise  mete  to  your  answer,  after  it 
hath  been  communicated  to  Her  Majesty  for  her  satisfaction.'" 

" '  A  postscript  in  a  letter  from  Mr.  Secretary  Davison,  of  the 
3rd  of  February  1586  ; — 

" '  I  entreated  you  in  my  last  to  burn  my  letters  sent  unto  you 
for  the  argument'  sake,  which  by  your  answer  to  Mr.  Secretary 
(which  I  have  seen)  appeareth  not  to  have  been  done.  I  pray 
you,  let  me  entreat  you  to  make  heretics  of  the  one  and  the 
other,  as  I  mean  to  use  yours,  after  Her  Majesty  hath  seen  it.' " 

"  In  the  end  of  the  postscript — 

"  '  I  pray  you  let  me  hear  what  you  have  done  with  my  letters, 
because  they  are  not  fit  to  be  kept,  that  I  may  satisfy  Her 
Majesty  therein,  who  might  otherwise  take  offence  thereat,  and 
if  you  entreat  this  postscript  in  the  same  manner,  you  shall  not 
err  a  whit.'" 


"  A.  Poulet— D.  Drury. 


"A  copy  of  a  letter  to  Sir  Francis  Walsingham,  of  the  2nd 
of  February  1586,  at  six  in  the  afternoon,  being  the  answer  to  a 
letter  from  him,  the  said  Sir  Francis,  of  the  ist  of  February  1586, 
received  at  Fotheringhay,  the  2nd  day  of  Februar}-,  at  five  in  the 
afternoon  : — 

"'Your  letters  of  yesterday  coming  to  my  hands  this  present 

S 


274         THE   CHURCH    UNDER   QUEEN    ELIZABETH. 

day  at  five  in  the  afternoon,  I  would  not  fail  according  to  your 
directions  to  return  my  answers  with  all  ])ossible  speed,  which 
{sic)  shall  deliver  unto  you  with  great  grief  and  bitterness  of 
mind,  in  that  I  am  so  unhappy  to  have  liven  to  see  this  unhappy 
day  in  the  which  I  am  recjuired  by  direction  from  my  most  gracious 
sovereign  to  do  an  act  which  God  and  the  law  forhiddeth.  My 
good  livings  and  life  are  at  Her  Majesty's  disposition,  and  am 
ready  to  so  lose  them  this  next  morrow  if  it  shall  so  please  her, 
acknowledging  that  I  hold  them  as  of  her  mere  and  most 
gracious  favour,  and  do  not  desire  them  to  enjoy  them,  but  with 
Her  Highness's  good  liking.  But  God  forbid  that  I  should 
make  so  foul  a  shipwreck  of  my  conscience,  or  leave  so  great  a 
blot  to  my  poor  posterity,  to  shed  blood  without  law  or  warrant. 
Trusting  that  Her  Majesty,  of  her  accustomed  clemency,  will 
take  this  my  dutiful  answer  in  good  part  (and  the  rather  by  your 
good  mediation),  as  proceeding  from  one  who  will  never  be 
inferior  to  any  Christian  subject  living  in  duty,  honour,  love,  and 
obedience  towards  his  sovereign.  And  thus  I  commit  you  to 
the  mercy  of  the  Almighty. 

"'From  Fotheringhay,  the  2nd  of  P'ebruary  1586. 

"  '  Your  most  assured  poor  friends, 

"  '  A,  POULET, 

"  '  D.  Drury. 

" '  Your  letters  coming  in  the  plural  number  seem  to  be 
meant  as  to  Sir  Drue  Drury  as  to  myself,  and  yet  because  he 
is  not  named  in  them,  neither  the  letter  directed  unto  him,  he 
forbeareth  to  make  any  particular  answer,  but  subscribeth  in 
heart  to  my  opinion.'  " 


"I  copied  these  letters  in  December  17 17,  from  a  MS.  folio 
book  of  letters  to  and  from  Sir  Amias  Poulet,  when  the  Queen 
of  Scots'  Governor  at  Fotheringhay.  This  book  is  in  the  hands 
of  John,  Earl  of  Poulett,  his  immediate  descendant,  and  in  that 
book  is  likewise  contained  a  particular  account  of  the  trial  of 
the  Queen  of  Scots,  which  seems  to  be  done  by  Sir  Amias 
himself.^ 

[Poulet  was  too  cautious  to  destroy  the  disgraceful  letters  he 

had  been  dishonoured  by  receiving  from  the  secretaries  of  his 

sovereign.     He  carried  the  originals  with  him  to  London,  and 

there  doubtless  they  were  "  made  heretics  of,"  as  Davison  had 

^  \Viih  this  note  by  Mr.  Gwyn,  Hearnc's  copy  ends. 


VARIOUS   HISTORICAL   LETTERS.  275 

urged.  But  mindful  of  his  own  reputation,  he  left  copies 
with  his  family,  that,  if  necessary,  it  might  be  known  in  what 
terms  he  had  repelled  the  base  proposal.] 

"  Poulet  to  Davison. 

" '  Sir, — The  rule  of  charity  commandeth  to  bear  with  the 
impatience  of  the  afflicted,  which  Christian  lesson  you  have 
learned,  as  I  find  by  experience  to  my  great  contentment,  in 
that  you  have  been  content  to  bear  with  my  malapertness, 
wherein  you  bind  me  more  and  more  to  love  you  and  to  honour 
you,  which  I  will  do  with  all  human  faithfulness. 

" '  If  I  should  say  that  I  have  burned  the  papers  you  wot  ot 
I  cannot  tell  if  everybody  would  believe  me;  and  therefore  I 
reserve  them  to  be  delivered  to  your  hands  at  my  coming  to 
London.  God  bless  you  and  prosper  all  your  actions  to  His 
glory. 

"'From  Fotheringhay,  the  Sth  of  February  15S6. 

"  '  Your  most  assuredly  to  my  small  power, 

'"A.   POUI.ET.'" 


The  Letter- Books  of  Sir  Aniias  Poulet,  Keeper  of  Mary,  Queen 
of  Scots.  Edited  by  Rev.  John  Morris.  London,  1874.  A 
volume  which,  I  may  be  permitted  to  add,  is  full  of  historical 
interest  and  importance. 


CHAPTER  IX. 

Throughout  all  these  stirring  times,  times  of  excitement,  con- 
fusion, and  change,  the  peculiar  disorder  which  everywhere 
existed  in  the  National  Church  can  scarcely  now  be  realised. 
Unless  records  actually  remained  in  black,  and  white,  of  the 
exact  state  of  the  then  existing  degradation,  which  plainly  set 
it  forth  in  detail,  few  would  be  found  to  credit  its  existence. 
Writers  interested  in  making  out  a  case,  by  suppressing  facts, 
passing  over  damaging  records,  and  by  artful  special  pleading, 
have  for  a  long  time  succeeded  in  obscuring  the  truth.  The 
bishops  of  that  day  are  constantly  complaining  to  the  Council 
of  their  miseries,  and  are  found  metaphorically  wringing  their 
hands  in  despair  of  ever  being  able  to  bring  order  out  of  such 
disorder.  Obedience,  they  assert,  does  not  exist.  Every  one 
persists  in  doing  exactly  what  he  likes,  and  moral  suasion  is  of 
little  or  no  avail. 

Dr.  Bickley,  Bishop  of  Chichester,  believes  that  the  times 
are  sad  because  "  so  many  preaching  ministers  will  abide  no  cor- 
rection."^ He  himself  had  been  openly  set  at  defiance,  to  his 
great  humiliation,  by  some  "  i)roper  insolent "  preachers  who, 
going  from  place  to  place,  would  not  minister  any  sacrament 
"but  only  stir  up  the  ignorant  and  mean  with  vain  and  vicious 
words,"  despising  his  lordship,  his  office  and  authority,  and  "the 
powers  that  be."  They  were  "verie  sore  skornfull "  when  the 
queen  was  referred  to  as  owning  any  spiritual  authority. 

Dr.  Chaderton  of  Lichfield  was  very  downhearted  at  the  state 
of  affairs,  as  he  piteously  wrote  to  the  Lord  Treasurer  in  the 
following  terms  ? — 

"  Certes,  my  honorable  lord,  I  am  here  in  a  very  perilous 
country  ;  and,  if  I  may  speak  it  without  offence,  the  very  sink 
of  the  whole  realm,  both  for  corrupt  religion  and  life.'^ 

■"  In  1583  it  is  on  record  that  Tiiomas  Underdowne  preached  in  St. 
Michael's,  Lewes,  that  anyone  who  had  an  inward  persuasion  and  allowance 
that  he  v\as  called  by  Cod  might  lawfully  preach. — Slate  Papers,  Domestic, 
Elizabeth,  vol.  clix.  Nos.  15,  16. 

^  Sliyp<i's  Annals,  vol  iii.  Part  I.  p.  35.     Oxford,  1824. 

27(5 


DIOCESE  OF   ST.   DAVID  S.  277 

Many  of  the  persons  ministering  thereabouts  were  not  even 
in  deacons'  orders,  and  others  had  declined  to  undergo  any- 
matrimonial  inquisition  of  any  sort  or  kind.^  On  one  occasion 
at  Lichfield,  a  "  proper  stout  and  comely  wench  "  assaulted  an 
"  ancient  justice,"  who  had  proposed  to  examine  her  according 
to  law,  by  tearing  his  beard,  and  she  threatened  him  with 
further  punishment  if  he  made  any  like  attempt. 

Complaints  had  been  made,  but  without  effect,  for  no 
remedy  was  forthcoming,  that  in  one  parish  of  this  diocese,  "the 
minister  refused  to  wear  the  surplice,  and  that  he  would  not 
keep  the  accustomed  place  of  prayer,  where  service  was  wont  to 
be  said,  but  stood  lower  to  the  people,  and  turned  not  his  face 
upward  toward  the  east,  but  downward  to  the  west,  and  used 
not  the  Order  of  Common  Prayer."^ 

By  the  year  1583  a  wave  of  change  had  completely  passed 
over  the  diocese  of  St.  David's.  Externally  the  ancient  faith 
had  been  on  all  sides  efficiently  put  down.  As  regards  externals, 
the  sign  of  the  cross,  chrism,  holy  water,  lights  at  the  altar  and 
at  the  reading  of  the  Gospel,  special  vestments  for  the  clergy,  had 
all  been  swept  away.^  Here  and  there  a  tattered  cope,  which  no 
one  cared  to  possess,  was  sometimes  hung  over  the  edge  of  the 
pulpit ;  otherwise  all  sacerdotal  vestments  were  totally  abolished. 
The  nature  of  Dr.  Middleton's  Visitation  Articles  was  thoroughly 
innovating.     Though  those  favouring  the  old  religion  were  com- 

^  William  Chaderton,  Bishop  of  Lichfield,  to  the  Lord  Treasurer,  a.d. 
1582. — ^trype  s  Anna/s,  vol.  iii.  Part  I.  p.  141.  Oxford,  1S24.  "Whether 
was  your  par-on  made  deacon  before  his  admission  to  the  said  benefice? 
....  Whether  hath  your  parson  married  in  such  sort,  as  he  oufjht  to  dc, 
having  two  justices  of  peace's  hands  for  the  allowing  of  such  ?  " — Articles  of 
Enquiry,  Diocese  of  Lichfield,  A.D.  1582.  ^\.xyp€%  Annals,  vol.  iii.  Part  1. 
pp.  164,  165.  Oxford,  1S24.  A  Replicac'ion  to  an  Auncient  Enemy,  etc.,  p. 
39.     London,  Serres. 

-  The  Archdeacon  of  Canterbury  bears  similar  testimony,  thus  : — "What 
shall  I  now  speak  of  the  notable  decay  of  prayer,  fasting,  and  alms,  and  univer 
sally  of  all  virtuous  living,  of  the  disobedience  of  children  to  their  parents,  of 
servants  to  their  masters,  of  fraud,  deceit,  circumvention,  more  practised  than 
ever  before  in  all  contracts  and  bargains,  of  rarity  of  trusty  true  friends,  and 
of  decay  of  obedience  to  public  laws  and  magistrates,  and  finally  of  all  good 
order  and  public  discipline." — The  Pretended  Divorce  between  Henry  VIII. 
and  Queen  Catheritie,  by  Nicholas  Harpsfield,  Archdeacon  of  Canterbury, 
edited  bv  N.  Pocock,  p.  298.      London,  1878. 

^  As  Dr.  Harding,  in  his  Confutation,  had  so  triumphantly  asked  of  Jewell, 
"  If  ye  show  us  not  the  use  of  chrism  in  your  churches  ;  if  the  sign  of  the 
cross  be  not  borne  before  you  in  processions,  and  otherwheres  used  ;  if  holy 
water  be  abolished  ;  if  lights  at  the  Gospel  and  Communion  be  not  had  ;  if 
peculiar  vestments  for  deacons,  priests,  bishops,  be  taken  away,  and  many 
such  other  the  like,  judge  ye  whether  ye  have  duly  kept  the  old  ceremonies 
of  the  Church  ?  " 


27S  THE   CHURCH    UNDER   QUEEN    ELIZABETH. 

pelled  to  worship  in  secret,  the  bishop  of  that  See  was  obhged  to 
report  that  in  his  diocese  "  there  is  now  little  Popery,  but  the 
people  are  greatly  infected  with  atheism  and  wonderfully  given  over 
to  vicious  life." '  A  certain  official  informs  him  that  in  no  less  than 
thirty-two  churches  there  are  neither  services  nor  congregations. 
Some  persons,  he  is  distressed  to  find,  "  would  welcome  the 
idolatrous  mass  anew,  but  are  sore  disdainful  to  the  preachers." 
At  Breachfa  two  ministers  had  held  "a  godlie  disputation,"  last- 
ing several  hours  ;  and  their  hearers,  having  split  themselves  into 
two  camps  towards  eventide,  concluded  the  "exercise"  by  an 
appeal  to  blows  and  cuffs.  It  seems  to  have  been  the  pious 
wives  of  the  two  ministers  -  who  first  proposed  an  appeal  to 
physical  force,  in  which  they  and  others  of  their  sex  heartily 
joined.  The  local  constables,  feeling  themselves  incompetent  to 
settle  the  knotty  j^oints  of  controversy  with  authority,  left  the 
opposing  theologians  and  their  respective  adherents  to  fight  out 
their  battle.  Darkness  failed  to  settle  the  controversy,  but  it 
happily  sufficed  to  close  the  militant  disputation.  For  the 
"saints"  left  off  squaring  up  to  each  other,  mollified  their 
respective  bruises,  and  fought  no  longer.  A  few  years  later,  in 
1586,  it  was  reported — and  no  one  need  have  been  astonished  at 
the  report — that  "in  Brecknock,  the  livings  are  nearly  all 
impropriate,  with  no  preachers  but  ignorant  and  unlearned 
ministers.     Seldom  or  never  is  there  evening  prayer.-' 

One  special  difficulty  of  the  bishops  was  that  every  ordinary 
minister  now  looked  upon  himself  as  an  "  overseer,"  a  "  preach- 
ing and  presiding  elder,"  or  "  a  bishop,"  ■*  and  denied  altogether 
the  value  of  the  new  "  Parliament-approved  ordering."  Authority, 
many  asserted,  came  from  the  peoj^ile,  not  from  above ;  from  the 
flock,    i.e.    the    "godly,"    not    from    "great    Eliza,    the   maiden 

^  Siafi'  Pa/'crs,  Domatit,  Elizabeth,  vol.  clxii.  No  29,  dated  "Brecon, 
September  16,  1583. 

-  On  another  occasion,  as  is  on  record,  the  zeal  of  the  women  Aias  not 
hidden  under  a  bushel.  "  Lo  !  and  behold,  two  of  the  wives  of  ministers 
also  challenged  him  to  dispute  upon  points  of  religion.  The  female  theolo- 
gians, however,  spent  the  labour  of  their  preparation  in  vain  ;  for  the  martyr 
remanded  them  to  their  spindles  and  needles,  and  especially  recomnientled  to 
them  modesty  and  silence  ;  for  the  more  they  observed  these  so  much  the 
wiser  would  they  show  themselves  to  be." — Records  of  the  English  Provitjce, 
vol.  iii.  p.  462.     London,  187S. 

■^  Stale  Papers,  Domestic,  Elizabeth,  vol.  cxci.  No.  17. 

*  A  certain  minister,  Wright,  who  hail  received  orders  of  Villers  and  other 
ministers  at  Antwerp,  confesses  that  in  his  judgment  '■'■  every  minister  is  i> 
h'shoji."  He  further  affirmed  that  the  preachers  who  followed  the  Prayer 
Book  were  dumb  dog<,  and  that  the  ministers  were  thieves  and  murderers, 
and,  moreover,  that  there  were  no  lawful  ministers  in  England. — Strype's 
Annals,  vol.  iii.  Part  L  p.  179.     O.xford,  1S24. 


STATE   OF   OTHER   DIOCESES.  279 

Shepherdess."  ^  One,  John  Daye  of  Norwich,  in  an  epistle  to 
the  bishop,  was  both  out-spoken  and  plain-spoken  : — 

"  He  said  also  that  we  urged  orders  so  long  as  orders  main- 
tained superstition  ;  but  all  other  orders  were  no  orders.  He 
concluded  by  the  first  [chapter]  of  the  Acts  of  the  Apostles,  that 
no  man  might  appoint  ministers,  but  the  disciples  in  every 
parish.  He  would  needs  urge  also  that  none  might  be  suffered 
in  the  church  but  preachers."  - 

As  to  Bishop  Middleton's  assertion  that  atheism  and  immoral- 
ity were  on  the  increase,  while  parishes  were  destitute, ^^  the 
existing  evidence  is  conclusive  on  the  point.  Nothing,  of  course, 
could  have  been  more  conducive  to  the  extension  of  such 
principles  as  the  controversies  by  puffed-up  Calvinists  and  self- 
elected  teachers  of  irreligion. 

In  1582,  a  minister  of  Stamford  was  accused  of  "wickedness 
and  heresy,  two  gross  crimes,  namely,  for  lying  with  another 
woman,  his  wife  being  alive,  and  for  likewise  affirming  the  law- 
fulness of  having  two  wives  "  *  at  the  same  time, — a  somewhat 
more  progressive  reform  than  had  as  yet  been  sanctioned  by  his 
superiors.  If  an  old  Carmelite  or  a  Cistercian,  he  reasoned, 
could  lead  some  "one  wench "  to  the  altar,  why  could  not  a 
Stamford  preacher  "  lead  two  ?  " 

In  1584,  the  cases  at  the  Quarter  Sessions  in  London  give  an 
awful  account  of  the  state  of  religion.  A  minister's  wife  was 
accused  of  systematically  transgressing  the  law  in  an  infamous 
manner;  while  Heaton,  the  parson  of  St.  Andrew's,  Holborn, 
was  also  charged  with  most  frightful  crimes.  This  man's  father, 
it  is  recorded,  was  in  prison  for  incest. 

On  May  2Sth,  1582,  Bishop  Nicholas  Robinson  of  Bangor  had 
written  to  Sir  Francis  Walsingham -^  to  justify  himself  against  the 
reports  that  he  had  fallen  away  from  true  religion.  In  this  letter 
he  makes  a  free  and  full  confession  to  the  Secretary  of  State, — a 
delegate  of  the  Supreme  Governess, — and  makes  it  in  detail  with 
much  care  and  precision.     He  unfolds  the  whole  course  of  his 

^  Author's  MSS.  and  Excerpts.  Robert  Beale,  Clerk  of  the  Council,  to 
Sir  Henry  Lee. 

-John  Daye  to  the  Bishop  of  Norwich.  —  Strype's  Annals,  vol.  iii.  Part  I. 
p.  26.      Oxford,  1824. 

■*  "  There  are  whole  thousands  of  us  left  untaught  :  yea,  h>y  trial  it  will  he 
found  that  there  are  in  England  whole  thousands  of  parishes  destitute  of  this 
necessary  help  to  salvation,  that  is,  of  diligent  preaching  and  teaching." — 
Sampson's  Supplicatory  to  the  Queen,  Strype's  Annals,  vol.  iii.  Part  I.  p.  327. 
Oxford,  1824. 

■*  Strype's  Annals,  vol.  iii.  Part  I.  p.  169.      Oxford,  1824. 

^  State  Papers,  Domestic,  Elizabeth,  vol.  cliii.  No.  56. 


28o  THE   CHURCH    UNDER   QUEEN   ELIZABETH. 

life  since  he  became  a  preacher,^  both  before  and  since  he  was 
Bishop  of  Bangor. 

Notwithstanding  what  had  been  done  in  the  work  of  "  Re- 
formation," 2  as  it  was  termed,  notwithstanding  that  the  old 
churches,  now  stripped  and  desolate,  looked  more  like  Jewish 
synagogues  than  temples  for  the  worship  of  God  the  Trinity,  and 
for  the  celebration  of  Christian  rites,  numbers  of  the  ministers 
and  others,  more  especially  the  advanced  Puritans,  thought  that 
much  more  ought  to  be  swept  away.  It  has  been  shown  how 
great  had  been  their  demands  in  the  way  of  further  change,  and 
how  indisposed  those  in  authority  had  shown  themselves  to  be 
as  regards  acceding  to  them.  A  little  later,  some  of  the  bishops 
began  to  see  that  Puritanism  could  only  be  opposed  by  reverting 
to  rejected  principles ;  and  began  to  teach  that  bishops  governed 
by  divine  right. ^  The  queen's  personal  love  of  pomp  and 
display,  when,  as  Supreme  Governess,  she  herself  was  the  object 
of  it,  is  well  known.  In  churches  and  cathedrals  visited  by  her, 
she  was  still  regularly  honoured  by  external  rites  and  signs.  She 
was  received  with  genuflections,  she  walked  under  a  canopy 
borne  over  her,  occupied  the  chief  seat  of  honour  near  the 
Communion-board,  and  was  herself  often  the  subject  of  praise 

^  It  had  been  asserted  in  print  that  "the  Superintendent  of  Bangor,  one 
Robinson,  is  no  priest  nor  minister,  but  only  a  preacher. — Modest  Cirre,  with 
a  Cry  from  the  lVilJer>iess.  lyondon,  1556.  But  he  seems  to  have  been 
certainly  consecrated  a  bishop  at  Lambeth  on  the  20th  of  October  in  that 
year,  by  Dr.  Matthew  Parker,  assisted  by  Bullingham  and  Ghest. 

-  Archdeacon  Haipsfield  of  Canterbury  thus  wrote  of  the  evil  deeds  ot 
King  Edward  VI.  :  "  He  averted,  extinguished,  and  abolished  not  only  the 
riles  and  ceremonies  of  the  Catholic  Church,  but  divers  articles  of  our  faiih, 
and  the  chief  Sacraments  witiial.  Thru  our  churches  zuere  more  like  to  Jeius' 
synas^ogties  (the  image  and  cross  of  Christ,  with  the  image  of  His  blessed 
mother  and  all  His  holy  saints,  being  defaced  and  broken,  the  altars  over- 
thrown, and  the  precious  body  of  Christ  villanously  profaned)  than  to 
Christian  churches  :  the  walls  all  be-painted,  like  the  Jews'  temples,  with 
places  of  Holy  Scri|)ture  ;  and  yet  worse  than  the  Jews'  temples,  for  that  the 
meaning  of  these  authorities  was  to  make  the  world  believe  that  to  pray  to 
ihe  saints,  to  pray  for  the  dead,  to  worship  Christ's  body  in  the  blessed 
sacrament,  was  nothing  but  plain  superstition  and  idolatry.  Then  should 
you  have  seen  in  the  place  where  Christ's  precious  body  was  reposed  over  the 
altar,  and  instead  of  Christ  His  crucifix,  the  arms  of  a  mortal  king  set  up  on 
high  with  a  dog  and  a  lion,  which  a  man  might  well  call  the  abomination  of 
desolation  standing  in  the  temple,  that  Daniel  speaketh  of." — The  Fretendcd 
Divorce  hetivcen  Henry  VIII.  and  Queen  A'atherine,  by  Nicholas  Ilarpsfield, 
LL.  D.,  edited  by  N.  Pocock,  pp.  281-282.      London,  187S. 

■*  Sir  Francis  Knovvlys  tells  Lord  Burghlev  that  he  is  of  opinion  that  the 
superiority  and  authority  of  bishops  is  derived  inmiediately  and  independently 
from  Her  Majesty.  ^Ir.  Martin  and  Dr.  Whitgift  the  bishop  have,  in  his 
judgment,  incurred  the  penalty  of  pneiniinire  by  claiming  a  divine  right  for 
the  bishops.     Domestic  State  Tafers,  Elizabeth,  vol.  cccxxxiii.  62. 


EXAMPLES   OF   LAXITY.  28 1 

and  glory  in  the  anthems  and  hymns  sung.  In  ordinary  parish 
churches,  instead  of  bowing  to  the  altar  or  the  cross,  or  to  the 
crucifix  on  the  rood-screen,  many  of  the  people  now  bent  the 
knee  either  to  actual  representations  of  Her  Majesty  on  canvas, 
or  to  her  gorgeously-emblazoned  coat  of  arms — everywhere  then 
substituted  for  the  representation  of  our  blessed  Saviour  on  the 
cross — the  sole  patch  of  strong  and  vulgar  colouring  amid  the 
surrounding  whitewash.  In  one  Oxfordshire  church, — that  of 
Cuxham, — instead  of  the  text  "The  fear  of  the  Lord  is  the 
beginning  of  wisdom,"  some  local  scribe  in  a  paroxysm  of  loyalty 
had  written  up  in  black  letters,  "  The  Fear  of  the  Queue  is  the 
iniciacion  of  wisdome,"  ^ — possibly  incited  to  do  it  by  some  witty 
but  daring  recusant,  who  lived  near,  or  it  may  have  been  some 
unsanctified  Erastian. 

On  the  other  hand,  under  the  not  inappropriate  name  of 
Jezebel,  Her  Majesty  was  satirised  for  being  too  conservative  and 
lukewarm.  For  example,  at  St.  Edmund's  Bury,  under  her 
elaborate  and  magnificent  armorial  bearings,  the  following  text 
had  been  illuminated  in  red  and  black  letters — "  Because  thou 
art  lukewarm,  and  neitlier  cold  nor  hot,  it  shall  come  to  pass  that  I 
will  spue  thee  out  of  my  mouth  ;  "  and  another  for  the  special  con- 
sideration of  the  Bishop  of  Norwich,  viz.  : — "  I  have  a  few  things 
against  thee  that  thou  sufferest  the  woman  Jezebel,  which  maketh 
herself  a  prophetess,  to  teach  and  to  deceive  my  servants  ;  to  make 
them  commit  fornication,  and  to  eat  meat  sacrificed  unto  idols."- 

One  minister,  evidently  a  "  vessel  of  charity,"  as  he  modestly 
termed  himself,  in  preference  to  abusing  or  satirising  Her 
Majesty,  had,  with  much  personal  superiority  and  great  conde- 
scension, previously  prayed  for  her  thus  : — "  Lord,  we  humbly 
beseech  Thee  to  strengthen  the  Queen's  Highness  with  thy  Holy 
Spirit,  that  in  the  twenty-third  year  of  her  reign,  she  may  cast 
down  all  the  high  places  of  idolatry  within  her  land,  with  the 
Popish  Canon  Law,and  allsuperstition  andcommandmentsof  men, 
and  to  pluck  up  all  filthy  ceremonies  pertaining  to  the  same."^ 

Judging  by  what  has  been  here  set  forth, — the  state  of  pro- 
fanity, contradiction,  and  self-pleasing  which  existed — it  might 
have  been  conceived  that  the  queen  and  her  ministers  had 
already  done  this  tolerably  *  if  not  perfectly  well.     The  further 

^  JVofes  tipoii  Stadha/n,  Easingtoii,  and  Cuxham  Churches,  by  John 
D'Oyley,  p.  144.      Oxford,  1775. 

-  Strype's  Annals,  vol.  iii.  Part  L  p.  176.      Oxford,  1824. 

^  Ibid.  vol.  iii.  Part  L  p.  66. 

*  From  Heylin's  Affairs  of  Church  and  Stale  in  En'^land  tinder  Queen 
Elizabeth,  pp.   174-175,  ed.   London,  1661,  it  is  stated  that  "  every  man  is 


282  THE   CHURCH    UNDER   QUEEN    ELIZABETH. 

"  Reformation "  which  these  fanatical  people  desired  was  only 
duly  and  completely  accomplished  in  a  later  age,  by  the  fury, 
fire,  and  sword  of  Oliver  Cromwell  ;  for  whose  advent,  however, 
they  were  then  so  efficiently  paving  the  way.  The  murder  of  the 
King,  the  further  pollution  of  the  dismal  and  altarless  churches 
and  the  miseries  of  civil  war  later  on,  were  the  natural  and 
reasonable  sequences  of  an  overthrow  of  all  Christian  authority, 
the  casting  away  of  five  out  of  the  seven  sacraments  of  the  New 
Law,  and  the  atrocious  cruellies  to  Catholics  under  Elizabeth. 
As  in  the  sixteenth  century  our  nation  sowed,  so,  in  due  course, 
it  deservedly  reaped.  A  portion  of  the  harvest  even  now  remains 
to  be  gathered  in. 

Some  persons — such  always  exist,  the  pitiful  skulks  of  society, 
or  artful  Gallios  of  the  day — avoided  taking  sides.  They  were 
content  to  follow  those  whom  they  judged  to  be  their  betters, 
and  to  hold  their  tongues.  Certain  persons  highly  approved  of 
the  new  liberty  which  had  been  secured,  and  liked  it  still  better 
when,  as  in  so  many  cases,  it  degenerated  into  the  wildest 
licence.  They  punctually  went  through  mere  external  legal 
formalities,  such  as  attending  church,  listening  to  sermons,  or 
participating  in  "  the  Supper,"  as  a  matter  of  course  ;  quieting 
their  dulled  consciences  with  the  hope  that  if  public  affairs  were 
so  much  out  of  joint  these  might  soon  become  not  so  disturbed 
and  less  anomalous.  Others,  like  Cecil  of  old,  whom  they 
followed  humbly  and  at  a  distance,  allowed  their  predilections  in 
religion  to  become  entirely  subservient  to  their  temporal  advance- 
ment. Instead  of  renouncing  the  world,  they  worshipped  it 
with  devotion.  They  were  always  careful  not  to  express  any 
strong  convictions  on  ecclesiastical  questions  ;  and  perhaps 
doggedly  carried  out  the  expressive  maxim,  that  "  if  eloquence 
be  silvern,  silence  is  golden,"  with  an  approach  to  perfection. 
Or,  with  some  art  and  forethought,  they  took  both  sides  '    at 

left  unto  his  private  rule  or  canon,  whether  he  will  take  the  Bread  into  his 
hands,  or  let  it  stand  at  the  end  of  the  table,  the  liread  and  Wine  being  laid 
upon  the  table,  where  it  pleases  the  parish  clerk  or  sexton  to  put  them  "  : 
that  the  new  church  "is  constrained  to  suffer  cobblers,  weavers,  tinkers, 
tanners,  cardmakers,  tapsters,  fiddlers,  gaolers,  and  others  of  like  profession 
not  only  to  enter  into  disputing  with  her,  but  also  to  climb  up  into  pulpits, 
and  to  keep  the  place  of  priests  and  ministers"  :  that  "the  residue  of  tlie 
Sacrament  [in  loaf  bread]  unreceived  was  taken  of  the  priest  or  of  the  parish 
clerk,  to  spread  their  young  children's  butter  thereupon,  or  to  serve  their  own 
tooth  with  it  at  their  homely  table." 

'  See  "  lack-of-Both-Sides,  a  godly  and  a  necessary  Catholic  Admonition 
touching  those  that  be  Ncutres,  holding  upon  a  certain  religion,  and  su.  h 
as  thosethat  hold  with  both  parties,  or  rather  no  parties."  Richard  Harrison, 
1562 


METHODS   OF   COURT   POLICY.  283 

different  times,  and  in  accordance  with  the  respective  company 
in  which  they  might  find  themselves  ; — a  position  of  some 
difiiculty,  conducive  neither  to  honesty  nor  honour. 

In  the  meantime  the  hangman  was  not  allowed  to  slumber 
long,  nor  the  gibbet  to  stand  unused,  nor  the  queen's  goose- 
(juill  for  signing  death-warrants  to  remain  for  any  time  undi]3ped 
in  ink.  The  man-butcher  likewise  was  frequently  called  upon 
to  sharpen  his  blade  and  turn  up  the  cuffs  of  his  blue  and  blood- 
stained smock. 

Constant  rumours  were  artfully  put  about  that  various  people 
were  continually  on  the  look-out  to  poison  or  get  rid  of  the 
queen.  This,  however,  —  save  in  one  or  two  questionable 
instances, — is  more  than  doubtful ;  for  the  gift  of  lying  was  so 
common,  and  the  arts  of  forgery  and  fabrication  were  so 
frequently  resorted  to  by  the  bevy  of  hired  spies  and  bribed 
ruffians  in  the  pay  of  the  Court,^  that  small  reliance  can  be 
placed  even  on  the  documentary  evidence  they  produced  in  such 
cases.  Their  sworn  words  were  often  but  as  idle  tales,  their 
secret  letters  forgeries.  Many  of  these  rumours  were  deliberately 
and  of  malice  invented,  in  order  to  justify  further  cruelty  or  as  a 
plea  for  more  confiscations  and  robberies.  From  the  proceeds 
of  such  confiscations,  the  forgers  and  falsehood-mongers  were 
richly  rewarded.  At  all  events,  if  there  were  so  many  persons 
anxious  to  get  rid  of  so  cruel  and  heartless  a  woman  (and  no  one 
can  wonder  at  it,  if  such  were  the  case  ;  though  the  poisoner  or 
assassin  be  contemptible),  they  appear  to  have  been  altogether 

'  "The  Secretary  Walsingham  had  for  years  had  a  little  army  of  spies  in 
his  pay — wretches  of  blasted  character  and  broken  fortunes,  fellows  who  were 
adepts  at  inventing  plots  or  worming-out  secrets,  their  trade  eavesdropping, 
their  daily  bread  gained  by  scenting  out  '  murders,  stratagems,  and  crimes  '  ; 
where  true  intelligence  was  not  to  be  gained,  fa/se  runwurs  and  slanders  0/ 
the  blackest  hue  served  their  turn  as  well.  Sometimes  they  were  dogging  the 
steps  of  decrepit  old  '  Queen  Mary's  priests'  ;  sometimes  tluy  7vere  busy  forc- 
ing letters  from  people  in  high  station ;  but  always  sleepless,  suspicious, 
unscrupulous  —  men  of  infinite  resources  in  the  base  expedients  of  the  in- 
former's trade." — 0)!C  Generation  of  a  Norfolk  House,  by  Augustus  Jessopp, 
D.D.,  p.  248.  London,  1879.  On  one  occasion  Lord  Burghley  sent  twenty 
pounds  as  a  present  to  one  Stephen  Povvle,  of  Maiden  Lane,  a  notorious  spy, 
who  had  professed  to  have  discovered  a  plot  on  the  part  of  persons  employed 
by  the  Pope  to  take  away  the  queen's  life  by  poisoned  perfumes — a  lying 
invention,  which  might  probably  be  turned  to  some  account.  Later  on  he 
was  sent  to  the  Court  of  some  German  Protestant  prince,  to  keep  both  his 
eyes  open  and  ever  to  prick  up  his  ears  ;  and  in  15S9  having,  as  he  admitted, 
"received  much  comfort"  from  Lord  Burghley 's  "fatherly  speeches,"  and  a 
promise  of  some  office,  never  fulfilled,  went  off  to  one  of  the  Swiss  Cantons 
"to  spend  the  remainder  of  his  wretched  days." — State  Papers,  Domestic, 
Elizabeth,  vol.  cc.xxii.  77,  92,  a.d.  15S9,  and  vol.  ccxxiii.  L 


284  THE   CHURCH    UNDER   QUEEN    ELIZABETH. 

unable  to  effect  their  purpose.  And  well  is  it,  perhaps,  that 
such  was  their  failure,  for  the  pangs  of  a  sin-sick  soul  and  tortured 
conscience  throughout  weary  years  were  far  keener  than  the 
internal  pains  of  poison  or  the  sharpness  of  polished  steel.  For 
such  sins  against  God  Almighty,  truth  and  justice,  as  the 
queen  had  committed  during  her  long  reign,  she  righteously 
deserved  to  suffer.  What  mental  sufferings  she  endured  in  her 
later  miserable  years  and  latest  hours  none  can  either  know  or 
tell. 

In  the  autumn  of  1588,  no  less  than  nine  priests  and  ten 
laymen  were  executed,  either  for  denying  the  queen's  spiritual 
supremacy,  or  under  one  of  the  recent  Acts  against  the  Old 
Religion  already  alluded  to.  The  same  sanguinary  cruelties  so 
shocking  to  contemplate  and  so  revolting  to  describe,  were 
undergone  by  all.^  And  this,  so  soon  after  those  who  supported 
the  Old  Religion  had  shown  their  loyalty  when  the  Armada  was 
expected. 

On  the  other  side  persecution  went  on  apace.-  A  certain 
ignorant  Protestant,  of  low  birth,  William  Hackett,  created  a 
considerable  stir  in  the  spring  of  the  year  1591  by  his  extreme 
developments.  He  had  long  been  "an  acceptable  preacher" 
to  many,  and  had  acted  in  alliance  with  two  eloquent  but 
fanatical  Puritans  in  the  ranks  of  gentlepeople,  named  Coppinger 
and  Arthington,  who  together  wandered  about  the  country, 
delivering  very  excitable  and  stirring  addresses.  Hackett,  who 
had  previously  maintained  that  the  spirit  of  St.  John  the  Baptist 

1  I  borrow  the  following  from  a  learned  and  independent  writer  : — 
"Scarcely  a  year  passed  by  without  these  dreadful  massacres,  the  details  of 
which  are  more  revolting  and  shameful  than  those  who  have  not  given  their 
attention  to  the  subject,  or  read  the  accounts  written  down  at  the  time,  could 
be  readily  brought  to  believe.  For  ten  years  the  butchery  had  been  kept  up 
remorselessly.  The  victims,  as  a  rule,  were  not  hung  by  the  neck  till  they 
were  dead,  but  cut  down  while  they  were  alive  and  conscious,  then  thrown  upon 
their  backs,  the  executioner's  knife  was  plunged  into  their  bowels,  and  the 
entrails  and  heart  tossed  into  a  cauldron  of  water  which  stood  hard  by.  In 
more  than  one  instance  the  victim  in  his  agony  and  despair  struggled  with 
the  hangman,  but  it  was  only  for  a  moment.  In  some  cases  the  crowd 
shouted  out  to  the  sheriff  to  'let  him  hang.'  Sometimes  a  condemned  man 
begged  as  a  special  grace  that  he  '  might  not  be  bowelled  ere  he  was  dead.' 
The  rabble  looked  on  terror-struck  ;  but  such  scenes  could  not  but  brutalise 
them.  The  appetite  for  blood  is  a  strange  passion,  and  once  yielded  to  is 
prone  to  exercise  a  horrible  fascination  on  some  minds." — One  Generation 
of  a  Norfolk  House"  hy  A.  Iqszo^^,^).!).,  2nd  edition,  p.  228.  London, 
1879. 

-"Jan.  ultimo— Six  fond  persons,  Colman,  Bolton,  Lvans,  Hallegam, 
Benson,  and  Gates,  mislyking  of  the  service  of  the  Church,  committed  to  the 
¥\tW."—Burg/dey  SiiUe  Papers,  W.  Murdin,  p.  764.     London,  1759. 


HACKETT   AND   COPPINGER.  285 

was  guiding  him,  now  styled  himself  "  the  Messiah,''  Coppinger 
assumed  the  ofifice  of"  Prophet  of  Mercy,"  as  he  termed  himself, 
Arthington  that  of  "Prophet  of  Judgment."  Their  varied  asser- 
tions and  incoherent  ravings  were  even  more  violent  than  the 
language  of  the  official  and  authoritative  Homilies.  They 
boldly  proposed  to  overturn  the  new  religious  system  of  the 
queen  once  for  all  ;  and  in  the  strongest  and  strangest  language 
dealt  out  condemnation  to  all  Her  Majesty's  bishops.  Crowds 
followed  them,  and  hung  upon  their  words.  On  one  occasion  at 
Charing  Cross,  the  excitement  they  caused  threatened  to  produce 
a  serious  riot.  At  Lincoln  a  cruel  and  ignominious  flogging  at 
the  cart's  tail  had  only  deepened  Hackett's  reforming  zeal.  Of 
Queen  Elizabeth's  loose  morals,  these  Protestant  prophets  spoke 
with  the  greatest  plainness  ;  while,  on  one  occasion,  Hackett, 
who  followed  Knox  in  his  dislike  of  a  woman  having  been  made 
the  Governess  of  a  Church,  deliberately  defaced  with  a  steel 
bodkin  a  portrait  of  Her  Majesty  and  her  Royal  arms.  Upon 
this  he  was  at  once  arrested,  charged  with  treason,  tried,  and 
hung  in  Cheapside.^  Coppinger,  poor  wretch  !  was  imprisoned, 
and  there  starved  to  death.  Arthington  recanted  his  errors  and 
obtained  a  pardon. 

Soon  afterwards  fresh  enactments  were  passed  against  these 
Puritans.-  In  the  thirty-fifth  year  of  the  queen's  reign, — though 
axe  and  halter,  torture-men,  ^  and  human  butchers  had  been  so 
constantly  in  requisition  for  Catholics,  more  work  of  the  same 
kind  must  be  done,  and  further  legal  powers  secured.     Grim  and 

^  ",/59i.  July  2Sth,  one  Hackett,  a  fanaticall  sectary,  hanged  in  Cheap- 
syde." — Burghley  State  Papers,  p.  797.      London,  1759. 

2  "They  appealed  to  the  public  wiih  ail  the  bitterness  of  disappointed 
zeal ;  and  the  friends  of  the  Establishment  were  surprised  and  alarmed  by  a 
succession  of  hostile  and  popular  pamphlets.  The  titles  of  these  writings 
were_  quaint,  their  language  declamatory  and  scurrilous,  their  object  beiiig 
to  bring  the  hierarchy  into  discredit  and  contempt.  But  the  queen  threw 
over  the  clergy  the  shield  of  her  protection.  She  issued  a  severe  proclama- 
tion against  the  authors,  publishers,  and  possessors  of  seditious  libels,  and 
the  Court  of  the  Star  Chamber  restrained  the  exercise  of  the  art  of  printing  to 
the  metropolis  and  the  two  universities,  to  a  single  press  in  each  of  these,  and 
to  a  certain  number  in  London,  with  a  prohibit  to  print,  sell,  bind,  or  stitch 
any  work  which  had  not  previously  obtained  the  approbation  of  the  bishop  or 
archbishop.  Yet  in  defiance  of  these  regulations,  copies  of  the  more  obnoxious 
publications  were  multiplied  and  circulated  through  every  part  of  the  kingdom. 
They  issued  from  an  ambulatory  press,  which  was  secretly  conveyed  from 
house  to  house,  and  from  county  to  cowwiy." —History  of  England,  by  John 
Lingard,  D.D.,  vol.  vi.  p.  260.     Dublin,  Dufiy  and  Sons,  1874. 

2  Topcliffe  and  Young  were  authorised  to  use  "  such  torture  as  is  usual  for 
the  better  understanding  of  the  Um.'Co."— Domestic  State  Papers,  Elizabeth, 
vol.  ccxxx.  57. 


286  THE   CHURCH   UNDER   QUEEN    ELIZABETH. 

gaunt  hanging-posts  were  too  few  and  far  between.  Representa- 
tions of  religious  facts  by  way-side  slope  and  on  village-green, — ■ 
of  the  Incarnation,  by  figures  of  Our  Lady  and  her  Divine  Child  ; 
of  the  Passion  and  Death  of  Our  Blessed  Saviour,  by  the  Crucifix, 
— had  long  ago  been  smashed,  mutilated,  or  burnt.  In  their 
place,  as  tokens  of  the  increased  happiness  and  contentment  of 
the  people,  let  more  gibbets  be  erected,  and  new  ropes  woven. 
An  Act  was,  therefore,  jjassed  to  "restrain  the  queen's  subjects 
in  obedience,"  as  it  was  termed.  She  who  herself  was  dis- 
obedient to  the  Patriarch  of  Christendom,  found  in  turn  that 
others  were  disobedient  to  her.  Her  only  method  by  which  to 
influence  the  reason,  conscience,  and  will  of  those  under  her,  was 
an  Act  of  Parliament,  with  the  glorious  gibbet  and  efficient 
strangling-rope  set  forth  in  its  latest  clause.  All  persons,  there- 
fore, who  dared  to  dispute  the  queen's  ecclesiastical  and 
spiritual  authority  ;  all  who  abstained  from  going  to  church  ;  all 
who  attended  "any  assemblies,  conventicles,  or  meetings,  under 
colour  or  pretence  of  any  exercise  of  religion,"  were  to  be  put 
into  prison  and  kept  there  until  they  conformed.  If  in  the 
course  of  three  months  they  could  not,  or  would  not,  make  up 
their  minds  to  do  this,  they  were  at  once  to  abjure  the  realm. 
If,  furthermore,  they  refused  to  depart,  or  dared  to  return  and 
show  their  faces  after  their  abjuration,  they  were  to  be  at  once 
"  strung  up."  ^     All  these  enactments  were  for  the  Puritans. 

More  suffering,  however,  was  also  in  store  and  legalised  for 
those  of  the  old  faith.  Another  Act"'  was  at  the  same  passed 
against  "  Popish  recusants."  Such  were  to  repair  to  their  own 
homes  and  not  to  travel  five  miles  therefrom.  If  they  did  not 
possess  sufficient  goods  to  satisfy  the  monthly  fine  of  twenty 
pounds  for  non-attendance  at  their  parish  church,  they  too  were 
to  abjure  the  realm  ;  and  if  they  refused  or  hesitated  to  do  this, 
they  were  to  suffer  as  felons.  A  previous  statute  had  compelled 
those  abroad  to  return  home,  or  else  to  endure  the  loss  of  their 
goods." 

'  Act  35  Eliz,  c.  i. 

-  Ibid.  c.  ii. 

'  Grant  to  Dr.  (lyfford,  one  of  Her  Majesty's  physicians,  of  the  goods  of 
(jermane  Poole,  forfeited  by  reason  of  his  continuance  beyond  the  seas  contrary 
to  statute." — State  Papers,  Domestic,  Elizabeth,  vol.  ccxxxiv.  70. 

From  the  Council  the  following  orders  were  despatched  to  the  authorities 
at  York  : — "To  have  a  vigilant  eye  and  regard  to  such  as  be  harbourers  and 
niaintainers  of  any  priests,  schoolmasters,  or  other  persons,  not  yet  confirmed 
or  reformed  ;  or  such  as  have  been  of  late  beyond  the  seas  and  are  returned, 
and  be  no  favorers  of  the  godly  and  Christian  religion  now  established  and 
professed  ;  and  that  you  do  certify  their  names,  qualities,  and  dwelling- 
places,  or  to  whose  houses  and   places  they  do  resort  or  have  access." — 


PHILIP,   EARL   OF   ARUNDEL.  28/ 

The  only  method  of  avoiding  these  fines,  penalties,  and 
punishments,^  was  to  make  a  formal  confession,  in  which  each 
])erson,  whether  Catholic  or  Protestant,  was  to  acknowledge 
(the  appointed  words  are  substantially  given)  that  he  had 
grievously  offended  God  in  contemning  Her  Majesty's  godly  and 
lawful  government  and  spiritual  authority  by  absenting  himself 
from  church,  and  from  hearing  divine  service  and  sermons, 
contrary  to  the  godly  laws  and  statutes  of  this  realm  ;  that  he 
acknowledged  and  testified  in  his  conscience  that  neither  the 
Bishop  of  Rome  nor  any  other  person  hath  or  ought  to  have  any 
power  or  authority  over  Her  Majesty  or  within  any  of  Her 
Majesty's  realms  and  dominions.  In  the  Protestant  form  of 
recantation,  the  sentence  concerning  the  Bishop  of  Rome  was 
omitted. 

Before  some  of  the  effects  of  these  new  enactments  are  given 
in  detail,  a  brief  reference  must  be  made  to  the  case  of  one, 
distinguished  above  all  the  rest  of  the  sufferers  for  his  noble  birth 
and  high  rank.  The  treatment  of  Philip  seventeenth  Earl  of 
Arundel,  godson  of  King  Philip  of  Spain,  was  simply  unqueenly 
and  inhuman.  Early  in  his  career  he  had  declined  to  carry  the 
sword  of  state  before  the  queen  to  chapel,  which  offended  Her 
Majesty  deeply.  Soon  afterwards,  with  unregal  meanness,  she 
sent  Lord  Hunsdon  and  Walsingham  to  "  draw  him  out  "  as 
regards  religion,  artfully  concealing  herself  with  Lord  Leicester 
in  order  to  overhear  the  conversation.  For  this,  in  which  he 
laughed  at  the  she-supremacy  existing,  he  in  due  course  suffered 
l)ersecution.  He  had  long  been  condemned  to  pay  a  heavy 
fine  as  a  recusant,  and  had  been  imprisoned  for  some  years, - 
later  with  some  relaxation.  When  the  Armada  was  expected, 
however,  he  was  watched  carefully.  Two  fellow-prisoners, 
Esquire  William  Shelley  and  Sir  Thomas  Gerard,  examined 
separately,  were  terrified  into  asserting  that  Lord  Arundel  had  on 
a  certain  occasion  induced  an  old  priest  to  say  mass  for  the 
success   of  the   Spanish   invasion  ;  but  this  assertion   had   only 

"Articles  sent  to  the  Justices  of  the  Peace  within  the  City  of  York,"  i8° 
Junii,  20°  Eliz. 

1  That  these  were  sternly  inflicted  is  clear  from  the  following: — "On 
Friday  last  Sir  Richard  Knightley,  Hooles  of  Coventry,  Wigsome  and  his 
wife,  of  Warwick,  were  condemned  in  the  Star  Chamber,  as  furtherers  of  the 
book  called  Martin  Mar  Prelate,  to  pay,  the  first  two  thousand  pounds,  the 
second  one  thousand  marks,  the  third  five  hundred,  the  fourth  one  hundred, 
and  to  be  imprisoned  during  the  Queen's  pleasure." — Letter  of  Sir  H.  Lee 
to  Lord  Shrewsbury,  dated  Feb.  17,  1590. 

^  See  State  Papers,  Doiiiestie,  Elizabeth,  vul.  ccxxv.  41,  ccxxxi.  48.  In  a 
letter  to  Lord  I'.urghley  from  the  Tower,  Lord  Arundel  declares  that  he  "is 
full  of  all  misery  and  void  almost  of  any  comfort."     30th  of  March,  1590. 


288  THE   CHURCH   UNDER   QUEEN    ELIZABETH. 

been  secured  by  a  threat  of  torture  and  death,  and  the  witnesses 
who  had  made  it  refused  to  face  the  Earl  when  put  upon  his 
trial  before  his  peers.  Burghley  on  this  occasion  cross-examined 
Lord  Arundel  with  art  and  skill ;  but  it  is  clear,  from  a  considera- 
tion of  the  evidence,  that  the  latter  had  simply  lifted  up  his 
prayers  to  Heaven  for  himself  and  his  companions,  all  threatened 
with  assassination,  and  that  the  charges  were  certainly  not  proven. 
At  this  trial,  with  remarkable  dignity  and  power,  he  recounted 
the  fatal  ends  of  his  ancestors.  His  great-grandfather  had  been 
condemned  without  being  heard,  his  grandfather  had  been  be- 
headed for  light  and  trivial  matters,  and  his  father — having 
been  circumvented  by  his  enemies — never  bare  any  hostile  mind 
against  either  queen  or  country.  After  an  hour's  debate,  how- 
ever, the  peers  found  Arundel  guilty,  and  sentence  of  death  was 
pronounced.  His  condemnation  was  an  act  of  policy,  and  an 
outrage  both  on  justice  and  truth.  It  should  be  noted  that  the 
charge  on  which  alone  he  was  unanimously  convicted  was  that 
of  having  been  reconciled  to  the  faith  of  his  forefathers.  In 
this  alone  his  offence  consisted.     No  charge  of  treason  was  proved. 

He  made  a  request  of  the  queen  by  letter  to  be  allowed  to  see 
his  wife,  and  the  little  boy,  then  five  years  old,  who  had  been 
born  during  his  captivity,  and  whom  he  had  consequently  never 
even  seen.     But  to  this  letter  no  answer  was  returned. 

He  was  thus  persecuted,  as  his  father,  the  eighteenth  earl  of 
that  name,  had  been  before  him,  firstly  because  he  was  feared. 
For  many  of  the  old  religion  turned  towards  his  family,  hoping 
that  some  member  of  it  might  head  a  party  against  the  detestable 
and  cruel  policy  of  those  who  for  so  long  a  time  had  secured  the 
upper  hand.  He  was  also  persecuted  because  he  had  evidently 
declined  to  be  the  means  of  satisfying  the  unbridled  lusts  of 
the  queen,  who  greatly  admired  his  handsome  person.  Her  re- 
pulsive advances  and  nasty  proposals  were  disgusting  and 
revolting  to  a  Christian  nobleman  of  honour.  "  He  seems  to 
have  given  some  deej)  but  secret  offence,  which,  though  it  was 
never  divulged,  could  never  be  forgotten,"  is  the  quiet  but  forcible 
remark  of  a  great  historian.  The  queen,  therefore,  did  not  order 
his  execution  ;  for  Sir  Christopher  Hatton  ^  had  strongly  urged 

1  "There  cannot  be  a  doiilit  that  he  [Sir  Christopher  Hatton]  was  a  party 
with  his  colleagues  Burghley,  Leicester,  and  Walsingham,  to  many  question- 
able and  unjustifiable  proceedings,  yet  to  his  honour  it  must  be  recorded 
that  we  find  him  at  times  emplo)'ing  his  authority  to  shield  the  poor  and 
friendless  from  oppression,  and  to  mitigate  the  severity  of  the  lavv  in  fasour 
of  recusants  under  prosecution  for  their  religion  before  the  Ecclesiastical 
Commission." — History  of  England,  by  J.  Lingaril,  D.D.,  vol.  vi.  p.  242. 
Dublin,  1874. 


HIS   DEATH   AND   BURIAL.  289 

her  not  to  do  so.  But  she  never  let  the  poor  prisoner  know  of 
her  resolve,  and,  with  a  delicate  refinement  of  cruelty,  kept  the 
axe,  as  it  were,  suspended  over  his  head  for  nearly  seven  weary 
years.  He  daily  looked  for  the  reading  of  the  death-warrant, 
and  the  end  of  his  time  of  probation.  She  had  already  taken 
the  life  of  his  noble  father  by  a  legal  murder.  She,  of  course, 
had  the  power  to  repeat  the  sin  in  his  case.  He  lay,  therefore, 
absolutely  and  abjectly  at  her  mercy,  very  ill-treated  by  the 
Lieutenant  of  the  Tower.^  Of  this  he  feelingly  complained  in 
a  letter  to  that  functionary,  which  still  exists, — a  touching  appeal 
from  one  who  was  sorely  cast  down.  At  length,  in  the  year 
1595,  he  was  artfully  poisoned.  After  eating  some  teal,  he 
became  frightfully  contorted  in  face,  and  was  in  an  agony  of 
pain.  His  physician,- Dr.  Martin,  endeavoured  to  afford  relief ; 
but,  after  great  suffering,  he  died  within  two  months,  in  the 
eleventh  year  of  his  imprisonment.  His  name,  as  drawn  by  him- 
self, may  still  be  traced  over  the  fire-place  in  the  Beauchamp 
Tower.  He  was  a  most  devout  and  saintly  nobleman,  enduring 
his  severities  with  patience  ;  worthy  of  his  religion,  lineage,  and 
rank  ;  and  so  merited  the  repose  and  bliss  of  a  better  world. 

The  Chaplain  of  the  Tower  was  present  at  the  Earl's  funeral, 
whose  elm  coffin  was  certainly  cheap  and  inexpensive.  But  the 
service  read  was  not  that  of  the  Prayer  Book,  but  one  of  the 
chaplain's  own  composing.  It  began  with  an  exhortation. 
Exhortations  in  those  days  were  invariably  both  popular  and 
lengthy,  affording  scope  for  uncharitable  rhetoric  on  the  part  of 
the  author  ;  and  the  chaplain's  was  no  exception  to  the  rule.  As 
God  had  lain  this  peer's  honour  in  the  dust,  as  was  asserted  ;  so, 
as  the  Scriptures  had  recorded  that  it  was  right  to  bury  even 
Jezebel,  it  could  not  be  wrong  to  inter  the  Earl.  For  his  lord- 
ship's death,  God  was  praised  in  the  words  of  the  Song  of 
Deborah,  and  thanked  because  in  His  mercy  He  had  taken  the 
Earl  out  of  the  world.  Self-righteousness,  scurrihty  of  language, 
and  bad  taste,  as  we  see,  made  up  for  the  loss  of  the  Christian 
graces  of  faith  and  charity. 

^  The  Earl,  shortly  before  his  death,  thus  addressed  the  Lieutenant  of  the 
Tower:  —  "You  must  think  that  when  a  prisoner  comes  hither,  that  he 
Ijrini^eth  enough  sorrow  with  him.  Do  nut,  therefore,  add  affliction  to 
affliction.  There  is  no  man,  whosoever  he  may  be,  who  ihinkest  that  he 
standeth  surely,  but  may  very  soon  fall.  It  is  inhuman  to  tread  on  one 
whom  Misfortune  hath  cast  down.  God  hath  that  man  who  is  void  of  mercy 
in  great  detestation.  Your  commission  is  only  to  keep  with  safety,  not  to 
kill  by  severity." — Life  of  Philip  Howard  in  loco. 

-  "Dr.  Marten,  Lord  Arundel's  doctor,  has  escaped  to  Dunkirk." — State 
Papers,  Domestic,  Elizal'eth,  vol.  ccxxxiv.  4S. 

T 


290         THE   CHURCH    UNDER   QUEEN    ELIZABETH. 

The  queen  with  all  her  heart  hated  the  Countess,  ^  who 
became  a  constant  victim  of  Her  Majesty's  venomous  rancour. 
Throughout  the  last  part  of  the  Earl's  imprisonment,  when  he 
daily  expected  death,  he  was  never  once  allowed  to  see  his  wife, 
his  children,  or  any  of  his  relations.  After  his  death,  the  pitiful 
spite  of  this  wrinkled  and  feeble  specimen  of  a  Tudor  woman 
who  ruled,  was  as  keen  as  ever.  The  Countess  was  confined  to 
her  residence,  never  even  allowed  to  go  to  London  for  her 
physician's  advice  without  first  securing  a  formal  warrant ;  and, 
whenever  the  queen  came  to  London,  the  Countess  was  first 
ordered  to  quit  it.  Could  tyranny  any  further  go  ?  Could  royal 
malice  be  more  intensified  ?  Could  feminine  spite  be  more 
malignant  or  despicable  ? 

The  case  of  Esquire  Edward  Sulyard  of  Weatherdon,  in  Suffolk, 
is  also  specially  noteworthy.  He  was  a  Roman  Catholic,  and 
wholly  unable  to  pay  the  heavy  fines  of  twenty  pounds  every  lunar 
month  which  had  been  imposed.  This  was  certified  to  the 
authorities,  as  also  his  readiness  to  offer  forty  pounds  a  year 
instead — -all  that  his  estate  could  afford.  It  seems  uncertain 
whether  his  offer  was  accepted.  Anyhow  Sir  Francis  Walsingham 
forbade  his  being  further  molested.  Out  of  one  thousand  three 
hundred  and  eighty  pounds  then,  by  accumulation,  due,  the  poor 
gentleman  had  paid  no  less  than  five  hundred  and  forty  pounds, 
leaving  eight  hundred  and  forty  pounds  unpaid.  For  the  pay- 
ment of  these  arrears  within  three  years,  he  was,  however, 
required  to  obtain  two  sureties,  whom  he  found  in  his  cousin 
Esquire  Edward  Sulyard  of  Penning,  and  in  his  friend  and  ally 
Escpiire  Thomas  Tyrrell.  On  the  ap])roach  of  the  ^Iri/iada, 
notwithstanding  that  he  had  publicly  signed  a  declaration  that 
I^lizabeth  was  his  lawful  Sovereign,  and  that  he  would  defend 
her  against  all  foreign  foes,  he  was  at  once  imprisoned.  Soon 
afterwards  he  obtained  leave  to  visit  his  wrecked  and  im- 
poverished estate  for  a  short  time ;  on  condition  that  he  was 
afterwards  confined,  at  his  own  cosf,  in  a  private  house.  He 
was  further  bound  in  a  bond  of  two  thousand  pounds  not  to 
depart  from  it.  Li  1591  he  obtained  some  liberty.  Under  the 
same  penalty  he  pledged  himself,  firstl}',  not  to  go  beyond  six 
miles  from  his  ])lace  of  confinement ;  and,  secondly,  to  present 
himself  before  the    Council  at  ten  days'  notice,   whenever  he 

^  This  lady,  Anne,  an  admirable  woman  and  no  mean  poetess,  was  the 
sister  and  co-heiress  of  Thomas,  Lord  Dacre  of  Gillisland.  She  survived 
her  unfortunate  husband  until  the  year  1630.  Her  son  Thomas,  the 
twentietli  Earl  of  Arundel,  was  one  of  the  most  distinguished  noblemen  that 
England  ever  owned.     His  collection  of  antiquities  is  possibly  unique. 


JOHN    TOWNELEY   OF   TOWNELEV.  29 1 

should  receive  it.  From  that  period  to  the  death  of  tlie  queen, 
twelve  years  afterwards,  he  was  in  a  constant  state  of  imprison- 
ment, sometimes  in  the  Castle  of  Ely  and  sometimes  in  his  own 
house  ;  during  which  time  he  was  often  compelled  to  "  lend  " 
money — as  it  was  termed — to  the  queen,  which,  of  course,  was 
never  repaid  ;  and  often  to  equip  a  trooper  at  his  own  sole  cost, 
for  the  Queen's  Majesty's  service.  ^ 

The  Towneleys  of  Lancashire,  some  of  the  Hampdens  in 
Bucks,  ^  the  Bellamys  of  Harrow-on-the-Hill,  the  Lords  Paget  of 
West  Drayton,  and  others,  were  sorely  harried  and  punished. 
Guiltless  of  any  offence  but  that  of  declining  to  attend  a  worship 
contrary  to  their  conscience,  they  were  constantly  fined  and 
imprisoned,  and  their  property  stolen.  Of  one  of  the  Towneley 
family  there  is  a  picture  still  remaining  in  their  ancient  and 
interesting  mansion  at  Towneley,  —  a  certain  John  of  that 
honoured  name, — under  which  the  following  record  of  his  long 
and  patient  sufferings  may  still  be  read  : — 

"this  JOHN,  ABOUT  THE  SIXTH  OR  SEVENTH  YEAR  OF 
HER  majesty's  REIGN  THAT  NOW  IS,  FOR  PROFESSING  THE 
APOSTOLICK  ROMAN  CATHOLIC  FFAITH  WAS  IMPRISONED 
FIRST  AT  CHESTER  CASTLE  ;  THEN  SENT  TO  THE  MAR- 
SHALSEA  ;  THEN  TO  YORK  CASTLE  ;  THEN  TO  THE 
BLOCKHOUSES  IN  HULL  ;  THEN  TO  THE  GATEHOUSE  IN 
WESTMINSTER;  THEN  TO  MANCHESTER;  THEN  TO 
BROUGHTON  IN  OXFORDSHIRE  :  THEN  TWICE  TO  ELY  IN 
CAMBRIDGESHIRE;  AND  SO  NOW,  SEVENTY-THREE  YEARS 
OLD,  AND  BLIND,  IS  BOUND  TO  APPEAR  AND  KEEP  WITHIN 
FIVE      MILES      OF     TOWNELEY      HIS     HOUSE.  WHO     HATH 

SINCE    THE    STATUTE    OF    THE     TWENTY-THIRD    PAID    INTO 
THE    EXCHEQUER    TWENTY    POUNDS    A    MONTH,  AND    DOTH 

^  Even  a  poor  lady  of  Buckinghamshire.  Mistress  Avicia  Lee,  a  "  recusant,  " 
was  ordered  through  Robert  Dormer,  Sheriff  of  the  county,  to  furnish  a 
light  horseman  for  the  queen's  service  at  her  own  sole  cost ;  having  already 
for  several  years  paid  twenty  pounds  a  month  as  a  fine  for  not  giving  up  her 
religion  ;  and  so  had  been  brought  almost  to  ruin.  The  delivery  of  this  order 
was  notified  to  the  Council  from  Marlow,  in  1585.  Within  a  few  months  she 
outwardly  conformed  and  went  to  her  parish  church,  of  which  a  testimonial 
of  conformity  from  ihe  minister  was  then  transmitted  to  London  from  Great 
Missenden,  dated  March  19,  1586.  But  like  many  others,  though  an 
occasional  conformist,  she  secretly  pi-actised  the  old  religion,  and  died  in  the 
faith  and  fearof  God. — Sfn/e  Papers,  Domestic,  Elizabeth,  vol.  clxxxiii.  32,  vol. 
clxxxiii.  32  ;  Author's  MSS.  and  Excerpts  ;  Buckinghamshire  Wills. 

-  An  inventory  was  taken  of  the  books  and  other  Popish  relics  found  ;n 
the  house  of  Mistress  Hampden,  of  Stoke,  in  the  county  of  Buckingham,  and. 
carried  away  from  thence  by  Mr.  Paul  Wentworth. — State  Papers,  Domestic, 
Elizabetli,  vol.  clxviii.  No.  47,  Jan.  26,  15S4. 


292  TPIE  CHURCH    UNDER   QUEEN    ELIZABETH. 

still;  so  that  there  is  paid  already  above  ffive 
thousand  pounds,  an.  dni.  one  thousand  six  hun- 
dred and  one.  john  townley  of  townley  in  lan- 
CASHIRE." 

When  such  records  of  persecution  meet  the  gaze,  they  cannot 
but  cause  a  blush  on  the  cheek  of  all  who  have  any  regard  for 
their  country's  fair  fame  ;  and  a  feeling  of  the  heartiest  respect 
for  those  who  so  bravely  endured  and  patiently  suffered. 

But  the  case  of  Esquire  Thomas  Pounde  of  Belmont^  is 
even  more  noteworthy,  and,  because  of  the  facts  it  lays  bare 
and  the  lessons  it  teaches,  deserves  to  be  recounted  at  some 
length.  Born  on  May  29th,  1539,  he  was  the  son  of  William 
Pounde,  Esquire,  a  wealthy  country  gentleman  of  Hampshire, 
by  Anne  Wriotheslej',  sister  of  Thomas,  Earl  of  Southampton. 
His  early  years  had  been  spent  at  the  College  of  Our  Blessed 
Lady  of  Winchester,  where  he  patiently  studied,  preparing 
himself  for  forensic  labours  and  legal  responsibilities.  When  of 
age,  in  form  and  figure  he  was  tall,  handsome,  and  graceful. 
His  features  were  regular  and  well-formed.  His  strength  was 
great,  and  he  excelled  in  all  gymnastic  exercises,  and  such 
sports  as  the  country  gentlemen  of  that  ])eriod  indulged  in. 
His  mental  capacities  were  considerable.  Brave,  courteous,  of 
remarkably  polished  manners,  eloquent  in  speech  (his  voice 
l)eing  sweet  and  musical),  and  of  ready  wit,  he  was  always 
perfectly  self-possessed  and  quite  at  ease  in  the  company  of  his 
equals  and  superiors.  As  a  scholar  his  abilities  were  consider- 
able. He  was  a  poet  of  no  mean  order,  as  existing  specimens 
prove.  He  wrote  Latin  prose  with  singular  grace  and  purity, 
and  artfully  penned  many  verses  in  that  language  of  much 
vigour  and  sweetness.  On  one  occasion,  when  the  queen  was 
received  at  Winchester  College,  Pounde  recited,  amid  great 
applause,  a  com[)limentary  ode,  which  he  himself  had  composed 
in  honour  of  Her  Majesty. 

He  had  always  theoretically  accepted  the  faith  of  his  fathers, 
and  looked  upon  the  new  religion  with  something  like  con- 
tempt; but  he  had  grown  indifferent  when,  as  a  youth,  he 
became  attached  to  the  Court — one  of  the  most  lax,  dissolute, 
and  irreligious  of  any  in  Europe — and  was  ready  and  willing  to 

^  The  authorities  for  the  above  narrative  are  Father  Bartoli's  IstoHa  S.  /. 
(V Inghilterra,  ed.  1825  ;  The  Rambler,  vol.  ii.  for  1857  ;  State  Papers, 
Domestic,  Elizabeth,  vol.  clix.  36,  vol.  cc.  59,  vol.  cci.  53,  vol.  clxxviii.  74, 
vol.  cxc.  44,  vol.  cxcv.  32  and  34,  vol.  cciii.  20,  vol.  cxcv.  115,  and  also 
State  Papers,  Domestic,  Elizabeth,  A.  D.  1582,  No.  58,  containing  some  of 
Pounde's  MSS. — a  long  poem,  in  two  parts,  no  doubt  intercepted  by  some 
spy. 


DECLENSION    IN    THE   OBSERVANCE   OF   CHRISTMAS.     293 

swim  with  the  tide ;  so  that  subsequently  he  conformed  out- 
wardly to  that  form  of  misbelief  and  worship  then  popular. 
When  he  ceased  to  practise  the  old  faith,  he  soon  became 
indifferent  and  ungodly  —  tinctured  by  the  indifference  or 
wickedness  of  those  around. 

During  the  octave  of  Christmas  1569,  the  Court  held  high 
festival.  The  three  masses  for  the  Feast  of  the  Nativity  had 
been  then  abolished  for  more  than  ten  years.  Morning  service, 
consisting  of  prayers,  psalms,  canticles,  and  collects,  took  their 
place.  But  few  cared  to  attend  these.  A  paganism  in  taste 
had  long  permeated  all  the  Christmas  festivities.  Interludes, 
plays,  masques,  concerts,  and  dances  took  place  day  by  day. 
The  religious  element,  now  thoroughly  unpopular,  had  been 
cast  out  in  the  observance  of  Christmas  ;  and  few  there  were 
who  did  not  far  prefer  the  secular  games,  so  exciting,  to  the 
dreary  dissertations  of  the  more  fanatical  sermon  -  mongers. 
Pounde  had  not  only  helped  to  compose  masques,  but,  at 
at  Kenihvorth  Castle,  five  years  previously,  had  taken  part  in 
acting  them.  On  this  occasion,  Lord  Leicester  being  the  host, 
they  were  arranged  and  carried  out  with  unusual  magnificence. 

The  flower  of  the  nobility  were  there.  Its  youth  and  its 
beauty  were  gathered  to  do  honour  to  the  queen.  Money  had 
been  spent  in  profusion  by  all  those  who  arranged  the  enter- 
tainments ;  much  of  which  of  right  belonged  to  the  ancient 
Church,  its  abbeys  and  bishoprics  ^ — for  the  more  money  they 
thus  squandered,  the  better  was  the  queen  pleased. 

An  occurrence  then  took  place,  which  changed  the  course  of 
Pounde's  life.     It  occurred  thus  : — 

He  was  a  remarkable  dancer,  and  combining  good  looks, 
skill,  and  a  most  graceful  figure,  greatly  attracted  the  queen. 
In  one  dance  he  so  outstripped  himself  in  grace  and  agility, 
that  at  its  close  Her  Majesty  seized  him  by  the  hand,  which, 
with  smiles  and  leers,  she  most  approvingly  squeezed ;  and  then 
snatching  Lord  Leicester's  velvet  cap,  placed  it  on  Pounde's 
head,  whom  she  thought,  after  his  violent  exertions,  might 
otherwise  catch  cold.  The  queen  was  so  delighted  at  his 
performance,  that  she  commanded  its  immediate  repetition. 
No  greater  compliment  could  have  been  paid  him. 

He  repeated  it  in  part,  when,  all  of  a  sudden,  becoming  giddy 
and  losing  his  balance,  he  stumbled,  staggered,  and  fell  close 

^  "  15SS,  July.  A  grant  to  the  Earl  of  Leicester  of  seven  hundred  pounds 
lands,  whereof  five  hundred  pounds  to  be  resumed  from  bishopricks  and  two 
hundred  pounds  of  attaynted  lands." — Bin\s;hl:y  Sfafc  Pafcrs,  p.  7S8.  Edited 
by  W.  Murdin.     London,  1759. 


294  THE   CHURCH    UNDER   QUEEN    ELIZABETH. 

to  the  queen's  feet.  The  recent  applause  was  soon  followed 
by  peals  of  laughter  from  all  sides,  and  by  shouts  of  derision. 

Upon  this  the  queen  contemptuously  kicked  him  with  her 
foot,  and  with  marked  sarcasm  —  parodying  the  formula  of 
making  a  knight — exclaimed,  "  Rise,  Sir  Ox,"  and  then,  turning 
away,  joined  the  Court  in  laughing  at  what  was  mistakenly 
deemed  his  awkwardness. 

He  rose  promptly,  bent  his  knee  to  Her  Majesty,  and  was 
heard  to  exclaim,  with  downcast  eyes,  ^^  Sic  transit  gloria  nniiidi." 
He  had  been  touched  to  the  quick.  Hurrying  from  the  royal 
presence,  he  left  the  Court  for  ever,  retiring  to  his  paternal 
mansion  at  Belmont,  and  burying  himself  for  days  in  solitude. 
There  he  blamed  himself  for  the  thirty  years  of  past  life,  and 
made  the  firmest  resolutions  of  future  amendment.  He  was 
soon  reconciled  to  the  ancient  faith,  making  restitution  and 
doing  severe  penances  for  his  lapse.  He  then  left  his  paternal 
home,  and  gave  himself  up  to  solitude,— to  prayer,  self-denial, 
and  mortification.  He  likewise  bound  himself  by  a  vow  to 
jiractise  perpetual  chastity,  and  resolved,  after  seven  years  ot 
])robation,  to  offer  himself  for  the  priesthood.  He  was  likewise 
most  earnest  in  making  converts,  and  desired  to  become  a 
member  of  the  Society  of  Jesus.  Betrayed  by  one  of  these 
converts,  however,  an  insincere  and  false  friend,  he  was  taken 
before  Sandys,  Bishop  of  London,  who  interrogated  him  as  to 
his  religion,  and  then,  in  the  year  1574,  jnit  him  into  prison. 
He  was  charged  with  no  crime  whatsoever,  with  no  violation  of 
the  laws,  and  no  accusation  was  made  against  him.  He  was 
nevertheless  imprisoned  on  the  strength  of  recent  Parliamentary 
enactments,  and  frequently  tortured  with  the  utmost  cruelty. 

He  thus  suffered,  firstly,  because  he  had  enjoined  upon  his 
co-religionists  at  Winchester  and  elsewhere,  that  they  should 
steadily  refuse  "the  Supper"  of  the  ministers,  and  decline  even 
to  enter  the  desecrated  churches ;  and,  secondly,  because  he 
was  known  to  have  been  about  to  leave  England  without  a 
licence. 

Sandys  came  to  him  in  prison  and  distinctly  offered  him  his 
liberty,  if  he  would  but  once  attend  the  new  services  and  hear 
a  sermon.  But  he  civilly  and  calmly  answered — "  If  I  cannot 
recover  my  liberty  otherwise  than  by  offending  God,  I  am  firmly 
resolved  that  my  soul  shall  rather  be  torn  from  my  body,  than 
that  this  flesh  shall  go  forth  out  of  prison  on  such  terms."  ' 

'  He  is  the  only  son  and  heir  of  liis  father,  a  Catholic,  but  bis  mother, 
being  still  alive,  as  yet  enjoys  the  paternal  mansion  and  estates  which  fell 
to  him  at  his  father's  death.     He  is  thirty-eight  years  of  age,  of  a  tall  and 


THOMAS  POUNDE  OF  BELMONT.         295 

For  this  bold  and  unambiguous  reply,  evidencing  his  true 
nobility  of  character,  he  was  retained  in  confinement  for  six 
months  longer;  but  subsequently  liberated  on  bail  at  the  inter- 
vention of  his  relation,  Lord  Southampton.  Thus  for  awhile 
Pounde  was  at  liberty. 

Hereupon  he  retired  to  his  paternal  house  in  Hampshire, 
where  his  widowed  mother  resided  ;  but  Robert  Home,  Bishop 
of  Winchester,  irritated  at  his  religious  zeal  and  controversial 
acuteness,  by  which  he  secured  many  adherents ;  and  terribly 
annoyed  at  his  skill  in  public  dispute  and  his  brave  bearing, 
handed  him  over  with  some  others  to  the  secular  arm,  as  an 
obstinate  and  dangerous  recusant.  He  was  soon  committed  to 
the  local  prison,  but  subsequently  sent  to  London  and  lodged 
in  the  Marshalsea.^ 

handsome  figure,  a  flowing  beard,  and  a  pleasing  countenance.  In  the 
prison  he  dresses  most  handsomely,  thinking  thus  to  inspire  Catholics  with 
greater  courage,  and  also  to  conciliate  tlie  authorities.  He  has  not  yet  made 
his  philosophy,  but  is  well  up  in  his  humanities,  and  wonderfully  devoted  to 
the  study  of  the  holy  Fathers.  He  is  eloquent  in  his  native  tongue,  and 
equally  fluent  in  speaking  and   writing,   and  much   jjractised   in   the   art  of 

exhortation    and  persuasion For    the   greater    part   of  the  time  I 

lived  with  him,  I  mention  only  what  I  have  myself  witnessed,  he  used  to 
impose  severe  austerities  upon  himself,  the  ground  being  his  miserable  bed; 
he  spent  one  hour  at  midnight  in  ]irayer,  with  great  spiritual  gust,  and 
followed  this  by  spiritual  reading  at  daybreak.  He  ^^•ould  then  resume  his 
meditation  for  two,  three,  or  four  hours,  and  spend  the  rest  of  the  day  in 
reading  the  holy  Fathers,  giving  two  or  three  hours  to  pi'ayer  again  in  the 
evening.  The  heretics  reported  him  as  a  superstitious  fool  or  a  madman  ; 
his  domestics,  and  even  some  of  his  fiiends,  thought  the  same  of  him,  saying 
that  he  was  imprudently  severe  against  himself.  But  all  this  he  courageously 
disregarded,  and  persevered  in  his  manner  of  life,  till  they  were  forced  to 
change  their  reproaches  into  admiration." — Lettei-  from  Thomas  Stephens, 
dated  4th  Nov.  1578,  Public  Record  Office,  Brussels. 

1  State  Papers,  Domestic,  Elizabeth,  vol.  cxl.  40. — "  He  remanded  Pounde 
offliand  from  the  Marshalsea,  London,  to  be  immured  in  a  distant  prison. 
This  was  Stortford,  or  Bishops'  Stortford,  Castle,  Herts,  thirty  miles  from 
London,  on  the  confines  of  P>ssex,  a  lonely  place  well  chosen  for  his  purpose. 
Pounde  was  thrust  into  a  cell,  a  few  feet  under  the  ground,  in  which  was 
perpetual  night,  no  ray  of  the  sun  nor  any  gleam  of  light  ever  entering  there 
whereby  to  distinguish  between  day  and  night.  No  one  was  allowed  to 
vi>it  him,  for  wherever  this  had  been  permitted,  he  had  gained  many  to  the 
Catholic  faith.  The  bare  and  dirty  ground  was  his  bed,  a  pair  of  heavy 
fetters  was  put  on  his  legs,  and  handcuffs  on  his  wrists,  with  chains  attached, 
besides  many  other  sufferings  added  by  his  brutal  gaoler.  As  the  blacksmith 
was  about  to  rivet  the  shackles  upon  his  legs,  Thomas  endeavoured  to  kiss 
them,  whereupon  the  smith  inhumanly  struck  hiin  with  them  on  the  head, 
and  drew  blood  ;  when,  with  an  undisturbed  countenance,  he  exclaimed, 
'  Would  that  blood  might  here  flow  from  the  inmost  veins  of  my  heart  for 
the  cause  for  which  I  suffer  !'  The  blacksmith  was  astonished  at  his  fervour 
and  patience  under  so  great  and  so  unprovoked  an  injury.  And  it  pleased  God, 
in  reward  for  the  merit  of  his  patience,  to  give  Mr.  Pounde  that  soul,  moving 


296  THE   CHURCH    UNDER   QUEEN    ELIZABETH. 

The  following  paragraph  from  a  conlemporary  letter  exactly 
describes  how  this  came  to  pass  : — 

"When  before  the  bishop  and  a  great  assembly  of  spectators, 
he  rendered  so  brilliant  an  account  of  his  faith  in  the  presence 
of  them  all,  and  so  severely  rebuked  the  bishop  himself,  that  the 
latter  was  unable  for  very  rage  and  confusion  to  say  a  word  in 
re]jly.  .  .  .  After  this  they  were  all  given  into  separate 
custody,  and  Mr.  Pounde  was  thrust  into  the  prison  of  the 
common  thieves.  But  when  the  bishop  saw  that  many  were 
impressed  by  his  example,  and  specially  by  his  fastings  and 
])rayers,  being  things  deemed  simply  impossibilities  amongst 
them,  he  removed  him  from  his  diocese,  as  if  he  were  a  pest, 
and  remanded  him  to  London,  where  to  this  day  he  perseveres 
in  prison  to  the  great  consolation  and  edification  of  many."  ^ 

Later  on,  upon  a  certain  occasion,  the  renowned  Father 
Campion  had  given  to  Pounde  a  MS.  copy  of  his  celebrated 
"Challenge,"-  which,  on  reading  again  and  again,  he  became 
so  greatly  impressed  by  the  force  of  its  arguments  and  its 
general  power  and  ]:ioint,  that  he  communicated  it  to  a  Catholic 
neighbour,  Benjamin  Ticlibourne ;  and  a  copy  having  been 
found  by  the  Sheriff  of  Wiltshire,  and  sent  up  to  the  Privy 
Council,  Watson,  Bishop  of  Winchester,  and  others  feared  its 
effect  so  greatly,  that  no  stone  was  left  unturned  to  punish  all 
who  had  aided  in  its  distribution  or  publication. 

This  poor  gentleman's  life,  in  truth,  was  a  continual  martyr- 
dom. For  more  than  thirty  years  he  Avas  securely  kept  in  prison, 
and  for  long  periods  in  complete  solitary  confinement,  enduring 
continuous  tortures.  After  being  for  one  year  in  Newgate,  he 
had  been  removed  to  the  ALarshalsea ;  ■'  then  to  Bishop's  Stort- 
ford  ; ''  then  to  the  Tower ;  then  to  the  Compter  on  the  south 

the  smith  to  demand  of  him  whence  he  possessed  so  great  confidence  that  he 
was  of  the  true  religion,  seeing  that  in  England  '  I'apibt '  and  'reproba'e' 
were  synonymous  terms.  The  prisoner  gave  the  man  such  strong  reasons 
and  convincing  proofs,  that  he  was  vanijui.-hed  and  afterwards  became  a 
Cathohc,  in  punishment  for  which  act  he  was  cast  into  prison,  Mhere  he 
died  piously  in  chains." — Life  of  7'honias  Pounde,  of  Bc/mont,  by  Henry 
Foley,  in  A'ccoi-Js  of  the  En-:^lish  Province,  vol.  iii.  ]ip.  592-593,  to  wliich 
the  author  is  greatly  indelited  for  several  facts  and  much  information. 

^  Letter  from  Thomas  Stephens,  dated  4lh  November  157S.  Original,  in 
Latin,  in  the  Public  Record  Office,  Brussels. 

-  State  Paf-ers,  Dojiiestic,  Elizabeth,  vol.  cxlii.  20. 

^  "  He    is    buried    in    a    prison    under-ground,    totally   dark  and  gloomy; 

having  no  other  light  than   that  of  an  oil  laniji He  sleeps  for  the 

most  part  of  the  night  on  the  dam]")  ground  ;  bound  sometimes  with  one,  two, 
and  often  with  three  iron  fetters." — Letter  front  Lather  Parsons  to  the  Lather 
Genera/,  given  in  Bartoli's  Jni^Iiilterra,  lib.  i.  rap.  xvij.  134. 

^  When  Tounde  was  at  Bishop's  hioitford,  Noiton,  the  rack-master  visited 


IMrRISONED   AND   HEAVILY   FINED.  297 

side  of  the  Thames ;  thence  to  Wisbeach  Castle,  where  for  ten 
years  he  dwelt  with  many  priests  and  laymen.  In  1597  he  was 
again  sent  to  the  Tower, — where  altogether  he  had  been  con- 
fined for  ten  years, — subsequently  to  the  City  Compter ;  after 
that  to  the  White  L -ion,  then  to  the  Gate  House  at  Westminster ; 
subsequently  to  the  Fleet  Prison,  and  lastly  to  Framlingham. 

Having  thus  suffered  imprisonment  for  the  long  period  of 
years  already  mentioned  ;  having,  moreover,  paid  the  value  of 
more  than  two-thirds  of  the  whole  of  his  property  into  the  Royal 
Exchequer  in  fines  for  recusancy;^  being  consequently  harassed 
by  debt,  and  driven  by  sheer  necessity  to  do  -so,  u]:)on  Elizabeth's 
death,  he  appealed  to  King  James  I.,  stating  at  length,  in  writing, 
some  of  the  horrible  cruelties  which  had  been  practised  on  so 
many  of  his  Catholic  friends  and  neighbours  '^  because  of  their 
religion.  He  was  thoroughly  out-s])oken  and  plain-spoken,  and 
his  words  impressed  the  king  greatly.  His  Majesty  speedily  re- 
ferred the  petition  to  the  judges,  who  tried  the  case  in  the  Star 
Chamber.  There  he  defended  himself  most  earnestly  and 
adroitly,  with  consummate  ability  and  remarkable  boldness. 
From  his  own  truly  Christian  standing-point,  setting  forth  the 
legal  cruelties  constantly  practised,  he  proved  the  full  truth  of 
the  facts  in  his  petition.  The  Attorney-General,  however,  in- 
formed the  Court  that  any  man  who  disparaged  and  disobeyed 

him,  and  going  back  to  Sir  F.  Walsingham,  reported  that  he  was  a  religious 
lunatic,  and  that  Bedlam  would  be  his  most  suitable  place  of  residence.  It 
may  not  be  uninteresting  to  notice  that  this  Norton's  own  wife,  being  pos- 
sessed of  an  evil  spiiit,  died  in  a  state  of  violent  madness. — Document,  State 
Paper  Office,  dated  March  27,  1582.  Pounde  himself  thus  described  his 
state  to  a  former  friend  and  ally  at  Court  :— "  O  God,  Sir  Christopher  !  I 
wolde  you  saw  the  spectacle  of  it,  what  a  place  I  am  brought  into  here.  It 
is  nothing  but  a  large  vast  room,  cold  water,  bare  walls,  nor  windows,  but 
loupholes  too  high  too  look  out  at  ;  nor  bed,  nor  btdsteade,  nor  place  very 
fit  for  any." — Letter  from  roiinde  to  Sir  Christopher  Hat  ton,  dated  iSih  ot 
September  15S0. 

1  The  late  Mr.  Richard  Simpson,  in  The  Rambler,  for  1857,  pointed  out 
that  Esquire  Pounde  once  asserted  to  the  Bishop  of  Winchester  that  he  had 
paid  upwards  of  four  thousand  pounds  in  fines  alone  rather  than  go  to  church 
for  the  newservice  and  abandon  his  religion.  "Multiply  that  sum  by  twelve," 
remarks  Mr.  Simpson,  so  as  to  calculate  this  amount  by  the  value  of  money 
in  this  day,  "and  we  shall  have  the  present  equivalent  of  the  cost  of  Cathol- 
icity to  an  English  gentleman  of  the  sixteenth  century." 

-  Bishop  Cowptrr  of  Winchester  wrote  to  Sir  F.  Walsingham,  on  Dec. 
loth,  15S5,  against  any  favour  being  shown  to  the  wife  of  one  Mr.  Pitts,  of 
Alton,  in  Hampshire,  committed  to  the  Clink,  who  was  a  very  obstinate 
person  and  natural  sister  to  Nicholas  Sander  the  traitor.  IJer  return  to 
Winchester,  as  the  Bishop  maintains,  zvoiild  do  more  harin^  than  ten  sermons 
ivoitld  do  good .  "No  man,"  he  remarks,  "whose  wife  is  a  recusant  is  sound 
\v\vcii,(t\{"— State  Tapers,  Domestic,  Elizabeth,  vol.  clxxxv.  17. 


298  THE   CHURCH    UNDER   QUEEN    ELIZABETH. 

the  laws  recently  passed  against  the  Patriarch  of  the  West  and 
the  Primate  of  Christendom,  was  plainly  guilty  of  high  treason. 
Whosoever,  he  maintained,  acknowledges  the  Primacy  and  Juris- 
diction of  the  See  Apostolic — obviously  the  case  with  Pounde — 
makes  the  English  sovereign  a  sovereign  only  by  a  very  uncertain 
tenure  and  himself  an  enemy  and  traitor  to  his  king  and  country. 
Priests  who  do  so  are  rather  apostates  than  a[)ostles,  adding 
that  a  Gracchus  should  not  complain  of  sedition,  nor  people  of 
the  old  but  discarded  religion,  like  this  disobedient  and  self- 
willed  ecclesiastical  layman,  of  severity.  Pounde  was  conse- 
quently condemned,  for  the  Court  had  been  duly  and  carefully 
packed.  He  was  fined  five  thousand  pounds  and  ordered  to  be 
exposed  in  the  pillory  in  three  different  places. 

Subsequently,  when  the  king  had  resolved  to  banish  all  priests. 
His  Majesty  determined  on  releasing  the  laity  in  prison.  Pounde 
was  then  permitted  to  go  out,  and  received  in  addition  a  special 
licence  to  go  abroad.  But,  because  of  old  age  and  infirmity,  he 
retired  to  his  old  home,  by  that  time  desolate,  disorganised,  and 
miserably  dilapidated. 

Since  his  retirement  from  Court,  he  had  always  lived  a  life  of 
singular  devotion,  recollectedness,  and  self-denial.  He  took 
food  only  once  a  day,  until  old  age  obliged  him  to  modify  this 
rule.  From  day  to  day  he  saw  clearly  that  the  next  might  be 
his  last.  He  was  therefore  always  most  vigilant.  No  fear  of 
death,  however,  ever  prevented  him  from  expressing  openly  his 
religious  belief,  or  from  doing  all  that  lay  in  his  power  to  warn 
people  against  the  innovators  and  their  dangerous  principles. 
For  this  he  became  ever  liable  to  the  gross,  cruel,  and  disgusting 
punishment  for  high  treason.  But  he  was  in  no  state  of  fear. 
The  hanging-post,  the  butcher's  knife,  and  the  caldron  of  boiling 
pitch  had  no  terrors  for  him.  The  enemies  of  God  might  do 
their  worst.  They  could  but  torture  and  mangle  his  body.  His 
faith  was  keen  and  firm.  His  feet  were  planted  on  a  Rock.  He 
constantly  prayed,  studied  the  Catholic  Fathers  with  care  and 
attention,  and  wrote  some  useful  and  pertinent  treatises  against 
existing  errors.  In  prison  or  out  of  prison  he  was  always  devot- 
ing himself  to  building  up  the  weak  and  wavering  in  the  faith. 
His  calm  demeanour  under  great  trials,  and  his  courageous  but 
mildly-spoken  and  musical  words  in  the  presence  of  heretics  and 
schismatics,  greatly  strengthened  those  who  stood  in  fear  of  con- 
sequences. For  as  to  himself,  he  was  ever  prepared  to  do  what 
was  right  and  true,  rather  than  that  which  was  politic  and  expedi- 
ent ;  while  he  confidently  left  all  consequences  and  results,  of 
what  kind  soever,  in  the  hands  of  God.     The  new  religion — for 


HIS   SUBSEQUENT   DEATH.  299 

such  in  truth  it  was — not  only  had  no  charms  for  him,  but  was 
positively  repulsive.  Both  in  ordinary  conversation  and  in  careful 
writing  he  plainly  and  fearlessly  maintained  that  Queen  Elizabeth 
was  not  only  not  the  head  and  ruler  of  the  true  old  Church  in 
England,  but  that  she  had  not  the  shadow  or  a  shred  of  spiritual 
jurisdiction,  above  any  other  woman,  or  over  anyone, — which 
was  of  course  the  case.  Over  the  new  community,  which  had 
been  made  by  Parliament,  confined  within  the  natural  boundary 
of  Her  Majesty's  dominions,  she  was  of  course  wholly  and  truly 
supreme ;  and,  as  far  as  Parliament  could  make  her  so,  she 
was,  and  was  always  recognised  as,  the  Supreme  Governess  or 
Head  of  this  newly-organised  Church  of  England.  The  contrast 
between  it,  however,  and  the  old  Church  was  almost  as  great  as 
contrast  could  be.  The  two  institutions  were  remarkably  dis- 
similar, as  all  could  see,  and  as  both  sides  admitted.  Where 
authority  had  been  intentionally  cast  out  from  a  Christian  state, 
disorder,  discord,  and  chaos,  must  ere  long  come  in  like  a  iiood. 
This,  as  we  know,  was  too  soon  abundantly  the  case. 

Pounde  lived  to  die  in  the  very  same  room  of  his  old  Hamp- 
shire home  in  which,  seventy-six  years  before,  he  had  first  seen 
the  light  of  day,  "My  dear  and  most-loved  country,"  he  ex- 
claimed on  his  death-bed,  "may  God  soon  convert  thee  out  of 
this  wretched  and  pitiful  captivity  of  schism,  confusion,  and 
heresy  ! "  Its  awful  and  Babel-like  state  was  constantly  before 
him,  even  to  the  end.  His  soul  passed  to  the  particular  judg- 
ment-seat when  the  March  winds  were  wild  and  keen,  and  when 
the  crocus  shot  up  its  saffron  leaves,  and  the  snow-drop  told  of 
the  resurrection  of  the  dead.  But  the  spring  sunshine,  faUing 
through  the  pictured  panes  of  Belmont,  lit  up  the  oaken  room 
where,  with  a  crucifix  on  his  breast,  he  lay  shrouded  and  coffined, 
waiting  for  a  final  resting-place  in  the  neighbouring  churchyard  ; 
and  where  a  few  devoted  relatives,  weeping  over  their  loss, 
commended  his  righteous  soul  to  the  keeping  of  a  merciful 
Creator,  God  the  Trinity ;  and  asked  the  blessed  aid  and  inter- 
cession of  the  angels  and  saints  in  white  near  and  about  the 
throne,  that  the  departed  might  soon  enjoy  eternal  peace,  and 
live  in  the  light  which  never  grows  dim. 

Of  another  somewhat  similar  case  of  persecution,  which  ended 
even  more  painfully  and  most  sadly.  Father  Grene^  has  left  on 
record  the  following  brief  account : — 

"  I  remember  about  fifteen  or  sixteen  years  ago  there  was  one 
Mr.  Horsley,  a  gentleman  of  the  North,  as  I  have  heard.   .  .   . 
He  was  taken,  brought  to  York,  before  the  Council,  who  sent 
^  Father  Grene's  MSS.  in  the  English  College  at  Rome,  vol.  F. 


300         THE   CHURCH    under   queen    ELIZABETH 

him  about  nine  of  the  clock  in  the  night  to  the  castle,  where  he 
had  double  irons  laid  on  him,  and  took  them  merrily.  The  next 
morning  the  Council  sent  for  him  and  committed  him  to  the 
Bishop's  Prison,  or  Peter  Prison,  and  laid  irons  on  him  ;  and 
there  straitly  and  cruelly  he  was  used,  for  almost  none  could 
learn  where  he  was  committed  till  he  was  sent  back  again  to 
Hull,  and  there  monstrously  abused  ;  for  he  was  there  arraigned 
and  condemned  to  have  his  ears  cut  off,  and  cruelly  they  did  [so]. 
Then  the  tyrants  put  him  in  a  filthy  place  and  prison  called  the 
Hall,  and  kept  him  straitly,  for  he  was  thought  to  be  a  Catholic  ; 
and,  therefore,  they  fined  him,  for  he  was  glad  to  eat  the  crusts 
which  seme  threw  in  at  the  window.  Thus  starving  him  he 
died,  and  lay  dead  so  long  (how  long  none  knoweth)  that  the 
rats  had  eaten  his  face  and  other  places." 

That  the  old  religion  should  in  due  course  have  gradually 
lost  its  adherents  in  England  is  not  to  be  wondered  at,  when 
such  records  of  cruelty  and  torture  as  those  just  related  are  duly 
had  in  consideration.  In  some  parts  the  villages  had  become 
depopulated,^  more  especially  those  adjacent  to  the  old  religious 
houses.  Cottage  after  cottage  had  been  removed,  grange  and 
manor  and  yeoman's  mansion  went  to  decay  and  ruin.  The 
only  wonder  is  that  any  ancient  families  remained  at  all,  to  lift 
up  their  testimony  by  deed  as  well  as  by  word  through  later  times 
of  misery,  rebellion,  and  revolution ;  and  to  bear  witness  to  the 
Catholicity  and  continuity  of  the  religion  of  St.  Edward  the 
Confessor  and  William  Wainflete,  in  which,  by  divine  grace,  and 
greatly  to  the  benefit  of  their  native  land,  they  continued  to 
believe. 

There  were  some  tortures  which  were  extremely  agonising  to 
those  who  endured  them,  and  one  might  have  imagined  distress- 
ing to  witness  by  those  who  were  officially  enjoined  to  make  use 
of  them.  One  such  form  of  punishment  consisted  in  hanging 
people  up  to  a  beam  with  cords  by  the  joints  of  their  fingers  or 
wrists,  until,  because  of  sheer  agony,  they  swooned  and  lost  all 

'  "  Whereby  is  it  come  to  pass  that  where  before  there  dwelt  many  a  good 
yeoman  able  to  do  the  king  and  the  realm  good  service,  there  is  nobody  now 
dwelling  but  a  shepherd  with  his  dog,  but  tiy  the  suppression  of  the  abbeys  ? 
Whereby  is  it  that  whereas  men  where  wont  to  eat  sheep,  now  sheep  eat  uji 
houses,  whole  towns,  yea  men  and  all,  but  by  the  suppression  of  the  abbeys? 
What  is  the  decay  of  tillage  but  the  suppression  of  the  abbeys?  What  is  the 
decay  of  woods  and  the  cause  of  the  excessive  pi  ice  of  wood,  but  the  suppres- 
sion of  the  said  abbeys,  which  did  carefully  nourish,  supply,  and  husband 
the  same?"— 77/(-  Pretended  Divjire  hehveen  Henry  VJII.  and  Queen 
Katherine,  by  Nicholas  Harpsficld,  edited  by  N.  Pocock,  p.  299.  London, 
1878. 


ANCIENT   PRIESTS   PUNISHED.  3OI 

consciousness.  On  one  occasion,  ns  Sir  John  Harington  states, 
Topcliffe  was  called  upon  to  explain  to  the  queen  the  method  of 
this  torture,  and  to  give  a  detailed  account  of  its  results.  The 
queen  listened  with  attention,  and  Topcliffe  was  afterwards 
rewarded  substantially  for  his  efficiency  and  resolution.  Here  is 
a  single  example  taken  out  of  many  : — 

In  the  year  1594,  "Father  John  Ingram,  priest,  being  appre- 
hended in  the  north  country,  brought  to  York  to  the  Lord 
President,  where  he  was  kept  in  his  porter['s]  lodge  about  two 
months  close  prisoner,  having  secret  conference  with  Dr.  Favor 
and  others,  and  dealt  withal  both  with  lenity  and  extremity. 
When  they  had  used  all  the  means  they  could,  and  could  not 
prevail  against  him,  they  sent  him  to  London  to  the  torturers 
where  he  was  hung  [up]  by  the  joints  of  his  fingers  and  arms  in 
extreme  pain  so  long  that  the  feeling  of  his  senses  was  clean 
taken  from  him.  After  that  they  sent  him  again  to  York,  where 
he  was  committed  to  Ousebridge,  kept  there  close  prisoner  in  a 
low,  stinking  vault,  locked  in  a  jakeshouse  the  space  of  four  days, 
without  either  bed  to  lie  on  or  stool  to  sit  on ;  from  thence 
carried  into  the  North,  pinioned  with  a  cord,  where  he  was 
apprehended,  committed  to  Durham  gaol,  brought  at  the  Assizes 
there  before  the  judges,  condemned,  and  executed."  ^ 

Here  follows  the  record  of  a  form  of  persecution  and  torture 
which  cannot  be  more  distinctly  referred  to  : — 

"John  Pearson,  a  venerable  old  priest,  was  imprisoned  for 
many  years  at  Durham  for  refusing  to  attend  the  heretical 
services,  x^fter  enduring  with  great  patience  the  close  confine- 
ment of  an  underground  dungeon,  he  was  removed  to  another 
far  worse,  and  thrust  amongst  a  set  of  thieves.  This  was  done 
at  a  time  when  he  was  suffering  from  a  burning  fever.  Here,  as 
if  the  very  filthiness  of  the  place,  with  its  accompaniments,  were 
not  torture  enough  to  a  refined  man  of  advanced  age,  the  thieves 
out  of  mere  malice  became  his  tormentors.  For  while  he  was 
taking  his  meals,  they  .  .  .  caused  him  such  nausea  that  he 
could  not  retain  the  poor  nourishment  he  had  taken.  By  this 
more  than  savage  treatment  received  at  the  hands  of  these  pitiless 
wretches,  he  was,  before  many  days  were  passed,  worn  out,  and 
so  passed  to  a  better  life."- 

As  it  was  in  the  North  so  it  was  in  the  South  of  England. 
For   example:  —  In    1591,    Roger    Dickenson,    who   had    been 

^  "  Notes  by  a  Prisoner  in  Ousebridge  Kidcote,"  in  Trouhlts  of  our  Catholic 
Foj-efathers,  3rd  Series,  p.  314.     London,  1877. 

^  "  Notes  by  Father  Grene,"  in  Troubles  of  our  Catholic  Forefathers,  T,n\ 
Series,  p.  315.     London,  1877. 


302  THE   CHURCH    UNDER   QUEEN   ELIZABETH. 

ordained  at  Rheims,  and  who  ministered  to  those  of  the  old 
rehgion  near  Winchester,  was  caught,  arraigned  for  this  "  offence," 
as  it  was  deemed,  condemned,  and  sent  up  to  London  to  be 
similarly  tortured,  in  the  hope  of  his  betraying  his  friends  and 
co-religionists,  which  he  firmly  and  faithfully  declined  to  do. 
With  him  suffered  Ralph  Milner,  a  poor  married  man,  with  a 
large  family,  having  been  convicted  of  aiding  and  abetting  Father 
Dickenson  in  saying  mass  by  serving  him.  In  this  case  the 
judge  openly  offered  him  his  life  if  he  would  only  once  attend 
the  new  services,  and  acknowledge  the  queen's  supremacy  in 
spirituals.  But  he  firmly  declined.  And  when  the  offer  was 
repeated  to  him  in  prison,  the  day  before  he  suffered,  he  still 
refused  it  with  scorn,  but  in  very  simple  and  respectful  language. 
On  the  morning  of  his  last  day  upon  earth,  when  he  was  about 
to  suffer  a  frightful  and  cruel  death,  his  seven  miserable  children 
in  tears  were  brought  to  him,  in  the  hope  that  the  sight  of  them, 
about  to  become  orphans,  might  melt  his  constancy.  But  instead 
of  yielding  to  the  reasonable  suggestions  of  Nature,  he  first 
embraced  them  affectionately,  gave  them  each  his  last  paternal 
blessing,  urged  them  to  a  pious  life  after  the  old  rules,  and 
declared,  in  the  hearing  of  the  anxious  and  interested  multitude 
around,  that  he  could  wish  his  sorrowing  little  ones  no  greater 
happiness  than  to  shed  their  blood  in  defence  of  the  true  faith. 
The  two  sufferers  died  on  the  7th  of  July  1591,  by  the  accus- 
tomed cruelties,  and  after  the  disgusting  legal  barbarities  had 
been  duly  perpetrated. 

Seven  maiden  ladies  were  likewise  condemned  to  death  at  the 
same  assizes  for  having  harboured  Dickenson  and  heard  mass, 
but  for  very  shame's  sake  on  the  part  of  the  judge  were  reprieved 
and  imprisoned. 

At  the  same  time  the  persecution  of  the  Brownists,  Puritans, 
and  anti-prelate  agitators  went  on  apace.  They,  too,  suffered 
severely,  and  often  bore  their  sufferings  bravely  and  manfully. 
For  example : — 

Two  men,  John  Greenwood  a  clergyman,  and  Henry  J]arrow 
a  lawyer,  were,  in  the  spring  of  1595,  convicted  of  having  written 
sundry  seditious  books,  tending  to  the  slander  of  the  queen  and 
state.  In  these  there  were  violent  attacks  on  the  Book  of 
Common  Prayer,  and  on  the  queen  as  sanctioning  its  use.  Their 
publications  had  been  sown  broadcast,  and  being  in  strong  and 
vigorous  language,  readily  found  readers.  In  the  opinion  of  the 
judges  such  productions  conclusively  proved  that  their  authors 
denied  to  the  queen  her  rightful  spiritual  supremacy  as  bestowed 
upon  her  by  Parliament.     On  the  31st  of  March  they  were  taken 


THE   MARTIN    MARPRELATE   ARGUMENTS. 


J^J 


to  Tybourne,  and  temporarily  reprieved,  but  were  both  cruelly 
executed  there  on  the  6th  of  April. 

Two  months  afterwards,  Henry  Penry,  a  native  of  Wales,  was 
tried,  under  an  Act  passed  in  the  twenty-third  year  of  the  queen's 
reign,  for  having  uttered  "  seditious  words  and  rumours  against 
the  queen."  He  had  received  his  education  at  both  Universities, 
and  was  a  young  man  of  considerable  abilities  and  great  power 
of  invective.  His  writings,  full  of  the  keenest  satires  of  the 
bishops,  whom  he  described  as  "limbs  of  Antichrist,"  were 
directed  forcibly  against  the  then  state  of  affairs,  and  more 
particularly  against  the  queen  as  making,  governing,  and  depos- 
ing the  prelates.  His  indirect  account  of  the  state  of  affairs  then 
existing  in  the  Church  is  often  graphic,  entertaining,  and  startling. 
Comprehension  ^  was  certainly  considerable,  but  what  principle 
obtained  save  that  of  persecution  it  is  not  easy  to  determine. 
He  is  generally  credited  with  having  been  the  author  of  the 
Martin  Marprelate  Tracts,  which  were  personally  most  distaste- 
ful to  Her  Majesty,  and,  of  course,  entirely  subversive  of  her 
spiritual  supremacy.  For  the  preachers  maintained  their  own 
official  superiority  in  things  spiritual  to  that  of  the  queen.  In 
Wales,  where  the  old  religion  had  been  for  some  years  slowly 
dying  out,  he  preached  and  exhorted,  in  woods  and  fields,  church- 
yards and  village  greens,  with  singular  power  and  unusual  bold- 
ness. On  several  occasions  he  defied  the  bishops,  whom  he 
covered  with  ridicule  and  satire,  and  challenged  their  officers  to 
do  their  worst  against  him.  Many  people  followed  his  lead, 
often  applauding  to  the  echo  his  daring  statements,  while  his 
various  publications,  scattered  profusely  by  faithful  allies,  became 
seriously  damaging  to  the  new  religious  establishment.  He  was 
seized  at  Stepney,  charged,  and  condemned.  He  was  found 
guilty,  not  from  any  statements  in  his  publications,  nor  from 
admissions  of  his  own,  but  from  the  contents  and  terms  of  certain 
manuscript  iiieiuoranda  found  upon  him,  containing  the  heads  of 
a  petition  to  the  queen.     To  strike  directly  at  the  bishops  and 

^  A  cathedral  dignitary  of  research  and  candour,  Mr.  Prebendary  Walcott, 
remarked  in  his  Introduction  to  the  Caiions  of  the  Church  of  England  (Varker, 
1874)  that  "  comprehen.sion  without  compromise  of  principle  is  the  true  policv 
of  our  Communion" — a  state  of  affairs  certainly  not  yet  arrived  at,  after  all 
these  years  ;  and  no  more  likely  to  be  attained  by  the  corporation  in  question, 
apparently,  than  the  "godly  discipline  of  the  Primitive  Church," — the  absence 
of  which  is  formally  lamented  by  everybody  on  every  recurring  Ash-Wednes- 
day, but  which  discipline  nobody  has  the  least  intention  of  endeavouring  to 
restore,  or  the  least  desire  of  restoring,  or  the  smallest  expectation  of  living  to 
see  restored.  There  is  plenty  of  comprehension,  abundance  of  compromise, 
and  exceeding  little  principle. 


304  THE   CHURCH    UNDER   QUEEN   ELIZABETH. 

their  jurisdiction,  however,  was,  as  the  judges  laid  down,  to 
strike  indirectly  and  wickedly  at  Her  Majesty.  For  the  queen 
had  notoriously  made  the  bishops  by  her  supreme  spiritual 
authority,  all  defects  having  been  overcome,  and  all  difficulties 
removed  by  a  special  Act  of  Parliament ;  if,  therefore,  ministers 
and  people  disparaged  and  contemned  the  bishops,  they  thus 
disparaged  and  contemned  the  queen  and  her  spiritual  supremacy. 
Hastily  hurried  from  dinner,  Penry  was  not  allowed  to  secure  a 
remission  or  mitigation  of  his  sentence  by  a  declaration  of  his 
faith,  which  he  seemed  ready  to  make,  or  by  an  exposition  of  his 
allegiance  to  the  queen.  A  riot  on  the  part  of  his  adherents 
being  anticipated,  he  was  hurried  off  to  St.  Thomas  of  Waterings 
in  the  Kent  Road,  and  there  barbarously  executed.^  Thus,  at 
the  early  age  of  thirty-four,  he  died  for  conscience'  sake, — for 
being  unable  to  accept  the  new  reformed  system,  which  he  him- 
self, with  equal  reason  and  authority,  desired  to  reform  anew. 
The  judges,  who  condemned  him,  maintained  that  any  attacks 
upon  the  Liturgy,  which  the  queen  had  settled  and  appointed  to 
be  used,  was  a  distinct  denial  of  her  supreme  spiritual  authority, 
as  bestowed  upon  Her  Majesty  by  Parliament,  and  consequently 
that  such  offence  was  treason. 

During  the  last  ten  years  of  Elizabeth's  reign  very  little  real 
belief  in  the  new  religion  existed.  Even  the  opinions  of  experi- 
enced official  people  differed  concerning  its  value.  Of  course 
those  who  had  benefited  by  it  in  things  temporal,  as  in  duty 
bound,  tried  to  prop  it  up  morally.  Parliamentary  props,  how- 
ever, having  thus  early  broken  in  the  using,  were  found  to  be 
only  of  small  value.  Dr.  William  James,-  then  Dean  of  Durham, 
complained  loudly  to  the  Council  of  the  utter  indifference  and 
lofty  contempt  with  which  he  and  his  disputatious  co-religionists 
in  the  North  were  treated ;  and  gave  a  most  miserable  and 
depressing  account  of  the  state  of  morals  '^  in  those  parts.  The 
married  clergy  were  still  treated  with  great  contumely,  and  con- 
tinued to  be  the  subject  of  much  "  mislike  "  and  satire.  Holgate, 
some  years  previously,  had  set  a  bad  example.'*     On  the  other 

1  See  Stovve's  Chronicle,  p.  765  ;  Slrype's  Annals,  vol.  iv.  p.  176. 

-  Dr.  William  James  had  been  Master  of  University  Colle<;e  in  1572,  iJean 
of  Christ  Church,  Oxford,  in  1584,  Dean  of  Durham  in  1596.  Eventually  he 
became  Bishop  of  Durham. 

'•'•  State  Papers,  Domesdr,  Elizabeth,  vol.  cclxii.  25,  cclxiii.  55  (a. I).  1597). 
See  also  "Considerations  in  favour  of  Erecting  a  College  at  Ripon.  The 
people  in  a  manner  ai  e  all  itinerant  in  religion,  having  been  for  above  thirty 
years  untaught.'"— State  Papers,  Domestic,  Elizabeth,  vol.  cccxxxiv.  35. 

■•  As  a  sound  English  Churchman  so  forcibly  remarked  :  "  What  a  pitihd 
case  was  it  to  see  old,  doting,  lecherous  priests  and  bishops  of  sixty,  seventy — 


CONTROVERSIES   WHICH    ENSUED.  305 

hand,  the  Dean  of  Durham  went  on  to  declare  that  "  the  number 
of  recusants  is  great  and  increases  ;  1  and,  as  they  are  of  good 
calhng  and  wealth,  and  generally  refuse  to  confer  with  any,  or  to 
join  in  prayer  for  Her  Majesty,  we  suppose  that  many  of  them 
are  reconciled."  It  was  not  to  their  "ignorance"  that  his  very 
reverence  so  much  objected,  as  to  their  firm  faith  and  good 
resolutions.  They  avowedly  preferred  the  religion  of  their  fore- 
fathers, since  St.  Augustine's  day,  to  any  modern  "  gospel  "  which 
the  dean,  at  the  dictation  of  the  queen  and  Parliament,  might 
officially  recommend  to  them.  "They  are,"  he  continued, 
"almost  all  ignorant  and  obstinate,  generally  refuse  all  confer- 
ence, and  not  only  do  not  come  to  church,  but,  when  prayers 
are  had  before  us,  the  Commissioners,  for  Her  Majesty's  safety 
and  protection  from  all  her  enemies,  the  Pope  and  Spaniard, 
they  have  denied  to  say  'Amen'"— a  plain  dereliction  of  duty. 
These  good  people,  who  would  not  respond,  evidently  held  that 
the  faith  was  not  a  matter  to  squabble  about,  to  confer  concern- 
ing, or  to  mutilate  and  halve,  but  to  accept  heartily,  to  believe 
thoroughly,  and  to  defend  faithfully.  Nor  would  they,  as  they 
so  constantly  declared,  pray  with  those  of  a  different  religion. 
"  Your  religion  is  not  mine,  mine  is  not  thine,  as  thou  ofttimes 
avowest ;  how  then,  if  we  be  not  joined,  may  we  pray  together?" 
asked  one.  Another  somewhat  pointedly  and  powerfully  put  on 
record  that  "an  aunciente  body  with  a  newe  Head,  must  be  a 
dead  body — a  meere  corpse."  Several  prayed  in  secret,  after  the 
old  manner,  and  observed  the  ancient  rites,  feast,-'  fast,  and 
yea,  and  of  eighty,  years  of  age,  run  a  catterwawling ;  among  whom  [was] 
one  Holgate,  Archbishop  of  York,  a  man  about  fourscore  years  of  age,  which 
had  been  a  religious  man  [t.e.  a  Gilbertine  Prior]  also,  married  a  young  girl 
of  fourteen  or  fifteen  years  of  age,  and  yet  for  three  causes  she  never  was  his 
wife  :  the  one  for  that  he  had  been  a  religious  man  and  had  solemnly  vowed 
chastity  ;  the  second  for  that  he  was  a  priest  ;  and  the  third  for  that  she  was 
betrothed  to  another  man,  and  by  very  force  kept  from  him." — llie  Preten led 
Divorce  bchveen  Henry  VIII.  and  Queen  Katherine,  by  Nicholas  Ilarpsfield, 
LL.D.,  edited  by  N.  Pocock,  pp.  275-276.      London,  1S78. 

1  A  remarkable  and  acute  theologian,  as  well  as  an  able  ecclesiastical  states- 
man, thus  confirms  the  Dean's  impression  as  to  the  increase  of  "  recusants  "  : 
— "  Isee  on  every  side  cause  of  hope  and  fear.  In  these  days  the  ports  are 
so  strictly  closed  that  few  escape  of  those  who  come  to  us.  or  go  from  us  to 
England.  Ten  who  were  coming  over  to  these  parts  have  been  seized  in  the 
very  port  and  sent  back,  or  rather  dragged  vi  et  armis  before  the  Privy 
Council.  I'he  7iuinber  of  Catholics  daily  increases  in  a  ivonderfid  manner. 
Our  brethren  are  animated  with  such  zeal  amidst  these  dangers  that  it  is  diffi- 
cult to  restrain  them."— Letter  of  Dr.  Richard  Barrett,  of  Rheims,  dated 
December  28,  1583.  Translated  from  the  original  in  the  Archives  of 
Westminster. 

'■^  A  remembrance  of  the  Catholic  festivals  took  some  time  to  die  out,  as 
the  following  extract  from  the  Parochial  Registers  of  Chearsly,  Bucks,  shows  : 

U 


306  THE   CHURCH    UNDER   QUEEN    ELIZABETH. 

solemnity,  as  best  they  could.  Migratory  priests  of  the  old  rites 
came  round  occasionally  to  aid,  and  minister  to,  trusted  families. 
"  Many  of  them,"  the  Dean  went  on  to  inform  Lord  Burghley, 
"  are  married,  if  not  by  seminaries  and  Jesuits,  by  old  mass 
])riests,^  and  by  the  words  of  the  Mass  Book  (?)  - ;  their  children 
are  not  christened '  in  the  churches,  neither  do  their  wives  go 
there  to  return  thanks  for  deliverance  ;  their  education  is  in  the 
same  way,  not  being  [brought]  up  in  common  or  good  schools, 
but  at  home  and  in  secret ;  and  with  their  nurses'  milk  they  suck 
[in]  dislike  and  disloyalty,  and  learn  first  to  hate  the  truth  " — by 
which  this  grumbling  worthy  ^  evidently  means  his  own  form  of 
misbelief — "  before  they  know  it,  which  I  wish  was  only  a  disease 
in  the  North : "  a  very  expressive  and  notable  testimony  of 
universal  failure  everywhere  on  the  part  of  the  authorities  in 
vState  and  Church,  even  with  the  aid  of  rack  and  gyves,  spy  and 
false  witness,  fine,  pillory,  floggings,  and  expatriation,  to  secure 
either  regard  or  respect  for  their  daring  novelties  and  un-Catholic 
innovations. 

— "  1611  Domini  anno,  23  day  of  May,  Ihon  Parker,  otherwise  called  lohn 
]\ichaidson,  and  Jane  Woode'bridge,  were  married  together  </ie  Corporis 
Chrzsfi." 

1  The  race  of  "  old  mass  priests" — those,  that  is,  who  had  been  ordained 
under  Queen  Mary — were,  in  the  current  opinion  of  all  English  deans  and 
dignitaries,  of  quite  a  different  order  to  those  recently  appointed. 

^  In  Elizabeth's  time  the  Salisbury  Manual  was  used  for  baptisms  by  the 
clergy  of  the  old  faith  ;  and  a  convenient  abbreviated  edition  of  the  Sarum 
Missal,  printed  abroad — of  which  the  Rev.  W.  J.  Blew  owns  a  rare  copy- 
was  carried  about  by  the  old  clergy. 

•'  The  previous  dean,  Dr.  Toby  Matthews,  who  afterwards  became  Bishop 
of  Durham,  is  said  to  have  preached  no  less  than  five  hundred  and  fifty 
sermons  during  twelve  years — a  remarkable  homiletic  feat  in  those  days  ;  but 
one  which  apparently  had  effected  extremely  little  good,  measured  by  the  too 
accurate  gauge  of  his  outspoken  successor. 


CHAPTER  X. 

Such  executions  as  those  just  recorded, — they  were  still  very- 
numerous, — serve  to  place  in  a  strong  light  both  the  personal 
bloodthirstiness  of  the  queen  (passed  over  by  Protestant 
historians)  and  the  stern,  cruel,  and  intolerant  spirit  of  the  age  in 
which  she  ruled.  The  former  is  perfectly  apparent  when  the 
actual  influence  which  Elizabeth  insisted  on  exercising  is  duly 
remembered.  At  her  Council-board  she  was  no  mere  dummy  in 
diadem  and  diamonds  ;  but,  having  a  will  and  power  of  her  own, 
constantly  exercised  them  with  authority  and  decision.  She 
was  always  interested  in  the  work  of  "  Seminary-hunting,"  as  it 
was  termed  ;  she  listened  with  engrossed  attention  to  Burghley's 
accounts  of  what  had  happened  in  the  work  of  dismembering 
and  disembowelling  her  religious  opponents.  Of  Topcliffe's 
secret  dealings  with  the  poor  prisoners  m  his  keeping — to  whom 
the  well-born  wretch  showed  no  mercy — she  often  ordered  that 
all  the  intricate  cruelties  of  the  torture-chamber  should  be  either 
recorded  on  paper,  or  recounted  in  person,  for  her  satisfaction. 
She  herself  was  on  "  the  side  of  the  Lord  Jesus  Christ "  she  as- 
serted, and  would  maintain  at  any  cost  "  the  Blessed  Faith  of  the 
Blessed  Gospel."  The  men  who  were  imprisoned,  tortured, 
hung,  and  disembowelled,  were  "  ministers  of  Satan's  synagogue," 
"wily  slaves  of  Antichrist";  consequently  there  could  be  "no 
communion  betwixt  Christ  and  Belial,"  between  those  of  the  old 
religion  and  those  of  the  new.^     Her  new  prelates  had  long  ago 

^  In  the  Tablet  of  February  17th,  1S77,  "  An  English  Catholic  "  objects  to 
members  of  the  Church  of  England  using  Father  Faber's  beautiful  hymn, 
"  Faith  of  Our  Fathers,"  and  makes  the  following  reasonable  and  pertinent 
remarks: — "  For  three  centuries  and  more,  according  to  their  opportunities 
and  the  progressive  stages  of  opinion  and  civilisation,  they  [Anglicans]  have 
Ijurned  and  hanged  us,  ripped  us  up,  confiscated  our  private  property,  seized 
our  churches,  universities,  ecclesiastical  titles  and  revenues,  kept  us  out  of 
Parliament,  insulted  our  hierarchy,  and  in  all  possible  ways  made  the  exercise 
of  the  Christian  faith  difficult.  Now,  when  the  more  refined  part  of  these 
enjoyments  is  withdrawn  from  them  they  turn  round,  but  without  penitence 
or  satisfaction,  and  take  the  fruits  of  our  long  centuries  of  desolation  and 
endurance     .     .     .     Which  '  Faith '  do  the   Protestant  singers  mean  ?     Do 

307 


30S         THE   CHURCH    UNDER   QUEEN    ELIZABETH. 

j)roved  from  Scripture,  as  they  maintained,  that  torture  was 
reasonable,  and  that  all  mass-mongers,  being  idolaters,  should  be 
killed.  Special  tortures,  as  in  Archbishop  Heath's  case,  the 
queen  herself  had  sometimes  recommended  or  personally 
enjoined  ;  she  was  greatly  irritated  and  disappointed  that  those 
who  suffered  because  of  Babington's  plot  could  not  have  their 
death-sufferings  made  crueller  and  considerably  prolonged  ;  while, 
when  clever  and  distinguished  adherents  of  the  old  religion 
were  the  subjects  of  them,  she  frequently  signed  death-warrants 
with  an  expression  of  satisfaction  from  her  lips  or  a  twinkle  of 
demoniacal  delight  in  her  eye.  The  cruel,  whether  women  or 
men,  are  ever  cowardly.  And  all  the  while  Ehzabeth  was  a 
pitiful  coward.  While  dreading  pain  herself,  and  greatly  fearing 
death,  she  frequently  exhibited  the  most  contemptible  delight  at 
the  mental  and  physical  sufferings  of  her  victims.  Occasionally, 
as  in  the  case  of  Thomas  Pormorte,  who  was  executed  on 
February  20th,  1592,  she  displayed  the  grossest  and  most  cruel 
levity  when  affixing  her  sign-manual  to  the  death-warrant, — an 
exhibition  which  disgusted  some  who  were  present,  as  the 
Duchess  of  Feria  (one  of  the  Oxfordsliiie  Dormers)  put  on 
record. 

On  some  occasions,  the  queen  was  informed  tliat  her  enemies 
were  seeking  her  life  '  and  plotting  to  poison  or  assassinate  her. 
Sometimes  the  Court  authorities  artfully  made  use  of  these  pieces 
of  gossip,  or  random  rumours,  or  bragging  utterances  of  excited 
fanatics,"  in  order  to  induce  her  to  be  less  wayward  and  uncertain, 
both  in  her  home  and  foreign  ])olicy,  and  to  act  on  some  par- 
ticular occasion  with  decision.     What  often  appeared  to  authenti- 

they  mean  the  Failh  as  iirofesscd  before  Cranmer,  or  as  professed  after  liim 
and  after  Parker?  If  after,  they  associate  themselves  with  the  pretended 
•  Martyrs  '  of  Foxe,  and  to  the  statements  of  Cranmer,  Jewel,  Parker,  and  the 
rest  of  that  company.  If,  however,  they  mean  the  Faith  professed  in  the 
ancient  Church  of  England,  and  retained  by  suffering  Catholics  ever  since  to 
this  day,  then  the  reply  of  the  Church  of  Jesus  Christ  is — Ncscio  ew." 

1  On  one  occasion  Father  Robert  Parsons  carefully  and  strongly  dissuaded 
certain  persons  from  even  entertaining  such  a  notion.  No  one  can  at  all 
wonder  at  the  idea  entering  the  minds  of  the  poor,  down-trodden,  shamefully 
persecuted  Catholics  ;  but,  to  one  man  who  seems  to  have  actually  gone  a 
hundred  miles  on  his  way  to  attempt  the  queen's  life,  Father  Parsons 
reasoned  with  him  because  "the  English  Catholiques  themselves  desired  not 
to  be  delyvered  from  their  miseries  by  any  such  atteni])',"  and  convinced  him 
of  the  inexpediency  of  such  a  policy. 

"  On  October  281)1,  1583,  divers  persons  were  examineil  before  John 
IVOyley  concerning  John  Somerfield's  [ville]  speeches  against  Her  Majesty, 
having  maintained'lhal  he  intended  to  shoot  her  through  with  his  dagg,  and 
hoped  to  see  her  he.ad  set  on  a  pole  ;  for  that  she  was  a  serpent  and  a  viper. 
—State  Papers,  Domestic,  Elizabeth,  vol.  clxiii.  Nos.  23,  53,  54,  55. 


ELIZABETHAN    POLICY   AND    METHODS.  3C9 

cate  such  reports  were  the  tattHng  letters  of  spies,  foreign  and 
home  appointed,  who  in  order  to  prove  their  intense  interest  in 
Her  Majesty's  tortuous  poHcy,  their  devotion  to  her  person,  and 
to  show  that  they  had  themselves  merited  the  rewards  and 
favours  bestowed  upon  them,  were  less  scrupulous  than  they 
might  have  been  in  the  rumours  they  so  artfully  dressed  up.  or  in 
the  circumstantial  accounts  they  had  deliberately  invented/  A 
spy  who  spied  nothing  worth  noting  was  both  a  poor  and  an 
expensive  tool.  A  disguised  agent  abroad  who  did  nothing  was 
a  still  poorer.  A  falsehood-monger  who  circulated  no  falsehoods 
was  like  a  goldsmith  without  any  gold — of  small  repute  and  less 
value.  The  agents,  therefore,  were  obliged  to  be  at  once 
imaginative  and  inventive,  so  as  to  entrap  the  unwary,  excite  the 
enthusiastic,  and  betray  the  innocent ;  the  spies,  furthermore, 
were  often  as  daring,  bold  and  lying  as  their  degraded  office 
compelled  them  to  be.  They  were,  in  fact,  occasionally,  quite 
worthy  of  the  woman  who  officially  employed  them,  and  of  the 
ministers  who  gave  them  approbation  and  rewards. 

At  home  all  classes  of  people  were  constandy  suspected  of 
'■working  conjurations"  to  Her  Majesty's  evil  and  loss.  The 
suspicions  and  superstitions  which  Dr.  Dee  had  long  ago  fostered 
had  taken  a  deep  root  in  the  queen's  mind.  Amongst  others, 
Lord  Paget,  Sir  George  Hastings,  and  Sir  Thomas  Hanmer, 
were  each  believed  to  have  thus  plotted  Her  Majesty  serious 
harm,  and  to  have  gone  the  round  of  the  popular  conjurers  so  as 
to  work  her  some  great  personal  mischief.  The  superstitions 
then  existing  on  these  subjects  were,  of  course,  degrading  and 
disgusting  ;  though  no  doubt  they  were  founded  on  very  solid 
facts.  For  witchcraft  is  as  certainly  a  reality  as  it  is  a  sin,  and 
evil  spirits,  both  active  and  potent,  were  most  probably  on  the 
side  of  those  who  went  about  from  place  to  place,  invoking 
them  and  seeking  their  active  aid.  The  devil  and  his  angels  are 
evidently  quite  ready  to  render  their  powerful  and  practical 
assistance  to  mankind,  if  it  be  only  sought  after  with  system, 
earnestness,  and  proper  subservience  and  devotion.  Protestant- 
ism, from  Luther's  time  downwards,  -  seems  to  have  received 
it  abundantly.       "  Old  Birtles,   the    great    devell,   Darnally    the 

^  "  To  satisfy  their  employers  they  were  often  compelled  to  transmit  false 
and  alarming  intelligence  ;  sometimes  they  actually  formed  conspiracies  that 
they  might  have  the  merit  of  detecting  them  ;  and  not  unfrequently  meeting 
associates  as  abandoned  as  themselves,  they  perished  in  the  very  snares  which 
they  had  laid  for  others." — The  History  of  England,  by  John  Lingard,  D.D., 
vol.  vi.  p.  270.     Dublin,  1874. 

-  See  Bossuet's  History  of  the  J'aria!ions  of  the  Protestant  Religion,  Book 
IV.  chap.  xvii. 


310         THE   CHURCH    under   queen    ELIZABETH. 

sorcerer,  Maude  Twogood  enchantresse,  the  oulde  Witch  of 
Ramsbury,  several  other  ould  witches," — as  the  record  exactly 
describes  them — well  known  and  popular  in  their  arts  ^ — were  all 
looked  upon  as  the  queen's  personal  enemies  ;  and  it  was  feared 
that  their  greatly-dreaded  services  had  been  formerly  secured 
and  paid  for  by  her  influential  enemies. 

\V^hen  five  out  of  the  seven  Catholic  sacraments  had  been 
abolished,  for  henceforth  two  only  were  allowed  in  the  New 
Church, — two  of  three  abolished,  viz.,  Unction  at  Confirmation, 
with  its  divine  grace,  and  the  Last  Anointing  for  the  sick  and 
suff'ering,  were  more  especially  and  most  sorely  missed  by 
thousands.  Baptism  had,  of  course,  made  all  those  who  had 
received  it,  true  and  undoubted  heirs  of  other  sacraments.  When 
some  of  these  were  thus  arbitrarily  abolished,  the  faithful  were 
by  consequence  deliberately  robbed  of  their  rightful  inheritance. 
Many  of  the  "  recusants  "  examined  in  the  North  had  long  ago 
openly  complained  that  poor  Christian  people  had  been  thus 
defrauded  of  their  rights.  Some  who  "  waxed  bold "  amid 
shouts  of  "  No  greasing  !  "  had  in  open  Court  expostulated  with 
Archbishop  Sandys  for  having  consented  to  abolish  extreme 
unction.  Dr.  Thomas  Vavasour  was  one  of  these.  But  His 
Grace  in  reply  only  characterised  that  sacrament  as  "a  vain  and 
filthy  oiling  by  the  Pope's  crew,"  and  enjoined  upon  the  persons 
com])laining  to  "shut  their  mouths  without  delay." 

Wherever  the  Catholic  religion  once  known  has  been, 
deliberately  abolished,"  there  some  form  of  superstition  or 
another  has  ahiiost  invariably  become  current  and  popular. 
Astrology,  witchcraft,  necromancy,  and  spirit  -  seeking,  were, 
under  Queen  Elizabeth,  largely  patronised.  They  exactly  fitted 
into  the  new  system  where  the  gaps  were  large,  and  the  spiritual 
wants  numerous.  And  reasonably  so.  For  man  either  looks 
upward  or  downward — to  the  Light  of  the  World,  and  the 
unfallen  spirits  of  His  beautiful  creation  ;  or  to  the  lost  and 
unquiet  spirits  of  darkness,  malignant  and  merciless,  ruled  by 
the  prince  of  the  powers  of  the  air.  The  Court  authorities  set 
the  fashion  in  these  jiractices,  and  others  followed  them.  The 
cjueen  had  frequently  consulted  Dr.  Dee,  since  the  occasion  on 
which  he  fixed  a  lucky  day  for  her  coronation  at  Westminster ; 
and,  though  they  had  had  some  misunderstandings,  it  seems 
perfectly  clear  that  he  had  been  promised  a  bishopric  •'  in  reward 

••  State  Papers,  Domestic,  Elizabeth,  vol.  clxxv.  90. 

-  See  Origiiies  Pivtcstanticic :  or,  Siigi;estions  for  an  Historical  Inquiry  into 
the  Origin  of  the  Protestant  Religioti.     London,  Longhuist. 

"*  The  Lord  Treasurer  told  him  on  Dec.  23,    1591,  and  he  recorded  it  in 


DR.   JOHN    DEE,    NECROMANCER.  3II 

for   his  conjurations,    ambiguous   promises,  flatteries,   and   pre- 
dictions. 

In  1590,  one  Ann  Frank,  Dee's  nurse,  as  his  Diary  records, 
was  certainly  "possessed."  On  August  22nd  he  writes  in  his 
Diary  that  she  "had  long  byn  tempted  by  a  wycked  spirit,  but 
this  day  it  was  evident  now  she  was  possessed  of  him."  . 
Later  on,  that  is  upon  August  26th,  as  he  quaintly  puts  on 
record,  "  I  anoynted  (in  the  Name  of  Jesus)  Ann  Frank  her 
brest  with  the  holy  oyle.  Augst.  30th  in  the  morning,  she 
required  to  be  anoynted  [again],  and  I  did  very  devowtly  pre- 
pare m/self  and  pray  for  virtue  and  powrand  Christ  His  blessing 
of  the  oyle  to  the  expulsion  of  the  wycked  ;  and  then  twyce 
anoynted  [her].  The  wickyd  one  did  resest  a  while."  But  on 
Michaelmas-day,  notwithstanding  all  his  profane  conjurations, 
consecraiions,  and  invocations,  the  poor  creature  committed 
suicide  b^^  cutting  her  own  throat. 

Dee  b>  no  means  stood  alone  in  his  practice  of  these  irregular 
and  unlawful  performances  ;  on  the  contrary,  in  remote  parsonage 
or  secluded  rectory-house,  quite  a  race  of  similar  conjurers  rose 
up  to  fill  ihe  aching  void  which  Protestantism  had  made  in  the 
human  heirt  by  turning  people's  attention  to  the  dark  side  of  the 
unseen  wcrld.  Many  of  these  were  ministers.  They  practised 
in  secret,  mumbling  their  invocations  of  the  devil  or  his  angels, 
drawing  the  mystic  circle  according  to  old  rules,  and  plaintively 
asking  the  practical  aid  of  some  familiar  spirit  in  their  unhallowed 
and  forbidden  researches ;  and  were  generally  left  alone  by  the 
State  authorities,  unless  they  made  use  of  these  their  occult  arts 
for  political  objects — sometimes  the  case.  When  this  was 
believed,  they  were  tracked  out,  ^  discovered,  and  punished,  on 
the  ground  that  to  thus  labour  for  the  overthrow  of  their 
political  opponents — to  borrow  a  contemporary  phrase — vvas 
"  to  stab  them  in  the  dark  with  the  sword  of  an  unseen  spirit." 
Most  of  the  new  bishops  in  their  Visitation  Articles,  and  subse- 
quently in  a  Canon,-  faithfully  endeavoured  to  put  down  such 

his  Diary  that  "the  Queue  would  have  me  have  something  at  this  promo- 
tion of  bishops  at  hand." 

'  In  one  of  the  Slate  Papers  is  provided  "Information  touching  certain 
men  taken  up  ;n  the  parish  of  Edmonton  for  practising  the  art  of  witchcraft 
and  conjuring  mystic  articles  found  in  their  possession,  with  powders  and 
ratsbane,  whici  the  parties  that  fled  strewed  in  the  way,  disappointing  the 
bloodhound  thereby." — State  Papers,  Domestic,  Elizabeth,  voh    ccxxxiii.,   n. 

'■^  See  the  seventy-second  canon  of  those  passed  in  i6of  as  also  The 
Question  of  Witchcraft  Debated,  by  John  VVagstaffe.  London  1669 ; 
2nd  edition,  iSyi. 


312  THE   CHURCH    UNDER   QUEEN    EEIZABETII. 

black  arts,  wliich  men  of  renown,  like  Sir  Nicholas  I>acon,  and 
lUackstone  the  lawyer,  believed  to  be  undoubted  realities. 

In  all  great  social  changes  and  grave  revolutions  amongst  the 
nations,  the  influence  of  the  unseen  world  is  far  more  potent 
and  direct  than  shallow  sceptics  and  frivolous  critics  allow  to  be 
])ossible.  Believing  only  in  what  they  can  see  and  handle — the 
material  things  of  the  present  life — the  vision  of  such  people  is 
often  as  narrow  and  confused  as  the  nonsensical  jargon  of  which 
they  are  the  purveyors,  and  not  infrequently  as  distorted,  per- 
verse, and  diabolical. 

In  the  year  1593,  Roderigo  Lopez,  a  clever  Portuguese  Jew, 
who  had  been  made  a  prisoner  in  one  of  the  ships  of  the  ^Armada, 
and  had  subsequently  ])ractised  medicine  in  London ;  and  who, 
because  of  his  great  and  remarkable  success,  had  been  some  time 
previously  sworn  Physician  of  the  queen,  was  accused  of  privately 
meditating  the  death  of  Her  Majesty,  having  offered  to  poison 
her,  as  it  was  asserted,  for  the  sum  of  fifty  thousand  crowns. 
The  copies  of  the  letters  preserved  in  the  indictments  are  all 
most  enigmatically  worded,  and  in  no  way  prove  what  the 
upholders  of  the  charges  endeavoured  to  maintain.  The 
accusers,  "  intelligencers,"  and  witnesses  employed  ir  the  case 
were  mostly  unprincipled  adventurers,  ])ersons  of  infamous 
character,  and  men  whose  arts  of  lying  and  dissimulation  had 
long  been  patent  and  notorious — well-tested  by  their  employers. 
Lopez  himself  admitted  that  he  had  occasionally  received 
presents  from  the  Spanish  Court,  at  one  time  a  jewel  worth  one 
hundred  pounds  ;  but  denied  that  he  had  either  said  or  done, 
or  meant  to  do  or  say,  anything  prejudicial  to  the  interests  or 
})erson  of  the  queen.  It  was  asserted  likewise  that  he  had 
pledged  himself  to  burn  the  English  fleet.  He  was  put  on  his 
trial  with  two  others,  Ferreira  and  Louis,  both  Portuguese — 
whose  confessions  made  upon  the  rack  were  of  small  moral 
value, — and  Lopez  and  the  others  were  all  found  guilty,  but 
judgment  was  respited  for  three  months.  It  was  hoped  that  full 
information  of  the  design,  or  supposed  design,  of  the  Spaniards 
might  be  obtained  from  them.  Torture  was  used  in  the  Tower, 
threats  of  worse  tortures  were  uttered,  mild  starvation  attempted. 
Their  small  allowance  of  food  in  prison — they  appear  to  have 
been  denied  any  drink  for  some  days — might  have  broken  the 
spirits  and  destroyed  the  resolution  of  any  one,  even  the  bravest. 
In  consequence  of  their  having  declined  to  say  what  was  not 
true,  or  unjustly  to  inculpate  the  innocent,  they  vere  treated 
more  cruelly  than  usual  when  the  sentence  was  carried  out ;  for 
the  whole  summer's  day,  June  7th,  was  spent  in  their  execution. 


LOPEZ   EXECUTED.  313 

Brought  from  the  Tower  to  London  Bridge  on  foot,  they  were 
then  taken  in  a  barge  to  Westminster,  where,  though  called  upon 
as  a  matter  of  form  to  say  what  they  might  and  could  in  their 
own  defence,  they  were  very  soon  brow-beaten  and  silenced. 
Their  mispronunication  of  the  English  language  was  caricatured 
and  laughed  at.  The  populace,  instructed  by  the  authorities, 
howled  and  yelled  at  them  whenever  they  appeared ;  so  that,  as 
one  writer  remarks,  "  the  voices  were  like  the  barking  of  hunting- 
hounds  at  their  fullest  cry."  At  Westminster  they  were  delivered 
to  the  Marshall  of  the  Queen's  Bench,  who  took  them  by  water 
to  Southwark  Stairs,  and  so  to  the  Marshalsea.  At  the  southern 
foot  of  London  Bridge  they  were  given  over  to  the  Sheriffs  of 
London,  who  had  them  placed  on  hurdles,  and  conveyed  them 
to  Leaden  Hall  (the  residence  of  Lopez).  Thence  they  were 
taken  to  Tybourne,  followed  by  the  accustomed  rabble.  There 
they  were  hanged  for  a  very  short  time,  but  intentionally  cut 
down  alive.  One  of  them,  after  this  process,  with  the  rope  yet 
round  his  neck,  in  great  pain  because  of  the  twist  and  jerk  he 
had  received,  recovering  his  feet,  struggled  for  some  time  for 
his  life.  He  struck  out  at  the  executioner  boldly,  and  was 
applauded  by  the  populace,  who  pressed  forward  through  the 
guard  of  pikemen  to  see  the  encounter.  Being  a  powerful  man, 
the  officer  of  death  could  neither  remove  his  dress  nor  secure 
him  efficiently.  Two  burly  assistants,  however,  hastened  for- 
ward to  the  executioner's  aid.  But  the  poor  half-strangled 
wretch,  gathering  up  all  his  strength  in  defence  of  the  natural 
right  to  live,  felled  one  of  them  to  the  ground  with  a  single 
stroke,  and  it  was  some  time  before  the  condemned  man  could 
be  secured.  He  was  first  stunned  by  a  blow  on  the  head  and 
thrown  on  to  the  straw,  his  clothes  being  hastily  pulled  off. 
Then  followed  the  accustomed  barbarous  mutilation — a  bloody 
business  indeed — and  the  frightlul  act  of  disembowelling  a  still 
breathing  mortal.  But  the  legal  butchers,  with  knife  and 
hatchet  and  bared  arms,  closed  in  upon  their  suffering  victims, 
whose  blood  flowed  before  the  sun  went  down,  and  whose  lives 
then  soon  ebbed  away.  So,  after  lingering  over  the  horrors  of 
the  spot,  the  grinning  rabble  dispersed  towards  sunset.  Thus 
the  sujoposed  enemies  of  the  queen  were  efficiently  removed. 

In  the  latter  part  of  this  reign,  John  Wolton  was  Bishop  of 
Exeter  from  1579  to  1594;  Hugh  Bellot  was  first  made  Bishop 
of  Bangor  in  1586,  but  was  subsequently  removed  to  Chester  in 
1595,  where  he  died  in  less  than  a  year;  Thomas  Bickley  was 
Bishop  of  Chichester  from  1586  to  1596  ;  John  Still  first  filled 
the   see   of  Bath   in  1593;    Anthony   Watson   was    Bishop   of 


314         THE   CHURCH    UNDER   QUEEN    ELIZABETH. 

Chichester  in  1596.  But  these  names  and  others  on  the  vellum 
registers  are  mere  Christian  and  surnames,  and  nothing  more. 
They  proclaim  nothing,  they  illustrate  nothing.  In  fact  they 
convey  no  idea  of  any  sort  or  kind  to  nine  persons  out  of  ten  ; 
possibly  not  to  one  in  a  hundred.  The  exalted  people  who  bore 
them,  no  doubt  walked  in  the  footsteps  of  Dr.  Parker  and  his 
company,  were  appointed  ministers,  married,  made  themselves 
comfortable,  preached  Calvinism,  carefully  and  confidently 
numbered  themselves  and  their  families  amongst  "the  elect," 
flattered  the  Queen,  and  duly  fleeced  the  sheep ;  grew  old  in  the 
jKofitable  process,  and  then  in  due  course  departed  this  mortal 
life. 

Dr.  John  Whitgift,  who  had  been  appointed  Bishop  of 
Worcester  as  early  as  the  year  1577,  as  we  have  seen,  became 
the  most  prominent  and  able  of  the  prelates  of  this  period,  possi- 
bly the  only  truly  remarkable  one  of  his  day.  Sprung  from  a 
respectable  middle-class  family  of  the  West  Riding  of  Yorkshire, 
his  father  Henry,  a  merchant  of  Grimsby,  having  married  a 
Lincolnshire  lady  named  Anne  Dynewell,  had  six  sons,  of  whom 
the  future  archbishop  was  the  eldest.  His  uncle  Robert,  his 
father's  only  brother,  had  been  Abbot  of  Wellowe  near  Grimsby, 
but  seems  at  an  early  period  to  have  openly  taken  the  side  of  the 
innovators,  for  he  renounced  his  religious  life,  received  a  pension, 
and  lived  in  the  world.  John  Whitgift  in  due  course  went  to 
Cambridge,  where  he  had  Jewell  and  Grindal  for  his  tutors,  who, 
of  course,  influenced  him  considerably.  Having  taken  his  M.A. 
degree  in  1556,  he  was  made  Margaret  Professor  of  Divinity  ten 
years  afterwards.  In  1567  he  was  created  D.D.,  having  main- 
tained in  his  ])ublic  thesis  for  that  honour — Papa  est  ille  Anii- 
chrisfiis, — a  tolerably  clear  indication  of  his  mental  delusions  and 
of  the  novel  and  ridiculous  character  of  his  theology.  He  was, 
by  his  own  admission,  an  Erastian,^  as  all  were  in  his  day.  In 
July  of  1567,  he  was  made  Master  of  Trinity  College,  Cambridge, 
where  he  opposed  Cartwright  and  the  more  fanatical  Puritans, 
and  in  1577  was  appointed  to  succeed  BuUingham  in  the  See  of 
Worcester.  As  filling  that  position  he  has  already  been  referred 
to. 

It  ought  ever  to  be  remembered  to  his  credit,  however,  that 

'  "  If  by  '  the  Head  '  you  understand  an  external  ruler  and  governor  of  any 
particular  nation  and  church  (in  which  signification  head  is  generally  taken) 
then  I  do  not  perceive  why  the  magistrate  may  net  as  well  be  called  the  Head 
of  the  Church,  that  is  the  chief  governor  of  it  in  the  external  ]iolicy,  as  he 
is  called  the  head  of  the  people  and  the  Commonwealth." — Defence  of  the 
Answer  to  the  Admonition,  p.  85.  lVhitt;ift's  IVorks,  vol.  ii.,  Parker 
Society  s  Works,  1S52. 


ARCHBISHOP   JOHN    WHITGIFT.  315 

he  protested  in  the  strongest  and  plainest  terms  to  the  queen 
against  the  ahenation  of  Church  property.  An  absolute  power 
had  been  recently  given  by  Act  of  Parliament  to  the  Crown,  and 
the  queen  had  made  Lord  Leicester  sole  Commissioner.  His 
lordship,  like  certain  other  of  the  peers  of  that  period,  owned 
somewhat  inexact  ideas  of  the  difference  between  meum  and  ttiiim. 
But,  when  criticised,  he  sheltered  himself  under  the  terms  of  his 
appointment.  Whitgift,  however,  by  his  boldness,  stemmed  the 
tide  of  robbery  with  success,  and  of  course  made  Lord  Leicester 
his  deadly  enemy. 

His  Grace  thus  addressed  the  queen  : — 

"  Though  you  and  myself  were  born  in  an  age  of  frailties,  when 
the  primitive  piety  and  the  care  of  the  Church's  lands  and  im- 
munities are  much  decayed ;  yet,  Madam,  let  me  beg  that  you 
would  first  consider  that  there  are  such  sins  as  profaneness  and 
sacrilege" — two  shocking  forms  of  transgression,  the  existence  of 
which  the  queen  had  apparently  quite  forgotten, — "and  that  if 
there  were  not,  they  could  not  have  names  in  Holy  Writ,  and 
particularly  in  the  New  Testament." 

"I  beg  posterity,"  he  went  on  to  remark,  "to  take  notice  of 
what  is  already  become  visible  in  many  families,  that  Church 
land  added  to  an  ancient  and  just  inheritance,  hath  proved  like  a 
moth  fretting  a  garment,  and  secretly  consumed  both  ;  or  like  the 
eagle  that  stole  a  coal  from  the  altar  and  thereby  set  her  nest  on 
fire,  which  consumed  both  her  young  eagles  and  herself  that  stole 
it.  And  though  I  shall  forbear  to  speak  reproachfully  of  your 
father,  yet  I  beg  you  to  take  notice  that  a  part  of  the  Church's 
rights,  added  to  the  vast  treasure  left  him  by  his  father,  hath  been 
conceived  to  bring  an  unavoidable  consumption  upon  both,  not- 
withstanding all  his  diligence  to  preserve  them.  And  consider 
that  after  the  violation  of  those  laws,  to  which  he  had  sworn,  in 
Alagna  C/iarta,  God  did  so  far  deny  him  His  restraining  grace, 
that  as  King  Saul  after  he  was  forsaken  of  God  fell  from  one  sin 
to  another,  so  he  ;  till  at  last  he  fell  into  greater  sins  than  I  am 
willing  to  mention." 

Archbishop  Whitgift  likewise  endeavoured  to  stir  up  the 
indolent,  passive,  and  common-place  prelates  under  his  jurisdic- 
tion to  do  their  duty.  The  alarming  Calvinism  of  some  tended 
to  exclude  practically  any,  even  a  theoretical,  consideration  of 
the  importance  of  good  works — -an  unfortunate  feature.  It  is 
evident  from  his  own  words  that  no  one  more  accurately  realised 
the  frightful  state  of  degradation  into  which,  during  the  previous 
forty  years,  the  national  religion  had  sunk  than  the  Archbishop 
himself.     The  evil  he  beheld  too  clearly,  and  has  most  forcibly 


0 


1 6  THE   CHURCH    UNDER   QUEEN    ELIZABETH. 


described.  But  how  to  remedy  it  was  a  perplexing  and  puzzling 
problem. 

Many  of  the  bishops  were  notoriously  over-engrossed  in  things 
temporal,  farming  the  property  of  their  Sees  for  their  own 
personal  advantage,  or  entering  into  private  arrangements  with 
the  queen's  favourites  to  secure  privileges  and  readier  profits. 
In  1594  Dr.  John  Cokiwell,  Bishop  of  Salisbury,  wrote  to  a 
friend  at  Court,^  complaining  of  Sir  Walter  Raleigh's  treatment 
of  him.  It  seems  that  these  two  worthies,  according  to  custom, 
had  been  together  quietly  making  the  most  of  the  Church  lands 
between  themselves,  and  had  quarrelled  violently  during  the 
process.  Twenty  marks  due  to  the  bishop  had  been  seized  by 
Raleigh,  and  yet  he  desired  to  have  three  more  manors.  Burton, 
Holmes,  and  Upcorne,  but  without  paying  any  rent  for  them. 
The  bishop,  who  was  not  dull  or  indifferent  to  his  own  interests, 
could  hardly  have  approved  of  such  a  proposition. 

On  the  one  hundred  and  eighty-first  folio  of  His  Grace's 
Register  at  Lambeth,  is  preserved  a  letter  which  was  addressed 
by  Archbishop  Whitgift  to  the  bishops  of  his  province,  enjoining 
them  to  see  that  children  were  catechised,  taught  and  confirmed. 
The  picture  which  this  document  indirectly  draws  is  melancholy 
to  contemplate.  It  harmonises  completely  and  perfectly  with 
the  records  of  neglect  and  apathy  already  referred  to.  From  its 
perusal,  the  existence  of  the  greatest  and  almost  universal  neglect 
of  the  rite  of  confirmation  is  apparent.  "  I  am  very  sorry  to 
hear,"  are  His  Grace's  exact  words,  "that  my  brethren,  the 
bishops  of  my  province  of  Canterbury  do  so  generally  begin  to 
neglect  to  confirm  children."' 

Whitgift's  complexion,  to  note  a  personal  characteristic,  was 
very  dark.  The  queen  admired  him  because  he  was  self-denying, 
given  to  hospitality,  and  had  remained  a  celibate.  She  notoriously 
preferred  this  state  for  the  clergy,  and  "  honoured  him  with  the 
familiar  name  of  'her  Black  husband.'"^  Although  she  was 
naturally  nettled  by  his  letter  concerning  the  proposal  for  the 
confiscation  of  Church  lands,  yet,  on  reflection,  she  evidently 
admired  his  boldness,  and  regarded  his  most  creditable  ex- 
jjostulation  with  favour. 

The  bishops  in  His  Grace's  day  a[)pcar  to  have  had  a  hard 

^  Burghley  Stale  Papers,  ed.  W.  Murdin,  pp.  675,  676.  "John  Saruni 
to  Mr.  Henry  Brook."     London,  1759. 

-  Whitgift's  Register,  folio  181,  Lllcr  dated  "From  Croydon,  the  ...  of 
Sept.  1 59 1." 

•'  Preface  to  A  Godlie  Srrwoii,  etc.  liy  Doctor  Whitgift,  republished  by 
John  Wyat  at  the  Ro^e  in  St.  Paul's  Churchyard,  1714. 


ACCOUNT   OF    ROBERT   SOUTHWELL.  317 

lot  sometimes.  They  were  commonly  called  "limbs  of  Anti- 
christ," and  the  "Bishops  of  the  Devil,"  by  the  ultra-Puritan 
party,  while  Whitgift  himself  was  ])olitely  styled  the  "Beelzebub 
of  Canterbury,"^  "an  ambitious  wretch,  sitting  upon  his  coggmg- 
stool  which  may  be  truly  called  the  chair  of  pestilence."  Though 
strongly  tinctured  with  Erastianism  he  was,  however,  a  learned 
prelate,  who  had  not  only  read  much,  but  had  well  digested 
what  he  had  read,  and  used  it  discreetly  for  his  dialectical 
purposes.  As  regards  episcopacy,  and  disputes  concerning  it, 
though  much  in  advance  of  his  contemporaries,  most  of  whom 
in  principle  were  rank  and  bitter  Puritans,  he  maintained, — not 
that  the  order  of  episcopacy  was  of  divine  origin  and  institution, 
but  that  originally  the  Church  no  doubt  had  the  right  of 
determining  how  it  should  be  governed  ;  and  argued  that  as  it 
had  determined  to  be  governed  by  bishops,  and  not  otherwise, 
such  government  ought  to  be  maintained,  consistently,  however, 
with  two  independent  conditions  :  first,  the  absolute  and  inherent 
rights  of  the  Christian  magistrate ;  and,  secondly,  due  soundness 
of  doctrine. — though  who  was  to  be  judge  of  this  last  (except 
himself)  will  not  be  discovered  in  his  painful  and  laborious 
writings.  Nor  was  it  clear  who,  in  his  judgment,  was  to 
determine  the  nature  and  extent  of  the  powers  and  rights  of 
the  Civil  Magistrate. 

However  difficult  for  one  whose  official  position  cut  him  off 
from  all  relations  with  a  higher  ecclesiastical  authority,  it  may 
have  been  to  have  enjoined  duties  more  antiqiio  upon  his  inferior 
officers — for,  of  course,  he  appeared  like  a  rebel  preaching 
obedience;  yet  his  intention  was  evidently  less  faulty  than  his 
logic,  and  no  doubt  he  sincerely  meant  to  do  his  duty.  He  it 
Yvas — and  all  honour  to  him  for  it — who,  with  many  short- 
comings, first  managed  systematically  to  stem  wilder  and  more 
outrageous  innovations,  and  in  some  measure  to  turn  the 
Puritan  tide. 

In  the  year  1595,  amongst  others,  two  priests  suffered  for 
treason,  both  of  them  being  members  of  ancient  or  knightly 
Norfolk  families.  The  first  was  Robert  Southwell,  the  second 
Henry  Walpole.     Of  each  some  brief  account  must  be  given. 

I.  Robert  Southwell  was  the  grandson  of  Sir  Richard  South- 
well of  Woodrising,  who  had  lived  in  Henry  VHI.'s  reign,  and 
had  been  one  of  the  Visitors  of  the  Norfolk  monasteries.  Master 
of  the  Ordnance,  Steward  of  the  Duchy  of  Lancaster,  and  one 
of  the    executors   of   Henry's  will.      His    father   was    Richard 

1  "A  Dialo:;ue,  wlierein  is  playnly  laide  open  the  Tyrannical  Dealing  of 
L.  Blshopps  against  God's  children." — No  place  nor  dale. 


3i8       THE  CHURCH  under  queen  Elizabeth. 

Southwell  of  Spixworth,  and  his  mother,  Alice,  daughter  of  Sir 
Thomas  Cornwallis.  He  was  born  at  the  Priory  of  Horsham 
St.  Faith.  He  was  educated  first  at  Douay,  then  at  Paris,  where 
he  came  under  the  influence  of  Archdeacon  Darbyshire, — one 
of  the  earliest  English  members  of  the  Society  of  Jesus.  Into 
this  order  young  Southwell  was  admitted  at  the  age  of  seventeen, 
on  the  17th  of  October  1578.  Six  years  afterwards  he  was 
ordained  priest  at  Rome,  and  soon  afterwards,  in  the  summer 
of  1586,^  came  to  England,  where  he  found  a  home  in  the 
mansion  of  Philip,  Earl  of  Arundel's  lady.  For  six  years,  with 
great  piety  and  discretion,  winning  admiration  from  many,  he 
laboured  in  his  Master's  cause.  His  refinement  and  tenderness 
made  him  a  great  authority  with  many  of  exalted  rank,  and  he 
was  most  successful  in  winning  back  a  considerable  number  to 
the  ancient  faith.  At  the  end  of  the  period  mentioned,  having 
been  betrayed  by  an  unhappy  woman  named  Ann  Bellamy,  at 
her  own  father's  house,-  he  soon  found  himself  in  the  safe 
keeping  of  Topclifte,  who,  with  his  officers  and  servants,  had 
surrounded  the  place  and  arrested  the  father. 

He  was  tortured  in  the  private  torture-cell  of  this  infamous 
persecutor,  as  both  law  and  custom  enjoined,  no  less  than  ten 
times,  or,  as  Lord  Burghley  admitted,  thirteen  times ;  and  this 
with  such  pitiless  severity,  that  he  openly  declared  to  the  judges 
that  death  would  have  been  again  and  again  far  preferable.  The 
account  of  his  fearful  agonies  is  on  record  still,  and  to  turn  over 
the  printed  pages  of  it  makes  the  eye  dim  and  the  heart  sick. 
Anything  more  utterly  revolting  and  merciless  could  scarcely  be 
conceived.  Its  perusal  makes  one  blush  for  the  honour  of 
humanity. 

Others  suffered  with  him.  His  account,  in  his  own  hand- 
writing of  what  took  place  in  another  London  prison,  still  exists, 
from  which  the  following  graphic  extracts  are  taken  : — 

"  A  little  while  ago  they  apprehended  two  priests,  who  have 
suffered  such  cruel  usages  in  the  prison  of  Bridewell,  as  can 
scarce  be  believed.  What  was  given  them  to  eat  was  so  little 
in  quantity,  and  withal  so  filthy  and  nauseous,  that  the  very 
sight  of  it  was  enough  to  turn  their  stomachs.  The  labours  to 
which  they  obliged  them  were  continual  and  immoderate,  and 
no  less  in  sickness  than  in  health  ;  for,  with  hard  blows  and 
stripes,  they  forced  them  to  accomplish  their  task,  how  weak 

^  Some  affirm  that  he  came  two  years  earlier ;  but  for  the  date  in  the  text 
there  seems  to  tie  direct  authority. 

-  See  the  London  and  Middlesex  Archxological  Society's  Transactions, 
vol.  i.  pp.  293-294. 


HIS   MANIFOLD   SUFFERINGS.  319 

soever  they  were.  Their  beds  were  dirty  straw,  and  their  prison 
most  fihhy. 

"Some  are  there  hung  up,  for  whole  days,  by  the  hands,  in 
such  a  manner  that  they  can  but  just  touch  the  ground  with  the 
tips  of  their  toes.  In  fine,  they  that  are  kept  in  that  prison, 
truly  live  in  lacii  miserice  et  in  luio  feeds.  Psalm  xxxix.  This 
purgatory  we  are  looking  for  every  hour,  in  which  Topcliffe  and 
Young,  the  two  executioners  of  the  Catholics,  exercise  all  kinds 
of  torments.  But  come  what  pleaseth  God,  we  hope  we  shall 
be  able  to  bear  all  in  Him  that  strengtheiis  us." 

The  cell  in  the  Tower  where  Southwell  himself  was  confined, 
was  situated  far  below  the  ordinary  water-mark  of  the  Thames, 
and  was  consequently  damp  and  musty.  Sometimes  it  was  a 
full  foot  deep  in  water.  The  only  light  admitted  was  through  a 
narrow  window  high  up  above.  He  lay  on  rank  and  corrupt 
straw,  in  which  vermin  abounded  :  and  was  kept  on  very  small 
allowances  of  food.  The  cell  had  only  a  stone  seat  in  the  wall, 
and  there  was  no  ventilation.  He  \vas  not  permitted  to  have 
any  books,  and  no  intercourse  with  the  outer  world. 

When  he  had  been  confined  there  for  some  time,  his  father 
presented  a  petition  to  the  queen,  asking  "that  if  his  son  had 
committed  anything  for  which  by  the  laws  he  had  deserved 
death,  he  might  suffer  death  ;  if  not,  as  he  was  a  gentleman,  he 
hoped  Her  Majesty  would  be  pleased  to  order  that  he  should  be 
treated  as  a  gentleman,  and  not  be  confined  any  longer  to  that 
filthy  hole." 

The  queen,  to  a  certain  extent,  granted  the  prayer  of  this 
petition.  He  was  consequently  removed  from  the  "filthy  hole" 
to  a  better  lodging.  His  father  at  the  same  time  received 
permission  to  supply  him  with  common  necessaries.  He  had 
asked  only  for  two  books,  a  copy  of  the  Holy  Scriptures,  and  the 
works  of  St.  Bernard.     These  he  was  permitted  to  receive. 

After  three  long  weary  years  of  imprisonment,  thus  punished 
before  he  was  convicted,  he  was  brought  to  trial  on  his  own 
special  application.  Lord  Burghley,  to  whom  he  had  written, 
somewhat  brutally  remarked  that  "  if  he  was  in  such  great  haste 
to  be  hanged  he  should  speedily  have  his  desire."  And  so  he 
had.     For  he  was  tried  on  one  day  and  martyred  ^  the  next. 

^  "I  care  not  to  dwell  any  longer  on  this  judicial  murder.  I  pronounce 
it  to  be  such  ;  and  it  is  the  sorrow  and  shame  of  our  common  human  nature 
and  Christianity  that  both  sides  have  like  blood-wet  pages.  I  must  regard 
our  worthy  as  a  marlyr  in  the  deepest  and  grandest  sense — a  good  man  full 
of  the  Holy  Ghost." — The  Coviplete  Poems  of  Robert  Southwell,  edited  by 
Rev.  A.  B.  Grosart.  Memorial  Introduction,  p.  Ixv.  Privately  printed, 
1872. 


320         THE   CHURCH    UNDER   QUEEN    ELIZABETH. 

The  indictment  which  clearly  enough  sets  forth  the  true 
nature  of  the  so-called  offence,  ran  thus  : — 

"The  jury  present,  on  the  part  of  our  Sovereign  Lady  the 
Queen :  that  Robert  Southwell,  late  of  London,  clerk,  born 
within  this  kingdom  of  England  ;  to  wit,  since  the  Feast  of  St. 
John  the  Baptist,  in  the  first  year  of  the  reign  of  Her  Majesty 
and  before  the  first  day  of  May,  in  the  thirty-second  year  of  the 
reign  of  Our  Lady  the  Queen  aforesaid,  made  and  ordained 
priest  by  authority  derived  and  pretended  from  the  See  of  Rome, 
not  having  the  fear  of  God  before  his  eyes,  and  slighting  the  laws 
and  statutes  of  this  realm  of  England,  without  any  regard  to  the 
penalty  therein  contained,  on  the  20th  day  of  June,  the  thirty- 
fourth  year  of  the  reign  of  Our  Lady  the  Queen,  at  Uxenden,  in 
the  county  of  Middlesex,  traitorously,  and  as  a  false  traitor  to 
our  said  lady  the  queen,  was  and  remained  contrary  to  the  form 
of  the  statute  in  such  a  case  set  forth  and  provided,  and  con- 
trary to  the  peace  of  our  said  lady  the  queen,  her  crown  and 
dignities." 

A  true  bill  having  been  found,  Southwell  appeared  at  the  bar, 
and  pleaded  "  Not  guilty." 

"  I  confess,"  he  admitted,  "  that  I  was  born  in  England.  I  ad- 
mit that  I  am  a  subject  of  ihe  queen.  I  allow  that  by  authority 
derived  from  God,  and  no  State  authority,  I  have  been  promoted 
to  the  Christian  priesthood,  for  which  I  ever  thank  and  bless 
His  divine  majesty  and  goodness.  I  confess  -that  I  was  at 
Uxenden,  that  I  was  betrayed  and  apprehended  ;  but  I  emphati- 
cally deny  that,  either  by  word  or  deed,  1  ever  entertained  or 
])lotted  any  plan  or  design  against  the  queen  or  her  kingdom. 
In  returning  to  my  old  home  and  country  I  had  but  one  aim — 
to  minister  the  sacraments  to  those  who  desired  them  according 
to  the  ancient  rites." 

He  was  not  allowed  to  say  more,  and  was  soon  brouglit  in 
guilty. 

He  then  begged  God  to  have  mercy  on  all  who  Iiad  been,  or 
should  be,  accessory  to  his  death. 

Judge  Popham  i)ronounced  the  horrible  sentence,  which  need 
not  be  again  set  forth  in  detail,  in  the  usual  terms. 

Then  Southwell  was  taken  to  Newgate,  from  whence,  early  on 
the  morrow  morning,  l-'ebruary  21st,  1595,  he  was  dragged  on  a 
hurdle  to  Tybourne. 

As  he  was  being  drawn  from  Newgate  to  the  place  of  execu- 
tion, he  bade  farewell  to  a  kinswoman  who  had  come  to  greet 
him.  The  day  was  cold  and  wet,  the  sky  leaden,  and  for  some 
time  a  drizzling  rain  drove  from  the  north-cast.     Yet  here  and 


HIS   TRIAL   AND   EXECUTION.  321 

there  crowds  had  gathered  to  witness  the  "  drawing,"  and  a  motley- 
mass  followed  on  either  side  and  behind,  as  the  sufferer,  jolted, 
bruised,  and  shaken,  lay  with  his  face  turned  heavenwards  in 
mental  prayer. 

On  reaching  Tybourne,  and  being  unbound,  Southwell  wiped 
his  face  and  mouth  with  a  handkerchief,  which  he  then  threw  to 
a  member  of  his  own  society  in  the  crowd,  whom  he  had 
recognised. 

Knife  and  rope,  caldron  and  hatchet,  had  been  all  duly  pre- 
pared. He  was  then  placed  in  the  cart  under  the  gallows,  round 
which  lay  a  litter  of  straw  and  a  newly  kindled  fire.  Having 
received  permission  to  speak,  he  mildly  maintained  that  he  had 
never  done,  meant,  nor  intended  any  harm  to  Her  Majesty; 
and  expressed  a  hope  regarding  her  that  both  body  and  soul 
might  be  saved  by  the  mercy  of  the  Most  Highest. 

Here  he  commended  to  God  his  poor  afflicted  country,  which 
had  been  robbed  of  all  the  sacraments,  except  baptism  and 
matrimony,  praying  that  it  might  be  led  back  again  to  a  perfect 
insight  into  and  understanding  of  God's  truth,  and  so  be  blessed 
once  more  in  the  spiritual  order,  and  restored  once  again  to 
unity. 

He  acknowledged  himself  to  be  a  Catholic  priest  and  a 
member  of  the  Society  of  Jesus,  and  thanked  Almighty  God  for 
these  high  favours. 

The  hangman  then  stripped  him  to  his  shirt,  fastened  the 
halter  round  his  neck,  and  secured  it  afresh  to  the  horizontal  bar 
of  the  gibbet. 

Hereupon  a  person,  who  turned  out  to  be  a  minister,  addressed 
him — "Mr.  Southwell,  explain  yourself  further.  If  your  meaning 
be  according  to  the  Council  of  Trent,  it  is  false  and  damnable." 

"Good  master  minister,"  he  replied,  with  great  humility,  "for 
God's  sake  leave  me  alone  in  this  my  extremity.  I  want  no  con- 
troversy now.  I  do  not  argue,  I  will  not  criticise.  I  believe. 
Note  you  that  I  die  a  Catholic,  putting  my  whole  trust  and  con- 
fidence in  the  Passion  and  Death  of  my  Saviour.  I  desire  no 
controversy." 

He  then  asked  the  prayers  of  those  near, — pressing  forward  to 
hear  his  words, — who  were  awed  into  silence  and  attention  by 
his  sweet  words  and  most  modest  manner.  His  face,  as  some 
remarked  and  afterwards  recorded,  was  as  the  face  of  an  angel. 

'•'■  Sancta  Maria,  Mater  Dei,  et  omnes  Sancti  Dei,  orate  et  inter- 
cedife pro  me,"  he  ejaculated.  "  God  be  merciful  to  me  a  sinner. 
Lord,  into  Thy  hands  I  commend  my  spirit !  "  and  he  then  made 
the  sacred  sign  on  his  breast  several  times. 

X 


322  THE   CHURCH    UNDER   QUEEN    ELIZABETH. 

Here  the  cart  was  drawn  away.  At  this  act  the  knot  of  the 
rope  slipped  round  to  the  back  of  his  neck,  and,  as  an  eye- 
witness^ records,  "he  remained  hanging  a  good  while,  knocking 
his  breast  and  making  divers  times  the  sign  of  the  cross,  turning 
his  eyes  up  and  down  wide  open." 

One  of  the  hangman's  officers  wished  to  have  him  cut  down 
alive  ;  but  the  people  intensely  excited,  cried  out  so  furiously 
against  the  proposal,  that  Lord  INIountjoy  forbade  it.  On  the 
other  hand,  a  humane  person,  holding  on  to  his  legs,  this  sudden 
weight  ended  his  sufferings.  He  thus  yielded  up  his  soul  to 
God. 

The  sanguinary  details  which  followed,  already  described,  took 
place  as  usual.  When,  however,  the  dissevered  head  was  lifted 
up  by  the  hangman,  no  one  cried  "  Traitor,''  nor  did  any  voice 
say  "Amen"  to  the  accustomed  form. 

Some  of  the  preachers  were  intensely  impressed  by  what  they 
had  witnessed  ;  while  one  nobleman  exclaimed,  "  When  I  die, 
God  grant  that  my  soul  may  go  where  his  soul  has  gone  "  ;  for  the 
poor  sufferer  had  died  in  the  holiest  of  causes — a  defence  of  the 
unchangeable  truth  of  God.  He  met  death  without  fear,  he 
was  not  only  perfectly  resigned,  but  suffered  with  joy.  During 
his  lifetime  he  had  long  truly  measured  the  world's  vanities,  and 
duly  apprehended  the  crimes  and  follies  of  men.  The  ever-fresh 
consolations  of  the  faith,  the  majestic  glories  of  the  one  Uni- 
versal Church,  the  loving  mercy  of  God  his  Saviour,  and  the 
peace  promised  to  those  who  endure,  had  often  been  the  themes 
of  his  sweet  and  melodious  verse.  Grace  had  evidently  de- 
scended like  dew  in  his  death-agony ;  and  so  he  soon  found  the 
longed-for  calm  after  the  storm,  and  reached  the  haven  where  he 
would  be. 

Has  it  never  occurred  to  the  reader,  when  asking  God  to 
"  remember  not  our  offences  nor  the  offences  of  our  forefathers," 
that  such  atrocities  as  these — for  which  there  were  precedents 
under  Nero  and  Caligula — cried,  and  ])erhaps  still  cry,  to  heaven 
for  vengeance  ;  and  that  our  miserable  divisions,  our  sorrows, 
heart-sicknesses,  and  the  evils  of  the  present  day,  may  be  a  part  of 
our  nation's  well-deserved  punishment? 

2.  Henry  Walpole  was  the  eldest  son  of  Christopher  Walpole 
of  Docking  and  Hammer  Hall  in  Norfolk,  by  Margaret,  daughter 
of  Richard  Beckham  of  Narford.     He  was  born  in  the  last  year 

'  Concerning  Southwell,  see  Stafc  fafcrs,  Donicsiic,  Elizabeth,  vol. 
cxcv.  114;  also  the  VDliimc  for  1586,  755  ;  Hail.  MSS.,  Brit.  Museum,  No. 
6998,  folio  21  ;  Lansdowne  MS.S.  vols.  Ixxii.  39,  and  Ixxiii.  vols.  47  ;  State 
Papers,  Domestic,  EUzabetli,  vol.  ccxxxv.  8. 


FATHER   HENRY   WALrOLE.  323 

of  Queen  Mary's  reign.  After  receiving  a  good  education,  he 
proceeded  to  study  the  law,  but  witnessing  the  reUgious  and 
political  confusion  which  had  been  intensified  by  the  change  of 
religion,  and  after  studying  some  of  the  current  controversies, 
embraced  the  religion  of  his  forefathers.  In  1582  he  went  to 
Rheims,  where  in  the  register-book  of  the  college  he  is  described 
as  "  Virdiscf'etus,  gravis  et pius.'"  After  some  study  he  proceeded 
to  Rome,  and  in  1584  entered  the  Society  of  Jesus.  Subse- 
quently, three  of  his  younger  brothers,  Richard,  Christopher,  and 
Michael,  followed  his  example.  Having  been  ordained  to  the 
minor  orders  by  Goldweil,  Bishop  of  St.  Asaph,  in  1583,  he  was 
eventually  made  priest  in  Paris  in  1588.  For  some  time  he  had 
been  in  Spain,  helping  in  the  work  of  the  two  English  colleges  of 
Seville  and  Valladolid.  He  was  always  earnest,  zealous,  and 
brave,  ever  displaying  a  calm  enthusiasm.  In  this  respect  he 
was  not  unlike  others  who  had  already  suffered  for  conscience' 
sake.  Of  Walpole  it  is  on  record  that  he  was  "  an  English 
gentleman  of  birth  and  fortune,  a  man  of  exceptionally  high 
culture,  of  great  intellectual  gifts,  of  deep  and  fervent  enthusiasm, 
who  had  sacrificed  everything  that  most  men  hold  dearest  for 
what  he  believed  to  be  Divine  truth." 

He  came  to  England  with  the  sole  intention  of  labouring  in 
defence  of  that  truth,  on  December  4th,  1593.  Within  twenty- 
four  hours  he  was  apprehended,  examined  by  the  Earl  of 
Huntingdon,  Lord  President  of  the  North,  and  then  by  order  of 
the  Privy  Council  sent  up  to  London.  He  was  at  once  com- 
mitted to  the  Tower,  where  he  remained  for  a  year.  What  there 
took  place  is  set  forth  in  the  following  record  : — 

He  "  met  in  the  Tower  of  London  with  the  greatest  misery  and 
poverty,  so  that  the  lieutenant  himself,  though  otherwise  a  hard- 
hearted and  barbarous  man,  was  moved  to  inquire  after  some  of 
the  father's  relations ;  and  told  them  that  he  was  in  great  and 
extraordinary  want,  without  bed,  without  clothes,  without  any- 
thing to  cover  him,  and  that  at  a  season  when  the  cold  vvas  most 
sharp  and  piercing ;  so  that  himself,  though  an  enemy,  out  of 
pure  compassion,  had  given  him  a  little  straw  to  sleep  on. 

"  Besides  this,  the  father  himself,  in  public  court,  upon  occasion 
of  answering  some  question  that  was  put  to  him,  declared  that 
he  had  been  tortured  fourteen  times,  and  it  is  very  well  known  how 
cruel  any  one  of  those  tortures  is  which  are  now  in  use.  For  it 
is  a  common  thing  to  hang  them  up  in  the  air  six  or  seven  hours 
by  the  hands,  and,  by  means  of  certain  irons,  which  hold  their 
hands  fast,  and  cut  them,  they  shed  much  blood  in  the  torture. 
The  force  of  this  torment  may  be  gathered  from  what  happened 


324         THE   CHURCH   UNDER   QUEEN    ELIZABETH. 

last  Lent  to  a  laic,  called  James  Atkinson,  whom  they  most 
cruelly  tortured  in  this  manner,  to  oblige  him  to  accuse  his  own 
master,  and  other  Catholics  and  priests;  and  kept  him  so  long  in 
torture,  that  he  was  at  length  taken  away  for  dead  after  many 
hours'  suffering,  and,  in  effect,  died  within  two  hours.  Some 
time  after  they  carried  the  father  back  to  York,  to  be  there  tried 
at  the  Midlent  assizes. 

"  In  all  the  journey  he  never  went  into  bed,  or  even  laid  down 
upon  a  bed  to  rest  himself  after  the  fatigue  of  the  day,  but  his 
sleep  was  upon  the  bare  ground.  When  he  came  to  York  he 
was  put  into  prison,  where  he  waited  many  days  for  the  judges' 
coming.  In  the  prison  he  had  nothing  but  one  poor  mat  three 
feet  long,  on  which  he  made  his  prayer  upon  his  knees  for  a 
great  part  of  the  night ;  and  when  he  slept  it  was  upon  the 
ground,  leaning  upon  the  same  mat."  ^ 

Henry  Walpole "  was  accused  of  three  offences.  Firstly,  that 
he  was  a  priest,  ordained  by  the  authority  of  the  See  of  Rome  ; 
secondly,  that  he  was  a  member  of  the  Society  of  Jesus ;  and, 
thirdly,  that  he  had  returned  to  England  to  exercise  the  ordinary 
acts  of  these  two  callings,  viz.,  to  gain  souls  to  God.  Sergeant 
Saville  was  the  prosecutor.  The  accused  was  tried  by  a  jury 
before  two  judges,  Francis  Beamont  and  Matthew  Ewens,  with 
whom  sat  Lord  Huntingdon,  and  Hillyard  the  Recorder  of 
York;  and  made  a  spirited,  forcible,  and  faithful  defence.  At 
times  he  was  most  opportune  in  his  remarks,  finding  his  educa- 
tion at  Gray's  Inn,  of  much  advantage,  and  was  often  brilliant 
in  his  comments ;  moreover,  he  compelled  one  of  the  Judges 
to  admit  that  his  sole  offence  was  his  refusal  to  acknowledge 
the  queen  to  be  "supreme  in  things  spiritual."  He  maintained 
that  no  earthly  law,  not  in  harmony  with  the  law  of  God,  could 
bind  any  Christian  man's*  conscience ;  and  that  the  due  and 
proper  submission  to  be  paid  to  earthly  princes  must  always  be 
subordinate  to  that  submission  which  the  baptized  directly  owe 
to  the  great  King  of  heaven  and  earth.  His  own  confessions 
obtained  on  the  rack  were  read  by  the  Clerk  of  the  Court.  But 
his  own  spoken  words  were  not  lost  upon  the  spectators. 

He  was  offered  his  discharge  if  he  would  make  his  submission, 

^  Letter  translated  from  the  Bishop  of  Tarrasona's  History,  pp.  695,  696, 
dated  23rd  of  October  1595. 

-  For  a  most  interesting  and  valuable  life  of  Henry  Walpole,  the  reader 
is  referred  to  Dr.  Jessopp's  One  Generation  of  a  Norfolk  House,  2nd 
edition,  London,  1879,  in  which  much  research  and  singular  impartiality 
are  manifest  throughout.  It  is  a  volume  which  is  as  interesting  to  the 
archreologian  and  genealogist  as  it  is  to  the  historian  and  divine  ;  and  could 
not  be  studied  by  any  reader  without  both  benefit  and  profit. 


HIS   TRIAL   AND   EXECUTION.  325 

acknowledge  the  queen's  usurped  authority,  and  comply  with 
the  terms  of  the  recent  statutes.  But  to  this  offer  he  turned  a 
deaf  ear.     It  was  impossible.     It  could  not  be  done. 

The  jury,  having  been  consequently  directed  to  find  him  guilty 
of  the  indictment  did  so  with  very  little  consideration  or  con- 
sultation amongst  themselves.  This  took  place  on  April  3rd, 
1595  ;  he  was  sentenced  to  death  on  the  5th,  and  he  suffered 
on  Monday  the  7th.  With  him  was  drawn  another  priest, 
Alexander  Rawlins,  who  had  been  tried  and  condemned  on  the 
5th  of  the  same  month,  a  Worcestershire  gentleman's  son,  who 
had  been  educated  at  Oxford,  ordained  priest  at  Soissons,  and 
had  laboured  in  England  with  much  success  for  nearly  five 
years. 

On  the  Sunday  these  two  men  were  subjected  to  the  spite  and 
annoyance  of  certain  ministers  and  others,  who  persisted  in 
plaguing  them  with  Protestant  controversy.  Sir  Edwin  Sandys, 
a  lay-prebendary  of  York,  not  a  minister,  and  Dr.  George 
Higgens,  Prebendary  of  Southwell,  were  the  chief  disputants. 
Sandys,  who  took  up  the  "Gospel  doctrine  of  justification,"  and 
"  the  supposed  dignity  of  Peter's  chair,"  preached  for  an  hour 
and  a  quarter.  The  other  man  dealt  with  the  subject  of 
Elizabeth's  supremacy.  Walpole,  who  readily  apprehended  their 
sophistries,  condescended  to  answer  both,  for  many  spectators 
had  gathered  for  the  encounter.  On  these  his  speech  made  a 
great  impression. 

On  the  following  morning  Rawlins  suffered  first,  most  bravely, 
without  quailing  or  flinching — Walpole  being  a  witness  of  all  the 
sanguinary  cruelties.  Walpole's  turn  soon  came.  And  he  was 
prepared  for  it.  He,  too,  died  calmly,  with  the  Fatertioster 
and  Ave  Maria  on  his  lips,  and  thus  his  righteous  soul  passed 
into  the  keeping  of  God, — a  noble  member  of  the  Society  of 
Jesus. 

The  Benedictines,  as  we  know,  had  originally  converted  our 
country  in  Saxon  times,  while  the  impress  of  their  glorious  order 
is  even  now  almost  indelibly  stamped  on  the  sacred  but  desolated 
fanes  of  the  land.  Under  Henry  VIII,  the  devoted  and  saintly 
sons  of  St.  Francis  were  found  bold  in  their  protest  against 
sacrilege,  and  faithful  even  unto  death.  But  persecution  having 
done  its  work,  and  confiscation  having  wrought  out  so  much 
ruin,  it  was  reserved  for  the  devoted  sons  of  St.  Ignatius  (who 
had  himself  written  to  Cardinal  Pole  ^  of  his  desire  to  serve  the 
souls  in  England),  like  Southwell  and  Walpole,  to  whose  suffer- 
ings reference  has  just  been  made,  to  stand  in  the  breach,  to  be 
^  Episi.  Card.  Poll.  v.  119. 


326         THE   CHURCH    UNDER   QUEEN    ELIZABETH. 

self-sacrificing  and  devoted,  even  to  court  the  confessor's  suffer- 
ings and  to  gain  the  martyr's  crown. 

A  few  other  facts  are  worthy  of  note.  In  1595  Whitgift  had 
attempted  to  impose  what  are  known  as  the  "Lambeth  Articles,"' 
on  the  two  provinces.  They  were  approved  by  many  of  the 
bishops  and  ministers;  for  being  thoroughly  Calvinistic,  and 
Calvinism  being  in  the  ascendant,  the  proposed  formularies 
were  certainly  popular.  At  that  time  any  other  kind  of  theology 
was  scarcely  known.  But  the  queen,  whose  duty  it  was  to 
govern  the  Church,  as  she  well  knew  and  often  remarked,  having 
consulted  some  shrewd  and  worldly-wise  laymen  and  lawyers — 
whom  the  Calvinists  had  troubled, — would  not  allow  these 
Articles  to  be  accepted. 

Two  years  afterwards  the  queen's  general  pardon "  was  granted 
for  "all  offences  committed  or  done  against  the  ecclesiastical 
state  or  government  established  in  this  realm,  or  any  heresy  or 
schism  whatsoever."  The  strong  comments  made  abroad 
possibly  led  to  this.  For  of  all  the  horrors  which  had  been 
perpetrated  for  religion  and  conscience'  sake,  foreigners  had 
received  a  true  and  plain-spoken  account  from  the  publications 
of  exiled  Catholics.  This  pardon,  like  others,  was  to  be  "con- 
strued most  beneficially  for  the  subjects"  ;  but  the  list  of  special 
cases  and  exceptions  was  so  considerable  that  scarcely  any 
offender,  or  supposed  offender,  could  by  any  possibility  have 
profited  by  it. 

Sir  John  Harington,  a  most  observant  onlooker  and  a  graphic 
writer,  thus  describes  a  dinner-party  which  was  held  towards 
the  close  of  the  queen's  reign.  It  is,  for  several  reasons,  so 
interesting,  that  it  is  here  given  without  omission  or  amend- 
ment:— 

"  I  was  honourede  at  dinner  with  the  Archbishoppe  &  several 
of  the  Churche  pastors,  where  I  did  finde  more  corporeal  than 
spiritual  refreshmente ;  and  though  oure  ill  state  at  cowrte  maie, 
in  some  sorte,  overcaste  the  countenance  of  these  apostolical 
messengers ;  yet  were  some  of  them  well  anointed  with  the  oyl 
of  gladnesse  of  Tuesdaie  paste.  Hereof  thou  shalt  in  some  sorte 
partake.  My  Lorde  of  Salisburie  had  seizen  his  tenantes  corne 
and  haye,  with  sundrie  husbandrie  matters,  for  matters  of  money 
due  to  his  lordshippe's  estate  :  hereat  the  aggrievede  manne 
made  suite  to  the  bishoppe  and  requestede  longer  time  and 
restitution  of  his  goodes  : — '  Go,  go  (saithe  the  bishoppe)  I  heare 

'  They  were  afterwards  brought  forward  at  the  Hampton  Court  Conference, 
but  rejected.     The  Protestant  Church  in  Ireland  accepted  them  in  1615. 
-  40  Elizabeth,  c.  xxviii. 


SIR   JOHN    HARINGTON'S   RECORDS.  327 

ill  reporte  of  thie  livinge,  and  thou  canst  not  crave  mercie  ;  thou 
comeste  not  to  Churche  service,  and  haste  not  receivede  confir- 
mation ;  I  commande  thee  to  attend  my  ordinance  and  be 
confirmed  in  thy  faithe  at  Easter  nexte  cominge.'  '  I  crave  your 
lordshippes  forgivenesse  (quothe  the  manne),  in  goode  soothe  I 
durste  not  come  there,  for  as  youre  lordshippe  hath  laine  your 
hande  on  all  my  goodes,  I  thinke  it  full  meete  to  take  care  of 
my  heade  ! '  Suche  was  parte  of  our  discourse  at  dinner.  So 
.  .  .  although  the  bishoppes  hande  was  heavy,  oure  pesantes 
head  was  not  weake,  and  his  lordshippe  said  he  woude  forego 
his  payment."  ^ 

Some  personal  account  of  the  queen,  in  order  that  the  char- 
acter of  one  who  left  so  marked  an  impress  on  the  Established 
Church,  may  be  apprehended,  must  now  be  given.  There  are 
those  who  look  upon  her  as  a  great  political  light,  others  as  a 
"  bright  occidental  star  "  in  the  orbit  of  religion  ;  while  some 
might  hesitate  to  bestow  such  praise  as  many  partisan  historians 
have  so  unstintedly  rendered,  and  yet  own  an  exceedingly 
inadequate  idea  of  her  varied  characteristics  and  true  character. 
From  no  single  aspect  could  a  just  and  impartial  judgment  be 
passed.  It  is  necessary,  therefore,  to  take  more  than  a  single 
standing-point  in  judging  her  fairly. 

Queen  Elizabeth  was  learned  both  in  sacred  and  profane 
literature,  and  this  learning  was  recognised  and  acknowledged 
by  competent  judges  both  at  home  and  abroad.  She  wrote  a 
firm  and  beautiful  hand  ;  was  skilful  in  composition,  and  fre- 
quently expressed  herself  in  her  mother  tongue  with  as  much 
grace  as  vigour.  The  foreign  ambassadors  were  often  struck  by 
a  display  of  her  cultivated  powers,  as  well  as  by  her  tact  in 
action  and  her  undoubted  charm  of  conversation.  She  could 
reply  in  Latin  to  a  formal  address,  and  was  often  extremely 
happy  in  her  apt  quotations  from  classical  authors.  Like  her 
father,  of  great  natural  abilities,  she  was  proud  of  her  theological 
acumen,  and  sometimes  thought  fit  to  set  right  her  astonished 
prelates  and  divines  by  quoting  some  patristic  aphorism  or 
cleverly-selected  text  of  Scripture  ;  or  by  perceiving  a  weak  place 
in  their  ponderous  homiletic  arguments,  into  which,  with  no 
mercy,  she  pointedly  and  promptly  thrust  a  sharp  dialectical 
dart.  With  a  Calvinistic  bishop  Her  Highness  was  strongly 
anti-Calvinistic ;  with  any  one  who  had  a  tendency  to  favour 
the  "  old  learning,"  she  became  for  the  nonce  both  destructive 
and  revolutionary,  or  even  rigidly  Calvinistic,  in  her  logical 
conclusions.  An  easy-going,  obedient,  and  good-tempered  man, 
^  Sir  John  Harington's  Letters,  p.  323. 


328  THE   CHURCH   UNDER   QUEEN    ELIZABETH. 

like   her   godson,    Henry    Cotton/   however,    was    sure   to   be 
favoured,  if  he  never  crossed  her  wishes  nor  thwarted  her  will. 

The  language  of  flattery  used  by  her  favourites  and  attendants 
was  so  fantastic  and  extravagant,  that  it  became  almost  always 
absurd  and  gross  —  so  that  maids-of-honour  smiled  sometimes 
in  the  background,  or  listless  and  yawning  male  idlers  grinned 
or  giggled.  But  nothing  could  be  too  gross  for  Her  Highness's 
greedy  acceptance.  The  greater  the  extravagance  of  the  com- 
jjliment,  the  more  favourably  it  was  received.  Those  at  Court 
who  were  incapable  of  paying  compliments  and  originating  high- 
sounding  and  laudatory  i)hrases,  remained  in  the  background, 
without  either  smiles,  favours,  or  promotion. 

Her  unbounded  vanity,  in  truth,  often  rendered  her  the 
laughing-stock  of  the  more  acute  courtiers,  who  ridiculed  her 
heartily  because  of  it.  Nothing  pleased  her  better,  or  won  her 
favour  more  surely,  than  profuse  admiration  of  her  person,  and 
verbosely  elaborate  laudation  of  her  natural  graces;  —  both  of 
which  it  was  found  positively  necessary  to  use  with  unstinted 
generosity,  by  those  ambitious  adventurers  who  so  anxiously 
sought  to  rise  to  power  and  influence  in  the  State.  When  the 
graces  of  youth  and  middle  age  were  steadily  fading  away,  when 
the  lines  of  her  face  were  deepening  and  natural  feebleness 
supervened,  when  her  dressers  had  to  truss  her  with  care,  and 
support  her  jewel-bedecked  body  with  artificial  appliances,  she 
was  more  exacting  of  her  admirers  of  the  other  sex  than  she  had 
ever  been  before ;  while  the  least  tokens  of  wavering  on  their 
part  in  their  accustomed  phrases  of  admiration,  both  merited 
and  secured  her  certain  and  severest  displeasure.  To  question 
her  perfect  grace  and  beauty,  even  as  an  old  woman,  when  her 
bust  had  shrunk,  and  her  neck  had  become  sinewy  and  yellow, 
was  an  unpardonable  sin. 

She  was  likewise  singularly  irresolute.  On  subjects  of  great 
as  well  as  of  small  moment,  matters  of  state  as  well  as  of 
personal  fancy,  she  could  never  make  up  her  mind.  From  all 
sources,  high  as  well  as  low,  influential  as  well  as  the  reverse, 
from  maids-in-waiting  as  well  as  from  ministers,  she  was  accus- 
tomed to  ask  advice  and  counsel,  but  was  altogether  unable  and 
unwilling  to  take  it  when  offered.     Ever  deliberating,  balancing 

1  Of  this  prelate,  who  was  made  Bishop  of  Salisbury,  Sir  John  Ilarington 
thus  wrote  : — "  She  had  blessed  many  of  her  £;odsons,  but  now  this  godson 
should  bless  her.  Whether  she  were  the  better  for  his  blessing,  I  know  not ; 
but  I  am  sure  he  was  the  better  for  hers.  He  married,  very  young,  a  woman 
whose  name  was  Patience,  and  she  brought  him  no  less  than  nineteen 
children."— ^;'/^  Ficw  of  the  State  of  the  Church,  pp.  95,  96.     London,  1653. 


CHARACTERISTICS   OF   THE   QUEEN.  329 

this  consideration  with  the  other,  and  delighting  in  so  doing, 
she  found  it  most  difficult  to  come  to  a  conclusion  and  decision 
on  any  subject,  trivial  or  important ;  so  much  so  that  this 
habitual  irresolution  caused  the  greatest  trouble  and  vexation  to 
her  ministers,  as  Cecil  often  cautiously  noted  in  his  written 
record  of  events.  The  queen's  mind,  as  Sir  Thomas  Smith 
remarked  in  a  letter  to  the  Lord  Treasurer,  was  "  sometimes  so, 
sometimes  no ;  and  in  all  times  uncertain  and  ready  to  stays 
and  revocation."  "  It  makes  me  weary  of  my  life,"  he  went  on 
to  declare  most  piteously, — "  I  can  neither  get  the  other  letters 
signed,  nor  the  letters  already  signed  permitted  to  be  sent 
away;  but,  day  by  day,  and  hour  by  hour,  deferred  till  anon, 
soon,  and  to-morrow."^  The  same,  too,  was  more  especially  the 
case  with  Lord  Burghley  later  on,-  who  wished  his  body  had 
been  made  of  iron  or  steel,  so  worried  was  he  when  he  grew 
old. 

At  times  her  language  was  so  coarse  and  unchaste'  that 
foreign  attendants  and  ambassadors,  who  sometimes  accidentally 
heard  it,  were  paralysed  with  astonishment.  She  rated  both 
Houses  of  Parliament  in  such  terms  as  a  slave-driver  might  use 
to  his  slaves;  she  was  often  insolent  to,  and  domineering  over, 
her  obsequious  spiritual  officers  the  bishops ;  abusing  them  with 
unwomanly  violence,  or  silencing  them  with  a  vigorous  and 
sometimes  a  frightful  oath.*  "Hedge-priest"  was  the  scornful 
term  she  frequently  applied  to  the  obsequious  but  astonished 
new  ministers.  Their  elaborate  and  painful  preaching  she 
characterised  as  "noisome  babbling,"  occasionally  telling  the 
more  stupid,  or  the  prosy,  or  the  over-fanatical,  to  come  down 
from  the  pulpit  and  to  "  cease  that  useless  noise."  "  Babble  no 
longer,  Master  Dean,"  she  once  called  out  to  Nowell,  the  chief 
officer  of  St.  Paul's  Cathedral,  who  was  preaching.  Though, 
on  one  occasion,  she  had  condescended   to    be  entertained  at 

•^  See  "Sir  Thomas  Smith  to  Lord  Burghley,"  the  6th  of  March  1574,  in 
Strype's  Life  of  Sir  T.  Smith,  p.  139. 

-  Lord  Burghley,  writing  to  Walsingham,  asked  if  he  should  attend  at 
Court  morning  or  evening,  according  to  the  tide.  He  wishes  his  body  were 
of  iron  or  steel,  for  with  flesh  and  blood  he  cannot  long  endure. — Stale 
Papers,  Domestic,  Elizabeth,  vol.  cxc.  37. 

•*  In  a  MS.  "  Memoria  Mortuorum  "  which  Cecil  had  made,  the  following 
questionable  entry  occurs: — "1558.  17  Nov.  Maria  Regina  Angl.  obiit, 
cui  successit  Eliz  :  semper  Virgo." — State  Papers,  Murdin,  p.  745.     London, 

1759- 

•*  Her  usual  oaths,  varied  a  little  in  form,  were,  "  By  the  death  of  God," 
"  By  God's  Passion,"  "  By  God's  blood,"  or  "  By  God's  wounds."  When  she 
was  unusually  excited,  such  formed  the  opening  or  close  of  almost  every 
incoherent  sentence. 


330       THE  CHURCH  under  queen  Elizabeth. 

Lambeth  Palace,  and  to  accept  Archbishop  Parker's  munificent 
hospitahty  and  valuable  presents,  she  pointedly  insulted  his  wife 
in  her  husband's  domain  and  presence,  with  unnecessary  sen- 
tences of  epigrammatic  spite  ;^  while  Her  Highness,  on  another 
occasion,  irritated  by  his  wit,  was  not  above  chastising  an 
offending  courtier  by  giving  him  a  sharp  box  on  the  ear. 

If  her  courtiers  and  flatterers  spoke  the  truth,  which  is  by  no 
means  certain  was  always  the  case,  their  mistress  was  a  paragon 
of  virtue,  piety,  and  beauty.  Though  certainly  not  beautiful, 
her  complexion  was  undoubtedly  fair,  her  nose  aquiline,  her 
hair  fine  and  yellow.  Her  teeth,  too,  were  of  the  same  colour. 
To  judge  from  the  numerous  portraits  existing,  her  arched  eye- 
brows, like  her  lips,  were  thin  and  pale,  her  neck  was  long  and 
scraggy ;  but,  until  she  passed  the  age  of  fifty,  her  figure  was 
tall  and  her  general  bearing  stately.  Her  hands  were  thin, 
delicate,  and  white.  So  well-formed  and  graceful  did  she  regard 
her  own  calf  and  ankle,  that,  coyly  lifting  her  kirtle,  she  occa- 
sionally condescended  to  exhibit  her  royal  legs  for  the  admira- 
tion of  her  favourite  courtiers  or  the  most  exalted  representatives 
of  foreign  monarchs.^  For  such  favours  she  expected  in  return 
a  cluster  of  admiring  adjectives  in  a  set  speech  or  an  impromptu 
epigram  on  the  perfect  form  of  the  limbs  in  question ;  or  else 
an  embellished  compliment  upon  her  remarkable  grace  of 
motion  and  her  acknowledged  capacities  for  dancing  with  agility. 
Furthermore,  she  had  such  an  excellent  idea  of  the  unflecked 
brilliancy  of  her  complexion,  that  she  would  never  allow 
Nicholas  Hilliard,  the  royal  miniaturist,  to  make  any,  even  the 
faintest,    shadows   whatsoever,    in   her   portraits.^     Contrasts  to 

^  "  You,  Madam,"  she  exclaimed,  "  who  and  what  are  you  ?  Madam  I  may 
not  call  you  ;  Mistress  I  am  ashamed  to  call  you  ;  '  Lady  '  I  will  not  call 
you;  l)iit  whatever  you  be,  or  think  yourself  to  be,  I  thank  you  for  your 
liospitality."  See  also  Strype's  Li'fe  of  Matthew  Parker,  in  loco.  On 
another  occasion,  "When  one  of  her  chaplains,  Mr.  Alexander  Nowell, 
Dean  of  St.  Paul's,  had  spoke  less  reverently,  in  a  sermon  preached  before 
her,  of  the  sign  of  the  cross,  she  called  aloud  to  him  from  her  closet  window, 
commanding  him  to  retire  from  that  ungodly  digression  and  return  unto  the 
text." — Dr.  I'eter  Heylyn's  History  of  the  A'e  format  ion,  p.  124. 

^  "The  Duke  of  Nevers  was  honourably  entertained  by  Her  Majesty;  she 
danced  with  him  and  courted  him  in  the  best  manner  ;  he,  on  the  other  side, 
using  may  compliments,  as  kissing  her  hand,  yea  and  foot,  when  she  showed 
him  her  leg." — I'on  Kaitnier,  vol.  ii.  p.  iSo. 

•'  This  may  be  abundantly  seen  from  an  inspection  of  several  miniatures 
belonging  to  the  Duke  of  Buccleuch,  K.G.,  which  were  exhibited  at  the 
Royal  Academy  in  the  spring  of  1879,  ''-S-  Case  F.,  Nos.  4,  6,  7,  8,  19,  23, 
ancl  24 — all  representing  (^ueen  Elizabeth — with  the  exception  of  No.  8, 
each  being  from  the  pencil  of  Nicholas  Hilliard.  Some  of  the  other  minia- 
tures of  this  successful  artist, — notably  his  own  and  his  wife's  portraits,  as 


OUTCOME   OF   HER    TUBLIC   POLICY.  33 1 

bring  out  the  obvious  projection  of  the  nose,  or  the  natural 
rotundity  of  the  chin  and  cheeks,  were  strictly  forbidden  by 
royal  command.  Her  complexion,  in  Her  Highness's  judgment, 
was  so  pure  and  good  that  only  white  paint  could  represent  it. 
Hence  the  existing  portraits  of  her  are  invariably  as  flat  and 
colourless  as  Chinese  paintings,  and  very  often  as  uninteresting 
and  unattractive. 

Even  the  bloody  statute  of  Elizabeth's  twenty-seventh  year, 
after  it  had  been  in  operation  for  eighteen  long  and  weary  years, 
at  the  close  of  her  life,  could  not  utterly  root  out  the  ancient 
faith.  The  maintainers  of  this,  though  hated  of  all  men  for 
Christ's  sake,  endured  nobly  even  unto  the  end.  Such,  at  least, 
was  the  case  with  many.  Avoiding  the  old  churches,  rifled  and 
bare,  which  they  looked  upon  as  desecrated  and  degraded  anew 
by  the  Calvinistic  rites  and  homiletic  orgies  performed  in  them  ; 
regarding  the  new  bishops  as  State  superintendents  —  "  the 
queen's  wedded  superintendents,"  as  they  were  termed  —  and 
looking  upon  the  successors  of  the  ancient  priests  as  mere 
ministers,  they  sought  none  of  their  aid,  but  passed  them  by 
with  contumely  and  scorn.  Into  some  of  the  benefices  tailors 
and  tinkers,  who  had  heartily  adopted  Calvinism  as  a  religion, 
had  long  been  previously  thrust  by  Protestant  patrons  and  duly 
inducted  by  the  bishops.^  Whether  such  persons  were  ordained 
by  any  visible  act  seems  exceedingly  doubtful.  For  with  such 
sectaries  "the  outpouring  of  the  Spirit"  manifested  in  wild 
reasoning  and  tortuous  talk,  was  the  only  needful  ordination ; 
while,  as  to  the  receipt  and  possession  of  this  self-selected  gift, 
the  preachers  themselves  regarded  their  own  convictions  and 
testimony  on  this  point  as  far  superior  to  any  "greasing  or 
patting  of  pates,"  as  some  amongst  them  so  profanely  phrased 
it.  The  fonts,  where  of  old  the  people's  ancestors  had  received 
the  washing  of  regeneration,  were  unfilled  and  unconsecrated  ; 
and  so  baptism  was  consequently  sought  in  secret  and  solitary 
places,  the  glade  or  the  moor,  away  from  human  habitation  ; 
where  by  appointment  true  priests  met  them  to  shed  the  grace 

well  as  that  of  Lady  Arabella  Stuart, — are  less  flat  and  more  artistic.  A  large 
oil-painting  at  Dytchley,  Oxou.,  which  the  queen  herself  gave  to  Sir  Henry 
Lee,  shows  that  other  and  more  ambitious  portrait-painters  were  likewise 
obliged  to  avoid  the  making  of  shadows  on  representations  of  her  royal  face. 

1  "  Many  of  those  who  were  presented  to  the  livings  in  private  patronage 
were  mere  laymen  ;  and  there  is  room,  therefore,  for  us  to  believe  that  what 
have  been  thought  insults  done  to  the  Blessed  Sacrament,  were  really  only 
the  trampling  under  foot  of  that  which  really  was  what  these  fanatics  believed 
it  to  be — mere  bread  and  wine." — The  Reformation  and  the  Prayer  Book,  by 
Nicholas  Pocock,  ALA.,  p.  38.     London,  1875. 


1^2  THE   CHURCH    UNDER   QUEEN    ELIZABETH. 

of  regeneration,  or  unite  the  faithful  in  the  marriage  bond.  In 
Yorkshire/  for  example,  Squire  Cholmley,  of  Branderby,  and  a 
daughter  of  the  knightly  house  of  Hungate  of  Saxton,  in  the 
presence  of  four  trusty  witnesses,  as  the  existing  record  narrates, 
"  were  married  by  a  Popish  priest  in  a  fell."  The  mansions  of 
each  family  had,  no  doubt,  long  been  carefully  watched  by  spy 
and  pursuivant.  So  the  company  in  question  went  out  with 
some  trusted  priest,  at  the  risk  of  his  liberty  and  life,  to  some 
secluded  spot  on  the  wild  moorlands,  and  there  under  the 
canopy  of  heaven  the  sacrament  was  ministered  and  God's 
blessing  asked  on  the  happy  union. 

In  the  northern  counties,  it  is  certain  from  existing  MSS. — 
"  Lists"  of  so-called  "Recusants" — that  from  ten  to  fifty  persons 
in  every  village  openly  stood  apart  from  the  new  religion,  while 
hundreds  secretly  disliked  and  despised  it.  Though  disputes 
were  popular  in  that  restless  period,  and  controversy  all  the 
rage,  yet  a  sturdy  and  honourable  number  of  all  classes  were 
thoroughly  true  to  the  faith  of  their  fathers.  Bribes  could  not 
win  them  to  error,  nor  persecution  daunt  their  unshaken 
resolution  to  maintain  the  cause  of  truth. 

Early  in  January  1601,  Orsini,  Duke  of  Graciano,  arrived  in 
London  upon  a  courtly  mission.  He  was  a  young  and  handsome 
nobleman,  and  the  Italian  merchants  received  and  feasted  him 
sumptuously.  A  certain  Alderman  Radcliffe  housed  and  enter- 
tained him.  The  poor  queen,  trembling  and  wrinkled,  who 
had  then  passed  her  sixty-seventh  year, — and  who  went  into  a 
paroxysm  of  fury  if  any  one  even  indirectly  hinted  at  mortal 
sickness,  death,  or  the  grave, — was  carefully  and  painfully  pre- 
pared by  her  dressers  and  maids-in-waiting,  for  the  work  of 
receiving  the  duke  ;  upon  whom  she  evidently  desired  to  make 
a  deep  impression,  which  no  doubt  she  did.  A  stomacher  set 
with  pearls,  diamonds,  and  gold  embroidery,  was  brought  out 
of  her  well-stocked  wardrobe-house,"  and  in  this,  over  a  laced 
chemise,  the  infirm  body  of  Her  Highness  was  carefully  encased. 
Her  petticoat,  rich  with  open  pomegranates  embroidered  in  gold 

^  A  list  of  the  Roman  Catholics  in  the  county  of  York  in  1604.  Tran 
scribed  from  the  original  MS.  in  the  Bodleian,  and  edited  by  Edward 
Peacock,  F.S.A. ,  p.  121.     London,  1872. 

^  "One  Sunday  (April  last)  my  lorde  of  London  [Aylmer]  preachede  to 
the  Queene's  Majestie,  and  semede  to  touch  on  the  vanitie  of  deckinge  the 
bodie  too  finely.  Her  Majestie  tolde  the  ladies  that  '  if  the  bishope  held 
more  discorse  on  suche  matters,  she  wolde  fit  him  for  heaven,  but  he  shoulde 
walke  thither  without  a  staffe,  and  leave  his  mantle  behind  him.'  Perchance 
the  bishope  hath  never  soughte  Her  Highnesse  wardrobe,  or  he  woulde  have 
chosen  another  texte." — Sir  John  llTinngion's,  Niigu:  Antiqiia,  vol.  i.  p.  170. 


INTERVIEW   WITH    ORSINI.  533 

thread,  was  at  once  stiff  and  gorgeous.  She  wore  a  pair  of  the 
newest,  and  then  still  rare,  pink  silk  stockings ;  a  huge  frill, 
studded  with  pearls  and  made  to  stand  up  and  stick  out  by 
means  of  gold  wire,  was  placed  round  her  long  neck.  Jewels 
in  profusion,  pendent  and  fastened,  emeralds,  diamonds,  and 
sapphires,  were  everywhere  displayed  upon  her  person ;  and, 
after  having  been  carefully  painted,  trussed,  and  scented,  and 
then  allowed  to  repose  for  awhile  (as  well  as  might  be,  in  such 
a  fatiguing  costume),  she  announced  herself  as  ready  to  receive 
the  duke.  This  was  done  with  exceptional  state  and  dignity. 
Her  Highness  supporting  herself  when  she  rose  from  her  chair 
of  state  with  an  ivory  walking-stick,  inlaid  with  gold  and  orna- 
mented with  rubies  and  brilliants. 

"The  queen,"  as  may  be  read  in  an  original  letter,  "hath  been 
pleased  to  have  many  pleasant  discourses  with  him,  and  to  dance 
before  him  ;  and  he,  as  a  well-ex]3erienced  courtier,  knew  [how] 
to  make  show  of  admiring  herself  as  most  excellent,  and  her 
actions  as  incomparable."^  But  by  this  time  amusement  began 
to  pall  upon  her,  and  she  was  losing  her  appetite.^ 

To  show  the  duke  that  she  had  not  cut  herself  entirely  off  from 
the  Christian  religion,  the  queen  "  invited  him  to  go  with  her  to 
the  closet  over  the  chapel,  having  before  given  order  that  the  com- 
munion-table should  be  adorned  with  basin  and  ewer  of  gold  and 
evening  tapers  and  other  ornaments,  some  say  also  with  a  crucifix, 
and  that  all  the  ministry  should  be  in  rich  copes.  The  Duke  [out] 
of  curiosity,  accompanied  her,  and  she  was  very  pleasant  thereat, 
saying  she  would  write  to  the  Pope,  not  to  chide  him  for  that  fact." 

At  the  close  of  her  life,  a  close  now  slowly  drawing  on,  survey- 
ing the  religious  devastation  which  had  been  created  at  home, 
and  the  frightful  divisions  which  had  resulted  from  "  the  reforms  " 
effected ;  — knowing,  too,  the  misery  and  dissatisfaction  which 
existed  amongst  the  poor, — the  queen  was  anxious  to  show  to 
this  foreign  nobleman  that  she  was  not  so  bad  as  she  had  been 
painted  by  certain  foreign  enemies ;  and  that  the  new  National 

^  Author's  Original  MSS.  and  Excerpts. 

-  "  Her  Majestie  enquirede  of  some  matters  I  had  written  ;  and  as  she  was 
pleasede  to  note  my  fancifulle  braine,  I  was  not  unheedfuU  to  feed  her 
humoure,  and  reade  some  verses,  whereat  she  smilede  once,  and  was  pleasede 
to  sale,  ' '  When  thou  doste  feele  creepinge  tyme  at  thye  gate,  these  fooleries 
will  please  thee  lesse  ;  I  am  paste  my  relish  for  such  matters  :  thou  seeste  my 
bodilie  meate  doth  not  suite  me  well ;  I  have  tasted  but  one  ill  tastede  cake 
since  yesternighte."  She  rated  me  most  grievouslie,  at  noone,  at  some  who 
minded  not  to  bring  uppe  certaine  matters  of  accounte.  Several  menne  hath 
been  sente  to,  and  when  readie  at  hande,  Her  Highnesse  hath  dismissed  in 
anger  ;  but  who,  dearest  Mall,  shall  saye  "  Your  Highnesse  hath  forgotten.'  " 
— Hariiigton's  Letters^  vol.  i.  p.  323. 


334  THE   CHURCH    UNDER   QUEEN    ELIZABETH. 

Church  which  had  been  set  up,  as  regards  the  taste  and  wishes  of 
its  supreme  governess/  owned  certain  external  features  in  common 
with  the  Church  of  the  Nicene  Creed,  born  on  the  first  Pentecost, 
that  is  with  the  Church  of  the  hving  God. 

The  weakness  and  paralysis  of  old  age  were  in  Her  Majesty 
now  more  marked  than  ever,  while  sometimes  rheumatic  pains  in 
her  left  arm  and  left  side  were  so  trying  and  unbearable,  that  she 
was  obliged  for  very  suffering  to  call  in  the  aid  of  some  "  cunning 
bone-setter  or  surgeon."  -     The  most  distant  hint  from  such  an 

^  The  best  defence  of  this  office  in  the  Christian  Church,  or  perhaps  in  a 
National  Church,  which  the  author  has  lighted  upon  is  the  follovAing  from  the 
]ien  of  Dr.  Heylyn.  But  bad  is  tiie  best  : — "  For  that  an  abbess  may  be 
capable  of  all  and  all  manner  of  ecclesiastical  jurisdiction,  even  to  the  de- 
nouncing of  that  dreadful  sentence  of  excommunication  ;  and  that  they  may 
lawfully  exercise  the  same  upon  all  such  as  live  within  the  verge  of  their 
authority,  is  commonly  acknowledged  by  their  greatest  canonists.  First  for 
Suspension  ;  it  is  affirmed  by  their  Glosse  that  an  abbess  may  suspend  such 
clerks  as  are  subject  to  her,  both  from  their  benefice  and  office.  And, 
questionless,  either  to  suspend  a  clerk  or  to  bring  his  church  under  the 
sentence  of  an  interdict,  is  one  of  the  chief  parts  of  ecclesiastical  and  spiritual 
censures.  Nor  have  they  this  authority  only  by  way  of  delegation  from  the 
Pope  in  some  certain  cases,  as  is  affirmed  by  Aquinas,  Durandus,  Sylvester, 
Dominicus  Soto,  and  many  other  of  their  schoolmen,  but  in  an  ordinary  way 
as  properly  and  personally  invested  them,  which  is  the  general  opinion  of  their 
greatest  canonists.  Next  for  the  sacraments  ;  it  is  sufficiently  known  that  the 
ministration  of  baptism  is  performed  by  midvvives,  and  many  other  women,  as 
of  common  course  ;  not  only  as  a  thing  connived  at  in  extreme  necessity,  but 
as  a  necessary  duty,  in  which  they  are  to  be  instructed  against  all  emergencies 
by  their  parish  priests  ;  for  which  we  have  the  testimony  of  the  late  Lord 
Legate  in  the  articles  published  by  him  for  his  visitation.  And  finally  for  ex- 
communication :  it  is  affirmed  by  Palladanus  and  Navarre  (none  of  the 
meanest  in  the  pack)  that  the  Pope  may  grant  that  power  to  a  woman  also  : 
higher  than  which  there  can  be  none  exercised  in  the  Church  by  the  sons  of 
men.  And  if  a  Pope  may  grant  these  powers  unto  a  woman,  as  to  a  prioress 
or  abbess,  or  to  any  other,  there  can  be,  then,  no  incapacity  in  the  sex  for 
exercising  any  part  of  that  jurisdiction  which  was  restored  unto  the  Crown  by 
this  Act  of  Parliament." — The  History  of  Queen  Elizabeth,  by  Peter 
Heylyn,  p.  109.     London,  167 1. 

-  "The  Court  hath  been  at  Richmond  these  twelve  days,  but  the  queen  in 
many  humours  to  have  removed  to  Greenwich,  by  reason  of  an  ache  in  one  of 
her  arms,  expecting  more  ease  by  change  of  air.  A  cunning  bone-setter  or 
surgeon  had  lately  a  sight  hereof;  he  said  it  was  a  wind  with  a  cold  rheu- 
matic humour  settled  there,  and  to  be  removed  by  rubbing  and  applying  of 
wet  oils  and  ointments.  Her  Majesty  told  him  he  was  mistaken,  for  that  her 
l)lood  and  constitution  were  of  its  nature  very  hot.  He  replied  that  neither 
flesh  nor  blood  in  that  part  made  any  show  thereof;  but  much  more  the  con- 
trary ;  whereat  she  was  exceedingly  displeased,  commanding  him  from  her 
presence,  she  being  most  impatient  to  hear  of  any  decay  in  herself,  and  there- 
upon will  admit  no  help  of  physic  or  surgery,  fretting  and  storming  when  she 
feeleth  any  little  pain,  and  sometimes  retiring  herself  from  all  access  for 
three  or  four  hours  together." — State  Papers,  Domestic,  Elizabeth,  vol. 
cclxxxvii.  50- 


THE   queen's   latter   DAYS.  335 

one  as  to  natural  decay  or  reasonable  infirmity  being  the  direct 
cause  of  her  increasing  ailments,  insured  Her  Highness's  sore  dis- 
pleasure. Storming  and  fretting,  as  was  her  wont,  she  ordered  a 
physician  out  of  her  presence,  merely  because  he  had  ventured 
to  imply  that  an  old  lady  of  nearly  seventy  years  of  age  could  not 
expect  to  be  as  hale  and  nimble  as  a  girl  of  eighteen. 

For  now  her  cheeks  were  shrivelled  and  had  fallen  in  ;  but 
when  she  appeared  in  public  she  managed  somehow  to  have  them 
filled  inside  with  pads  or  folds  of  linen  cloth, ^  so  that  they  might 
appear  to  the  sightseers  unshrunken  and  full;  while  pink  and 
white  paint  was  artfully  laid  upon  her  face  and  breast  in  several 
coats  and  layers.^  But  all  to  no  purpose  or  effect.  Neither 
paint,  nor  fine  clothes,  nor  false  flattery,  nor  rich  jewels,  could 
stave  off  the  advent  of  the  last  enemy.  The  inevitable  end  was 
drawing  on,  her  "  frolicksomeness  "  was  artificial  and  strained  ; 
when  over-frolicksome  she  stumbled  sometimes,  or  fell  heavily 
upon  a  couch,  wounded  in  hip-bone  or  elbow-joint,  and  was 
unable  to  get  up  again ;  while  physical  weakness  was  steadily 
increasing.  The  evening  of  life  was  surely  nearing  and  closing 
in  ;  the  day  of  retribution  was  at  length  about  to  dawn. 

It  is  not  an  uncommon  belief,  that  when  old  people  approach 
their  latter  end — no  matter  how  dulled  their  hearing  may  have 
become  or  how  imperfect  their  sight — they  not  only  realise  again 
all  the  details  of  the  past  (like  a  drowning  person),  but  sometimes 
begin  to  see  glimpses  of  the  world  beyond  the  grave,  with  a 
vividness  which  mere  words  all  too  inadequately  depict. 
Judging  by  the  testimony  of  astonished  onlookers,  such  was  the 
case  with  this  perturbed  and  wretched  woman  in  her  latest  days. 
The  past  was  dark  indeed.  Gazing,  but  not  seeing,  she  sat  for 
hours  with  glazing  eyes,  staring  into  vacancy.  Occasionally  she 
drew  a  long  sigh  and  shuddered  visibly.  The  least  sound 
annoyed  her.  Her  irritability  was  excessive  and  most  disquieting 
to  all  those  who  were  in  attendance. 

The  poor  creature,  as  her  end  drew  nearer,  became  more  and 

^  "  The  ache  of  the  queen's  arm  is  fallen  into  her  side,  but  she  is  still, 
thanks  to  God,  frolicky  and  merry.  Only  her  face  showeth  some  decay, 
which  to  conceal  when  she  cometh  in  public,  she  putteth  many  fine  cloths 
into  her  mouth  to  bear  out  her  cheeks  ;  and  sometimes  as  she  is  walking  she 
will  put  off  her  petticoat,  as  seeming  too  hot,  when  others  shake  with  cold." 
— From  Anthony  Rivers,  dated  17th  of  March  1602,  from  Venice,  and  signed 
"  Giacomo  Creleto." — State  Papers,  Domestic,  Elizabeth,  vol.  cclxxxvii. 

-  "  It  was  commonly  observed  this  Christmas  (A.  D.  l6o|)  that  Her  Majesty 
when  she  came  to  be  seen,  was  continually  painted,  not  only  all  over  her  face, 
but  her  very  neck  and  breast  also,  and  that  the  same  was  in  some  places 
near  half  an  inch  thick." — Anthony  Rivers  to  Robert  Parsons,  dated,  London, 
13th  of  Januaiy  1603.     Stonyhurst  MSS.,  Anglia,  vol.  iii. 


336         THE   CHURCH    UNDER   QUEEN    ELIZABETH. 

more  disturbed — as  her  now  drawn  and  wizen  features  too  truly 
demonstrated.  She  had  long  suspected  every  one  near  her,  and 
did  not  hesitate  to  declare,  in  deep  bitterness  of  spirit,  that  all 
her  former  friends  were  turning  their  eyes  from  the  setting  to  the 
rising  sun.  It  was  no  wonder  that  they  did  so.  For  the  spec- 
tacle they  might  have  witnessed  in  an  oak-panelled  chamber  of 
Richmond  Palace  was  certainly  distressing  and  terrible  to  con- 
template. The  thread  of  her  existence  was  being  gradually 
attenuated.  Sleep  had  fled  from  her.  Throughout  the  long 
winter  nights  her  sighs  and  groans  had  been  painful  to  listen  to. 
She  turned  from  side  to  side  constantly.  Sometimes  the  flicker- 
ing of  a  lamp  or  the  flaring  fire-light  made  strange  shadows  on 
the  arras ;  or  the  smouldering  logs  fell  suddenly  on  to  the 
hearth  from  the  brazen  dog-irons  with  a  noise,  and  then  she 
started  up  in  bed  harassed  and  terrified  anew  as  if  by  the  pre- 
sence of  unquiet  spirits.  When  the  wind  sighed  round  the 
palace  eaves,  or  made  the  loose-fitting  lattices  rattle,  her 
disturbed  imagination  drew  dark  and  dreadful  pictures. 

Her  friend,  the  Countess  of  Nottingham,  had  recently  died, 
and  this  greatly  troubled  the  queen.  It  carried  her  in  thought 
to  the  very  edge  of  an  open  grave — which  she  hated  and  feared 
more  than  any  other  object. 

In  March  of  the  year  1603,  the  symptoms  of  declining  powers 
were  more  than  ever  evident.  Her  physicians  saw  that  the  end 
could  not  be  far  off,  and  by  their  words  implied  as  much. 

From  this  time  the  Lord  Admiral,  the  Lord  Keeper,  Sir 
Robert  Cecil,  and  one  of  the  Secretaries,  remained  constantly 
at  Richmond,  and  were  duly  informed  of  her  state. 

On  one  occasion,  for  two  days  and  three  nights  she  sat 
huddled  up  on  a  stool,  partly  dressed,  and  propped  up  by 
pillows,  and  no  one  could  persuade  her  either  to  move  or  to  go 
to  bed.  Whitgift  proposed  to  "  read  a  Scripture  and  to  pray,"  but 
she  ordered  him  to  desist  and  make  no  disturbance.  What  a 
spectacle  it  was  !  When  the  artificial  hair  and  the  paint  and  the 
puffs  and  the  paddings  were  absent,  she  seemed  but  a  shrivelled 
and  yellow  old  woman,  possessed  by  some  demon  of  obstinacy. 
Her  lank  forefinger  was  often  placed  for  hours  upon  her  thin 
lips,  her  eyes  resting  on  the  ground.  A  shudder  now  and  then 
passed  through  her  wrecked  frame.  Her  toothless  gums  spas- 
modically chattered.  She  refused  all  food  and  often  declined  to 
open  her  pursed-up  and  parched  lips  at  all. 

From  Lord  Howard  she  once  consented  to  receive  a  basin  of 
broth,  of  which  she  took  a  portion.  But,  when  he  urged  her  to 
return  to  bed,  she  replied  that  if  he  himself  had  seen  what  she 


HER   CHARACTER   AND    POLICY.  ^^J 

had  beheld  as  she  lay  there,  he  would  never  have  made  such  a 
request. 

When,  however,  possibly  to  humour  her  fancies,  Sir  Robert 
Cecil,  Burghley's  son,  asked  her  with  some  earnest  anxiety 
whether  she  had  not  seen  spirits  gliding  by,  she  replied  that  his 
question  was  idle,  and  quite  beneath  her  notice.  "  Perhaps  she 
had,  perhaps  she  had  not." 

When,  in  comi:)any  with  others,  he  implored  her  to  take  rest, 
saying,  "  Your  Majesty  must  go  to  bed  to  satisfy  your  loving 
subjects,"  she  stared  with  astonishment. 

"  Must ! "  she  exclaimed  in  feeble  and  broken  accents,  but 
with  effort, — "  is  '  must '  a  word  to  be  addressed  to  princes  ? 
By  God,  little  man,  if  your  father  had  been  alive  he  durst  not 
have  used  such  a  word  to  Us.  But  ye  have  all  grown  daringly 
presumptuous,  because  you  know  that  I  shall  die.  Away  with 
ye,  each  one.     Be  off." 

They  retired,  all  but  Lord  Nottingham,  whom  she  begged  to 
stay,  and  who  induced  her  to  take  to  her  bed  at  last,  where  she 
lay  for  a  fortnight.  "  My  lord,"  she  once  said,  "  I  am  tied  with 
an  iron  collar  round  my  neck.  I  have  none  whom  I  can  trust. 
I  am  forsaken  by  all  and  left  alone.  I  have  no  hope.  All  my 
affairs  are  changed." 

Such  indeed  and  in  truth  was  the  fact,  and  in  that  final  plight, 
lapsing  into  insensibility  and  so  remaining  for  several  days,  her 
spirit  passed  away.  On  the  24th  of  March  1603  she  died  ^  at 
two  o'clock  in  the  morning. 

In  the  world's  judgment,  a  judgment  sometimes  reversed,  she 
was  the  greatest  and  most  renowned  of  the  rulers  of  England. 
Her  temporal  successes,  her  victorious  wars,  and  her  determined 
policy  had  made  this  country  more  potent  than  heretofore. 
Posterity,  it  is  assumed,  has  ratified  the  judgment  of  the  World. 

We  may  well  ask  ourselves  calmly,  some  centuries  after  her 
day,  in  what  this  woman's  so-called  '"glory"  and  "glorious 
reign  "  had  consisted  ?  Numerous  treaties  and  solemn  compacts 
with  other  sovereigns  were  notoriously  broken,  to  the  scandal  of 
diplomacy  and  the  shame  of  her  diplomatists.  Some  of  her 
naval  officers  were  little  better  than  pirates  and  adventurers. 
She  was  frequently  found  assisting  the  rebellious  subjects  of 
neighbouring  kings,  by  money,  arms,  and  moral  influence — thus, 
at  her  advisers'  suggestion,  committing  the  kingdom  and  the 
helpless  people  who  comprised    it    to   an  acceptance   of  anti- 

^  "  It  is  not  known  that  in  all  this  sickness  she  said  '  God,  help  me  ! '  or 
any  prayer  or  aspiration  calling  on  God  or  asking  His  mercy." — Li/d  of  Jane 
Dormer,  Duchess  of  Feria,  A.D.  1616,  p.  100.     London,  1SS7. 

Y 


338  THE   CHURCH    UNDER   QUEEN    ELIZABETH. 

Christian  principles.  These  still  energise  ;  while  many  of  the 
nation's  greatest  and  most  pressing  social  evils  and  political 
dangers  obviously  date  from  Elizabeth's  reign.  From  that  day 
to  this  confusion  has  never  been  absent,  and  discord  has  never 
been  banished.  While,  after  all  the  reforms  and  changes 
continually  effected,  change  is  still  desired  and  fresh  reforms  are 
being  constantly  planned. 

It  has  now  been  shown  in  the  present  historical  sketch  by 
what  method  the  changes  of  Queen  Elizabeth's  reign  were 
brought  about.  Force  constantly  triumphed  over  conscience 
and  right.  How  the  faithful  were  robbed  of  their  spiritual 
privileges  and  graces — privileges,  rights,  and  graces  bequeathed 
at  His  Ascension  by  our  Divine  Lord  to  all  the  baptized  of 
every  subsequent  age, — how,  from  the  ranks  of  those  who 
systematically  resisted  change,  a  crowd  of  martyrs  ^  were  sent  up 
to  their  well-won  rest  and  glory, — is  here  faithfully  sketched  and 
recorded.  Nothing  has  been  set  down  in  malice.  For  charity 
ever  forbids  the  raking-up  of  needless  scandals,  and  therefore 
none  which  were  needless  to  be  known  have  been  raked  up  in 
these  pages.  Some,  unearthed  from  their  obscurity,  have  been 
allowed  to  rest  again  unnoticed.  Only  those  have  been  lightly 
touched  upon,  however,  which  seemed  necessary  to  enable 
historical  truths  to  be  rightly  apprehended,  and  the  true  position 
of  the  Established  Church  under  Elizabeth  to  be  realised. 

What  it  is,  and  where  it  stands  now,  we  all  know  too  well.  Its 
position,  in  regard  to  the  domination  of  the  State  or  public 
opinion,  is  far  more  abject  than  that  of  the  contemporary 
Established  community  in  Scotland,  which  notoriously  owns 
much  greater  freedom  and  independence. 

Where  is  the  statesman,  for  instance,  who  does  not  maintain 
the  absolute  right  of  Parliament — wholly  independent  of  the 

^  The  author  of  an  article  on  "The  Elizabethan  Martyrs,"  in  the  C/iinrh 
Quarterly  Kcvieiv  for  April  1879  (pp.  98-125),  asserts  most  confidently  that 
"it  is  well  and  just  to  remember  tliat  the  Church  of  England,  as  a  Church, 
had  no  complicity  with  Elizabeth  and  the  Privy  Council  in  this  miserable 
business"  of  hauL^ing  and  quartering  priests.  The  author  of  it  is  evidently 
unacquainted  with  the  doings  of  Pilkington,  Sandys,  Chaderton,  Aylmer, 
Cowper,  and  others — all  of  whom  were  cruel  and  tormenting  persecutors. 
The  expression  "as  a  Church"  is  ambiguous  :  it  is  quite  true,  of  course,  that 
no  synodical  action  enjoined  the  use  of  torture  or  sanctioned  the  cruelties 
practised,  but  some  of  the  rulers  of  the  new  institution  were  members  of  the 
Council,  and  others  were  certainly  active  in  punishing  its  conscientious 
opponents  who  clung  to  the  ancient  faith  ;  and  in  almo^t  every  diocese  the 
bishops  led  the  way  in  these  cruelties.  I\Ioreover,  no  prelate  ever  protested 
against  them. 


THE   GROWTH   OF   ERASTIANISM.  339 

spirituality^to  regulate  the  affairs  of  the  Church  of  England 
equally  with  the  internal  arrangements  and  actual  working  of  the 
Post  Office  or  the  School  Board  ?  Where  is  the  bishop  who 
actually  and  practically  adopts,  or  dreams  of  adopting,  any  other 
principle  than  that  embodied  in  the  precedented  and  venerable 
Oath  of  Homage  ?  Where,  then,  can  be  found  the  reasonably- 
instructed  person  who,  if  not  an  Erastian,  does  not,  as  a 
consequence  of  realising  this  fact,  feel  keenly  the  moral  degrada- 
tion involved  in  accepting  such  a  position?  According  to  one 
great  authority,^  however,  Englishmen  can  no  more  escape  the 
royal  supremacy  than  they  can  shun  the  air  they  breathe, — an 
assertion,  it  may  be,  somewhat  too  sweeping  and  bold.  For  a 
system  which  has  come  to  be  despised,  and  which  appears  to 
have  made  such  demands  and  strains  on  the  solemn  oaths  of 
the  judges  to  enable  them  to  uphold  it  at  any  cost,  and  by  any 
method  ready  to  hand,  is  not  very  likely  to  enjoy  a  prolonged 
life.  Possibly  future,  and  not  very  remote,  events  may  point  a 
way  for  such  an  escape.  Possibly  even  the  existing  ecclesiastical 
newspapers  may  chronicle  its  painless  decease.  Like  Hindoo 
women  who  are  sacrificed  at  their  husbands'  funeral-pyre,  how- 
ever, other  deaths  may  occur,  and  other  feebler  institutions  soon 
die,  when  this  has  taken  place.     So  be  it.     Time  will  show. 

But  the  one  Church  of  Pentecost,  the  Ark  of  Salvation,  not 
national  but  universal,  in  the  nations,  but  not  dominated  by 
their  secular  rulers,  can  alone  bring  order  out  of  our  disorder — 
harmony  and  unity  out  of  chaos.  It  depends  not  for  success  on 
the  will  of  sovereigns,  nor  on  the  babble  of  senates,  nor  upon 
the  changeable  fancies  of  the  multitude.  It  has  a  message  to 
deliver,  clear,  concise,  consistent ;  and  this  message,  whether 
men  hear  or  whether  they  forbear,  it  delivers  with  unfaltering 

^  The  Editor  of  the  Guaniian  (June  1 8th,  1879)  specially  called  the 
attention  of  two  clergymen  to  the  exact  question  at  issue,  thus: — "Canon 
Carter  and  Mr.  Berdmore  Compton,  if  they  think  the  matter  out,  will  find 
that  they  can  no  more  escape  the  royal  supremacy  than  they  can  shun  the  air 
they  breathe.  Religious  societies  which  are  established  have  their  tribunals 
for  determination  of  differences  constituted  by  State  law,  or,  at  least, 
recognised  and  authorised  by  State  law.  Religious  societies  which  are  not 
established  no  doubt  set  up  their  own  tribunals  with  '  consensual  jurisdic- 
tion '  ;  but  these  are  always  liable  to  have  their  decisions  reviewed  on  actions 
for  breaches  of  contract  and  appeals  coinine  Wabus.  Cool-headed  and 
thoughtful  men  deem  the  interests  of  truth  (?)  more  stable  and  more  safe,  on 
the  whole,  under  the  former  system  than  under  the  latter.  But  there  is 
nothing  to  prevent  Mr.  Carter  and  his  friends  proposing  such  a  Court  of 
Appeal  as  they  can  submit  to  with  a  good  conscience.  The  difficulty  will  be 
that  any  court  that  would  satisfy  them  would  be  rejected  by  a  large  majority, 
as  we  believe,  of  lay  Churchmen  ;  and  so  would  have  slender  chance  of 
obtaining  the  necessary  legal  authority." 


340         THE   CHURCH    UNDER   QUEEN    ELIZABETH. 

utterance  and  unfailing  boldness.  When  it  is  proposed  to  halve 
or  compromise  God's  Truth,  entrusted  to  man  for  man,  the  only- 
answer  is,  or  can  be,  '"'■  Non  possumus.''  Its  terras  and  definitions, 
instead  of  being  obscure  and  ambiguous,  as  some  profess  to 
maintain,  are  only  too  clear ;  and,  though  many  deny  this,  the 
fact  is  again  and  again  the  more  apparent  as  the  years  pass  by. 

The  Reformation,  commenced  under  Henry  VIII.  and  com- 
pleted under  Elizabeth,  was  justifiable,  in  truth,  on  one  principle, 
and  one  principle  only — that  which  for  half  a  century  was 
enunciated  and  proclaimed  by  supreme  authority,  set  forth  by 
all  the  archbishops  and  bishops,  read  four  times  a  year  by  the 
ministers,  and  accepted  by  their  allies;  but  which  all  reasonably- 
informed  members  of  the  Church  of  England  now  repudiate  as 
historically  false  and  inherently  ridiculous,  viz.  "  that  laity  and 
clergy.,  learned  and  unlearned,  all  ages,  sects,  and  degrees  of  men, 
women,  and  children  of  2vhole  ChristeJidom  {aii  horrible  and  most 
dreadful  thing  to  think)  have  been  at  once  drowjied  in  abomiiiable 
idolatry,  of  all  other  vices  most  detested  of  God  and  most  damnable 
to  man,  and  that  by  the  space  of  eight  hundred  years  and  more."  ^ 

On  this  astonishing  statement  of  principle,  which  obviously 
guided  all  the  Reformers  of  Elizabeth's  reign,  the  changes,  works 
of  destruction,  and  various  frightful  cruelties  then  perpetrated, 
and  already  recorded,  might,  in  some  respects,  have  had  some 
shadow  of  justification,  but  not  otherwise. 

Those,  consequently,  who  believe  this  awful  statement  of  the 
"  Homilies "  to  be  true  (a  few  persons  still  cling  to  a  now 
exploded  tradition)  are  perfectly  justified  in  labouring  to 
maintain-  the  state  of  confusion,  disorder,  neglect,'  contradic- 

^  "Homilies  Appointed  to  be  Read  in  Churches."  Third  Part  of  the  Hoini/v 
against  Fcril  of  Idolatry,  p.  201.     Oxford,  1S16. 

^  "  It  was  the  Papists  w  ho,  as  we  all  know,  reared  the-e  abbey-churches, 
where  they  offered  mass  continually,  but  some  four  centuries  ago  the 
buildings  were  taken  away  from  them,  and  wholly  or  in  part  destroyed. 
That  this  was  really  done  with  the  approval  of  the  Most  Iligh,  no  matter 
what  instruments  were  employed,  we  cannot  doubt — the  principle  being  the 
same  as  that  which  obtained  in  the  case  of  the  idolatrous  Canaanites  who, 
when  'their  inicjuity  had  come  to  the  full,' were  driven  out  of  their  land, 
which  fell  forthwith  into  the  hands  of  the  Israelites.  Now  it  is  only  on  this 
principle  that  the  Reformation  can  be  defended.  The  Papists  were  idolaters, 
and  when  their  '  iniquity  had  come  to  the  full ' — like  the  heathen  nations  of 
Palestine  and  for  the  self-same  cause — they,  too,  were  despoiled  of  their 
possessions.  But  they  may  justly  claim  the  right  of  re-entry  if  their 
Protestant  successors  clo  the  same  things  for  which  they  themselves  were 
driven  out." — The  Rock,  a  Church  of  England  family  newspaper,  September 
26th,  1879. 

■*  Some  recent  statistics  given  to  the  world  by  the  bishops  themselves  (a.d. 
1879)  afford  some  idea  of  the  degraded  and  disgraceful  state  of  the  country. 


I 


CONSEQUENCES    IN    THE    PRESENT.  34I 

tion,  and  conflict,  which  threatens  our  beloved  country  with  the 
destruction  of  all  belief  in  any  revelation  from  God  Almighty  of 
any  sort  or  kind ;  and  which  has  its  poisonous  root  in  the 
daring  principle  of  reform  already  referred  to. 

A  recent  Bishop  of  Winchester^  recently  put  the  following 
exact  and  incisive  question  concerning  that  series  of  events 
which  has  been  partly  recorded  here — "Was  it  not  clearly,"  he 
asked  concerning  the  Reformation,  "either  a  dire  necessity  or 
a  most  dreadful  crime?" 

For  himself — fearing  neither  horn  of  this  defined  dilemma — 
the  author  is  free  to  confess  that,  though  he  never  altogether 
liked  the  account  of  those  events,  as  dressed  up  and  exhibited  by 
cunning  writers,  like  Burnet,  Hume,  and  the  late  Professor 
Blunt,  whom  as  a  youth  he  read;  yet  he  had  not  the  faintest 
conception  of  the  true  nature  of  the  proceedings  of  the  Reformers 
and  their  patrons,  until  he  began  to  study  systematically  and 
closely  their  actual  sayings  and  doings  in  historical  records  and 
contemporary  publications.  He  now  sees  what  they  were.  He 
now  knows  something  of  their  principles.  He  has  at  length 
discovered  who  was  their  Master,  and  by  whom  they  must  have 
been  instigated  to  the  work  they  so  artfully  accomplished.  No 
doubt  they  were  inspired.  The  result  of  their  successful  labours 
(which  conclusively  show  it)  is  before  our  very  eyes  in  unity 
broken,  in  authority.^  civil  as  well  as  ecclesiastical,  almost  de- 
stroyed ;  in  schism  of  every  sort  completely  justified ;  in  heresy 
at  once  fostered,  strengthened,  and  sheltered.  This  is  a  distress- 
ing discovery — a  startling  acknowledgment — a  most  painful  con- 
fession. Would  to  God  it  were  false  or  a  mere  phantasy  !  But 
alas,  alas  !  notwithstanding  what  some  of  our  highest  officers 
in  the  State  continue  to  assert^ — it  is  only  too  true. 

For  example,  in  the  diocese  of  Norwich  there  are  exactly  one  thousand  and 
fifty  churches — in  seven  hundred  and  forty-six  of  which  there  is  only  a 
monthly  communion  ;  while  in  more  than  two  hundred  it  is  only  administered 
quarterly.  In  the  diocese  of  Hereford,  containing  four  hundred  and  thirty- 
six  churches,  monthly  communion  is  the  rule  in  nearly  three  hundred.  In 
the  diocese  of  Bath  and  Wells,  where  the  churches  number  five  hundred  and 
forty-six,  there  is  no  weekly  communion  in  four  hundred  and  nine.  The 
state  of  the  Welsh  dioceses,  of  which  less  is  known,  is  even  more  deplorable. 

^  Bishop  E.  Harold  Browne. 

-  At  all  events,  the  only  true  Christian  basis  on  which  Authority  should 
rest.  All  power  belongs  to  our  Lord.  Autliority  comes  from  above,  not  from 
below  ;  from  God,  not  from  the  rabble,  as  Mr.  J.  R.  Green  has  maintained. 

'  "  The  immense  majority  of  the  clergy  and  laity  of  the  Church  of  England 
believe  tlie  Reformation  to  have  been  under  the  guidance  of  God's  Provi- 
dence, a  return  to  the  doctrine,  and  a  nearer  approach  to  the  worship,  of  the 
earliest  ages  of  the  Church  of  Christ." — Bishop  of  London's  Charge, 
November  1879. 


342  THE   CHURCH    UNDER   QUEEN    ELIZABETH. 

The  National  Church,  however,  after  all,  is  a  great  and  import- 
ant as  well  as  a  very  useful  and  valuable  institution,  and  is  the 
source  of  immense  advantage  to  the  people  of  England.  It 
teaches  them,  as  they  acknowledge,  a  reasonable  religion,  which 
satisfies  and  pleases  them, — a  religion  of  sobriety,  compromise, 
and  moderation.  This  was  made  expressly  for  them,  with  some 
art  and  greater  tact,  under  the  Tudor  monarchs ;  and  has  been 
frequently  modified  and  wisely  mended,  from  time  to  time,  in 
order  to  suit  the  variable  dispositions  and  wishes  of  majorities  of 
the  people  under  varying  circumstances  and  during  silent  revolu- 
tions. The  politician  who  proposed  to  destroy  it  would  cettainly 
incur  a  most  grave  and  serious  responsibility.  For  at  present 
there  is  obviously  nothing  sufficiently  organised  to  take  its  place. 
It  has  perhaps  lost  half  the  population, — though  this  seems 
doubtful,  as  the  Nonconformists,  though  bragging  loudly,  have 
long  feared  the  results  of  an  official  Census, — and  it  undoubtedly 
owns  considerable  mundane  vigour.  Perhaps  the  present 
activity  of  the  various  conflicting  religions  within  its  pale  is  its 
greatest  and  most  pressing  danger.  A  community  founded  on 
the  principle  of  reform,  however,  is  of  course  ever  liable  to  reform. 
The  Church  of  England,  consequently,  is  always  being  reformed 
by  the  active,  by  self-seekers,  and  by  the  prescient  amongst  its 
masters  and  pastors.  There  is  no  rest  because  of  the  labours  of 
such  ;  while,  after  all,  internal  dissensions  are  certainly  neither 
less  frequent,  less  extended,  nor  less  bitter  than  they  were  of  old. 
To  be  a  clerical  reformer — more  especially  to  reform,  and  cast  a 
slur  upon,  what  little  of  the  Christian  Faith  remains — is  sorne- 
times  to  win  the  blue  riband  of  worldly  honours  and  Authority, 
and  to  merit  the  nation's  ungrudging  applause.  Such  Reformers 
by  consequence  flourish  and  abound. 

Notwithstanding  all  such  drawbacks,  however,  the  Church  of 
England — with  perhaps  a  clear  majority  of  the  nation,  even  if 
the  indifferent  be  subtracted — seems  to  a  certain  extent  rooted 
in  their  affections,  having  been  marvellously  bound  up  with  the 
customs  and  institutions  of  the  country  for  some  centuries  ;  and 
still  exercises  an  obvious  influence  beyond  its  own  immediate 
limits.  It  has  partially  forgotten  the  hideous  heresies,  the  wick- 
edness, and  the  confusion  under  Elizabeth.  It  has  survived 
the  horrors  and  persecution  of  the  Civil  War  and  Cromwell's 
sanguinary  atrocities.  It  has  lived  through  the  legal  expulsion  of 
the  Nonconformists,  the  intrusion  of  William  the  Dutchman,  and 
the  bold  breach  made  by  the  Nonjurors— long  ago  extinct.  The 
mischievous  influence  of  Deism,  Latitudinarianism,  and  the 
Hanoverian  Erastians,  though  chilling  and  deadly,  was  partially 


THE   CHURCH   OF   ENGLAND   REVIVING.  343 

cast  out.  Then  Joseph  Butler  wrote,  a  master  and  a  guide. 
Wesley  and  Whitfield  preached  to  the  dry  bones  in  our  very  dry 
valley;  while,  later  on,  Keble,  learning  the  Catholic  faith  con- 
cerning the  Eucharist  and  Our  Lady  in  middle  life,  sang  so 
beautifully  ^  that  Englishmen  listened  and  learnt ;  and  thus  their 
sentiments  now  happily  are  neither  so  ambiguous  and  inexact  as 
heretofore  regarding  the  faith  of  their  fathers,  nor  are  their 
prejudices  either  so  grotesque  or  so  deep  as  once  they  were. 
Foxe,  the  so-called  "  martyrologist "  has  been  found  out;  while 
the  historical  artifices  and  arts  of  Gilbert  Burnet,  the  Scotchman, 
are  now  more  truly  and  properly  appraised.  For  all  this,  no 
Christian  Englishman  can  be  too  heartily  grateful. 

As  regards  "  Our  Church  "  and  country,  we  have  lived  to  see 
great  changes  both  abroad  and  at  home,  in  our  colonies  and 
dependencies  as  w^ell  as  in  England.  Even  greater  seem  likely 
to  ensue.  The  seeds  of  Paganism,  strange  to  note,  are  springing 
up  on  Christian  soil.  Of  old,  for  example,  the  resolution  and 
might  of  the  Turks  often  alarmed  Europe  in  bygone  ages  ;  now 
their  social  decay  and  abject  weakness  actively  stimulate  its 
jealousies.  At  the  "  Reformation  "  at  home,  abbeys  and  churches 
were  destroyed  by  thousands ;  now  they  are  being  restored  and 
rebuilt.  Ugliness  and  baldness  were  then  popular ;  now  Art  has 
once  more  become  the  proper  handmaid  of  religion.  Then, 
again,  some  kind  of  spiritual  independence  has  already  been 
secured  in  Canada,  South  Africa,  and  elsewhere ;  while  "  Bishops 
by  Letters  Patent "  seem  likely  to  become  an  extinct  race. 
Anciently  the  prejudices  of  our  own  people  were  intense  even  to 
absurdity,  as  regards  the  faith  of  their  forefathers  and  the  Primate 
of  Christendom,  both  of  which  they  feared  as  well  as  hated  ;  now 
the  modern  principle  of  civil  and  religious  liberty,  commended 
even  by  a  Roman  Catholic  historian, ^  but  perhaps  even  now  a 
little  run  to  seed,  has  done  something  towards  blunting  the 
weapons  of  professional  controversialists,  and  securing  a  fair  field 
and  no  favour  even  for  those  who  have  so  consistently  maintained 
the  value  and  importance  of  Authority,  existing  on  a  Christian 
basis. 

For  our  manifold  religious  evils  there  is  but  one  true  and  effi- 
cient remedy — corporate  reunion  with  the  rest  of  the  Christian 

^  The  enormous  sale  of  "The  Christian  Year,"  beyond  that  of  any  other 
contemporary  poetry,  and  the  unparalleled  success  of  "  Hymns  Ancient  and 
Modern,"  proves  what  an  influence  poetry  and  verse  may  exercise  on  all 
classes  of  a  nation. 

^  The  History  of  England,  by  John  Lingard,  D.D. ,  vol.  vi.  p.  324. 
Dublin,   1874. 


344         THE   CHURCH   UNDER   QUEEN    ELIZABETH. 

family ;  not  to  be  attained  by  the  presence  or  act  of  compromise 
nor  by  the  sacrifice  of  trutli,  nor  by  the  rejection  of  Authority 
nor  by  flattering  the  rabble  that  Authority  of  right  belongs  to 
them — the  ignoble  work  even  of  certain  of  the  clergy.  If  there 
be  a  union  or  compact  for  united  action  amongst  the  enemies  of 
Christianity  to  maim  and  destroy  and  overturn  ;  surely,  on  the 
other  hand,  there  should  be  active  co-operation  and  harmony 
amongst  the  servants  of  the  Crucified,  to  repair,  to  restore,  and 
to  build  up  again  anew.  Some  are  beginning  to  see  this,^  and 
to  adopt  a  wise  and  far-sighted  policy  of  peace  and  co-operation. 
For  "union  is  strength."-  No  scheme  of  union  founded  on  self- 
seeking  or  self-pleasing  can  be  lasting.  Its  only  sure  foundation 
is  Christian  Authority — based  on  the  Rock  of  Divine  Truth. 

To  effect  this,  men  must  be  patient  and  enduring.  The  insults 
of  the  Erastians  (who  have  been  put  into  places  of  trust  and 
high  office  because  they  are  Erastians)  are  sometimes  difficult  to 
bear;^    the   studied     contumely   which    some    in    ecclesiastical 

•^  At  a  meeting  of  those  interested  in  the  reunion  of  Christendom,  held  at 
the  Westminster  Palace  Hotel,  on  July  8th,  1879,  the  chair  being  taken  by 
the  Earl  Nelson,  the  following  resolutions  were  proposed  and  carried  unani- 
mously : — (i)  "That  the  movement  of  1S33  can  only  attain  its  proper  and 
adequate  completion  in  the  corporate  reunion  of  Christendom  ;  "  (2)  "That 
'the  religious  difficulty'  in  Christian  countries,  and  the  failure  of  missionary 
enterpri.se  to  affect  sensibly  the  vast  masses  of  heathendom,  are  at  once  a 
record  and  a  warning  of  the  fatal  consequences  of  disunion;"  (3)  "That 
there  is  much  in  the  present  attitude  both  of  the  religious  and  the  irreligious 
world,  as  well  to  encourage  the  hopes  as  to  deepen  the  zeal  of  those  who  aie 
labouring  for  the  restoration  of  visible  unity." 

-  See  the  various  interesting  documents  on  this  important  subject  given  in 
Appendix  No.  H. 

^  The  Erastian  principle  appears  to  be  steadily  making  way  abroad,  under 
the  Archbishop's  patronage  and  authority.  For  example,  the  Barbadocs 
Aoriciiltitral  Kcpoiicr  of  June  27lh,  1S79,  has  the  following  remarkable 
paragraph  in  its  leading  columns  : — "  The  impulsive  and  indiscreet  Bishop  of 
the  diocese  (Dr.  INIitchinson)  has  again,  as  usual,  been  using  his  best  endeav- 
ours to  earn  himself  what  is  now  technically  expressed  by  the  stereotyped 
phrase,  'unenviable  notoriety,'  this  time  in  gratuitously  mutilating  our  beau- 
tiful marriage  service  by  oinilting  the  names  of  the  Second  and  Third  Persons 
of  the  Blessed  Trinity,  zvhile  reading:;  the  Sciince,  in  order  to  fander  to  the 
religions  viezvs  of  a  scion  of  the  Hebreru  race  in  this  coinniiinity,  lately  united 
in  wedlock  at  the  Cathedral  to  a  Protestant  lady  by  his  lordship,  who  nnder- 
took  to  perform  the  Service  when  no  other  clergyman  could  be  found  to  do  so. 
The  most  profound  sensation  has  been  erected  by  this  unseemly,  indecorous, 
unepiscopal,  unprotestant,  and  unprecedented  little  illegal  faux  pas  of  his 
lordship  ;  and  it  is  the  opinion  of  many  that  he  can  and  ought  to  be  brought 
to  book  for  presuming  to  do,  in  Barbadocs,  wliat  the  Archl^ishop  of  Canter- 
bury would  not  dare  attempt  to  do  in  England."  Another /r^A;;,'''' of  Dr. 
Tait,  the  Bishop  of  Gibraltar,  in  his  last  Pastoral  Letter,  writes  as  follows 
concerning  a  school  at  Tunis,  which  he  visited,  supported  by  English  money  : 
—  "The   boys'   school  had  on  its  books  one  hundred   and  forty,  the  girls' 


CONCLUSIVE   REFLECTIONS.  345 

authority  deliberately  throw  upon  the  Catholic  movement  is  often 
irritating  to  those  who  have  to  endure  it.  But  to  be  irritated  is 
neither  wise  nor  Christian,  and,  in  the  long  run,  promotes  no 
cause.  AVhen  once,  therefore, — in  the  light  both  of  Reformation- 
revelations  and  recent  events ^ — the  true  character  of  the  Estab- 
lishment is  apprehended  and  taken  in ;  when  the  windows  of 
the  mind  have  been  cleaned ;  when  foolish  ideals  of  actual  facts 
have  fallen  down  like  Dagon,  and  dusty  cobwebs  of  some  anti- 
quity have  been  carefully  brushed  away  :  when  the  individual 
sight  is  clearer — other  people's  green  spectacles  being  put  away 
— and  the  actual  light  is  stronger,  many  more  will  be  able  to 
see  that,  in  its  chief  phase,  the  National  Church  ot  England  is 
indeed  "  of  the  earth  earthy,"  and  that  the  official  utterances  and 
action  of  its  rulers  constantly  proclaim  that  fact.  With  some 
persons,  ere  they  can  realise  this,  patience  and  research  are 
needed.  As  an  expressive  Arab  proverb  declares  for  those  who 
are  over-impulsive  or  too  zealously  random — "  He  has  all  things 
who  waits."  Let  us  wait,  therefore,  in  faith  and  in  confidence, 
but  at  the  same  time  let  us  work  with  discretion,  charity,  and 
zeal. 

school  two  hundred  and  sixty  members.  Though  they  are  taught  the 
doctrines  of  the  Christian  rehgion,  and  lepeated  to  me  long  passages  of  Holy 
Scripture,  none  are  baptized  Clu-istians ;  they  are  deferred  from  taking  this 
step,  as  I  am  informed,  by  fear  of  persecution" — "A  Pastoral  Letter,"  by  C. 
\Y.  Sandford,  U.D.,  p.  28.      London,  1879. 

1  A  new  crisis  has  arisen  ...  It  is  found  to  the  sorrow  and  shame  of 
many  that  the  spiritual  freedom  of  the  Church,  together  with  the  actual  juris- 
diction of  its  episcopate,  is  practically  extinct.  And,  having  been  forced  by 
the  invasion  and  active  powers  of  these  evils  to  investigate  more  closely 
the  whole  history  and  condition  of  the  Established  Church  since  the  Tudor 
changes,  certain  other  defects  and  abuses  have  become  evident  to  the 
Founders  of  this  Order  which  urgently  call  for  remedy."— "Statement  con- 
cerning the  Order  of  Corporate  Reunion,  a.d.  iS'77."  See  Appendix, 
No.  li. 


APPENDIX    I 


A  LIST  OF  MARTYRS  WHO  SUFFERED  UNDER 
QUEEN  ELIZABETH. 

"  What  Christian  can  be  found  who  after  reading  the  well-substantiated 
narratives  of  their  pilil'ul  sufferings,  their  ardent  zeal  for  the  souls  of  others, 
their  joyous  endurance  of  excruciating  trials,  and  their  fortitude  in  approach- 
ing a  death  of  peculiar  agony,  could  dare  to  deny  their  genuine  title  to  the 
martyr's  crown  ?  Through  much  tribulation  we  must  enter  into  the  kingdom 
of  God  ;  and  well  will  it  be  for  us,  if  we  have  marched  as  far  as  that  noble 
army  on  the  royal  way  of  the  holy  Cross." — The  CJmixh  Quarterly  Revieiv, 
vol.  viii.  pp.  124,  125.      London,  1879. 


Cuthbert  Maine,  priest,  born  at  Yarlston,  near  Barnstaple,  Devonshire. 
Student  of  St.  John's  College,  Oxford,  and,  after  his  conversion,  of  Douay 
College.  Apprehended  at  Volveden,  near  Truro,  tried  at  Launceston,  and 
condemned  for  high  treason  ;  hung,  drawn,  and  quartered  at  Launceston, 
November  29,  1577. 

John  Nelson,  priest,  son  of  Sir  N.  Nelson,  Knt.,  born  at  Shelton,  near 
York.  Student  at  Douay.  Taken  prisoner  in  London,  condemned  for 
denying  the  queen's  supremacy,  and  executed  in  the  usual  manner  as  a  traitor 
at  Tybourne,  February  3,  I57s- 

Thomas  Sherwood,  scholar,  born  in  London  ;  educated  at  Douay.  Appre- 
hended, tried,  and  condemned  in  London  for  denying  the  queen's  supremacy  ; 
executed  at  Tybourne,  being  cut  down  while  yet  alive,  dismembered,  dis- 
embowelled, and  quartered  on  February  7,  I57g. 

Everard  Hanse,  priest,  was  born  in  Northamptonshire  ;  educated  at 
Cambridge,  and  ordained  a  clergyman  of  the  Church  of  England.  A  con- 
vert, studied  at  Rheims,  and  was  ordained  a  Roman  Catholic  priest  on  March 
25,  15S1.  He  was  apprehended  while  visiting  prisoners  in  the  MarshaJsea 
prison,  and  cast  into  Newgate  amongst  thieves,  and  loaded  with  irons.  He 
was  condemned  for  high  treason  and  sentenced  to  be  hung,  drawn,  and 
quartered.      He  suffered  at  Tybourne  on  July  31,  1581. 

Edmund  Campion,  priest,  S.J.,  was  born  in  London  ;  educated  first  at 
Christchurch  Hospital ;    student  of  St.   John's  College,    Oxford  ;    ordained 

347 


)4S 


THE   CHURCH    UNDER   QUEEN   ELIZABETH. 


deacon  of  the  Church  of  England.  After  his  conversion  he  studied  at  Douay, 
was  admitted  into  the  Society  of  Jesus  at  Rome,  in  1573.  Coming  to  England 
in  15S0,  he  laboured  in  his  vocation  for  thirteen  months,  and  was  taken  at 
the  house  of  Mr.  Vates  of  Lyford.  He  was  brought  to  London,  and  after 
being  cruelly  racked  and  tortured,  was  arraigned  and  condemned  for  high 
treason,  but  ofiered  life  and  one  hundred  pounds  a  year  if  he  would  change 
his  religion.  He  suffered  in  the  usual  manner,  being  hung,  disembowelled, 
and  quartered  at  Tybourne,  December  I,  15S1,  aged  forty-two. 

Ralphe  Sherwine,  priest.  He  was  born  at  Rodesley,  near  Langford,  Derby- 
shire. Student  and  Fellow  of  Exeter  College,  Oxford.  A  convert  in  1575, 
and  studied  at  Douay  until  he  was  made  priest  in  1577.  On  his  return  to 
England  he  was  soon  after  taken  in  London,  in  November  1580.  After 
being  twice  cruelly  racked  and  imprisoned  for  seven  months,  he  was  arraigned 
and  condemned  for  high  treason.  Six  months  afterwards  he  was  martyred 
by  being  hung,  drawn,  and  quartered  at  Tybourne  on  December  i,  1581. 

Alexander  Brian,  priest,  S.J-.  was  born  in  Dorsetshire,  and  studied  at 
Hart  Hall,  Oxford;  a  convert,  and  afterwards  a  student  of  Douay,  A.u. 
1576;  returned  to  England  a  priest  in  1579,  and  apprehended  in  London 
28th  April  158 1.  After  cruel  racking  and  torturing,  he  was  condemned  and 
sentenced  as  a  traitor  to  be  hung,  disembowelled,  and  quartered,  which 
sentence  was  executed  upon  him  at  Tybourne,  December  I,  1 581.  Before 
his  death  he  was  admitted  into  the  Society  of  Jesus. 

John  Paine,  priest,  born  in  Northamptonshire.  Admitted  into  the  English 
College  at  D.iuay  in  1575;  ordained  priest  the  following  year,  and  sent 
upon  the  English  mission.  He  resided  chiefly  at  the  house  of  Lady  Petre 
in  Essex,  was  apprehended  in  1581,  and  brought  to  the  Tower  of  London, 
where  he  was  cruelly  racked.  He  was  tried  at  Chelmsford  in  Essex,  and 
condemned  to  suffer  for  high  treason  in  the  usual  manner,  but  offered 
life  if  he  would  go  to  church.  The  sentence  was  carried  out  on  April  2, 
1582. 

Thomas  Forde,  priest,  was  born  in  Devonshire ;  graduated  at  Trinity 
College,  Oxford  ;  took  his  degree  of  Master  of  Arts  in  1567,  and  admitted 
Fellow  of  that  college  soon  afterwards.  Became  a  Roman  Catholic  and 
entered  the  seminary  at  Douay  in  1571  ;  ordained  priest  in  1573.  He 
returned  to  England  and  laboured  for  some  years  upon  the  mission,  and  was 
taken,  together  with  Father  Campion,  in  the  house  of  Mr.  Yates  at  Lyford 
in  Berkshire.  He  was  tried  and  received  sentence  of  death  in  London  on 
November  21,  1581,  but  was  not  executed  until  May  28,  1582. 

John  Shert,  priest,  was  born  in  Cheshire :  educated  at  Brazenose  College, 
Oxford,  where  he  took  a  B.A.  degree  in  1566.  He  became  a  convert,  and 
stutlied  at  Douay,  from  whence  he  was  sent  to  Rome,  when  he  was  made 
priest,  and  thence  proceeded  to  the  College  at  Rheims.  From  thence  he 
came  to  England,  in  1579,  and  laboured  in  his  vocation  until  he  was  taken 
prisoner  on  July  14,  1581.  He  was  tried  and  condemned  to  suffer  as  a 
traitor,  which  sentence  was  put  into  execution  at  Tybourne  on  ^Lay  28,  15S2. 

Robert  Johnson,  priest,  was  born  in  Shropshire  ;  educated  at  Douay  ;  was 
made  priest  and  sent  upon  the  English  mission  in  1576.  On  December  5, 
1580,  having  been  jireviously  in  some  other  prison,  he  was  sent  to  the  Tower, 
and  there,  at  three  different  times,  cruelly  racked.     In  November  following, 


APPENDIX    I.  349 

he  was  arraigned  and  condemned,  as  being  a  traitor,  to  be  hung,  drawn,  and 
quartered,  but  was  not  executed  until  the  28th  May  15S2. 

William  Filbie,  priest,  was  a  native  of  Oxford,  and  educated  there  at 
Lincoln  College.  He  became  a  convert,  and  went  over  to  Douay  or  Rheims, 
where  he  was  made  priest  in  15S1.  Returning  to  England,  he  was  appre- 
hended at  the  house  of  Mr.  Yates  of  Lyford  at  the  same  time  with  Father 
Campion  and  his  companions  ;  committed  to  the  Tower  on  July  22,  arraigned 
and  condemned  the  following  November  20.  For  six  months  he  remained  in 
prison,  cruelly  pinioned  with  heavy  iron  manacles,  and  suffered  at  Tybourne 
the  usual  death  of  a  traitor  on  May  30,  15S2,  aged  twenty-seven. 

Luke  Kirby,  priest,  was  born  in  Yorkshire,  either  at  Durham  or  Richmond. 
He  was  Master  of  Arts  at  one  of  the  English  Universities,  but  after  his  con- 
version went  to  Douay,  and  was  made  a  priest  there  in  1577.  He  returned 
to  England,  after  having  been  at  the  English  College  at  Rome  for  some  time, 
in  15S0,  and  was  soon  alter  apprehended  and  committed  to  the  Tower.  There 
he  endured  the  tortureof  "the  scavenger's  daughter."  He  was  sentenced  to 
death  at  the  same  time  and  for  the  same  cause  with  father  Campion  and 
others,  but  was  not  executed  until  May  28,  1582. 

Laurence  Richardson,  alias  Johnson,  priest,  was  born  in  Lancashire  ; 
educated  at  Brazenose  College,  Oxford,  of  which  he  was  a  Fellow,  but  on 
his  conversion  went  over  to  the  Douay  College  in  1573,  where  he  was  made 
priest  in  1577.  He  laboured  in  his  native  county,  Lancashire,  until  his 
apprehension  in  15S1.  On  November  21  of  that  year  he  was  condemned  to 
die  the  death  of  a  traitor,  and  executed  on  the  30th  of  May  1582,  being  hung, 
drawn,  and  quartered  at  Tybourne. 

Thomas  Cottam,  priest,  was  born  in  Lancashire,  and  educated  at  Brazenose 
College,  Oxford,  where  he  took  his  B.A.  degree  in  156S.  For  some  time 
afterwards  he  was  a  schoolmaster  in  London,  but  becoming  a  Roman  Catholic 
he  went  over  to  Douay.  From  thence  he  went  to  Rome  and  entered  the 
Society  of  Jesus.  He  returned  to  England  in  1580,  and  was  taken  and 
tried  at  Westminster  with  Father  Campion  and  others.  On  the  30th  of  May 
following  (1582),  he  was  executed  at  Tybourne  in  the  usual  manner. 

William  Lacy,  priest,  was  born  at  Hanton  in  Yorkshire,  in  which  county 
he  for  some  time  held  a  place  of  trust  under  Queen  Elizabeth.  His  house 
was  ever  open  to  the  seminary  priests  from  abroad,  to  whom  he  rendered 
every  assistance  in  his  power.  On  his  wife's  death,  though  now  advanced  in 
years,  he  resolved  on  dedicating  the  remainder  of  his  life  to  God's  service  as  a 
priest;  He  went  over  to  Rheims,  where  he  studied  divinity,  and  from  thence 
went  to  Pont-a-musson  in  Lorraine,  and  afterwards  to  Rome,  where  he  was 
made  priest.  Returning  to  England  in  1 580,  he  laboured  in  his  own  county 
of  Yorkshire,  with  great  fruit,  for  about  two  years.  He  was  apprehended  at 
York  on  July  22,  1582,  and  committed  to  the  castle  there,  and  loaded  with 
irons.  He  was  sentenced  to  die  for  high  treason,  and  executed  at  York  on 
August  22,  15S2. 

Richard  Kirkeman,  priest,  was  born  at  Adingham,  in  Yorkshire,  of  a  good 
family.  He  studied  at  Douay,  and  was  made  priest  and  sent  upon  the  mission 
in  1578.  He  laboured  in  the  northern  provinces,  where  he  was  stopped  upon 
a  journey,  near  Wakefield,  and  sent  to  prison.  He  was  tried  at  York,  where 
he  was  condemned  for  high  treason— "First,  for  being  a  priest  of  Douay; 


350  THE   CHURCH   under   queen    ELIZABETH. 

secondly,  for  persuading  the  queen's  sulijects  to  the  Catholic  religion."     He 
was  executed  in  the  usual  manner  at  York  on  August  22,  1582. 

Tames  Thompson,  priest,  was  a  native  of  Yorkshire,  in  the  western  part  near 
"N'ork.  He  went  over  to  the  college  at  Rheims,  was  made  priest  there,  and 
sent  on  the  mission  to  England  in  1581.  He  was  apprehended  at  York  on 
the  nth  of  August  1582,  and  on  November  25  was  lirought  to  trial  and  con- 
demned. He  received  his  sentence  of  death  with  great  joy,  and  was  hung, 
drawn,  and  quartered  at  York  on  November  28,  1582. 

William  Hart,  priest,  was  born  at  Wells  in  Somersetshire  ;  educated  at 
Lincoln  College,  Oxford,  where  he  greatly  distinguished  himself.  From 
thence  he  passed  over  to  Douay,  and  removed  with  the  rest  of  the  students 
to  Rheims  in  1578.  Afterwards  he  studied  at  the  English  College  at  Rome, 
where  he  was  made  priest,  and  sent  upon  the  mission.  He  laboured  chiefly 
about  York,  visiting  the  Catholic  prisoners  and  edifying  the  faithful  by  his 
exceeding  charity,  zeal,  and  devotion.  He  was  apprehended  with  others 
after  assisting  at  mass  at  York  Castle,  but  then  escaped.  He  was,  however, 
again  taken  six  months  afterwards  and  imprisoned  at  York  Castle,  where  he 
was  heavily  ironed.  He  was  tried  and  condemned  for  high  treason,  and 
suffered  at  York  on  March  15,  158I. 

Richard  Thirkill,  or  Thirkeld,  priest,  was  born  at  Cunsley  in  the  Bishopric 
of  Durham.  His  early  history  is  uncertain,  but  it  seems  that  he  was  advanced 
in  age  when  he  went  abroad  to  Douay  and  Rheims,  and  was  then  made  priest 
in  the  year  1579.  flis  mission  was  chiefly  in  and  about  York,  where  he  was 
apprehended  on  suspicion  of  being  a  priest,  while  visiting  a  Catholic  prisoner. 
He  was  confined  at  Kilcote  prison,  but  removed  to  York  Castle,  and  from 
thence  to  trial  and  execution.  He  suffered  in  the  usual  manner  for  high 
treason  on  May  29,  1583. 

John  Slade  was  born  in  Dorsetshire,  and  after  his  education  at  home  be- 
came a  student  at  Douay.  Returning  to  England,  and,  on  account  of  his 
religion,  being  unable  to  exercise  his  talent  as  a  lawyer,  he  became  a  school- 
master. He  was  apprehended  for  zealously  maintaining  the  Old  Religion  and 
denying  the  queen's  supremacy,  and  tried  and  condemned  at  Winchester.  He 
was  hung,  drawn,  and  quartered  at  that  city,  October  30,  1583. 

John  Body,  ALA.,  was  born  at  Wells  in  Somersetshire  ;  educated  at  New 
College,  Oxford,  where  he  took  his  degree,  but,  disliking  the  Established 
religion,  went  over  to  Douay  in  May  1577.  He  was  apprehended  at  the 
same  time  as  Mr.  Slade,  with  whom  he  is  commonly  associated,  and  tried  and 
condemned  with  him  at  ^Vinchester  for  the  same  cause.  He  suffered  the 
traitor's  death,  with  great  constancy,  at  Andover  on  November  2,  1583. 

George  Haydock,  priest,  was  son  of  Evan  William  Haydock,  Esq.,  of 
C<ittam  Hall,  near  Preston,  Lancashire.  He  was  educated  at  Douay,  and 
afterwards  studied  at  Rome  and  Rheims,  where  he  was  made  priest.  He 
returned  to  England  in  158^,  and  had  scarcely  arrived  in  London  when  he 
was  betrayed  and  apprehended  (February  6).  He  was  offered  his  liberty  if 
he  would  renounce  the  Pope.  Refusing  to  do  this,  he  was  examined  by 
Popham  the  Attorney-Ceneral,  and  afterwards  by  Cecil,  and  then  sent  to  the 
Tower.  Here  he  remained  for  two  years,  closely  confined  and  watched,  and 
deprived  of  all  human  comfort  and  assistance.  He  was  tried  at  Westminster 
on  February  6,  two  years  after  his  apprehension,  and  condemned  for  high 
treason.     Ilis  execution  took  place  at  Ty bourne  on  February  12,  1584. 


APPENDIX    I.  351 

Tames  Fenn,  priest,  was  born  at  Montacute  in  Somersetshire,  and  educated 
first  at  New  College,  Oxford,  and  afterwards  at  Corpus  Christi.  Being 
unable  to  take  the  Oath  of  Supremacy  tendered  him  when  about  to  be  made 
a  Fellow  of  his  college,  he  was  expelled,  and  became  first  a  tutor,  and  after- 
wards steward  to  Sir  Nicholas  Poyntz.  lie  quitted  this  worldly  employment 
to  become  a  priest,  and  after  studying  at  Rheims,  was  ordained  there,  1580, 
and  sent  upon  the  English  mission.  He  laboured  in  Somersetshire  for  a 
short  time,  and  was  apprehended  and  sent  to  llchester  gaol.  From  thence 
he  was  conveyed  to  London  and  imprisoned  in  the  Marshalsea  for  two  years. 
He  was  tried  and  condemned  for  high  treason,  and  suffered  at  Tybourne  in 
the  usual  manner,  February  12,  15S4. 

Thomas  Hemerford,  or  Emeriord,  was  born  in  Dorsetshire,  and  educated 
at  Oxford,  but  being  dissatisfied  with  the  Established  religion,  went  to  Rheims, 
and  from  thence  to  Rome,  where  he  was  ordained  a  priest,  about  15S1.  Re- 
turning to  England,  he  was  taken  prisoner  and  tried,  and  executed  at  the  same 
time  and  manner  as  Mr.  Haydock  and  Mr.  Fenn,  February  12,  15SI. 

John  Nutter,  priest,  was  born  at  Burnley  in  Lancashire,  and  educated  at 
the  University  of  Oxford,  where  he  was  admitted  Bachelor  of  Divinity,  June 
13,  1575.  Afterwards,  on  his  conversion,  he  went  abroad  to  Rheims,  was 
made  priest  in  1582,  and  sent  upon  the  mission.  He  was  apprehended  im- 
mediately upon  landing  in  England,  and  committed  to  the  Marshalsea. 
After  being  confined  there  about  a  year,  he  was  tried  and  condemned  at 
Westminster  for  being  a  Catholic  priest  and  denying  the  queen's  supre- 
macy. His  execution  took  place  at  Tybourne,  with  four  other  priests,  on 
February  12,  158I. 

John  Munden,  or  Mundyn,  priest,  was  born  at  Maperton,  Dorsetshire  ; 
educated  at  New  College,  Oxford,  where  he  was  admitted  Fellow  in  1562. 
He  was  deprived  of  his  Fellowship  for  being  a  Catholic,  in  1566,  and  after 
many  years  went  abroad,  where  he  was  made  priest,  either  at  Rheims  or 
Rome,  in  1582.  He  returned  to  England,  and  was  apprehended  for  being  a 
priest,  about  the  end  of  February  15SI,  and  was  committed  to  the  Tower, 
where  he  remained  a  prisoner  for  about  a  year  before  being  brought  to  trial. 
On  the  6ih  and  7th  of  February  1585,  he  was  tried  and  condemned,  at  the 
same  time,  and  for  the  same  cause,  as  the  other  four  last  treated  of.  He 
received  his  sentence  with  great  joy  and  cheerfulness,  and  was  executed  with 
his  companions  at  Tybourne  on  February  12. 

William  Carter,  a  printer,  was  hanged,  drawn,  and  quartered  at  Tybourne 
on  January  11,  1585,  for  printing  a  "Treatise  on  Schism  "  against  Catholics 
attending  the  Protestant  services. 

James  Bell,  priest,  was  born  at  Warrington  in  Lancashire,  brought  up  at 
Oxford,  and  ordained  in  Queen  Mary's  days.  He  conformed  to  the  New 
Religion  upon  Queen  Elizabeth's  accession,  but  was  reclaimed  in  1581.  In 
I  s8j  he  was  apprehended  by  a  pursuivant,  committed  to  Manchester  gaol,  and 
afterwards  tried  at  Lancaster  for  the  supremacy,  together  with  three  others. 
He  suffered  the  usual  traitor's  death  on  April  20,  1584,  with  great  joy  and 
constancy,  being  then  sixty  years  old. 

John  Finch  was  born  at  Eccleston  in  Lancashire,  and  brought  up  a  Pro- 
testant. He  became  a  zealous  and  fervent  convert,  and  assisted  the  clergy  in 
their  labours  in  every  possible  way.     At  length  he  was  apprehended,  and 


OD- 


THE   CHURCH    UNDER   QUEEN    ELIZABETH. 


when  neither  by  threats  nor  promises  they  could  induce  him  to  "go  to 
church,"  he  was  shamefully  maltreated,  being  violently  dragged  through  the 
streets,  his  head  beating  all  the  way  upon  the  stones.  He  was  then  thrust 
into  a  dark,  stinking  dungeon,  with  nothing  to  lie  on  but  the  bare  wet 
floor.  Here  they  kept  him  for  whole  weeks  together,  sometimes  for  months, 
not  to  speak  of  innumerable  other  sufferings  which  he  endured  for  many 
years.  He  was  brought  to  trial  at  Lancaster  for  asserting  the  Pope's  supre- 
macy, found  guilty  of  high  treason,  and  executed  on  the  following  day,  April 
20,  15S4,  together  with  ^Ir.  Bell. 

Richard  White,  born  at  Llangdlos,  Montgomeryshire,  was  educated  at 
Cambridge.  He  was  for  some  time  a  schoolmaster,  first  at  Wrexham,  and 
then  at  Orton,  in  Flintshire.  He  was  reconciled  to  the  Catholic  Cliurch, 
and  soon  afterwards  apprehended  and  committed  to  Ruthin  gaol,  where  he 
lay  three  months  loaded  with  chains.  Being  brought  to  trial,  he  was  offered 
pardon  if  he  would  once  go  to  church,  but  refusing,  was  again  returned  to 
prison.  The  following  year  he  was  carried  by  force  to  church,  and  then  put 
in  the  stocks  and  suffered  many  indignities.  Fie  afterwards  was  cruelly 
tortured  at  Bewdley,  and  finally  suffered  death  for  denying  the  queen's 
supremacy,  at  Wrexham  in  Denbighshire,  October  17,  15S4,  being  cut  down 
alive,  and  butchered  in  a  most  cruel  manner, 

Thomas  Alfield,  priest,  was  born  in  Gloucestershire ;  studied  at  Rheims, 
where  he  was  made  priest  in  1581.  He  came  over  to  England,  and  was  a 
prisoner  in  15S2.  He  was  cruelly  tortured  in  prison  for  dispersing,  with  the 
help  of  one  Thomas  Webley,  a  dyer,  copies  of  Cardinal  Allen's  "Modest 
Answer  to  the  English  Persecutors,"  and  being  brought  to  trial,  together  with 
\Vebley,  they  both  were  condemned  and  executed  at  Tybourne  on  July  5, 
1585.  Both  were  offered  life  if  they  would  renounce  the  Pope  and  acknow- 
ledge the  queen's  spiritual  supremacy. 

Hugh  Taylor,  priest,  was  born  at  Durham  ;  studied  at  Rheims,  where  he 
was  made  priest  in  1584,  and  then  sent  upon  the  English  mission.  He  was 
apprehended  in  the  following  year,  and  tried  and  condemned  at  York  for 
being  a  priest  and  denying  the  queen's  supremacy.  He  was  drawn,  hanged, 
and  quartered  at  York,  November  26,  1585. 

Marmaduke  Bowes,  a  married  gentleman,  of  Angram  Grange,  near  Apple- 
ton,  in  Cleveland,  was  executed  at  the  same  time  with  Mr,  Taylor,  for 
having  entertained  the  latter  at  his  house. 

Thomas  Crowther,  priest,  was  born  in  Herefordshire  ;  educated  and  ordained 
at  Douay  in  1575.  He  died  in  the  Marshalsea,  after  about  two  years' 
imprisonment. 

Edward  I'oole,  priest,  sent  from  Rheims  in  1580,  was  apprehended  and 
cast  into  prison  the  same  year. 

Laurence  Vaux,  formerly  warden  of  Manchester,  sometime  convictor  of 
the  College  of  Douay  or  Rheims,  afterwards  a  canon  regular,  was  cast  into 
the  Gatehouse  prison,  together  with  N.  Tichbourne,  Esq.,  by  Aylmer, 
Bishop  of  London,  in  15S0,  and  died  there  the  same  year. 

Edward  Strancham,  whom  Stow  in  his  Annals  calls  Edmund  Barber,  by 
which  name  he  disguised  himself  upon  t!ie  mission,  w  as  born  at  Oxford,  and 


APPENDIX   I.  353 

educated  at  St.  John's  College,  where  he  took  his  B.A.  degree  in  I57f. 
Soon  after  he  went  over  to  Douay  and  afterwards  to  Rheims,  where  he  was 
ordained  priest  and  sent  to  England  in  June  1581.  He  suffered  at  Tybourne, 
January  21,  158^,  for  being  a  priest. 

Nicholas  Woodfen,  alias  Wheeler,  priest,  was  a  native  of  Leominster  in 
Herefordshire,  and  studied  at  Douay  and  Rheims,  where  he  was  made  priest 
and  sent  upon  the  mission  at  the  same  time  with  the  above  Edward  Strancham. 
He  was  apprehended,  tried,  and  executed  at  the  same  time  and  place 
(January  21,  158^)  for  being  a  priest. 

William  Thompson,  alias  Blackburn,  made  priest  at  Rheims,  was  con 
demned  and  executed  at  Tybourne,  for  remaining  in  England,  on  April  20, 
15SI. 

Richard  Lee,  alias  Long,  made  priest  at  Lyons,  was,  together  with  the 
above,  drawn,  hung,  and  quartered  on  April  20,  15SI. 

Richard  Sergeant,  alias  Long,  was  born  in  Gloucestershire,  and  was  an 
alumnus  and  priest  of  the  college  at  Rheims.  He  was  apprehended,  tried, 
and  condemned  simply  for  being  a  priest  and  remaining  in  the  kingdom,  and 
suffered  at  Tybourne  on  April  20,  15S6. 

William  Thompson,  alias  Blackburn,  priest,  born  at  Blackburn,  Lancashire, 
suffered  at  the  same  time  and  for  the  same  cause  as  the  above. 

Robert  Anderton,  born  of  an  honourable  family  in  Lancaster,  and 

William  Marsden,  born  in  the  parish  of  Goosenor,  in  the  same  county, 
studied  together  at  Rheims.  Being  made  priests,  they  were  sent  on  the 
English  mission,  and  were  immediately  apprehended  and  soon  after  found 
guilty  of  being  priests,  and  sentenced  to  die  as  traitors.  They  were  executed 
together  in  the  Isle  of  Wight,  on  April  25,  1585. 

Francis  Ingolby,  priest,  was  son  of  Sir  William  Ingolby,  Knt.,  born  at 
Ripley,  Yorkshire,  ordained  at  Rheims,  and  sent  to  England  in  1584.  He 
suffered  at  York  on  June  3,  15S6. 

John  Finglow,  or  Fingley,  was  born  at  Barmby,  in  Yorkshire  ;  educated 
and  made  priest  at  Rheims,  on  March  25,  1581.  He  was  sent  upon  the 
English  mission  in  the  April  following,  and  apprehended  and  committed  to 
York  gaol.     He  suffered  at  York,  August  8,  1586. 

John  Sandys  was  born  at  Chester,  made  priest  at  Rheims,  and  sent  to 
England  in  1584.  He  was  apprehended,  tried,  and  condemned  for  being  a 
priest,  and  executed  at  Gloucester  on  August  11  or  12,  1586. 

John  Lowe,  born  in  London,  was  for  some  time  a  minister  of  the  Estab- 
lished Church,  but  being  converted  went  to  Douay  College,  and  afterwards 
to  Rome,  where  he  was  made  priest  and  sent  upon  the  English  mission.  He 
was  apprehended,  tried,  and  condemned  for  his  priestly  character  and 
functions,  and  executed  at  Tybourne,  October  8,  1586. 

John  Adams,  born  at  Martin's  Town  in  Dorsetshire,  was  ordained  at 
Rheims  and  sent  to  England  in   1581.     He  was  banished   in    1585,   but 

Z 


354       i^iiE  CHURCH  under  queen  Elizabeth. 

returned  and  was  again  apprehended.     He  was  condemned  solely  for  being 
a  priest,  and  was  executed  at  Ty bourne,  October  8,  1586. 

Richard  Dibdale,  priest,  born  in  Worcestershire,  alumnus  and  priest  of 
the  college  at  Rheims  ;  sent  on  the  English  mission  in  1585  ;  apprehended, 
tried,  condemned,  and  executed  for  his  priestly  character  and  functions  at 
Ty  bourne,  October  8,  1586. 

Mrs.  INIargaret  Clitheroe,  gentlewoman,  was  pressed  to  death  at  York,  fen- 
harbouring  and  relieving  priests,  on  March  26  (or  25),  either  in  15S6  or  the 
foregoing  year. 

Robert  Bickerdike,  gentleman,  born  at  Low  Hall  in  Yorkshire,  was 
executed  at  York  for  refusing  to  go  to  the  Protestant  Church,  in  October  or 
July  1586,  or  the  foregoing  year. 

Richard  Langley,  Esq.,  born  at  Grinthorp  in  Yorkshire,  was  executed 
at  York,  for  harbouring  and  assisting  priests,  on  December  i,  1586. 

Thomas  Pilchard,  priest,  born  at  Battle  in  Sussex  ;  educated  at  Douay, 
made  priest,  and  sent  upon  the  mission  in  1583.  He  was  committed  to  prison 
and  banishetl  in  1585,  but  returned,  and  was  again  apprehended,  tried,  and  con- 
demned for  being  a  priest.     He  was  executed  at  Dorchester,  March  21,  1587. 

Edmund  Sykes,  priest,  born  at  Leeds  in  Yorkshire  ;  educated  at  Rheims, 
made  priest,  and  sent  to  England  in  1581.  He  was  banished  the  same  year, 
but  returning  was  taken  again,  and  arraigned  and  condemned  for  high 
treason,  and  executed  at  York,  March  23,  1587. 

Robert  Sutton,  priest,  born  at  Burton-upon-Trent ;  studied  at  Oxford  and 
afterwards  at  Douay,  where  he  was  made  priest  and  sent  upon  the  mission, 
157J.  He  was  apprehended,  and  suffered  death,  for  being  a  priest,  at 
Stafford,  July  27,  1587. 

Stephen  Rowsham,  priest,  was  born  in  Oxfordshire  and  brought  up  at 
Oxford,  where  he  was  for  some  time  minister  of  the  Church  of  St.  Mary.  On 
his  conversion  he  went  to  Rheims,  was  made  priest,  and  sent  upon  the 
mission  in  1582.  He  was  taken  and  imprisoned  in  the  Tower  in  the  dungeon 
called  "Little  Ease"  for  eighteen  months,  and  afterwards  banished  in  1585. 
Returning  to  England,  he  was  again  apprehended,  and  sentenced  to  die  for 
high  treason.  He  suffered  with  wonderful  constancy,  at  Gloucester,  either 
in  March  or  July  15S7. 

John  Hambley,  priest,  born  at  Exeter,  alumnus  and  priest  of  Douay,  and 
sent  upon  the  mission  1585.  He  was  apprehended,  tried,  and  sentenced  to 
die  for  being  a  priest,  but  was  offered  his  life  and  a  good  living  if  he  would 
conform  to  the  Established  religion.  He  suffered  with  great  constancy,  at 
York,  September  9,  15S7. 

George  Douglas,  priest,  a  Scotchman,  suffered  at  Yoik  with  the  above,  on 
the  same  day  and  for  the  same  cause. 

Alexander  Crowe, ^  priest,  was  born  in  Yorkshire,  made  priest  at  Rheims, 
1  See  Historical  Sketches  0/ the  Re/onnation,  pp.  385-397.     London,  1879. 


APPENDIX   I.  355 

and  sent  to  England  in  1584.  He  was  condemned  for  his  priestly  character 
and  functions,  hanged,  drawn,  and  quartered  at  York,  November  30, 
1586. 

Nicholas  Garlick,  priest,  was  born  at  Vinting  in  Glossopdale,  Derbyshire  ; 
studied  and  made  priest  at  Rheims ;  suffered  for  his  religion  and  character  at 
Derby,  July  24,  1588. 

Robert  Ludlam,  priest,  was  born  near  Sheffield  ;  studied  and  made  priest 
at  Rheims  ;  and  was  apprehended,  tried  and  condemned  at  the  same  time 
and  for  the  same  cause  as  Mr.  Garlick,  July  24,  1588. 

Richard  Simpson  (sometime  a  minister),  priest,^  executed  at  the  same  time 
at  Derby,  in  1588. 

William  Dean,  priest,  executed  at  Mile  End,  London,  August  28,  1588. 

William  Gunter,  priest,  executed  on  the  same  day. 

Robert  Morton,  priest,  executed  in  Lincoln's  Inn  Fields  on  the  same  day. 

Thomas  Halford,  son  of  a  minister,  ordained  priest  at  Rheims  ;  executed 
on  the  same  day  at  Clerkenwell. 

James  Claxton,  ordained  priest  at  Rheims  ;  executed  near  Hounslow  on 
the  same  day. 

Robert  Leigh,  priest,  executed  at  Tybourne  with  five  Catholic  laymen  and 
Mistress  Margaret  Ward,  on  August  30,  1588. 

W^illiam  Way,  a  Cornishman  and  a  priest,  was  executed  at  Kingston-on- 
Thames  in  Surrey,  October  i,  1588. 

Robert  Wilcox,  Edward  Campion,  and  Christopher  Buxton,  priests,  were 
likewise  executed. 

Robert  Widmerpool  of  Widmerpool,  Nottinghamshire,  gentleman,  tutor 
to  the  Earl  of  Northumberland,  about  the  same  time. 

Ralph  Crocket  and  Edward  James,  priests,  at  Chichester,  October  i,  158S. 

John  Robinson,  priest. 

William  Hartley,  priest,  executed  October  5,  1588,  in  his  mother's  presence, 
near  Bankside. 

John  Weldon,  priest,  executed  the  same  day. 

Richard  Williams,  priest. 

Robert  Sutton,  schoolmaster,  executed  at  Clerkenwell. 

Edward  Burden  and  John  Hewitt,  priests,  executed  at  York,  October  5, 

^588-    . 

William  Lamplough,  layman,  suffered  at  Gloucester  in  1588. 

Robert  Dalby  and  John  Amias,  priests,  on  March  16,  1598,  suffered  at 
York. 

Richard  Yaxley  of  Lincolnshire,  and  George  Nichols  of  Oxford,  priests, 
executed  at  Oxford,  July  5,  1589. 

Thomas  Belson  of  Brill,  Bucks,  gentleman,  executed  at  Oxford,  July  5, 
1589. 

Humphrey  Pritchard,  layman,  executed  at  Oxford,  a  servant  to  Belson, 
suffered  on  the  same  day. 

William  Spencer,  priest,  executed  at  York,  September  24,  1589. 

Robert  Hardesty,  layman,  at  York,  at  the  same  time. 

Christopher  Bayles,  priest,  executed  at  Fleet  Street,  London,  March  4, 
1590. 

Nicholas  Horner,  layman,  executed  at  Smithfield,  March  4,  1590. 

1  It  should  be  noted  that  all  the  priests  in  this  list  were  drawn,  hung,  dismembered,  be- 
headed, and  quartered. 


356  THE   CHURCH    UNDER   QUEEN    ELIZABETH. 

Alexander  Blake,  layman,  executed  at  Gray's  Inn  Lane,  March  4,  1590. 

Miles  Gerard  and  Francis  Dickenson,  priests,  suffered  at  Rochester  on 
April  30,  1590. 

Edward  Johnes,  priest,  executed  at  Fleet  Street,  London,  May  6,  1590. 

Anthony  Middleton,  priest,  executed  at  Clerkenwell,  May  6,  1590. 

Edmund  Duke,  priest,  suffered  at  Durham,  May  27,  1590. 

John  Hogg,  priest,  suffered  at  Durham,  May  27,  1590. 

Richard  Holliday,  priest,  suffered  at  Durham,  I\Iay  27,  1 590. 

Richard  Hill,  priest,  suffered  at  Durham,  May  27,  1 590. 

Robert  Thorp,  priest,  hung,  drawn,  and  quartered  at  York,  iMay3l,  1591. 

Thomas  Watkinson,  yeoman,  hanged  at  York  at  the  same  time. 

Mountford  Scott  and  Geolge  Beesley,  priests,  executed  at  Fleet  Street, 
London. 

Robert  Dickenson,  priest,  executed  at  Winchester,  July  7,  1591. 

Ralph  Milner,  layman  of  Winchester,  suffered  at  the  same  time  and  place. 

William  Pikes,  layman  of  Dorchester,  suffered  there  for  denying  the 
queen's  supremacy. 

Edmund  Jennings,^  priest,  suffered  at  Gray's  Inn  Fields,  December    10, 

1591- 

S  within  Wells,  gentleman,  suffered  at  the  same  place. 

Eustachius  White,  priest,  suffered  at  Tybourne,  on  December  10,  1591. 

Polydore  Plasden,  priest,  suffered  at  Tybourne,  on  December  10,  1591. 

Bryan  Lacey,  layman,  suffered  at  Tybourne,  on  December  10,  1591. 

Tohn  Mason,  layman,  suffered  at  Tybourne,  on  December  10,  1 591. 

Sydney  Hodgson,  layman,  suffered  at  Tyl)ourne,  on  December  10,  1591. 

William  Paterson,  priest,  at  Tybourne,  January  22,  1592. 

Thomas  Pormorte,  St.  Paul's  Churchyard,  London,  February  8,  1592. 

Robert  Ashton,  gentleman,  suffered  at  Tybourne,  June  23,  1592. 

Edward  Waterson,  priest,  suffered  at  Newcastle,  January  7,  1593. 

James  Bird,  gentleman,  suffered  at  Winchester,  Ladyday,  1593. 

Anthony  Page,  priest,  was  hung,  drawn,  and  quartered  at  York,  April  20, 

^593- 

Joseph  Lampton,  priest,  at  Newcastle,  July  27,  1593. 

William  Davies,  priest,  at  Beaumaris,  July  21,  1593. 

John  Speed,  layman,  at  Durham,  February  4,  1594. 

William  Harington,  priest,  at  Tybourne,  February  18,  1594. 

John  Cornelius,  priest,-  at  Dorchester,  July  4,  1594. 

Thomas  Bosgrave,  gentleman,  at  Dorchester,  July  4,  1594. 

Terence  Carey,  layman,  at  Dorchester,  July  4,  1594. 

Patrick  Salmon,  at  Dorchester,  July  4,  1594. 

John  Bost,  priest,  suffered  at  Durham,  July  19,  1594. 

John  Ingram,  priest,  suffered  at  Newcastle,  July  25,  1594. 

George  Swallowell,  sometime  a  minister,  executed  at  Darlington  in  1594. 

Edward  Osbaldeston,  priest,  executed  at  York  in  1594. 

Robert  Southwell,  priest,  at  Tybourne  (see  pp.  317-322)  in  1595. 

Alexander  Rawlins,  priest,  at  York  in  1595. 

Henry  Walpole,  priest,  at  York  (see  pp.  322-325)  in  1595. 

James  Atkinson,  layman,  in  1595. 

William  Freeman,  priest,  at  Warwick  in  1595. 

George  Errington,  gentleman,  suffered  at  York  in  1596. 

William  Knight,  yeoman,  suffered  at  York  in  1596. 

1  See  Historical  Sketches  of  the  Reformation,  pp.  361-382.     London,  1879. 

2  To  the  case  of  Father  Cornelius,  and  to  that  of  several  others  in  this  hsi,  special  refer- 
ence has  been  made  in  the  body  of  this  book. 


APPENDIX  I.  357 

William  Gibson,  yeoman,  suffered  at  York  in  1596, 

Henry  Abbott,  yeoman,  suffered  at  York  in  1596. 

William  Andleby,  priest,  suffered  at  York  in  1597. 

Thomas  Warcopp,  gentleman,  suffered  at  York  in  1597. 

Edward  FuUthorpe,  gentleman,  suffered  at  York  in  1597. 

John  Britton,  gentleman,  suffered  at  York  in  1598. 

Peter  Snow,  priest,  suffered  at  York  in  1598. 

Ralph  Grimstone,  gentleman,  suffered  at  York  in  1598. 

John  Jones,  priest,  suffered  at  St.  Thomas'  Watering  in  159S. 

Christopher  Robinson,  priest,  at  Carlisle  in  the  same  year, 

Richard  Horner,  priest,  at  York  in  1598. 

Matthias  Harrison,  priest,  at  York  in  1599. 

John  Lyon,  yeoman,  at  Oakham  in  1599. 

James  Dovvdall,  merchant,  at  Exeter  in  the  same  year. 

In  the  year  1600  the  following  priests  were  executed  : — 
Christopher  Wharton,  at  York. 
Thomas  Sprott,  at  Lincoln. 
Thomas  Hunt,  at  Lincoln. 
Robert  Nutter,  at  Lancaster. 
Edward  Thwing,  at  Lancaster. 
Thomas  Pallasor,  at  Durham. 

And  the  following  laymen  : — 
John  Rigby,  at  St.  Thomas'  Watering. 
John  Norton,  ai  Durham. 
John  Talbot,  at  Diuham. 

In  the  year  1601  the  following  priests  were  executed  :  — 
John  Pybush,  at  St.  Thomas'  Watering. 
Mark  Barkworth,  at  Tybourne. 
Roger  Filcock,  at  Tybourne. 
Thurston  Hunt,  at  Lancaster. 
Robert  Middleton,  at  Lancaster. 

And  the  following  laity  : — 

Ann  Line,  gentlewoman,  at  Tybourne. 
Nicholas  Tichbourne,  at  Tybourne. 
Thomas  Hackshott,  at  Tybourne. 

In  1602  four  priests  were  executed,  viz. : — 
James  Harrison,  at  York. 
Thomas  Tichbourne,  at  Tybourne. 
Robert  Watkinson,  at  Tybourne, 
Francis  Page,  at  Tybourne. 

And  the  following  laymen  :  — 

Anthony  Batty,  gentleman,  at  York. 
James  Duckett,  bookseller,  at  Tybourne. 

And  in  1603,  one  priest,  William  Richards,  was  drawn,  hung,  dismembered, 
diseznbowelled,  and  quartered  at  Tybourne. 


APPENDIX    II. 
SOCIETIES  RELATING  TO  REUNION. 


No.  I.— ASSOCIATION  FOR  THE  PROMOTION  OF  THE  UNITY 
OF  CHRISTENDOM. 

(Established  September  8th,  1857,  Feast  of  the  Nativity 
OF  the  Blessed  Virgin  Mary.) 

An  Association  has  been  formed  under  the  above  title,  to  unite  in  a  bond  of 
intercessory  prayer  members  both  of  the  clergy  and  laity  of  the  Roman 
Catholic,  Greek,  and  Anglican  Communions.  It  is  hoped  and  believed  that 
many,  however  widely  separated  at  present  in  their  religious  convictions, 
who  deplore  the  grievous  scandal  to  unbelievers,  and  the  hindrance  to  the 
promotion  of  the  truth  and  holiness  among  Christians,  caused  by  the  unhappy 
divisions  existing  amongst  those  who  profess  to  have  "One  Lord,  One  Faith, 
One  Baptism,"  will  recognise  the  consequent  duty  of  joining  their  intercession 
to  the  Redeemer's  dying  prayer,  "That  they  all  may  be  One,  as  Thou, 
Father,  art  in  Me,  and  I  in  Thee,  that  they  also  may  be  One  in  Us,  that  the 
world  may  believe  that  Thou  hast  sent  Me."  To  all,  then,  who,  while  they 
lament  the  divisions  among  Christians,  look  forward  for  their  healing  mainly 
to  a  corporate  reunion  of  those  three  great  bodies  which  claim  for  them- 
selves the  inheritance  of  the  priesthood  and  the  name  of  Catholic,  an  appeal 
is  made.  They  are  not  asked  to  compromise  any  principles  which  they 
rightly  or  wrongly  hold  dear.  They  are  simply  asked  to  unite  for  the  pro- 
motion of  a  high  and  holy  end,  in  reliance  on  the  promise  of  our  Divine  Lord, 
that  "whatsoever  ye  shall  ask  in  prayer,  believing,  ye  shall  receive";  and 
that  "if  two  of  you  agree  on  earth  as  touching  anything  that  they  shall  ask, 
it  shall  be  done  for  them  of  My  Father  Who  is  in  heaven."  The  daily  use 
of  a  short  form  of  prayer,  together  with  one  "  Our  Father  " — for  the  intention 
of  the  Association — is  the  only  obligation  incurred  by  those  who  join  it  ;  to 
which  is  added,  in  the  case  of  priests,  the  offering,  at  least  once  in  three 
months,  of  the  Holy  Sacrifice,  for  the  same  intention. 

Form  of  Prayer. 

O  Lord  Jesus  Christ,  Who  saidst  unto  Thine  Apostles,  Peace  I  leave  with 
you.  My  peace  I  give  unto  you  ;  regard  not  my  sins,  but  the  faith  of  Thy 
Church  ;  and  grant  Her  that  Peace  and  Unity  which  is  agreeable  to 
Thy  Will,  Who  livest  and  reignest  God  for  ever  and  ever,  Amen.  Our 
Father,  etc. 


APPENDIX   II.  359 

Nole.—Jrv  joining  the  Association,  no  one  is  understood  as  thereby  express- 
ing an  opinion  on  any  matter  which  may  be  deemed  a  point  of  controversy, 
or  on  any  religious  question  except  that  the  object  of  the  Association  is 
desirable. 

Those  who  are  desirous  of  joining  the  Association  are  requested  to  sign  the 
following  Declaration  printed  in  italics,  adding  the  date  and  their  place  of 
residence  in  full,  and  return  it  to  the  Secretary  of  the  A.P.U.C. 

Declaration  : — 

* '  /  luillingly  join  the  Association  for  the  Promotion  of  the  Unity  of 
Christendom,  and  undertake  [to  offer  the  Holy  Sacrifice  once  in  three  months 
and  ^]  to  recite  daily  the  above  prayers  for  the  intention  of  the  same." 

Signal  u  re 

Address 

Date 

N.B. — The  names  of  members  will  not  be  made  public. 

All  baptized  persons  are  eligible  to  become  members  of  the  Association. 


No.  II.— THE  HOME  REUNION  SOCIETY. 

OFFICE — deans'    yard,    WESTMINSTER,    S.W. 
"  That  they  all  may  be  One." — 6".  John  xvii.  21. 

Rules  and  Constitution. 
I.  This  .Society  shall  be  called  "The  Home  Reunion  Society." 

II.  The  purpose  of  this  Society  shall  be  to  present  the  Church  of  England 
in  a  conciliatory  attitude  towards  those  who  regard  themselves  as  outside  her 
pale,  so  as  to  lead  towards  the  Corporate  Reunion  of  all  Christians  holding 
the  doctrines  of  the  Ever-Blessed  Trinity  and  the  Incarnation  and  Atonement 
of  our  Lord  Jesus  Christ.  The  Society,  though  it  cannot  support  any  scheme 
of  comprehension  compromising  the  three  Creeds,  or  the  Episcopal  constitution 
of  the  Church,  will  be  prepared  to  advocate  all  reasonable  liberty  in  matters 
not  contravening  the  Church's  Faith,  Order,  or  Discipline. 

HI.  The  action  of  the  Society  will  comprehend — 

1.  Special  private  prayer  for  Unity  as  the  first  duty  of  all  who  desire 

Reunion. 

2.  Special  public  services  with  Sermons  on  Christian  Unity,  and  the 

frequent  use  of  the  "Prayer   for  Unity "  from   the  Office  for  the 
Accession  in  the  Prayer- Book. 

3.  The  removal  of  all  defects  and  abuses  in  the  practical  working  of  the 

Church's  system  which  may  justly  give  offence  to  Nonconformists. 

1  Lay  persons  will  erase  the  words  in  brackets. 


360         THE   CHURCH    UNDER   QUEEN    ELIZABETH. 

4.  Lectures  on  the  history,  doctrines,  and  formularies  of  the  Church  of 

England,  and  the  circulation  of  books  and  papers  likely  to  advance 
the  purpose  of  the  Society. 

5.  The  promotion  of  freer  social  intercourse  between  Churchmen  and 

Nonconformists. 

6.  The  appointment  of  Committees  to  arrange   for  Conferences  with 

Nonconformists,  in  furtherance  of  the  purpose  of  the  Society, 


No.  HL— STATEMENT  CONCERNING  THE  ORDER  OF 
CORPORATE  REUNION. 

(Founded  September  8th,  a.d.  1S77.) 

"  That  they  all  may  he  One." 

It  has  long  been  felt  that  there  is  need  of  united  action  for  the  purpose  of 
supplying  certain  defects,  opposing  certain  abuses,  and  carrying  out  certain 
objects  in  the  Church  of  England  ;  and  this  feeling  has  led  to  the  formation 
of  various  Societies,  more  or  less  numerous  and  influential.  Such  are — The 
Society  for  the  Propagation  of  the  Gospel ;  the  Church  Missionary  Society  ; 
the  English  Church  Union  ;  the  Guild  of  St.  Alban  ;  the  Home  Reunion 
Society;  the  Confraternity  of  the  Blessed  Sacrament;  the  Society  for  the 
Maintenance  of  the  Faith,  and  the  Association  for  the  Promotion  of  the  Unity 
of  Christendom,  all  of  which  extentl  their  operations  as  far  as  possible  over 
the  entire  Anglican  Church. 

But  a  new  crisis  has  arisen  with  which  these  Societies  are  powerless  to 
deal ;  for  now  it  is  found,  to  the  sorrow  and  shame  of  many,  that  the  spiritual 
freedom  of  the  Church,  together  with  the  actual  jurisdiction  of  its  episcopate, 
is  practically  extinct.  And,  having  been  forced  by  the  invasion  and  active 
power  of  these  evils  to  investigate  more  closely  the  whole  history  and  condition 
of  the  Established  Church  since  the  Tudor  changes,  certain  other  defects  and 
abuses  have  become  evident  to  the  Founders  of  this  Order,  which  urgently 
call  for  remedy.  The  attention  of  Catholic  Churchmen,  therefore,  is  especially 
invited  to  the  ensuing  brief  statement  of  its  object  and  the  method  by  which 
it  desires  to  work. 

The  evils  deplored,  and  which  have  to  be  contended  with,  are  these  : — 

1.  Extreme  confusion  in  organisation  and  discipline. 

2.  Grave  diversity  of  doctrinal  teaching. 

3.  Lapse  of  spiritual  jurisdiction. 

4.  Loss  of  the  spiritual  freedom  of  the  Church. 

5.  Uncertainly    of  sacramental    status,    arising    from    the    long-continued 

prevalence  of  shameful  neglect  and  carelessness  in  the  administration 
of  Baptism,  contrary  to  the  directions  contained  in  the  Book  of 
Common  Prayer. 

6.  Want  of  an  unquestioned  Episcopal  Succession. 

All  these  defects  and  evils  have  been  carefully  examined  into  ;  and,  after 
long  and  prayerful  deliberation,  adequate  remedies  have,  1  y  the  help  of  God, 
been  secured.  The  Rulers  of  this  Order  are  in  a  position  to  satisfy  every 
person  who  may  desire  further  information,  that  nothing  which  is  needed  for 


APPENDIX   II.  361 

a  sound  dogmatic  basis — actual  power  of  jurisdiction  for  the  Rulers  of  the 
Order,  spiritual  freedom  to  worship  and  serve  God  Almighty  as  did  our  fore- 
fathers, and  certain  integrity  of  all  sacraments — is  wanting  to  the  same. 

Not  only  have  the  Rulers  succeeded  in  obtaining  all  these  things,  but  they 
have  carefully  done  so  without  adding  to  the  existing  confusion,  without 
infringing  upon  the  lawful  rights  of  any,  and  without  hastening  that  disin- 
tegrating and  destructive  process  which  is  rapidly  going  on  around,  and  which 
they  so  unfeignedly  deplore. 

They  therefore  affectionately  invite  all  faithful  Catholics  in  the  Church  of 
England  to  examine  and  study  the  principles  of  action  of  the  Order.  This 
can  be  done  by  perusal  of  their  Pastoral  Letter,  and  by  personal  application 
to  their  duly-appointed  officers.  That  the  work  of  the  Order  should  be 
conducted  in  accordance  with  the  methods  laid  down,  it  is  necessary  that 
those  only  should  be  made  acquainted  with  the  details  who  may  be  practically 
concerned  in  them.  As  it  is  desired  to  interfere  with  no  one  who  is  not 
willing  to  co-operate,  so  it  is  the  strong  and  solemn  determination  of  the 
Rulers  of  the  Order  not  to  allow  any  one  not  concerned  to  interfere  with 
them  in  any  way.  If  this  great  work  be  of  God,  as  it  is  believed  to  be,  then 
by  His  help  it  will  prosper.  If  not,  it  will  soon  enough  come  to  nought 
without  the  intervention,  opposition,  or  contrivance  of  man. 

Finally,  attention  is  called  to  the  fact  that  certain  defects  and  misunder- 
standings which  have  hitherto  beset  the  path  of  Churchmen  have  constituted 
very  serious  obstacles  and  hindrances  to  the  attainment  of  corporate  reunion 
with  other  portions  of  the  One  Family  of  God.  These  defects  and  misunder- 
standings are  now,  thanks  be  to  the  Blessed  and  Adorable  Trinity  !  entirely 
obviated  in  the  persons  of  all  who  enter  this  Order.  For  twenty  years, 
thousands  of  faithful  Christians  have  been  unceasingly  praying  for  the 
restoration  of  corporate  reunion  to  the  Churches  of  Christ ;  so  that  many 
cannot  but  regard  the  formal  foundation  and  successful  institution  of  this 
Order  as  a  direct  answer  10  these  prayers. 

Ad  inajorem  Dei  gloriam. 


No.  IV.— ASSOCIATION  OF  PRAYERS  FOR  THE  RETURN  OF 
THE  SEPARATED  PORTIONS  OF  CHRISTENDOM  TO 
CATHOLIC  UNITY. 

(Founded,  a.d.  1S77.) 

OFFICE— ST.    ETIIELREDA's   CHURCH,    ELY    PLACE,   HOLBORN,  W.C. 

The  establishment  of  an  Association  of  Prayers  for  the  return  of  the 
separated  Churches  of  the  East,  especially  of  the  Greco-Russian  Church,  to 
Catholic  Unity,  was  the  dying  legacy  to  the  Barnabite  Order  of  the  late 
saintly  Father  Schouvalofif,  himself  a  Barnabite  and  a  Russian  convert. 

In  introducing  this  Association  into  England,  it  is  proposed  to  include  in 
its  intention  all  the  separated  portions  of  Christendom,  particularly  the 
Anglican  and  other  Christian  bodies  of  this  country. 

With  a  view  to  this  the  following  petition  was  laid  before  Our  Holy  Father, 
to  which  His  Holiness  was  graciously  pleased  to  give  a  favourable  reply  : — 

'•Most  Holy  Father, — Prostrate  at  the  feet  of  your  Holiness,  Father 


362  THE   CHURCH   UNDER   QUEEN   ELIZABETH. 

Tondini  of  the  Barnabite  Order,  at  present  resident  in  England,  desires 
humbly  to  state  that  the  'Association  of  Prayers  for  the  Return  of 
THE  NoN- United  Churches  of  the  East,  and  especially  of  the 
Greco-Russian  Church,  to  Catholic  Unity,'  as  expressly  sanctioned 
and  enriclied  with  indulgences  by  your  Holiness,  and  warmly  recommended 
by  many  of  the  bishops,  is  already  under  their  protection  widely  spread, 
having  been  established  in  many  of  the  Dioceses  of  France,  Italy,  Spain, 
Belgium,  and  Austria,  especially  in  her  Sclavonic  provinces. 

"  Your  humble  petitioner,  considering  that  if  our  Lord,  in  His  mercy, 
moved  by  many  prayers,  should  vouchsafe  to  restore  England  to  Catholic 
Unity  ;  owing  to  her  influence  and  dominion  over  so  many  and  such  vast 
regions  of  the  world  ;  she  might  become  a  powerful  instrument  of  Divine 
Providence  in  the  fulfilment  of  the  words  of  our  Redeemer,  'There  shall 
be  One  Fold  and  One  Shepherd  ; '  and  seeing  the  happy  effects  which 
have  been  produced,  not  only  on  Catholics  but  on  non-Catholics  as  well,  by 
the  high  praise  and  hopes  which  your  Holiness  has  lately  expressed  in  regard 
of  England  ;  asks  once  more  a  special  Benediction  from  your  Holiness  on  the 
above  Association  of  Prayers,  earnestly  requesting  your  approval,  that 
this  work,  already  recommended  by  many  of  the  Catliolic  Bishops  of  the 
United  Kingdom,  and  especially  by  His  Eminence  the  Archbishop  of  West- 
minster, may  be  extended  so  as  to  include  in  its  intention,  not  only  the  non- 
Catholics  of  the  East,  but  also  all  Christians  now  separated  from  the  Centre 
OF  Unity,  and  more  especially  the  Anglicans  and  others  of  these  Kingdoms. 

"BENEDICAT  ET  EXAUDIAT  VOS  DEUS. 

"13  MAIL,    1877.  "PIUS.    P.    P.    IX." 

A  Mass,  together  with  prayers  for  this  intention,  as  given  below,  is  said 
every  Saturday  at  10  o'clock  in  the  Church  of  St.  Ethelreda,  Ely  Place, 
Holborn  ;  where  communications  may  be  adtlressed  to  the  Rev.  F.  Tondini 
of  the  Barnabite  Order,  chief  promoter  of  the  Association,  or  to  the  Rev,  F. 
Lockhart  of  the  Order  of  Charity. 

In  the  night  before  His  Passion  our  Divine  Redeemer  prayed,  saying  : 
"  Holy  Father,  keep  them  in  Thy  Name  7vhom  Thoii  hast  gh'en  Me,  that  they 
who  believe  in  Me  may  be  One  in  Us  ;  that  the  tvorld  may  believe  that  Tlioii 
hast  sent  Me."  All  are  hereby  invited  to  unite  daily  in  this  intention  of  the 
Divine  Head  of  the  Church. 


PRAYER  FOR  THE  RESTORATION  OF  ENGLAND,  SCOT- 
LAND, AND  WALES,  AND  OF  THE  NON-CATHOLICS  OF 
IRELAND,  TO  CATHOLIC  UNITY. 

O  merciful  God,  let  the  glorious  intercession  of  Thy  Saints  assist  us  ; 
paiticuLirly  the  most  Blessed  Virgin  Mary,  Mother  of  Thy  only  begotten  Son, 
and  Tiiy  Iloly  Apostles,  Peter  and  Paul,  to  whose  patr(jnage  we  humbly 
recommend  our  country.  Be  mindful  of  our  fathers,  Eleuiherius,  Celestine, 
and  Gregory,  Bishops  of  the  Holy  City  ;  of  Patrick  and  Palladius,  Augustine, 
Columba,  and  Aidan,  who  delivered  to  us  inviolate  the  faith  of  the  holy 
Roman  Church.  Remember  our  holy  martyrs,  who  shed  their  blood  for 
Christ  ;  especially  our  first  martyr,  St.  Alban,  and  Thy  most  glorious  Bishop, 
St.  Thomas  of  Canterbury.  Remember  all  those  holy  confessors,  l.ishops, 
and   kings,  all  those  holy   monks  and  hermits,  all  those  holy  virgins  and 


APPENDIX   II.  363 

widows,  who  made  this  once  an  Island  of  Saints  illustrious  by  their  glorious 
merits  and  virtues.  Let  not  their  memory  perish  from  before  Thee,  O  Lord, 
but  let  their  supplication  enter  daily  into  Thy  sight  ;  and  do  Thou,  Who 
didst  so  often  spare  Thy  sinful  people  for  the  sake  of  Abraham,  Isaac,  and 
Jacob,  now  also,  mo/ed  by  the  prayers  of  our  fathers  reigning  with  Thee, 
have  mercy  upon  us,  save  Thy  people,  and  blet-s  Thine  inheritance:  and 
suffer  not  those  souls  to  perish,  which  Thy  Son  hath  redeemed  with 
His  most  precious  blood.  Who  liveth  and  reigneth  with  Thee,  world 
without  end.     Amen. 

Westminster,  May  22,  1S77. 

We  hereby  approve  and  sanction  for  this  Diocese  the  "Association  of 
Prayers  for  the  Return  of  the  Separated  Portions  of  Christendom  to  Catholic 
Unity  "  ;  and  we  pray  that  the  Holy  Spirit  of  God  may  gather  them  once 
more  into  the  only  true  fold. 

HENRY  EDWARD, 

Cardinal  Archbishop  of  Westminster. 


APPENDIX    III. 


Having  made  inquiries  concerning  tlie  remarkable  cures  which  took  place  in 
London  in  the  spring  of  1S79,  I  am  favoured  with  permission — for  which  I 
am  truly  obliged  —  to  publish  the  following  letter  from  Lady  Gertrude 
Douglas  : — 

St.  Vincent's  Home,  Harrow  Road,  W., 
November  15,  1879. 

Dear  Dr.  Lee,-  John  McCarthy,  aged  13,  was  completely  cured  of 
paralysis  of  the  spine  and  legs,  on  the  25th  of  RLarch  1879.  at  the  end  of  a 
Wovena  to  Our  Lady  of  Lourdes,  having  drunk  of  the  water  and  been 
sprinkled  with  it  for  nine  days.  The  occasion  of  the  laying  of  the  foundation- 
stone  of  the  Church  dedicated  to  the  Immaculate  Conception,  under  the  title 
of  Our  Lady  of  Lourdes.  The  ceremony  took  place  on  the  afternoon  of  the 
24th,  and  the  Novena  ended  on  the  25th,  when  at  5  A.M.,  suddenly,  and 
without  any  intermediate  convalescence,  John  McCarthy,  for  a  year  previously 
a  helpless  cripple,  got  up  and  dressed  himself  and  appeared  to  us  all  com- 
pletely cured.  He  has  never  suffered  the  least  relapse,  and  can  walk  and 
jump  and  play  as  well  as  any  child  in  the  school.  On  the  same  day,  at 
about  8.30  A.M.,  James  Dwyer,  aged  10,  recovered  also  suddenly  from 
paralysis  of  the  sciatica  nerves,  which  had  rendered  him  a  cripple  for  three 
weeks.  He  was  carried  to  church,  made  his  first  Communion  in  front  of  the 
Altar  of  Our  Lady  of  Lourdes,  and  after  the  Holy  Communion  had  been 
given  him,  and  that  he  had  received  the  water  of  Lourdes,  he  got  up  from  his 
chair  and  knelt  by  himself  before  the  altar.  He  was  also  completely  and 
instantaneously  cured,  and  has  never  suffered  the  least  relapse. 

These  are  the  facts,  dear  Dr.  Lee,  which  I  send  you  according  to  your 
request.  For  any  further  explanation  or  references  you  might  require,  1  can 
onfy  refer  you  to  His  Eminence  the  Cardinal  Archbishop.  — Believe  me, 
Yours  truly, 

GERTRUDE  DOUGLAS. 


INDEX. 


Abbey-men  whipped,  loi. 

Abbot  Parpaglia,  42. 

Absolution  of  the  nation,  2. 

Act  against  self-constituted  prophets, 

60. 
Action  of  spies,  4. 
Act  of  Uniformity,  20. 
Act  passed,  another,  85. 
Acts  of  Court  of  High  Commission, 

143- 
Address  to  Elizabeth,  15. 
Administration,  manner  of,  125. 
"Admonition  to  the  nobility,"  262. 
Admonition  to  Parliament,  147. 
Affairs  grow  worse,  89. 
Alart,  Mr.,  tortured,  213. 
Allen,  Dr.,  founds  College  at  Douay, 

171. 
Allen,    Dr.    William,    52,    89,    170, 

181,  189,  262. 
Allen's,  Dr.,  Apology,  190. 
Allen's,  Dr.,  Expostulation,  190. 
Aliens  of  Ross  Hall,  the,  170. 
All  ministers  "overseers,"  278. 
Altars  destroyed,  132. 
Altar  slabs  profaned,  133. 
Armada  at  Lisbon,  262. 
Armada,  the,  projected,  260. 
Armada,  the,  defeated,  265. 
Anabaptists,  German,  41. 
Anabaptists  seized,  174. 
Ancient  chalices  existing,  23. 
Ancient  chapels  where  Mass  was  said, 

156. 
Ancient  faith  cast  out,  180. 
Anglican  ministers  treated  as  laymen, 

Anglican  ordination,  52. 
Another  controversy  arises,  81. 
Another  Pilgrimage  of  Grace,  92. 


Anti  -  episcopal    pamphlets    printed, 

83- 

Anti-vestment  frenzy,  82. 

"  Apostles  "  released,  14. 

Appearance  of  the  ministers,  105. 

Archbishop  Heath  of  York,  19. 

Archbishop  Parker's  election  con- 
firmed, 33. 

Archbishop  Parker  mortified,  56. 

Archbishop  Parker's  opinions  about 
ordination,  107. 

Army  of  spies,  283. 

Arthington,  a  fanatic,  2S4,  285. 

Articles  of  Religion,  162. 

Arundel,  Henry,  Earl  of,  76. 

Arundel,  Earl  of,  287,  288,  289. 

Arundel's,  Earl  of,  trial  and  execu- 
tion, 288,  289. 

Arundel,  Countess  of,  290. 

Arundell,  Sir  John,  251. 

Askew,  Anne,  150. 

Assault  on  a  Justice,  277. 

"Association,  The  "  so-called,  224. 

Attendance  at  Protestant  churches 
enforced,  92. 

Authority,  destruction  of,   164,  341, 

V  344- 

A  Wood,  Anthony,  44,  191,  217. 
A  Wood,  Richard,  202. 
Aylesbury  Grammar  School,  220. 
Aylmer's  boldness,  207. 
Ayloffe,  Judge,  219. 


B 


Babington,  Gervaise,  266, 
Babington  plot,  the,  236. 
Babington,  Sir  William,  218. 
Bacon,  Sir  Nicholas,  312. 
Bad  language  of  the  bishops,  48. 


366 


INDEX. 


Bale,  Bishop  John,  113,  228. 

Bale's    blasphemous    heresies,     114, 

115,  116. 
Bancroft,  Richard,  63. 
Bandersby,  Mr.  William,  175. 
Banished,  seventy-two  priests,  211. 
Baptism  of  infants  condemned,  229. 
Baptismal  service  altered,  23. 
Barbarous  cruelty  practised,  3. 
Barkworth,  Father  Mark,  260. 
Barlings,  Abbot  of,  131. 
Barlow's  work  of  destruction,  108. 
Barnes,  Richard,  his  character,  203, 
Barrett,  Dr.  Richard,  305. 
Barrow,  Henry,  302. 
Barry,  Canon,  on  the   Reformation, 

204. 
Baynes,  Bishop  Ralph,  30. 
Beale,  Robert,  220. 
Beamont,  Francis,  324. 
Beggars  numerous,  209. 
Betjgarly  persons  whipped,  loi. 
Bellot,  Bishop  Hugh,  313. 
Bells  sold,  233. 
Berkeley,  Lord,  207. 
Bermondsey  Abbey,  186. 
Bernewode  Forest,  209. 
Bertie,  Peregrine,  144. 
Best,  Bishop  John,  48,  121. 
Beza,  Theodore,  227. 
Bickley,  Bishop  of  Chester,  276,  313. 
Bill  enjoining  the  New  Frayer-Book, 

Bird,  Bishop,  2. 
Bishops  greatly  abused,  317. 
Bishops  subservient  to  Elizabeth,  58. 
Bishops,  the,  persecute,  176. 
Bishops,  J.  A.  Froude  on  the,  103. 
Bishop  of  Rome  the  Antichrist,  20. 
"Bishops  by  Letters  Patent,"  343. 
Bishops  most  obedient  to  the  Queen, 

the,  116. 
Blasphemies     against     the     BLssed 

Sacrament,  37. 
Blasphemous  nicknames,  37. 
Blasphemous  verses,  66. 
Blasphemy  rampant,  229. 
Blooded  hand,  the,  219. 
Board,  the  Lord's,  46. 
Bolton,  Lord  Scrope  of,  81. 
Bonner,  Bishop,  84. 
Bonner,  Dr.,  death  of,  146. 
Bonner,  Edmund,  28. 
Bonfires  in  London,  243. 
Borromeo,  St.  Charles,  50. 


Bourne,  Gilbert,  30. 
Bourne,  Sir  John,  no,  in. 
Bowes,  Mr.  Richard,  175. 
Bowlton,  Sir  John,  banished,  176. 
Bowman,  Isabel,  178. 
Boys,  two,  flogged,  204. 
Hradbridge,  William,  181. 
Bradley,  John,  31, 
Breachfa,  disturbance  at,  278. 
Brian,  Mr.,  tortured,  213,  214. 
Briant,  Alexander,  executed,  194. 
Hridgewater,  Father,  216. 
Bristow,  Mr.,  tortured,  213. 
Bromeyard  Grammar  School,  221. 
Bullingham,  Bishop,  131. 
Barghley,  Lord,  227. 
Burghley's  ability  and   opportunity, 

235- 
Burnet,  Bishop,  on  the  Supremacy, 

145- 
Burying  witliout  coffins,  157. 
Butchers  prophesy,  187. 


Calvinistic  blasphemy,  229. 
Campion,  Edmund,  191,  192,  260. 
Campion  racked,  193. 
Campion  executed,  194. 
Candidates  for  Elizabeth's  hand,  235. 
"Canon  laws"  made  by  Parliament, 

87-. 

Cardinal  of  Lorraine,  the,  71. 

Carter,  William,  executed,  223. 

Cartwright,  Thomas,  148. 

Case  of  Anne  Landers,  232. 

Cathedrals  ruined,  69. 

Catholic  festivals  remembered,  305. 

Catholic  burial,  157. 

Catholic  loyalty,  261. 

Catholic  rites  odious  to  Elizabeth, 
84. 

Catholics  and  Puritans  both  suffer, 
152. 

"  Catterwawlers"  amongst  the  bi- 
shops, 305. 

Cecil's  ill-gotten  gains,  5. 

Cecil,  Sir  William,  4. 

Cecil,  Sir  W. ,  interferes,  176. 

Chaderton,  Bishop  of  Lichfield,  276, 
277. 

"Challenge"  by  Parsons,  192. 

Change  and  excitement,  276. 


INDEX. 


367 


Character   of    Elizabeth's    ministers, 

103. 
Character   of    the    modern    bishops, 

139- 
Character  of  the  prelates,  108. 
Charges  against  Maine,  182. 
Charnwode  Forest,  209. 
Chearsley  Church,  135. 
Chester  Cathedral,  191. 
Chiswick,  inscription  at,  233. 
Chopped-up  service  of  the  Supper, 

66. 
Chronicles  of  Holinshead,  205. 
Church,  Dean,  on  Calvin,  265. 
Church  lands  seized,  24. 
Church  needs  regarded,  210. 
Church  under  Elizabeth,  the,!338,  342. 
Churches  absolutely  destroyed,  233. 
Churches  become  ruinous,  233. 
Churches  closed,  46. 
Churches  deserted,  65. 
Churches  desolate,  72. 
Churches  empty,  65. 
Churches  like  Jews'  synagogues,  280. 
Churches  locked  up,  266. 
Churching  of  women,  manner  of,  127. 
Churchyard  crosses  destroyed,  127. 
Churchyards  unfenced,  233. 
Clement  VIII.,  269. 
Clerks,  parish,  158. 
Clitheroe,    Margaret,    253 ;    charged 
with  harbouring  priests,   254  ;  her 
defence,    255  ;    condemned    to   be 
pressed    to   death,    257  ;    her   firm 
faith    and    resolution,    258 ;     her 
sufferings  and  death,  259. 
Clitheroe,  William,  254. 
Cobbett  on  the  Reformers,  1 13. 
Cocks,  Bishop  Richard,  43,  56,  64, 

200. 
Coldwell,  Bishop  John,  316. 
Cole,  Rev.  William,  216. 
Collier,  Jeremy,  49. 
Commemoration    of    the    dead    for- 
bidden, 232. 
Commissioners     appointed     by     the 

Queen,  50,  151. 
Common   people,   religious   madness 

of  ihe,  229. 
Communion  a  meal,  267. 
Communion  boards,  the,  22,  57. 
Communion,  quarterly,  1 1 7. 
Communion  rites,  73. 
Communion  trestles,  22,  23. 
Confirmation,  159,  160. 


"  Confirmation    in    the    Church    of 

England,"  23. 
Conflict  at  Breachfa,  278. 
Confusion  in  religion,  149,  231,  276. 
"Confutation,"  Harding's,  277. 
Consecration  of  Archbishop   Parker, 

33- 

Consecration  Prayer,  the,  21. 
Consignment  of  Austin  Friars'  Church 
to  foreign  Protestants,  40. 

Contrast  between  the  Past  and  the 
Present,  67,  138. 

Cooke,  Robert,  47. 

Cooper,  Dr.,  161. 

Copley,  Madam,  152. 

Coppinger,  a  fanatic,  284,  285. 

Cornelius,  Father,  251,  252,  253. 

Coronation    of    Elizabeth    at   West- 
minster, II. 

Corporate  Reunion,  272,  343. 

Cotessey,  love-feast  at,  1 20. 

Cottages  rifled,  180. 

Cottam,  Father  Thomas,  219. 

Cotton's,  Dr.,  lady,  196. 

Council  of  Trent,  70,  71. 

Council  Register,  81. 

Councils,  the  General,  69. 

Coventry  Church  ransacked,  122. 

Coverdale,  Miles,  82. 

Cowdray  House  watched,  175. 

Cranmer,  character  of,  150. 

Cranmer's    flattery   of   Edward   VI., 
I. 

Cranmer's  version  of  the  Bible,  58. 

Creighton,  a  Scotch  priest,  224. 

Crime  to  hear  Mass,  a,  167. 

Croft,  Sir  James,  242. 

Cromwell's,  Oliver,  policy,  282. 

Cross  of  St.  Donat's,  215,  216. 

Cures  vacant,  44. 

Curie,  Elspeth,  247. 

Cuxham  Church,  itiscription  in,  281. 


D 


Dangers  to  England,  235. 

Daniel,  Edmund,  51. 

Davison,    William,    condemned   and 

imprisoned,  251. 
Daye,  John,  279. 
Deans  refuse  the  Oath,  49. 
Decision  of  the  Council  of  Trent,  71. 
Dee,  Dr.,  9,  10. 


368 


INDEX. 


Dee,  Dr., and  his  conjurations,  309, 310. 

Dee,  Dr.,  promised  promotion,  310. 

Deliberate  cruelties,  237. 

Deploration  of  the  destruction  of  the 
monasteries,  ico. 

Derby,  Earl  of,  201,  202. 

De  Saravia,  Adrian,  271. 

Desecrated  churches  in  Bucks,  234. 

Desecration  of  sacred  things,  134. 

Desolation  of  the  churches,  61,  187. 

Destruction  by  Bishop  Barlow,  108. 

Destruction  in  the  diocese  of  Lincoln 
in  no  way  peculiar,  137. 

Dickenson,  Roger,  tortured,  301. 

Difliculties  relatmg  to  Parker's  conse- 
cration, 52,  53.  54. 

Dignitaries  cast  into  prison,  49. 

Diocese  of  Oxford,  state  of  the,  123. 

Disagreeable  events,  112. 

Disapprobation  of  music  in  churches, 

64. 
Disastrous  times,  57. 
Discipline  of  the  Church,  205. 
Disgusting  barbarities,  237. 
Dislike  of  vestments,  82. 
Disorders,  great,  266. 
Disputation   in  Westminster  Abbey, 

25. 
Disputes  about  dress,  187. 
Disputes  by  all  classes,  8. 
Disturbance  at  Breachfa,  278. 
Divine  Service,  meagre  character  of, 

63. 

Divisions  steadily  nicrease,  146. 

Documents  from  Simancas,  234,  235. 

Dodds,  Gregory,  30. 

Doncaster',  affair  at,  112. 

Dorchester,  Bishop  of,  O.C.R.,  159. 

Dormer,  Robert,  291. 

Doubts  as  to  Parker's  consecration  by 

Roman  Catholics,  51. 
D'Oyley,  John,  308. 
Doylcy,  Sir  Robert,  21 8. 
Drury,  Sir  Drue,  248. 
Dudley,  Lord  Robert,  77. 


Easterns  repudiate  Anglican  ordina- 
tions, 51. 
Edmonton,  witchcraft  at,  311. 
Education,  want  of,  219,  220. 
Edward  VL's  death,  i. 
Election  of  Barlow  confirmed,  35. 


Election  of  .Scory  confirmed,  35. 
Elizabeth  dreaded  pain,  308. 
Elizabelh  enjoins  special  torture,  237. 
Elizabeth  issues  a  dispensation,  117. 
Elizabeth  takes  the  usual  oaths,  13. 
Elizabeth's  acts  during  Mass,  7. 
Elizabeth's  bad  conduct,  3. 
Elizalieth's  birthday  a  new  feast,  65. 
Elizabeth's  bishops,  103. 
Elizabeth's  dislike  for  wives  of  prelates, 

54- 

Elizabeth's  dislike  of  the  Excommuni- 
cation, 140. 

Elizabeth's  Injunctions,  55. 

Elizabeth's    letter   to    Bishop   Cocks, 

173- 
Elizabeth's  love  affairs,  76. 
Elizabeth's  new  laws,  16. 
Elizabeth's  policy  detailed,  263,  264, 

265. 
Elizabeth's  visit  to  Cambridge,  75. 
Elizabeth.     Ste  a/so  Queen. 
Elliot,  George,  a  spy,  193. 
English    exiles     received    kindly    at 

Milan,  50. 
Enthusiasm  of  the  people,  261. 
Episcopal  "  catterwawlers, "  305. 
Episcopal     matrimonial     inquisition, 

55- 
Episcopal  registry,  133. 
Erasmus  on  education,  220. 
Erastianism,  modern,  16. 
Estcourt,  Canon,  51. 
Ethelreda's,  St.,  Chapel,  173. 
Eucharist  received  after  supper,  the, 

229. 
Eucharistic  adoration  idolatry,  238. 
Evening  Communion  set  up,  229. 
Ewens,  Matthew,  324. 
Excommunication  of  Elizabeth,  97- 
"Execution    of    Justice"    by    Loid 

Burghley,  224. 
Executions,  284,  285. 
Executions,  numerous,  185. 
Expatriated  Englishmen,  189. 
Extreme  Unction  abolished,  23. 


Fairfax,  Sir  Thomas,  257. 
Family  of  the  "  Saints,"  187. 
Farmers  of  benefices,  162. 
Feckenham,    Abbot    John,     17,    18, 
30,  200. 


INDEX. 


3<59 


Fenatus,  Doctor,  206. 

Ferdinand,  Emperor,  88. 

Feria,  Duchess  of,  30S. 

Filcock,  Father  Roger,  260. 

Finch,  William,  31. 

Fines,  heavy,  imposed,  168,  196. 

Fisher,  George,  204. 

Fisher,  Thomas,  204. 

Fletcher,  Dean  of  Peterborough,  248. 

Forced  sales  of  property,  16S. 

Forgeries  by  Protestants,  239. 

Forgers  and  falsehood-mongers,  283. 

Forgery,  charge  of,  54. 

Foul-mouthed  language,  8. 

Francis,  Dr.,  49. 

Francklin,  family  of,  135. 

Frank,  Ann,  commits  suicide,  31 1. 

Free  fight,  a,  267. 

French  ambassador,  the,  7S. 

Fresh  acts  of  sacrilege,  24. 

Fresh  Acts  passed,  224. 

Fresh  commission  by  Letters  Patent 
to  Protestant  bishops,  32. 

Fresh  commissioners  sent  out,  129. 

Fresh  legislation  takes  place,  105. 

Frightful  atrocity,  38,  39. 

Frightful  cruelties,  loi. 

Froude,  J.  A.,  on  Catholics  and  Pro- 
testants, 144,  145. 

Froude,  Mr.  Richard  Hurrell,  64. 

Fulwood,  Richard,  tortured,  1S9. 

Funeral  service,  alteration  of,  127. 

Furniture  needed  for  the  churches, 
156. 


Gallios  of  the  day,  282. 

Gaol  fever,  217,  218. 

General  pardon,  a,  326. 

General  social  disorder  and  distress, 

144. 
Geneva  Bible  printed,  58. 
Genevan  ministers,  226. 
Gerard,  Sir  Thomas,  287. 
Gifts  to  the  Church,  210. 
Glastonbury,  education  at,  220. 
Godwin,  Thomas,  197. 
Goldwell,  Thomas,  30,  51. 
Goods  seized,  179. 
Grammar   schools     founded     at    St. 

Albans,     220 ;     Aylesbury,     220 ; 

Thame,     221  ;     Bromeyard,    221  ; 

Sandwich,   221  ;  Maidstone,   221  ; 

2 


Faversham,  221  ;  Reading,  221  ; 
Wycombe,  221  ;  St.  Bees,  221  ; 
Ashbourne,  221  ;  Dronfield,  221  ; 
Darlington,  221  ;  Barnet,  221  ; 
Hawkshead,  222  ;  Market  Bos 
worth,  222  ;  Halifax,  222  ;  Wood- 
stock, 222  ;  Appleby,  222  ;  Kirkby 
Stephen,  222  ;  Witton,  222. 

Great  confusion  reigns,  58. 

Greenaway,  Anthony,  130. 

Greenwood,  John,  302. 

Grene,  Sir  Nicholas,  176. 

Grey,  Earl  of  Kent,  238. 

Grindal,  Edmund,  173. 

Grindal,  Edmund,  consecrated,  43. 

Grindal  favours  "  prophesyings, "  231. 

Grindal  on  "  the  Supper,"  22. 

Grindal  persecutes,  176. 

Grindal  dies  at  Croydon,  231. 

Grindal's  complaints,  85. 

Gualter,  Rodolph,  160. 


H 


Hackett,  William,  2S4,  285. 
Hallam  on  treason,  153. 
Hammond,  Matthew,  burnt,  223. 
Hangings  and  hangman,  2S3. 
Harcourt,  Francis,  130. 
Harding's  "Confutation,"  277. 
Harington,   Sir  John,   48,    108,    123, 
160,  197,  301,   326,  327,   328,  332, 

333- 
Harlestone,  Margaret,  172. 
Harpsfield,  Nicholas,  277,  280,  305. 
Hatton  Garden,  174. 
Hatton,   Sir   Christopher,    173,  238, 

297. 
Havering-at- Bower,    the    Queen   at, 

261. 
Heads  of  malefactors,  1S8. 
Heath,  Nicholas,  Bishop  of  Rochester, 

28. 
Henry  VHI.'s  death,  i. 
Henry  VHI.  buried  at  Windsor,  i. 
Henshaw,  Henry,  51. 
Higgens,  Dr.  George,  325. 
High    Mass    celebrated    in    Durham 

Cathedral,  92. 
High  treason  to  say  Mass,  153. 
Holgate,  Archbishop,  2,  304. 
Homage,  new  Oath  of,  39. 
Homilies,  Book  of,  196. 
Hooker,  Walton's  Life  of,  229. 


370 


INDEX. 


Hooker,  Richard,  born  at  Exeter, 
227,  268  ;  Fellow  of  Christ  Church 
College,  Oxford,  268 ;  Rector  of 
Drayton  Beauchamp,  268 ;  Master 
of  the  Temple,  268 ;  his  contro- 
versy with  Travers,  268  ;  his  "Laws 
of  Ecclesiastical  Polity,"  269  ;  Rec- 
tor of  Bishopsbourne,  269 ;  founds 
a  new  party,  269 ;  inadequate 
teaching     concerning    episcopacy, 

270  ;    De    Saravia    his    confessor, 

271  ;  Hooker's  influence,  271. 
Hooper,  John,  82. 

Home,  Bishop,  200,  295. 

Home's  account  of  his  cathedral  city, 

60. 
Horsley,  case  of  Mr.,  299. 
Host,   Pollanus   on  the  adoration  of 

the,  20. 
Howard  of  Effingham,  Lord,  261. 
Howards,  memorials  of,  81. 
Hubert  the  Reformer,  36. 
Hulton,  Dean  of  York,  225. 
Hutton,  William,  179. 


Ignorance  of  the  intruded  clergy, 
229. 

Ignorance  of  the  new  clergy,  220. 

Ignorant  ministers,  104. 

Ill-usage  of  Catholic  clergy,  8. 

Image  burned,  208. 

Images  destroyed,  286. 

Important  offices  vacant,  48. 

Increase  of  "  Papists,"  102. 

Indelicacy  of  EliHabeth,  79. 

Infant  baptism  condemned,  229. 

Influence  of  the  Council  of  Trent, 
72. 

Ingatestone  ITall,  193. 

Ingram,  John,  tortured,  301. 

Injunctions  concerning  the  Sacra- 
ments, 125. 

Injunctions  issued,  161. 

Injunctions  of  P21izabelh,  37- 

Injunctions  to  be  observed  and  kept, 
124. 

Insurrection  in  Norfolk,  141. 

Insurrections  in  the  northern  counties, 
91. 

Irishman,  Cornelius,  140. 

Irreverence  in  church,  281. 


Jack-of-both-sides,  282. 

Jackson,  Dr.  Thomas,  266. 

James,  Dr.  \Villiam,  304. 

Jegon,  John,  160. 

Jenks,  Roland,  217. 

Jessopp,  Augustus,  on  the  Protestant 

ministers,  190. 
Jewell  on  "  the  Supper,"  22. 
Johnson,  Mr.,  tortured,  213. 
Jones,  Father  Robert,  157. 
Justice,  assault  on  a,  277. 


K 


Keele,  Mr.  John,  on  Plooker,  270. 
Keble,    Mr.    John,    on    the    Lord's 

Supper,  21. 
Kennedy,  Jane,  247. 
Kett,  Francis,  burnt,  223. 
Kinton,  Thomas,  51. 
Kitchin,  Anthony,  31. 
Knell,  Joan,  151. 
Knightley,  Sir  Richard,  2S7. 
Knowlys,  Sir  Francis,  280. 
Knox,  John,  226,  234. 
Knox's,  John,  treatise,  8. 


Lancaster,  Archbishop  of  Armagh, 

107. 
Language  of  the  innovators,  64. 
Lambeth  Articles,  the,  326. 
Lambeth  Register,  the,  53. 
Lambeth,  the  village  of,  186. 
Landers,  case  of  Anne,  232. 
Lausac,  an  envoy  from  France,  88. 
Lax  doctrines  preached,  58. 
Lee,  Avicia,  291. 
Lee,  Father  Roger,  S.J.,  175. 
Lee,  Roger,  130. 
Lee,  Sir  Henry,  152,  207,  222,  279, 

287,  331- 
Legislation  against  recusants,  155. 
Leicester,  the  Earl  of,  207. 
Leicester's,  Lord,  chikhen,  79. 
Letters    concerning    Queen     Mary's 

assassination,  272,  273,  274,  275. 
Letters  Patent  issued,  30. 
Liber  Rcgalis,  12. 
Lincoln,  diocese  of,  128. 


INDEX. 


!7i 


Lincoln,   diocese  of,   in  olden  times, 

129. 
Lichfield  Cathedral,  191. 
Lobby,  Alice,  179. 
Loftus,  Archbishop  Adam,  228. 
London  a  shambles,  188. 
London  in  Elizabeth's  reign,  1 86. 
Loose  doctrines  taught,  159. 
Loose  notions  as  to  ordination,  6^. 
Lopez,  Roderigo,  312,  313. 
Lord's    Supper,    the,   taken    in    the 

evening,  229. 
Love-feast  at  Cotessey,  120. 
Low  birth  of  the  ministers,  62. 
Loyalty  of  the  Catholics,  261. 
Luther's  doctrine  of  orders,  108. 
Lying  prophets,  230. 


M 


Macaui.ay,    Lord,    on    the   English 

Church,  226. 
Mahometanism     and     Protestantism, 

153- 
Maidstone  Grammar  School,  221. 

Maine,  Culhbert,  iSi. 

Majority  of  the  people  against  the 
changes,  50. 

Majority  of  the  people  buried  with- 
out coffins,  157. 

Manifest  divisions  increase,  72. 

Manning,  Thomas,  31. 

Manwood,  Judge,  182, 

Manwood,  Sergeant,  226. 

Many  clergy  conform,  50. 

Many  clergy  true  to  the  old  faith,  49. 

Many  lands  sold,  43. 

Many  people  leave  England,  50. 

Marriages,  various,  197. 

Married  clergy,  a,  54. 

Married  prelates,  54. 

Marshalsea,  the,  295,  296. 

Martial  law  everywhere  proclaimed, 

93- 
Martin,  Dr,  Gregory,  223,  289. 

Martyr,  Peter,  64. 

Mary,  Queen  of  Scots,  78.      See  also 

Queen  Mary  Stuart. 

Mason,  Sir  John,  55. 

Mass,  great  changes  in,  22. 

Mass-mongers  idolaters,  308. 

Matrimonial  Inquisition,  55. 

Matthews,  Dr.  Toby,  306. 

Memorials  of  the  Howards,  81. 


Meyrick,  Bishop  Rowland,  121. 
Meyrick,  Rowland,  consecrated,  43. 
Middleton,  Bishop,  279. 
Middleton,  Marmaduke,  125. 
Middleton,  Sir  William,  254. 
Ministers  without  orders,  266. 
Miscarriage  of  justice,  241. 
Modern  Church  of  England,  the,  343. 
Modern    English     Churchmen    liave 

much  to  be  thankful  for,  139. 
Modern  Protestantism,  165. 
Moral  state  of  the  people,  128. 
Morley,  Thomas,  31. 
Morrison,  John,  licensed,  226. 
Morton,  Dr.  Nicholas,  51,   91. 
Mossman,  Rev.  T.  W.,  20,  164. 


N 


Needless  scandals  unrecorded,  338. 

New  clergy,  their  ignorance,  220. 

New  ideas,  47. 

New  oath  taken  by  Parker,  40. 

New  penal  laws  enacted,  143. 

New  Religion,  the,  298. 

New  Service-Book,  20. 

New  services,  32. 

New  title,  "  Supreme  Governess,"  48. 

Nobles  and  people,  204. 

Non-acceptance  of  the  New  Religion, 

60. 
Nonconformists,  the,  83. 
Non-sacrament  ministers,  190,  266. 
Norton,  the  rack-master,  296. 
Norwich  Cathedral,  state  of,  iiS. 


O 


Oath  of  Homage,  40. 

Oath  of  Supremacy,  225. 

Oath  of  Supremacy  tendered  to  the 

clergy,  48. 
Occult  arts,  the,  31 1. 
Office  books  abolished,  24. 
Oglethorpe,  Bishop,  li,  30. 
Old  chalices  removed,  23. 
Old  Mass  priests,  306. 
Old  priests  feasted,  49. 
Old  rites  abolished,  7. 
Old  rites  and  services  abolished,  23, 

24. 
"  On  the  English  Persecution,     Dr, 

Allen,  224. 


372 


INDEX. 


Opposition  of  the  Bishops  to  Eliza- 
beth, 28. 

Ordination,  lawless  opinions  concern- 
ing, 162. 

Ordination  by  Presbyters,  206. 

0)-igincs  Proiesta7ilic(€,  310. 

"  Our  Church,"  343. 

Overton,  liishop  William,  122. 

Oxfordshire  families,  130. 

"Oyster-boards,"  268. 


Paine,  John,  181. 
Parish  churches,  209. 
Parish  clerks,  156. 
Parishes  without  parsons,  44,  121. 
Parker,  Mr.  J.  H.,  C.B.,  22. 
Parker,  Archbishop,  229. 
Parker  buried  at  Lambeth,  172. 
Parker  does  homage  for  his  temporal- 
ties,  53. 
Parker's  alarm  at  the  ()ueei's  reform, 

Parker's  "Articles  of  Enquiry,     229. 
Parker's  consecration,  32,  33,  34,  35. 
Parker's  death,  172. 
Parker's  tomb,  172. 
Parkhurst,  Bishop  John,  iig. 
Parkhurst's  "Injunctions,"  120. 
Parliament  meets,  58. 
Parliament  packed  with  Protestants, 

155- 

Parliament  powerless  to  make  priests 

or  bisho]is,  86. 
Parpaglia  forbidden  to  land,  42. 
Parsons,    Father    Robert,    191,    260, 

296,  308. 
Parsons'  (Father)  publications.  192. 
Parsons'  wives,  196. 
Pate,  Richard,  30. 
Peacock,  Mr.  Edward,  132,  133,  134, 

137- 
Pearson,  John,  tortured,  301. 
Penalties   incurred  for  saying  Mass, 

36. 

Penry,  Henry,  303  ;  wrote  agamst 
the  bishops,  303  ;  author  of  Martin 
Marprelate  tracts,  303  ;  defied  the 
authorities,  303  ;  repudiated  the 
supremacy,  304  ;  seized  and  exe- 
cuted, 304. 

Persecuted,  patience  of  the,  199. 


Persecution  of  the  Catholics,  94. 
Persecution   of  the   Catholic   clerg>', 

90. 
Persecution  of  the  poor,  102. 
Persecution  of  the  wandering  monks, 

lOI. 

Peter  Prison  in  York,  211. 

Phillips,  Thomas,  237. 

Picketing,  Sir  William,  76. 

Pilgrimage  of  Grace,  92,  93. 

Pilkington,  James,  Bishop  of  Durham, 
48,  67,  109. 

Pius  v.,  Bull  of,  published,  140. 

Pius  v.,  character  of,  95. 

Pius  V.  issues  a  Bull  of  excommunica- 
tion against  Elizabeth,  95. 

Plague  at  Oxford,  217,  218. 

I'lague  breaks  out,  30. 

Platters  for  "the  Supper,"  267. 

Play  acted  in  Trinity  College  before 
Elizabeth,  75. 

Pocock,  Nicholas,  on  the  Reformation, 
190. 

Pole,  Cardinal,  death  of,  3. 

Pole,  David,  30. 

Pole,  Reginald,  52. 

Pontifical  of  Salisbury  abolished,  32. 

Poole,  Germane,  2S6. 

Poor  flogged,  the,  170. 

Poor    of    England    rubbed    of    their 
heritage,  the,  163. 

Poor  recusants,  169,  178,  212. 

Poor,  severe  distress  of,  100. 

Pope,  true  jurisdiction  of,  96. 

Pope  Julius  III.,  70. 

Pope  Paul  III.,  70. 

Pope  Pius  IV.,  70. 

Pope  Pius  IV.  writes  to  the  Queen, 
41. 

Pope  Sixtus  v.,  262. 

Popularity  of  the  old  priests,  49. 

Pormorte,  Thomas,  308. 

Portar,  Isabel,  179. 

Portraits  of  Elizabeth,  65. 

Position  of  Archbishop  Parker,  149. 

Pounde,  Thomas,  292 ;  his  youth, 
292 ;  his  retirement  from  Court, 
294 ;  his  sufferings,  294 ;  his  re- 
ligious character,  295  ;  his  resolu- 
tion, 295  ;  committed  to  prison,  295  ; 
heavily  fined,  297  ;  again  con- 
demned, 297  ;  subsequently  re- 
leased by  King  James  I.,  298; 
died  at  Belmont,  299. 
Pounde,  William,  292. 


INDEX. 


373 


Powle,  Stephen,  a  spy,  283. 

Poynet,  John,  139. 

Prayer  for  the  Queen,  281. 

Prayers  for  the  dead  forbidden,  232. 

Preaching,  desire  for,  45. 

Prelates  complain,  43. 

Preparations   for   filling  vacant  sees, 

43- 
Presbyterian  ordination  allowed,  46. 
Presbyteries  set  up,  266. 
Priests  and  others  executed,  186. 
Prisons  full,  167,  188. 
Privy  Council  Order,  81. 
Procession  of  recognition,  10. 
Proclamation  issued,  36,  41. 
Profanation  of  holy  things,  8. 
Profane  caricatures   of  the  Mass,  59, 

60. 
Profane  language  of  Dr.  Bale,  114. 
Progresses,  the  Queen's,  207. 
Prophecy  of  Ringvvode,  216. 
Prophesyings,  266,  267. 
Protestant  coarseness,  7,  37. 
Protestant  exiles  return,  7. 
Protestant  forgeries,  239. 
Protestant  interpretation  of  Scripture, 

47- 
Protestantism     and    Mahometanism, 

153- 

Public  Mass  ceases,  27. 

Public  opinion,  supremacy  of,  139. 

Punishment  of  Catholics,  60. 

Punishment  of  rebellious  assemblies, 
130. 

Punishment  of  sacrilege  and  blas- 
phemy, 38,  39. 

Puritan  congregation  seized,  84. 

Puritan  leaders  summoned  to  Lam- 
beth, 162. 

Puritan  objections,  82. 

Pursglove,  Bishop  Robert,  31. 


Quarrels  between  the  prelates,  109. 
Quarterly  communion,  117. 
Queen  likened  to  Jezebel,  281. 
Queen's  love  of  pomp,  280. 
Queen's     severity     to     all     Noncon- 
formists, 142. 
Queen   visits   Canterbury  Cathedral, 

57- 
Queen  Elizabeth's  learning,  327  ;  tact 
and  refinement,  327  ;  knowledge  of 


divinity,  327  ;  love  of  flattery,  328  ; 
excessive    vanity,    328 ;    singularly 
irresolute,     328 ;    her    coarse    and 
unchaste  language,  329  ;  her  autho- 
rity over   the   ministers,   329,  330  ; 
her    personal  characteristics,    330  ; 
her  portraits,  330  ;  she  receives  the 
Duke   of  Orsini,    332  ;  shows  him 
her  chapel,  333  ;    the  close  of  her 
life,  333  ;  artihcially  adorned,  335  ; 
her  last  days,  335  ;  is  much  per- 
turbed and  veiy  miserable,  336  ;  her 
death,  337.      See  also  Elizabeth. 
Queen  Katherine  Parr's  death,  4. 
Queen  Mary's  acts,  2. 
Queen  Mary's  priests,  2. 
Queen  Mary's    "shaven   conjurors," 

189. 
Queen  Mary,  death  of,  2. 
Queen  Mary  Stuart  comes  to  England, 
234  ;  direct  heiress  to  the  English 
throne,  235  ;  her  Catholic  sup- 
porters, 235  ;  eighteen  years  a 
captive,  235;  deserving  of  sym- 
pathy, 236 ;  insulted  by  Sir  A. 
Poulet,  236  ;  her  virtues  and  con- 
stancy, 236;  her  trial  arranged, 
238  ;  pleads  that  she  is  an  inde- 
pendent sovereign,  239  ;  the  charge 
against  her,  238  ;  by  forgery  and 
trickery  her  death  accomplished, 
239 ;  found  guilty,  240 ;  Poulet 
removes  her  queenly  insignia,  240  ; 
she  writes  to  the  Archbishop  of 
Glasgow,  240 ;  Elizabeth  hesitates 
to  murder  her,  240 ;  but  suggests 
assassination,  241  ;  petition  for  her 
death,  241  ;  Elizabeth's  insincerity 
and  hypocrisy,  242  ;  final  resolution 
concerning  her  death,  242  ;  Lord 
Buckhurst   explains    the    situation, 

242  ;  Queen  Mary's  reply,  243  ; 
public  opinion  in  London,  243  ; 
Queen   Mary   writes   to   Elizabeth, 

243  ;  her  son's  callous  indifference, 
243  ;  the  King  of  France  expostu- 
lates, 244  ;  Poulet  declines  to  be- 
come an  assassin,  244  ;  commission 
for  Queen  Mary's  execution,  245  ; 
behaviour  of  the  Earl  of  Kent,  245  ; 
her  last  night,  246 ;  the  closing 
scene,  246,  247,  248  ;  the  Dean  of 
Peterborough  preaches,  248;  Queen 
Mary's  prayer,  249 ;  she  is  led 
to    the   block    and  executed,  250; 


374 


INDEX. 


embalmed    and    buried    at    Peter- 
borough, 250,  251. 


R 


Rack,  pillory,  and  flogging,  306. 

Raine,  Canon  of  York,  211. 

Rawlins,  Alexander,  325. 

Readers,  1 19. 

"  Rebukeful  separations,"  56. 

Reformation,  striking  results  of,  65. 

Reformers'  innovations,  90. 

Religion  of  the  lower  classes,  219. 

Religious  images,  210. 

Remedies  for  the  Restrained,  211. 

Representations     of    the     Queen     in 

churches,  128. 
Rights  of  national  churches,  164. 
Ringwode's  prophecy,  216. 
Riots  at  Oxford,  8. 
Riot  when  a  Calvinist  was  preaching 

in  the  Friars'  Church,  40,  41, 
Rishton,  Rev.  Edward,  50. 
Rising  in  various  counties,  130. 
Robbing  of  Coventry  Church,  122. 
Robinson,  Bishop  Nicholas,  279. 
Rookwood,  Edward,  208. 
Rousham,  Rev.  Stephen,  214. 
Rumours  and  scandals,  141. 
Rycot  Chapel,  65. 


Sacraments  abolished,  310. 

Sacraments  not  administered,  46. 

Sadler,  .Sir  Ralph,  91. 

"  Saints,"  family  of,  187. 

Salfurd  gaol,  196. 

Salisbury  Manual,  the,  306, 

Sander,  Nicholas,  52. 

Sandwich  Grammar  .School,  221. 

Sandys,  Bishop,  100,  146. 

Sandys,  Bishop,  on  the  C^ueen,  n6. 

Sandys,  Edwin,  consecrated,  43. 

.Sandys',  Edwin,  deeds,  109,  no. 

Sandys,  Edwin,  holds  a  visitation  at 

Doncaster,  112. 
Sandys  on  Antichrist,  112. 
Sandys  opposes  Whittingham,  225. 
Sandys,  Sir  Edwin,  197,  325. 
Sandys,  Sir  Miles,  197. 
Sankey  of  Great  Sankey,  201. 
"  Scavenger's  Daughter,"  the,  213. 


Scene  in  a  church,  i6r. 

.Scory,  Bishopjohn,  32,  33,  34,  50, 161. 

Scotch  Reformation,  the,  234. 

Scotland,  Religion  in,  234. 

Scott,  Bishop  of  Chester,  19,  163. 

Scott,  Cuthbert,  30. 

Scrope,  Lord,  81. 

Scurrilous  publications  by  Protestants, 

37; 

Seminaries,  the,  212. 

".Seminary-hunting,"  307. 

Sentence  of  Pope  Pius  V.,  265. 

Servian  Church,  51. 

Service  abolished,  23. 

Service-Books  burnt,  24. 

Service  of  Reconciliation,  2. 

Seventy-two  priests  banished,  211. 

Sharp,  Sir  Cuthbert,  95. 

Shelley,  William,  287. 

Sherwin,  Mr.,  tortured,  213. 

.Sherwin,  Ralph,  executed,  194.    ' 

Sitters  at  "the  Supper,"  268. 

Skulks  of  Society,  282. 

Snodland,  "  martyrs  "  at,  150. 

Some  ancient  rites  observed,  156. 

Somertield,  John,  308. 

Sorcerers  and  sorceresses,  309,  310. 

Southampton,  Earl  of,  292. 

Southwell,  Robert,  317  ;  his  youth 
and  ordination,  318  ;  betrayed,  318; 
imprisoned  and  most  severely  tor- 
tured, 31S;  tried  for  treason,  319; 
condemned  and  executed,  319,  320, 
321,  322. 

.Southworth,  Sir  John,  196. 

Spanish  ambassador,  the,  79- 

Sparke,  Thomas,  31. 

.Spies  active,  169. 

.Spies  and  agents,  309, 

Spies,  army  of,  283. 

Spiritual  independence,  19,  20. 

Spoiling  of  churches,  44. 

.Spoons  for  "the  Supper,"  267. 

St.  Alban's  Grammar  School,  220. 

.St.  David's,  diocese  of,  277, 

St.  Donat's,  Cross  of,  216. 

.Stamford  minister,  a,  279. 

Stapleton,  Sir  Robert,  112. 

State  of  alTairs  at  Carlisle,  121. 

State  of  ecclesiastical  affairs,  73. 

State  of  the  dioceses  of  England,  1 1 7. 

State  of  the  Establishment,  58. 

State  of  the  monks,  44. 

State  of  the  poor,  74. 

Still,  Bishop  John,  313. 


INDEX. 


375 


Stonor  Park,  192. 

Storey,  Dr.  John,  persecution  of,  144; 

his     forcible     seizure,    145  ;    cruel 

death  of,  145. 
Stourton,  John,  Lord,  252. 
Stowe,  the  chronicler,  52. 
Strickland,  Miss,  13,  14. 
Stryckett,  Janet,  179. 
Strype's  Records,  109. 
Sufferers  half  strangled,  237. 
Suffolk,  Duchess  of,  144. 
Sulyard,  Edward,  290. 
Supernatural  interventions,  215. 
"Supper,"  the,  46,  47. 
Supremacy,  Burnet  on  the,  145. 
Supremacy,  Oath  of,  225. 
Sussex,  Earl  of,  208. 


Talbot,  Earl  of  Shrewsbury,  238. 

Taste  for  pagan  literature,  76. 

Taylor,  Margaret,  178. 

Ter  Vort,  Hendrick,  burnt,  174. 

Thame  Church,  123. 

Thame  Grammar  School,  221. 

The  Catholic  Church,  what  it  teaches, 
66. 

The  Established  Church  in  Wales  a 
failure,  68. 

The  gallows  in  constant  use,  94. 

The  General  Councils,  69. 

The  great  love  of  preaching  in  Re- 
formers, 67,  68. 

The  Lord's  IJoard,  46. 

"The  Maiden  Shepherdess,"  278, 
279. 

The  national  danger,  235. 

The  New  Religion  eminently  selfish, 

74. 

The  Oath  of  Homage,  a  modern  in- 
vention, 39. 

The  Old  Religion  almost  rooted  out, 
124. 

"The  People  and  theyr  Duetie," 
121. 

The  people  still  attached  to  the  true 
faith,  65,  68. 

The  Prayer-Book  translated  into 
Welsh,  68. 

The  Queen  visits  Canterbury,  57. 

The  Supper  a  substantial  meal,  47. 

"  The  Supper,"  47. 

The  "Table"  prepared,  46. 


The  unordained  officiate,  233. 
Thimbleby,  Gabriel,  196. 
Thimbiebys  of  Pelham,  195. 
Thirlby,  Bishop,  dies,  147. 
Thirlby,  Thomas,  29. 
Thomas,  Howell,  157. 
Thornborough,  Bishop,  105. 
Throckmorton,  Sir  William,  9. 
Tichbourne,  Benjamin,  296. 
Tilbury  Fort,  261. 
Tin  cups  for  "the  Supper,"  47. 
Toothache  of  the  Queen,  206. 
Topcliffe  and  Young  authorised  to  use 

torture,  285. 
Topcliffe,  Richard,  202,  20S. 
Topcliffe 's  cruelties,  307. 
Towneley,  John,  291,  292. 
Travers,  case  of,  227,  22S. 
Treason,  Hallam  on,  153. 
Treason,  punishment  of,  141. 
Treatment  of  the  Archbishop  of  York, 

80. 
Tregean,  Thomas,  181,  182. 
Tregean,  Esquire,  ruined,  184. 
Trenchers  for  "the  Supper,"  267. 
Tressels  and  table,  46. 
"True,  Sincere, and  ModestDefence," 

by  Dr.  Allen,  224. 
Tunstall,  Cuthbert,  29. 
Tunstall  defends 'the  faith,  25. 
Turberville,  Bishop  James,  29. 
Turner,  Dean  of  Wells,  105. 


U 


Unction,  310. 
Unction  of  the  Queen,  13. 
Underfiowne,  Thomas,  276. 
Underbill,  Dr.  John,  160. 
Unpleasant  rumours,  141. 
Unpopular  changes,  48. 


V 


Vagabonds,  the  whipping  of,  loi. 
Validity  of  Bishop  Barlow's  consecra- 
tion, 34. 
Van  I'arr,  George,  1 5 1. 
Vavasour,  Dr.  Thomas,  177,  310. 
Venetian  ambassador,  the,  80. 
Village  pillaged,  94. 
Villages  depopulated,  300. 


376 


INDEX. 


Visitation    Articles,   Parkhurst's,  6i, 
62. 


\V 


Waldegrave,  Sir  Edward,  154. 

Walpole,  Henry,  birth,  322  ;  educa- 
tion, ordination,  and  labours,  323  ; 
returns  to  England,  323  ;  seized 
and  conveyed  to  the  Tower,  tor- 
tured, 323  ;  indicted,  324  ;  found 
guilty  and  executed,  325. 

Walpole's  epitaph  on  Campion,  195. 

Walsingham  outstrips  King  Philip, 
260. 

Walsingham,  Sir  Francis,  6,  212, 
238,  279,  283. 

Want  of  clergy,  44. 

Ward,  Margaret,  259. 

Warnings  to  the  people,  215. 

Watson,  Bishop  Anthony,  313. 

Watson,  Bishop,  163. 

Watson,  Father  Richard,  259. 

Watson,  Bishop  Thomas,  30. 

Watson,  Bishop  Thomas,  imprisoned, 
197  ;  grossly  treated,  198. 

"  Wattle,"  cottages  of,  209. 

Welsh  Church,  the,  68. 

Wharton,  Sir  Thomas,.  154. 

White,  Bishop  John,  29. 

Whitgift,  Archbishop,  228. 

Whitgift,  Bishop,  280. 

Whitgift,  Dr.  John,  160. 

Whitgift,  Dr.  John,  314  ;  educated  at 
Cambridge,  314;  Bishop  of  Wor- 
cester, 314;  his  independence  and 


plain  speaking,  315  ;  his  zeal,  315  ; 

letter  to  the  Queen,  316. 
Whittingham,  Dean,  92,  225. 
Whittingham's,  Dean,  sacrilege,  137. 
Wielmacher,  John,  burnt,  174. 
Wife,  the  innkeeper's,  no. 
Wilkinson,  Elizabeth,  178. 
Wilson,  E.  J.,  137. 
Winchester  House,  186. 
Wing  House  watched,  175. 
Wisbeach  Castle,  197,  198,  200. 
Wisbeach  Church,  199. 
Witchcraft  and  sorcery,  265,  309. 
Witchcraft  at  Edmonton,  311. 
Wives  of  parsons,  196. 
Wolton,  Bishop  John,  313. 
Women  cruelly  put  to  death,  259. 
Wood,  Davye,  a  drunken  preacher, 

229. 
Woodhouse,   Sir  Thomas,   executed, 

177. 
Wordsworth,     Bishop     Christopher, 

199. 
Worthingtons  of  Worthington,   2or, 
•  202. 

Wren,  Geoffrey  and  Hugh,  44,  45. 
Wycherley,  William,  59. 


Yates  of  Lyford,  family  of,  193. 


Z 


Zwinglian  heretics,  5. 


MORRISON    AND   GIBB,    PRINTERS,    EDINBURGH.